The big
Aviary-class CLACs and their escorting battlecruisers crossed the Alpha
wall into normal-space just outside the hyper limit. There were only two of the
superdreadnought-sized vessels, but their LAC bays spat out almost six hundred
light attack craft, and if the Republic of Haven's Cimeterre-class LACs
were shorter-legged, more lightly armed, and nowhere near so capable as the
Star Kingdom of Manticore's Shrikes and Ferrets, they were more
than adequate for their current assignment.
They
accelerated in-system, building vectors towards the industrial infrastructure
of the Alizon System, and discovered an unanticipated bit of good fortune. A
pair of lumbering freighters, both squawking Manticoran IDs and bumbling along
on the same general flight plan, found themselves squarely in the path of the
incoming storm and already within extreme missile range. They accelerated
desperately, but the LACs had an overtake velocity of over a thousand KPS at
the moment they were first detected, and the freighters' maximum acceleration
rate was little more than two hundred gravities. The Cimeterres were
capable of very nearly seven hundred, and they were armed . . . which
the merchantmen weren't.
"Manticoran
freighters, this is Captain Javits of the Republican Navy," a harsh,
Haven-accented voice said over the civilian guard frequency. "You are
instructed to kill your impellers and abandon ship immediately. Under the terms
of applicable interstellar law, I formally inform you that we do not have the
capacity to board and search your vessels or to take them as prizes. Therefore,
I will open fire upon them and destroy them in twenty standard minutes from . .
. now. Get your people off immediately. Javits, clear."
One of the
two freighters killed her impellers immediately. The other skipper was more
stubborn. He continued to accelerate, as if he thought he might somehow still
save his ship, but he wasn't an idiot, either. It took him all of five minutes
to realize—or, at least, to accept—that he had no chance, and his
impellers, too, went abruptly cold.
Shuttles
spilled from the two merchant ships, scuttling away from them at their maximum
acceleration as if they expected the Havenite LACs to open fire upon them. But
the Republic hewed scrupulously to the requirements of interstellar law. Its
warships meticulously waited out the time limit Javits had stipulated, then,
precisely on the tick, launched a single pair of missiles at each drifting
freighter.
The
old-fashioned nuclear warheads did the job just fine.
The
Cimeterres sped onward, ignoring the dissipating balls of plasma which had
once been somewhere in the vicinity of fourteen million tons of merchant
shipping. Their destruction, after all, was a mere sideshow. Ahead of the
Havenite units, a half-dozen destroyers and a division of RMN Star Knight-class
CAs accelerated to meet them. The range was still too long for the
Cimeterres to actually see the defenders, but the remote reconnaissance
platforms spreading out ahead of the LACs were another matter, and Captain
Bertram Javits grimaced as he took note of the drones' relayed report of the
defenders' acceleration rates.
"They're
not killing themselves to come out and meet us, are they, Skip?"
Lieutenant Constanza Sheffield, his executive officer observed.
"No,
they aren't," Javits said, and gestured at the cramped, utilitarian LAC's
bare-bones plot. "Which probably means Intelligence is right about what
they've got covering the inner system," he told her.
"In
that case, this is gonna hurt," she said.
"Yes,
it is. If not quite as much as they hope it will," Javits agreed.
Then he punched a new combination into his com panel. "All Wolverines,
this is Wolverine One. From their acceleration rate, it looks like they've got
to be towing pods. And from the fact that there's so few of them, I have to
assume Intelligence is right about their defensive stance. So instead of
walking obligingly into the inner system, we're shifting to Sierra Three. We'll
change course at Point Victor-Able on my command in another forty-five minutes.
Review your Sierra Three targeting queues and stand by for a defensive missile
engagement. Wolverine One, clear."
The range
continued to fall, and the recon platforms began to report widespread active
sensor emissions. Some were probably search systems, but the primary search platforms
for any star system were passive, not active. So the odds were high that most
of those active emitters were tied into fire control systems of one sort or
another.
Javits
watched his own platforms' telemetry as it streamed across his plot's sidebars.
The far more capable computer support aboard the CLACs and battlecruisers which
had launched the platforms could undoubtedly do more with the data they were
acquiring, and he knew how the tech teams back at Bolthole would salivate when
they got a look at it. All that was rather secondary to his own calculations,
however, since those calculations were mostly concerned with how to keep as
many as possible of his people alive through the next few hours.
"Looks
like we've got four main nets of platforms on this side of the primary,
Skipper," his XO said finally. "Two of them spread to cover the
ecliptic, and one high and one low. Gives them pretty fair coverage of the
entire sphere of the limit, but they're obviously concentrating on the ecliptic."
"The
question, of course, Constanza," he replied dryly, "is how many pods
each of those 'clusters' of yours represent."
"Well,
that and how many pods they want us to think they have, Sir,"
Lieutenant Joseph Cook, Javits' tactical officer pointed out.
"That,
too," Javits conceded. "Under the circumstances, though, I'm prepared
to be fairly pessimistic on that particular point, Joe. And they've clearly
gone ahead and deployed the sensor platforms to control the pods.
Those're probably at least as expensive as the pods themselves would be, so I'd
say there's a good chance they wouldn't have deployed them if they hadn't also
deployed the pods for them to control."
"Yes,
Sir."
Lieutenant
Cook's expression and manner couldn't have been more respectful, but Javits
knew what he was thinking. Given the totality of the surprise Operation
Thunderbolt had achieved, and the equally total incompetence of the previous
Manticoran government, it was entirely possible—even likely—that Alizon's
defenses had not been significantly upgraded in the immediate run up to the
resumption of hostilities. In which case the defenders might, indeed, be
attempting to bluff Javits into believing they had more to work with than they
really did. On the other hand, there'd been time since Thunderbolt for the
Manties to ship a couple of freighter loads of their multi-drive missile pods
out here. And however incompetent Prime Minister High Ridge might have been,
the new Alexander Government knew its ass from a hole in the ground. If those
additional missiles hadn't been shipped out and deployed, the recon platforms
would have been reporting a far heavier system picket than they were actually
seeing.
"We're
coming up on course change, Skipper," Sheffield told him several minutes
later, and he nodded.
"Range
to the nearest active sensor platforms?" he asked.
"Closest
approach, twelve seconds after we alter course, will be about sixty-four
million kilometers," she replied.
"A
million inside their maximum effective range from rest," Javits observed,
and grimaced. "I wish there was another way to find out if Intelligence
knows what it's talking about."
"You
and me both, Skip," Sheffield agreed, but she also shrugged. "At
least we're the ones calling the tune for the dance this time."
Javits
nodded and watched the icon representing his massive flight of LACs sweeping
closer and closer to the blinking green crosshair which represented Point
Victor-Able. By this time, the Cimeterres had traveled almost
thirty-three million kilometers and were up to a velocity of over twenty
thousand kilometers per second. The Manty picket ships were still accelerating
to meet them, but it was obvious that they had no intention of entering
standard missile range of that many LACs. Well, Javits wouldn't have either, if
he'd been towing pods stuffed full of multi-drive missiles with a standoff
range of over three light-minutes. However good Manticoran combat systems might
have been, six hundred-plus LACs would have swarmed over that handful of ships
like hungry pseudo-piranha if they could get into range of their own weapons.
If there'd been heavy defending units in-system, things might have been
different, but in that case, Javits would never have come close enough for them
to get a shot at him in the first place.
"Victor-Able,
Sir," his astrogator reported suddenly.
"Very
well. Order the course change, Constanza."
"Aye,
Sir," Sheffield said in far more formal tones, and he heard the order go
out.
The green
beads representing friendly units on his display shifted course abruptly,
arcing back out and away from the inner system on a course which would take
them right through one of the more heavily developed and mined portions of the
Alizon System's asteroid belt. For several seconds, nothing else changed on the
display. And then, like a cascading eruption of scarlet curses,
dozens—scores—of previously deployed MDM pods began to fire all along the outer
edge of the inner system.
The range
was incredibly long, even for Manticoran fire control, and one thing
Thunderbolt had taught the Republican Navy was that as good as Manty technology
was, it wasn't perfect. Hits at such extreme range, even against all-up,
hyper-capable starships would have been hard come by. Against such small,
elusive targets as LACs, they would be even harder to achieve.
But of
course, Javits thought,
hyper-capable units could take a lot more damage than we can. Anybody
they do hit, is going to get reamed.
The
missiles streaked outward at well over forty thousand gravities. Even at that
stupendous rate of acceleration, it would take them the next best thing to nine
minutes to reach his ships, and his missile defense crews began to track the
incoming threat. It was hard—Manty ECM had always been hellishly good, and it
had gotten even better since the last war—but Admiral Foraker's teams at
Bolthole had compensated for that as much as they could. The Cimeterres'
point defense and EW weren't in the same league as Manty LACs' systems, but they
were much better than any previous Havenite LAC had ever possessed, and the
extreme range worked in their favor.
At least
three-quarters of the total Manticoran launch simply lost lock and wandered off
course. The recon platforms reported the sudden spiteful flashes as the lost
missiles detonated early, before they could become a threat to navigation here
in the system. But the rest of the pursuing missiles continued to charge after
his units.
"Approximately
nine hundred still inbound," Lieutenant Cook announced in a voice which
struck Javits as entirely too calm. "Allocating outer zone
counter-missiles."
He paused
for perhaps a pair of heart beats, then said one more word.
"Engaging."
The command
Cimeterre quivered as the first counter-missiles blasted away from her.
They were woefully outclassed by the missiles racing to kill her, but there
were almost two thirds as many LACs as there were attack missiles, and each LAC
was firing dozens of counter-missiles.
Not all of
them simultaneously. Admiral Foraker's staff, and especially Captain Clapp, her
resident LAC tactical genius, had worked long and hard to develop improved
missile defense doctrine for the Cimeterres, especially because of their
small size and the technological imbalance between their capabilities and those
of their opponents. They'd come up with a variant on the "layered
defense" Admiral Foraker had devised for the wall of battle, a doctrine
which relied less on sophistication than on sheer numbers and recognized that
counter-missiles were far less expensive than LACs full of trained Navy
personnel.
Now Javits
watched the first waves of counter-missiles sweeping towards the incoming
Manticoran fire. EW platforms seeded throughout the MDMs came on-line, using
huge bursts of jamming in efforts to blind the counter-missiles' seekers. Other
platforms produced entire shoals of false images, saturating the LACs' tracking
systems with threats. But that had been accepted when the missile defense
doctrine was evolved, and in some ways, the very inferiority of Havenite
technology worked for Javits at this moment. His counter-missiles' onboard
seekers were almost too simpleminded to be properly confused. They could
"see" only the very strongest of targeting sources at the best of
times, and they had been launched in such huge numbers that they could afford
to waste much of their effort killing harmless decoys.
A second,
almost equally heavy wave of counter-missiles followed the first one. Again, a
Manticoran fleet wouldn't have fired the salvos that closely together. They
would have waited, lest the second wave's impeller wedges interrupt their
telemetry control links to the first wave's CMs. But Javits' crews knew that at
this range, the relatively less capable onboard fire control systems of their
LACs had nowhere near the reach and sensitivity of their Manticoran
counterparts, anyway. Which didn't even consider the effectiveness of the Manty
missiles' penetration aids and EW. Since they could barely see the damned
things in the first place, they were giving up far less in terms of enhanced
accuracy than a Manticoran formation would have sacrificed, and the larger
number of counter-missiles they were putting into space more than compensated
for any target discrimination they lost.
The
Cimeterres' own EW did what it could, as well. The first-wave
counter-missiles took out over three hundred of the Manticoran missiles. The
second wave killed another two hundred. Perhaps another hundred fell prey to
the LACs' electronic warfare systems, lost lock, and went wandering harmlessly
astray. Another fifty or sixty lost lock initially, but managed to reacquire
their targets or to find new ones, yet their need to quest for fresh victims
delayed them, kicked them slightly behind the rest of the stream to make them
easier point defense targets.
The third
and final wave of counter-missiles killed over a hundred more of the incoming
missiles, but over two hundred, in what were now effectively two slightly
staggered salvos, burst through the inner counter-missile zone and charged down
upon Javits' LACs.
The agile
little craft opened fire with every point defense laser cluster that would
bear. Dozens of lasers stabbed at each incoming laser head, and as the attack
missiles rolled in on their final approaches, the targeted Cimeterres
rotated sharply, presenting only the bellies and roofs of their impenetrable
impeller wedges to them. The targeted LACs' consorts continued to slam bolts of
coherent light into the teeth of the Manticoran missiles. Over half of those
missiles disappeared, torn apart by the defensive fire, but many of the others
swerved at the last moment, either because they'd been executing deceptive
attack runs to mask their true targets or else because they'd lost their
initial targets and had to acquire new ones. Most of those got through; only a
handful of the others did.
Vacuum
blazed as the powerful Manticoran laser heads detonated in vicious,
fusion-fueled chain-lightning, and immensely powerful x-ray lasers stabbed out
of the explosions. Many of those lasers wasted their fury on the interposed
wedges of their targets, but others ripped through the LACs' sidewalls as if
they had not existed. These were capital missiles of the Royal Manticoran Navy,
designed to blast through the almost inconceivably tough sidewalls and armor of
ships of the wall. What one of them did to a tiny, completely unarmored light
attack craft was cataclysmic.
More
explosions speckled space as Cimeterres' fusion bottles failed. Almost
three dozen of Javits' LACs were destroyed outright. Another four survived long
enough for their remaining crewpeople to abandon ship.
"Wolverine
Red Three, Wolverine One," he said harshly into his microphone.
"You've got lifeguard. Pick up everyone you can. One, clear."
"Aye,
Wolverine One. Red Three copies. Decelerating now."
Javits
watched the designated squadron decelerate slightly—just enough to match
vectors with the skinsuited crewmen who could no longer accelerate—and his eyes
were hard. Under other circumstances, delaying to pick those people up would
have represented an unacceptable risk. But at this range, and with the range
already opening to the very edge of even Manticoran missiles' reach, it was a
chance well worth taking.
And not
just because of the "asset" those people represent, he thought. We left too many people too many places
under the People's Republic. Not again—not on my watch. Not if there's
any option at all.
He watched
the plot's sidebars silently update themselves, listing his losses. They hurt.
Thirty-eight ships represented over six percent of his total strength, and he'd
known most of the four hundred people who'd been aboard them personally. But in
the unforgiving calculus of war, that loss rate was not merely acceptable, it
was low. Especially for LAC operations.
And we're outside
their reach, now. We've confirmed what they're deploying for system defense,
but they're not going to waste more missiles on us. Not at this range . . . and
not when they can't be certain what else
may be waiting to pounce if they fire off all their birds.
"Sir,"
Lieutenant Cook said. "We're beginning to pick up active emissions ahead
of us." Javits looked across at him, and the lieutenant looked up from his
own display to meet his CO's eyes. "The computers assess them as primarily
point defense radar and lidar, Sir. There don't seem to be very many of
them."
"Good,"
Javits grunted. "All Wolverines, Wolverine One. Stand by to launch on
Sierra targets on my command."
He switched
channels again, back to the civilian guard frequency.
"Alizon
System Central, this is Captain Javits. I will be bringing your Tregarth Alpha
facilities into my extreme missile range in twenty-seven minutes from . . .
now. My vector will make it impossible for me to match velocity with the
facilities or send across boarding parties, and I hereby inform you that I will
open fire on them, and on any extraction vessels within my missile envelope, in
twenty-nine minutes."
He looked
down at his plot once more with a hard, fierce grin. Then keyed his mike once
more.
"I
advise you to begin evacuation procedures now," he said. "Javits,
clear."
* * *
"So
what's the best estimate of the results, Admiral?" President Eloise
Pritchart asked.
The
beautiful, platinum-haired President had come across to the Octagon, the
Republic of Haven's military nerve center, for this meeting, and aside from one
bodyguard, she was the single civilian in the enormous conference room. All
eyes were on the huge holo display above the conference table, where the
reproduced imagery from Bertrand Javits' tactical plot hovered in midair.
"Our
best estimate from the recon platforms' data is that Captain Javits' raid
destroyed about eight percent—probably a little less—of Alizon's total resource
extraction capability, Madam President," Rear Admiral Victor Lewis,
Director of Operational Research replied. Thanks to venerable traditions of
uncertain origin, Naval Intelligence reported to Op Research, which, in turn,
reported to Vice Admiral Linda Trenis' Bureau of Planning.
"And
was that an acceptable return in light of our own losses?" the President
asked.
"Yes,"
another voice said, and the President looked at the stocky, brown-haired
admiral at the head of the table who'd spoken. Admiral Thomas Theisman,
Secretary of War and Chief of Naval Operations, looked back at her steadily.
"We lost about a third of the people we'd have lost aboard a single
old-style cruiser, Madam President," he continued, speaking very formally
in the presence of their subordinates. "In return, we confirmed NavInt's
estimate of the system-defense doctrine the Manties appear to be adopting and
acquired additional information on their fire control systems and current pod
deployment patterns; destroyed eight million tons of hyper-capable merchant
shipping, better than five times the combined tonnage of all the LACs Javits
lost; and put a small but significant dent into the productivity of Alizon.
More to the point, we hit one of the Manticoran Alliance's member's home system
for what everyone will recognize as negligible losses, and this isn't the first
time Alizon's been hit. That has to have an effect on the entire Alliance's
morale, and it's almost certain to increase the pressure on the White Haven
Admiralty to detach additional picket forces to cover the Star Kingdom's allies
against similar attacks."
"I
see." The spectacularly beautiful, platinum-haired President's
topaz-colored eyes didn't look especially happy, but they didn't flinch away
from Theisman's logic, either. She looked at him for a moment longer, then
returned her attention to Rear Admiral Lewis.
"Please
pardon the interruption, Admiral," she said. "Continue, if you
would."
"Of
course, Madam President." The rear admiral cleared his throat and punched
a new command sequence into his terminal. The holo display shifted, and Javits'
plot disappeared, replaced by a series of bar graphs.
"If
you'll look at the first red column, Madam President," he began,
"you'll see our losses to date in ships of the wall. The green column
beside it represents SD(P)s currently undergoing trials or completing
construction. The amber column—"
* * *
"Well,
that was all extremely interesting, Tom," Eloise Pritchart said some hours
later. "Unfortunately, I think we're into information overkill. In some
ways, I think I know less about what's going on now than I did before I came
over here!"
She made a
face, and Theisman chuckled. He sat behind his desk, tipped back comfortably in
his chair, and the Republic's President sat on the comfortable couch facing the
desk. Her personal security detail was camped outside the door, giving her at
least the illusion of privacy, her shoes lay on the carpet in front of her, and
she had both bare feet tucked up under her while she nursed a steaming cup of
coffee in slender hands. Theisman's own cup sat on his desk's blotter.
"You
spent long enough as Javier's people's commissioner to have a better grasp of
military realities than that, Eloise," he told her now.
"In a
general sense, certainly." She shrugged. "On the other hand, I was
never actually trained for the realities of the Navy, and there've been so many
changes in such a short time that what I did know feels hopelessly out of date.
I suppose what matters is that you're current. And confident."
Her tone
was ever so slightly questioning on the last two words, and it was his turn to
shrug.
"'Confident'
is a slippery word. You know I was never happy about going back to war against
the Manties." He raised one hand in a placating gesture. "I
understand your logic, and I can't disagree with it. Besides, you're the President.
But I have to admit that I never liked the idea. And that Thunderbolt's success
has exceeded my own expectations. So far, at least."
"Even
after what happened—or didn't happen—at Trevor's Star?"
"Javier
made the right decision on the basis of everything we knew," Theisman said
firmly. "None of us fully appreciated just how tough Shannon's 'layered
defense' was going to be against long-range Manticoran missile fire. If we'd
been able to project probable losses during the approach phase as accurately then
as we could now, then, yes, he should have gone ahead and pressed the attack.
But he didn't know that at the time any more than the rest of us did."
"I
see." Pritchart sipped coffee, and Theisman watched her with a carefully
hidden smile. That was about as close as the President was ever going to allow
herself to come to "pulling strings" on Javier Giscard's behalf,
lover or no lover.
"And
Lewis' projections?" she continued after a moment. "Do you feel
confident about them, too?"
"As
far as the numbers from our own side go, absolutely," he said.
"Manpower's going to be a problem for about the next seven months. After
that, the training programs Linda and Shannon have in place should be producing
most of the personnel we need. And a few months after that, we'll begin
steadily mothballing the old-style wallers to crew the new construction as it
comes out of the yards. We're still going to be stretched to come up with the
officers we need—especially flag officers with experience—but we were able to
build up a solid base between the Saint-Just cease-fire and Thunderbolt. I
think we'll be all right on that side, too.
"As
far as the industrial side goes, I realize the economic strain of our present
building plans is going to be heavy. Rachel Hanriot's made that clear enough on
behalf of Treasury, but I didn't need her to tell me, and I deeply regret
having to impose it. Especially given the high price we've all paid to start
turning the economy around. But we don't have a lot of choice, unless we end up
successfully negotiating a peace settlement."
He raised
his eyebrows questioningly, and she gave her head a quick, irritable shake.
"I
don't know where we are on that," she admitted, manifestly unhappily.
"I'd have thought even Elizabeth Winton would be willing to sit down and
talk after you, Javier, and the rest of the Navy finished kicking her navy's
ass so thoroughly! So far, though, nothing. I'm becoming more and more
convinced that Arnold's been right about the Manties' new taste for imperialism
from the very beginning . . . damn him."
Theisman
started to say something, then stopped. This wasn't the time to suggest that
the Queen of Manticore might have very good reasons to not see things exactly
as Eloise Pritchart did. Or to reiterate his own deep distrust and suspicion of
anything emerging from the mouth of Secretary of State Arnold Giancola.
"Well,"
he said instead, "in the absence of a negotiated settlement, we don't
really have any choice but to press for an outright military victory."
"And
you genuinely believe we can achieve that?"
Theisman
snorted in harsh amusement at her tone.
"I
wish you wouldn't sound quite so . . . dubious," he said. "You're the
commander-in-chief, after all. Does terrible things for the uniformed
personnel's morale when you sound like you can't quite believe we can
win."
"After
what they did to us in the last war, and especially Buttercup, it's hard not to
feel a little doubtful, Tom," she said a bit apologetically.
"I
suppose it is," he conceded. "But in this case, yes, I do believe we
can defeat the Star Kingdom and its allies if we have to. I really need to take
you out to Bolthole to actually see what we're doing there, and discuss
everything Shannon Foraker is up to. The short version, though, is that we hurt
the Manties badly in Thunderbolt. Not just in the ships we destroyed, but in
the unfinished construction Admiral Griffith took out at Grendelsbane. We
gutted their entire second-generation podnought building program, Eloise.
They're basically having to lay down new vessels from scratch, and while their
building rates are still faster than ours are, even at Bolthole, they aren't
fast enough to offset the jump we've gotten in ships already under construction
and nearing completion. Our technology still isn't as good as theirs is, but
the tech information Erewhon handed over, and the sensor data we recorded
during Thunderbolt—plus the captured hardware we've been able to take apart and
examine—is helping a lot in that regard, as well."
"Erewhon."
Pritchart shook her head with a sigh, her expression unhappy. "I really
regret the position we put Erewhon in with Thunderbolt."
"Frankly,
I don't think the Erewhonese are exactly ecstatic over it, themselves,"
Theisman said dryly. "And I know they didn't anticipate that they were
going to hand over their tech manuals on Alliance hardware just in time for us
to go back to war. On the other hand, they know why we did it," why you
did it, actually, Eloise, he carefully did not say aloud,
"and they wouldn't have broken with Manticore in the first place if they
hadn't had some pretty serious reservations of their own about the Manties' new
foreign policy. And since the shooting started, we've been scrupulous about
respecting the limitations built into the terms of our treaty
relationship."
Pritchart
nodded. The Republic's treaty with the Republic of Erewhon was one of mutual
defense, and her administration had very carefully informed Erewhon—and the
Manticorans—that since Haven had elected to resume open hostilities without being
physically attacked by Manticore, she had no intention of attempting to invoke
the military terms of the treaty.
"In
any case," Theisman continued, "they at least gave us a look inside
the Manties' military hardware. What they had was dated, and I could wish it
were more current, but it's been extraordinarily useful to Shannon, anyway.
"The
upshot is that Shannon's already working out new doctrine and some new pieces
of hardware, especially in the LAC programs and out system-defense control
systems, based on the combination of our information from Erewhon, examination
of captured and wrecked Manticoran hardware, and analysis of operations to
date. At the beginning of Thunderbolt, we'd estimated that one of our pod
superdreadnoughts probably had about forty percent as much combat power as a
Manticoran or Grayson SD(P). That estimate looks like it was fairly accurate at
the time, but I believe we're steadily moving the ratio in our favor."
"But
the Manties have as much operational data as we do, don't they? Aren't they
going to be improving their capabilities right along with ours?"
"Yes
and no. Actually, except for what happened to Lester at Marsh, they didn't
retain possession of a single star system where we engaged them, and none of
Lester's modern hyper-capable types were taken intact. We, on the other hand,
effectively destroyed virtually every one of their pickets we hit, so those
pickets didn't have much opportunity to pass on any observations they might
have made.
"In
addition, we captured examples of a lot of their hardware. Their security
protocols worked damned effectively on most of their classified mollycircs, and
quite a bit of what we did get we can't really use yet. Shannon says it's a
case of basic differences in the capabilities of our infrastructure. For all
intents and purposes, we've got to build the tools, to build the tools, to
build the tools we need to reproduce a lot of Manticore's cutting edge
technology. But we've still picked up a lot, and, frankly, our starting point
was so far behind theirs that our relative capabilities are climbing
more rapidly than theirs are.
"As I
say, we'd estimated pre-Thunderbolt that each of their modern wallers was about
two and a half times as combat-effective as one of ours. On the basis of
changes we've already made in doctrine and tactics, and allowing for how much
more capable our missile defenses turned out to be, we've upped that estimate
to set one of their SD(P)s as equal to about two of our podnoughts. On the
basis of the current rate of change in our basic capabilities, within another
eight months or a year, the ratio should drop from its original
two-point-five-to-one to about one-and-a-half-to-one, or even
one-point-three-to-one. Given the difference in the numbers of ships of the
wall we can anticipate commissioning over the next T-year and a half or so, and
especially bearing in mind how much more strategic depth we have, that equates
to a solid military superiority on our part."
"But
the Legislaturalists had a solid military superiority when they started this
entire cycle of war," Pritchart pointed out. "And, like the one
you're talking about, it depended on 'strategic depth' and offsetting the
Manties' tech edge with numbers."
"Granted."
Theisman acknowledged. "And I'll also grant you that the Manties aren't
going to be letting any grass grow under them. They know as well as we do that
their big equalizer has always been their superior technology, so they're going
to be doing whatever they can do increase their tech edge. And as someone who
had far more experience than I ever wanted working with the bits and pieces of
assistance we were able to get from the Solarian League back in the bad old
days under Pierre and Saint-Just, I sometimes suspect that even the Manties
don't realize just how good their hardware really is. It's certainly better
than anything the Sollies actually have deployed. Or had deployed as of
two or three T-years ago, at least. And if NavInt's right, they haven't done a
thing to change that situation since.
"But
the bottom line, Eloise, is that they simply can't match or overcome our
building edge over the next two T-years or so. Even then, the sheer numbers of
hulls we can lay down and man—assuming the economy holds—should be great enough
to allow us to more than maintain parity in newly commissioned units. But for
those two years, at a bare minimum, they simply won't have the platforms to
mount whatever new weapons or defenses they introduce. And one thing both we
and the Manties learned the last time around is that strategic hesitation is
deadly."
"What
do you mean?"
"Eloise,
no one else in the history of the galaxy has ever fought a war on the scale on
which we and the Manties are operating. The Solarian League never had to; it
was simply so big no one could fight it, and everyone knew it. But we
and the Manties have hammered away at each other with naviess with literally
hundreds of ships of the wall for most of the last twenty T-years now. And the
one thing the Manties made perfectly clear in the last war is that wars like
this can be fought to a successful military conclusion. They
couldn't do it until they managed to assemble their Eighth Fleet for 'Operation
Buttercup,' but once they did, they drove us to the brink of military collapse
in just a few months. So, if they won't negotiate, and if we have a time window
of, say, two T-years in which we enjoy a potentially decisive advantage,
then this is no time to be dancing around the edges."
He looked
her straight in the eye, and his voice was deep and hard.
"If we
can't achieve our war objectives and an acceptable peace before our advantage
in combat power erodes out from under us, then it's time for us to use that
advantage while we still have it and force them to admit defeat. Even if
that requires us to dictate peace terms in Mount Royal Palace on Manticore
itself."
The nursery
was extraordinarily full.
Two of the
three older girls—Rachel and Jeanette—were downstairs, hovering on the brink of
adulthood, and Theresa was at boarding school on Manticore, but the remaining
five Mayhew children, their nannies, and their personal armsmen made a
respectable mob. Then there was Faith Katherine Honor Stephanie Miranda
Harrington, Miss Harrington, heir to Harrington Steading, and her younger twin
brother, James Andrew Benjamin, and their personal armsmen. And lest
that not be enough bodies to crowd even a nursery this large, there was her own
modest person—Admiral Lady Dame Honor Harrington, Steadholder and Duchess
Harrington, and her personal armsman. Not to mention one obviously
amused treecat.
Given the
presence of seven children, the oldest barely twelve, four nannies, nine
armsmen (Honor herself had gotten off with only Andrew LaFollet, but Faith was
accompanied by two of her three personal armsmen), and one Steadholder, the
decibel level was actually remarkably low, she reflected. Of course, all things
were relative.
"Now,
that is enough!" Gena Smith, the senior member of Protector
Palace's child-care staff, said firmly in the no-nonsense voice which had
thwarted—more or less—the determination of the elder Mayhew daughters to grow
up as cheerful barbarians. "What is Lady Harrington going to think of
you?"
"It's
too late to try to fool her about that now, Gigi," Honor Mayhew, one of
Honor's godchildren, said cheerfully. "She's known all of us since we were
born!"
"But
you can at least pretend you've been exposed to the rudiments of proper
behavior," Gena said firmly, although the glare she bestowed upon her
unrepentant charge was somewhat undermined by the twinkle which went with it.
At twelve, the girl had her own bedroom, but she'd offered to spend the night
with the littles under the circumstances, which was typical of her.
"Oh,
she knows that," the younger Honor said soothingly now. "I'm sure she
knows we're not your fault."
"Which
is probably the best I can hope for," Gena sighed.
"I'm
not exactly unaware of the . . . challenge you face with this lot," Honor
assured her. "These two, particularly," she added, giving her much
younger twin siblings a very old-fashioned look. They only grinned back at her,
at least as unrepentant as young Honor. "On the other hand," she
continued, "I think between us we have them outnumbered. And they actually
seem a bit less rowdy tonight."
"Well,
of course—" Gena began, then stopped and shook her head. A flash of
irritation showed briefly in the backs of her gray-blue eyes. "What I
meant, My Lady, is that they're usually on their better behavior—they don't
actually have a best behavior, you understand—when you're here."
Honor
nodded in response to both the interrupted comment, and the one Gena had
actually made. Her eyes met the younger woman's—at forty-eight T-years, Gena
Smith was well into middle age for a pre-prolong Grayson woman, but that still
made her over twelve T-years younger than Honor—for just a moment, and then the
two of them returned their attention to the pajama-clad children.
Despite
Gena's and Honor's comments, the three assistant nannies had sorted out their
charges with the efficiency of long practice. Faith and James were out from
under the eye of their own regular nanny, but they were remarkably obedient to
the Palace's substitutes. No doubt because they were only too well aware that
their armsmen would be reporting back to "Aunt Miranda," Honor thought
dryly. Teeth had already been brushed, faces had already been washed, and all
seven of them had been tucked into their beds while she and Gena were talking.
Somehow they made it all seem much easier than Honor's own childhood memories
of the handful she'd been.
"All
right," she said to the room at large. "Who votes for what?"
"The
Phoenix!" six-year-old Faith said immediately. "The Phoenix!"
"Yeah!
I mean, yes, please!" seven-year-old Alexandra Mayhew seconded.
"But
you've already heard that one," Honor pointed out. "Some of
you," she glanced at her namesake, "more often than others."
The
twelve-year-old Honor smiled. She really was an extraordinarily beautiful
child, and for that matter, it probably wasn't fair to be thinking of her as a
"child" these days, really, Honor reminded herself.
"I
don't mind, Aunt Honor," she said. "You know you got me stuck on it
early. Besides, Lawrence and Arabella haven't heard it yet."
She nodded
at her two youngest siblings. At four and three, respectively, their graduation
to the "big kids" section of the nursery was still relatively recent.
"I'd
like to hear it again, too, Aunt Honor. Please," Bernard Raoul said
quietly. He was a serious little boy, not surprisingly, perhaps, since he was
also Heir Apparent to the Protectorship of the entire planet of Grayson, but
his smile, when it appeared, could have lit up an auditorium. Now she saw just
a flash of it as she looked down at him.
"Well,
the vote seems fairly solid," she said after a moment. "Mistress
Smith?"
"I
suppose they've behaved themselves fairly well, all things considered. This
time, at least," Gena said as she bestowed an ominous glower upon her
charges, most of whom giggled.
"In
that case," Honor said, and crossed to the old-fashioned bookcase between
the two window seats on the nursery's eastern wall. Nimitz shifted his weight
for balance on her shoulder as she leaned forward slightly, running a fingertip
across the spines of the archaic books to the one she wanted, and took it from
the shelf. That book was at least twice her own age, a gift from her to the
Mayhew children, as the copy of it on her own shelf at home had been a gift
from her Uncle Jacques when she was a child. Of course, the story itself
was far older even than that. She had two electronic copies of it as well—including
one with the original Raysor illustrations—but there was something especially right
about having it in printed form, and somehow it just kept turning up
periodically in the small, specialty press houses that catered to people like
her uncle and his SCA friends.
She crossed
to the reclining armchair, as old-fashioned and anachronistic as the printed
book in her hands itself, and Nimitz leapt lightly from her shoulder to the top
of the padded chair back. He sank his claws into the upholstery, arranging
himself comfortably, as Honor settled into the chair which had sat in the
Mayhew nursery—reupholstered and even rebuilt at need—for almost seven hundred
T-years.
The
attentive eyes of the children watched her while she adjusted the chair to
exactly the right angle, and she and the 'cat savored the bright, clean
emotions washing out from them. No wonder treecats had always loved children,
she thought. There was something so . . . marvelously whole about them. When
they welcomed, they welcomed with all their hearts, and they loved as they
trusted, without stint or limit. That was always a gift to be treasured.
Especially
now.
She looked
up as the veritable horde of armsmen withdrew. Colonel LaFollet, as the senior
armsman present, watched with a faint twinkle of his own as the heavily armed,
lethally trained bodyguards more or less tiptoed out of the nursery. He watched
the nannies follow them, then held the door courteously for Gena and bowed her
through it before he came briefly to attention, nodded to Honor, and stepped
through it himself. She knew he would be standing outside it when she left,
however long she stayed. It was his job, even here, at the very heart of
Protector's Palace, where it seemed unlikely any desperate assassins lurked.
The door
closed behind him, and she looked around at her audience in the big, suddenly
much calmer and quieter room.
"Lawrence,
Arabella," she said to the youngest Mayhews, "you haven't heard this
book before, but I think you're old enough to enjoy it. It's a very special
book. It was written long, long ago, before anyone had ever left Old Earth
itself."
Lawrence's
eyes widened just a bit. He was a precocious child, and he loved tales about
the history of humankind's ancient homeworld.
"It's
called David and the Phoenix," she went on, "and it's always
been one of my very favorite stories. And my mother loved it when she was a
little girl, too. You'll have to listen carefully. It's in Standard English,
but some of the words have changed since it was written. If you hear one you
don't understand, stop and ask me what it means. All right?"
Both
toddlers nodded solemnly, and she nodded back. Then she opened the cover.
The smell
of ancient ink and paper, so utterly out of place in the modern world, rose
from the pages like some secret incense. She inhaled, drawing it deeply into
her nostrils, remembering and treasuring memories of rainy Sphinx afternoons,
cold Sphinx evenings, and the sense of utter security and peacefulness that was
the monopoly of childhood.
"David
and the Phoenix, by Edward Ormondroyd," she read. "Chapter One,
In Which David Goes Mountain Climbing and a Mysterious Voice Is
Overheard."
She glanced
up, and her chocolate-dark, almond-shaped eyes smiled as the children settled
more comfortably into their beds, watching her raptly.
"All
the way there David had saved this moment for himself," she began,
"struggling not to peek until the proper time came. When the car finally
stopped, the rest of them got out stiffly and went into the new house. But
David walked slowly into the back yard with his eyes fixed on the ground. For a
whole minute he stood there, not daring to look up. Then he took a deep breath,
clenched his hands tightly, and lifted his head.
"There
it was!—as Dad had described it, but infinitely more grand. It swept upward
from the valley floor, beautifully shaped and soaring, so tall that its misty
blue peak could surely talk face-to-face with the stars. To David, who had
never seen a mountain before, the sight was almost too much to bear. He felt so
tight and shivery inside that he didn't know whether he wanted to laugh, or
cry, or both. And the really wonderful thing about the Mountain was the way it looked
at him. He was certain that it was smiling at him, like an old friend who
had been waiting for years to see him again. And when he closed his eyes, he
seemed to hear a voice which whispered, 'Come along, then, and climb.'"
She glanced
up again, feeling the children folding themselves more closely about her as the
ancient words rolled over them. She felt Nimitz, as well, sharing her own
memories of her mother's voice reading the same story to her and memories of
other mountains, even grander than the ancient David's, and rambles through
them—memories he'd been there for—and savoring the new ones.
"It
would be so easy to go!" she continued. "The back yard was hedged in
(with part of the hedge growing right across the toes of the Mountain), but . .
. "
* * *
"I
imagine it's too much to hope they were all asleep?"
"You
imagine correctly," Honor said dryly, stepping through the massive, inlaid
doors of polished oak into the palatial chamber which the Palace guides
modestly referred to as "the Library." "Not that you really
expected them to be, now did you?"
"Of
course not, but we neo-barbarian planetary despots get used to demanding the
impossible. And when we don't get it, we behead the unfortunate soul who
disappointed us."
Benjamin
IX, Planetary Protector of Grayson, grinned at her, standing with his back to
the log fire crackling on the hearth behind him, and she shook her head.
"I
knew that eventually all this absolute power would go to your head," she
told him in a display of lesse majeste which would have horrified a
third of the planet's steadholders and infuriated another third.
"Oh,
between us, Elaine and I keep him trimmed down to size, Honor," Katherine
Mayhew, Benjamin's senior wife said.
"Well,
us and the kids," Elaine Mayhew, Benjamin's junior wife corrected. "I
understand," she continued with a cheerful smile, "that young
children help keep parents younger."
"That
which does not kill us makes us younger?" Benjamin misquoted.
"Something
like that," Elaine replied. At thirty-seven T-years, she was almost twelve
years younger than her husband and almost six years younger than her senior
wife. Of course, she was almost a quarter T-century younger than Honor . . .
who was one of the youngest looking people in the room. Only the third and most
junior of her personal armsmen, Spencer Hawke, and the towering young
lieutenant commander in Grayson Navy uniform, looked younger than she did.
Prolong did that for a person.
Her mouth
tightened as the thought reminded her why they were all here, and Nimitz
pressed his cheek against the side of her face with a soft, comforting croon.
Benjamin's eyes narrowed, and she tasted his spike of recognition. Well, he'd
always been an extraordinarily sharp fellow, and spending eight T-years as the
father of a daughter who'd been adopted by a treecat had undoubtedly sensitized
him.
She gave
him another smile, then crossed to the young man in the naval uniform. He was a
veritable giant for a Grayson—indeed, he was actually taller than Honor was—and
although she was in civilian attire, he came to attention and bowed respectfully.
She ignored the bow and enfolded him in a firm embrace. He stiffened for an
instant—in surprise, not resistance—and then hugged her back, a bit awkwardly.
"Is
there any new word, Carson?" she asked quietly, stepping back a half-pace
and letting her hands slide down to rest on his forearms.
"No,
My Lady," he said sadly. "Your Lady Mother is at the hospital right
now." He smiled faintly. "I told her it wasn't necessary. It's not as
if this falls into her area of specialization, and we all know there's really
nothing to be done now except to wait. But she insisted."
"Howard's
her friend, too," Honor said. She glanced at Andrew LaFollet. "Is
Daddy with her, Andrew?"
"Yes,
My Lady. Since Faith and James are safely tucked away here in the nursery, I
sent Jeremiah to keep an eye on them." Honor cocked her head, and he
shrugged slightly. "He wanted to go, My Lady."
"I
see." She looked back at Carson Clinkscales and gave his forearms another
little squeeze, then released them. "She knows there's nothing she can really
do, Carson," she said. "But she'd never forgive herself if she
weren't there for your aunts. By rights, I ought to be there, too."
"Honor,"
Benjamin said gently, "Howard is ninety-two years old, and he's touched a
lot of lives in that much time—including mine. If everyone who 'ought to be
there' really were there, there'd be no room for the patients. And he's
been in the coma for almost three days now. If you were there, and if he knew
you were there, he'd read you the riot act for neglecting everything else you
ought to be doing."
"I
know," she sighed. "I know. It's just—"
She stopped
and shook her head with a slight grimace, and he nodded understandingly. But he
didn't really understand, not completely, she thought. Despite the changes
which had come to Grayson, his own thought processes and attitudes had been
evolved in a pre-prolong society. To him, Howard Clinkscales was old;
for Honor, Howard should have been less than middle-aged. Her own mother, who
looked considerably younger than Katherine Mayhew, or even Elaine, and who'd
carried Faith and James to term naturally, was twelve T-years years older than
Howard. And if he was the first of her Grayson friends she was losing to old
age so preposterously young, he wouldn't be the last. Gregory Paxton's health
was failing steadily, as well. And even Benjamin and his wives showed the signs
of premature aging she'd come to dread.
Her mind
flashed back to the nursery and the book she'd been reading, with its tale of
the immortal, ever-renewed Phoenix, and the memory was more bittersweet than
usual as she saw the silver lightly threading the Protector's still-thick, dark
hair.
"Your offspring
and my beloved siblings did quite well, actually," she said, deliberately
seeking a change of subject. "I'm always a bit surprised by how they
settle down for reading. Especially with all the other more interactive avenues
of amusement they have."
"It's
not the same, Aunt Honor," one of the two young women sitting at the big
refectory-style table to one side of the cavernous fireplace said. Honor looked
at her, and the dark-haired young woman, who looked remarkably like a taller,
more muscular version of Katherine Mayhew, reached up to rub the ears of the
treecat stretched across the back of her chair.
"What
do you mean, not the same, Rachel?" Honor asked.
"Listening
to you read," Benjamin's oldest daughter replied. "I guess it's
mostly because you're involved—we don't get to see enough of you here on
Grayson—and you're, well, sort of larger than life for all the kids." No
one else would have noticed the way the young woman colored very slightly, but
Honor hid a smile as she tasted Rachel's own spike of adolescent admiration and
embarrassment. "I know when Jeanette and I—" she nodded sideways at
the slightly younger woman sitting beside her "—were younger, we always
looked forward to seeing you. And Nimitz, of course."
The treecat
on Honor's shoulder elevated his nose and flirted his tail in satisfaction at
Rachel's acknowledgment of his own importance in the social hierarchy, and
several people chuckled. Rachel's companion, Hipper, only heaved a sigh of
longsuffering patience and closed his eyes wearily.
"She
may be right, Honor," Elaine said. "Young Honor certainly volunteered
suspiciously quickly to 'help keep an eye on the littles' this evening."
"Besides,
Aunt Honor," Jeanette said in a softer voice (she was considerably shyer
than her older sister), "you really do read awfully well." Honor
raised an eyebrow, and Jeanette blushed far more obviously than Rachel had. But
she also continued with stubborn diffidence. "I know I always really
enjoyed listening to you. The characters all even sounded different from each
other. Besides, there's more challenge in a book. No body just gives you
the way the people and places look; you have to imagine them for yourselves,
and you make that fun."
"Well,
I'm glad you think so," Honor said after a moment, and Katherine snorted.
"She's
not the only one who thinks so," she said, when Honor looked at her.
"Most of the nannies have told me what a wonderful mother you'd make, if
you weren't so busy off blowing up starships and planets and things."
"Me?"
Honor blinked at her in surprise, and Katherine shook her head.
"You,
Lady Harrington. In fact," she went on a bit more intently, "there's
been some, um, discussion of your responsibility in that direction. Faith is a
perfectly satisfactory heir for the moment, you understand, but no one in the
Conclave of Steadholders really expects her to remain your heir."
"Cat,"
Benjamin said in an ever so slightly quelling tone.
"Oh,
hush, Ben!" his wife replied tartly. "Everyone's been pussyfooting
around the issue for a long time now, and you know it. Politically, it would be
far better in almost every respect for Honor to produce an heir of her
own."
"That's
not going to be happening any time soon," Honor said firmly. "Not
with everything I already have on my plate at the moment!"
"Time's
slipping away, Honor," Katherine said with stubborn persistence. "And
you're going back out into another war. Tester knows we'll all be praying for
you to come back safely, but—"
She
shrugged, and Honor was forced to concede her point. Still. . . .
"As
you say, Faith is a perfectly acceptable heir," she said. "And while
I suppose I ought to be thinking in dynastic terms, it doesn't really come
naturally to me."
"I
hate to say it, Honor, but Cat may have a point from another perspective, as
well," Benjamin said slowly. "Oh, there's no legal reason you need to
produce an heir of your own body right this minute. Especially with, as you
say, Faith acknowledged as your heir by everyone. But you're a prolong
recipient. You say you're not used to thinking in dynastic terms, but what
happens if you wait another twenty or thirty years and then have a
child? Under Grayson law, that child would automatically supplant Faith,
whatever special provisions the Conclave may have made in her favor when
everyone thought you were dead. So there's Faith . . . who's spent thirty or
forty years thinking of herself as the Harrington Heir Apparent and suddenly
finds her nose put out of joint by a brand new infant nephew or niece."
Honor
looked at him, and he sighed.
"I
know Faith is a wonderful child and she loves you dearly, Honor. But this is
Grayson. We've seen a thousand years of those dynastic politics you don't think
in terms of, and there have been some really ugly incidents. And the ugliest
ones of all have usually happened because the people they happened to were so
sure they couldn't arise in their families. Besides, even if no overt
problem crops up, would it really be fair to Faith to yank the succession out
from under her like that? Unless you produce a child fairly soon, she's got to
grow up thinking of herself as Miss Harrington, with all the trappings and
importance of the job. You didn't do that, but she's in a totally different
position, and it's going to be fairly central to her self-image, you
know."
"Maybe
so, but—"
"No
buts, Honor. Not on this one," Benjamin said gently. "It will
be. It has to be. I know it was a lot harder for Michael than he ever let on,
and he never wanted the Protector's job in the first place. But he was in
exactly the same position Faith is, and when Bernard Raoul came along and
pushed him out of the succession, he was almost . . . lost for a while. He
needed to redefine who he was and what he was doing with his life when he was
suddenly no longer Lord Mayhew." The Protector shook his head. "I was
discussing this with Howard just last month, and he said—"
It was
Benjamin's turn to break off suddenly as Honor's face tightened in remembered
pain.
"I'm
sorry," he said after a moment, even more gently. "And I don't mean
to be exerting any unfair pressure. But he was concerned about it. He loves
Faith almost as much as he loves you, and he was worried about how she'd react.
And," he smiled crookedly, "I think he was sort of hoping he'd have a
chance to see your child."
"Benjamin,
I" Honor blinked rapidly, and Nimitz crooned soothingly in her ear.
"Don't,"
Benjamin said, and shook his head. "We don't need to be discussing this
right now, and you don't need me reminding you that we're losing him. I
wouldn't have brought it up at all, but I think maybe Cat was right to at least
put the thought before you. Now we've done that, and you can think about it
later. And as far as Howard himself is concerned, of course he loves you. He
told me once that he thought of you very much as his own daughter."
"I'm
going to miss him so much," she said sadly.
"Of
course you are. So am I, you know," Benjamin reminded her with a
bittersweet smile. "I've known him literally all my life. He's been an
extra uncle, one I've loved almost as much as he sometimes exasperated
me."
"And
one whose death is going to make a hole in the Conclave," Katherine
observed sadly.
"I've
discussed my choice for his successor with the Standing Committee and the Chair
of the Administration Committee," Honor said. She inhaled deeply,
deliberately and gratefully turning to the change in subject. "I think it
should go as smoothly as anything could, under the circumstances."
"And
you're not supposed to discuss it with me, My Lady Steadholder,"
Benjamin pointed out.
"And
I'm not supposed to discuss it with you," Honor conceded. "Which is,
if you don't mind my saying so, one of the stupider of Grayson's innumerable
traditions."
"I
suppose when you spend as long assembling them as we have, one or two
suboptimal selections may make it through the filtering process." Benjamin
shrugged. "Overall, they work pretty well for us, though. And the fact
that you're not allowed to discuss it with me doesn't mean my various spies and
agents don't know exactly who you're planning to nominate. Or that I don't
heartily approve of your selection, for that matter."
"Well,
since we've gotten all of that out of the way without ever transgressing,
perhaps we could discuss some of the things we are allowed to talk to
Honor about," Katherine suggested.
"Such
as?" Her husband raised his eyebrows at her, and she gave him an
exasperated look.
"Such
as what the Admiralty is going to have her doing, for starters," she said.
"Oh.
That."
Benjamin
glanced at his elder daughters. Jeanette favored Elaine at least as strongly as
Rachel favored Katherine, with her biological mother's fair coloring and blue
eyes. At the moment, both young women seemed torn between attempting to appear
invisible or mature and insightful, whichever was more likely to let them go on
sitting exactly where they were.
"Sword
rules apply, girls," he said. Both of them nodded solemnly, and he turned
back to Honor. "What are they going to have you doing?"
"I
can't really tell you for certain yet," Honor replied, watching the young
women from the corner of one eye. Rachel had reached up to caress Hipper's ears
again, and her expression was intent. Understandably, since she would be
entering the Royal Manticoran Navy's Saganami Island academy in less than a
month. Honor had delivered the traditional "Last View" address to the
senior class two weeks before; the other forms' abbreviated wartime summer
leaves would be up in ten days, and Rachel would be returning to Manticore
aboard the Paul Tankersley to report to the newest class of snotties.
Jeanette looked curious and sober, but she'd never been the navy-mad tomboy
Rachel had.
"I'm
not trying to be mysterious," Honor continued. "Things have been so
crazy ever since I got back from Sidemore that it seems the Admiralty's
strategic thinking changes on an almost daily basis. The numbers ONI is coming
up with keep getting worse, not better, and they keep whittling away at what
was supposed to be Eighth Fleet's order of battle." She shrugged with an
alum-tart smile. "I suppose it's almost a tradition now that building up
anything called 'Eighth Fleet' won't go smoothly."
"And
you say we have some stupid traditions," Benjamin snorted.
"Well,
it's not as if anyone wants it to be that way, Benjamin. But after the
hammering we took in the opening phase, nobody's about to uncover Manticore,
Grayson, or Trevor's Star. So anything Eighth Fleet gets is going to be what's
left over after our minimum security requirements for those systems have been
met. Which isn't going to be a lot. Not right at first, anyway. And to be
totally fair, Eighth Fleet doesn't really exist yet. I'm Commanding Officer (Designate),
Eighth Fleet. My staff and fleet HQ haven't even been formally activated
yet."
"I
know. And, to be honest, I was actually a bit surprised they made the
announcement that Eighth Fleet would be reactivated as publicly as they did.
Relieved, but surprised." Benjamin waved her into an armchair beside the
hearth and seated himself facing her. His wives went over and sat beside their
daughters, and Carson Clinkscales walked across to stand beside Honor's chair.
"I'm
pleased at the evidence that the Admiralty is thinking in offensive
terms," the Protector continued. "After the pounding Theisman gave
us, it must have been dreadfully tempting to revert to a totally defensive
stance."
"I'm
sure it would have been for a lot of people," Honor said. "Not for
Thomas Caparelli and Hamish Alexander, though." She shook her head again.
"The difference between them and the Janacek Admiralty is like the
difference between day and night."
"Which,
if you'll forgive me, My Lady," Lieutenant Commander Clinkscales said,
"may be because they can find their posteriors without approach
radar."
"I
think you could safely describe them as possessing that degree of native
ability, Carson," she observed, and he blushed slightly.
"Sorry,
My Lady," he said after a moment. "What I meant was that it was
because Janacek and Chakrabarti couldn't find their backsides."
"Actually,
that's a bit unfair to Chakrabarti, I think," Honor said. "But
Janacek—and those idiots Jurgensen and Draskovic!" Her mouth tightened,
and she shook her head. "In their cases, you certainly have a point. But my
point was that Sir Thomas—and Earl White Haven—have been in this position
before. They're not about to panic, and they know we're going to have to take
the fight to the other side as soon and as hard as we can. We can't afford to
leave the initiative completely in Thomas Theisman's hands. If we do that,
he'll hand us our head within the next six months. At the outside, a
T-year."
"Is it
really that bad, My Lady?" Clinkscales asked quietly.
"Almost
certainly," she replied, her soprano voice quiet against the background
crackle of the flaming logs. "It's starting to look very much as if
Admiral Givens' initial estimates may actually have been low."
"Low?"
Benjamin frowned at her.
"I
know. I think everyone—myself included—felt she was being too pessimistic in
her original assumptions. It just didn't seem possible that the Republic could
really have built a fleet the size of the one she was projecting. But that was
because we all insisted on thinking in terms of ships built since Theisman
overthrew Saint-Just."
"Well,
of course we did. They couldn't possibly have had the technology to build the
new types any sooner than that. Certainly not before Hamish hit them with
Buttercup."
Honor's
expression didn't flicker as Benjamin used the current First Lord of
Admiralty's given name, but she was careful not to use it herself.
"No,
they couldn't have," she agreed. "And that's the reason Earl White
Haven, for one, was convinced Admiral Givens' estimates were too high.
Unfortunately, he's had to change his mind in the last couple of weeks. I don't
have the details yet, but according to his last letter, she's dug up some data
that went back to before Jurgensen took over from her at ONI. Some anomalies
her own analysts had turned up and been unable to explain at the time.
Apparently, they suggest that the Peeps might have been stockpiling components
even before Saint-Just was killed."
"Stockpiling?
For that long?" Benjamin looked skeptical, and she shrugged.
"I
haven't seen the data or the analysis myself, Benjamin. And I may have it
wrong. But that was my impression from the Earl's letter when I viewed it last
night. I'm sure he'll have more to say to me about it when I get back to
Manticore."
"I'm
sure he will," Benjamin said slowly, frowning in manifest thought.
"And
if Admiral Givens is right, My Lady?" Clinckscales asked quietly.
"If
Admiral Given is right, then we're looking at a serious numerical
disadvantage," Honor said soberly. "And one which is going to get a
lot worse before it gets better. The question, of course," she smiled
without a trace of humor, "is whether or not the numbers are bad enough to
offset our quality. And at the moment, considering the command team they've
managed to put together, that's a very pointed question, indeed.
"Ah,
there you are, Aldona! Come in. Find a seat."
Aldona
Anisimovna nodded to her host with carefully metered deference and obeyed the
smiling order. And it was an order, however pleasantly given. Albrecht
Detweiler was, quite possibly, the wealthiest and most powerful single
individual in the explored galaxy. There were entire star nations, and not just
those full of neobarbs or stuck off in the back of beyond in the Shell, worth
less than he was. Quite a few of them, in fact.
The door
closed silently behind her. Despite the presence of over a dozen people, the
combination office and library radiated a sense of spaciousness. As well it
should, even if barely five percent of the population of Mesa even knew it
existed. The percentage of people off Mesa who knew about it was, she
devoutly hoped, considerably smaller than that.
It was also
by far the most luxuriously and beautifully furnished "office" she'd
ever been in, which was saying quite a lot for a full board member of Manpower
Incorporated. The superb light sculptures in their tailored niches; the walls
paneled in the exotic woods of at least a dozen different planets; the
old-fashioned, priceless oil and watercolor paintings, some of them dating back
all the way to pre-space days on Old Earth; the antique printed books; and the
spectacular view across the Mendel Ocean's sugar-white beaches and sparkling
blue water all came together to form an inevitably appropriate frame for the
power and purpose concentrated in this meeting.
"I
believe we're all here now," Detweiler observed as Anisimovna settled into
one of the powered float chairs facing his desk, and the side conversations
ended quickly. He smiled again and pressed a button on his desk panel, and the
panoramic ocean view disappeared beyond an abruptly opaque wall of windows as
he brought up the security systems which made it impossible for any surveillance
device to snoop upon this particular meeting.
"I'm
sure most of you have at least an idea of why I asked you to drop by the island
today," Detweiler said, his smile fading into a purposeful expression.
"Just in case I've overestimated the IQ of anyone present, however, the
immediate cause for this little get-together is the recent plebiscite in the
Talbott Cluster."
Faces
tightened, and one could almost feel the combination of anger, tension,
and—whether any of them would have admitted it or not—fear his words evoked.
Detweiler certainly felt it, and he showed his teeth in what definitely was not
another smile.
"I
realize that for most Sollies, Manticore and Haven might as well be Shangri-La
or Never-Neverland. They're off somewhere on the edge of the explored universe,
full of belligerent neobarbs so primitive and bigoted they spend all their time
killing one another. That, unfortunately, falls somewhat short of the truth, as
all of us are rather painfully aware. What some of you may not realize, is that
in many ways the situation is getting worse, not better, from our perspective."
He tipped
back in his own chair and surveyed his guests. One or two of them looked a bit
puzzled, as if they couldn't quite see why the situation was any worse than it
had always been. After all, both the Star Kingdom of Manticore and the Republic
of Haven had been the openly avowed mortal enemies of Manpower Incorporated and
the genetic slave trade literally for centuries. From the viewpoint of Manpower
and the Mesa System generally, the last twenty T-years of warfare between the
Star Kingdom amd the Republic had been excellent news. At least it had
distracted both of them, to greater or lesser extent, from their interference
in Manpower's affairs.
"Aldona,"
he said after a moment, "suppose you and Isabel tell us about what
happened at Congo."
"Certainly,
Albrecht," Anisimovna said. She was rather pleased her voice sounded so
calm and composed. She also managed to avoid breaking out into a nervous sweat,
thanks to the last twenty or so generations of genetic modifications to the
Anisimov genome.
"As
you know, Albrecht," she began briskly, trying not to think about how many
such reports had ended . . . badly in this office, "and as some of the
other members of the Board and Council are aware, Congo was rather central to
certain plans we had for the Manties and Haven. The wormhole junction there
offered additional possibilities in that respect, as well as the more obvious,
purely commercial opportunities. After discussions here on Mesa, it was decided
that the time to put our contingency plans into effect was rapidly approaching,
and—"
"Excuse
me, Aldona," Jerome Sandusky interrupted. He looked at her, but most of
his attention was actually focused on Detweiler. "We're all aware, in
general terms, at least, of what happened at Tiberian and Congo. In my own
case, the fact that Congo's been added to my bailiwick in Haven means I've
become reasonably familiar with previous operations there. But what I'm not
quite clear on is exactly why it seemed necessary or desirable to put ourselves
into a position where something like that could happen in the first
place."
"The
decision was made by the Strategy Committee, Jerome," Anisimovna said
coolly, and he flushed ever so slightly. "As a member of the
Committee," which you aren't, she did not say aloud, "I agreed
with the logic, but as you know, the Committee's discussions are
privileged."
"In
this instance, however, Aldona," Detweiler said easily, "I believe we
might make an exception. This is something all of us need to be brought fully
up to speed on, so go ahead and answer Jerome's question for all of us."
She looked at him, and he nodded. "My authority," he added.
"Very
well, Albrecht." Anisimovna returned her attention to Sandusky. She spent
a moment or two organizing her thoughts, then leaned slightly forward in her
chair, gray eyes intent.
"For
most of the last two decades, the Manties and the Peeps have been shooting at
each other," she began. "From our perspective, that's been a good
thing in many ways. They've always hated us, and we've never been able to
penetrate their military or political establishments the way we have the League
or most other star nations. We've managed to . . . enlist certain individual
bureaucrats, diplomats, officers, and politicians, but never in sufficient
numbers to undermine their dogged devotion to the Cherwell Convention."
More than
one of her listeners grimaced at mention of the Cherwell Convention, and
Anisimovna smiled thinly.
"For
the last seventy T-years, the one thing—the only thing—the Star Kingdom
of Manticore and the People's Republic of Haven have agreed on is the
suppression of the genetic slave trade. And let's be realistic—historically,
their efforts have been much more effective than those of anyone else. We have
zero market penetration in either of them, and although we've historically had
major penetration in some areas of the Silesian Confederacy and Midgard, the
Manties and the Peeps have made life hard on us even there. To be honest, it's
really only since the two of them started concentrating on one another that
we've been able to regain ground we'd been steadily losing in both of those
areas. The Andermani Empire is another sore point, particularly since it
happens to lie in such close proximity to the other two, but the Andies have
never been as aggressive about attacking our interests outside their own
territory.
"While
the Manties and the Peeps were actively at war with one another, we managed to
expand our enfluence and markets on the peripheries of their spheres. And their
concentration on one another also made it easier for us to acquire a degree of
penetration—of enfluence, not sales—which we'd never had before in both the
Star Kingdom and the Republic themselves. Things, in other words, were looking
up.
"Then
along came the Manties' 'Operation Buttercup,' Pierre's assassination, the
so-called 'Manpower Incident' on Old Earth, the cease-fire, and the overthrow
of the Saint-Just version of the Committee of Public Safety. In combination,
they produced three serious consequences for us."
She made a
face and shrugged, then began ticking off points on her fingers as she
summarized them.
"First,
the end of the fighting would have been bad enough all by itself, given the way
it was bound to free up their resources and attention for other concerns—like
us. But, second, the overthrow of the Committee of Public Safety and the
effective dismantlement of State Security hurt us badly in Haven. Not only did
we lose the majority of the contacts we'd managed to make with the SS, but the
new régime—Theisman, Pritchart, and their bunch—are almost fanatical in their
hatred of everything we stand for. And, third, the 'Manpower Incident' happened
before Theisman's coup, but its main effects weren't felt until afterward, when
Zilwicki and Montaigne got back to Manticore with the records Zilwicki managed
to hack. We were able to manage at least some damage control in the Star
Kingdom, but let's not fool ourselves; we took a real body blow there, too. And
the fact that that lunatic Montaigne has managed to pull us and our operations
back into the limelight for the Manty public hasn't helped.
"Fortunately,
our best and highest surviving contact in Manticore wasn't in Zilwicki's files
and remained in place. She wasn't really what we could consider a reliable
asset—she was using us as much as we were using her, and she definitely had her
own agenda—but Descroix was willing to do what she could to mitigate Manty
operations against us and assist with damage control domestically in the wake
of the 'Manpower Incident' in return for our financial support and the
intelligence we could provide her. Unfortunately, she was completely unwilling
to do the main thing we wanted out of her."
"Which
was?" Sandusky prompted, as if he didn't already know the answer to his
own question, when she paused.
"Which
was to get rid of the damned cease-fire," Aldona said flatly. "We
wanted Manticore and Haven shooting at each other again. To be frank, at that
time, the Strategy Committee was actually more concerned about Haven than
Manticore. Manticore has the bigger merchant fleet, and the stronger tradition
of arrogating some sort of interstellar police power to itself, even to the
extent of locking horns with the League. But the Republic is much larger, and
the new régime there clearly has a 'crusading spirit,' whereas the High Ridge
régime in Manticore was about as venal—and shortsighted—as we could have asked
for. Unfortunately, neither side, each for its own reasons, wanted to resume
hostilities. And initially, at least, it looked like something of a tossup as
to whether or not Theisman and Pritchart could make their new Constitution
stand up. For at least a few years, they were going to be involved in what
amounted to a civil war, even if they managed to win it in the end.
"About
two T-years ago, however, it became evident they were going to win, and
quite handily. In addition, one of the handful of contacts we'd managed to hang
onto in the Republic—your contact, as a matter of fact, Jerome—informed
us that the Havenite Navy was secretly in the process of some sort of major
rebuilding program. The notion of a Theisman-Pritchart government, firmly in
control of a star nation and an economy the size of the Republic, with a
resurgent navy under its command, didn't make anyone on the Committee happy.
Nor was anyone enthralled with what Montaigne and Zilwicki were up to in the
Star Kingdom. You may recall the rather spectacular failure of our attempt to
remove Montaigne by direct action. That was primarily the result of Zilwicki's active
alliance with the Audubon Ballroom, and then Klaus Hauptman and his daughter
climbed onto the bandwagon and began building actual light warships for
those butchers."
She shook
her head.
"So
far, it was all straws in the wind, but it was pretty obvious which way the
breeze was blowing in both star nations. And they still weren't shooting
at each other.
"The
only bright spot was the High Ridge Government's total diplomatic tone
deafness. They might not want active military operations, but they didn't want
a formal peace settlement, either, which produced steadily growing frustration
in the Republic. The same source which had warned us about the existence of
Bolthole—even though he didn't know exactly what was going on there—also kept
us informed about Pritchart's rising anger and the public opinion which agreed
with her. While we knew we couldn't get Descroix to actively seek to derail the
negotiating process, we were able to feed her certain selected information
which helped move her at least a bit in the direction we wanted. So the
Committee saw a situation which was growing rapidly less stable and offered the
possibility of producing the result we were after.
"That's
where Verdant Vista entered the picture. We knew High Ridge had managed to
seriously alienate several key allies, including the Republic of Erewhon and,
we hoped, Grayson. We didn't have very high expectations where Grayson was
concerned, but Erewhon seemed to offer possibilities. In addition, certain of
our friends in the League—specifically, Technodyne Industries—really wanted
access to the Manties' new technology, and Erewhon had that.
"So
the idea was to use Verdant Vista to worry Erewhon. We knew the Cromarty
Government had promised the Erewhonese the Star Kingdom's assistance in their efforts
to eject us from Congo. But we also knew the High Ridge Government was
completely and totally—one might almost say vehemently—disinterested in the
project. And we knew this was an area in which we could count on Descroix's
support behind the scenes.
"With
all that in mind, we abandoned our relatively low profile and started
deliberately drawing attention to our presence there. We planted a few stories
in the Erewhonese 'faxes about 'atrocities' on Verdant Vista, and we encouraged
an upswing in 'piracy' in the area. The cruisers that were destroyed at
Tiberian were part of that strategy. The idea was to draw the Erewhonese Navy
into committing additional light units to piracy suppression in the vicinity,
then to pounce on those units with modern Solarian heavy cruisers and wipe them
out. Whether the Erewhonese decided we were directly involved in backing the
'pirates' or not, they were bound to become even more furious with the Star
Kingdom when they started suffering losses among their warships as well as
their merchant traffic. Given the peculiarities of the Erewhonese honor code,
it was likely that if we continued to provoke them long enough, and if the
Manties continued to ignore their demands for assistance, the Erewhonese would
eventually withdraw from the Manticoran Alliance."
"Which
would be good for us in exactly what way?" Sandusky asked, frowning
intently as he followed her explanation.
"Erewhon's
abandonment of the Alliance was bound to shake up even the Manticorans. The
Manty woman-in-the-street seemed willing enough to go along with High Ridge as
long as there was no clearly perceived external threat to the Star Kingdom's
security. If, however, the Alliance seemed to be crumbling, still without any
formal peace treaty, that was likely to change, hopefully in the direction of
greater militancy directed towards the Republic. And, to be honest, although
High Ridge's disinterest in suppressing slavery was good for us, we doubted
that he'd be able to ignore the issue much longer, given the way the Winton
dynasty's always hated us and how hard Montaigne, Zilwicki, Harrington, and
people like the Hauptmans were all pushing it. So we were perfectly willing to
see his government fall, especially if that contributed to the resumption of
hostilities we wanted.
"From
another perspective, once Erewhon withdrew from the Alliance, the Erewhonese
were going to suddenly start feeling very lonely, especially if their one-time
allies and the Republic did start shooting at each other again. Under
those circumstances, it seemed likely they'd feel the need to bolster and
maintain their own military, which would probably mean going back to the people
who'd built all of their ships of the wall before they joined the alliance.
Which happens to be our good friends at Technodyne. Which meant Technodyne
would be able to get a direct look at the latest and best Manty war-fighting
hardware. Whether or not the League's navy would be interested in it,
Technodyne and the Mesan Navy certainly were, and getting access to it for ourselves
and the system defense contingents of our friends in the region would have been
a very good thing. That's why Technodyne was so cooperative about coming up
with the Tiberian-based cruisers."
"But
it didn't work out that way, did it, Aldona?" Detweiler asked. His tone
was almost avuncular, but that didn't make Anisimovna feel one bit better. She
started to reply, but someone else beat her to it.
"No,
Mr. Detweiler, it didn't," Isabel Bardasano said.
The younger
woman sat beside Anisimovna, and she met the Mesan Chairman of the Board's eyes
levelly, with every appearance of complete equanimity. Which, Anisimovna
thought, was probably accurate in her case. She envied Bardasano's composure,
yet she was none too certain about the confidence, even arrogance, upon which
that composure rested. At the moment, however, she was mostly grateful to
Bardasano for intervening. And for reminding Detweiler that Anisimovna had not
had primary, or at least solo, responsibility for the Verdant Vista operation.
"It
should have," Bardasano continued. "Unfortunately, we hadn't counted
on the Battle of Tiberian. Nor had we counted on the Stein Assassination, or on
the fact that Elizabeth Winton would decide to send Anton Zilwicki, of all
people, as her representative at the funeral on Erewhon. And we certainly
hadn't counted on the interference of a Havenite spy and some sort of rogue
operation by a Frontier Security governor!"
She shook
her head, her expression disgusted.
"We
got exactly the break with Manticore that we wanted. Unfortunately, instead of
falling into Technodyne's arms, which is what we're almost certain the then
current Erewhonese government would have done, left to its own devices, the
Havenites and Governor Barregos, managed to convince them to run straight into
the arms of the Republic of Haven. Worse, Ruth Winton was right there on the
spot and actually managed to get the Star Kingdom, however marginally, involved
in supporting what was effectively a Havenite-planned operation against
Congo. That left the two of them standing as joint sponsors of the 'Torch'
regime on Verdant Vista—a relationship which seems to be surviving so far
despite the fact that they're shooting at each other everywhere else. And just
to make the situation even better, we have strong indications that in the
course of his own contributions to generating this fiasco, Zilwicki managed to
get his hands on some sort of evidence which led to the disappearance of
Countess North Hollow and the destruction of the North Hollow Files, which ultimately
played its own part in the fall of the High Ridge Government and Descroix's
complete loss of power."
"Speaking
of Descroix . . . ?" another of Detweiler's guests inquired.
"No
longer a problem," Bardasano replied with a thin smile.
"Good."
"But
eliminating her didn't eliminate the fallout from the entire Congo
debacle," Sandusky pointed out.
"No,
it didn't," Anisimovna agreed. "It comes under the heading of damage
control, at best."
"Agreed,"
Detweiler said.
He sat back
from his desk for a moment, surveying the people he'd assembled. They looked
back, and he knew what they were seeing—the culmination of almost five
centuries of steady genetic improvement. Much of the rest of the galaxy
remained blissfully unaware that what the Ukrainian maniacs of Old Earth's
Final War had failed to achieve with their "Scrags" had, in fact, been
achieved on Mesa.
But Mesa
had learned more than one lesson from the Slav Supremacists, including the need
to be cautious. To build a position of security first, before trumpeting the
fact of one's superiority to those who would justifiably see in one the hateful
image of their future master.
"I
didn't gather you all here just so we could recount our failures. Nor, for the
record, do I believe that what happened to our Congo operations was the fault
of anyone in this room or on the Strategy Committee. No one can allow for all
the vagaries of blind chance bound to occur in a galaxy with this many
inhabited worlds and competing power blocs.
"But
the fact remains that we're entering a period of growing risk . . . and
opportunity. The situation vis-à-vis Manticore and Haven is perhaps the most
clear-cut, recognizable threat we face. At the moment, that threat is
manageable, so long as we take steps to ensure it remains that way. The greater
threat—and opportunity—we confront, however, is the fact that we are finally
approaching the point towards which we and our ancestors have worked for so
long. For now, that remains unrecognized by the vast majority of those who
might oppose us. As we begin our final preparations, however, it becomes more
and more likely our actual objectives will be recognized. That moment of
recognition must be delayed as long as possible, and I believe one of the keys
to doing that may be the fashion in which we manage the Manties and
Peeps."
Tension had
gathered perceptibly in the palatial office as he spoke. Now the big room was
utterly silent as he swept his eyes slowly from face to face, searching for any
signs of weakness, of wavering commitment. He found none, and he allowed his
chair to come back fully upright.
"Fortunately
for us, Haven and the Manties have managed to get themselves back into a
shooting war despite the failure of our original plans for Erewhon. That's
good. But the Manties are clearly intent on expanding into the Talbott Cluster,
despite the distraction of the war, and that's bad. Bad for many reasons, but
not least for how much closer to Mesa it will bring their advanced naval bases.
"Also
on the deficit side of the ledger, we still haven't managed to obtain access to
first-line Manticoran naval hardware. No matter how everything else works out,
eventually we are going to find ourselves in open conflict with
Manticore, unless we can somehow arrange for someone else to handle that chore
for us. We'll continue to pursue the option of finding someone else to do the
deed, and I'm sure we'd all find it extremely satisfying if we could, indeed,
find a way to use Haven and Manticore to neutralize each other. I don't believe
we can count on that, however, so it behooves us to continue planning for an
ultimate direct confrontation. With that in mind, anything we can do to reduce
Manticore's military, economic, and industrial power bases is eminently
worthwhile. Which obviously includes keeping them from annexing the Cluster and
all the industrial potential those planets represent.
"I
happen to know the Strategy Committee is already working on a plan to at least
destabilize and hopefully permanently derail the Talbott annexation.
Personally, I give it no more than a thirty percent chance of succeeding, but I
could be being unduly pessimistic. Aldona and Isabel will be our contacts for
that particular operation, and I want it clearly understood by everyone in this
room—whatever we may say or do for the consumption of others—that while I very
much hope for their success, we must all be aware that that success is at best
problematical. In other words, there will be no penalties and no retaliation
if, through no fault of their own, this plan miscarries."
Anisimovna's
expression didn't even flicker, despite the enormous sense of relief she felt
at Detweiler's pronouncement. Of course, he hadn't said there would be no
penalties if the plan miscarried and he decided the fault was theirs.
"While
they deal with that aspect of the problem, Jerome," he continued, turning
to Sandusky, "you will be polishing up the final details of our
arrangement with Mannerheim. Make it very clear to President Hurskainen that
it's almost certainly going to be up to him to provide the military muscle when
the time comes for the open move to retake Congo." He grimaced. "We
can't afford to postpone that particular necessity very long. We've got some
time, but the last thing we need is for an entire planet of Ballroom fanatics
to get loose in the galaxy. Especially not a planet which controls that
particular wormhole junction."
"What
about the indirect approach we've discussed?" Sandusky asked in a
businesslike voice.
"We'll
keep it in reserve," Detweiler directed. "It has a certain appeal on
its own merits, but at the moment, Verdant Vista appears to be the only point
over which the Manties and Havenites continue to find themselves sharing any
common ground. Any move against this so-called 'monarchy' at this time would
certainly be seen as our handiwork, however many cutouts we employed, and I
don't want us to do anything which might push them closer together where we're
concerned than they already are.
"Nonetheless,
Isabel," he turned back to Bardasano, "we do need to keep the thought
in mind. This is your particular specialty, and I want a detailed operational
plan on my desk and ready for implementation before you and Aldona head out to
meet with Verrochio. We'll call it . . . Operation Rat Poison."
An ugly
ripple of amusement ran around the room, and he nodded in satisfaction.
"I've
done the best preliminary groundwork I could for you and Aldona in
Talbott," he continued to Bardasano. "Technodyne doesn't know
everything we're up to, but they've agreed to at least listen to our
proposition. I expect you'll probably be hearing from a Mr. Levakonic shortly,
and everything I've been able to discover about him suggests he should be
amenable. On the minus side, you're also going to have to deal with Kalokainos.
The old man is bad enough, but Volkhart is an idiot. Unfortunately, Verrochio
and Hongbo are firmly in Kalokainos' pocket, so we're going to have to at least
go through the motions of 'consulting' with him. You may actually have to
involve him in the initial strategy discussions, although I trust you'll be
able to cut him out of the circuit fairly early. I've had our official
representative in the area briefed to help you accomplish that—not fully, but
in sufficient detail for him to understand what he has to do. He's supposed to
be pretty good at this sort of thing."
"Who
is it, Albrecht?" Anisimovna asked.
"His
name is Ottweiler, Valery Ottweiler," Detweiler replied.
"I
know him," she said, frowning thoughtfully. "And he really is good at
this kind of thing. In fact, if it weren't for his genome, I'd say he should be
brought fully inside."
"Are
you suggesting probationer status for him?" Sandusky asked a bit sharply.
"I
didn't say that, Jerome," Anisimovna returned coolly. She and Sandusky had
crossed swords entirely too often in the past, and she wasn't certain whether
he really opposed the notion or secretly hoped she would suggest it and be
supported over his opposition. It was always risky to nominate a normal for
probationer status, and he might be hoping this one would blow up, as others
had, with the egg landing on her face this time.
"If
this operation succeeds, and if he's as integral to its success as I expect him
to be," she continued after a brief pause, "then it might be time for
the Council to consider whether or not he should be offered that status.
I don't personally know the man well enough to predict how he would react. But
he does have a reputation for effectiveness, and he could be even more
effective for us as a probationer brought more fully into the real
picture."
"We'll
cross that bridge when—and if—we come to it," Detweiler decreed. "In
the meantime, you and Isabel undoubtedly have a lot of details to take care of
before you depart. I'll be meeting with both of you—and with some of the rest
of you—privately over the next few days. For now, though, I believe we're done,
and dinner is waiting."
He started
to push back from the desk, but Bardasano raised one hand in a respectful
attention-requesting gesture. She was, by almost any conventional standard, the
most junior individual in the room, but her professional competence—and
ruthlessness—made her lack of conventional seniority meaningless, and Detweiler
settled back.
"Yes,
Isabel? You had a question?"
"Not
about the Cluster," she said. "I do have one question concerning Rat
Poison, however, and I thought I'd raise it while we were all here, since it
may affect Jerome's planning, as well."
"And
that question is?"
"As
you know, most of our current scenarios for Rat Poison are built around the use
of the new nanotech. We've run several test operations to be sure it works—the
most prominent was the Hofschulte business on New Potsdam. As you also
know," she didn't so much as glance at Sandusky, who had been responsible
for that particular "test operation," "I had my doubts about the
advisability of using the new technology in an assassination attempt which was
bound to attract as much attention and comment as that one did. In this
instance, it appears my concerns were misplaced, however, since there's no
evidence anyone as much as suspects what really happened.
"The
question in my mind, however, is whether or not we want to consider making
additional use of the same technique in the interim. I can foresee several
possible sets of circumstances where it could be very useful. In particular,
according to Jerome's reports, our primary contact in the Havenite Department
of State is almost certainly going to require a completely untraceable weapon
sometime in the next few weeks or months."
"Well,
this is an interesting change of mind," Sandusky remarked
astringently.
"It
isn't really a change of mind at all, Jerome," Bardasano said calmly.
"My concern at the time was that someone would figure out how it was done,
but the Andies have run every test they could think of on Hofschulte—or,
rather, his cadaver—without, apparently, turning up a thing. If they haven't
found anything after looking this long and this hard, then the R&D types
may actually have known what they were talking about this time. Which,"
she added dryly, "always comes as a pleasant and unanticipated surprise
for us unfortunate field grunts."
Several
people, including Renzo Kyprianou, whose bio weapon research teams had
developed the technology in question, laughed.
"If
this technique works as well as it did in our tests, and really is this close
to impossible to detect," she continued more seriously, "then it
might be time for us to begin making judicious use of it in special
cases." She shrugged. "Even if they figure out someone is
deliberately triggering the attacks, there's not much they can do about it.
Not, at least, without security arrangements which would effectively hamstring
their own operations. And I can think of several prominent individuals in both
Manticore and Haven whose sudden and possibly spectacular demises could be
quite beneficial to us. Especially if we can convince both sides that the other
one, not some third party, is responsible."
"I'll
have to think about that," Detweiler said, after a moment. "I felt
your original arguments for restraint had considerable merit. But what you've
just suggested also has merit. Keeping something like this in reserve, as a
total surprise, is always tempting. But if you keep it in reserve too long,
then you never use it at all."
He pursed
his lips for several seconds, then shrugged.
"Jerome,
you and I will have to discuss this. Give some thought to the pros and cons and
sit down with Isabel before she leaves. Work out a list of potential
targets—not a big one, I don't want to flash this capability around any more
obviously then we have to, however unlikely it is that someone will figure out
how it works. At the very least, though, we can put the groundwork in place and
have Renzo's people begin looking for the best . . . vehicles."
"Of
course, Albrecht."
"Good!"
Detweiler smacked both palms on his desktop and stood. "And on that note,
let's get out of here. Evelina's brought in a brand new chef, and I think all
of you are going to be amazed at what he can do with Old Earth rock
lobster!"
The
interior of Protector's Cathedral was like some huge, living jewel box.
Honor sat
in the Stranger's Aisle to the left of the nave, immediately adjacent to the
sanctuary. She, her parents and siblings, James MacGuiness, Nimitz, and Willard
Neufsteiler, all of them in Harrington green, shared the Aisle's first pew with
the Manticoran and Andermani ambassadors and consuls from each of the other
members of the Manticoran Alliance. The two rows of pews behind them were
solidly packed with officers in the uniform of the Protector's Own: Aldredo Yu,
Warner Caslet, Cynthia Gonsalves, Harriet Benson-Dessouix and her husband
Henri, Susan Phillips, and dozens of others who had escaped from the prison
planet Hades with Honor. Their uniforms and the diplomats' off-world formal
attire, in the styles of more than half a dozen different worlds, stood out
sharply, but each of them also wore the dark, violet-black armbands or veils of
Grayson-style mourning, as well.
That touch
of darkness ran through the cathedral like a thread of sorrow, all the more
obvious beside the rich, jewel-toned colors of formal Grayson attire, and Honor
tasted its echo in the emotions surging about her. The emotional overtones of
the Church of Humanity Unchained were always like some deep, satisfying well of
renewal and faith, one she could physically experience thanks to her empathic
link to Nimitz. But today there was that strand of sadness, flowing from every
corner of the vast cathedral.
Brilliant
pools of dense, colored sunlight poured down through the huge stained-glass
windows of the eastern wall, and more spilled down like some chromatic
waterfall through the enormous stained-glass skylight above the sanctuary. She
tasted the grief reaching out from those deep, still pools of light and from
the drifting, light-struck tendrils of incense on quiet feet of organ music. It
came in different shapes and gradations, from people who had been personally
touched by Howard Clinkscales to people who had known him only as a distant
figure, yet it was also touched with a sense of celebration. A swelling faith
that the man whose death they had come to mourn, and whose life they had come
to celebrate, had met the Test of his life in triumph.
She gazed
at the coffin, draped in both the planetary flag of Grayson and the steading
flag of Harrington. The silver staff of Clinkscales' office as Harrington's
regent and the sheathed sword he had carried as the commanding general of
Planetary Security before the Mayhew Restoration lay crossed atop the flags,
gleaming in the spill of light. So many years of service, she thought. So much
capacity for growth and change. So much ability to give and so much kindness,
hidden behind that crusty, curmudgeonly exterior he'd cultivated so
assiduously. So much to miss.
The organ
music swelled, then stopped, and a quiet stir ran through the cathedral as
old-fashioned mechanical latches clacked loudly and its ancient, bas-relief doors
swung ponderously open. For a moment there was complete and total silence, and
then the organ reawoke in a surge of majestic power and the massed voices of
the Protector's Cathedral Choir burst into soaring song.
The
Cathedral Choir was universally regarded as the finest choir of the entire
planet. That was saying quite a lot for a world which took its sacred music so
seriously, but as its glorious voices rose in a hymn not of sorrow but of
triumph, it demonstrated how amply it deserved its reputation. The torrent of
music and trained voices poured over Honor in a magnificent tide which seemed
to simultaneously focus and amplify the upwelling cyclone of the emotions all
about her as the procession advanced down the cathedral's nave behind the
crucifers and thurifers. The clergy and acolytes glittered in rich fabrics and
embroidery, and Reverend Jeremiah Sullivan, resplendent in the embroidery and
jewel-encrusted vestments of his high office, moved at the center of the
procession, with the violet-black mourning stole around his neck like a slash
of darkness.
They
advanced steadily, majestically, through the storm of music and sunlight and
the great, glowing dome of faith which Honor wished all of them could perceive
as clearly as she herself did. It was at moments like this—vastly different
though they were from the quieter, more introspective services of the faith in
which she had been raised—that she felt closest to the heart and soul of
Grayson. The people of her adopted planet were far from perfect, yet the bedrock
strength of their thousand years of faith gave them a depth, a center, which
very few other worlds could equal.
The
procession reached the sanctuary, and its members dispersed with the solemn
precision of an elite drill team. Reverend Sullivan stood motionless before the
high altar, gazing at the mourning-draped cross, while the acolytes and
assisting clergy flowed around him towards their places. He stood there until
the hymn ended and the organ music faded once again to silence, then turned to
face the filled Cathedral, lifted both hands in a gesture of benediction, and
raised his voice.
"And
his lord said unto him," he said into that silence, "Well done, thou
good and faithful servant: thou hast been faithful over a few things, I will
make thee ruler over many things: enter thou into the joy of thy lord."
He stood
for a long moment, hands still lifted, then lowered them and gazed out over the
Cathedral's packed pews.
"Brothers
and Sisters in God," he said then, quietly, and yet in a voice which
carried clearly in the cathedral's magnificent acoustics, "we are gathered
today in the sight of the Tester, the Intercessor, and the Comforter to
celebrate the life of Howard Samson Jonathan Clinkscales, beloved husband of
Bethany, Rebecca, and Constance, father of Howard, Jessica, Marjorie, John,
Angela, Barbara, and Marian, servant of the Sword, Regent of Harrington
Steading, and always and in all ways the faithful servant of the Lord our God.
I ask you now to join me in prayer, not to mourn his death, but to commemorate
his triumphant completion of the Great Test of life as today he enters indeed
into the joy of his Lord."
* * *
For all its
rich pageantry and centuries of tradition, the liturgy of the Church of
Humanity Unchained was remarkably simple. The funeral mass flowed smoothly,
naturally, until, after the lesson and the gospel, it was time for the Memory.
Every Grayson funeral had the Memory—the time set aside for every mourner to
recall the life of the person they had lost and for any who so chose to share
that memory with all the others. No one was ever forced to share a memory, but
anyone who wished to was welcome to do so.
Reverend
Sullivan seated himself on his throne, and silence fell once more over the
cathedral until Benjamin Mayhew stood in the Protector's Box.
"I
remember," he said quietly. "I remember the day—I was six, I
think—when I fell out of the tallest tree in the Palace orchard. I broke my
left arm in three places, and my left leg, as well. Howard was in command of
Palace Security then, and he was the first to reach me. I was trying so hard
not to cry, because big boys don't, and because a future Protector should never
show weakness. And Howard radioed for a medical team and ordered me not to move
until it got there, then sat down beside me in the mud, holding my good hand,
and said 'Tears aren't weakness, My Lord. Sometimes they're just the Tester's
way of washing out the hurt.'" Benjamin paused, then smiled. "I'll
miss him," he said.
He sat once
more, and Honor rose in the Stranger's Aisle.
"I
remember," she said, her quiet soprano carrying clearly. "I remember
the day I first met Howard, the day of the Maccabeus assassination attempt. He
was—" she smiled in fond, bittersweet memory"— about as opposed to
the notion of women in uniform and any alliance with the Star Kingdom as it was
possible for someone to be, and there I was, the very personification of everything
he'd opposed, with half my face covered up by a bandage. And he looked at me,
and he was the very first person on Grayson who saw not a woman, but a Queen's
officer. Someone he expected to do her duty the same way he would have expected
himself to do his. Someone he grew and changed enough to accept not simply as
his Steadholder, but also his friend, and in many ways, as his daughter. I'll
miss him."
She sat
once more, and Carson Clinkscales stood, towering over his aunts.
"I
remember," he said. "I remember the day my father was killed in a
training accident and Uncle Howard came to tell me. I was playing in the park
with a dozen of my friends, and he found me and took me aside. I was only
eight, and when he told me Father was dead, I thought the world had ended. But
Uncle Howard held me while I cried. He let me cry myself completely out, until
there were no tears left. And then he picked me up, put my head on his
shoulder, and carried me in his arms all the way from the park home. It was
over three kilometers, and Uncle Howard was already almost eighty years old,
and I was always big for my age. But he walked the entire way, carried me up to
my bedroom, and sat on my bed and held me until I drifted off to sleep."
He shook his head, resting his right hand on the shoulder of his Aunt Bethany.
"I never knew before that day how strong and patient, how loving, two arms
could truly be, but I never forgot . . . and I never will. I'll miss him."
He sat, and
an elderly man in the dress uniform of a Planetary Security brigadier rose.
"I
remember," he said. "I remember the first day I reported for duty
with Palace Security and they told me I was assigned to Captain Clinkscales
detachment." He shook his head with a grin. "Scared the tripes right
out of me, I'll tell you! Howard was a marked man, even then, and he never did
suffer fools gladly. But—"
At most
Grayson funerals the Memory took perhaps twenty minutes. At Howard Clinkscales'
funeral, it took three hours.
* * *
"It's
always hard not to feel sorry for myself at a funeral," Allison Harrington
said as she stood between the towering forms of her husband and her elder
daughter. "God, I'm going to miss that old dinosaur!"
She sniffed
and wiped her eye surreptitiously.
"We
all are, Mother," Honor said, slipping an arm around her diminutive
parent.
"Agreed,"
Alfred Harrington said, looking across at his daughter. "And his death is
going to leave a real hole in the Steading."
"I
know." Honor sighed. "Still, we all saw it coming, whether we wanted
to talk about it or not, and Howard saw it more clearly than any of us. That's
why he worked so hard getting Austen brought up to speed for the last three or
four years."
She looked
across the quiet, beautifully landscaped garden at a middle-aged—by pre-prolong
standards—man with silvering, dark-brown hair and the craggy chin which seemed
to mark most Clinkscales males. Like Howard himself, Austen Clinkscales was
tall by Grayson standards, although far short of a giant like his younger
cousin Carson.
"I
think Austen is going to do just fine as Regent," she said. "He
reminds me a lot of his uncle, actually. He doesn't have as much experience, I
suppose, but I think he's probably a bit more flexible than Howard was. And
he's a good man."
"That
he is," Alfred agreed.
"And
he adores the kids," Allison said. "Especially Faith. Isn't it funny
how all these firmly patriarchal Grayson males seem to go absolutely gooey
inside when a little girl smiles at them?"
"You're
a geneticist, love," Alfred said with a chuckle. "I'm sure you
realized years ago that the species is hardwired to produce exactly that
effect."
"Especially
when the little girl in question is as cute as one of my daughters,"
Allison observed complacently.
"Somehow,
Mother, I don't think anyone has applied the adjective 'cute' to me in quite a
few years. I certainly hope not, at any rate."
"Oh,
you hard-bitten naval officers are all alike!"
Honor
started to respond, then stopped as Howard's three wives walked across the
garden towards them. Carson and Austen Clinkscales followed them, and Bethany,
the senior of the three, stopped in front of Honor.
"My
Lady," she said quietly.
"Yes,
Bethany?"
"You
know our customs, My Lady," Bethany said. "Howard's body has already
been reclaimed for our Garden of Memory. But he made an additional
request."
"A
request?" Honor repeated when she paused.
"Yes,
My Lady." Bethany extended a small wooden box. It was unembellished by any
carving or metalwork, but its hand-rubbed finish gleamed brilliantly in the
sunlight. "He requested," she continued, "that a portion of his
remains be given to you."
Honor's
eyes widened, and she reached out to take the box.
"I'm
deeply honored," she said, after a moment. "I never expected . . . ."
"My
Lady," Bethany said, looking her in the eyes, "as far as Howard—and
my sisters and I—were concerned, you truly were the daughter you called
yourself today. When you established the Harrington Garden for the armsmen who
fell in your service, Howard was more pleased than he ever told you. We've
always respected your integrity in refusing to profess faith in Father Church
for political advantage, yet you've always demonstrated a personal sensitivity
to and respect for our religion no Steadholder could have bettered. I think
Howard hoped that one day you would embrace Father Church, if you should decide
it was truly what the Tester called you to do. But whether that day ever comes
or not, he wanted to be a part of the Harrington Garden." She smiled
mistily. "He said that maybe that way he could 'hold your place in line'
until you catch up with him."
Honor
blinked stinging eyes and smiled down at the shorter, older woman.
"If
the day ever comes that I do join the Church of Humanity Unchained, it will be
because of the example of people like you and Howard, Bethany," she said.
"And whether that day ever comes or not, I will be honored and deeply,
deeply pleased to do as Howard asked."
"Thank
you, My lady." Bethany and her sister wives curtsied formally, but Honor
shook her head.
"No,
thank you, Bethany," she said. "The Clinkscales Clan has
served me personally and this Steading with a devotion and a skill far beyond
anything I might reasonably have expected. My family and my people are deeply
in your debt—in all of your debts—" she raised her eyes to look at Austen
and Carson, as well, "and as Howard served me so well, and as Austen has
agreed to serve me in his stead, so you've made yourselves family, not simply
servants or even merely friends. My sword is your sword. Your battle is mine.
Our joys and our sorrows are as one."
Bethany
inhaled sharply, and Carson and Austen stiffened behind her.
"My
Lady, I never—that is, Howard didn't make this request because—"
"Do
you think I could not realize that?" Honor asked gently. She handed the
wooden box to her mother and bent slightly to embrace her dead Regent's widow,
then kissed the older woman on the cheek.
"This
is about service that went beyond any formal oath or obligation," she went
on as she straightened once more. "It's about service that became love,
and I should have done it long ago."
She looked
at Carson again over his aunt's head, tasting his astonishment, and wondered if
he'd been aware she even knew the formal phrases by which a Grayson steadholder
created a legal familial relationship with another clan. The complex
interweaving of clan networks had been integral to the Graysons' survival in
their hostile planetary environment, and the creation of what equated to blood
relationships between the great houses of the Steadholders and their closest
allies and retainers had played a major role in forging those networks. In a
sense, what Honor had done subordinated the Clinckscales Clan to the Harrington
Clan, but it also bound Honor and her heirs personally to the defense and
protection of Howard Clinckscales' descendants forever.
It was not
a step to be taken lightly or impulsively, but Honor realized that her decision
had been neither of those things. And that she truly ought to have done it much
sooner, while Howard was still there to see it done. Well, no doubt he still
could, from wherever he was at the moment, she thought fondly. And then her
lips twitched as another thought struck her.
As
Steadholder Harrington, she was the senior member of the Harrington Clan, which
she suddenly realized, made her legally Carson's "Aunt Honor" under
Grayson legal practice. And that meant . . . .
Her lips
twitched again, and she saw a sudden twinkle in Carson's eyes as the same
realization hit him. They looked at each other, and then they began to chuckle.
Honor felt her own chuckles segueing into full-bodied laughter, and gave
Bethany a quick squeeze and stepped back.
"I'm
sorry, Bethany!" she said. "I didn't mean to laugh. It's just that, I
suddenly realized that—"
She broke
off with another laugh, and Bethany shook her head with a fond smile.
"My
Lady, I can think of many things that might have upset Howard. Having you laugh
on the day of his funeral would never be one of them, though."
"That's
a very good thing," Honor said with a smile, "because there's going
to be more laughter before this is all over, you realize."
"My
Lady?" Bethany looked at her quizzically.
"Of
course there is," Honor said around another bubble of laughter of her own.
"Faith and James were used to calling Howard 'Uncle Howard,' and I've
heard them calling Austen 'uncle,' as well. But now she's going to be
'Aunt Faith' to him and Carson!" She shook her head. "We're never
going to hear the end of this."
"Welcome
back, Your Grace."
"Thank
you, Mercedes."
Honor
followed Simon Mattingly through the private arrivals gate and held out her
hand to the sturdy, plain-faced woman waiting for her in the Landing City VIP
shuttle pad concourse. Mercedes Brigham still wore the commodore's uniform of
her Manticoran rank rather than the rear admiral's star she would have been
entitled to in Grayson's service. For that matter, she really ought to have
traded in the double planets of her commodore's insignia even in the RMN. Honor
knew perfectly well that Brigham had quietly made it clear to BuPers that she
preferred her position as Honor's chief of staff, and promotion to rear admiral
would have made her too senior for the slot. Honor had tried to convince her
otherwise, though not as hard as she really felt she ought to have, but
Mercedes had only grinned.
"If I
really want command, Ma'am," she'd said, "all I have to do is go back
to Grayson. At the moment, I think I'm more useful where I am. So unless you
want to fire me . . . ."
"And
welcome back to you, too, Stinker," Brigham said now, reaching up to offer
Nimitz her hand in turn. The treecat shook it solemnly, then flirted his tail
and bleeked a laugh. Brigham chuckled, then turned back to Honor, her
expression sympathetic.
"You
look a bit frazzled, Your Grace."
"It's
been a busy ten days," Honor conceded.
"Was
it as hectic as you were afraid it would be?"
"No,"
Honor said. "Honestly, it wasn't. Not quite, at any rate. Austen's
confirmation as Regent went very smoothly. There was a little opposition,
mostly from Mueller. I don't think the present Lord Mueller is quite as
reconciled to his father's execution as he tries to make it seem, and he's
starting to regain a little of his steading's old influence in the Opposition.
But Benjamin, Owens, Yanakov, and Mackenzie steamrollered the nomination
through."
"I
assume," Brigham continued as LaFollet and Spencer Hawke came through the
gate to hover watchfully at Honor's back and four more armsmen in Harrington
green appeared, heavily laden with baggage, "that you had an opportunity
to discuss the general situation with High Admiral Matthews?"
"I
did. Not that either one of us was able to add a great deal to the other's
understanding." Honor grimaced. "At the moment, the 'situation' at
least has the advantage of a certain grim simplicity."
"The
other side is still trying to complicate it, though, Your Grace," Brigham
said. "Did you hear about the raid on Alizon?"
"Yes."
Honor looked at her sharply. "The preliminary dispatch came in just before
Tankersley broke Grayson orbit, but there weren't any details. How bad
was it?"
"Nowhere
near as bad as what McQueen did in their Operation Icarus," Brigham said
quickly. "Not that it was exactly good, you understand. We lost a
couple of our own freighters, and they blew the hell out of a respectable chunk
of the asteroid extraction platforms and mining boats. But human casualties
were very low and they never got close enough to hit the main industrial
platforms. None of our people even got scratched, and the Alizonians only lost
a half-dozen or so miners." She twitched one shoulder in a half-shrug.
"Even that looks like it was an accident. From everything I've seen, they
appear to have done their dead level best to play it according to the
rules."
"They
used LACs? No hyper-capable units?"
"Only
LACs, Your Grace." If Brigham was surprised by Honor's questions, she
showed no sign of it. "According to Alizon Defense Command, they lost
between thirty and forty of them, too. All to the missile pods."
"Did
our LACs engage at all?" Honor asked, and Brigham gave her a thin smile.
"By
the strangest turn of fate, no, Your Grace. I know what you're thinking, and
Alizon Defense Command thought the same thing. This was a probing attack,
testing our defenses. If they'd wanted to do serious damage to the system
infrastructure, they'd have attacked in much heavier strength. So when Defense
Command realized we were up against a raid that probably wasn't even going to
try to penetrate the inner defenses, not a serious assault on the system, all
our Shrikes and Ferrets and—especially—Katanas stayed
covert. So did the outer-system pods, for that matter. ONI gives us ninety
percent-plus odds that the Peeps never even saw them."
"Good,"
Honor said, then nodded towards the concourse exit where the armored air limo
in Harrington livery waited. Mattingly had already taken up his post beside it,
and her entire party flowed into motion towards him.
"It's
not very likely someone like Theisman isn't going to figure the LACs, at least,
were there, anyway," she continued, "but at least he wasn't able to
confirm it." She frowned thoughtfully. "Have you heard anything about
Alizon's reaction to the attack?"
"Not
officially." Brigham stood aside to let the baggage-toting armsmen load
their burdens into the limo's luggage compartment. "We only got Defense
Command's preliminary report five days ago. The Admiralty copied all of Admiral
Simon's dispatches and after-action reports to us, but I haven't seen anything
on the civilian side. According to certain sources of mine in Sir Thomas' shop,
though, the Alizonians aren't what you might call pleased about it."
"As if
that's a surprise," Honor snorted.
"Well,
they did get the piss blown out of them the last time around, Your Grace,"
Brigham observed. "And after the way High Ridge and his bunch treated
them, we've probably run our store of goodwill pretty close to rock bottom. Do
you know Admiral Simon?"
"Not
personally." Honor shook her head. "I know he's young for his rank,
that he's a Saganami graduate, and that he's got a good reputation with us, as
well as his own people. That's about it."
"Actually,
that sums him up pretty well, except that I'd add that he's always been one of
the stronger supporters of the Alliance. But even the dispatches from him I've
seen make some pretty pointed references to how understrength the system
defenses would have been against a real attack." She grimaced.
"I'm guessing the civilians are going to be even more pointed about it,
and I can't blame them. They're going to want some concrete demonstration of
our willingness—and ability—to protect them from an Icarus repeat."
"Which
is exactly why Theisman did it." Honor sighed. "I liked it so much
better when Pierre and Saint-Just didn't trust their navy enough to let it do
its job properly."
"At
least we've managed to get back our own first team at Admiralty House,"
Brigham said encouragingly. "That's something."
"Quite
a bit, actually," Honor agreed. "I'm looking forward to getting a
firsthand brief from Sir Thomas."
"And
Earl White Haven?"
Brigham's
tone could not have been more natural, but Honor tasted the commodore's sudden
spike of combined curiosity and concern.
"I'm
sure we'll also discuss the situation," she replied after the briefest of
pauses. "I know the Queen wants to see both of us tomorrow. I feel
confident she's going to want a current briefing of her own, then, and it's
pretty obvious Eighth Fleet is going to be a politically sensitive command, as
well as a military one. I'm sure he'll have quite a bit to say in that regard
as First Lord, probably both on and off the record. In fact, the Earl and Lady
Emily have invited me to spend a few days as their guest at White Haven.
Probably at least in part so that we can spend the time discussing all the
ramifications."
"I
see." Brigham gazed at her for a moment, then smiled. "It still seems
odd to have him stuck on the civilian side instead of commanding a fleet,
doesn't it?" She shook her head. "Still, I guess he's where we need
him most right now. Ah, will you be taking any of the staff to White Haven with
you, Your Grace?"
"Probably
just Andrew, Spencer, and Simon," Honor said offhandedly. "Oh, and
Mac. I'd like to take Miranda, as well, but I'm not going to pull her out of
The Bay House for a stay this short. I need her staying on top of things right
where she is."
"Of
course, Your Grace," Brigham murmured, and gestured for Honor to enter the
limo in front of her. "Please remember to give the Earl my respects."
* * *
"Honor!"
Honor
looked up quickly, with a huge smile, as the husky contralto called her name.
The frail-looking, golden-haired woman in the life-support chair just inside
the main entry of the Alexander family seat at White Haven smiled back, and her
deep-green eyes gleamed with welcome.
"It's
wonderful to see you back—you and Nimitz," the other woman
continued. "How long can you say this time?"
"It's
wonderful to see you, too, Emily," Honor said, striding quickly across the
entry hall. She'd never been one to bestow easy public kisses, but she bent and
kissed Emily Alexander's cheek. The older women reached up with her right
arm—the only portion of her body below the neck that she could move at all—and
laid the palm of her hand against Honor's cheek, in reply.
"Are
you keeping her in shape, Sandra?" Honor asked the tallish,
square-shouldered brunette standing beside the life support chair.
"We
try, Your Grace," Sandra Thurston, Lady Alexander's personal nurse, said
and favored Honor with a welcoming smile. "I suspect seeing you again is
going to do more for her than I ever could, though."
"Oh,
nonsense!" Honor replied with a slight blush, then straightened to look at
the man standing directly behind Lady Alexander's chair.
"It's
good to see you again, too, Nico," she said.
"And
you, Your Grace," White Haven's majordomo murmured with a slight
bow. "Welcome back to White Haven."
"Thank
you," Honor said, and smiled at him. The edge of defensive resentment Nico
Havenhurst had felt the first time he saw her here had vanished, and he
returned her smile, then he looked past her to the armsmen carrying in her
baggage.
"If
you'll excuse me, Your Grace, Milady," he said, with another small bow,
this time to both women, "I'll attend to Her Grace's things." Emily
nodded agreement, and he turned to Honor's armsmen. "I've arranged to
lodge Her Grace in the Blue Suite, Colonel," he told LaFollet. "You
and her other armsmen will be in the Bachelor's Wing. The billiard room is
between that and the main house, directly adjacent to the only direct access
stair to the Blue Suite, so I thought it might provide you with a relatively
comfortable guardroom. I hope that's satisfactory?"
He looked
innocently at Honor's senior personal armsman, and LaFollet gazed back for just
an instant, then nodded.
"Perfectly,"
he replied. He looked at Honor's other two personal armsmen. "Simon, you
and Spencer go ahead and get things organized. Then get some sleep. I'll cover
things here through dinner, and you two lucky fellows will get the night
shift."
"Rank,
you see," Mattingly said to Hawke, "hath its privileges. He gets
a good night's sleep."
"And
well-deserved it will be, too," LaFollet agreed equably as the youngest
member of Honor's personal detachment grinned. "Now, move along." He
made shooing motions with both hands. "There's a good lad," he added
with a wicked grin.
"You
know," Emily said as Honor's armed retainers trooped past her in Nico's
wake, "I'd forgotten how much more . . . placid it is around here when
your myrmidons are away."
"They
do have a tendency to liven the place up, don't they," Honor said dryly,
regarding LaFollet with an expression which combined amusement and resignation
in near-equal measure. The armsman returned it with a look of total innocence,
and she shook her head and turned back to Emily. "Mac went on to The Bay
House to collect the mail, check in with Miranda, and get her report on things
generally. He'll be arriving in another couple of hours."
"I
know. He screened me from Landing with his schedule. Nico's already made
arrangements for his arrival, too." Emily smiled crookedly. "One
thing we've got plenty of in this rambling edifice is bedroom space."
Honor
tasted the mingled affection, humor, and small, lingering trace of sorrow which
accompanied Emily's last sentence and reached out again, almost involuntarily,
to rest one hand on the other woman's shoulder. As always, the fragile delicacy
of the invalid's flesh and bones under her hand was almost shocking, so totally
at odds with the inner vitality of the woman trapped within it.
"I
know," she said softly, and Emily reached up to lay her working hand
briefly atop Honor's.
"Yes,
I imagine you do," she said more briskly, still smiling. "And Hamish
will be here shortly, as well. He screened to say he's been delayed by some
Admiralty House business. Nothing critical, just details that have to be dealt
with. And, yes, Nimitz," she said, looking directly at the 'cat on Honor's
shoulder, "Samantha is just fine. I'm sure she'll be just as eager to see
you as you are to see her when she and Hamish get here."
Nimitz rose
higher, true-hands flashing, and Emily chuckled as she read the signs.
"Yes,
I think you could say she's missed you as much as she would have missed celery.
Possibly even a little more than that."
Nimitz
bleeked with laughter, and Honor shook her head.
"You
two are bad influences on each other," she observed severely.
"Nonsense.
Both of us were completely beyond salvage before we ever met, Honor,"
Emily replied serenely.
"I'm
sure." Honor glanced over her shoulder at LaFollet, and the colonel smiled
faintly.
"If
you'll pardon me for a moment, My Lady," he said, "I need to speak to
the limo driver before he parks the car. With your permission?"
"Of
course, Andrew," she said and watched fondly as he stepped back outside.
"Ah, I
think I might just go and check with Tabitha about the supper menu,
Milady," Thurston said to Emily. "You'll keep an eye on her till I
get back, Your Grace?" she added innocently to Honor.
"Of
course I will," Honor said gravely, and Thurston smiled and disappeared,
leaving her alone with Emily and Nimitz.
"My
goodness," Emily murmured as the door closed behind her. "She did
that very neatly. And I didn't think anything could overcome that
professional paranoia of his! For all he knows, assassins are lurking in the
great hall right this moment."
"Andrew
does more than simply protect me physically, Emily," Honor said. "He
also does his best to let me cling to at least the illusion of a little bit of
privacy." Her smile was more crooked than the one the artificial nerves in
the left side of her face normally produced. "Of course, we both know it's
only an illusion, but that doesn't make it any less important to
me."
"No, I
don't suppose it does," Emily said gently. "We Manticoran aristocrats
think we live in fishbowls, but compared to you Grayson steadholders—" She
shook her head. "I suppose it really is necessary, in your case, at least,
given how many people seem to have tried to kill you over the years. But I
often wonder how you can stand it without going mad."
"There
are times I wonder, too," Honor admitted. "Mostly, though, it's my
armsmen themselves who keep me sane. Graysons have had a thousand years to
adjust to the peculiarities of their own traditions, and it's amazing how
'invisible' an armsman can make himself. But it's more than that, too. They
just . . . become a part of you. I suppose it's like your relationship with
Nico or Sandra, or mine with Mac, but with an added dimension. They know everything
about me, Emily, and every single one of them will go to his grave without
ever betraying a confidence of mine. That's what Grayson armsmen do."
"Then
I suppose I envy you as much as I pity you," Emily said.
"You
might want to keep some of that sympathy for yourself," Honor said. Emily
arched an eyebrow, and Honor gave her another off-center smile. "If things
go on as they have, you and Hamish are going to find my armsmen interfering in
your lives almost as much as they do in the lives of my mother and father.
Andrew will be as discreet about it as he possibly can, but it will
happen."
Emily gazed
at her for several seconds, then sighed.
"Yes,"
she said finally. "I can see that. In fact, I realized it while you were
still in Sidemore. But I think I'm discovering that adjusting to the reality is
a little more . . . complicated than I'd anticipated."
"I
don't doubt it, and I'm sorry," Honor said softly. "You don't deserve
all the complications I've inflicted on your life."
"Nonsense!"
Emily shook her head firmly. "Just desserts don't come into it. Or, as
Hamish has always been fond of saying—when he thinks I don't hear him, of
course—shit happens."
Honor's
mouth twitched, and Emily smiled at her as she smothered a giggle.
"You
didn't plan any of this, Honor," Emily continued, "any more than
Hamish did. In fact, if memory serves, the two of you were busy making
everyone—Nimitz, Samantha, and myself included—thoroughly miserable because of
your absolute determination not to 'inflict' any complications on my
life. I may not like having to deal with all of them, but I don't regret any of
them. You know that."
She looked
Honor straight in the eye, and Honor nodded slowly. Emily was one of the small
number of people who knew her empathic link with Nimitz was so deep, so
intense, that she'd actually developed something very like the treecats'
ability to sense the emotions of those about her. Which meant she did know
Emily was being completely honest with her.
"Then
Hamish and I are remarkably lucky people," she said. Emily made a small
throwing away gesture with her mobile hand, and Honor inhaled a deep breath.
"However, the question I'm sure Andrew stepped outside so I could ask you
was whether it was genuine Admiralty business that detained Hamish, or simply
good strategy on a more personal level."
"Both,
I think," Emily said, green eyes twinkling. "Admiralty House has been
keeping him late quite a bit these past few months," she went on more
soberly, "and I don't doubt for a moment that he really is busy trying to
club the latest batch of pseudogators to crawl out of the swamp. But it's also
true we both thought it might be a bit more . . . politic if he stayed busy
with routine matters while I got my friend Honor settled in here at White Haven
instead of rushing home to greet you himself. Not," she added dryly,
"that I don't expect his 'greeting' to be about as enthusiastic as you're
likely to survive when he does get here."
Honor felt
herself actually blushing, and Emily laughed delightedly.
"Oh,
Honor! You really are so, so . . . so Sphinxian!"
"I
can't help it," Honor protested. "I mean, Mother's from Beowulf, so I
suppose I ought to be more, well, liberated, or whatever, but I'm not,
all right?" She gave the older woman's shoulder a gently cautious shake.
"You and Hamish may be from decadent old Manticore, but you're right, I am
from Sphinx. And, just to make things worse, for the last eighteen T-years
I've been from Grayson, too. Can you think of a planet less well suited
to developing a sophisticated attitude about this sort of thing?"
"Actually,
I'd think the Grayson element might help, really," Emily said, only
half-humorously. "I mean, they do have that tradition of multiple
wives."
"That's
multiple wives, Emily," Honor said dryly. "They're not so big
on unmarried lovers. Especially when one of the lovers in question is married
to someone else."
"I
wonder if they might be just a bit more understanding than you think they
would." Emily shook her head quickly, and continued before Honor could
open her mouth. "I'm not suggesting you run home to find out, Honor!
You're a steadholder. I understand that, and I understand you're not free to
run the risks as Steadholder Harrington that you might run as simply Honor
Harrington, just as you and Hamish can't openly display your feelings here in
the Star Kingdom after the way those bastards tried to smear both of you last
year. But I really do think you're both still being harder on yourselves for
feelings neither of you sought than most other people would be."
"You're
a remarkable woman, Emily Alexander," Honor said after a moment. "I
see exactly why Hamish loves you as much as he does." She touched the
older woman's cheek gently. "And I don't deserve to have you understand so
deeply."
"You're
not a very good judge of what you deserve, Honor," Emily said.
"But," she went on more briskly, "before we get too maudlin, why
don't we take ourselves off to the conservatory?" She grinned
mischievously. "If we hurry, we can disappear before Colonel LaFollet
comes back inside and see how long it takes him to find you again. Won't that
be fun?"
"Mr.
Secretary, Colonel Nesbitt is here for his three o'clock."
"Hm?"
Secretary of State Arnold Giancola looked up from the correspondence on his
display with a bemused expression. He gazed at his administrative assistant for
a second or two, then blinked. "I'm sorry, Alicia. What did you say?"
Alicia
Hampton suppressed a temptation to shake her head in fond exasperation. Arnold
Giancola was by far the most satisfactory boss she'd ever had. He had a
reputation for ambition, and she could believe it, but he was unfailingly
courteous to his staffers, charismatic, and generally thoughtful. And he'd also
become increasingly absent-minded as the interstellar diplomatic situation
darkened. He was working far too hard these days, and he'd taken to leaving the
security systems in his office up all the time so he could be certain no one
would interrupt him while he did it. Which only helped him forget things even
more thoroughly.
"I
said Colonel Nesbitt is here for his three o'clock, Sir," she repeated.
"Oh?"
Giancola frowned, then, "Oh! Nesbitt. I'd forgotten all about him. Ask him
to come in, please, Alicia!"
"Of
course, Mr. Secretary." Alicia smiled at him and stepped back into the
outer office.
"The
Secretary will see you now, Colonel," she told the tallish, gray-eyed,
broad shouldered man in civilian clothing.
"Thank
you," Nesbitt said, pocketing the reader he'd been perusing while he
waited for the appointed time.
"Oh,
Colonel," she said quietly as he started to step past her, "please do
remember that the Secretary's calendar is very tight. He has another
appointment scheduled in twenty-five minutes." Nesbitt looked at her
quizzically, and she smiled apologetically. "He's been a bit more
absent-minded and forgetful the last couple of days. He's likely to
forget, and I don't want to cut you off before you're done when I announce his
next visitor."
"Oh, I
see!" Nesbitt's expression cleared, and he smiled back at her. "I'll
try to keep him focused, Ms. Hampton. And he's lucky he's got someone like you
looking after him."
"We
all try, Colonel," Alicia said. "It would be a lot easier if he
didn't drive himself as hard as he does."
Nesbitt
smiled again, sympathetically, and walked past her into the inner office. He
glanced casually at his wrist chrono as the doors closed behind him, and noted
the inconspicuous green telltale on the instrument's face with satisfaction.
That little device was of Solarian manufacture, not Havenite, and it confirmed
that Giancola's security systems were all up and running.
"Mr.
Secretary," he said, advancing across the deep carpet towards the
half-hectare or so of desk behind which Giancola sat.
"Jean-Claude,"
Giancola said, in a brisk, no-nonsense tone which went very oddly with the
preoccupied façade he was so careful to project for his staff . . . among other
people. "Come in. Sit down. We haven't got much time."
"I
know." Nesbitt seated himself in the indicated, comfortable chair, and
crossed his legs. "Your charming assistant is rather concerned about you,
you know, Mr. Secretary. She reminded me of the short window we have for this
meeting because she was afraid you're getting absent-minded enough you wouldn't
remember."
"Good."
Giancola smiled.
"Really?"
Nesbitt cocked his head. "Actually, I'm wondering if it's really good
tradecraft, if you don't mind my saying so."
"I
don't mind your saying it, although that doesn't necessarily mean I agree with
you. Why do you think it might not be?"
"Kevin
Usher's no fool, whatever public image he chooses to project," Nesbitt
said. "I don't know whether there's any truth to the rumors about his wife
and Cachat—I think a lot of people wonder exactly what's going on there—but I
do know the rumors about his drunkenness are just that: rumors.
Unsubstantiated ones."
"And?"
Giancola prompted just a bit impatiently. "It's not as if I hadn't figured
that out for myself, Jean-Claude."
"And a
man who's busy presenting that kind of false image to the rest of the universe
is likely to wonder if someone else, especially someone who seems to have
changed as much as you have, isn't doing the same thing. And if you are, he's
going to wonder why."
"Oh."
Giancola sat back, drumming lightly on his desktop with the fingers of one
hand, then shrugged. "I see where you were going now. You may even have a
point. On the other hand, it doesn't much matter what I do; Usher's
going to think I'm up to something however I act. So I'm basically playing a
shell game. I'm leaving my security systems up most of the time, no matter who
I'm seeing, which means there's no way for him to tell whose conversations I really
want to be certain he can't overhear. I'm sure he understands that;
my little charade is to help explain to my staff and everyone else why I keep
'forgetting' to switch the jammers off. It isn't really directed at him at all,
except, possibly, in a very secondary sort of way. I do like to spend the
occasional minute thinking about how incredibly irritating he must find the
entire thing, though."
"I
see." Nesbitt regarded him narrowly, then shrugged. "If it amuses
you, I don't imagine it's really going to do any harm. Personally, I'd find the
entire thing much too exhausting to maintain, but that's up to you."
"If it
starts getting tiring, I can always stop. Usher will probably find that even
more irritating." Giancola smiled nastily. "But we're going to have
to talk about that some other time. Right now, I need your report."
"Of
course." Nesbitt folded his hands over his raised knee and tilted his head
thoughtfully to one side. "I'm happy to say Grosclaude wasn't quite as
clever as he thought," he said. "You're right—he did retain a
complete file of the correspondence. Both sets of correspondence.
Unfortunately for him, he knew he wouldn't be able to get the file off
Manticore with him when he was expelled. They weren't going to be very
concerned with observing all the niceties of diplomatic immunity after we'd
just launched what amounted to a sneak attack against them, and Manty
surveillance is too good for him to get anything by it if they pulled out all
the stops. And even if they didn't find it, there was always the possibility
the security types waiting for him at our end might. So he piggybacked the
information through the diplomatic bag several days before the balloon went up
and had it remailed to a private account in Nouveau Paris after the bag got
here."
"And?"
Giancola said when he paused.
"And,
also unfortunately for him, it was an account I already knew about. Courtesy of
a few backdoors the new management still hasn't found yet, I was able to track
the file to his account and also when he pulled it back out after his own
arrival from Manticore and lodged it in the secure database of his attorney's
law firm. Along with a cover letter directing that the file in question be sent
to Kevin Usher's personal attention should anything . . . unfortunate happen to
him."
"Damn."
Giancola's mouth tightened. "I was afraid he'd done something like
that."
"Only
sensible thing for him to do," Nesbitt agreed. "Although, if he
really knew what he was doing, he never would've used this sort of approach.
He'd have buried it on an old-fashioned record chip under a mattress somewhere
and used someone he'd never had any traceable relationship with before as his
bagman. This way, he might as well have left me an engraved invitation."
"What
do you mean?" Giancola asked intently.
"I
mean that the central net is still riddled with StateSec backdoors, Mr.
Secretary. To really nail them all shut, they'd have to slag the old system
down and start from scratch. Oh," Nesbitt shrugged, "they actually
did a fairly good job when LePic and Usher set things up over at Justice. I'd
guess they probably managed to find and close a good ninety percent of them.
But there were so many in place that they never had a prayer of getting all of
them. I'm sure they're still looking, and of course not knowing for sure
whether or not they've found my little keyholes does tend to make life a
bit more exciting. There's always the chance they have found them and
they're just sitting there, monitoring, letting me tie the noose around my own
neck before they pounce."
"I
hope you'll pardon me if I, for one, don't find the image particularly
amusing," Giancola said tartly.
"I
might as well find it amusing." Nesbitt shrugged again. "I'm taking
every precaution I can think of, but if the precautions don't work, there's not
much I can do about it. I guess it's the equivalent of your amusement at the
notion of pissing Usher off with your silly little mind games."
Giancola
looked at him steadily for a few seconds, then snorted.
"All
right," he said briskly. "Let's cut to the chase. Should I assume
from what you've said that you've got access to Yves' file at his
attorney's?"
"Yes."
Nesbitt smiled. "I can make the file—and his letter of
instruction—disappear without a trace any time I want to."
"I'm
sure you could," Giancola said with a slow smile of his own. "But if
you've got the access to disappear it, then you've also got the access to change
it, don't you?"
"Well,
yes," Nesbitt said slowly, smile transforming into a slight, thoughtful
frown. "Why?"
"I
feel quite certain Yves would vastly prefer not to blow the whistle on our
little . . . modifications. After all, if I go down, he goes down, and I rather
suspect—given all the people who have been killed in the meantime—that Usher
and Pritchart would make sure both of us went down rather messily. So what he's
got is entirely in the nature of insurance, state's evidence he can use to
bargain with if someone else figures out what the two of us did, not anything
he really wants to use. Which means he's not going to do anything with it
unless he starts to feel threatened. Or, of course, unless something really
does happen to him."
"Which
is essentially what you're thinking in terms of, no?" Nesbitt said.
"Unfortunately,
yes," Giancola said, and Nesbitt was almost certain the regret in his
voice was genuine. Not enough to dissuade him for a moment, but genuine.
"But my point is that there's no need for us to hurry. We can take the
time to make sure we do things right."
"Unless
something happens to him which really is an accident," Nesbitt pointed
out. "He could get run over by a ground car, you know, or break his neck
skiing. He spends enough time doing that he could even die of sheer
physical exhaustion. Hell, he could get hit by lightning! In which case his
letter of instruction would be opened even though we—you—genuinely hadn't had a
thing to do with it."
"Not
very likely," Giancola replied. "I think the odds are fairly heavily
in our favor in that respect. Still, you're right. It does behoove us to move
expeditiously."
"Which
I could do much better if you'd tell me exactly where we're moving to."
"Well,
if Yves has gone to such lengths to be certain incriminating evidence against
me will surface if something happens to him, then I think it's only fair for us
to see to it that the incriminating evidence is there."
"What?"
Nesbitt didn't raise his voice. Indeed, it went flatter. But there was no
amusement at all in his suddenly intent gray eyes.
"Relax,
Jean-Claude. I realize it sounds bizarre, but consider this scenario. Here you
are, my senior internal security officer, responsible for finding leaks
anywhere in the Department. Eventually, as you and I are both painfully aware,
the current unpleasantness with Manticore is going to come to an end, one way
or the other. When it does, there are going to be some very hard questions
asked about the discrepancies between their version of our diplomatic
correspondence and our own. Original documents are going to be compared by the
victors, whoever they are, and neither side is going to be particularly amused
by what they find. So, all things being equal, I think it would be a very good
thing if you—efficient, hard-working person that you are—were the one
who discovered that the documents had been tampered with from our end."
"I
hesitate to suggest that you might be out of your ever loving mind, Mr.
Secretary," Nesbitt said. "On the other hand, the possibility does
present itself to my keen intellect."
"Don't
worry, I'm not." Giancola leaned forward in his comfortable chair, his
expression suddenly very intent. "The problem is that the documents were
tampered with from our end. With access to both sets of originals, it
wouldn't take Usher very long at all to prove that, and I'm confident the
Manties could do it even more quickly. So our best defense is to make the
discovery ourselves and be properly horrified to learn that my trusted
colleague of many years, Yves Grosclaude, was responsible for the manipulation
which led to the current, horrible bloodshed."
"And
just how did he accomplish that?" Nesbitt asked in a fascinated tone.
"Why,
by way of one of those StateSec backdoors you were just telling me about. After
all, he was associated with the old Foreign Ministry's internal security
services. Apparently, he was closer to StateSec than we ever suspected, and he
used one of the old StateSec access programs to hack into my secure database
and acquire copies of my personal and official encryption keys. That's how he
was able to forge doctored versions of the correspondence and pass them off as
genuine to the Manties."
"And
the alterations in the Manties' notes?"
"He
did that the way it was actually done," Giancola said with a smile.
"He stole the Manticoran Foreign Office's encryption key from my secure
database, as well."
"He
did what?" Nesbitt asked very carefully.
"So,
StateSec did manage to bury one or two skeletons in Nouveau Paris
without your knowing about it, did they?" Giancola chuckled. "You
know InSec and StateSec—all of the old régime's intelligence services, really,
except possibly NavInt—were always more focused on political espionage than
military intelligence. I think that's one reason Saint-Just was always so ready
to embrace political operations, like that attempt to assassinate Elizabeth and
Benjamin. And why, frankly, StateSec did such a piss-poor job on military intelligence
all the way through the last war. They weren't very good at it because their
institutional mindset just didn't work that way. But they were quite good
at political and diplomatic espionage. I found some fascinating things in the
Foreign Ministry archives when they were handed over to State after the
Constitutional Convention. Including a few notes which suggest that Queen
Elizabeth's father's grav-skiing 'accident' wasn't quite as accidental as
everyone thought it was. Which, coupled with what happened in Yeltsin, might
just help explain why she hates us with such outstanding virulence.
"At
any rate, among StateSec's accomplishments was the corruption of one of Foreign
Secretary Descroix's senior staffers. Someone senior enough, in fact, to have
physical access to her official files."
"My
God," Nesbitt said, finally startled out of his normal air of amused
cynicism, "they actually stole Descroix's encryption key?"
"Not
her personal key, no, but her departmental key. Which is another of the reasons
I'm fairly confident the Manties would quickly figure out who did what if they
got a chance to compare the raw originals. I'm going to be dreadfully
embarrassed when I realize no one here in State realized we never saw
Descroix's personal key on any of the correspondence. Of course, there
was no reason why we should have felt unduly suspicious, since all of it had
the official Manticoran Foreign Office codes, but still—"
He shrugged
self-deprecatingly.
"So,"
Nesbitt sat back in his chair once more, drawing his normal persona back about
himself, "Grosclaude stole both sets of keys from your database?"
"Exactly.
It's going to be up to you to actually set up the access he would have
used. On the other hand, you're also the efficient and dedicated security agent
who will discover the security breach, so be sure you set it up in a way that
makes discovering it plausible."
"I can
do that," Nesbitt said thoughtfully. "It'll take some time, though.
Especially to establish that all of this happened months ago."
"I
assumed it would." Giancola nodded. "That's why I'm so pleased by the
realization that Yves isn't going to be in any hurry to start blowing whistles.
We've got some time to work with. But just to be on the safe side, we
should probably deal with his insurance file first."
"Yes,
tell me what you've got in mind for that, if you don't want me to simply make
it go away."
"Two
things," Giancola said. "First, we need a substitute letter of
instruction to his attorney. One which has nothing at all to do with the contents
of that particular file. Can you do that?"
"No
problem," Nesbitt said, after a few seconds' thought. "He used a
standard self-generated legal e-form for it. Probably didn't trust
attorney-client privilege to hold if his lawyer knew what he had in mind ahead
of time. Since no flesh-and-blood knows what should be in it, no one's
going to ask any questions if I alter its content."
"Good.
Go ahead and get that done immediately. And once we've defused that particular
landmine, we need you to go into his existing file and make some judicious
alterations. I don't want you to get rid of it entirely. I don't even want you
to make it incriminate someone else. Instead, I want you to turn it into a
forgery."
"Forgery?"
"Yes.
It's going to have to be carefully done, but I want that file to prove Yves
planned on setting me up as the fall guy for his manipulation of
the notes. I want it to be good, but I want there to be a provable flaw in it,
something a good security type like yourself can spot."
"You're
figuring that if the fellow who really did it all also manufactured evidence
that you were responsible for it, it will demonstrate that, in fact, you
didn't have a thing to do with it," Nesbitt said slowly, gray eyes
beginning to gleam.
"Exactly.
The only way to 'prove' I didn't do it is to provide someone else who
obviously did. And if the someone else who did it also manufactured evidence to
implicate me in order to divert suspicion from himself, he obviously wouldn't
have tried to divert it to someone who was really his accomplice and might have
evidence of his own to prove his guilt as part of a deal with
prosecutors."
"Neat,"
Nesbitt said after several moments of consideration. "Complicated. And I
can see a half-dozen places right off the top of my head where the entire thing
could go off the rails. But it's doable. It really is. And it's so damned
Byzantine and filled with double-think and possible failure points that it
would never have occurred to a professional like Usher—or me, for that matter.
I think I can pull it all together for you, but putting all the pieces in place
is going to take even longer than I'd thought. I don't like having that long
for something to go wrong in."
"Not a
problem," Giancola disagreed, waving one hand in a dismissive gesture.
"As soon as you've dealt with the lawyer's instructions, Yves can go ahead
and suffer that accident. It will have to be a very accidental accident,
you understand?"
"That
I can handle," Nesbitt said confidently.
"Then
as soon as that's out of the way, you can move on to putting all of the other
bits and pieces together. Once everything's been neatly tied to Yves, we can
'discover' the evidence anytime we want to. For that matter, we might even
decide the thing to do is to steer Usher and his FIA to the evidence. Let Kevin
turn it up. In fact, if I weren't afraid we'd be getting too fancy, I'd
almost prefer for him to find Yves' evidence falsely implicating me and accept
it initially, until State's own security types detected the fact that it
was a forgery. Having him suspect me, or even formally accuse me, when I turn
out to be totally innocent, would help me tilt the balance in the Cabinet
against LePic."
He gazed
thoughtfully at the ceiling for several heartbeats, then shook his head
regretfully.
"No.
We've got enough balls in the air without adding that one to it."
"You
have no idea how glad I, as the wizard charged with conjuring all these minor
miracles for you, am to hear you say that," Nesbitt said dryly.
"I'm
always pleased when I'm able to make my associates happy," Giancola
assured him. Then the Secretary of State's eyes narrowed once more. "But
now that you're a happy wizard, do you really believe you can pull all of this
off?"
"Yes.
I'm not absolutely positive of it—not with it all coming at me cold, this way.
But as I said, I think it's doable. I'm going to have to sit down and look at
it very carefully, probably for several days, at least, before I can tell you
more than that. At an absolute minimum, though, I'm certain I can disappear
Grosclaude's evidence if it turns out we have to do that, instead. And I feel
reasonably confident I can arrange the database hack you want and make it
crystal-clear he was behind it. As for the rest, I'm going to have to see how
it all comes together before I can tell you positively one way or the
other."
"Take
your time—within reason, of course." Giancola grimaced. "One thing I
think we can count on is that this war isn't going to end tomorrow, or even
next week. We've got time to do it right . . . and we'd damned well better not
do it wrong."
"That
was delicious, Jackson," Honor sighed appreciatively as Jackson McGwire,
White Haven's butler, oversaw the removal of the dessert dishes. Or, more
precisely, of the dessert dish, singular, since the only one on the
table was the one in front of Honor. "Please tell Tabitha that she outdid
herself on the chocolate mousse."
"I'll
be happy to, Your Grace," McGwire said, with a small half-bow and a
twinkle. Honor's genetically modified metabolism's need for calories was
phenomenal, and Tabitha Dupuy, White Haven's cook, and her staff had taken it
as a personal challenge. So far, they had yet to repeat themselves with a
single dessert offering, despite the recent frequency of her visits to the
Alexander family's seat, and Honor and her hosts had a small betting pool going
on how long they could keep it up.
Honor
started to say something else, then paused as Nimitz sat up straighter in his
treecat-sized highchair. He and Samantha, his mate, sat between their adopted
humans, and now the male 'cat raised both true-hands to the top of his head,
palms turned inward, raised first and second fingers on both hands signing the
letter "U" and wiggling backward. From there, the right true-hand
slid down, the palm facing his body, fingers extended and facing left, and
moved from left to right. Then his true-hands crooked in the sign for the letter
"C", with the tip of its thumb resting on the upturned first finger
of his other true-hand before both true-hands came together in front of him,
index fingers extended and held together, and moved across his body, fingers
separating and coming back together again as they traveled. And, finally, the
second finger of his right true-hand touched his lips before the hand moved
down and out a bit, while his thumb rubbed over the same finger.
"Of
course, Nimitz," McGwire said with a smile. "I'll inform Ms. Dupuy
personally."
"Please
do," Honor reinforced, reaching out to rub the treecat's ears
affectionately. "While I'm not a connoisseur of rabbit and celery stew,
Stinker here certainly is. If he says it's delicious, Tabitha could
probably get rich operating a treecat restaurant chain!"
"I'll
certainly tell her that, too, Your Grace," McGwire assured her.
"I
think that's probably all we'll need, Jackson," Hamish Alexander,
Thirteenth Earl of White Haven, said from his place at the head of the table.
"If we do discover we need anything—or if Her Grace should discover she
has a hollow ankle somewhere that still needs filling—we'll buzz."
"Of
course, Milord," McGwire replied with a smile, and followed the footman
with the tray of dishes out of the dining room.
The dining
room in question was one of the smaller ones White Haven boasted. The formal
dining room was big enough for the massive parties a Manticoran aristocrat—even
one with as little time for "social fripperies" as Hamish
Alexander—was expected to host from time to time. Since he, Emily, and Honor
were the only humans at the table, that cavernous chamber had not been called
upon. Instead, Emily had directed that supper be served in the far tinier
dining room off her personal suite. It was an intimate little room, built into
the side of one of White Haven's older wings, with floor-to-ceiling windows
which looked out over the landscaped east lawn, lovely under the light of Roc,
Manticore's single moon. The red ember of Phoenix, otherwise known as
Manticore-A II, rested on the horizon, just above the tips of the Old Earth
spruces fringing the lawn, and the gleaming gems of at least a dozen orbital
platforms moved visibly against the stars. Emily and Hamish often dined there,
because of its proximity to her rooms, but it was rare for them to invite
anyone else to join them.
The door
closed behind McGwire and the footman, and silence fell for a moment. Despite
everything, Honor still felt a bit awkward, and she tasted a slight, answering
spike of awkwardness from Hamish. The earl took a sip from his wine glass, and
his wife smiled slightly. Emily was genuinely and affectionately amused, Honor
knew, and that was important to her.
"Well,"
Hamish said after a moment, setting his glass down precisely, "I'd say
Samantha was probably as happy to see Nimitz as Emily and I were to see you,
Honor."
It was his
turn to reach out and caress the ears of the small, dappled treecat sitting
beside him. Nimitz's mate pressed back against his fingertips, and the loud
buzz of her purr made the use of any signs totally unnecessary. Emily and Honor
chuckled, and Nimitz bleeked a laugh of his own before he jumped lightly from
his own highchair to join Samantha in hers. The two 'cats draped their
prehensile tails about one another, and Nimitz's happy, bone-deep purr mingled
with Samantha's.
"I
think that's probably a safe statement, dear," Emily observed dryly.
"Actually,"
Honor said more seriously, "it's really hard on them to be
separated." She shook her head. "I've come to suspect that one reason
they're the only mated pair that ever both adopted humans is the separation
factor. Treecats are literally almost a part of one another, especially mated
pairs, and it's almost . . . physically painful for them to be apart from one
another as much as these two have been since Samantha adopted Hamish."
"I
know," Hamish sighed, looking at Honor, and she tasted the multiple layers
of meaning in his tone. "Sometimes I'm afraid she'll come to regret having
done it."
"Oh,
no," Honor said, returning his gaze. "It's awkward, and neither one
of them likes all the consequences, but 'cats don't look back over decisions of
the heart, Hamish. As Emily pointed out to both of us once upon a time, they're
remarkably sane in that respect."
"As
well they should be," Emily pronounced. She looked back and forth between
husband and Honor and started to say something, but Honor felt her change
direction before she spoke. "On the other hand, it's not as if Samantha
hasn't been able to find things to occupy her while the two of you were away,
Honor."
"No?"
Honor looked at Samantha, who returned her gaze and groomed her whiskers with
an undeniable air of smugness.
"Oh,
no. She and Dr. Arif formally opened the conference day before yesterday,"
Emily said.
"They
did?" Honor sat a bit straighter, her eyes brightening. "How did it
go?" she demanded eagerly.
"Well,"
Emily said with a fondly amused smile. "Very well, in fact. Of course, it
was only the first day, Honor. You do understand that it's going to take a long
time for them to make any real progress, don't you?"
"Of
course I do." Honor shook her head, her own lips twitching as she tasted
Emily's response to her own eagerness. "But the entire idea is incredibly
exciting to a Sphinxian, especially one who's been adopted. After so many
centuries when none of the experts could even agree on how intelligent the
'cats really were—or weren't—seeing them sit down with humans to formally
discuss ways treecats can integrate themselves into human society as full
partners is—Well," she shook her head again, "it's something there
aren't really words to describe."
"And
it was all your idea, wasn't it, love?" Hamish said to Samantha, reaching
out to stroke her silken pelt.
"My
impression is that Samantha has a rather forceful will," Emily observed
dryly, and Honor laughed.
"From
what the other 'cats have had to say since they learned to sign, that's
probably as big an understatement as to say the Queen has a rather negative
view of the Republic of Haven," she said.
"Which,"
Hamish said, his tone and his emotions both suddenly darker, "is apt, but
not as amusing as it might have been a day or so ago."
"What
do you mean?" Honor asked with abrupt anxiety, but Emily interrupted
before he could reply.
"Now
that is enough, Hamish," she said sternly. Her husband looked at
her, and she waggled her right index finger in his direction. "We haven't
seen Honor—you haven't seen her—for almost two weeks," she
continued. "During that time, you've been wrestling with affairs at the
Admiralty, and she's been dealing with the affairs of her Steading. Neither of
you, however, is on duty tonight. You will not discuss the military situation,
the diplomatic situation, or the domestic political situation—Manticoran or Grayson—tonight.
Do I make myself sufficiently clear?"
"Yes,"
Hamish said after a moment, blue eyes smiling at her. "Yes, you do."
"Good.
And don't forget, either of you, that my furry spies," she waved at the
treecats, "will report faithfully to me if my instructions are
violated."
"Traitors
that they are," Hamish muttered with a grin.
"Treason,
my dear, is often simply a matter of perspective." Emily told him, and her
life-support chair moved silently back from the table on its counter-grav.
"And now, why don't the two of you run on? I've had a long day, and you do
have a lot of catching up to do. But no shoptalk!"
"No,
Ma'am," Honor agreed meekly.
She and
Hamish rose, and Hamish opened the door for Emily's chair. He bent and kissed
his wife, and she reached up to run her working hand lightly over his dark
hair. Then she was gone, and Hamish and Honor looked at one another.
"You
know," Honor said very softly, "neither one of us deserves her."
"I
don't know anyone who could," Hamish said simply.
He crossed
the room to her, and she folded into his arms. Despite her own height for a
woman, Hamish was slightly taller than she was, and his arms felt incredibly
good about her. She leaned into his embrace, savoring the taste of his
emotions, his welcome, and his love. The "mind-glow," treecats called
it, and as she felt its bright power and savored once again the way the two of
them fitted together on so very many levels, she knew exactly where the term
had come from.
His mouth
met hers, and her own arms went about him. Their lips clung together for what
seemed a very long time, and then, reluctantly, she leaned back and looked
across at him.
"I've
missed you," she said quietly. "But you do realize that this is
crazy?"
"Not
crazy," he disagreed with a small, crooked smile. "Just . . .
politically unwise."
"And
arguably in violation of the Articles of War," Honor pointed out.
"Nonsense."
He shook his head. "You know Article One-Nineteen only applies to
personnel in the same direct chain of command."
"And
you're First Lord and I'm a fleet commander designate."
"And
the First Lord is a civilian, my dear." Hamish's mouth quirked in combined
amusement and very real and bitter disappointment. "If I were First Space
Lord, you might have a point. As it is, I couldn't legally give you a direct
order even if I wanted to. Besides—"
A crisp,
loud bleek interrupted him, and he looked down. Samantha returned his look
sternly. Her right true-hand rose, its first two fingers closing onto her thumb
in the sign for the letter "N", before both true-hands moved in front
of her, right true hand in the palm-out sign for the letter "B"
arcing from side to side in front of her to hit the back of her left true-hand,
closed in the sign for the letter "S" before opening back into the sign
for "N" and sliding down her left true-hand's fingers and palm.
"All
right," Hamish said with a laugh. "All right! No more business, I
swear."
Samantha
sniffed, flirting her tail, and Honor echoed Hamish's laughed.
"Have
you ever noticed how thoroughly our lives are managed for us?" she asked.
"It was bad enough when it was just Nimitz. Then along came Mac, then
Andrew, and Miranda, and Simon and Spencer, and Samantha. And now Emily."
"We're
obviously outnumbered and outgunned," Hamish agreed. "In which case,
it looks like our only real option is to surrender."
"Well,
between them and Emily, Nico, Sandra, and Andrew have all conspired to see to
it that no one is going to disturb us," Honor said gently, reaching out to
cup the side of his face in her right palm. "And since they've all gone to
such pains for us, I suppose we'd best be about it."
* * *
The buzz in
her ear woke her.
Forty-five
years of naval service had trained her to awaken instantly and fully alert, but
this morning, her eyes opened slowly, luxuriously as Nimitz's gentle amusement
filtered into her mind over their link. Hamish's body was warm, pressed against
her spine, his left arm flung across her. She'd almost forgotten how comforting
it could be to wake up that way, and she smiled as she roused further, tasting
Hamish's sleeping mind-glow.
He was
dreaming, and it was obviously a good dream. Honor had been surprised, although
she realized she shouldn't have been, when she discovered she could taste a
sleeper's emotions as well as those of someone who was awake. She couldn't
actually tell what Hamish was dreaming about, the way a treecat could have done
with another 'cat, but the way he stirred slightly, fingers of his left hand
tightening, suggested at least the subject.
Nimitz
bleeked at her softly and leaned forward to touch her nose with his own. Then
he sat up, and his right true-hand formed the sign for the letter "C"
and touched his right shoulder, then tapped the back of his left true-hand's
wrist with the first finger of his right true-hand.
Honor
frowned, then twitched the muscles of her left eye socket in the pattern which
brought up the time/date display in her artificial eye's field of view. The
numbers obediently appeared, and she sat up abruptly.
"Hmmm?
Whazzat?" Hamish mutter-grumbled as she slid out from under his arm and
swung her feet onto the floor.
"Wake
up!" she said, turning to bend back over him. His eyes opened, and she
tweaked the tip of his nose gently. "We're late!" she continued.
"We
can't be," Hamish protested, sitting up in bed himself. His eyes lit as he
completed the waking up process, and as she tasted his emotions, she was
abruptly reminded that she didn't have a stitch on.
"Oh,
yes we can be," she told him, and swatted his right hand when he reached
for her. "And despite all the lascivious things going through your head
right now, we don't have time to do anything about them."
"Nico
will get us up in plenty of time," Hamish objected.
"Unless,
perhaps, somebody suggested to him that he shouldn't," Honor replied. His
eyes widened suddenly, then narrowed, and she nodded. "The same thought
had occurred to me," she said.
"She
did seem rather insistent on our staying away from shoptalk," Hamish
conceded, climbing out of bed on the other side. "On the other hand, she
also knows we're both supposed to be seeing Elizabeth this morning."
"Who
happens to be her cousin and probably won't have her beheaded if we happen to
be late because she didn't happen to wake us up in time," Honor pointed
out. "Unfortunately for that polite fiction all our henchmen are working
so hard to maintain for us, however, Nimitz says Andrew's sense of duty is about
to cause him to knock on your door. At which point it will be rather difficult
to pretend I spent the night in the Blue Suite where I was supposed to
be!"
"These
contortions aren't really necessary, you know," Hamish said reasonably,
watching her slip into the kimono which had somehow ended up on the floor.
"As you just pointed out, all our people know what's really going
on."
"Maybe.
No, certainly. But it's going to make Andrew feel awkward the day he finally
admits to both of us what he already knows."
"And
what about you?" Hamish asked more gently, and she shrugged as she belted
her sash.
"I
don't really know," she admitted. She smiled. "Mind you, despite a
few lingering spasms of guilt, I'm delighted with the way things are working
out, so far, at least. And given the fact that I already know that he knows
that I know that he knows—well, you get the picture. Given that, I really don't
expect it to be particularly uncomfortable when the day finally comes. But I'm
not quite sure." Her smile turned wry. "Like I told Emily, there's
still a lot of Sphinx and Grayson in me, and the fact that my love-life's been
remarkably similar to a nun's since Paul was killed doesn't really help."
"I can
see that," he said, and she smiled again, pleased by the fact that neither
of them felt awkward using Paul Tankersley's name. "Still," he
continued, "you do realize that sooner or later this is going to
come out?"
"At
the moment," Honor scooped Nimitz up in her arms and held him, since her
kimono lacked the specially padded shoulders built into her uniform tunics and
Grayson-style civilian dress, "I'd prefer later, if you don't mind. I
don't have any idea at all how Grayson is going to react when it finds out. And
given what we all went through with the Opposition trying to insist we were
already lovers when we weren't, I don't even want to think about what the
political press would do if the word that now we are got out."
"Might
be the best time," he suggested, climbing out of bed and pulling on his
own robe as he escorted her to the bedroom door. "There's so much going on
on the war front, and in Silesia and the Talbott Cluster, that it might even
pass relatively unnoticed."
"And
just what episode in our past suggests to you that anything about a
relationship between you and me could 'pass relatively unnoticed'?" she
inquired tartly.
"A
point," he admitted, and drew her close to kiss her before she opened the
door. "I tend to forget sometimes what good copy 'the Salamander'
makes."
"That's
one way to put it," she said, and poked him in the navel with two fingers,
hard enough to make him "oof." Then she slipped through the door,
with a cautious glance up and down the hall to assure herself LaFollet wasn't
already on his way. "Now get yourself up and dressed," she told him
sternly, and scurried down the hall to the discreet cross passage which
connected the Blue Suite to the private family section of White Haven.
She let
herself into the suite the back way, and Nimitz bleeked with laughter as the
terminal on the table beside the bed which hadn't been slept in chimed gently.
"Shut
up, Stinker!" she said, dumping him on the bed, and he laughed harder as
she accepted the com call voice-only.
"Yes?"
she said.
"We're
running late, My Lady," Andrew LaFollet's voice said. He was too far away
for her to actually taste his emotions, but she didn't need to in order to
recognize the relief in his voice. "Ah, this is the third time I've
screened you, My Lady," he added.
"Sorry,"
she replied. "I'll try to make up for the lost time."
"Of
course, My Lady," he said, and she threw off her kimono once again and
dashed for the shower.
* * *
"You
look lovely this morning, Honor," Emily observed as Honor stepped into the
sunlit dining room with LaFollet on her heels. She wore uniform today, complete
with the Star of Grayson on its crimson ribbon, and "lovely" was not
the precise adjective she would have chosen herself. "And so well
rested," Emily continued with a certain gently malicious relish.
"Thank
you," Honor said as LaFollet pulled her chair out for her and she seated
herself. "Perhaps that's because I seem to have missed my wakeup call this
morning."
"Goodness,"
Emily said placidly. "I wonder how that could have happened? Nico is
usually so efficient about these things."
"Yes,"
Honor agreed affably. "For that matter, so is Mac . . . usually."
"Oh,
well, don't feel too flustered," Emily told her. "I screened Mount
Royal and spoke to Elizabeth. I told her you and Hamish both seemed to be
running a bit late this morning, and she asked me to assure you that timing
isn't that critical. She just requested we screen her again when you actually
leave."
"I
see." Honor regarded her across the table for a moment, then shook her
head in surrender. "Why am I not surprised that you can snag even the Queen
of Manticore in your nets?"
"You
make me sound so devious, my dear," Emily reproved her gently.
"No,
not devious—just . . . capable."
"I
suppose I could accept that as a compliment, so I will," Emily said
graciously. "Now eat."
Honor
looked up as one of the White Haven servants entered the dining room with a
tray of food. It was a fairly typical breakfast for someone with her enhanced
metabolism—a thick stack of pancakes, eggs Benedict, tomato juice, croissants,
melon, and a steaming carafe of hot chocolate—and her stomach rumbled happily
at the sight. But then the tray was set before her, and she felt an abrupt stab
of queasiness as the smell of the food hit her.
She
grimaced, and Emily cocked an eyebrow at her.
"Are
you all right, Honor?" she asked, with none of the teasing edge of banter
of their earlier conversation.
"Fine,
fine," Honor said, suppressing the flicker of almost-nausea firmly, and
reached for her fork. "I'm just not as hungry as usual this morning.
Possibly because despite your efforts to rearrange our schedule, I'm still
feeling a little flustered at the notion of arriving late for a formal audience
with my monarch."
"Only
one of your monarchs," Emily pointed out.
"True,"
Honor conceded, and decided to start with the pancakes, whose aroma seemed more
congenial than the scent of the eggs. Her stomach heaved rebelliously at the
first bite, but it apparently decided to settle down quickly after she
swallowed.
"Sorry
I'm late," a deep voice said, and she and Emily looked up as Hamish
Alexander stepped into the dining room. "I seem to have missed my wakeup
call," he added, then blinked as both women burst into laughter.
The sting
ships in Winton blue and silver which had escorted them from White Haven banked
gently away to either side as the armored limousine in Harrington Steading
livery came in across the sparkling waters of Jason Bay and crossed the
threshold into Mount Royal Palace's defensive envelope. Honor suspected that
very few citizens of Landing ever really considered the fact that Mount Royal
was one of the most heavily defended pieces of dirt on any of the Star
Kingdom's three inhabited planets. She was aware of it primarily because
of the necessary interfacing between her own armsmen, the Queen's Own, and
Palace Security, and even as a serving naval officer, she'd been astonished at
the amount of firepower hidden away under the various innocuous looking weather
domes and secondary structures scattered over the immaculate grounds.
None of
that firepower was directed at her, however, and she glanced at Hamish as
Mattingly settled the limo lightly onto the semi-private pad near the
old-fashioned, squat spire of King Michael's Tower. Spencer Hawke opened the
passenger door and stepped out first, sweeping the immediate area in the
automatic threat search of a Grayson armsman even here. LaFollet followed him,
and Honor watched her personal armsman give the uniformed Army captain waiting
for them a sharp glance.
When no
crazed assassins hurled themselves out of the shrubbery, LaFollet stepped to
one side so she and Alexander could climb out of the vehicle. Hamish was in
civilian court dress trimmed in the maroon and green of the earls of White
Haven, as befitted the civilian head of the Admiralty on his way to a formal
meeting with his monarch, but Honor was in mess dress uniform, complete with
the archaic sword that demanded. In her case, the ancient weapon was no mere
prop, either, and the jeweled hilt of the Harrington Sword glittered as she
settled the scabbard at her side.
"Your
Grace." The captain wore the Griffin-headed shoulder patch of the Falcons
End Rangers, the Griffin-recruited battalion of the Queen's Own, and saluted
sharply, then turned to Alexander. "My Lord."
He saluted
again, and Honor chuckled mentally, wondering exactly how the Palace Protocol
Office had decided to resolve the question of precedence between two officers
who were both Manticoran admirals and Grayson fleet admirals. The fact
that she was junior to Hamish as a Manticoran admiral but senior to him
as a Grayson officer offset those two points, she supposed. And the fact that
she was both a duchess and a steadholder ought to have given her precedence
over his mere earldom, even if it was one of the Star Kingdom's oldest titles
while both of hers were less than twenty T-years old. But he was also First
Lord of the Admiralty, which, despite his earlier technically correct argument,
made him her ultimate civilian superior—short of the Queen herself—as CO
(Designate) Eighth Fleet. It looked as if her aristocratic titles had
outweighed his, but she was just as glad she didn't have to keep track
of who ranked who.
"If
you'd be so good as to follow me?" the captain requested without
specifically addressing it to either of them, and the two of them fell into
step behind him, trailed by LaFollet, Mattingly, and Hawke.
It was a
relatively short walk, and one Honor had made before. The gardens about her
were peaceful, drowsing in the sunlight which lay heavily across her shoulders.
As a Sphinxian, Honor always found Landing's summer weather unnaturally warm,
and the late morning sunlight was almost uncomfortably hot, despite her
uniform's smart fabric. The scent of Old Earth roses and Manticoran crown
blossom mingled in the still, humid air, and the buzz of Old Earth bees and
Manticoran rainbow bugs was improbably loud in the quiet. It was hard to
imagine a more placid, comforting setting . . . or one more totally at odds
with the reality confronting the Star Kingdom and its allies.
They
reached the tower, and the captain escorted them up the old-fashioned elevator.
A lieutenant with the shoulder flash of the Copper Wall Battalion came to
attention—and dropped one hand to the butt of her holstered pulser—as they
approached the door outside which she stood.
"Her
Grace, Duchess Harrington, and Earl White Haven to see Her Majesty," their
escort announced. Quite unnecessarily, Honor felt certain.
The
lieutenant keyed her com without removing her hand from her weapon.
"Her
Grace, Duchess Harrington, and Earl White Haven to see Her Majesty," she
repeated into the com, and listened a moment to her earbug, eyes still riveted
to Honor and Hamish. Then she removed her hand from her pulser.
"Her
Majesty is expecting you, Your Grace, My Lord," she said, and pressed the
door button.
The door
swung open, and Hamish stood back to allow Honor to precede him. She removed
her uniform beret, tucked it properly under her left epaulette, and stepped
through it.
"Honor!"
Queen
Elizabeth III stood in front of the comfortable armchair from which she'd
risen, holding out both hands with a huge smile of welcome. Her pleasure at
seeing Honor again was like a crackling fire on an icy night, and Honor smiled
back, reaching out to take Elizabeth's hands. The treecat on Elizabeth's
shoulder flirted his tail, radiating his own pleasure, and his hands flashed in
a signed welcome to Nimitz and Samantha as the Queen turned to welcome Hamish,
as well. Honor watched the three 'cats and felt an inner bubble of amusement at
the contrast between today and her first, almost timorous visit to this room
with its simple, comfortably-used furnishings and rust-red carpet.
"Sit
down, both of you," Elizabeth commanded, pointing at a pair of chairs
arranged around the coffee table. Honor obeyed, taking one of the chairs, and
her mental antennae twitched as she noticed the white beret on the table.
"I
realize we're running a bit behind schedule," Elizabeth continued as she
seated herself once again, "but when Emily screened me, I was able to flip
a couple of functions, so we've got time. Besides, I'm going to take the time
for a personal visit with you before we get bogged down in all the formalities,
no matter what my appointments secretary thinks." She grimaced.
"Before things got rearranged, I'd allowed time for it between the
audience and dinner, but we've squeezed this morning's briefing from the
Admiralty into that slot, so there's not going to be long enough now."
"I'm
sorry, Elizabeth," Honor said contritely.
"Don't
be." Elizabeth waved the apology aside. "These formal receptions and
dinners are important—I know that. And, to be perfectly frank, we need to show
you off to the Allied ambassadors, Honor. Given what happened at Sidemore, most
of our allies seem to regard you as something of a talisman." She smiled.
"For that matter, so do I, I suppose. You do seem to keep doing three
impossible things before breakfast every day for me, don't you, Your Grace?
"I've
just been in the right place at the right time . . . and with the right
people," Honor protested.
"I
don't doubt it, although I suspect you personally have probably contributed a
bit more to your string of successes than you're prepared to admit. But even at
this level of diplomacy, Honor, it's still more of a game of perceptions than
anything else. And what our Allies perceive right this minute is that you're
the only Allied commander who won an unambiguous victory when the Peeps jumped
us. They believe you're lucky, as well as good, and that gives you a stature in
their eyes which I intend to capitalize upon to the maximum. The fact that it
also gives me the opportunity to publicly thank someone who's done far more than
most in the service of my kingdom, and who I happen to regard as a personal
friend, is simply icing on my cake."
Honor felt
her cheeks heat slightly, but she nodded.
"Good.
Now," Elizabeth continued, sitting back in her chair with a broader smile,
"there is one other small detail I wanted to deal with before the formal
audience. Oh," she raised one hand and wiggled it back and forth in a
dismissive gesture, "we'll have to cross the 't's and dot all the 'i's
during the audience, but that's mostly for public consumption."
Honor
regarded her monarch warily. Elizabeth Winton was a remarkably good card
player, and her expression revealed only what she chose for it to reveal, but
she couldn't conceal the anticipation bubbling within her from Honor. She was
up to something, and Honor recognized that wicked zestfulness. She'd tasted it
before when Elizabeth looked forward to opening the box of toys the Queen of
Manticore got to bestow on people who had served her well. It was one of the
perks of her office which Elizabeth most treasured, and she took almost
childlike delight in exercising it when the opportunity arose.
"You
needn't look so worried, Honor," the Queen scolded now. "This isn't
going to hurt a bit, I promise."
"Of
course, Your Majesty," Honor said even more warily, and Elizabeth
chuckled. Then she leaned forward, scooped up the white beret on the coffee
table, and flipped it across to Honor.
"Here,"
she said as Honor caught it reflexively. "I think this is yours."
Honor
arched her eyebrows, then looked down at the beret in her hands. It looked
exactly like the black one tucked under her epaulette, except for its color—the
white color, reserved for the commander of a hyper-capable warship of the Royal
Manticoran Navy. It was the emblem of a captain of a Queen's ship, a mistress
after God, which Admiral Honor Harrington would never be again.
"I
don't see exactly where you're going with this, Elizabeth," she said after
a moment.
"Well,
you've already got the Parliamentary Medal of Valor, a knighthood—although, now
that I think about it, we're going to be promoting you to knight grand cross
this afternoon, I believe—a duchy, a mansion, a baseball team—whatever that is—your
own personal starship, a multi-billion-dollar business empire, and a
steading." Elizabeth shrugged. "With all that, deciding what to give
you is getting a bit complicated. So I decided to give you back your white
beret."
Honor
frowned. In theory, she supposed, Elizabeth could issue whatever directives she
wanted. She could permit Honor to wear the white beret even if she were no
longer a ship's captain. She could even order Honor to wear it. But that
wouldn't make it right. She opened her mouth, but before she could speak,
Hamish put a hand on her knee.
"Wait,"
he said, then looked at Elizabeth. "I told you, didn't I?" he said to
the Queen.
"Yes,
you did. And I owe you five dollars." Elizabeth shook her head, grinning
at Honor. "You really don't have a clue where I'm headed, do you?"
she asked cheerfully.
"No, I
don't," Honor admitted.
"Well,
it happens that Admiral Massengale retired month before last," Elizabeth
said slowly, watching Honor's expression carefully. Honor felt her eyes widen,
and the Queen nodded. "Which means," Elizabeth continued, her voice
much more serious, "that Unconquered needs a captain."
"Elizabeth,
you can't," Honor protested. She shook her head. "I'm honored,
flattered—delighted—you'd consider me, but there are too many people senior to
me who deserve the berth at least as much as I do! You can't just jump me over
their heads this way!"
"I
can, I want to, and I have," Elizabeth told her flatly. "And, no,
this isn't just politics, not a matter of waving my 'talisman' under everyone's
noses. And, before you continue to protest, I remind you that the choice of Unconquered's
captain is not solely up to the Crown. I may get to make the final decision,
but you know the tradition. I can choose only from the list of names submitted
to me by the Navy. And not," she added, glancing at Hamish,
"by the Admiralty. The list of candidates comes solely from the serving
officers of the Queen's Navy. You know how it's generated, and you also have to
know you were nominated for it after Cerberus."
"Well,
yes, but—"
Honor broke
off. HMS Unconquered was the oldest starship still in commission in the
Royal Manticoran Navy. She had been commanded at the very beginning of her
lengthy career by Edward Saganami when he was a commander, and her last
commanding officer on active deployment had been Lieutenant Commander Ellen
D'Orville. Unconquered was unique, the only ship to have been commanded
by both of the Star Kingdom's greatest naval heroes, which was why she had been
rescued from the breakers by the Royal Naval League after a century in reserve.
The League
had organized a massive fund-raising project to repair and refurbish the ship,
then convinced the Crown to return her to commissioned status as a combination
memorial and living museum. Restored to her exact condition when she was
Saganami's first cruiser command, she was maintained in permanent orbit around
Manticore. Membership in her official "crew," which was maintained at
the exact number of officers and ratings which had served under Saganami, was a
high honor, reserved as a way of recognizing the achievements of the Navy's
best and brightest. None of them actually served aboard her, because the
tradition also required that they be personnel on the active duty list, and her
captain, by long tradition, was an admiral. Nominated by majority vote by all
of the Navy's serving officers, selected by the Queen from the list of elected
candidates, Unconquered's captain was the single serving flag officer of
the Royal Manticoran Navy who was permitted to wear the white beret of a
starship commander.
"I
didn't put your name on the list, Honor," Elizabeth said quietly.
"Your peers did that. And, while I might have been tempted to jump you to
the top of the list if I'd had to, your name was already there."
"But—"
"No
buts, Honor," Elizabeth said, shaking her head. "I have to admit this
pleases me from an enormous number of perspectives. And, if I'm going to be
honest, 'waving my talisman' is one of those perspectives. But much more
important to me than that, it's an indication of the respect in which you are
held by the officer corps of my Navy. If anyone in the galaxy is in a position
to properly appreciate all you've done for me and for my Star Kingdom, it's
that officer corps, and they saw fit to nominate you for this honor. You
will not reject the judgment of my officer corps, Your Grace. Is that
clear?"
Honor gazed
at her, clutching the soft fabric of the beret, then, finally, nodded slowly.
"Good.
And now, we've got about forty-five minutes before that audience, after which
Willie will be turning up with Sir Thomas and Admiral Givens. We'll discuss all
those depressing military details then. For now, I do intend to spend some time
just visiting with you. Not with Admiral Harrington, not with Duchess
Harrington, and not even with Steadholder Harrington. Just with you. All
right?"
"Fine,
Elizabeth," Honor said. "That's just fine."
* * *
"So
the raid on Alizon didn't help a bit," Sir Thomas Caparelli said. He,
Patricia Givens, Honor, Nimitz, Hamish, Samantha, Elizabeth, Ariel, and Lord
William Alexander, the newly created Baron Grantville and Prime Minister of
Manticore, sat around a conference table of brilliantly polished feran wood.
Hamish, the Queen, and Baron Grantville still wore their formal court attire,
but Caparelli and Givens, like Honor, were in mess dress uniform. Three
sheathed swords lay across one end of the conference table, and a holographic
star map was projected above it, spangled with the icons of friendly units and
enemy units' reported positions. There seemed to be considerably more of the
latter than of the former, Honor noticed.
"We're
badly strapped for deployable assets everywhere," the First Space Lord
continued, turning back from the map to face the Queen. "Obviously, we're
going to have to reinforce Alizon, if only to make our commitment to their
defense clear, and that's going to stretch us even thinner, but there's no
quick fix for that, Your Majesty. We're reactivating superdreadnoughts from the
Reserve as quickly as we can, of course. They may be obsolete compared to the
pod-layers, but some waller is better than no waller, and the
Republic still has quite a few of the older ships in its own order of battle.
But we're not going to be commissioning very many new ships in the foreseeable
future. After what they did to Grendelsbane, we have only thirty-five SD(P)s
under construction. They should be commissioning within the next six to ten
months, but we won't see any more than that until the ships we're laying down
right this minute commission. Which means our total available pod-laying wall
will consist of no more than a hundred and ten units for at least another two
T-years."
"Excuse
me, Sir Thomas," Honor said, "but what about the Andermani?"
"Unfortunately,
they don't have as many pod-layers as we'd estimated they might when it looked
like they were going to be shooting at us," Caparelli said, and nodded to
Givens. "Pat?"
"Essentially,
Your Grace," Givens said, "the Andies were estimating the number
they'd need if push came to shove between us on the basis that at least half
our available strength would be required closer to home to keep an eye on
Haven. They projected a total build of roughly a hundred and thirty SD(P)s, but
they have only forty-two currently in commission. The other ninety are all
under construction at various states of completion. Some of them won't be
completed for at least another eighteen months."
"And
even the ones they've completed are going to require fairly substantial refits
before we can make best use of them," Hamish put in. Elizabeth cocked her
head at him, and he shrugged. "Their multi-drive missiles are considerably
cruder than ours. In fact, they're less sophisticated than the ones Haven is
currently deploying. They're almost as big as Havenite three-drive missiles,
but they incorporate only two drives. Tactically, they're a lot more
like the Mark 16s we're deploying aboard the new Saganami-Cs. They've
got heavier warheads than the Mark 16, but their range is very similar. And
because they're capacitor-fed, without the Mark 16's fusion plant, their EW is
less effective. They simply can't match our birds' power budgets. And while
their pods are bigger than ours are, they actually carry fewer birds than the
Republic's currently do, which means their salvo density is thinner than ours,
as well.
"We've
put BuWeaps and BuShips on to the problem, and Admiral Hemphill and Vice
Admiral Toscarelli have come up with a minimum-modification solution. They
can't operate the new fusion-powered MDMs from their pods, but we can load
their launcher cells with our own older-style, capacitor-fed three-stage missiles.
It won't give them any greater salvo density, and the EW will still be less
capable, but it will significantly improve their range. It's going to require
some modifications to their pods, which they're going to be making at their
end, but that part of the process should be completed within the next sixty
days. After that, it's just a case of their building the new pods.
"The
longer-range fix is to modify their existing SD(P)s to accept the Keyhole
platforms and fire our new 'flat-pack' pods with the all-up fusion-powered
birds. That's going to take considerably longer, because each ship will have to
spend at least ninety days in yard hands to carry out the modifications.
Toscarelli's people have just about completed the blueprints for the necessary alterations,
and they've been working with the Andies' architects to provide a fix which can
be incorporated into the ships still under construction. At best, though,
that's going to impose an additional delay on those units' completion."
"So,"
Caparelli said, "looking at every pod-laying waller we can scrape up
between us, Grayson, and the Andies, and including all of the Andy SD(P)s
currently in commission as fully effective units, we have a total of two
hundred and thirty-two. Assuming our construction times hold up, and allowing
for working up time, we can have a total of just over four hundred within the
next eleven to eighteen months. We can add about a hundred and sixty pod-laying
battlecruisers to that total, but they can't stand in the wall against proper
superdreadnoughts. That's an impressive number, but the Havenites have some
pretty impressive numbers of their own."
"Yes,"
Elizabeth said, looking intently at Admiral Givens. "I saw a precis of
your revised strength estimates last week, Admiral, but it didn't include the
basis for your revisions. Is the situation really that bad?"
"That's
impossible to say with certainty, Your Majesty," Givens replied. "I'm
not trying to cover myself, and I stand by the numbers in the most recent
report, but until the shooting's over, we can't do an actual nose count to
prove it. I'm sorry it's taken this long to produce the report in the first
place, but we still have a certain amount of reorganizing to do over at
ONI."
Elizabeth
grimaced, her eyes hard, at the oblique reference to Admiral Francis
Jurgensen's disastrous tenure as Second Space Lord.
"Our
human-intelligence sources in the Republic are considerably weaker than they
used to be," the admiral continued. "Partly, that's due to the
political changes there. Quite a few of the people supplying information to us
were doing so because of their opposition to the old régime, and their
motivation to continue to work with us largely disappeared along with
Saint-Just. Others, who we'd managed to buy or suborn, lost their access when
they were purged by the new management. And, unfortunately, under the Janacek
Admiralty, ONI hadn't assigned a high priority to building new networks. In
fairness, doing so under the new circumstances would have been difficult,
time-consuming, and probably expensive."
Elizabeth's
agate-hard eyes flickered, but she didn't seem disposed to entertain any
excuses for the unfortunate Jurgensen's failures.
"At
any rate," Givens went on, "there are serious holes in our
information-gathering capabilities. And I have to admit that Pierre and
Saint-Just managed to build this entire shipbuilding complex of theirs,
wherever it is, on my watch, without my getting so much as a sniff of
it. We're looking for it hard, scouting every system we can think of, but so
far, we haven't found it. Which is more than mildly irritating, given the
resources we're committing to the effort. On the other hand, the way they've
spread out their building capacity since Theisman first went public about the
Peep pod-layers, Bolthole is becoming steadily less of an absolutely critical
node for them.
"But
bearing in mind the limits on our intel ability, and counting only the new
ships we've actually observed, and making allowances for errors in post-battle
reports, we're estimating that they must have a minimum of three hundred
pod-layers currently in commission. We know they had at least two hundred
old-style superdreadnoughts in service, as well, plus another hundred or so in
reserve, but it's the pod-layers that pose the critical threat. If they do have
three hundred in service at this time, then they have approximately one and a
half times as many as we and the Graysons do. It drops to about
one-point-three-to-one in their favor if we include all of the completed
Andermani SD(P)s. By our best estimate of the differences between their current
hardware and our own, that equates to near parity between the two sides, but
they've got much more strategic depth than we do."
"That
depth tips the strategic balance significantly in their favor, Your
Majesty," Caparelli put in. "They can afford to concentrate their
forces for offensive operations to a far greater extent than we can. We can't
afford to allow them the opportunity to take out the industrial capacity here
in the Star Kingdom or in Grayson, and that means we're forced to maintain
sufficient strength in those systems to deter a serious attack. As Pat says, we
don't even know where this 'Bolthole' of theirs is, so there's no way we could
do the same thing to their infrastructure. We could hurt them badly in several
places, if we uncovered enough to go after them, but without at least
Bolthole's location, we can't cripple them the way they could cripple
us."
"I
understand," Elizabeth said, nodding, and reached out to scratch Ariel
between the ears. "But you're estimating an enormous growth in their total
numbers, Admiral Givens."
"Yes,
Your Majesty, we are," Givens admitted bleakly. "The problem is that
we've uncovered evidence that even before Theisman shot Saint-Just, they'd been
stockpiling huge numbers of components. We'd picked up on that before
Buttercup, but we'd never been able to figure out where they were going or why.
Then, after the Cromarty Assassination and the cease-fire—" if Elizabeth's
eyes had been hard before, they could have been used to cut diamonds now
"—the Admiralty stopped worrying about it. We'd never been able to confirm
it was happening in the first place, and it seemed irrelevant in light of our
technical and tactical superiority.
"However,
after examining the wreckage from Her Grace's victory at Sidemore, we've
determined that even though the SD(P)s Haven deployed for the attack were
new-build, new-design ships, they used existing, off-the-shelf components
wherever possible. Obviously, many of their systems had to be new-construction,
but the truth is, that probably at least eighty-five percent of the design was
based on existing hardware. Exactly what they appear to have been stockpiling.
Our numbers for what they squirreled away are nowhere near as precise as I'd
like, but allowing for a twenty-five percent overestimate, and assuming the
stockpiled items represent only seventy percent of the new ships' total
requirements, they could still have an additional four hundred to four hundred
and fifty under construction at 'Bolthole' alone. And, of course, there's no
way for us to estimate how far along in the construction process those ships
might be."
Chill
silence hovered in the conference room. Honor tasted the grim awareness of what
those numbers meant radiating from her fellow naval officers. Elizabeth and the
Prime Minister were deeply concerned, but the full impact didn't appear to have
hit them yet.
"Excuse
me, Pat," she said, after a moment, "but I noticed you said they
could have that many ships under construction 'at Bolthole alone.'"
"Yes,
I did, Your Grace." Givens nodded. "Obviously, until they announced
the existence of their own pod-layers, all their construction was carried out
under conditions of maximum secrecy—the entire rationale for Bolthole in the
first place. But as soon as Theisman announced they had SD(P)s of their own,
they began preparations to lay down additional units in other shipyards. Our
estimate is that they're probably looking at longer construction times in the
older yards, not to mention the fact that they had to set up all of the
long-lead items and get organized before they could begin construction there at
all. Nonetheless, we have indications from various sources that they have
somewhere in the vicinity of an additional four hundred new units under
construction at Nouveau Paris and two or three other of their central systems.
That's the bad news. The good news is that although the Pritchart
Administration authorized their construction the better part of a T-year ago,
they only really hit their stride about four months ago. Which means it's going
to take them at least another two and a half T-years to complete any of them.
So they're not a factor in the immediate gap between our numbers and
theirs."
"That
may be, Pat," Hamish said, "but the thought of looking at twelve
hundred SD(P)s in a couple of years doesn't exactly fill me with joyous
enthusiasm."
"But,
with all due respect, Admiral Givens," his brother said, "how
realistic is your estimate in fiscal terms?" Givens looked at him, and
Grantville smiled thinly. "As Duke Cromarty's Chancellor of the Exchequer
I enjoyed quite a bit of experience of just how difficult it was for us to
pay for hundreds of new superdreadnoughts, and the Havenite economy is still a
long way from anything I'd call healthy. They may have laid down all the ships
you're talking about, but will they be able to sustain the building
program without an economic collapse?"
"That,
Prime Minister, is outside my own area of expertise," Givens admitted.
"The financial analysts attached to ONI believe they can, indeed, complete
all or a high percentage of the total projected current program—or, rather, our
estimate of what that program is. They're going to have to make some hard
decisions about what not to build to pull it off, but they have many
times the star systems we do. Despite our much higher per capita income, their absolute
budgets are at least as big, or bigger, than our own, and their manpower
costs are far lower. It's certainly possible that trying to complete this
program would indeed lead to the economic collapse of the Republic. Which, on a
long-term basis, could be good or bad from our perspective. My own feeling, however,
is that we dare not count on that outcome. Especially not given how much of
Havenite strategy under the Legislaturalist régime was based on seizing
Manticore and our wormhole junction specifically as a revenue source. The new
régime might well be willing to go deeply into debt if it believes that by
doing so it can succeed where Harris, Pierre, and Saint-Just failed."
Baron
Grantville nodded, but he clearly wasn't fully convinced, and Honor tasted his
deep reservations about Givens' estimates.
"So what
do we do?" Elizabeth asked simply after silence had lingered for several
seconds.
"For
the immediate future, we're effectively forced to stand primarily on the
defensive," Hamish said. "I don't like it, and neither does Sir
Thomas, but that's simply the reality we face. We're still working on ways in
which we might be able to modify that defensive stance in order to put at least
some pressure on Haven, and we'll be discussing those possibilities with
Admiral Harrington and her staff over the next several days. Hopefully, we'll
come up with something that will prevent the other side from retaining sole
possession of the strategic initiative, but we'll probably still be forced to
adopt a mainly reactive stance until our own new construction begins to come
forward in large numbers."
Something
else flickered behind his thoughts. Honor caught just a trace of it, too little
to even begin to estimate what it was, but it seemed to carry a flavor of
wariness and apprehensive disappointment. Whatever it was, no trace of it
shadowed his voice as he continued.
"We're
also engaged in a comprehensive evaluation of our building options. One of the
very few things the Janacek Admiralty did right—by accident, I'm sure—was to
leave Vice Admiral Toscarelli at BuShips. I doubt they would have done it if
they'd realized what he was actually up to over there, although I may be doing
Chakrabarti a disservice. He may have known exactly what Toscarelli was
doing.
"At
any rate, despite the official Janacek position that there was no need to build
anything other than LACs and commerce-protection units, Toscarelli and his
people managed to get the Saganami-C approved as a 'modification' of the
existing Saganami design, rather than as a totally new class which
represents as significant a tactical departure for cruisers as the Medusa-class
represented for superdreadnoughts. He also managed to get the design for the
new Nike-class battlecruisers and Agamemnon-class BC(P)s
approved. We only have the lead ship of the Nike-class about to commission,
and only six of the Agamemnons, but there are six more Agamemnons already
in the pipeline. Almost more importantly, most of the construction kinks have
been worked out of both designs, and they can be put into rapid series
production quickly. Then there's the new Medusa-B-class SD(P). It was
authorized by Chakrabarti solely as a paper study, but Toscarelli took it to
the detailed blueprint stage. It's a significant improvement on the Invictus
design, but we'd be looking at an additional delay of six to ten months to put
a completely new design into production rather than simply building repeat
Invictus-class ships."
"If
we're looking at a two-year window of vulnerability," the Prime Minister
asked, "why not consider building smaller units? I know we haven't built
any dreadnoughts since before the first war, but given that were talking about
pod-laying designs, shouldn't it be possible to build an effective DN(P)?
Units that size could be built much more rapidly, couldn't they?"
"Yes,
and no, Prime Minister," Caparelli said formally. "Construction time
on a dreadnought runs about eighty percent of the construction time on a superdreadnought.
In theory, that means we could build one in about eighteen months rather than
twenty-three. Unfortunately, we don't have a DN(P) design. We'd have to
produce one from scratch, then get it into construction, with all the delays
always attendant on the introduction of a completely new class. We'd probably
be looking at a minimum of three T-years from the moment we began work to the
moment we completed the first unit, which means it would take six months longer
to build the first of the smaller ships. Thereafter, we could, indeed,
build them faster, but if we're prepared to use dispersed yards and build
'Grayson-style,' we can build as many superdreadnoughts simultaneously as we
can fund. So it doesn't seem to us over at Admiralty House that there's any
advantage in designing a smaller, less capable unit when it would actually
delay our building programs."
"There's
no way we can speed construction?" Grantville asked. All of the uniformed
officers—and his brother—looked at him, and he shrugged. "I'm sorry. I
don't mean to question your professional judgment, but the Graysons managed to
get their first SD(P) built in under fifteen months."
"Yes,
they did," Hamish replied. "But to complete her to their new
schedule, which had a little something to do with Honor's supposed execution,
they pulled out all the stops. In fact, they diverted major components from
older-style SDs to the new designs. The Harrington's fusion plants , for
instance—all of them were diverted from two of their Steadholder
Denevski-class ships, which delayed their completion by almost eight
months. We can't do that here because we don't have the new construction to
divert components from. But that's pretty much what ONI is saying the Havenites
have been doing with those stockpiled components Admiral Givens was just
talking about."
"I
understand," William said. He grimaced—in disappointment, not in anger—as
Caparelli and his brother demolished his suggestions. "I hadn't considered
the dreadnought notion from the aspect of design time," he added.
"We do
have some additional potential force multipliers in the pipeline," Hamish
said after a moment, with a slight edge of caution. "I've been very
impressed with what Sonja Hemphill and Toscarelli have been coming up with ever
since Sonja took over at BuWeaps."
He shook
his head, his expression somewhat bemused, as if he couldn't quite believe what
he was saying about the Admiral who had been his personal bête noire for
literally decades.
"I
don't want anybody counting on miracle weapons," he continued, the note of
caution in his voice stronger than before. "Specifically, at this time, we
don't see anything on the horizon that will equate to the sort of quantum leap
in capabilities Ghost Rider and the MDM represented. It's always hard to
project the impact of new technologies until you actually have them in hand, so
I could be wrong about that, but I'd prefer to err on the side of caution at a
time like this. And don't forget that any improvements we may make will be
offset, at least to some extent, by Havenite improvements based on the
examples of our own hardware they must have captured during their offensive
and, I'm sure, idea all their own. Their Admiral Foraker, for example, appears
to be a fiendishly clever innovator. Having said all of that, however, Sonja
and Toscarelli are looking at several developments which could have at least as
significant an impact on our relative combat capabilities as the introduction
of the Keyhole platforms."
"And
while we're talking about things the Janacek Admiralty did right for the wrong
reasons," Caparelli put in, "his mania for using LACs as a panacea
has at least guaranteed that the LAC assembly line was in full swing when the
penny dropped. We foresee no bottlenecks in LAC or missile pod production,
including the new system-defense pods and setting up our own lines to produce
the Graydson's Vipers. There may be some problems we haven't foreseen with the
new munitions BuWeaps has in the pipeline, but production of our existing
weapons should be ample for our needs. It's going to take us a while to build
up to full speed for the system-defense units, but we can probably build LACs
faster than we can train crews for them. They won't help us out a lot against
an intact wall of battle, but they'll give us a high degree of scouting and
rear area coverage which should at least allow us to economize on hyper-capable
pickets."
"Which
just about sums up the military side of our options," Hamish said, and
Honor tasted another flash of that disappointment from him. This time there was
an answering flicker, one of stubborn exasperation, from Elizabeth. And an echo
of it from William Alexander, as well.
"Yes,
I suppose it does," Elizabeth agreed, with a very slight but unmistakable
note of finality. Then she glanced at her chrono.
"And
it sums it up just in time," she said more briskly, with a wry grimace.
"Honor, you and Willie and I—and you, Hamish—have a dinner appointment in
the Crown Chancery in about twenty minutes. So," she smiled at Honor,
"let's be about it, you three!"
"Anything
from Admiral Duval, Serena?" Rear Admiral Oliver Diamato, Republic of
Haven Navy, asked quietly.
"No, Sir."
Commander Serena Taverner, his chief of staff shook her head.
"Good."
Diamato
nodded to her, rose from his command chair, and crossed to the master plot on
the battlecruiser William T. Sherman's flag bridge. Sherman was
no longer "his," and he'd already discovered just how much he missed
the hands-on command of a ship. But at least the Octagon had let him keep her
as his flagship.
He examined
the plot carefully, hands folded behind him. By now, the posture was so
familiar that it had become truly his, no longer an affectation deliberately
copied from Captain Hall. He studied the icons, then nodded once in approval
and turned away. This was the first time he'd served with Rear Admiral Harold
Duval, CO of the 19th CLAC Division, and Duval had a reputation as a
bit of a worrywort. Diamato had been half afraid he might come up with some
last-minute alteration of the plan, but it seemed he'd been doing his superior
an injustice, and that was good. He hated last-minute surprises.
Now he
gazed at the pair of CLACs—RHNS Skylark, the flagship, and her sister Peregrine—his
own squadron was escorting, then checked the time display ticking down in the
corner of the plot. The combined force would translate out of hyper in another
twenty-seven minutes, right on the hyper limit of the Zanzibar System's G4
primary.
After
which, he thought, things will get . . .
interesting."
* * *
"We
have a hyper footprint, Ma'am."
Rear
Admiral of the Green Dame Evelyn Padgorny looked up from her routine paperwork
at her ops officer's announcement. Commander Thackeray stood in the flag
briefing room's hatch, his voice a bit deeper than usual, and Padgorny cocked
an eyebrow at him.
"I
assume from the fact that you're telling me this that it isn't a scheduled footprint,
Alvin," she said dryly.
"No,
Ma'am. It isn't." Thackeray gave her a tight grin. "The outer
reconnaissance platforms make it twelve units. At the moment it looks like a
pair of either superdreadnoughts or their CLACs, with a battlecruiser squadron
riding shotgun and a couple of light cruisers or big tin-cans for
scouting."
"Another
raid, then," she said.
"That's
what it looks like to CIC and System Defense Command," Thackeray agreed.
"The question, of course, is whether they are CLACs . . . or
SD(P)s."
"You
do have a way of cutting to the nub of a matter, don't you, Alvin?"
Padgorny
smiled humorlessly, logged off her terminal, and stood. Thackeray stepped back
to let her precede him through the hatch, then followed her across the deck to
HMS Prince Stephen's master plot. At least the plot's details were
clear, she thought. The FTL links to the reconnaissance platforms planted
around the system periphery were real-timing their take to Prince Stephen,
and she pursed her lips thoughtfully as she studied the crimson icons.
Assuming they
were, indeed, Havenite units—and Padgorny couldn't think of any reason for
anyone else to be coming in without identifying themselves this way—Thackeray's
question was well taken. Prince Stephen and the other four units of the
understrength Thirty-First Battle Squadron weren't precisely cutting-edge.
Although the oldest of Padgorny's ships was less than eight T-years old, none
of them were pod-layers. All five were surrounded by shoals of missile pods,
waiting to tractor themselves to their hulls upon command, but they weren't
really optimized for pod-based combat. They simply lacked the sophistication of
the fire control built into ships of the wall which had been intended from the
outset for the new operational environment. Prince Stephen could
"tow" as many as five or six hundred of the new pods, whose internal
tractors glued them limpet-like to a ship's hull, but loading up with that many
would seriously compromise her combat ability by blocking sensor and firing
arcs. Worse, the maximum number of missiles she could actually simultaneously
control effectively at range was no more than a hundred. One of the Invictus-class
SD(P)s could control two or three times that many birds, even without the new
Keyhole platforms, and she had to assume Peep pod-layers would also have
several times the missile telemetry channels her ships had.
On the
other hand, she reminded herself, if
these people really want to shoot at us, then they've got to come to us.
Which means, in this case, not simply us, but all the rest of Zanzibar
System Defense Command.
Unless, of
course, the Peeps in question were prepared to simply flail away at extreme
range. It was unlikely they would choose to risk even accidentally violating
the Eridani Edict, but they were Peeps, after all. The bastards hadn't
been at all shy about killing thousands of Padgorny's fellow naval officers and
ratings in their goddamned sneak attack, so they might not lose any sleep about
the odd civilian mega-death or two, either.
"Any
communication from them yet?"
"No,
Ma'am," the com officer of the watch replied. "Of course, they've
just come over the Alpha wall."
"Yes,
they have," Padgorny agreed. "But by now, even the Peeps know our
sensor platforms are out there and that they're FTL. Don't you suppose they
might have figured out that a light-speed omnidirectional broadcast would be
picked up and relayed to us?"
"Ah,
yes, Ma'am," the hapless communications officer said. Obviously the Old
Lady was not in a good mood, he noted.
"Sorry,
Willoughby," Padgorny said a moment later, lips twitching in a wry smile.
"Didn't mean to bite your head off."
"Yes,
Ma'am," Lieutenant Willoughby said in a somewhat different tone, and
returned her smile.
Padgorny
nodded and turned away from him. She didn't really require any
self-identifications from the intruders. The lack of any transmissions from
them meant they had to be Peeps, since any Allied units most definitely would
have identified themselves by now. So there was no point in taking out her
frustration on Willoughby. Still, she would dearly love to know exactly what—
"LAC
separation!" a voice announced. "We have LAC separation on Bogeys
Alpha and Bravo! Estimate six hundred-plus inbound at six-eight-zero
gravities!"
Well, it
seemed that sometimes wishes came true. At least she knew, now, and it was
unlikely the Peeps intended any Eridani violations if they were sending in LACs
armed with short-ranged missiles.
"What
about the battlecruisers?" she asked.
"They're
maintaining constant decel with the CLACs, Ma'am," Thackeray replied.
"Looks like this is more of a probe than a serious attack. The
battlecruisers are hanging back to cover the CLACs while their birds are
away."
Padgorny
nodded in agreement with Thackeray's assessment.
"They're
going to get hurt," another voice said, and Padgorny looked up as
Commander Thomasina Hartnett, her chief of staff, arrived on the flag bridge.
"Sorry I'm late, Ma'am," Hartnett continued with a grimace. "My
pinnace was on final approach when these people turned up."
"Inconvenient
of them," Padgorny replied with a thin smile, "but what can you
expect out of Peeps?"
"Anything
from Defense Command?" Hartnett asked Willoughby even as she accepted a
memo board with a full situation update from Thackeray.
"Not
after the initial alert, Ma'am," Willoughby said.
"Probably
waiting to see whether or not they launched LACs," Padgorny said with a
shrug, when Hartnett looked at her.
"Well,
Ma'am," the chief of staff said, eyes scanning the memo board as she
spoke, "I stand by my own initial assessment. These people are gonna get
seriously hammered if they keep on coming in."
"A
point which I suspect has occurred to them, as well," Padgorny said.
"But it all depends on how deep in they want to get, Tommy."
"True,
Ma'am." Hartnett nibbled on a thumbnail, eyes intent as she studied the
master plot. "I really wish that bastard Theisman hadn't shot
Saint-Just," she said, after a moment.
"Really?"
Padgorny cocked her head inquiringly, and Hartnett shrugged.
"At
least State Security kept their admirals looking over their shoulders all the
time, Ma'am. They were too busy watching their own asses to think up inventive
things to do to us. And they'd have thought two or three times about proposing
probes like this one. They'd have been afraid they'd be expected to carry
through with a serious attack."
"I
don't know if it's really that much of an improvement," Padgorny objected
in her best, approved devil's advocate tone. "McQueen did a number on us
when she did carry through with 'a serious attack,' StateSec or no
StateSec."
"Oh,
she certainly did that," Hartnett agreed. "But that was a heavy-duty,
full-press fleet operation. These people—" she jabbed an index finger at
the plot's icons "—aren't here to hurt Zanzibar. They're here
probing for information, and they're willing to take significant losses to get
it. Which means they're planning on doing something with whatever info
they can get, and, frankly, that could be a hell of a lot more dangerous to us
than a serious attack on the system might have been."
Padgorny
nodded thoughtfully. There was a new, tough-minded professionalism behind the
Peeps' operations in this new and more dangerous war. The clumsy amateurism the
previous régimes' civilian masters had imposed on their uniformed subordinates
had disappeared, and it was painfully obvious the new management was working
from a cohesive, carefully thought-out playbook. And Hartnett was right.
Providing that sort of navy with the information needed to accurately assess
just how threadbare the Alliance's defenses really were—everywhere, not just in
Zanzibar—came under the heading of Really Bad Ideas.
"Well,"
she said after a moment, "in that case, I suppose we ought to get busy
seeing these people off without giving them any better look at us than we can
help."
"Yes,
Ma'am," Hartnett agreed. "Flush the LACs?"
"Not
all of them." Padgorny shook her head. "Let's keep at least one
pulser up our sleeve. Alvin," she turned back to the ops officer,
"launch just the in-system platforms. Have them form up on the squadron.
We'll move out together."
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am," Commander Thackeray acknowledged. "Should I inform
System Defense that we're executing Hildebrandt?"
"Yes,
of course you should." Padgorny grimaced. "I should have thought of
it myself. In fact, before you pass the orders, contact System Defense. Inform
them that I intend to put Hildebrandt into operation unless otherwise
instructed."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
Padgorny
gave the expressionless operations officer a quick smile. The diplomatic
management of allies had never been one of her own strong suits, and managing
those allies had become both more important and much more difficult in the wake
of the High Ridge Government's disastrous foreign policy. Stepping on the
Zanzibaran System Navy's sensibilities by ignoring it in its own star system
would have been less than brilliant. Especially after the system's industry and
economy had been so brutally shattered by the Peeps "Operation
Icarus" barely eight T-years ago. And extra especially, in the wake of the
High Ridge Government's incredibly incompetent foreign policy, when the Treaty
of Alliance specifically assigned command authority to the ZSN. Existing
doctrine and previous discussions with the Zanzibarans made it obvious which
system defense plan was called for, but that wasn't really the point . . .
diplomatically speaking.
"Good
catch, Ma'am," Hartnett said very quietly, cutting her eyes sideways to
indicate Thackeray as the operations officer and Lieutenant Willoughby put the
com call through to Zanzibar System Defense Command.
"Agreed,"
Padgorny replied, equally quietly, nodding her head. "Alvin does have his
moments."
The admiral
shoved her hands deep into her tunic's pockets, lower lip protruding slightly
as she studied the plot, waiting for System Defense's response.
The Peeps
were still boring steadily in, but there was plenty of time to show a little
sensitivity to inter-allied coordination. Zanzibar was a G4, with a hyper limit
of just over twenty light-minutes. The planet of the same name orbited its
primary at just under eight light-minutes, which put it 12.3 light-minutes
inside the limit, and most of the system's manufacturing and commercial infrastructure
(rebuilt with the very latest technology and the aid of massive Manticoran
loans and subsidies after Icarus) orbited the planet. The intruders were
already inside both of the system's asteroid belts, and even if they hadn't
been, Zanzibar's extraction industry was less centralized than most. There were
very few belter nodes for them to hit, which meant any truly worthwhile targets
had to be deep in-system.
They had
arrived with a fairly low normal-space velocity—less than twelve hundred
kilometers per second—and they were over two hundred and twenty million
kilometers from any of those worthwhile targets. Even at their LACs' rate of
acceleration, it would have taken them over two hours—132.84 minutes, to be
precise—just to reach the planet, at which point their velocity would have been
well over fifty-four thousand kilometers per second. And if they'd wanted a
zero/zero intercept, flight time would have been roughly fifty-six minutes
longer.
Of course,
they weren't going to do either of those things. As Hartnett had observed, this
was a probe, not a serious attack. They wouldn't commit that many LACs to a
flight profile that would force them to enter the engagement envelope of
Zanzibar's orbital defenses. Those tiny craft had nowhere near the firepower to
tackle the orbital defenses, and there were six or seven thousand men and women
aboard them. Sending them to their deaths for no meaningful return was
something the Pierre Régime or Saint-Just might have done. Theisman wouldn't.
No, they were here to drag their coats behind them. To be just threatening
enough to provoke the system's defenders into revealing at least a part of
their capabilities. Even relatively tiny pieces of data could be combined,
massaged by computers and human analysts, to reveal far more about the state of
Zanzibar's defenses and, by implication, the status of the Alliance as a whole,
than anyone wanted Theisman to know.
But probes
of the defenses were precisely what System Defense Plan Hildebrandt was
intended to prevent. With BS 31 and the inner-system LACs anyone but an idiot
already knew were present advancing to meet them, the Peep LACs would be forced
to withdraw without the defenders having revealed their full capabilities.
Which—
"Excuse
me, Admiral."
Padgorny
turned her head and looked up, frowning slightly as Alvin Thackeray's tone
registered.
"Yes?"
she said.
"Ma'am,
Admiral al-Bakr is on the com." Padgorny's eyebrows rose, and Thackeray
gave a very slight shrug. "He says he's not prepared to authorize
Hildebrandt, Ma'am."
Padgorny's
raised eyebrows lowered, and her frown deepened.
"Did
he say why not?" she asked, quite a bit more crisply than she'd intended
to.
"He
feels the Peeps' approach is too obvious," Thackeray said
expressionlessly. "He thinks it may be a feint intended to draw us out of
position."
Padgorny's
lips compressed tightly, and the hands shoved into her tunic's pockets clenched
into fists.
"A
feint?" Commander Hartnett's voice was sharp as she asked the question
Padgorny had kept herself from voicing. "And what does he think the system
surveillance arrays are for?" she demanded.
"Calmly,
Tommy," Padgorny said. The chief of staff looked at her, and the admiral
let her eyes sweep around the flag bridge, reminding her of all the listening
ears. Not that Padgorny didn't agree completely with Hartnett's response.
"Sorry,
Ma'am," Hartnett said, after a moment. "But there's no way they're
going to sneak another attack force into the system without our spotting a
hyper footprint when they arrive, and the remote platforms have these people
right under their eye. There's no way anyone else is lurking around out there
to take advantage of any diversion the LACs might represent. This has to be
exactly what Hildebrandt is supposed to stop."
"I'm
inclined to think you're right," Padgorny replied. She was faintly
surprised by how calm she managed to sound, and she looked past Thackeray to
Willoughby.
"Please
put the Admiral through to my display," she requested, striding across to
her command chair and settling herself into it.
"Yes,
Ma'am," Willoughby said, and Admiral Gammal al-Bakr's face appeared on the
flatscreen display deployed from the left arm of Padgorny's command chair.
"Admiral
al-Bakr," she said courteously.
"Admiral
Padgorny," he responded. Al-Bakr wore the ZSN's visored cap, maroon tunic,
and black trousers, with the doubled crescent moons of his rank glittering on
his color points. Like most Zanzibarans, he was dark-haired and eyed. He was
also of medium height, with a lean, hawkish face and a neatly trimmed beard and
mustache streaked with white around his lips.
"I
understand you're opposed to the activation of Hildebrandt, Admiral?"
Padgorny said as pleasantly as possible.
"I
am," al-Bakr replied levelly. "I believe it's possible this attack
represents a feint, intended to draw your units out of position and clear the
way for a direct attack on the planet and its orbital installations."
"Sir,"
Padgorny said, after a brief pause, "we've detected no indications of any
force waiting to exploit any diversion the LACs might manage to create. I feel
confident your surveillance arrays would have detected any such force upon its
arrival."
"They
may have taken a page from Admiral Harrington's Sidemore tactics," al-Bakr
countered. "They could very well have an entire task force waiting in
hyper. If you activate Hildebrandt and move away from the planet, they could
send a messenger into hyper to bring those reinforcements in at any point
around the hyper-limit sphere of their choice."
Padgorny
managed not to stare at him. It wasn't easy.
"Admiral,"
she said instead, controlling her tone carefully, "the incoming forces we
know about are on Zanzibar's side of the primary. They're coming in on the
shortest, least-time approach. If we move towards them, we'll remain between
them and the inner system. Forces approaching from other directions will have
much further to travel, and I think it's unlikely we could be drawn far enough
out of position to prevent us from responding if and when they make their alpha
translation and we detect their footprints."
And even if
that weren't true, she thought, why in the
world would they be bothering with diversions if they have an all-up
task force or fleet out there in the first place? If they've got that kind
of firepower, they certainly don't need to "distract" a single
understrength battle squadron!
"Overall,"
al-Bakr said, "I agree that your assessment is logical. However, if you
advance far enough from the planet under Hildebrandt, they could execute a
polar translation and effectively cut in behind you. Particularly since your
base velocity would be directly away from the planet at the moment they made
translation."
Padgorny's
jaw muscles tightened. What al-Bakr was suggesting was at least theoretically
feasible. But it wouldn't be easy, and she couldn't conceive of any rational
reason for the Peeps to attempt any such complicated maneuver.
"Sir,"
she said, "given the range of our MDMs, they would have to time things
very, very carefully if they intended to remain outside our engagement
envelope. Moreover, they would be attacking directly into your own orbital
defenses and the fire of our inner-system defense pods. They would have to be
present in overwhelming strength to crack those defenses, even without the
presence of my own battle squadron. In my estimation, this represents another
probing attack, precisely the scenario Hildebrandt is designed to defeat.
They're looking for information on your star system's defensive capabilities
for future reference. And if we don't execute Hildebrandt—don't move out to
engage these LACs short of the inner-system—they'll be able to get much deeper
in and get a far better look at those defenses."
"They
can do that with recon drones, if they wish to," al-Bakr countered.
"There's no need for them to risk their LACs doing the same job. So, with
all due respect, Dame Evelyn, I believe the reason they are using LACs
is specifically to draw you out of position."
"I
doubt very much, Sir, that Peeps are going to be able to sneak recon drones
deep enough in-system to obtain the sort of information they need without our
detecting them. Their drones simply aren't as stealthy as ours, and their
sensors aren't as good. They couldn't pick up our concealed units . . . unless
those units go active. Which is why they're using LACs. They may well have a
drone screen out, but they want us to engage the LACs—or at least move to do
so—because their drones can't pick our units up unless and until we bring them
on-line."
"Havenite
technology has clearly improved greatly since the previous war, Admiral,"
al-Bakr said. "I believe it may be good enough to accomplish the task even
if our defenses remain covert—or that they believe it is, at any rate.
And it is, after all, their own assessment of their technology's capabilities
which will govern their choice of tactics."
"Sir,
I'm afraid I can't share your interpretation of their intentions."
Padgorny kept both her tone and her expression as nonconfrontational as she
possibly could. "But whichever one of us is correct, we're faced with the
fact that almost seven hundred hostile LACs are headed in-system and
accelerating at over six and a half KPS squared. And while they're already
inside most of your asteroid industry, there are—" she checked the CIC sidebar
on the main plot "—twenty-three of your extraction freighters directly in
their path. In addition to one Manticoran, one Solarian, and two Andermani
merchantmen. If we don't respond, most of those extraction vessels and at least
one of the Andermani freighters will find themselves in the Peeps' attack range
before they can reach the cover of your orbital defenses."
"I'm
aware of the shipping movements, Admiral Padgorny," al-Bakr said a bit
frostily. "This, after all, is not the first time the Peeps have visited
this system," he added pointedly. "And I haven't said you can't
engage these intruders. I've simply said that I won't authorize Hildebrandt.
Your vessels, and the inner-system LACs, must remain in position to cover the
planet and our most vital space infrastructure. I would point out to you that
it was for precisely this sort of circumstance that the outer-system
LACs and pods were deployed in the first place."
Padgorny
discovered that her teeth ached from the force her jaw muscles were now
exerting.
"Admiral
al-Bakr," she said after a momemt, "at this time, we have no reason
to believe the Peeps realize the outer-system defenses are present. If we use
them against this attack, however, that will change. Which will provide their
planners with valuable intelligence in the event that they do decide to execute
a serious attack on Zanzibar in future. I strongly urge you to allow me to use
Hildebrandt rather than reveal that capability."
"I'm
afraid I can't do that," al-Bakr said flatly. "I realize you continue
to have a great deal of faith in the superiority of our—and, particularly, your
Star Kingdom's—technology over that of Haven. However, I—and my Caliph—are no
longer in a position to place complete trust in that superiority, especially in
light of the price the Caliphate has already paid. I believe it's probable
Haven already knows from its own recon drones or other intelligence sources
that we've been deploying LAC tenders and pods in the outer system. Which is
one reason I believe this is a feint."
Padgorny
tried hard not to goggle at him. If the Caliph and his military advisers
thought anything of the sort, why the hell hadn't they said so sooner
than this? From the hardening of his expression, she realized she hadn't
fully succeeded in controlling her own.
"At
any rate, Admiral Padgorny," his voice was flatter than before, "I am
not prepared to further debate my decision as the commander of this star
system's defenses. You will not execute Hildebrandt and uncover the
inner-system. And you will use the outer-system defenses to deal with this
attack. Is that understood?"
Padgorny
inhaled deeply, nostrils flaring, and reminded herself diplomacy wasn't her
forte.
"It
is, Admiral al-Bakr," she said, her voice almost as flat as his. "For
the record, however, I strongly dissent from your analysis of the situation and
of the enemy's intentions. I wish for my objection to the orders you've just
issued to be made part of the official record. And I will be reporting that
objection to my own superiors in my next dispatch."
Their eyes
locked in the com display. It was hard to say whose were harder, and tension
hovered between them.
"Both
your dissent and your objection are noted, Admiral," al-Bakr replied.
"And, you are, of course, free to state whatever objections you choose to
your superiors. Nonetheless, at this time, my orders stand."
"Very
well, Admiral," Padgorny said coldly. "With your permission.
Padgorny, clear."
"You're
kidding."
Commander
Eric Hertz looked in disbelief at Captain Everard Broughton's face on his com
screen.
"No,"
Broughton said with commendable restraint. "I am not kidding. Neither is
Dame Evelyn."
"But
there's no need," Hertz protested. "I thought the entire idea was for
us to be a hole in space until they really needed us!"
"Plans,
apparently, have changed."
Broughton
turned away from Hertz to glare disgustedly at the tactical plot. The oncoming
Havenite LACs had been inbound for almost thirty minutes. They were up to a
velocity relative to the system primary of 12,788 kilometers per second, and
they'd traveled over twelve million kilometers. They were also only about
twenty minutes from bringing the closest extraction ships under long-range
missile fire.
"Whatever
we may think of it, we've got our orders," he said, turning back to his
com pickup. "And under the circumstances, since there's no way you're
going to be able to actually intercept them before they hit the extraction
ships, we might as well go for the whole enchilada."
Hertz's
expression tightened.
"What
do you mean?" he asked in the tone of a man who suspected he'd already
guessed.
"The
only way we're going to be able to do anything to save the extraction ships is
to use the pods," Broughton said bitterly. "So since we're going to
give away our presence, anyway, we might as well get the best return we
can."
He looked
across his command deck at his tactical officer.
"Activate
the pods," he said. "Target the LACs with—" he glanced at the
plot's data bars "—the gamma platforms that have the range. Then bring up
the delta platforms and designate the CLACs for any of them that have the
reach."
* * *
"Anything
from the drone screen?" Oliver Diamato asked.
"Uh,
no, Sir," Commander Robert Zucker, his ops officer said quickly, and
looked a silent question at his admiral.
"There
ought to be," Diamato said. "Look at it. The LACs are going to run
right over those extraction ships. And it's going to take some sort of miracle
for that merchantman to slip away. They've got to know we're here—for that
matter, the fact that the extraction ships are scattering the way they are proves
they know. So, where's the response? There ought to at least be a flock of
Manty LACs coming out to meet us by now!"
"You
think they're up to something sneaky, Sir?"
"I
think there's a pretty good chance of it, yes," Diamato replied.
"Manties can screw up just like anyone else, but counting on them to do
that isn't exactly the smartest thing you can do."
He frowned
at the master plot for a few more seconds, then wheeled around to face his
communications officer.
"Get
me a link to Admiral Duval."
"Yes,
Sir."
Diamato
crossed towards his command chair. He was just about to sit down in it when a
strident alarm sounded.
"Missile
launch!" a taut voice from CIC announced sharply. "Multiple hostile
missile launches along the belt! Many missiles inbound at four-five-one KPS
squared! Time to first impact four-zero-niner seconds!"
* * *
"Well,
there they go," Hartnett observed bitterly as the firefly icons of
multi-drive missiles suddenly speckled the master plot. They streaked across
it, moving visibly even on the plot's scale, and the smaller, far more slowly
moving light codes of LACs began to blossom as well, as the Shrike and Ferret
squadrons lit off their impellers.
"Yes."
Padgorny's single-syllable reply sounded as if she'd bitten it out of a sheet
of hammered bronze. She found it difficult to believe just how angry she
actually was, and she forced herself to lean back in her command chair and
swallow all the other words she badly wanted to say.
"Broughton
is targeting their CLACs with the delta platforms, Ma'am," Thackeray
reported, and Padgorny nodded in acknowledgment. She hadn't specifically
dictated targets, but she'd known Broughton would have to use at least some of
the pods. His own LACs were much too far astern of the Peeps to overhaul them,
after all. And he was right to go after the CLACs, as well. If they had to do
this, then they might as well do it as effectively as possible. If he could
pick off the CLACs, or even just hammer them badly enough to force them to
withdraw into hyper, all the LACs the Peeps had committed to their probe would
be doomed, whatever else happened. And killing a couple of the Peeps'
superdreadnought-sized LAC carriers would be worthwhile in its own right.
"He's
using the gamma platforms on the LACs," Hartnett observed. The chief of
staff snorted. "I know it's the only way he can engage them short of the
freighters, but his target solutions on them are going to be lousy at this
range!"
"Better
than he'd have on our LACs," Padgorny pointed out. "Their EW
still leaves quite a bit to be desired."
* * *
Rear
Admiral Diamato listened to the eruption of sharp, staccato combat chatter as
the Manty missiles roared towards the task group.
The voices
on the command circuits were harsh, strained, but not panicky. Communications
discipline never really faltered, and the orders came crisply and quickly. He
felt himself settling back into his command chair, nodding in satisfaction
despite the suddenly altered tactical situation as he listened to his people
responding to it. There was no need for him to give any orders; they were
already doing exactly what they needed to do.
Captain
Hall would be proud of them, he
thought.
* * *
"Oh,
shit," Captain Morton Schneider said almost conversationally as the sudden
ugly rash of crimson missile icons erupted behind him. His LAC formation had
been just about to reverse acceleration when the hundreds of impeller
signatures sprang into malevolent life.
"Range
is approximately five-one million klicks," Lieutenant Rothschild, his
tactical officer reported in a hard-edged voice. "At constant acceleration
on our part, actual flight distance will be five-seven-point-five million
klicks. Flight time approximately eight-point-four minutes."
"Acknowledged,"
Schneider replied.
"We
have LACs lighting off as well," Rothschild continued. "Estimate
approximately fourteen hundred MDMs targeted on us. Looks like somewhere
between four and five hundred of their LACs accelerating to come in behind
them."
"They're
not a threat . . . yet," Schneider said, concentrating on the far more
immediate danger. "Formation Mike-Delta-One. And prepare to implement
Zizka."
"Aye,
Sir!"
The LAC
formation altered abruptly, each tiny vessel accelerating on its own, carefully
preplanned vector change. Zizka was new—a variant of the "Triple
Ripple" the Fleet had employed so successfully against the Manties' LACs.
It was wasteful, in some ways, but with that many Manty MDMs coming towards
them, they needed the best defense they could get.
Not that
circumstances were perfect for Zizka. With the hostile missiles already
launched and incoming, there was less response time than the doctrine's
formulators had hoped there would be, but Schneider's battle hardened squadron
commanders had learned their trade well. He watched his plot—necessarily far
less detailed than that available in a larger, more capable warship—as his
strike formation transformed itself into a defensive one, designed to provide
the maximum number of clear sightlines for his units' sensors and flight paths
for their counter-missiles.
"They're
targeting the task group, too, Sir," the tac officer said. "Looks
like they're concentrating on Skylark and Peregrine."
"Makes
sense," Schneider grunted. "Kill the carriers, trap the LACs."
"And
they're firing a lot of missiles, Sir," Rothschild said quietly.
* * *
"Launching
counter-missiles!" Commander Zucker reported, and Diamato nodded.
The range
was still long, but Republican warships carried a lot of counter-missiles these
days. They had to, given their weapons' individually poorer capabilities. Now
all eight of his battlecruisers, both the carriers, and his two light cruisers,
were pumping out every CM they could. Targeting solutions were marginal, at
best, at such a distance, but just over eight hundred MDMs were headed for the
two CLACs, and any kills were better than none.
The
counter-missiles streaked outward, and the EW platforms accompanying the attack
missiles brought up their onboard systems. Jagged cascades of jamming erupted
all across the wavefront of Manty missiles, blinding the counter-missiles'
rudimentary seekers and seriously degrading even the performance of the
starships' far more capable fire control. Then the platforms the Manties had
designated "Dragon's Teeth" lit off, and the threat sources abruptly
multiplied impossibly.
They must
have deployed hundreds—thousands—of pods around the periphery, Diamato thought coldly. That had to cost them a pretty
credit. But I don't think they've got as many of them as they'd like to
have.
Sherman quivered as a second wave of counter-missiles erupted
from her tubes. The Republican Navy had refitted its battlecruisers heavily,
doubling their original number of counter-missile tubes at the expense of a
sizable percentage of their energy armament. More energy weapons tonnage and
volume had gone into additional telemetry links, and Sherman and her
consorts were tossing canisters of counter-missiles out of their standard
missile tubes, as well.
"First
wave intercept in twenty-three seconds," Tactical announced tersely as yet
a third wave of CMs launched.
* * *
"Jesus,"
somebody muttered behind Everard Broughton. It was hardly a professional
comment, but it summed up the captain's own reaction quite nicely.
The heavily
stealthed reconnaissance platforms which had been observing the Peeps since
their arrival were close enough to see the individual counter-missiles being
launched, and Broughton had never seen so many CMs from so few launch
platforms.
"They've
got to be cutting their own control links to the first wave,"
Lieutenant Commander Witcinski said quietly. Broughton looked at him, and the
LAC tender Marigold's captain grimaced. "They can't have clear
transmission paths to them, Sir. Not with that many impeller wedges between
them and the birds."
"They
could be relaying through deployed platforms," Broughton countered, in the
interest of considering all alternatives, not because he really disagreed with
Witcinski.
"Than
their platforms would have to be a lot more capable than anything they're
supposed to be able to build, Sir," Witcinski returned, and Broughton
nodded.
"Can't
argue there, Sigismund," he conceded. "On the other hand, this looks
like a straight evolution of the same basic missile defense doctrine they
apparently employed at Sidemore. They're throwing everything they can at the
birds, and it looks to me like they must have refitted heavily with additional
counter-missile tubes and control links. It's the only way that few ships could
produce that volume of defensive fire."
"I
suppose it makes sense, especially if they can't deploy their version of the
MDM aboard something as small as a battlecruiser," Witcinski said.
"And
it's going to play hell with our calculations of the necessary salvo density
for effective system defense," Broughton agreed.
* * *
Morton
Schneider watched the Manticoran missiles knife towards his LACs like so many
space-going sharks. A blizzard of counter-missiles raced to meet them, but the
attack missiles' accompanying electronics warfare platforms were far too
capable. CM after CM lost its target, wandering hopelessly off course. The
first wave intercept killed only twenty of the incoming MDMs. The second wave
of counter-missiles did better—over a hundred and fifty of the Manticoran
missiles disappeared—but that left over twelve hundred, and he wasn't going to
have time for more than another two or three CM launches. Only, if he took
those launches, there wouldn't be time for Zizka, and in the face of that
massive missile storm . . . .
"Implement
Zizka now!" he snapped.
"Aye,
Sir. Implementing Zizka," Rothschild replied instantly, and smacked the
heel of his hand down on the big, red button beside his tactical panel.
Two hundred
Cimeterre-class LACs launched their full missile loads. Six thousand
far-shorter ranged missiles, launched in three slightly staggered waves, went
streaking to meet the incoming Manticoran MDMs, and Broughton watched his
display narrowly as they spread apart, each bird positioning itself precisely
to play its part in the "Triple Ripple." Designed to knock back the
sensors and EW of Manty LACs, it ought to do a real number on missile sensors
which had to be pointed directly towards their target at this point.
The lead
wave of his missiles was almost into position when the MDMs abruptly changed
heading. Schneider's jaw muscles clenched painfully as the attack missiles'
vectors changed. Half of them were "climbing" sharply, while the
other half "dove" equally sharply, and he swallowed a venomous oath
as he realized what they were doing.
So one of
their pickets who saw the Ripple did get
home, he thought. And the bastards decided to do something about it.
Worse, they figured out the possibilities for missile defense and did something
about them, too..
The
maneuver had to be the result of a preprogrammed attack profile. There was far
too little time for whoever had fired them to change profiles that quickly on
the fly. But whoever had done the preprogramming had timed it well. The change
in attitude interposed the floors and roofs of the MDMs' impeller wedges between
them and the Cimeterres' missiles just as the powerful, dirty warheads
of the Republican missiles began to detonate. The solid wall of blast fronts
and EMP which was supposed to blind and burn out the Manticoran missiles'
seekers wasted itself against sensors which couldn't even see it.
All three
Zizka waves detonated, and the flood of attack missiles which had parted around
the Triple Ripple's roadblock, altered heading once more. Their noses swung
back towards their targets, and there wasn't time for another counter-missile
launch.
Laser heads
began to detonate in deadly sequence. X-ray lasers, designed to engage
superdreadnoughts, ripped and tore at mere LACs, and space was abruptly ugly
with broken and dying craft. Light attack craft shattered, vomiting hull
splinters and bodies. Fusion bottles flashed like funeral pyres, and a tsunami
of fire washed over Schneider's formation.
The evasion
maneuver programmed into the Manticoran missiles as a counter to the Triple
Ripple had blunted the defensive maneuver, but it had also broken the attack
missiles' locks on their designated targets. They had to reacquire on their
own, without guidance from the ships which had launched them, and their onboard
targeting systems were far less capable than the fire control of their
motherships.
Twelve
hundred missiles reached attack range, but over half of them never managed to
relocate a target before their overtake velocity carried them clear past the
Havenite LACs. Of the five hundred-plus which did see a target, the vast
majority concentrated on the most exposed, clearly visible targets.
"Only" one hundred and seventy-five of Schneider's LACs were actually
attacked. Of that number, seventeen survived.
* * *
"Well,
that sucks," Lieutenant Janice Kent observed.
The
youthful, dark-haired lieutenant was the tactical officer aboard HMS Ice
Pick, the command LAC of Captain Broughton's strike. Commander Hertz,
Ice Pick's commanding officer and Broughton's COLAC, glanced sideways at
her.
"It's
better than a twenty percent kill of their entire formation," he pointed
out, and she made a face.
"Sure
it is, Skip," she agreed. "But it's less than a ten percent
kill ratio for the launch as a whole. Against targets we're supposed to
be killing with a single hit each."
"True,"
Hertz conceded. "But I'll bet you it came as a nasty surprise to them. And
at least we know the pop-up maneuver works. Not well, maybe, but well enough to
get at least some hits through."
"And
now they know we know," Kent said. "Which means they're going to be
thinking of another new wrinkle of their own."
"If
you can't take a joke, you shouldn't have joined," Hertz told her, and she
chuckled sourly.
* * *
Oliver
Diamato watched his plot as the counter-missiles tore into the cloud of
attacking missiles. Despite their relatively poor targeting solutions and
limited tracking capability, the sheer mass of Republican CMs had to have some
effect, and dozens of Manticoran missiles began to disappear.
Unfortunately,
there were hundreds of them.
Next time, a distant corner of Diamato's brain thought, we hold
some of the LACs back. We need their point defense.
The second
and third waves of counter-missiles killed still more of the attackers, but the
Manticoran electronic warfare platforms were fully active, now, and intercept
accuracy plummeted.
The torrent
of MDMs slammed across the outer and middle intercept zones, and shipboard
point defense laser clusters began to fire. Broadside energy weapons joined
them, blazing away in defiant fury as the heavy warheads thundered down upon
them.
Everard
Broughton had fired eight hundred and thirty missiles at Diamato's squadron and
the CLACs he was escorting. Counter-missiles killed two hundred and eleven of
them. The close-in energy weapons killed another two hundred and six. Of the
remaining four hundred and thirteen, fifty-one were EW platforms, and another
hundred and six were defeated by Republican ECM and simply lost lock and
wandered off course until they self-destructed at the end of their run.
But that
meant that two hundred and fifty-six reached attack range and detonated.
The long
range had aided the Republic's defenses by giving them longer tracking time and
a deeper engagement envelope. The capability of Manticoran EW had gone a long
way towards offsetting that, but nothing the Manticorans could do could
magically erase the fire control problems inherent in targeting a maneuvering
starship at a range of almost three light-minutes. Every one of the attack
missiles had been initially targeted upon one of the CLACs, but a third even of
those which reached attack range had lost their original targets and took
whatever they could find in replacement.
Some of
them reacquired one or the other of the CLACs. Others didn't.
William T.
Sherman staggered as a dozen X-ray
lasers gouged at her. Half of them wasted their fury against her impeller
wedge, and her sidewalls caught at the other half-dozen, bending and deflecting
them. Only two actually struck the ship, but they blasted deep into her,
shattering her relatively light armor with contemptuous ease.
"Heavy
damage starboard forward! Graser Three and Five are gone—heavy casualties on
both mounts! Missile One, Three, and Seven are out of the net! We have a breach
in the core hull between Frame Sixty and Frame Seventy!"
Diamato
heard the damage reports, but his eyes were riveted to the icons of RHNS Skylark
and Peregrine as the full brunt of the Manticoran attack slammed
down upon them.
Skylark heaved as the X-ray lasers blasted into her. Over half
the total surviving laser heads went after her, and the big ship shuddered in
agony as laser after laser ripped into her. The carrier division's flagship was
big—bigger than most superdreadnoughts—but she wasn't a
superdreadnought. She was a CLAC, her flanks studded with launch bays which
simply could not be as massively armored as a superdreadnought's hull. Her core
hull, wrapped around her fusion plants, her magazines, her life-support and
other critical systems, could be and was, but it lacked the layer upon layer of
defenses built into the outer structure of a ship of the wall.
Hull
plating shattered. Glowing splinters—some bigger than one of her own LACs—flew
like sparks from some hideous forge. Counter-missile tubes and point defense
stations were blasted away, along with their crews, and the stilettos of
bomb-pumped fury tore deeper and deeper into her.
Diamato
would never know exactly how many of them stabbed into her, but, in the end, it
was one too many.
Her entire
forward impeller room exploded in a chain reaction of arcing capacitors. Her
wedge faltered, letting still more lasers through to rend and tear, and power
surges blew through her systems like demons.
One of them
reached her inertial compensator. It failed, and the two hundred-plus gravities
of acceleration from her still-active after impeller ring killed every man and
woman aboard her in the fleeting seconds before it broke her back. The
white-hot flare of her failing fusion bottles simply punctuated her
destruction.
The light
cruiser Phantom went with her, victim of at least three MDMs intended
for her betters, and Peregrine was severely damaged. All of Diamato's
battlecruisers took at least some damage of their own, but Peregrine was
far more badly hit.
"She's
down two alphas and five betas out of her after ring, Sir," Zucker
reported. "Half her starboard bays are out of action, and she's lost at
least thirty percent of her missile defense. Her starboard sidewall's down to
about forty percent, and Captain Joubert reports very heavy casualties."
"Thank
you, Robert," Diamato said, projecting a calm he was far from feeling.
He looked
back at his master plot. With Duval—and Skylark—dead, the full
responsibility of command had just landed squarely on his shoulders, and he
forced himself to draw a deep breath. As Captain Hall had once said, there was
always time to think. Maybe not a lot, but there was always some time .
. . or else you were already so screwed it didn't matter what you did.
His mouth
quirked mordantly at the thought, and his brain began sorting through the
situation.
Sherman was hurt, but still combat capable . . . except for the
minor fact that he couldn't see anything to engage other than the Manty LACs
who were far, far out of his range. And while it seemed likely that the torrent
of missiles which had ravaged the task group had come from independently
deployed pods, it was entirely possible they hadn't. There might well be Manty
battlecruisers—or even a couple of ships of the wall—out here. A couple of
old-style wallers, without onboard MDM capability, would make mincemeat out of
his remaining strength without breaking a sweat, and if there were even a
single pod-layer in range . . . .
Captain
Schneider's LACs were shaking back down into formation, he saw, and made his
decision. The Republic's FTL communications ability continued to lag far behind
that of the Manticorans, despite the tech windfall from Erewhon. It was better
than it had been, and there were promises of better still, but the new Havenite
systems were more massive than their Manty counterparts, and they were
difficult to refit to an existing ship's impeller nodes. New-build ships would
come from the yards with vastly improved capabilities, but older ships—like Sherman—remained
far more limited. Still, what Diamato has was going to be enough for what he
had to do.
"We've
got to get Peregrine clear, Serena," he said flatly. "Instruct
Captain Joubert to translate out immediately. He's too take his ship to the
Alpha rendezvous and wait for us there. If he hasn't seen any of us within
forty-eight hours of his own arrival, he's to return independently to base.
Instruct Specter to escort Peregrine."
"Yes,
Sir," Commander Taverner said quietly, and Diamato's mouth twitched in a
bitter almost-smile at the chief of staff's tone. Detaching Peregrine
meant Diamato was writing off all of his LACs, but the rear admiral had
no choice. The ship was simply too badly damaged, and the Republic couldn't
afford for him to lose her as he'd already lost Skylark.
"Send
a message to Captain Schneider," Diamato continued, turning to
Communications. "Inform him that Plan Zulu-Three is in effect."
"Aye,
Sir."
Diamato sat
back in his command chair, watching his plot with hard blue eyes, as his orders
went out. Peregrine's icon turned away, accompanied by the surviving
light cruiser, and disappeared into the concealing safety of hyper-space.
At least I
got her safely out of here, he
thought. He knew his bitter self-recrimination was undeserved. He and Harold
Duval had done exactly what their orders had specified, and the people who'd
written those orders had known something like this might happen. The entire
point of the attack had been to discover how the Manties' system defense
doctrine was evolving, and in the callous calculus of war, the price the
Republic had paid to achieve that goal was not excessive. Or, at least, it was
far lower than the price the same sort of defenses might have exacted against a
heavier, serious attack in force which didn't know about them.
But that
made him feel no better about Skylark's destruction. Even with her LACs
away, there had been over three thousand men and women aboard that ship, and
not one of them had survived. That was a bitter price, excessive or not. And it
did not include the eight thousand-plus Republican naval personnel aboard the
task group's LACs. Too many of them were already dead, more of them were going
to die, and Oliver Diamato had just ordered the only ship which could have
recovered their LACs out of the system.
He watched
the impeller signatures of Schneider's LACs breaking down into three- and
four-squadron formations, scattering on individual evasion courses. This, too,
had been planned for, however little anyone had actually expected the plan to
be needed. Under Zulu-Three, Schneider's units would make for half a dozen
widely separated rendezvouses beyond the hyper limit, where Diamato's
battlecruisers would recover as many of their crewmen as possible.
It was
going to be tight, and difficult. The odds were that Schneider's escape courses
would take his LACs into the reach of still more of the deployed system defense
pods. It was possible none of his ships would survive to reach a
rendezvous, or that the Manties would manage to deduce the rendezvouses
locations and get something into position to interdict them. Or that the
faster, more capable Manty LACs would intercept the Cimeterres short of
the limit.
But Oliver
Diamato was grimly determined that anyone who did reach one of the
rendezvous points would find someone waiting there to take him home.
"All
right," he said. "Take us into hyper. Astrogation, start your update
on the Zulu-Three positions."
"Everyone
is here now, Your Grace."
Honor
looked up from the report she'd been reading. James MacGuiness stood in the
open door of her Jason Bay mansion's office, and she shook her head wryly at
his expression and the taste of his emotions.
"You
needn't sound quite so disapproving, Mac," she said. "I'm not really
overworking myself, you know."
"That
depends on your definition of overwork, doesn't it, Your Grace?" he
responded. "I've certainly seen you work harder and on less sleep. But I
don't recall ever having seen you with a stomach bug that's lasted as long as
this one. Neither," he added pointedly, "does Miranda."
"Mac,"
she said patiently to the man who had once been her steward and remained her
keeper, "it's not that bad. It's just a little stomach upset. For that
matter, maybe it's nerves." Her lips twitched. "It's not like my new
assignment is stress-free, you know!"
"No,
Ma'am, it isn't." Honor's eyes narrowed as MacGuiness reverted to the old,
military form of address. He was careful not to use it these days, for the most
part. "But I've seen you under stress before," he continued.
"After you were wounded on Grayson, for example. Or after the duel. And
with all due respect, Ma'am," he said very seriously, "nerves
have never put you off your feed the way you've been lately."
Honor regarded
him thoughtfully for several seconds, then sighed.
"You
win Mac," she surrendered. "Call Doctor Frazier. Ask her if she can
see me Monday, all right?"
"Perfectly,
Your Grace," he said, rationing himself to only the slightest flicker of
satisfaction.
"Good,"
she told him, "because I'm going to be up pretty late, and I don't want
you hovering disapprovingly outside the door. We've got a perfectly capable
staff who can feed us and bring us things to drink if we need them, and you can
take yourself off to bed at your usual time. Is that understood?"
"Perfectly,
Your Grace," he repeated with a slight smile, and she chuckled.
"In
that case, Mr. MacGuiness, would you be so good as to ask my guests to join
me?"
"Of
course, Your Grace."
He bowed
slightly and withdrew, and Honor climbed out of her chair, walked to the opened
crystoplast wall, and stepped out onto the office balcony.
Jason Bay
gleamed before her under the light of Roc. The moon's disk drifted in and out
of breaks in the thin, high overcast, a brisk breeze pushed waves across the
bay, and the lights of Landing glittered in sprawling heaps across the water.
She felt the wind pressing against her and smelled salt, and longed suddenly
for her sailboat. She could almost feel the spokes of the wheel pressing
against her palms, the spray on her cheeks, the simple pleasure of watching the
sharp-edged sails stealing the wind's power. Moonlight, stars, and freedom from
care and responsibility all beckoned to her, and she smiled wistfully. Then she
turned her back on the night-struck bay's seduction and stepped back into her
office as MacGuiness ushered in her visitors.
A
brown-haired officer in the uniform of a rear admiral led the procession,
followed by a tall, youngish looking captain of the list, Mercedes Brigham, and
the other key members of the staff Honor was profoundly grateful she'd managed
to retain intact from Task Force Thirty-Four.
"Alistair,"
she said, stepping forward with a warm smile as she offered the flag officer
her hand. "It's good to see you again. Mercedes told me you'd gotten in
this morning."
"It's
good to see you, too," Alistair McKeon said, squeezing her hand with an
even bigger smile. "Nice to know you were satisfied enough to want me
again, for that matter!"
"Always,
Alistair. Always."
"That's
what I like to hear," he said, looking around the office. "Where's
your furry little shadow?"
"Nimitz
is visiting Samantha at White Haven," she said.
"Oh.
At White Haven, eh?" He looked at her, gray eyes glinting. "I hear
it's nice up north this time of year."
"Yes,
it is." She gripped his hand for a moment longer, then looked at the
dark-haired, improbably handsome captain who had accompanied him.
"Rafe."
She held out her hand to him in turn, and he shook it firmly.
"Your
Grace," he said, inclining his head.
"I'm
sorry about Werewolf," she said in a quieter tone.
"I
won't pretend I'm not going to miss her, Your Grace," Captain Rafe
Cardones replied. "But a brand new Invictus-class superdreadnought
is nothing to sneeze at when you haven't been on the list any longer than I
have. And another stint as your flag captain isn't going to hurt my
résumé any."
"Well,
that's going to depend on just how well we all do, isn't it?" she
responded, then looked at Brigham and the other staffers.
Captain
Andrea Jaruwalski, her operations officer, was as composed looking as ever, but
Honor tasted the combination of anticipation, eagerness, and trepidation behind
Jaruwalski's hawk-like profile. George Reynolds, her staff intelligence officer,
promoted to full commander from lieutenant commander after Sidemore, wasn't
quite as good at concealing all of the questions bubbling through his active
brain. Her staff astrogator, Lieutenant Commander Theophile Kgari, also
recently promoted, followed Reynolds through the door. Kgari was only a
second-generation Manticoran, and his complexion was as dark as Honor's friend
Michelle Henke's. Timothy Mears, Honor's flag lieutenant, brought up the rear,
and his fair hair and gray-green eyes might have been specifically designed to
contrast with Kgari's dark coloring.
"All
right, people," she invited, gesturing at the comfortable armchairs
scattered around the large office, "find seats. We've got a lot to talk
about."
Her
subordinates obeyed, settling quickly into place. Honor took one last look
through the opened crystoplast wall, then pressed the button that closed the
sliding panels. Another command rendered the outer surface opaque, and a third
activated the anti-snooping systems installed throughout the mansion and its
grounds.
"First,"
she began, turning her own chair to face them all, "I want to say that I
asked the Admiralty to let me keep all of you because of how satisfied I am
with your performance at Sidemore. I couldn't have asked for better from you
there . . . but it looks like I may have to in our new assignment."
She tasted
the way nerves tightened after her last sentence, and she smiled without any
humor at all.
"The
bottom line is that Eighth Fleet is something of a paper hexapuma at the moment.
The Admiralty doesn't have the ships to make it anything but a shadow of what
it was under Admiral White Haven. Your battle squadron, Alistair—all six ships
worth of it—will constitute our entire 'wall of battle' for at least the
immediate future."
"Excuse
me?" McKeon blinked. "Our entire wall?"
"That's
what I said," Honor replied grimly. "Not only that, but any
additional wallers we receive for the next few months will almost certainly be
old-style, pre-pod ships from the Reserve."
"Your
Grace," Mercedes Brigham said quietly, "that's not a 'fleet;' it's a
task force. Or maybe only a task group."
"It's
a little better than that, Mercedes," Honor said. "For example, we'll
have two full squadrons of CLACs under Alice Truman. That's over a quarter of
the total we have in commission, including—" she smiled at Cardones
"—Werewolf. And they're giving us all of the Manticoran
pod-battlecruisers. We'll have first call on additional Agamemnons as
they commission, as well. And we should be seeing the majority of the
Saganami-Cs, as well."
"Excuse
me, Your Grace," Jaruwalski said slowly, "but that sounds like a
peculiar force mix, if you'll pardon my saying so. My impression from the media
reports, at least, was that Eighth Fleet was being reactivated as our
primary offensive command, just as it was during Operation Buttercup. But
you're talking about primarily light units, aren't you?"
"That's
exactly what I'm talking about," Honor confirmed. She drew a deep breath
and leaned back in her chair.
"The
other day, the Queen referred to me as her 'lucky talisman,'" she said,
with a slight grimace. "I might quibble with the accuracy of that label,
on several levels, but thanks to the media coverage of Sidemore, there's some
truth to it. At least in terms of public perception. At the moment, Admiralty
House is rather hoping the Havenites will read those reports at face value.
"The
truth is that the deployment cupboard is bare, people. We're scraping the
bottom of the barrel just to maintain the fleets we've got to have to cover our
critical core systems. We simply can't reduce them any further, even with all
of the system-defense pods and other fortifications we can put into position.
But bad as the situation is, it's going to get worse before it gets better.
We'll get to the exact figures ONI is projecting shortly, but what matters for
our purposes right this minute is that the Havenites' wall of battle is already
bigger than ours is, and it's going to grow faster than ours is for at
least the next two T-years.
"Which
means that, if they're prepared to take the losses, they probably have—or
shortly will have—the combat power they need to hammer Manticore or
Grayson."
Her office
was deathly still and silent.
"Needless
to say, all of that is highly classified information," she continued after
a moment. "We don't know if the Republic is as well aware of those numbers
as we are, but we have to assume they are. After all, our pre-war strength was
pretty much a matter of public record; theirs wasn't, so they started with an intelligence
advantage. However, we're hoping they won't want to take such massive losses if
they can possibly avoid it. And the job of Eighth Fleet, at this moment, is to
persuade them to disperse as much of their fleet strength as possible, so that
it won't be available for offensive operations."
"So
they're giving us units optimized for raiding operations," McKeon said.
"Exactly."
Honor nodded. "The idea is for us to wreak a fair amount of havoc in the
Republic's rear areas. They can't have built up and maintained a fleet the size
of their present navy without having weakened themselves somewhere. For
example, ONI's best estimate, from all the intelligence sources we still have
in the Republic, is that one thing they did was to scrap all the old
battleships the Old Regime was using for rear-area defense. Even if they hadn't
needed the manpower anywhere else, those ships would have been sitting ducks
for MDMs and LACs, so it would make a lot of sense to retire them. But it's
unlikely they've been able to replace them out of new construction, either.
It's more probable they're relying on light units and, possibly, LACs of their
own for normal security. Undoubtedly, they also hope the damage they did to us
in their opening operation knocked back our offensive capability badly enough
we won't be in any position to take advantage of the weakness of their
secondary systems' defenses. Our job is to convince them they're wrong."
"And
they gave you Eighth Fleet, and played up its role as our 'primary
offensive force,' to help convince them of that," McKeon said. Honor
looked at him, and he shrugged. "It's not that hard to figure out, Honor.
If the Admiralty gave you the assignment after Sidemore, then clearly it
regards Eighth Fleet as a critical command which it will reinforce as rapidly
as possible. Which means the Peeps are going to have to assume that whatever we
do to them with raids will only grow steadily in intensity and weight.
Right?"
"Something
along those lines," she said. "And, as much as possible, they'll be
right. It's just that the degree to which anyone can reinforce us is
going to be limited."
She let her
chair come fully upright once again, laying her folded forearms on her desk and
leaning forward over them.
"So,
that's the bottom line, people. We'll have essentially a free hand in selecting
our objectives and timing our operations. We'll base out of Trevor's Star, so
we can also serve as a ready reinforcement to Admiral Kuzak's Third Fleet. And
we'll do everything we can to convince the media—and the Republic—we have a lot
more tonnage and firepower than we actually do."
"Sounds
. . . interesting," McKeon said.
"Oh,
it'll be 'interesting,' all right," she said grimly. "And now,
the floor is open for suggestions about ways to make it even more interesting
for the Republic than it is for us."
* * *
"Have
you got a minute, Tony?"
Sir Anthony
Langtry, Foreign Secretary of the Star Kingdom of Manticore, looked up in faint
surprise as the Earl of White Haven poked his head into Langtry's private
office.
"I
suppose I do," the Foreign Secretary said mildly. He watched quizzically
as White Haven stepped fully into the office, treecat on his shoulder, then
pointed at a chair and cocked his head. "May I ask just how you got
through the dragon's den without tripping any alarms?"
White Haven
chuckled as he took the indicated chair and lifted Samantha down into his lap.
Early morning sunlight poured in through the office windows to his left,
splashing over his chair, and Samantha buzzed in pleasure as its warmth soaked
into her.
"It's
not really all that hard," the earl said, stroking the 'cat's silken pelt.
"I just walked into the outer office, told Istvan you were expecting me
this morning, and that there was no need to announce me."
"Interesting."
Langtry tilted his chair back. "Particularly since Istvan's been with me
for over ten T-years, and he happens to be the person who keeps my schedule.
Ah, I wasn't expecting you, was I?"
"No,"
White Haven said, much more seriously. "A point, judging from Istvan's
expression, of which he was quite well aware."
"I
thought I wasn't." Langtry regarded his unexpected visitor thoughtfully.
"As it happens, there's nothing else on my calendar just at the
moment—except, of course," he added a bit pointedly, "for this
position paper I'm supposed to be studying before I meet with the
Andermani ambassador for lunch. So I suppose Istvan may have decided to humor
you. And now that he has, why are you here?"
"For a
private conversation."
"It
wouldn't be a bit more of an end run than just a get together of two old
friends, now would it?" Langtry asked.
"As a
matter of fact, it is," White Haven admitted, now without a trace of
humor, and the treecat in his lap sat up to regard Langtry with grass-green
eyes.
"Hamish,
it's not going to do any good," the Foreign Secretary said.
"Tony,
she's got to at least get them talking again."
"Then
I suggest you convince her of that. Or at least your brother."
Langtry regarded White Haven very levelly. "He is the Prime
Minister, you know."
"I
certainly do. But on this particular point, he's almost as . . . focused, let's
say, as Elizabeth herself. He knows how I feel. He disagrees with me. And, as
you say, he is the Prime Minister."
"As it
happens," Langtry said slowly, "I find myself substantially in agreement
with him and the Queen on this one, Hamish."
"But—"
"Hamish,
there's not really anything substantively new in any of Pritchart's so-called
proposals. She's still flatly denying her government falsified our diplomatic
exchanges. She's still asserting that she attacked us because of High Ridge's
refusal to negotiate in good faith, and that our publication of our 'forged'
diplomatic traffic indicates that the leopard—that's us, Hamish, in case you
hadn't noticed—hasn't changed its spots just because of his fall from power.
And she's insisting the plebiscites to be held on the previously occupied
Havenite planets be conducted under her exclusive supervision. Where's
anything new in any of that?"
"What's
'new' is that she's proposed a cessation of hostilities while we negotiate on
the basis of her most recent round of proposals," White Haven said
sharply. "Trust me. We need that cessation a lot worse than they do right
now!"
"Why?"
Langtry demanded bluntly. "Unless you've forgotten, we had a cease-fire in
place—as far as we knew, anyway—the last time the Peeps launched
a sneak attack on us. You are familiar with the old proverb that goes 'Fool me
once, shame on you; fool me twice, shame on me,' aren't you?"
"Of course
I am. But do you really think she's going to make that sort of proposal just so
she can violate the cease-fire a second time? The whole point of the squabbling
over who forged whose diplomatic correspondence is that she's trying to
convince her own public, the rest of the galaxy, and possibly even a
significant portion of our public opinion, that we were the ones who
violated the accepted standards of diplomacy. That she attacked us only because
we'd demonstrated we couldn't be trusted. If she offers to sit down and talk
with us, then attacks us a second time while the talks are still in progress,
she gives us the perfect opportunity to demonstrate that she's the one whose
interstellar word can't be trusted."
"You
could be right," Langtry acknowledged. "At the same time, she can
always officially announce she's breaking off talks before she hits us again.
And if she's careful to observe all the diplomatic niceties this time around,
wouldn't that tend to strengthen her claim that she tried to observe them the
last time?"
"That's
so Machiavellian it makes my head hurt just thinking about it," White
Haven complained. "Given the military situation, why should she try
anything that complex?"
"How
the hell should I know?" Langtry demanded testily. "All I can tell
you is that she's already acted in ways that are at least that 'Machiavellian.'
And as far as the military situation is concerned, I can actually see some
logic from her side in calling a temporary halt to the war."
"I
know," White Haven said wearily. He shook his head, sitting back and
cradling Samantha against his chest. "I've had exactly the same
conversation with Willie."
"Well,
he has a point. At the moment, according to your own analysts, we've still got
something close to effective military parity. But that balance is going to
shift steadily in their favor over the next year or so. Wouldn't it make sense
for them to use diplomacy to neutralize our military forces without firing
another shot until they've built their own up to a point which gives them a
decisive superiority?"
"Of
course it would. And I'm not trying to suggest the Peeps are the most
trustworthy people in the explored galaxy. Or, for that matter, even that
Pritchart is remotely interested in negotiating in ultimate good faith. It may
be significant that she's at least offering the possibility of third-party
monitoring of the plebiscites on the disputed planets, but I'll freely
acknowledge that even that could be nothing more than windowdressing. But the
point is that if they hit us again as hard as they did the last time, if they
go for a single vulnerable point and they're willing to take the losses, they
can punch right through us tomorrow. Give me eight months—six; hell, give me four
months!—and I'll make the price they'd pay for an attack like that so high
even Oscar Saint-Just would've hesitated to pay it! That's what
negotiating with them can buy us. The time to get our feet back under us."
"Hamish,
it's not going to happen," Langtry said, shaking his head. "It's not
going to happen for a lot of reasons. Because we can't trust them after they've
already lied so comprehensively. Because even the reports from Admiral Givens
admit that at this moment we can't be certain a cease-fire would help us
militarily more than it would help them. Because the fact that they're offering
it in the first place suggests it would help them militarily, at least
in their opinion, more than it would help us. Because we're not going to allow
them to rehabilitate themselves diplomatically and take back any of the moral
high ground in interstellar public opinion. And, frankly, because the Queen
hates their guts with a pure, burning passion. If you want her to sit down and
talk with these people, after everything that's happened, then you've got to be
able to demonstrate that it will provide us with a significant advantage
without improving the Peeps' position simultaneously. And the truth is, Hamish,
that you can't demonstrate that."
"No,"
White Haven admitted after a moment, his voice and expression both weary.
"No, I can't. To be perfectly honest, there's a part of me which genuinely
believes they mean it. That the demands they're still making are really pretty
damned minimal, given the fact that they currently occupy all the planets in
question. But I can't prove they are. And I can't prove that my awareness of
our own weaknesses isn't causing me to overestimate how valuable a few months
of relative operational inactivity would be for us."
"I
know." Langtry regarded him with something almost like compassion.
"And I also know," he added in an oddly gentle tone, "that
Duchess Harrington continues to believe the Peeps' current leadership—or at
least some elements of it—can be trusted to keep its word."
Samantha's
ears twitched, and White Haven looked up quickly, eyes narrowed, at the reference
to Honor, but Langtry only looked back levelly.
"As it
happens," the Foreign Secretary continued, "I, also, have a very
lively respect for Duchess Harrington's judgment. And I realize the two of
you—and Emily, of course—have become close allies, politically, as well as
militarily. But in this particular instance, I think I have to agree with the
Queen and Willie that she's wrong. The Peeps' actions aren't those of the
honorable people she thinks they are. There could be a lot of extenuating
circumstances which account for that, but it's true. And we have to make our
decisions based on their demonstrated behavior, not on what we think their
internal character is really like."
White Haven
started to reply, then clamped his jaw tightly. Whether he liked it or not,
everything Langtry had just said made sense. It all hung together, and the
Foreign Secretary was certainly right about the Havenites' demonstrated
behavior.
And
Langtry's tactful suggestion that he might be allowing Honor's view of Thomas
Theisman—who, after all, was only one man—to influence his own analysis of the
situation could well have merit. He didn't think he was, but it wasn't
impossible.
He drew a
deep breath, ran his hand gently down Samantha's spine, and forced his jaw
muscles to relax. It really was possible he was being influenced by the fact
that the woman he loved—one of the women he loved—found her view so
profoundly at odds with that of virtually everyone else in the current
government. She didn't make a point of her disagreement, but she didn't back
away from it, either. The Queen, and his own brother, for that matter, knew
exactly what she thought. Which was one of the reasons they didn't discuss that
particular aspect of the war with her at the moment.
And, he admitted to himself, it's the reason you haven't
told her about Pritchart's 'new' proposals, either, Hamish.
"All
right, Tony," he said finally. "Maybe you're all right and I'm wrong.
And maybe I am reacting this way because I'm too well aware of where we're in
trouble and not aware of where they might be, or think they are. At any
rate, I've given it my best shot with Willie and Elizabeth, and now even with
you."
"You
have that," Langtry agreed wryly. "Emphatically, one might almost
say."
"All
right, all right!" White Haven repeated, this time with a hint of a smile.
"I'll go away and leave you in peace."
He stood,
lifting Samantha back to his shoulder, and started for the door. But he
stopped, just short of it, and looked back.
"It
all makes sense the way you interpret it. And Elizabeth, and Willie," he
said. "And you may all be right. But I can't help thinking, Tony—what if
you're not? What if I'm not? What if this isn't just a chance to buy
time to organize our defenses, but a genuine opportunity to end the war without
anyone else getting killed?"
"In
that case, a lot of people are going to be killed who wouldn't have to
be," Langtry said levelly. "But all any of us can do is the best we
can do and hope at the end of the day we can live with our choices."
"I
know," Hamish Alexander said softly. "I know."
* * *
"We're
ready for you now, Your Grace."
Honor
switched off her pad, rose from the comfortable chair in the private waiting
room, scooped Nimitz up from the chair beside her, and followed the nurse.
Andrew LaFollet trailed along behind her, and she hid a smile as she remembered
his expression the first time he'd accompanied her on a visit to her physician
and she'd innocently invited him to accompany her into the examination room.
She hadn't done that to him again, but she tasted his own memory of the event
as he followed her down the hallway. And, to be honest, she was tempted to do
it again this time, since it was only too obvious LaFollet strongly supported
MacGuiness' insistence on this nonsense.
"Through
here, Your Grace," the nurse said. He opened the exam room's door, and
Honor glanced mischievously at LaFollet, who returned her gaze stoically, then
looked at the nurse.
"Thank
you. Ah, would be all right if my armsman stands in the hall here?" she
asked him.
"Quite
all right, Your Grace," the nurse assured her. "We're aware of the
Grayson security requirements."
"Good,"
she said, and smiled at LaFollet. "This shouldn't take too long,
Andrew," she told him. "Of course, if you'd like to—"
She
gestured at the examination room, one eyebrow arched, and treasured his
long-suffering expression.
"That's
all right, My Lady. I'll be fine right here," he assured her.
* * *
Honor
checked the time again, and Nimitz bleeked a question as she frowned.
"Sorry,
Stinker," she said, reaching out to scratch his chest as he reclined
comfortably beside her on the examining table. "Just wondering what's
become of Doctor Frazier."
Nimitz
flipped his shoulders in an unmistakable shrug, and she chuckled. But she didn't
stop wondering.
Both her
parents were physicians, and she'd spent enough time undergoing repairs to be
more familiar with the medical profession than most. There was a rhythm and a
timing to examinations, and a routine physical shouldn't be taking this long.
Doctor Frazier's nurse had run all the diagnostics and departed with the
results almost ninety minutes ago. Frazier should have evaluated them and put
in her own appearance within fifteen or twenty minutes at the outside.
"Wait
here, Stinker."
Honor
climbed down off the examining table, opened the door, and stuck her head out
into the hall. LaFollet started to turn towards the door as it opened, then
stopped, facing rigidly away from it.
"Oh,
don't be silly, Andrew!" she scolded fondly. "I'm perfectly
decent."
He turned
his head, and his mouth twitched, hovering on the edge of a smile, as he took
in her uniform trousers and blouse.
"Yes,
My Lady?"
"I'm
just wondering where Doctor Frazier is."
"Do
you want me to go check, My Lady?"
"No,
no." She shook her head. "I just wanted to poke my head out and look
around. I'm sure she'll get here as soon as possible. I wonder what's holding
her up, though."
"If
you'd like—" LaFollet began, then broke off as Doctor Frazier came briskly
down the hall with a memo board tucked firmly under her left arm.
Janet
Frazier was trim, slender, auburn-haired, and a good twenty-five centimeters
shorter than Honor. She moved with a brisk confidence and habitually exuded the
sense of authority which was one of the hallmarks of a good physician. She
looked just as composed as usual, but both of Honor's eyebrows rose as she
tasted the doctor's actual emotions. Consternation predominated, mingled with
something very much like apprehension-flavored amusement.
"Your
Grace," Frazier said. "I apologize for the delay. I had to, ah,
recheck some test results and do a little research."
"I beg
your pardon?" Honor said.
"Why
don't we step back into the exam room, Your Grace?"
Honor
obeyed the polite command. She stepped back up onto the stool, and parked
herself on the edge of the padded table. Nimitz took one look at Frazier, then
sat up beside Honor, ears cocked. The raised diagnostic sensors just cleared
the top of Honor's head as she sat down, and Frazier tossed her memo board onto
the polished top of a low cabinet and folded her arms across her chest.
"Your
Grace," she said after a moment, "I'm pretty sure I have a surprise
for you. The nausea you've been experiencing?"
She paused,
and Honor nodded.
"It's
morning sickness, Your Grace."
Honor
blinked. For a long moment, perhaps five seconds, she had absolutely no idea
what Frazier was talking about. Then it registered, and she sat bolt upright.
In fact, she sat up so quickly she bashed the top of her head on one of the
sensors.
Not that she
even noticed the impact.
"That's
ridiculous!" she snapped. "Impossible!"
"Your
Grace, I checked the results three times," Frazier said. "Trust me.
You are pregnant."
"But—But
. . . I can't be!" Honor shook her head, thoughts skittering like a
treecat kitten on ice. "I can't be," she repeated. "On more
levels than you can possibly imagine, Doctor, I can't be."
"Your
Grace," Frazier said, "I'm not in any position to comment on exactly
how much opportunity you've had to become pregnant. But I can tell you,
without any doubt whatsoever, that you are."
Honor's
head spun. Frazier couldn't be right—she just couldn't.
"But .
. . but my implant," she protested.
"I
thought about that as soon as I saw the initial result," Frazier admitted.
"That's one reason I checked it three times."
Honor
stared at her. All active-duty female naval personnel eligible for shipboard
duty were required to maintain current contraceptive implants as insurance
against accidental pregnancy. The Navy provided a perfectly adequate implant
good for one T-year, renewable with each annual physical, as part of its basic
medical care, but anyone who wanted to pay for her own implant could do so, as
long as it met the minimum one-year requirement of the Service and was kept
current. Without that implant, she was restricted to dirt-side duty, safely
away from the risk of accidental radiation exposures. Given her own career
plans, Honor had opted for a ten-year implant. It could have been deactivated
at any time, in the unlikely event her plans had changed, and it was simply one
less detail to bother about.
"I'm
not positive yet, Your Grace," Frazier continued, "but I think I may
have figured out what happened. To the implant, I mean."
Honor shook
her head and settled back down on the edge of the examining table. Nimitz
flowed into her lap, leaning back against her, and she wrapped her arms tightly
about his soft, comforting warmth and rested her chin on the top of his head.
"If
you have any idea how it happened, it's more than I have," she
said.
"I
think it's a data entry error, Your Grace."
"A
data entry error?"
"Yes."
Frazier sighed. "This probably wouldn't have happened if Doctor McKinsey
hadn't been called back to Beowulf, Your Grace. Unfortunately, he was, and I've
been your personal physician only since your return from Cerberus. And your
file was delivered to me from Bassingford when I first saw you."
Honor
nodded.
"Apparently
what happened was that when the Peeps announced your 'execution,' the Navy
removed your files from the medical center's active database. After all, you
were dead. So, when you turned up alive again, they had to reactivate your
records. And I'm guessing there was some glitch, because according to your
file, your implant was renewed after your return from Cerberus."
"After
my return?" Honor shook her head vigorously. "Certainly not!"
"Oh,
I'm well aware of that, Your Grace," Frazier said. "In fact, this is
at least partly my fault. I didn't do a complete enough review of your records,
or I might have realized the date indicated for your implant renewal was flatly
impossible."
"But
how could someone have screwed it up?" Honor demanded. Her brain, she
realized, was not functioning especially well at the moment.
"My
best guess?" Frazier said. "It looks to me as if when your records
were reactivated all entries specific to Navy-monitored requirements—like the
requirement that your contraceptive implant be current—were somehow reset to
the date they were reactivated. Which means that so far as I knew from my
records, which were based on Bassingford's, your implant should have been good
for another three and a half T-years. Which, obviously, it wasn't."
Honor
closed her eyes.
"I
realize the timing on this is . . . awkward, Your Grace," Frazier said.
"There are, of course, several options available to us. Which one you
choose is up to you, but at least it's very early in the pregnancy. There's
time to decide what you want to do."
"Doctor,"
Honor said, without opening her eyes, "I'm due to deploy to Trevor's Star
in less than two weeks."
"Oh."
Honor
opened her eyes at last, and smiled crookedly at Frazier's expression.
"That
does put rather a tighter time constraint on it, doesn't it?" the doctor
continued.
"You
might put it that way . . . assuming you're given to understatement."
"Well,
in that case, Your Grace," Frazier said, "and speaking as your
physician, I think you'd better inform the father as quickly as you can."
"My
Lady?"
Honor
twitched in her comfortable limousine seat and looked up.
Nimitz was
curled tightly in her lap, pressing against her while he radiated comfort. The
'cat clearly didn't understand all of the reasons behind her consternation and
anxiety, but his loving concern and support poured into her, and she treasured
them. Unfortunately, Nimitz couldn't begin to resolve all of the potentially
disastrous consequences which might stem from her condition.
"Yes,
Spencer?" she said, looking at the fair-haired armsman who'd spoken.
"We
just received a com call from the spaceport, My Lady," he said
respectfully. Her youngest armsman obviously also realized something was wrong,
but he didn't know what, and his tone was cautious. "The Tankersley
just made orbit," he continued.
"She
did?" Honor sat straighter, her chocolate-dark eyes brightening suddenly.
"She's early."
"Yes,
My Lady."
"Thank
you, Spencer. Simon," she leaned forward, looking past Hawke to the armsman
in the pilot's place, "contact the escort and turn us around, Simon. We're
going to the spaceport to pick up my parents."
* * *
"Now,
then, Honor Stephanie Harrington," Allison Harrington said sternly,
"what in the world has your panties in such a knot?"
Honor,
Nimitz, and her parents were alone together for the first time since their
arrival. Allison and Alfred Harrington sat in Honor's office while she stood
facing the crystoplast wall, arms crossed, with Nimitz on her shoulder, but she
had no attention to spare for her favorite view of Jason Bay. The twins had
been handed off to Jennifer LaFollet, Allison's Grayson-born personal maid, and
Lindsey Phillips, their Manticoran nanny, after properly affectionate
greetings, but Honor had tasted her mother's concern as Allison watched her
with Faith and James. She'd often thought Allison had a lot in common with
treecats, and her ability to read her daughter's mood and body language so
acutely was one of the reasons.
"What
makes you think anything has my underwear tangled, Mother?" Honor replied
now, turning back from the bay to face her. She unfolded her arms and reached
up to scratch Nimitz's chin soothingly with her right hand.
"Oh,
please, Honor!" Allison rolled her eyes, then waved at Nimitz. "That
furry little henchman of yours is as tightly wired as I've ever seen him.
Certainly since the day the two of you snuck off for that first trip to his
home range which I'm sure you both continue to fondly imagine your father and I
knew nothing about." Honor's eyes widened, and Allison snorted. "And
as for you, young lady! I've never seen you as skittish around the kids as you
were this afternoon. So, what is it?"
"Oh,
nothing much." Honor's voice wavered slightly around the edges,
undermining her attempt at nonchalance. "I just got a little . . .
unexpected medical news this morning."
She looked
back out at the bay, then faced her mother's eyes.
"I'm
pregnant, Momma," she said quietly.
For a
moment, Allison—and Honor's father—both seemed as totally clueless as she'd
felt when Frazier informed her. Both of them recovered from the instant
of total non-comprehension much more quickly than she had, however. Probably,
she thought, with a flicker of half-bitter amusement, because they weren't the
ones who were pregnant!
The quick,
bright flare of their emotions once the news truly registered upon them was too
powerful and complex for her to sort out clearly. Astonishment. Consternation.
A bright flash of joy, especially from her mother. A sudden surge of concern,
tenderness. Protectiveness, especially from her father. And wrapped around all
of it an abrupt spike of concern as their reaction to the news took them to the
place it had already taken her.
"Hamish?"
her mother said, and Honor nodded, feeling her eyes brim with tears. She'd
never discussed her relationship with Hamish with her parents, but both of them
were highly intelligent and knew her altogether too well.
"Yes,"
she said, and Allison opened her arms. Honor stepped into her embrace, hugging
her mother's small, immensely comforting form tightly, and her father reached
out to stroke her hair as he'd done when she was a very small girl.
"Oh,
my," Allison sighed. Then she shook her head ruefully. "You simply
can't do anything the easy way, can you, dear?"
"Apparently
not," Honor agreed with a slightly watery chuckle.
"The
timing could have been better." Her father's observation was totally
unnecessary, but she chuckled again at the dry, tender amusement in his tone.
"What about your implant?" he asked after a moment.
"Ran
out," she said. She gave her mother another squeeze, then stood back and
shrugged. "We haven't had time to figure out exactly how it
happened, but there was a glitch in my records. Neither Doctor Frazier nor I
realized that it had run out months ago."
"Honor,"
Allison said reproachfully. "Your parents are both doctors. How often have
you heard us say it's the patient's responsibility, as well as the physician's,
to keep track of things like that?"
"I
know, Mother. I know." Honor shook her head. "Believe me, you can't
scold me for that any harder than I've already scolded myself. But there was
just so much going on . . . ."
"Yes,
there was." Allison touched her forearm remorsefully. "And you don't
need my scolding you about it on top of everything else, either. I suppose it's
just the shock of discovering I'm about to be a grandmother."
"Are
you, Allison?" Alfred Harrington asked gently, and his wife's head snapped
around abruptly. Allison Chou Harrington was a Beowulfer by birth. More than
that, she was a daughter of one of the great medical "dynasties" of
Beowulf. For her, the termination of a pregnancy was unthinkable, except under
the most unusual possible circumstances. Something out of the barbaric era
before medicine had made so many alternatives available.
She started
to open her mouth, then visibly stopped herself, and Honor could actually feel
her throttling her immediate, instinctive protest. Then she inhaled sharply and
turned back to her daughter.
"Am I,
Honor?" she asked quietly, and Honor felt a deep, sudden surge of love as
Allison asked the question without a trace of pressure either way.
"I
don't know," Honor said, after a moment. Despite all Allison could do,
hurt flickered in her eyes, and Honor shook her head quickly. "I'm not
going to have it terminated, Mother," she said. "But I may not be
able to acknowledge the child."
Allison
frowned.
"I
realize this could be very awkward for you, Honor. Both personally and
politically. But you and Hamish have responsibilities."
"I'm
fully aware of that, Mother," Honor replied, just a bit more sharply than
she'd intended to. She heard her own tone, and made a small, quick gesture of
apology. "I'm aware," she continued, her voice calmer than it had
been. "And I intend to meet them. But I've got to consider all of the
possible consequences, not just for the child, or for me and Hamish, or for . .
. anyone else, on a personal level. And it may be that placing the child for
adoption would be the best alternative."
She met her
mother's gaze steadily as she said the last sentence, and Allison looked back
for a long, still moment. Then she shook her head.
"That's
the last thing in the universe you want to do, isn't it, Honor?" she said
very, very softly.
"Yes,"
Honor admitted, equally softly. She inhaled deeply. "Yes, it is," she
said more briskly, "but I may not have a choice."
"The
one thing you can't do," her father said, "is decide too quickly. If
you make the wrong decision here, it will haunt you. You know that."
"Yes,
I do. But it's a decision I can't take too long making, either. I'm due to
deploy in two weeks, Daddy, and not aboard a passenger ship. Even if Regs
didn't completely prohibit shipboard pregnancies, it would be criminally
negligent to take a fetus into that sort of environment."
"Even
so, there's no medical reason you have to rush things," he argued
gently. "You've already ruled out simply terminating the pregnancy.
Obviously, that means tubing or a surogacy. And if you're going to have the
child tubed, you're talking about a routine out-patient procedure. Your
mother's a geneticist, not an OB, but she could perform the procedure in
a half-hour."
"You're
right," Honor said. "I am going to have to have her—or him—tubed.
And," her voice wavered again, very slightly, as she looked at her mother,
"you were right, too, all those years ago, when you told me I'd understand
why you didn't have me tubed when it was my turn. I don't want to. God,
how I don't want to!" She pressed a palm gently to her flat, firm belly
and blinked hard. "But I simply don't have that option."
"No, I
don't suppose you do," Allison said. She reached up to touch her
daughter's cheek. "I wish you did, but you don't."
"But,
if I have the child tubed, I have to tell Hamish before I make that
decision," Honor said. "It's my body, but it's our child. And
the longer that I—that we—delay in making our final decision, the harder
it's going to get, for both of us."
"That's
true." Allison looked at her thoughtfully. "You're thinking about
Emily, aren't you?"
"Yes,"
Honor sighed. "Oh, the political consequences if this were to get out
don't bear thinking on. Not right now, not when things are still so up in the
air, and when Hamish is First Lord and I'm a designated fleet commander. And
especially not after what High Ridge and his cronies tried to do to us. But
it's Emily I'm most concerned about."
"From
what I've seen of Earl White Haven," Allison said slowly, "and from
what I know of you, Honor Harrington, I don't imagine the two of you
have been sneaking around behind her back."
"Of
course we haven't. Even if we'd wanted to, we'd never have been able to get
away with it!" Honor's chuckle carried a slightly bitter edge. "What
with my armsmen, the newsies watching every move either one of us make, and the
White Haven staff's devotion to Emily, if she hadn't been in on it from the
start, we'd've been tripped up the first time we kissed each other."
"Which,"
her mother observed with a slight, devilish twinkle, "you've obviously
done."
"Obviously,"
Honor agreed repressively.
"In
that case, while this may come as a surprise to her, it's a consequence of
something she's tacitly approved," Allison pointed out.
"That
may be true, but she had every right to expect Hamish and me to be responsible
enough not to let something like this happen. She had no reason to anticipate
that the fact that he and I are lovers would become public knowledge, which is
exactly what will happen if the two of us acknowledge this child. Worse than
that, I don't have the least idea how she'll react on a personal emotional
level to the fact that Hamish and I are going to have a child."
"Are
you sure you're not borrowing trouble, Honor?" her father asked. She
looked at him, and he shrugged. "They've been married longer than you've
been alive," he pointed out, "and they've never had a child. Did
Emily even want children?"
"I
haven't really discussed it with her," Honor admitted. "She's a
wonderful person, but we're all still feeling our way into this relationship.
She's a lot more Beowulfan—" she smiled at her mother "—about this
than I am, and she's the one who took the initiative in resolving how
Hamish and I felt about one another. But there are still some things we simply
haven't discussed, either because we haven't had enough time for it yet, or
because we might have felt . . . awkward."
"And
does this come under the heading of 'not enough time' or 'I'd feel awkward as
hell'?" Allison asked.
"The
latter, I'm afraid."
Honor
folded her arms once more, and Nimitz shifted his weight on her shoulder as she
leaned back, propping herself against the edge of her desk.
"I
think Emily probably did want children, at least once," she said slowly.
"I think she'd have made a wonderful mother, and I think it would have
been incredibly good for her to have a child to invest herself in. And I think
she and Hamish fully intended to produce children—and an heir to White
Haven—when they married."
"Then
why didn't they?" Allison asked, frowning thoughtfully as she listened
intently to her daughter. "I'm not asking you to violate any confidences,
Honor, but that sounds rather unlikely in a lot of ways. While I realize the
nature and extent of her injuries would make a normal pregnancy impossible,
they could easily have had a child fertilized in vitro and tubed, or
used a surogate. And they're obviously well provided with staff; finding
caregivers couldn't have been a problem."
"I'm
not positive, but I think I know," Honor said. "Mind you, this
is all speculation on my part, since we've never discussed it."
"So
speculate," her father said.
"All
right. You know, obviously, that just like me, Emily doesn't regenerate?"
She paused, and both of her parents nodded just a bit impatiently for her to
continue. "Well, I think she's afraid any child of hers would inherit the
same inability."
"What?"
Allison
blinked. She looked at her daughter for several seconds, then shook herself.
"That's
ridiculous," she said. "Even if it weren't, look at you! God knows I
wish you'd been a bit more careful about getting bits and pieces of yourself
shot off, but regen or not, you're still fully functional. Are you
telling me she's afraid a child of hers would not simply be unable to
regenerate but experience the same sort of catastrophic damage she did?"
"I
know it sounds irrational," Honor said. "But I think that's what it
is. I know, from something Hamish once said, that they were waiting to have
children until his schedule was a bit less hectic. He was working himself
almost as hard at the time of her accident as he is now, and both of them
wanted to be available as full-time parents. So I'm guessing whatever changed
their plans is related to what happened to her. I suppose it's possible she
felt her injuries would prevent her from being a 'proper mother,' but, as you
just said, she has to've known she and Hamish could still have provided the
best child care on Manticore. And on the one or two occasions when the subject
of regeneration has come up—most people are pretty careful not to discuss it
around her—what I've 'tasted' of her emotions strongly suggests she's not as
completely rational about what happened to her as most people assume she is
from how well she copes with it."
"It's
certainly possible," Alfred Harrington said before Allison could respond.
His wife and daughter both looked at him. "I've seen a lot of serious
neural damage," he said, with massive understatement. "Admittedly,
very little of it's been as severe as what happened to Lady Emily. I haven't
reviewed her case file, obviously, but the fact that she survived at all is
obviously a not so minor medical miracle. And even people with far less severe
impairment than she's suffered often experience difficulty adjusting to it.
You've done far better in that regard than many do, Honor," he added,
gesturing at her artificial arm, "but I strongly suspect that even you
have the odd moment when you're less than totally reconciled to what's happened
to you."
"I
don't know if I'd say I wasn't 'reconciled," to it," Honor replied
after a moment. "I will say there are times I deeply and intensely
regret it, though. And times I still experience the 'phantom pain' you warned
me I would."
"But
you aren't trapped inside totally nonresponsive a body," Alfred pointed
out. "Emily is, and she's been that way for over sixty T-years. She's learned
to compensate, as much as anyone possibly can, and to get on with her life, but
the fact that she's had to accept her impairment doesn't mean it's stopped
hurting—especially for someone who was as physically active as she was before
the accident. I think the thought of even the remotest possibility of her
seeing someone else she loved in the same situation, rational or not, would
terrify her. So, if she's managed to fixate on the possibility of her passing
her inability to regenerate on to her children, she could, indeed, have simply
closed off all consideration of having children in her own mind."
"That's
exactly what I think she's done," Honor said. "And if she has, if
Hamish and I have a child, I think we may rip her wounds wide open. I don't
want to do that to her. In fact, I'll do anything to keep from doing that to
her."
"I'm
not at all sure you have that choice, Honor," Allison said with a certain
implacable gentleness. Honor looked at her, and her mother's expression was an
odd blend of serenity and sternness.
"I'm
not speaking just as your mother," Allison continue. "I'm also a
physician, and not just any physician. I'm a geneticist—a Beowulf geneticist—and
Emily Alexander is Hamish Alexander's wife. She may have decided to force the
issue of the way you and Hamish feel about one another, and she may have
decided to embrace both of you. For that, I respect and honor her. But that
doesn't change the fact that she's his wife, and as her husband he has a
deep-seated moral obligation to tell her about this, just as you have a
deep-seated moral obligation to tell him. You may want to 'spare her,'
Honor, but I don't think you have the right to. And even if you tried to, what
would happen if she later discovered what you hadn't told her? What would happen
to her trust in you—and Hamish?"
Honor
stared at Allison, and Nimitz rose on her shoulder, wrapping his tail
protectively about her throat. She felt him pressing against her, radiating his
support . . . and his agreement with what he read in her mother's emotions. And
the hell of it was that Honor could read those emotions herself. And
that she knew her mother was right.
"I
don't know how to do this," she admitted after a moment.
"I
don't either," Allison said, "but I do know how you should start.
And so do you." Honor looked at her, and Allison snorted. "Go find
Hamish and tell him. I know both of you may have believed your implant
would prevent this from happening, but it takes two, and he shares
responsibility. Don't you try to take all of this on your shoulders,
Honor Harrington. Just this once, spread some of it around where it
belongs."
* * *
"Pregnant?"
Hamish
stared at Honor. They were in his Admiralty House office, the one place whose
security she could be sure of, yet which was neither her Landing mansion nor
White Haven. He'd seemed just a bit baffled when she screened him and requested
a few minutes of his time on undisclosed 'official business,' but he'd cleared
the last half-hour of his day's schedule for her.
Now she sat
stiffly upright, facing him with Nimitz in her arms. Samantha's head had come
up, the instant Honor and her mate entered the office; now she leapt from her
perch behind Hamish's desk onto the back of his chair and sat upright, bracing
herself with a light true-hand on the top of his head.
"Yes,"
Honor said, watching him closely and tasting his emotions even more intently.
"I found out from Dr. Frazier just before lunch. My implant's expiration
date was incorrectly entered in my Bassingford records when they reactivated my
medical file. Dr. Frazier checked the test results three times." She shook
her head. "There's no question, Hamish."
He sat
absolutely motionless, radiating shock. But then, like a slow-motion recording
of an opening flower, other emotions began to blossom. Surprise. Disbelief,
fading quickly into an incredible melange of feelings so intense, so strong,
she couldn't even begin to untangle them. His arctic blue eyes glowed, and he
rose from his chair and crossed quickly to her. She started to stand, but he dropped
to one knee in front of her chair before she could and captured both of her
hands in his while the wild, vaulting tide of emotions cascaded through him.
"I
never—" He stopped and shook his head. "I never expected, never
thought . . . ."
"Me
either," she said, freeing her organic hand from his and running it across
his hair. She blinked misty eyes as an unmistakable strand of joy soared to the
top of his swirling emotional tide. But then she made herself sit back.
"I
never expected this, Hamish," she said quietly, "but now that it's
happened, we have some decisions to make."
"Yes."
He stood slowly, then sank into an armchair, facing hers, and nodded.
"Yes, we do," he agreed, and although the glowing ribbon of joy
remained, she tasted anxiety and sudden concern rising to the surface beside
it.
Samantha
hopped down from his desk and pattered across the floor. She leapt up into
Honor's chair long enough to rub cheeks with Nimitz, then leapt across to sink
down in Hamish's lap, and his hands stroked her silken pelt slowly,
reflexively. Just, Honor discovered, as her own hands were doing with Nimitz.
"Your
command," he said. "Emily."
"And
the media," Honor said, and grimaced. "My mother asked me why I
couldn't do anything the easy way. I wish I had an answer for her."
"Because
you're the Salamander," he said, his mouth twisting wryly. "Although,
just between the two of us, I wish you could jump into a few less fires, at
least where your personal life is involved."
"Unfortunately,
we're in this one together, love."
"Yes,
we are." He smiled a bit more whimsically. "I'm tempted to take the
coward's way out and tell you that since you're the one who's pregnant, we'll
do whatever you think is best. But you didn't get pregnant all by yourself, and
it strikes me that a father shouldn't begin his duties by trying to shirk them.
By the same token, you have had at least a little bit longer to think about
this. So, having said that, do you have a strong feeling for what we
ought to do?"
"Well,
I'd thought the best place to begin would be to ask you whether or not you
wanted to be a father," she said with a smile of her own.
"Fortunately, you've already answered that one. So the next step is for us
to decide how we tell Emily." Her smile disappeared. "Frankly, I
don't have any idea at all how she's likely to react to this news, and I
desperately want to avoid hurting her, Hamish. But I think my mother was right.
We don't have the moral right to 'protect' her from something like this.
Besides," her mouth tightened, "remember what an ungodly mess we made
trying to 'protect her' before."
"You're
right," he said. "And so is your mother. And I'm not sure how she'll
respond, either. I know she wanted children when we married, and I know she
changed her mind after the accident. Her mother had something to do with that,
I think."
His
expression took on a certain bleakness, and Honor tasted a cold, bitter strand
of long-held, steely anger.
"Emily's
mother didn't take what happened well," he said quietly. "At first,
she wanted us to move heaven and earth to save her daughter's life. Later, when
she realized how badly Emily had been damaged, and that it was permanent, she
changed. I can't really fault her for not reacting well, at least initially. I
didn't handle it very well—no, that's not fair; I completely, one hundred
percent screwed up—when I finally accepted that I couldn't make her well again.
"But
Emily's mother never did get herself back on track. For her, it was a
quality-of-life issue, and she actually told me once—not in Emily's hearing,
thank God!—that it would have been far kinder of me to simply let her die than
to 'heartlessly condemn her to such a horrible life as a pathetic, helpless
cripple out of pure selfishness'."
Honor's jaw
clenched. Emily's mother might never have said it where her daughter could
hear, but Honor had discovered for herself just how observant Emily was, and
how acutely and accurately she read the people around her. There was no way
Emily Alexander could have been unaware of her mother's feelings.
"I
don't think Emily ever saw herself as a helpless victim," Hamish
continued, speaking slowly as he looked for exactly the right words. "I'm
not trying to say she was a paragon of total courage, who never felt sorry for
herself, never asked 'Why me?' There've been times, I know, when she's had to
fight incredible bouts of depression. But she never saw herself as helpless,
never saw herself as a mere, passive survivor. She was always her own person,
always determined to go right on being her, no matter what happened.
"But I
think . . . I think that despite that, a part of her saw herself through her
mother's eyes. Or, maybe what she saw wasn't so much her, as some other
victim. Someone else in the same condition, without the combination of support
team and sheer guts and integrity that got her through it. Someone else who
might agree with her mother that a life like hers wasn't worth living."
"You're
talking about her children."
"Yes.
No." He shrugged. "I don't know that she ever actually thought it
out, or that it ever reached that level in her conscious thought. But I know
she started shying away from the notion of having children, even after her
physicians pointed out to her that there was no reason, given the state of
modern medicine, why she couldn't still have them. And I know it started after
her mother's attitude became obvious to those about her. And," he frowned,
"I know I never pushed her about it. Never tried to work through it with
her. I simply went along with what I believed her wishes to be, without
examining for myself—or pushing her into examining for herself—whether
or not they truly were her wishes."
"Well,
I think we're all going to have to find out," Honor said softly.
"So,
what do you two have on your minds?"
Emily
Alexander looked back and forth between Honor and her husband, one eyebrow
arched. She sat in her favorite nook in the White Haven atrium Hamish had built
for her years before, gazing at them speculatively across the constantly
rippling surface of a crystal-clear koi pond. Honor could taste her
curiosity, and with it a faint edge of amusement, and her own lips twitched as
she realized how much she and Hamish must resemble a pair of truant
schoolchildren, standing before their instructor with their 'cats on their
shoulders to own up to their misdeeds.
But the
temptation to smile disappeared as Honor reflected on what they were here to
"own up to," and she inhaled deeply.
"Emily,"
Hamish said, "Honor and I have something we need to tell you. I hope it
won't distress you, or cause you any pain, but it's something you have to know
about."
"My,
that sounds ominous," she said lightly, with a smile. But Emily Alexander
had been the Star Kingdom's leading actress before her accident. Her expression
might have fooled others, yet Honor tasted the sudden throat-tightening surge
of anxiety behind it, and she felt herself shaking her head—hard—before she
even realized she was going to speak.
"No,
Emily!" she said sharply. "It's not that." Emily looked at her,
green eyes suddenly vulnerable, and Honor shook her head even harder.
"Hamish and I both love you," she heard herself say with a fierce
intensity which surprised even her. "Nothing can change that. And nothing
between me and Hamish could ever change the way he feels about you."
Emily
looked at her for two or three more seconds, then nodded slowly. Not just in
acceptance of Honor's reassurances, but in admission. Strong as she was,
confident as she was in herself, she could never quite forget that Honor was
all of the things, physically, that she could no longer be. There was always
that tiny edge of fear she couldn't quite crush that the sheer vibrancy and
physical health radiating from Honor would, indeed, change the way Hamish felt
about her.
"Honor
is right," Hamish told her softly, crossing to sit on an ornamental stone
bench beside her life-support chair. He reached out and captured her one
working hand in both of his, lifting it to press a kiss onto its back. "In
an odd sort of way," he continued, gazing into her eyes and reaching out
to cup the side of her face with his right hand, "you've become the center
for both our lives. Maybe we've both simply been too contaminated by our
Grayson experiences, but somehow the three of us have become a unit, and
neither Honor nor I would ever change that, even if we could."
He paused
for a moment, and she closed her eyes, pressing her cheek into his palm.
"But,"
he continued, after a moment, "we're both more than a little concerned
about how you're going to react to the news we do have for you,
love."
"In
that case," she said, with something very like her normal tartness,
"perhaps the two of you should stop trying to prepare me for it and go
ahead and tell me what it is."
"You're
right," he agreed. "So, to cut straight to the conclusion, there was
a screwup with Honor's medical records. Both of us thought her contraceptive
implant was current. It wasn't."
Emily
looked at him. Then her eyes darted to Honor, opening very wide, and Honor
nodded slowly.
"I'm
pregnant, Emily," she said quietly. "Hamish and I never thought this
was going to happen. Unfortunately, it has. And because it has, we—all three of
us, not just Hamish and I—have to decide what we're going to do about
it."
"Pregnant?"
Emily repeated, and the sudden torrent of her emotions surged over Honor like
an avalanche. "You're pregnant!"
"Yes."
Honor crossed to Emily and sank to her knees, facing the older woman, and
Nimitz and Samantha crooned softly, comfortingly. She started to say something
more, then stopped, forcing herself to wait while Emily fought her way through
her own emotional tumult.
"My
God," Emily said after a moment. "Pregnant." She shook her head.
"Somehow, this is one possibility that never occurred to me." Her
voice quivered, and her working hand tightened on Hamish's left hand as she
blinked hard. "How . . . how far along are you?"
"Only
a few weeks," Honor said quietly. "And I'm third-generation prolong,
so we're looking at a pregnancy almost eleven months long. Or we would be, at
least, if I had the option of carrying the child to term normally."
"Oh,
God." Emily tugged her hand out of Hamish's grasp and reached out to
Honor. "Oh, no." She shook her head, green eyes welling with tears.
"Honor, if something happens to you now—!"
"I'd
like to say nothing will," Honor said gently, taking Emily's hand and
pressing it to her own cheek as the confusion of Emily's initial response
focused itself down into a single, overriding emotion. Concern. Concern not over
the consequences of the pregnancy for her, or even for the three of them, but
for Honor's safety, redoubled and concentrated by the fact of her pregnancy.
"I'd
like to say nothing will," Honor repeated, "but I can't, because it
could. A lot of people are going to be hurt or killed before this war is over,
Emily. And a lot of babies are going to be born because of people's fears of
what may happen to them, or to the people they love. All of which mixes into
the concern Hamish and I feel over how you may feel about this."
The last
sentence came out as a question, and Emily shook her head.
"I
don't know how I feel about it," she said with an honesty which was
almost physically painful for Honor. "I'd like to say that all I feel is
happy for you—and for Hamish. But I'm only human." Her lower lip quivered
ever so slightly. "Knowing you can give Hamish the physical intimacy I
can't hurts badly enough sometimes all by itself, Honor. I don't blame you for
it; I don't blame Hamish for it. I don't even blame God for it, very much,
anymore. But it does hurt, and I'd be lying if I told you it didn't."
A tear
trickled down Honor's cheek as she tasted Emily's determination to be totally
candid, not just with Honor and Hamish, but with herself. Perhaps to be totally
candid with herself for the very first time.
"I
look at you, Honor," she said, green eyes glistening, "and I
remember. I remember what it was like to have two legs that worked. To be able
to stand on my own. To be able to move. To be able to feel anything—anything
at all—below my shoulders. To be able to breathe by myself."
She looked
away and drew a deep, shuddering breath.
"Did
Hamish ever tell you just how bad the damage was, Honor?" she asked.
"We've
discussed it . . . some," Honor said with an odd serenity, returning
candor for candor, and reached out to wipe a tear from Emily's cheek with her
thumb. "Not in great detail."
"It
wasn't just my spine that was smashed in that accident," Emily said, still
looking away from Honor. "They repaired everything they could, but there
was an enormous amount of damage that couldn't be fixed. Or that there was no
point in fixing, anyway, because I haven't felt anything except my right
hand—anything at all, Honor—below my shoulders in sixty T-years. Nothing."
She looked
back at Honor again.
"I
can't survive outside this chair. Can't even breathe on my own. And there you
are. So healthy, so fit. And so beautiful, though I doubt you actually
realize it. Everything I once was, you are, and, oh, God, Honor, there
are times I resent it so. When it hurts so much."
She stopped
for a moment, blinking, then smiled tremulously.
"But
you aren't me. You're someone else entirely. A rather wonderful someone else,
actually. When I first realized—when you first told me—how you and Hamish truly
felt about one another, it was hard. I realized, intellectually, at least, that
it wasn't your fault, and I recognized how dreadfully the two of you had hurt
yourselves in order to avoid hurting me. And because of that, and
because of the political consequences if the world had believed the
Opposition's smear campaign, I made the decision—the intellectual decision—to
accept what couldn't be changed and try to minimize the consequences.
"It
was only later, when I'd come to truly know you, that I realized emotionally,
deep down inside, that you truly are a part of Hamish, and so a part of me,
as well. But that still doesn't make you me. And the hurt I still feel
sometimes when I look at you standing beside Hamish, where I used to be able to
stand, or think about you in his bed, where I used to be, is so much less
important than who you are and what you mean to Hamish . . . and to me.
"And
now this." She shook her head. "Now, whether you meant to or not,
you've moved still further beyond me. Moved to do something else I used to be
able to see myself doing. A baby, Honor." She blinked again. "You're
going to have a baby—Hamish's baby. And that hurts, hurts so terribly .
. . and feels so wonderful."
A glow of
joy flowed out of her, like sunlight through the chinks between thunderheads.
It wasn't really happiness—not yet. There was too much jagged-edged hurt
and a lingering resentment which knew it was both unreasonable and irrational.
But it was joy, and within it Honor sensed the capacity to become happiness.
"Hamish
and I have discussed this," Honor told her, meeting her gaze steadily.
"We both want the child. But even more, we want to avoid hurting or
distressing you. Among the philanthropies Willard is overseeing for me from
Grayson I've got at least three orphanages and two adoption affiliates, one on
Grayson, and one here in the Star Kingdom. We can place this child for
adoption, Emily. We can guarantee that she—or he—will have loving, supportive
parents."
"No,
you can't," Emily said. "Can't place it for adoption, I mean. I know
you could find loving parents. But I couldn't ask you to give up your child.
And if something does happen to you, I couldn't ask Hamish to give up the only
part of you that he—we—could keep."
"So,"
Honor paused and drew a deep breath. "So you want us to keep the
baby?"
"Of
course I do!" Emily looked at her. "I'm not saying I don't have mixed
feelings, because I do. You know that, if anyone does. But mixed feelings can
get themselves unmixed, and even if they couldn't, how could I possibly ask you
to give up your child just to spare my feelings?
Honor
closed her eyes, pressing Emily's hand more firmly against her cheek, and, to
her surprise, Emily chuckled.
"Of
course," she went on, her voice and the glow of her emotions both much
closer to normal, "now that I've gotten past my initial surprise, I can
see where this could pose a few problems. I don't suppose the two of you are
hoping I can help solve them . . . again?"
"Actually,"
Honor said, raising her head and smiling a bit mistily at Emily, "that's
exactly what we're hoping."
* * *
"All
right, let's look at the problem and our options for dealing with it,"
Emily said much later that evening, after the supper dishes had been cleared
away and the three humans and two treecats were alone once more. She'd regained
most of her emotional balance, and Honor treasured the serenity flowing from
her.
"First,
Honor's—our—giving up this child is not an option," Emily continued.
"Second, Honor's carrying the child to term naturally is also not an
option. Third, the potential political consequences of our acknowledging the
pregnancy at this particular point in time would be . . . difficult. Both here,
in the Star Kingdom, and on Grayson. Fourth," she looked back and forth
between her husband and Honor, "however we resolve the problems, I
want and intend to be involved in raising this child. So, with option number
one already settled, what about the second one?"
"Under
normal circumstances," Honor said, "and bearing in mind that Mother
is from Beowulf, the solution would be simple. She'd become my surrogate, but
I'm afraid that won't work here."
"Why
not?" Emily asked, cocking her head. Honor looked at her, and Emily
flipped her hand in the gesture she used for a shrug. "It just seems like
such a good idea from so many perspectives, I'm wondering if we're thinking
about the same difficulties."
"It
would be a wonderful idea," Honor agreed, just a trifle sadly.
"Mother's always had easy pregnancies, and the twins are just old enough
now that she's started missing having a toddler around. And I can't think of
anyone who would be a better surrogate. But legally, this child will replace
Faith in the Harrington succession, and eventually I'm going to have to
acknowledge that publicly, which presents all sorts of problems in using Mother
as my surrogate. If she's visibly pregnant, the assumption on Grayson will
be—unless we tell them to the contrary—that Father is the father."
She paused
and chuckled wryly.
"'Father
is the father,'" she repeated. "Does that sound as odd to you as it
does to me?"
"It
does sound a bit peculiar," Hamish conceded. "But you were
saying?"
"I was
saying that everyone will assume the child is Mother's, and she's much too
visible to be pregnant without someone's noticing. Which means that
either we tell everyone, including the Conclave of Steadholders, who the actual
biological parents are, or else we have to lie."
She shook
her head, all humor fled.
"I
won't do that. I can't. Not only would it be wrong, but it would be politically
disastrous for me when the truth finally did come out. It would be far better,
in terms of Grayson perceptions and politics, for me to go ahead and
acknowledge Hamish as the child's father right now, despite all the potential
adverse reaction, than to be caught lying about the paternity of my child
before her birth. And," she looked back and forth between Emily and
Hamish, "maybe I've been a Grayson too long myself, but I'd agree with them."
"But
eventually you're going to have to tell them what happened, and when,"
Emily pointed out.
"I'm
willing to stand on my legal and moral right to privacy," Honor replied.
"I'm not saying my Graysons will be happy about it when the truth
comes out, however we handle it, but they'll accept that I had the right to not
tell them something at all much better than they will my having lied about
it."
"Don't
you have an obligation as Steadholder Harrington to inform the Conclave of the
birth of any heir to the Steading?" Hamish asked, frowning intently.
"Not
precisely."
Honor
reached out and handed Nimitz a stick of celery. The 'cat broke it neatly in
half and passed one piece on to his mate, and she watched the two of them chew
blissfully—and messily—for a second. Then she looked back up at Hamish and
Emily.
"My
obligation, legally, is to inform the Sword and the Church," she said.
"Technically, it could be argued that I'm not under any obligation to
inform anyone at all until such time as a child is actually born. Trust
me," she smiled a bit bleakly, "I've done some research this
afternoon. But, while the law specifies that the birth of an heir has to
be reported to, and acknowledged by, the Protector and the Church, the practice
has always been that they're to be informed when the pregnancy is confirmed.
So, the two people on Grayson I have to tell about this, legally
speaking, are Benjamin and Reverend Sullivan. I'm sure Benjamin would respect
my confidence, and the Reverend's vows would require him to treat it as
privileged information, like something revealed under the seal of the
confessional, at least until the child is actually born."
"At
which point?" Emily asked.
"At
which point your guess is as good as mine as to exactly what happens,"
Honor admitted. "I can't see any way it would be possible to conceal the
child's birth even if I wanted to. And, to be honest, I don't want to,
for a lot of reasons. I think the best we can do, really, is to buy nine months
for the political climate to change before I go public."
"We
could always consider placing the embryo in cryo until the 'political climate' has
changed," Hamish said slowly.
"No,
we couldn't," his wife said flatly. He looked at her, and she shook her
head firmly. "Honor is going into combat very soon now, Hamish. It's
possible, however much we'd all like to pretend it isn't, that this time she
could be killed." Her voice wavered slightly, and she looked across the
table at Honor. "If God is actually listening to me, that's not going to
happen, but sometimes I think He's lost my com combination. And, if that
happens, we are not going to have deprived her of a single moment she
might have had holding her child in her arms first."
Honor's
eyes burned, and Emily smiled at her. But then the older woman shook her head
again.
"Even
if that weren't a consideration," she continued, "it would still be
the wrong thing to do. If something does happen to Honor, the exact
circumstances of the child's paternity will be in question. I realize genetic
testing would confirm that the child is Honor's and yours, Hamish, but if Honor
were killed—if she weren't around to confirm the circumstances under which
conception occurred—there would always be someone who'd accuse us of some sort
of Machiavellian plot to 'steal' Harrington."
"There
are procedures for a posthumous declaration of paternity," Honor pointed
out.
"We're
not talking about what's legal or illegal," Emily replied. "We're
talking about public perceptions, and on a planet which, if you'll forgive me,
is still coming to grips with the implications of modern technology.
Specifically, of modern medical technology."
"That's
true enough," Honor acknowledged. "My parents and I are working on
that, but sometimes it seems to me that at least half the people on Grayson
still consider what we can do black magic. They don't really understand it, and
some of them are probably at least as frightened by it as grateful that it's
become available."
"Precisely.
And it's that portion of the population least comfortable with modern medicine
which would be played upon by anyone who wanted to make trouble."
"Why
should anyone want to make trouble?" Hamish asked almost
plaintively, and Honor and Emily turned almost identical pitying looks upon
him. Then they looked at each other, and Emily snorted.
"Frightening,
isn't it?" she asked Honor. "And hard to believe he's a senior member
of the Queen's Cabinet."
"Oh, I
don't know," Honor replied with a crooked smile. "He's probably not
any more totally incompetent where politics are concerned than I was when they
first sent me to Yeltsin."
"But
with so much less excuse," Emily said, eyes twinkling.
"Not
really," Honor, chuckling wickedly as Hamish leaned back, raising one
eyebrow, and folded his arms in resignation. "After all, he suffers from
at least one physical handicap."
"Which
one?" Emily asked, then shook her head quickly. "Oh, I know! You mean
that 'Y' chromosome of his?"
"That's
the one," Honor agreed, and both of them laughed.
"Very
funny," Hamish said. "And now, if the two of you are done cackling,
how about answering my question?"
"It's
not so much why we can think of anyone wanting to make trouble," Honor
said much more seriously, "as our responsibility to recognize that someone
could want to. Human nature being human nature, some idiot who
disapproves of all the changes on Grayson—and don't fool yourself; there are
still a lot of them, even if they are a distinct minority—is likely to fasten
on it out of simple delusional paranoia. And don't forget Mueller and Burdette,
or the current Grayson Opposition. They'd probably see forcing Benjamin to
expend political capital defending you as worthwhile in its own right."
She shrugged. "It might be unlikely to create serious problems, but
Emily's right. The potential's always there, and on the level of a
Steadholdership, any problem can become a serious one."
"So
what you're saying is that we really have no more than nine months before we have
to go public," he said.
"I
think that's exactly what I'm saying," she acknowledged. "I can stand
on my right to refuse to declare the child's paternity even after her birth,
which would probably work out fairly well on Manticore. It won't play on
Grayson, though. Or, at least, not very well. But I'm going to have to
acknowledge the birth itself as soon as it occurs."
"That's
true," Emily agreed. "But every month we can buy before you have to
go public would be very much worthwhile. It would give the political situation
time to stabilize, and put some more time between the Opposition smear campaign
and the moment of truth. Not that it's not still going to be messy, you
understand."
"Oh,
believe me, even a political incompetent like me understands that, Emily,"
Hamish said wryly.
"So
what I think we're really saying here," Emily said after a moment, looking
back and forth between Honor and Hamish once more, "is that our only real
option is to have the child tubed under conditions of medical confidentiality
and hope that by the time she—or he—is born, the political and military
situation will have changed enough for the fact of her birth to generate
somewhat less of a firestorm."
"I'm
afraid so," Honor replied.
"Well,
in that case," Emily said with a whimsical smile of her own, "I think
Hamish and I had better spend the next few months learning how to be
salamanders, too."
"Very
well, Your Grace," the efficient young staffer at the other end of the com
link said, scanning the e-form on her own display. "We can schedule the
procedure for Wednesday afternoon, if that's convenient."
"Wednesday
would be fine," Honor replied. "In fact, given my schedule, I really
need to take care of it as soon as possible."
"I
understand." The other woman paused with a slight frown. "I notice
you've listed your mother as our alternate contact." Her voice ended on a
slightly rising note, and Honor very carefully didn't grimace.
"That's
correct," she said, her own voice completely level. Yet something about
her tone made the staffer look up. If she'd felt any temptation to fish for
additional information, it evaporated quickly as she met Honor's gaze.
"In
that case, Your Grace, I'll put you down for . . . fourteen-thirty."
"Thank
you. I'll be there."
* * *
"I
don't think I've ever seen the Steadholder quite like this," Spencer Hawke
said quietly.
He and
Simon Mattingly stood against one wall of the palatial gymnasium under Honor's
Jason Bay mansion, watching her work out.
Her normal
routine had been somewhat altered. As usual, she'd spent an hour working out
with the Harrington Sword. Grand Master Thomas Dunlevy had come out of
retirement last year to help program her training remote, and the ringing clash
of the remote's blunt-edged training blade against the razor-sharp Harrington
Sword had sent its harsh music through the gym. But the Steadholder had donned
much heavier practice armor than usual, and she'd had Mattingly step down the
remote's reaction speed. It was also a Monday, and usually on Mondays she put
on her coup de vitesse training gi and pads and worked out
full-contact against the training remote or Colonel LaFollet. But today,
instead, she'd contented herself with the stretching exercises and training
katas. And as if that weren't enough, she'd sent LaFollet himself away without
her. Neither she nor the colonel had discussed exactly what it was he was doing
today, but Mattingly and Hawke both knew it had something to do with the rather
peculiar travel agenda Lady Harrington had laid out for LaFollet the evening
before.
All of that
was odd enough, yet it wasn't what had prompted Hawke's remark. There was a . .
. distracted edge to her. She lacked that complete and total focus on whatever
the task in hand happened to be which was usually so much a part of her. And
she seemed both excited and apprehensive, which was very much not like her.
Mattingly
glanced at the younger armsman. Hawke had not yet been briefed on the details
of the aforementioned peculiar travel agenda. For that matter, Mattingly hadn't
been fully briefed on it, himself, but he believed in being prepared. So
he'd done a little research of his own on this "Briarwood Center" the
Steadholder was intent upon visiting so privately.
"I've
seen her in moods like this one," he said after a moment. "Not often,
but once or twice. Thank God it's not as bad as the one she was in before they
sent us to Marsh!"
"Amen,"
Hawke said with soft fervency, and remembered anger flickered in the backs of
his usually mild eyes. Mattingly wasn't surprised to see it, but he was glad.
He'd chosen that particular example deliberately, given what Hawke was going to
inevitably figure out for himself tomorrow.
"She's
got a lot on her mind," he continued quietly, watching the Steadholder
flow gracefully through her katas. She was almost ten T-years older than he
was, but she looked half his age. He'd become as accustomed to that as anyone
could, who'd grown to adulthood on a planet without prolong, but he was finding
it increasingly difficult to match her flexibility and speed.
No, he corrected himself. Not 'match them;' I
never did manage that. But it's getting harder just to stay in shouting
distance.
"I
know she does," Hawke replied to his last remark, and cocked his head.
"But this isn't just about her navy job."
"No,
it isn't," Mattingly agreed. "There are some . . . personal issues
involved, as well."
Hawke's
eyes turned instantly opaque, and his expression blanked. It was a professional
armsman's reaction which Mattingly found a bit amusing, under the
circumstances. He couldn't really fault the younger man for probing for
information—armsmen all too often found that their primaries had neglected to
mention some vitally important bit of information because it hadn't seemed
important to them. Or because they didn't want to share it. Or even
sometimes, as happened much too frequently for Mattingly's peace of mind in the
Steadholder's case, because they'd simply decided to subordinate security
requirements to . . . other considerations.
But it was
a mark of Hawke's relative youthfulness that he should go into immediate
"the-Steadholder's-private-life-is-none-of-my-business" mode the
instant he began to suspect where his probing might lead him.
"She's
not going to tell you about them, you know," Mattingly said
conversationally, his tone almost teasing, as the Steadholder finished her katas.
He watched
her alertly, even here, wondering if she was going to head straight for the
showers, but instead, she crossed to the indoor shooting range at the far end
of the gymnasium. He'd already checked the range before the Steadholder ever
entered the gym, and there were no other entrances to it, so he didn't try to
intercept her at the range door. Instead, he jerked his head at Hawke, and the
two of them walked over to flank the door, watching through the soundproof
armorplast with one eye while they kept most of their attention focused on the
only access routes.
"There's
no reason she ought to tell me about them," Hawke said, just a bit
stiffly. "She's my Steadholder. If she wants me to know something, she'll
tell me."
"Oh,
nonsense!" Mattingly snorted. He felt a small flicker of surprise when the
Steadholder didn't put on her ear protectors, but his incipient twinge of
concern vanished when he realized she didn't have her .45 at the shooting line.
Unlike that thunderous, anachronistic, propellant-spewing monster, pulsers were
relatively quiet.
Satisfied
that his charge wasn't going to hammer her unprotected eardrums with gunfire,
he looked back at Hawke. Who was regarding him with a moderately outraged
expression.
"Spencer,"
he said, "Colonel LaFollet didn't handpick you for the Steadholder's
personal detail because you're an idiot. You know—or you damned well ought to
know, by now—that no primary ever tells his armsmen everything they need to
know. And, frankly, the Steadholder's worse than most in that regard. She's
better than she was, but, Tester—the things she used to do without even
mentioning them to us ahead of time!"
He shook
his head.
"The
thing you have to understand, Spencer, is that there's the Job, and then
there's everything else. The Job is to see to it that that lady in there stays
alive, period. No ifs, no ands, and no buts. We do whatever it takes—whatever
it takes—to see to it that she does. And it's our privilege to do that, because
there are steadholders, and there are steadholders, and I tell you frankly that
one like her comes along maybe once or twice in a generation. If
we're lucky. And, yes, although I'm not going to tell her, I'd do the Job
anyway, because I love her.
"But
every so often, and more often in her case than in most, the Job and who the person
we're protecting is run into one another head on. The Steadholder takes
risks. Some of them are manageable, or at least reasonably so, like her
hang-gliding and her sailboats. But she's also a naval officer, and a
steadholder in the old sense—the kind who used to lead his personal troops from
the front rank—so there are always going to be risks we can't protect her from,
however hard we try. And as you may recall, those same risks have killed quite
a few of her armsmen along the way.
"And
there's another factor involved, where she's concerned. She wasn't born a
steadholder. In a lot of ways, I think that's the secret of her strength as
a steadholder; she doesn't think like someone who knew from the time he learned
to walk that he was going to be one. That's probably a very good thing, over
all, but it also means she didn't grow up with the mindset. It simply doesn't
occur to her—or, sometimes it does occur to her and she simply chooses to
ignore the fact—that she has to keep us informed if we're going to do
the Job. And since she doesn't, every one of us—like every armsman who ever
was—spends an awful lot of time trying to figure out what it is she isn't
telling us about this time."
He grimaced
wryly.
"And,
of course, we spend most of the rest of our time keeping our big mouths shut
about the things we have figured out. Especially the ones she didn't tell us
about. You know, the things she knows that we know that she knows that we know
but none of us ever discuss with her."
"Oh."
Hawke frowned. "So you're saying I'm supposed to pry into her
personal life?"
"We are
her personal life," Mattingly said flatly. "We're as much her
family as her mother and father, as Faith and James. Except that we're the expendable
part of her family . . . and everyone knows and accepts that. Except
her."
His own
frown mingled affection, respect, and exasperation as he looked through the
armorplast at his Steadholder. Hawke looked as well, and Mattingly felt the
younger man twitch in something very like shock as the Steadholder calmly
removed the very tip of her left index finger.
"Haven't
seen this one before?" Mattingly asked.
"I've
seen it before," Hawke replied. "Just not very often. And it . . .
bothers me. You know, I keep forgetting her arm's artificial."
"Yeah,
and her father's a seriously paranoid individual, Tester bless him!"
Mattingly said. "Although," they watched with half their attention as
the Steadholder flexed her left hand and the truncated index finger locked into
a rigidly extended position, "that particular hideout weapon of hers is
something of a case in point for what I was saying earlier. She didn't even
tell me or the Colonel about it until after we were sent to Marsh."
"I
know." Hawke chuckled. "I was there when we all found out,
remember?"
On the
other side of the armorplast, the Steadholder pointed her finger down-range,
and a hyper-velocity pulser dart shrieked dead center through the ten-ring of a
combat target. She hadn't even raised her hand, and as they watched, she
actually turned her head away, not even looking at the targets as they popped
out of their holographic concealment . . . and the pulser darts continue to rip
their chests apart.
"How
does she do that?" Hawke demanded. "Look at that! She's got her
eyes closed!"
"Yes,
she does," Mattingly agreed with a smile. "The Colonel finally broke
down and asked her. It's fairly simple, really. There's a concealed camera in
the cuticle of the finger, and when she activates the pulser, the camera feed
links directly to her artificial eye. It projects a window with a crosshair,
and since the camera is exactly aligned with the bore of the pulser, the dart
will automatically hit anything she sees in the window." He shook his
head, still smiling. "She's always been a really good 'point-and-shoot'
shooter, but it got even worse when her father had her arm designed."
"You
can say that again," Hawke said with feeling.
"And a
damned good thing, too." Mattingly turned away from the armorplast.
"They say the Tester is especially demanding when He Tests those He loves
best. Which tells me that He loves the Steadholder a lot."
Hawke
nodded, turning away from the armorplast himself and frowning as he considered
everything Mattingly had said to him. After several moments, he looked back
across at the older armsman.
"So
what is it she's not telling us?"
"Excuse
me?" Mattingly frowned at him.
"So
what is it she's not telling us?" Hawke repeated. "You said it's an
armsman's responsibility to know all those things his primary doesn't tell him
about. So tell me."
"Tell
you something the Steadholder hasn't told you?" Mattingly's frown
became a wicked grin. "I'd never dream of doing such a thing!"
"But
you just said—"
"I
said it's an armsman's responsibility to find out about the things he
needs to know. At the moment, the Colonel and I—older and wiser, not to say
sneakier, heads that we are—have already found out. Now, young Spencer, as part
of your own ongoing education and training, it's your job to figure it out for
yourself. And, I might add, without stepping on your sword in front of
the Steadholder by admitting that you have."
"That's
dumb!" Hawke protested.
"No,
Spencer, it isn't ," Mattingly said, much more seriously. "Finding
out for yourself is something you're going to have to do. And for quite a long
time. Unlike the Colonel or me, you've got prolong. You're going to be with the
Steadholder probably for decades, and you need to figure out the sorts of
things she isn't going to tell you. And just as importantly, you need to learn
how to leave her her privacy even as you invade it."
Hawke
looked at him, and Mattingly smiled with more than a trace of sadness.
"She has
no privacy, Spencer. Not anymore. And like I just said, she didn't grow up
a steadholder. Someone who's born to the job never really has privacy in the
first place. He doesn't miss what he never had, or not as much, at any rate.
But she did have it, and she gave it away when she accepted her
steadholdership. I don't think she's ever admitted to anyone just how much that
cost her. So if we can play the game, let her cling to at least the illusion
that she still has some privacy, then that's part of what it means to be an
armsman. And however silly, however 'dumb,' that might sometimes seem, it
isn't. Not at all. In fact, playing that game with her has been one of the
greatest privileges of my service as her personal armsman."
* * *
"Were
you able to catch up with Duchess Harrington, Adam?"
"Yes,
Sir. Sort of."
Admiral Sir
Thomas Caparelli looked up from the report in front of him and quirked an
eyebrow at the tallish, fair-haired senior-grade captain.
"Would
you care to explain that somewhat cryptic utterance?" he inquired of his
chief of staff.
"I
spoke to Her Grace, Sir," Captain Dryslar replied. "Unfortunately, I
didn't catch up with her until just after eleven. She had a working lunch
scheduled with some of Admiral Hemphill's people, and immediately after that
she has a doctor's appointment. She said she could reschedule the doctor's
appointment if it was an emergency, but that she'd really prefer not to."
"Doctor?"
Caparelli's eyes narrowed, and he sat up straighter. "Is there a health
problem I ought to know about?"
"Not
so far as I'm aware, Sir," Dryslar said carefully.
"Meaning?
Don't make me pull it out of you one syllable at a time, Adam!"
"Sorry,
Sir. I did ask Her Grace where her appointment was, in case we needed to reach
her. She said it was at Briarwood Center."
Caparelli
had opened his mouth. Now it closed again, and both eyebrows rose in obvious
startlement.
"Briarwood?"
he repeated after a moment.
"Yes,
Sir."
"I
see. Well, in that case, we can certainly reschedule my meeting with her.
Please screen her back and see if she'll be available tomorrow. No, wait. Make
it Friday."
"Yes,
Sir."
Dryslar
left the office, closing the door behind him, and Caparelli sat for several
seconds, gazing at nothing in particular while he contemplated the potential
complications of Admiral Harrington's afternoon appointment. He considered
screening her himself, personally, but only very briefly. If there was anything
she wanted to discuss with him, she had his com combination, and there were
certain things of which the First Space Lord did not want to take official
cognizance unless he had to.
* * *
"My
Lady, I really don't think the Queen—or Protector Benjamin—is going to be very
happy about this."
Colonel
Andrew LaFollet's voice was in diffident mode, but there was something
undeniably mulish about his gray eyes, and Honor turned to look at him sternly.
"Her
Majesty—and the Protector—aren't going to hear about it from me, Andrew.
Did you have some other possible informant—excuse me, reporter—in mind
to carry them the news?"
"My
Lady, sooner or later, they're going to find out," LaFollet replied,
standing his ground. "I'm your armsman. I understand the need for
confidentiality, and you know perfectly well what that means, just as you know
all the rest of the detail will keep their mouths shut. But they're not exactly
without sources of their own, and when they find out about this little
escapade, they are not going to be amused. For that matter," he
added, his face even more expressionless, "I rather doubt the Earl or Lady
White Haven would be very pleased about it if they knew just how uncovered you
are right now."
Honor had
already opened her mouth, but she swallowed what she'd been about to say and
looked at him narrowly. It was the first time LaFollet had come that close to
openly acknowledging her relationship with Hamish. And, whether she wanted to
admit it or not herself, her personal armsman had a point.
She glanced
out the one-way window of the air limo. Over the years, she'd become accustomed
to the routine security arrangements which attached to her persona as
Steadholder and duchess. She still didn't like them, and she never would, yet
after so long she felt undeniably . . . naked when she looked out and saw the
empty chunks of air where the sting ships ought to be. And ridiculous as it
often still seemed to her, she'd learned the hard way that figures as public as
she'd become attracted the e lunatic fringe. Not to mention the fact that over
the years she'd acquired quite a few enemies who would have been less than
brokenhearted should something permanent happen to her. Which was one reason
LaFollet and Simon Mattingly were the only two survivors of her original
personal armsmen. And which was also why "not amused" was an awfully
pale description of Benjamin Mayhew's probable reaction to what she was doing
this afternoon. Elizabeth might cut her a little more slack, but even she would
have a few choice things to say when she found out Honor had ditched all of her
standard security arrangements except for the close-in cover of her personal
three-man detachment.
Unfortunately,
she didn't have much of a choice, and she was grateful to Lieutenant Commander
Hennessy, Admiral Hemphill's chief of staff and representative at the meeting
she'd just left, for covering for her. Hennessy hadn't asked LaFollet why it
would be necessary for Duchess Harrington's official limousine—and sting ship
escort—to return to The Bay House without her. He'd simply run interference for
her, as she'd requested, which had allowed her, LaFollet, Mattingly, and Hawke
to get to the parking garage and the waiting, anonymous limousine unobserved.
"I
know all of you will keep your mouths closed, Andrew," she said after a
moment, and her tone was an apology. "I guess I'm just a little more
worried about this than I'm willing to admit." Nimitz crooned to her, and
she stroked his spine. "It's . . . complicated."
"My
Lady," LaFollet said gently, "'complicated' isn't exactly the word
I'd choose. It's a bit too . . . mild. And I'm not trying to complicate things
any more badly than they already are. But I wouldn't be doing my job if I
didn't point out that, however valid your reasons, gadding about Landing with
only the three of us isn't exactly the safest thing you could be doing."
"No,
it isn't. On the other hand, I've got quite a bit of faith in your ability to
look after me if anything goes wrong. And I'm not exactly helpless myself, you
know. All of which is beside the point. Arriving at Briarwood in an official
car, complete with escort and the whole brass band, wouldn't exactly contribute
to the low profile I'm trying to maintain."
"No,
My Lady." LaFollet didn't—quite—sigh, but Honor tasted his resignation.
"Only, if you insist on doing it this way," he went on, "you're
going to follow my orders while we're out here on our own. Agreed, My
Lady?"
She looked
at him for a few seconds, and he gazed back levelly, gray eyes unflinching
while she tasted the adamantine determination behind them.
"All
right, Andrew," she surrendered. "You're in charge . . . this
time."
To his
credit, LaFollet didn't even say "good."
* * *
The limo
pulled directly into the Briarwood Center's hundred and third-floor parking
garage. Simon Mattingly settled it into the designated stall, and Spencer Hawk
climbed out of the front seat and rapidly—but thoroughly—swept the area. It was
deserted, as Honor had anticipated at this time of day, and LaFollet allowed
her to get out of the vehicle herself.
Her armsmen
fell into formation about her and she settled Nimitz on her shoulder as they
crossed the garage for the quick lift shaft trip to the Center. It wasn't easy
for a uniformed admiral of the Royal Manticoran Navy, escorted by three
uniformed bodyguards, to pass unnoticed anywhere, but confidentiality was often
something Briarwood had to take into consideration. The Center was accustomed
to providing for it without drawing attention to the fact, and the lift
deposited Honor and her party, exactly at the appointed time, outside a
discreetly private waiting room.
The woman
at the arrivals desk looked up with a pleasant smile as the door closed behind
them.
"Good
afternoon, Your Grace."
"Good
afternoon," Honor replied with a smile of her own. One, she discovered,
which covered a higher degree of nervousness than she'd expected. Routine
medical procedure or not, there was an undeniable flutter of anxiety in the pit
of her stomach. Or, she thought, perhaps someplace a bit lower.
"If
you'd care to have a seat, Dr. Illescue will be with you in just a few
moments."
"Thank
you."
Honor
settled into one of the comfortable chairs, and her dark eyes gleamed with
amusement as she and Nimitz tasted the outwardly unflappable receptionist's
emotions as her three armsmen positioned themselves with silent, well-practiced
efficiency to cover the waiting room.
She'd been
waiting for less than five minutes when Dr. Franz Illescue walked in.
"Your
Grace," he said, greeting her with a slight bow.
"Doctor."
Illescue
was on the short side, dark-haired, and slightly built, with a closely trimmed
beard. He exuded the comforting professionalism of an excellent "bedside
manner," she thought, with the critical appreciation of the child of two
physicians, but carefully hidden curiosity bubbled behind his brown eyes. And
there were other emotions along with the curiosity, including a thread of
something almost like . . . hostility. She wondered where that came from, since
she'd never met the man before in her life, but he seemed to have it well under
control. Which didn't really surprise her. Franz Illescue was Briarwood's
senior physician, and he hadn't drawn her appointment by random chance.
"If
you'll come with me, Your Grace," he invited now, then frowned as her
armsmen fell into their normal triangular pattern about her. That thread of
almost-hostility strengthened abruptly, and his eyes narrowed.
"Is
there a problem, Doctor?" she asked mildly.
"If
you'll forgive my saying so, Your Grace," he replied, "we're not
really comfortable with guns here in Briarwood."
"I can
appreciate that," she said. "Unfortunately, I'm not entirely free to
make my own decisions where security matters are concerned."
Illescue
looked at her, and she frowned herself, mildly, as she tasted more than a
little skepticism. She couldn't fault his unhappiness at having his medical
facility invaded by armed, obviously protective bodyguards, but she didn't care
at all for the undertone of something very like contempt she tasted along with
the skepticism. Not contempt for her armsmen, but for the insecurity—or
egotism—behind her obvious need for such an ostentatious display of her own
self-importance.
"I
hope it won't disrupt your normal routine, Doctor," she allowed the very
slightest hint of frost into her voice, "but I genuinely have no choice
under Grayson law. I believe you were informed of my security requirements when
I scheduled the appointment. If it's a problem, we can always leave."
"No,
of course it isn't, Your Grace," he said quickly, despite a flicker of
intense annoyance. "Will you require one of them in the treatment
room?"
"I
believe we can dispense with that particular requirement, as long as we're
allowed to post them outside the room," Honor said gravely, unable to
completely suppress her inner amusement as his carefully hidden annoyance
flared still higher briefly.
"I
don't believe that will be a problem," he told her, and she followed him
from the waiting room.
* * *
"Are
you all right, My Lady?"
Honor
grimaced, torn between amusement and affectionate annoyance at LaFollet's tone.
She'd often thought Grayson attitudes towards sex and procreation were oddly
skewed. On the one hand, no properly brought up Grayson male would even have
contemplated discussing such a subject with a woman to whom he was not married.
On the other hand, given the Grayson population's thousand-year struggle to
survive, not even the most properly reared male could grow up on the planet
without becoming fully informed on all the "female" details which
went with it.
"It's
an outpatient procedure, Andrew," she said, after a moment, shifting on
the limousine's luxurious seat. "That doesn't necessarily mean there's no
discomfort, even with quick-heal."
"No,
My Lady. Of course not," he said just a bit hastily. She looked at him
levelly, and after a moment, he grinned wryly.
"Sorry,
My Lady. I don't mean to hover. It's just, well . . . ."
He shrugged
and flipped both hands, palms uppermost.
"I
know, Andrew." She smiled at him, and Nimitz bleeked in amusement from her
lap. "And I really am just fine."
He nodded,
and she looked back out the window. Nimitz rose in her lap, careful about where
he let his weight fall, and leaned against her, pressing his muzzle very gently
against her cheek. His buzzing purr vibrated into her comfortingly, and she let
his love and support flow through her. At the moment, she needed them badly.
The
realization surprised her, yet it was true. Her mind kept returning to that
tiny embryo, floating now in the replication tube. Such a minute bit of tissue
. . . and yet, how enormous that unborn child loomed in her own heart. She felt
hollow, as if she had been emptied of something unutterably precious.
Intellectually, she knew her child was far safer where she—or he—was, yet her
emotions were something else. A part of her felt as if she'd abandoned her
baby, left it in a coldly sterile, antiseptic storage box, like some bit of
inconvenient luggage.
She hugged
Nimitz gently, wishing with all her heart that Hamish could have accompanied
her to Briarwood. He'd wanted to. In fact, he'd tried to insist on coming,
until she'd pointed out that his presence would tend to somewhat undermine her
insistence on asserting her privacy right to not disclose the father's
identity. Bad enough if someone had spotted her and her detail at the Star
Kingdom's premier fertility and reproductive center without seeing her there in
company with the First Lord of Admiralty. And yet, at this moment, she longed
to feel his arms about her.
Well, she'd
feel them this evening, she told herself. And, at least as importantly, she
would feel Emily's support. Perhaps she'd been an adoptive Grayson too long,
she thought, her lips twitching in a smile of mingled tenderness and amusement.
She wondered how many other Manticorans would have found the thought of
spending an intimate evening in the company of the wife of the father of her
unborn child comforting, yet that was the only word she could think of
to describe it.
And she
didn't really care how bizarre it might once have seemed to her pre-Grayson
self.
"Well,
well, well . . . there you are," Jean-Claude Nesbittt murmured.
He studied
the lines of alphanumeric text on his display for several seconds, then frowned
thoughtfully and began very carefully copying the critical passages of the
document for safekeeping. He made certain he had everything he needed, then
closed the file and withdrew from the "secure" memory bank as
tracelessly as he had entered it.
He punched
up another file, running down the checklist he'd assembled over the last three
arduous weeks. Putting it together would have been a full-time job under almost
any circumstances. Given the fact that he couldn't afford to let any of his
erstwhile subordinates guess he was working on a completely private black
project of his own, it had become a monumental pain in the neck. But unless he
was very mistaken, he had all the pieces he needed now.
He reached
the end of the list, grunted in satisfaction, and then closed that file, as
well. It wasn't easy. In fact, it was extraordinarily tempting to move ahead
quickly now that he'd completed the preparatory groundwork. But it was late, he
was tired, and he'd seen entirely too many fatigue-induced errors in his time.
Besides, Giancola's instructions to replace Grosclaude's letter of instruction
to his attorneys had been carried out over two months ago. Even if something happened
to Grosclaude before the colonel got around to completing the rest of project,
he was covered. So best to take things slowly and cautiously.
He powered
down his console, nodded to his own reflection in the blank display, and pushed
back his chair. Time for bed, he thought, but first, a well-earned nightcap.
* * *
"Are
you really serious about this, Boss?" Special Senior Inspector Abrioux
asked quizzically.
"And
just what about my clearly phrased directive makes you think I might not
be?" Kevin Usher, Director of the Federal Investigative Agency of the
Republic of Haven inquired.
Usher was a
huge, powerfully built man. Danielle Abrioux, on the other hand, was delicately
petite. Like Usher, she'd come up through the Resistance before joining the
FIA, and if she looked like a slender, brown-haired child, appearances could be
deceiving. She was a very dangerous "child" . . . as the
shades of over a dozen assassinated InSec and StateSec officials—and far more
currently carnate inmates of the Republic's penal systems—would have vehemently
attested. At the moment, she was perched on the corner of Usher's desk, sipping
coffee, and a matching coffee mug sat on his blotter, because Abrioux was one
of his most trusted investigators. She knew all about his alleged drunkenness,
and it was a relief to be able to abandon the charade during their meetings.
"Boss,"
she said now, her tone just a bit plaintive, "you know you've got a screwy
sense of humor. Just look at what you put Ginny and Victor through, for God's
sake! So, yeah, when you call me in for something like this, I've got to wonder
whether or not you're trying to see if my legwill come off if you pull it hard
enough."
"My
sense of humor isn't the least bit screwy," he said with dignity.
"Everyone else's sense of humor is. But in this particular
instance, I'm serious as a heart attack, Danny."
"My
God." Abrioux lowered her coffee cup, her smile fading. "You really are,
aren't you?"
"I am,
and I wish to hell I wasn't."
Abrioux
felt her stomach congealing into a lump of frozen lead. She set her coffee cup
down and pushed the saucer away from her.
"Let
me get this straight, Kevin," she said very quietly. "You're telling
me you think we may have gone back to war against the Manties not because
they altered our diplomatic traffic, but because we did?"
"Yes."
Usher's always deep voice sounded like a gravel crusher, and he inhaled deeply.
"I'm not saying I'm convinced that's what happened, but I'm afraid it may
be, Danny."
"Why?"
she demanded.
"Partly
because of Wilhelm's reports." Usher tipped back in his float chair.
"We lost a lot of our best conduits when we took down Saint-Just's
organization, but he's still got a few sources in place inside the Manty
Foreign Office. Not as highly placed as they were, but high enough to have
access to the sorts of insider shop talk permanent assistant undersecretaries
get to hear. And according to them, everyone—everyone, from the top
down—is convinced we did it."
"That
may not indicate anything," Abrioux countered. "Putting something like
this together successfully would have required very tight security. Not only
that, but it would have been put together by the High Ridge Government, not the
current one. So anyone who'd been in on it would probably be out of office by
now, anyway."
"Agreed.
But the people who are so thoroughly convinced we're the heavies of this
particular piece are the people who replaced High Ridge's cronies. Every
other bit of gossip Wilhelm's sources have given us only confirms the utter
contempt they have for their immediate predecessors. If there were even the
tiniest sniff of a possibility that anyone in the High Ridge crowd had been
responsible for this, someone would have picked up on it by now. You
know as well as I do there are always conspiracy theorists hiding in the
woodwork, Danny. Combine that with the blinding rage most of Manticore feels
for anyone remotely associated with the High Ridge Government, and one of those
theorists would certainly have pounced on any possibility, even if it was only
as one of those shivery 'no-shit' urban legends to share over a coffee break.
And no one's dropped a single word about it. Not one."
"Hmmm
. . . ." Abrioux plucked at her lower lip, then shrugged. "Maybe. But
I've gotta tell you, Boss, it sounds mighty flimsy."
"I
said that was part of the reason," Usher reminded her. "There are
other factors—straws in the wind, you might say. One is how well I know the
players on our side."
"Boss,
I hate Giancola's guts myself. And I wouldn't be too surprised at anything he
did. But much as I might like him as the baddie for this one, I think you're
reaching. First of all, he's smart. He has to know that sooner or later whoever
wins this war's going to get her hands on the other side's diplomatic archives.
Second, however much I may despise and distrust him, I don't see even him as
deliberately starting a war just to serve his own personal political ambitions.
Especially not when there's no way to be sure we're going to win the
damned thing. And, third, how the hell could he have pulled it off without someone
else at State realizing he'd altered the original notes?"
"I
never said he was stupid," Usher said mildly. "And taking your first
and second points together, I also never said he deliberately set out to start
a war. If my more paranoid suspicions are on track, what he wanted was to
create a crisis he could then successfully 'resolve' as a demonstration of his
own competence and tough-mindedness to strengthen his hand when he runs
for the presidency a few years down the road. If he'd managed to pull off what
I think he was after, there wouldn't have been a war, and neither side would
have access to the other's archives. At the very least, it would probably have
been decades before anyone had a chance to compare originals."
"Maybe
so, but there's still the question of how he could have pulled it off."
Abrioux shook her head. "Somehow he'd have had to alter at least the Manty
originals after they were received and logged in. And given what the Manties
have published as their version of our correspondence, he would have had
to alter that from the version the President and the rest of the Cabinet had
seen before it was sent, as well."
"Altering
the outgoing correspondence wouldn't have been difficult," Usher
responded. "He has personal, direct access to the traffic. He's the
Secretary of State, after all! And he also has access to the State Department's
internal recordkeeping, chip-shredding, and security systems. And, yes,"
he waved one hand, cutting off her interruption, "I know he still should
have stubbed his toe after the Manties published their version of the
documents. After all, our 'Special Envoy' also had access to the documents
actually delivered to Manticore. He must know whether or not what they've
published matches the notes he actually delivered. And Mr. Grosclaude hasn't
said a word to indicate they did. Which means that either the documents they're
publishing are, indeed, false, or . . ."
"Or
else Grosclaude was in on it, too." Abrioux's dark eyes narrowed
thoughtfully, and Usher nodded.
"Exactly.
And Yves Grosclaude and Arnold Giancola go way back together. It's only
reasonable that the Secretary of State would have picked a special envoy in
whom he had complete faith, of course. But what, exactly, did he have faith
Grosclaude would do for him?"
"Jesus."
Abrioux rubbed her forearms as if she'd felt a sudden chill. But then she
frowned again.
"Okay,
granted he could have altered the outgoing correspondence, and, assuming
Grosclaude really was willing to put it all on the line for him, he could have
gotten away with that part of it. But what about the Manty notes? Surely
they all carried the proper authentication codes!"
"Which
is why I called you in," Usher said grimly. "I've had to be very
circumspect, but last week I finally got my own hands on a copy of one of the
original Manty notes."
"Wait
a minute." Abrioux looked at him with the beginning of genuine alarm.
"Got your hands on a copy? Why the hell didn't you just ask for
one? As I recall, you and the President are supposed to be on pretty good
terms, Boss. So exactly whose back are we sneaking around behind this time?"
"Oh,
be serious, Danny!" Usher snorted explosively. "Eloise—and LePic and
Tom Theisman—are all absolutely dead serious about the 'rule of law.' Well, so
am I. But we're not really there yet. And think about the military and
diplomatic implications of what we're talking about here. If I asked Eloise for
access to the original diplomatic correspondence, I'd have to tell her why I
wanted it. She probably trusts me—and distrusts Giancola—enough to give
me the access. But then she has to take official cognizance of what I suspect.
So does she just quietly give me the access I'm not supposed to have without State's
knowledge and approval or the congressional oversight the Constitution
mandates, or does she order LePic to begin a full-press covert investigation?
And what happens if and when word leaks that one of our own Cabinet secretaries
may actually have created a completely falsified diplomatic exchange which
prompted us to go back to war against Manticore? At the very least, it would
probably cripple her administration, and the possibilities go steadily downhill
from there. At the moment, exactly two people know what I suspect, and we're
both in this office right now. And until I'm in a position to tell Eloise
something definitive, one way or the other, this stays a completely unofficial,
unacknowledged, totally 'black' investigation. Is that clearly understood?"
"Yes,
Sir," Abrioux said with unwonted formality. His hard eyes held hers for
several seconds, and then he grimaced in satisfaction.
"Didn't
mean to sound hard-assed about it," he said, "but this is one
operation we literally cannot afford to have go public until we've dotted all
the 'i's and crossed all the 't's."
"I see
you haven't lost your gift for understatement, Boss," Abrioux said dryly.
"But you were about to say something about the Manty authentication
codes?"
"I was
about to say that the fact the dispatches did carry proper Manty authentication
actually tends to reinforce my original suspicions."
Abrioux
looked confused, and he chuckled. It was a remarkably humorless sound.
"There
are a lot of things I'm officially not supposed to know about, Danny," he
said. "In particular, the President—and Congress—were remarkably clear
about the cast-iron firewall they want between our domestic police agencies and
our espionage activities. Hard to blame them, with InSec and StateSec's horrible
examples. And, in principle, I couldn't agree with them more. That's why I'm
being so careful to establish the official precedent of respecting that
firewall. Whoever takes over this chair after me is going to be stuck with it,
and rightly so. But given the incredibly tangled can of worms StateSec left us
with, it's literally impossible to draw those neat dividing lines this soon. So
I've got my unofficial and personal feelers spread as wide as I can get
them, which is how I came across an interesting tidbit of information.
"Which
was?" she demanded just a bit testily as he paused.
"Which
was that shortly before Citizen Chairman Saint-Just had that unfortunate
encounter with a pulser dart, StateSec actually managed to steal the Manties'
Foreign Office key. Not the Foreign Secretary herself's, but they did get the departmental
key."
"You're
joking!"
"No,
I'm not." He shook his head. "I'm just guessing, since I don't have
access to the full case files on the operation, but I suspect StateSec had
planted someone on Descroix years ago. God knows she was twisty enough she
might actually have knowingly allowed them to, if she thought it might give her
some advantage. New Kiev might be an idiot, but she's a principled idiot, and I
doubt they could have gotten anyone deeply enough into her confidence to have
the necessary access. But when High Ridge shuffled his Cabinet after accepting
the cease-fire, whoever they already had in place on Descroix managed to get
them a physical copy of the key."
"Which
made it the current key," Abrioux said.
"Exactly.
They changed keys when Descroix took over from New Kiev. And if Giancola had
the right contacts, he could have found out we had the key. You know we've
still got open back doors all through our security systems, Danny. There's no
telling who he might know who might have had that information or been able to
hack it for him."
"But
you haven't established that someone did, have you, Boss?"
"No.
Not yet. That's one of the entertaining little chores I had in mind to drop on you."
"Golly
gee, thanks," she said, and her forehead creased in thought.
"Even
if I manage to establish that," she went on after a moment, "the mere
fact he had access to the key wouldn't prove he actually did anything with
it."
"It
might. Or, at least, it would be highly suggestive. Enough so for me to feel
confident about showing probable cause."
"How?"
"Because
the only key the original diplomatic note I saw carried was the one
we've managed to compromise," Usher said grimly. "It's not unheard of
for a note, even a high-level one, not to carry the Foreign Secretary's
personal key, but it is unusual. So suppose we're able to establish that
Giancola had, in his possession, the general key. And suppose we go back and
examine all of the disputed correspondence and we find that none of the
Manty originals carried Descroix's personal key?"
"Probable
cause out the ying-yang," Abrioux said softly.
"Bingo."
Usher raised his coffee cup in ironic salute, took a sip, and then smiled
thinly at her.
"So,
Special Senior Inspector Abrioux, just how do you plan to begin your totally
unauthorized, off-the-record, rogue investigation?"
"Well,
it's about time," Mercedes Brigham said with profound satisfaction as the
superdreadnought Imperator grew steadily through the pinnace's viewport.
"I was beginning to think we'd never get this fleet
activated!"
Brigham sat
beside Honor, next to the hatch, and Honor nodded in silent agreement with her
chief of staff as she studied the ponderous mountain of battle steel drifting
against the stars, glittering with the brilliant pinpricks of its own riding
lights. HMS Imperator was a far cry from Honor's last flagship. The
better part of two megatons larger, massively armored, without the hatch-studded
flanks of a CLAC. One of the new Invictus-class ships, Imperator
was one of the dozen or so most powerful warships in existence. Unfortunately,
her class was also far smaller than originally projected, thanks to all the
incomplete Invictuses which had been destroyed in their building slips
in Grendelsbane.
The other
five units of her squadron—two more Invictus-class ships, and three of
the older but still formidable Medusa-class SD(P)s—orbited San Martin in
company with the fleet flagship. Just beyond Imperator, she saw HMS
Intransigent, Alistair McKeon's squadron flagship, and she smiled fondly at
the sight. If anyone deserved a flag, it was certainly Alistair, she thought.
And she couldn't think of anyone she would rather have watching her back.
Her pinnace
decelerated to a halt relative to Imperator, then rolled on its gyros as
the superdreadnought's boat bay tractors locked on. They drew the small craft
steadily in, then deposited it with scarcely a tremor in the docking arms. The
boarding tube ran out to mate with the hatch collar, and the service umbilicals
extended themselves and locked into the proper receptacles aboard the pinnace
as Honor gazed through the transparent armorplast of the boat bay gallery at
the waiting side party.
"Good
seal," the flight engineer informed the flight deck crew, studying her
panel.
"Crack
the hatch," the pilot replied, and the hatch slid open.
Brigham
climbed out of her seat, moved into the aisle, then stood waiting while Honor
got up, lifted Nimitz to her shoulder, and started for the hatch. The Royal
Manticoran Navy's tradition that the most senior officer boarded last and
disembarked first was ironclad . . . for most people, at least, she thought
with a slight grimace. As usual, things weren't quite that simple for
Steadholder Harrington, but she'd won at least one concession from LaFollet.
She got to swim the tube first, then her armsmen broke into the
traditional disembarkment queue.
She tasted
Nimitz's excitement and anticipation, like an echo of her own, as she swept
gracefully through the tube's zero gravity. She caught the grab bar at the far
end and swung through the interface with the ship's gravity with the smoothness
of decades of experience. She landed in precisely the right spot, just outside
the painted line on the deck which indicated the official beginning of HMS
Imperator.
"Eighth
Fleet, designate, arriving!" the intercom announced as the electronic
bosun's pipes began to wail, and the side party snapped stiffly to attention,
Marines presenting their bayoneted pulse rifles with parade ground precision.
"Permission
to come aboard, Ma'am?" Honor requested formally of the senior-grade
lieutenant with the brassard of the boat bay officer of the deck.
"Permission
granted, Ma'am," the lieutenant replied, saluting crisply, and Honor
returned the salute then stepped past her, down the avenue between the rows of
side boys to where Rafael Cardones stood waiting.
"Welcome
aboard, Your Grace," he said, reaching out to shake her hand as the
bosun's pipes sounded again for Mercedes Brigham behind her.
"Thank
you, Captain," she said, observing the formalities, but her eyes gleamed.
Rafael Cardones had changed in a great many ways from the youngster she'd first
met, but she could still taste his little-boy excitement and pride in his new
command, and he grinned as he glanced at her own white beret.
"Congratulations,
'Captain,' Harrington." It was the first time he'd seen her since she'd
been formally named Unconquered's CO. "It seems we both have new
ships, Your Grace."
"I
suppose we do," she agreed, glancing around the spacious, spotless boat
bay. "And yours looks beautiful, Rafe," she added in a softer voice,
and his teeth flashed in a broad smile.
"Not
as nimble as Werewolf or a battlecruiser, Ma'am," he said,
"but she's still got that new-air car smell. Among other things."
"So I
understand," she agreed, turning to stand beside him and watch the arrival
of the remainder of her staff. It took a while, and—not for the first time—she
thought the Navy could have gotten things done more quickly if it wasn't quite
so enamored of proper procedures, formalities, and traditions. Of course, then
it wouldn't have been the Navy.
"Would
you care to be shown to your quarters, Ma'am?" Cardones asked after
everyone had joined her.
"I
would like to see them," Honor replied, "but we might as well get the
rest of the official business out of the way first. Are all of the squadron
commanders aboard?"
"Admiral
Henke is still in transit, Ma'am," he said. "Her ETA is about six
minutes. She sent her apologies, but she was delayed aboard Admiral Kuzak's
flagship."
"Well,
I don't imagine I'll have her shot just yet," Honor said judiciously.
"But if she's that close to arriving, would you object to waiting for her
here and going up to Flag Bridge together after she arrives?"
"Of
course not, Ma'am," Cardones replied. "In fact, if you wouldn't mind,
we might use that time introducing you do some of my own senior officers."
"I'd
appreciate that," she said, and he turned to the officers standing behind
him.
"This
is Commander Hirshfield, my XO," he said, indicating a tall, slender,
red-haired officer who extended her right hand. Hirshfield's blue eyes were
frankly curious as she met Honor's gaze, but her handclasp was firm and Honor
liked the taste of tough, professional competence the other woman exuded.
"Commander,"
she said.
"Welcome
aboard, Your Grace," Hirshfield replied. "If there's anything you
need, just let me know."
Honor
nodded, and Cardones turned to the next officer in line.
"Commander
Yolanda Harriman, Your Grace. My Tactical Officer."
"Commander."
Honor shook the proffered hand firmly. Harriman, despite her surname, obviously
had at least as much Old Earth Oriental in her genotype as Honor herself. The
tactical officer was dark-eyed and dark-haired, with eyes so brown they were
almost black and a delicate sandalwood complexion. She also radiated a certain
subtle ferocity. That was the only word Honor could come up with. This was
obviously a woman who had found her proper niche.
"Welcome
aboard, Your Grace," Harriman said, smiling with perfect white teeth.
"If the newsies know what they're talking about, I'm sure you'll be able
to scare up enough action to keep us all busy."
"It
seems likely," Honor agreed mildly. "Not that you want to believe
everything you read in the 'faxes."
"No,
Ma'am. Of course not," Harriman said, but her eyes dropped to the medal
ribbons on Honor's chest, and Honor felt a slight twinge of alarm. The last
thing she wanted in a tactical officer was someone who still believed in glory.
She started to say something else, then stopped, smiled again, and turned her
head as Cardones indicated the next officer in the queue.
"Commander
Thompson, my Engineer," he said. Thompson was red-haired and wiry, and
Honor's smile group much broader as she saw him.
"Well,
well, Glenn!" she said. "It's been quite a while, hasn't it?"
"Yes,
Your Grace, it has," he agreed, and Cardones raised one eyebrow
inquiringly.
"Glenn
made his snotty cruise aboard Hawkwing a few more years ago than either
of us would like to remember, Captain," Honor explained. "At the
time," she continued with a wicked twinkle, "he was the despair of
Lieutenant Hunter, our Engineer. Apparently he's managed to sort out the
widgets from the gizmos since then."
"Almost,
Your Grace," Thompson said with a slightly worried expression. "I
still get them confused once in a while, but, fortunately, I've got really good
assistants to keep me straight."
Honor
chuckled and touched him lightly on the shoulder, then turned to the lieutenant
commander standing beside him.
"Commander
Neukirch, our Astrogator."
"Commander."
Honor shook
the offered hand. Neukirch was probably in her mid-thirties. It was often
difficult to tell, especially without knowing which generation of prolong
therapy someone had received. In Neukirch's case it was rendered more difficult
because she was one of the minority of female Manticoran officers who had
chosen to completely depilate her head. The severe style contrasted with her
sensual lips and exotically planed features, and her eyes—a curiously neutral
shade of gray—studied Honor almost warily.
Honor held
her hand a moment longer than she had held Hirshfield's or Thompson's, and her
own eyes narrowed as she tasted the other woman's emotions. There was a peculiar
combination of apprehension, or perhaps anxiety, coupled with an oddly focused,
burning sense of anticipation and curiosity.
"Have
we met, Commander?" Honor asked.
"Uh,
no, Your Grace," she said hastily. She seemed to hesitate, then smiled
tautly. "You did meet my father once, though. The same time Glenn
did."
Honor
frowned, then her eyes widened.
"Yes,
Your Grace," Neukirch said more naturally. "Father stayed in the Star
Kingdom after Casimir."
"And
took Dr. Neukirch's surname," Honor said, nodding.
"Yes,
Your Grace. He's spoken of you often over the years. When he heard Imperator
was going to be your flagship, he asked me to remember him to you and to extend
his thanks once more."
"Tell
him I'm honored he remembered," Honor said, "and that while I appreciate
his thanks, they aren't necessary. It's obvious," she smiled at the
younger woman, "that he—and you—have amply repaid me and the Star
Kingdom."
Neukirch's
face blossomed in a huge smile of pleasure, and Honor turned to the next
officer in the queue, who wore the uniform of the Royal Manticoran Marines.
"Major
Lorenzetti, commanding our Marine detachment," Cardones said.
"Major."
Honor shook Lorenzetti's hand, liking what she saw and what she tasted of his
mind-glow. Lorenzetti was a typical Marine, who reminded her strongly of Tomas
Ramirez. He was much shorter and nowhere near as broad, built on merely mortal
lines, but he had that same no-nonsense tenacity.
"Major,"
she acknowledged, and he surprised her by bending over her hand. His lips just
brushed its back in a formal Grayson-style greeting, and then he straightened.
"Your
Grace." His voice was deep and resonant, and he smiled at her. "Since
I appear to be one of the minority of officers in the ship who hasn't already
met you, Your Grace, perhaps I should point out that I spent two T-years in the
Masada Contingent. They weren't the most pleasant tour I ever pulled, but after
seeing that planet—and comparing it to Grayson—I can only say that if anyone's
navy ever needed its sorry ass kicked, it was Masada's."
"The
Major, as you can see, like all Marines, is particularly eloquent,"
Cardones said dryly, and Honor chuckled.
"So I
noticed," she said. "Although, on balance, I'd have to agree with his
sentiments. When were you there, Major?"
"I
transferred back to Fleet duty last year, Your Grace," Lorenzetti said in
a much more serious tone.
"I've
often considered visiting Masada myself. Colonel LaFollet here—" she
gestured at her senior armsman "—doesn't seem to feel that would be the
smartest decision I ever made, however."
"On
balance," Lorenzetti replied, deliberately using her own choice of phrase,
"I'd have to agree with him, Your Grace. Things have improved a lot just
in the time since I was first stationed there, but there's still a nasty
underground ticking away. And, with all due respect, you're probably one of the
three or four people they'd most like to assassinate. The real fanatics would
pull out all the stops if they knew you were coming."
"I
know," she sighed, then smiled at the Marine and turned to the final
officer awaiting introduction.
"Commander
Morrison, Your Grace. Our surgeon," Cardones said, and Honor gripped the
slender, fair-haired lieutenant commander's hand. Morrison was probably the
oldest of Cardones' officers, and she felt . . . solid. There was something
profoundly reassuring about her calm assurance and confidence in her own
competence.
"Dr.
Morrison," she murmured, and the physician smiled and bobbed her head.
"I'm
pleased to meet all of you," Honor continued, meeting their combined gaze.
"I know there's something of a tradition of rivalry between a flagship's
officers and the admiral's staff, and up to a point, that's probably not a bad
thing. However, it's been my experience that the flagship's personnel are just
as vital as the staff if a squadron or a task force is going to operate
smoothly. Commodore Brigham here," she waved Brigham forward, "and I
have discussed that very consideration, and if any difficulties do arise, I
want them resolved as expeditiously as possible. I think you'll find Commodore
Brigham is much more interested in results than in assigning blame when
problems do arise."
Everyone
smiled and nodded with murmurs of understanding. Well, of course they did,
given that any admiral's suggestion carried the force of a direct decree from
God aboard her flagship . . . however stupid it might be. In this case,
however, Honor tasted genuine agreement behind the proper formula, which gave
her a pronounced sense of satisfaction.
"Excuse
me, Captain," the BBOD said, interrupting diffidently, "but Admiral
Henke's pinnace is on final."
"Thank
you," Cardones responded, and Honor turned to watch the side party
reassemble itself smoothly.
The newly
arrived pinnace settled into the docking arms, the tube ran out, and the green
light indicating a good seal blinked to life over the inboard end.
"BatCruRon
Eighty-One, arriving!" the intercom announced, and a moment later an
ebony-skinned woman in the uniform of a rear admiral swung herself lithely out
of the tube into the twitter of pipes.
"Permission
to come aboard, Ma'am?" she requested of the BBOD in a husky, almost
furry-sounding contralto.
"Permission
granted, Ma'am," the lieutenant replied, exchanging salutes, and the new
arrival stepped forward quickly.
"Welcome
aboard, Ma'am," Cardones said, shaking her hand.
"Thank
you, Rafe," she said with a smile, which grew considerably broader when
she turned to Honor.
"It's
good to see you back in uniform, Your Grace," she said, gripping Honor's
hand firmly, then nodded to LaFollet. "And I see you've brought along your
baseball fanatic."
"Nonsense,"
Honor said airily. "By Grayson standards, he's a mere dilettante. Now,
Simon, here—he's a real fan. Unlike myself, of course."
"Oh,
of course!" Henke chuckled.
"I
believe all of the squadron COs are aboard now, Your Grace," Cardones
said.
"So we
should get out of your boat bay crew's way and take ourselves off to Flag
Bridge," Honor agreed.
* * *
"Attention
on deck," Vice Admiral Allison Truman, as the senior officer present, said
as Honor stepped through the flag briefing room's hatch, and the officers who
had been seated around the large conference table rose.
"As
you were, Ladies and Gentlemen," Honor said briskly, striding into the
compartment and crossing to the head of the table. She seated herself and laid
her white beret neatly in front of her.
Henke,
Cardones, and her staff followed her, and as they found their chairs and the
other officers settled back into their places, she let her eyes run around the
table.
It was as
near to a hand-picked command team as anyone was likely to be able to come
under the current circumstances. Alice Truman, Alistair McKeon, and Michelle
Henke—commanding her carriers, her 'wall of battle' (such as it was, and what
there was of it), and her most powerful battlecruiser squadron,
respectively—were all known quantities. Vice Admiral Samuel Miklós commanded
the second of Eighth Fleet's two CLAC squadrons—Truman herself commanded the
other, as well as the entire carrier force—and Rear Admiral Matsuzawa Hirotaka
commanded Honor's second battlecruiser squadron. Rear Admiral Winston Bradshaw
and Commodore Charise Fanaafi commanded her two heavy cruiser squadrons, and
Commodore Mary Lou Moreau commanded her attached flotilla of light cruisers,
while Captain Josephus Hastings was present as her senior destroyer captain.
She knew
Matsuzawa and Moreau personally, although not well; Miklós, Bradshaw, Fanaafi,
and Hastings were complete newcomers to her command team, but all of them had
excellent records. Perhaps even more importantly, given the nature of their
mission, all of them had already demonstrated flexibility, adaptiveness, and
the ability to display intelligent initiative.
"It's
good to see all of you gathered in one place at last," she said, after a
moment. "And, as Commodore Brigham commented as we docked with
Imperator, it's about time. Eighth Fleet is officially activated as of
twelve hundred hours, Zulu, today."
No one
actually moved, but it was as if an invisible stir had run around the
compartment.
"We
can anticipate the arrival of the remaining units of our initial order of
battle over the next three weeks," she continued levelly. "We're all
aware of how tightly the Navy is stretched at the moment, so we won't dwell on
that just now. I met with Admiral Caparelli immediately before my departure for
Trevor's Star, however, and he emphasized to me once again the importance of
beginning active operations as quickly as possible.
"Commodore
Brigham, Commander Jaruwalski, and I have given considerable thought to the
most appropriate initial targets for our attention. This isn't simply a
military operation. Or, rather, it's a military operation with a political
dimension of which we must be well aware. Specifically, we want the Havenites
to divert forces to provide rear security against our raids. That means
balancing vulnerability of target against economic and industrial value, but it
also requires us to think about which target systems are most likely to
generate political pressure to divert enemy strike forces to defensive employment.
"I'm
confident we can find such targets, but accomplishing our objective is almost
certainly going to require us to operate widely dispersed attack forces, at
least in our initial operations. That means we're going to be relying very
heavily on the judgment and ability of our junior flag officers—more heavily
than we'd originally anticipated. I know the quality of my squadron commanders,
but I'm less familiar with your divisional commanders, and, unfortunately, the
pressure to begin operations is going to sharply restrict the time we have to
get to know one another through exercises. Which means, of course, that I'm
going to be relying heavily on all of you to provide the insight about your
subordinates which I won't have time to develop for myself."
Several
heads nodded, and every expression was sober and intent.
"In
just a moment, Commodore Brigham and Commander Reynolds will brief all of us on
current intelligence, enemy strength appreciations, and the parameters the
Admiralty's set forth for our target selection criteria. Afterwards, I'll ask
all of you to return to your flagships and bring your own staffs up to speed.
Get them started brainstorming. This evening, I'd like all of you—and your
chiefs of staff and operations officers—to join me for dinner."
McKeon,
Truman, and Henke looked at one another expressionlessly, and Honor smiled.
"Bring
your appetites," she said, "because I think you'll find the food
quite good. But plan on staying out late, Ladies and Gentlemen. It's going to
be a working dinner. Probably the first of many."
* * *
"Could
I have a minute?"
Honor
turned her head to look at Michelle Henke, and her eyebrows rose as she tasted
the edge of apprehension and frustration behind the question. The other flag
officers were flowing through the briefing room hatch, and she glanced at
Brigham. She flipped her eyes to one side, and the chief of staff caught the
silent order and discreetly urged her other staffers towards the hatch as well.
"Of course
you can have a minute, Mike," Honor said, turning back to Henke.
"Why?"
She allowed
a touch of concern to soften her own voice. Henke was one of the people who'd
realized long since that Honor could actually feel the emotions of people
around her, so there was no point pretending she didn't know her friend was
concerned about something. Henke's lips twitched in a brief smile of
half-amused recognition, but the smile barely touched her eyes.
"Something
came to my attention the other day," she said quietly. "Specifically,
the circumstances which led to my being given the Eighty-First."
There was
something oddly formal about her tone, and Honor frowned slightly.
"What
about it?"
"According
to my sources, I got the command because you specifically asked for it for
me," Henke said, and looked at her steadily.
Honor
looked back, and tried not to sigh. She'd hoped Henke wouldn't hear about that.
Not that there'd ever been much realistic chance she wouldn't.
"That's
not exactly how it happened, Mike," she said after a moment.
"Honor,
let's not quibble over words like 'exactly. Did you pull strings to get
me the command?"
Honor gazed
at her for a moment longer, then glanced around the compartment. Everyone had departed
except Andrew LaFollet and Mercedes Brigham.
"Mercedes,
Andrew," she said, "could you give us a minute, please?"
"Of
course, My Lady," LaFollet replied, and he and the chief of staff stepped
outside. Honor waited until the hatch slid closed behind them, then turned back
to Henke.
"All
right, Mike," she sighed. "Just how difficult do you intend to be
about this?"
"Honor,"
Henke began, "you know how hard I've fought against playing the patronage
game. It's important to me that—"
"Michelle
Henke," Honor interrupted, "in this particular regard, you are the
most stubborn, stiffnecked, prickly, hyper-sensitive person I've ever met. And
I remind you that I know my own parents, Nimitz, and your cousin Elizabeth, so
you're in some pretty select company for stubbornness."
"It's
not a joke," Henke said, almost angrily, and Honor shook her head.
"No,
it's not," she said. "And by this stage in your career, Mike, it's
gone a long way past funny, too." Henke's eyes widened at the sudden
severity of Honor's tone, and Honor grimaced. "Have you ever seen the
'Confidential Notes' section of your personnel jacket?" she asked.
"Of
course not." Henke looked surprised by the apparent non sequitur.
"That's why it's marked 'Confidential,' isn't it?"
"Yes,
it is. And I'm not surprised it's never even occurred to you to bend the rules
in this particular regard. But, if you had read it, you'd discover that
BuPers has noted this particular phobia of yours. There's a specific notation,
Mike, which says—and I paraphrase—'This officer is of superior quality but not
prepared for accelerated promotion.'"
Something
like hurt flickered in Henke's eyes, and Honor snorted in exasperation.
"You're
not listening to what I said, Mike. It doesn't say 'not qualified;' it says
'not prepared.' As in 'not prepared to accept.' Everyone knows you're
the Queen's first cousin. Everyone knows you've always stomped all over
anything which even looked like preferential treatment. We understand
that, Mike. What you don't seem to understand is that a flag officer's
chair would have been pulled out for you at least four or five T-years before
it was if BuPers hadn't realized you would have thought it was because
of who you're related to. And that you're so stubborn you'd probably
have resigned your commission rather than accept 'preferential
treatment.'"
"That's
ridiculous," Henke protested.
"No,
it isn't. What's ridiculous is that you've managed to slow your career and to
deprive the Star Kingdom of the full value of your skills and talents because
in this one regard you—you, Mike Henke, Ms. I-Know-What-I'm-Doing,
Brash-and-Confident—suffer from a serious self-confidence crisis. Well, as it
happens, I'm not prepared to put up with that sort of silliness any
longer."
"Honor,
you can't—"
"I not
only can, I have," Honor said flatly. "Look at the record,
Mike. Of our graduating class, thirty percent have attained at least junior
flag rank; another forty percent are captains, over half of them senior-grade;
and fifteen percent are dead or medically retired. Are you seriously going to
tell me that if you were another officer, evaluating your record and your
performance, you wouldn't rate your command ability as being in the top thirty
percent of our classmates? You do remember some of the idiots who graduated at
the same time we did, don't you?"
Henke's
lips twitched at the acid tone in which Honor delivered her last sentence, but
she also shook her head.
"I'm
not saying I'm not qualified to be a commodore, or even a rear admiral. What
bothers me is that I just got command of the one and only squadron of
pod-laying battlecruisers in the entire Royal Navy. If you aren't aware of how
cutthroat competition for this slot was, I certainly am."
"Of
course I'm aware. And before you go any further, I should point out to you that
I was promised that squadron for Eighth Fleet before I submitted my list
of requested squadron commanders. I was getting those ships whether I got you
or not, and when I asked for you and Hirotaka, you were senior. Which is why Admiral
Cortez suggested you for the Eighty-First when I inquired as to whether or
not your services were available. And before you say it, I'm quite certain that
one reason he made the suggestion was the fact that he knew about our
friendship. But you know as well as I do that Sir Lucian is not exactly in the
habit of suggesting incompetent officers for critical slots just to curry favor
with politically important people."
Honor
folded her arms, and Nimitz rose high on her shoulder, cocking his head at
Henke.
"Bottom-line
time, Mike. Yes, you could say I 'pulled strings' to get you assigned to Eighth
Fleet, knowing it would probably mean you got the Eighty-First. And, yes, I did
it on purpose, and I'd do it again. But if you think for one single moment that
I would have requested anyone for this command if I didn't believe she
was the very best person available for it, regardless of friendship, then you
don't know me as well as you think you do. Or, for that matter, as well as I
think you do, when you aren't bending over backward to make sure no one
does you 'any favors.'"
Henke
looked at her, and Honor tasted that stubborn sense of integrity and the need
to prove she merited any promotion that came her way warring with her
intellectual recognition that everything Honor had just said was the simple
truth. Then, finally, the other woman sighed.
"All
right, Honor. You win. I'm still not entirely comfortable with it, you
understand. But I have to admit I really, really don't want to give it up,
however I got it."
"Fine.
I can live with that," Honor told her with a smile. "And if you still
entertain any doubts about it, then I suggest you use those doubts as a
self-motivator to go out and prove to both of us that you really do deserve
it."
"Lady
Harrington is here, Milady."
"Thank
you, Sandy." Emily Alexander looked up at her nurse's announcement. Her
life-support chair was parked in her favorite niche in her atrium, and she
tapped the save key with her right index finger, saving the HD script she'd
been annotating. "Please ask her to join me," she said.
"Of
course, Milady."
Thurston
bowed slightly and withdrew. A few moments later, she returned, followed by Dr.
Allison Harrington.
Not for the
first time, Emily felt a certain amusement at the thought that such a tiny
mother could have produced a daughter Honor's size. There was something
undeniably feline about Allison Harrington, she thought. Something poised,
perpetually balanced and faintly amused by the world about her. Not detached—never
that—but comfortable enough with who she was to let the rest of the
world be whatever it needed to be. She didn't really look that much like Honor,
and yet no one could ever mistake her for anyone but Honor's mother. It was the
eyes, Emily thought. The one feature which was exactly identical in both mother
and daughter.
"Good
afternoon, Lady Harrington," Emily said as Thurston smiled and withdrew,
leaving them along together, and Allison rolled those almond-shaped eyes very
much as Honor might have.
"Please,
Lady Alexander," she said. Emily cocked an eyebrow, and Allison snorted.
"I'm from Beowulf, Milady," she said, "and I married a yeoman.
Until my daughter fell into bad company, it never occurred to me I might be
even remotely associated with the Manticoran aristocracy, far less the Grayson
version. If you insist on using titles, I'd much prefer 'Doctor,' since that's
at least a title I earned on my own. Under the circumstances, however,
if it's all the same to you, I'd prefer simply Allison."
"I see
where Honor gets it from," Emily said with a faint smile. "But if
you'd prefer to ignore aristocratic titles, that's certainly all right with me.
After all," her smile broadened, "as the mother of a Duchess and a
Steadholder, you outrank me rather substantially."
"Bullshit,"
Allison said pithily, and Emily chuckled.
"All
right, Allison. You win. And in that case, I'm Emily, not 'Milady.'"
"Fine."
Allison shook her head, her expression almost bemused for a moment. "I
suppose any parent always wants her daughter to do well and succeed, but I
sometimes think I must have dropped Honor on her head when she was a baby. The
girl has an absolute compulsion to overachieve, however inconvenient it may be
for her father and me."
"And
you're inordinately proud of her, too," Emily observed.
"Well,
of course I am. At least, when I'm not spending my time sitting up at night
worrying over what sort of insane risk she's going to run next."
Allison's
tone was light, amused, but there was a sudden flash of darker emotion in those
chocolate eyes, and Emily felt her own smile waver.
"She
does tend to make the people who love her worry," she said quietly.
"I'll be honest, Allison. I was never so glad of anything as I was when
the Queen asked Hamish to take over at the Admiralty. I know he hated it, but
having both of them out in space, waiting to be shot at, would be even
worse."
"I
know." Allison seated herself on a stone bench—the one Honor usually used
when she joined Emily in the atrium—and met Emily's eyes steadily. "I
realize the timing on this entire situation is as 'interesting,' in the Chinese
sense of the word, as anything else Honor's ever gotten herself into. And I
obviously don't know you very well . . . yet. But I hope you won't mind my
saying that in many ways, Hamish and you are the best thing that's happened to
Honor at least since Paul Tankersley was killed. I hope it's a good thing for
you, too, but I'm selfish enough to be happy for her anyway."
"She's
very young, isn't she?" Emily replied obliquely, and Allison smiled.
"I'm
sure she doesn't see it that way at her age, but in a lot of ways, you're
right. And she's very Sphinxian, too. I, on the other hand, am an experienced
old lady from the decadent world of Beowulf. By way of Grayson these days, of
all bizarre places."
"I
know. On the other hand, I won't pretend it was easy for me. Certainly not at
first. But there's a quality, a magnetism, about your daughter, Allison.
Charisma, I suppose you'd have to call it, although she never seems to realize
she's got it. You don't meet very many people who do have it, actually. And
she's just as striking physically. Most of the professional dancers I knew back
when I was still acting would have killed to be able to move the way she does.
In fact," she smiled, "if I weren't stuck in this chair, I suspect
I'd be just as physically attracted to her as Hamish is." That wasn't an
admission Emily would have made even to most members of her own social class,
but as Allison had just pointed out, she was from Beowulf. "Even
without that, though, she's an incredibly lovable person, in her own way. And
so damned determined to never put herself first that sometimes you just want to
strangle her."
"She
gets it from her father," Allison said cheerfully. "All that
altruism." She shook her head. "My own philosophy's much more
hedonistic than hers."
"I'm
sure." Emily smiled. "Which undoubtedly explains, in some convoluted
fashion, what brings you to White Haven this afternoon?"
"Well,
even a card-carrying hedonist is usually willing to exert herself at least a
little for her first grandchild."
Allison
watched her hostess closely, but Emily's smile didn't waver.
"Somehow,
I'm not surprised to hear that," she said. "But while we're on the
subject, what's your official reason for being here? Just so we can keep
our stories straight, you understand."
"Oh, officially
I'm here for Doctor Arif. She's drafted me for her commission, as a
representative of the medical profession who's as close to an expert on
treecats as she can find. I kicked and screamed about how busy I am on Grayson,
but it didn't do me much good. And, actually, it's fascinating watching
Samantha and the other memory singers working with her to demonstrate their
value. At the very least, it's going to revolutionize psychotherapy here in the
Star Kingdom, and I think the implications for law enforcement may be at least
equally significant. But for the official record, I'm here to talk to you—and
Hamish, when he gets home this evening—about your experiences with Samantha for
a paper I'm putting together. I'm supposed to present it to the commission next
Wednesday."
"I
see. And the real reason?"
"And
the real reason is to talk to you about something else entirely," Allison
said, her voice suddenly softer. Emily looked at her, and Allison shook her
head.
"I'm
not going to ask you how you feel about my daughter and your husband. First of
all, that's not really any of my business. More importantly, even before I met
you, I knew you were a strongminded woman, not the sort to meekly acquiesce in
anything against your will. But Honor didn't have time to complete all the
arrangements with Briarwood before she had to deploy to Trevor's Star. Since
I'm the official contact, with power of attorney to make medical decisions in
her absence, I'm tidying up those loose ends for her. To be perfectly honest,
Emily, this is something which I believe you ought to be allowed to do.
And something which, under any other circumstances, I think Honor herself would
have insisted you should."
Emily's
eyes misted over, and she felt her lips tremble. Then she inhaled deeply.
"I
wish I could," she said quietly. "More than I can ever tell
you."
"My
own personality, oddly enough for someone from Beowulf, is firmly
monogamous," Allison said in a lighter tone. "I suppose it's part of
my own rebellion against the mores of my birth world. But in your
position," the lightness faded, "I know how badly I'd want to
be making those decisions, discharging those responsibilities. And because of
that, and because Honor feels exactly the same way, I'm here to ask you and
Hamish to assist me with the environmental recordings."
Emily's
eyebrows rose. One of the things about artificial gestation which the medical
profession had learned the hard way was the necessity of providing the
developing fetus with the physical and aural stimulation the child would have
received in its mother's womb. Heartbeat, random environmental sounds,
movement, and—most importantly of all, in many ways—the sound of its mother's
voice.
"Honor
and I have made selections from several of her letters to me and to her
father," Allison continued. "She's also found time to record several
hours of poetry and a few of her favorite childhood stories. And she insisted
that my voice, and her father's, should also be included. Just as she very,
very much wants her child to hear the voices of its father . . . and both its
mothers."
Emily's
expression froze. She looked at Allison for several seconds, unable to speak,
and Allison smiled gently.
"She's
told me in general terms how you reacted to the news of her pregnancy, Emily.
And she's almost as much from Grayson as Manticore these days. Sometimes I
don't think even she realizes how true that really is. But she's seen the
strength of Grayson family structure, how nurturing it is, and she wants that
for her—for your—child. And she loves you. She doesn't want it only for
the child's sake; she wants it for your sake, as well."
"And
she told Hamish they didn't deserve me," Emily said finally, her
voice husky. "Of course we'll help with the recordings, Allison. Thank
you."
"I'd
say you were welcome, if there were any reason to thank me," Allison
replied. "And on a lighter note, I trust you're prepared to come up with
some reason for me to be spending inordinate amounts of time visiting
you." Emily felt her eyebrows rising again, and Allison chuckled. "I
intend to be a very involved grandmother, which means you're going to be seeing
a lot of me over the next several decades."
Emily
laughed.
"Oh,
I'm sure we'll be able to come up with something. By now, devising plausible
pretexts is getting to be second nature."
Allison
started to reply, then paused, her expression suddenly pensive. Several seconds
passed, and Emily frowned, wondering what direction the other woman's thoughts
had gone.
"Actually,"
Allison said slowly, at last, "I think there might be a completely
legitimate reason. One I hadn't really intended to suggest."
"That
sounds faintly ominous," Emily said.
"Not
ominous, I hope. But maybe a little . . . intrusive."
"Definitely
ominous," Emily said as lightly as possible. "Given that you're the
mother of the mother of my husband's child, anything that strikes you as being
more intrusive than that is probably fairly terrifying."
"I
wouldn't choose that precise adjective," Allison said seriously, "but
I'm afraid it is going to be rather personal. And if you'd prefer not to
discuss it, that's entirely your decision. But given what's happened
accidentally between Hamish and Honor, Emily, I can't help wondering why you've
never considered the possibility of having a child of your own."
Emily's
heart seemed to stop. It couldn't, of course. Her life-support chair's hardware
wouldn't let it, any more than it would let her stop breathing. But despite her
brutally damaged nervous system, she felt for just a moment as if someone had
just punched her in the pit of the stomach.
She stared
at Allison, shocked, unable to speak, and Allison reached out and laid her own
hand atop Emily's right hand.
"This
is coming from me, not Honor," she said quietly. "Honor would never
dream of intruding on you the way I just have. Partly, that's because she loves
you and recognizes how much emotional stress she's already accidentally
inflicted upon you. And partly, it's because she's so much younger than
you—which I'm certainly not. And partly because she's not a physician. We've
talked, especially since she found out she was pregnant, of course, but she
hasn't betrayed any of your confidences to me, and I'd never ask her to. Still,
I'm sure you must realize that as a doctor, and especially as a geneticist, I'm
very well aware of all the reproductive options which have been available to
you. And that, Emily, suggests to me that you must have some deeply personal
reason for not availing yourself of them.
"That's
your decision, of course. But Honor's told me how you responded to the
discovery that she's going to have a child. And I've just seen how you
reacted to the awareness that you're also going to be that child's other
mother. So I'm wondering why someone who so clearly recognizes how Honor must
feel, and who so obviously wants and needs to be a part of that, has never had
a child of her own."
A part of
Emily Alexander wanted to scream at Allison Harrington. To tell her that
however curious she might be, it was none of her damned business. But
she didn't. The combination of gentle, very personal compassion and
professional detachment in Allison's eyes and voice stopped her.
Not that
anything could have made the topic any less painful.
"I
have my reasons," she said finally, her voice far more clipped and
harder-edged than usual.
"I'm
certain you do. You're a strong, smart, competent person. People like you don't
turn their backs on something so obviously important to them without reasons.
The thing I'm wondering, though, is whether they're as valid as you may think
they are."
"It's
not something I decided lightly," Emily said harshly.
"Emily,"
Allison's voice was gently chiding, "no woman can have gone through
everything you've survived without realizing that the mere fact a decision
wasn't made lightly doesn't necessarily make it a good one. I'm a doctor. I
specialize in genetic disease and repair—too often after the fact, even
today—and my husband's one of the Star Kingdom's three top neurosurgeons. The
sort they send the "Omigod!" cases to. If he'd been in civilian
practice when you were hurt, he'd probably have been one of your doctors.
Do you have any idea how much carnage, how many shattered lives and broken
bodies, the two of us have seen? Between us, we've been practicing medicine for
well over a century, Emily. If there are two people in the entire Star Kingdom
who know exactly what you, your family, and all the people who care about you
have been through, it's us."
Emily's
lips trembled, and her single working hand clenched into a fist under Allison's
fingers. She was shocked—physically shocked—at the abrupt realization that she
desperately wanted to open her heart to Allison. By the discovery that she needed
to know Allison did, indeed, understand the savagery with which the
physical damage to her body had smashed far more than mere muscle and sinew.
And yet . .
. and yet something held her back. Her own version of Honor's stubbornness and
pride, her need to fight her own battles. As Allison had said, Emily Alexander
was an extraordinarily intelligent woman. She'd had half a century in her
life-support chair to realize just how foolish it was to insist on facing down
all of her own demons, all her own challenges, unassisted. More than that, she
knew she hadn't. That Hamish was there for her. That except for one brief
period of weakness, which he bitterly regretted, he'd always been there
for her, and she'd always relied upon him. But that was different. She couldn't
have defined exactly how, yet she knew it was.
"Emily,"
Allison said again, quietly, as the silence stretched out between them,
"you aren't as unique as you may think you are. Oh, the injuries you've
survived probably are. At least, I can't think of another case in my own
or Alfred's experience in which someone survived physical damage as extreme as
it clearly was in yours. But people who are as badly injured as you were take
damage in a lot of ways. Obviously, I've never had access to any of your case
history. And I've never probed Honor for information about it—not that she'd
have given it to me, even if I had. But I have to ask you. Like Honor, you
don't regenerate. Is that the reason? Are you afraid a child of yours might
share that inability?"
"I . .
. ." Emily's voice rasped, and she stopped and cleared her throat.
"That's
. . . a part of it," she said finally, distantly amazed she could admit
even that much to Allison. "I suppose I've always known it's not entirely
. . . rational. As you say," her mouth twisted in a bitter smile,
"the fact that someone has reasons for her decisions doesn't necessarily
make those reasons valid."
"Did
you ever discuss the question with a good geneticist?" Allison's gentle
voice was completely devoid of any shadow of judgment.
"No."
Emily looked away. "No, not really. I consulted several of them.
But I suppose, if I were honest, I'd have to admit I was just going through the
motions. For me, perhaps for Hamish. I don't know." She looked back at
Allison, green eyes brimming with tears. "I talked to them. They talked to
me. And they kept reassuring me, telling me it wouldn't happen. And that
even if somehow I did pass on my 'curse,' it was absurd to think any child of
mine would ever be injured the way I was. And none of it mattered. Not one bit
of it." She stared into Allison's eyes and forced herself to admit to
someone else what she had never until this moment fully admitted to herself.
"I was too frightened to be rational."
She hovered
on the brink of telling Allison why. Of telling her what she'd overheard her
own mother saying. Of admitting how deep that wound had cut, even though her
intellect had fiercely rejected the searing hurt. But she couldn't. Even now,
she couldn't expose that jagged scar. Not yet.
"If
that's the only way in which you reacted 'irrationally' after what happened to
you, then you're some sort of superwoman," Allison said dryly. "My
God, woman! Your life was destroyed. You've rebuilt a new one, a deeply
productive one, without ever surrendering. You're entitled to not be strong
about everything every instant. And you have the right to admit that it hurts,
and that things frighten you. Someday you need to sit down with Honor and let
her tell you about the things she carried around inside for far too long. The
things she didn't share even with me. They've left scars—I'm sure you've seen
some of them—and she'd be the very first person to say that everything that
happened to her was small beer compared to what happened to you.
"But I
think perhaps it's time you revisited that decision of yours. Perhaps enough
time's finally passed that you can think about it rationally . . . if
you want to."
"I
think . . . . I think, perhaps, I do," Emily said, very slowly, astonished
at the words coming out of her own mouth. And even more astonished to realize
how true they were.
"I
think I do," she repeated, "but that doesn't magically dispel the
things that frighten me."
"Maybe
not, but then again," Allison grinned suddenly, "that's my job."
"Your
job?" Emily looked at her, and Allison nodded.
"You
know what Honor's been through in terms of physical injury. Nothing that's
happened to her was as severe as what happened to you, but it was more than
enough to make her worry about passing her inability to regenerate on to her
children. Fortunately for her, her mother happens—if I may be pardoned for
blowing my own horn—to be one of the Star Kingdom's leading geneticists. I made
identifying the gene group which prevents her from regenerating a personal
project, and I found it years ago. The problem child is a dominant,
unfortunately, but it's not associated with the locked sequences of the
Meyerdahl modifications—if it were, Alfred wouldn't regenerate either, and he
does—so it's not automatically selected for at fertilization. Once I'd
determined that, I also determined that she carries it only on the chromosome
she received from her father, and I've done a scan on her child. As a result of
which, I was able to reassure her that she hasn't passed it along to him."
"Him?"
Despite her own whiplashing emotions, Emily fastened on the personal pronoun.
"Oh,
crap!" Allison shook her head, her expression suddenly disgusted.
"Forget you heard that," she commanded. "Honor doesn't want to
know yet. Which, if you'll pardon my saying so, is fairly silly. I
always wanted to know as soon as possible."
"Him,"
Emily repeated. Then she smiled. "Well, once Grayson gets over the fact
that he's illegitimate, they'll probably be pleased!"
"Bunch
of stuck-in-the-mud patriarchal male chauvinists, the lot of them. It pisses me
off to think how frigging delighted they're all going to be,"
Allison muttered, and Emily surprised herself with a genuine laugh.
"That's
better!" Allison approved with a smile. "But my point is that even
with Hamish and Honor's genetic material colliding as accidentally as it did in
this case, his Y-chromosome's done the trick quite neatly. Mother Nature didn't
even need my intervention."
"Not
in her case," Emily agreed, and Allison snorted.
"Oh,
for goodness sakes, Emily! This isn't the dark ages, you know. I haven't
looked at your chart yet, for obvious reasons, but I will be frankly astonished
if the problem is anywhere near as complicated as you seem to believe it is.
Since we already know Hamish's genotype is perfectly capable of regenerating,
and since we already know he and Honor can produce a child equally capable of
regenerating, it's probably as simple as selecting the sperm with the genes we
need. If it's not, then I feel quite certain I can repair the problem before
fertilization. In fact, I could probably repair it after fertilization,
although I'd hesitate to promise that without a careful examination of you
both."
"You
sound . . . remarkably confident," Emily said slowly.
"I
sound—?" Allison paused, looking at Emily with an expression of almost
comical surprise. Then she cleared her throat.
"Ah,
Emily. Although I haven't reviewed any of your files, I know you spent quite
some time on Beowulf after the accident. And I believe Dr. Kleinman is
Beowulf-trained. He graduated from Johns Hopkins, Beowulf, didn't he?"
"I
think so, yes."
"Then
it would be fair to say you've been exposed to the Beowulf medical
establishment in all its smug, not to say narcissistic, tradition-encrusted
glory?"
"To
some extent," Emily said, puzzled by the curious bite in Allison's tone.
"And
do you happen to know what my maiden name was?"
"Chou,
wasn't it?" Emily's puzzlement was, if anything, deeper than ever.
"Well,
yes. Except that if I'd stayed on Beowulf, I'd have been known by my entire maiden
name . . . whether I particularly wanted to be or not. Which, as it happens, I
didn't."
"Why
not?" Emily asked, when she paused.
"Because
my full family name is Benton-Ramirez y Chou," Allison said, and Emily's
eyes widened.
Of all the
medical "dynasties" of Beowulf, acknowledged throughout explored
space as the preeminent queen of the life-sciences, the Benton-Ramirez and Chou
families stood at the very pinnacle. They were Beowulf, with a
multi-generational commitment to the field of genetic medicine which stretched
back to well before Old Earth's Final War. George Benton and Sebastiana Ramirez
y Moyano had actually led the Beowulf teams to Old Earth to battle the hideous
consequences of the Final War's bioweapons, and Chou Keng-ju had led the bioethics
fight against Leonard Detweiler and the other "progressive eugenics"
advocates six centuries ago. Among the many jewels in the crown of their
families' achievements since was a leading role in the development of the
prolong process itself. And—
"Well,"
she said, mildly, after a moment, "at least I finally understand exactly
where Honor's rather . . . volcanic attitude towards the genetic slave trade
and Manpower comes from, don't I?"
"You
might say she imbibed it with her mother's milk," Allison agreed.
"Bad science, no doubt, but I did breast-feed, and having a direct
ancestor's signature on the Cherwell Convention didn't hurt, I suppose."
She smiled thinly. "My point, however, is that if I come across as
sounding just a bit breezily confident, I come by it honestly. I can't give you
an absolute, categorical assurance that you and Hamish could produce a
biological child who will regenerate. The probability that you couldn't,
especially with my intervention, is so vanishingly small I literally couldn't
quantify it, but it does exist. What I can guarantee you, however, is
that with my intervention you won't produce a child who can't regenerate."
She looked
straight into Emily's eyes again.
"So
tell me, Emily. With that guarantee, do you want a child of your own, or
not?"
* * *
"Mr.
Secretary, you have a com call from Colonel Nesbitt," Alicia Hampton said
from Arnold Giancola's display.
"Ah?"
Giancola gave her his best absent-minded smile, then shook himself visibly.
"I mean, by all means put it through, Alicia. Thank you."
"You're
welcome, Sir," she said with a slight, fond smile of her own, and her face
disappeared from his display. A moment later, Jean-Claude Nesbitt's face replaced
it.
"Good
afternoon, Mr. Secretary," he said courteously.
"Colonel,"
Giancola nodded. "What can I do for you this afternoon?"
"It
isn't really anything especially important, Sir. I'm just screening you to let
you know I'm about to begin the regular quarterly security review."
Giancola's expression never changed, but he felt his stomach muscles tense.
"I know it's a pain," Nesbitt continued, "but your personal
staff is going to have to be vetted again, as well. Under the circumstances, I
thought I'd give you a heads-up so we could try to avoid any scheduling
conflicts that might interfere with your planned workload."
"I
appreciate that, Colonel," Giancola said, and a particularly attentive
observer might have noticed that his eyes narrowed ever so slightly as they met
Nesbitt's on the display. "But if you're quite satisfied with your own
arrangements, I feel confident we could accommodate our schedule to yours. If
you'll contact Ms. Hampton when you're ready to begin, we'll be at your
disposal for you to proceed any time you're ready to begin."
"Thank
you, Mr. Secretary. I understand," Nesbitt said with a respectful nod.
"And I appreciate your readiness to cooperate."
"One
can never be too careful where security matters are concerned, Colonel,"
Giancola said seriously. "Was there anything else we needed to
discuss?"
"No,
Mr. Secretary. Thank you. I have everything I need."
"In
that case, Colonel, good day," Giancola said, and cut the circuit.
* * *
Yves
Grosclaude leaned back in the comfortable flight couch and wished his mind were
as comfortable as his body as his air car sliced through the night shrouded
mountains on autopilot.
None of
this was supposed to have happened. None of it. He'd agreed with
Giancola that it was time to take a firmer line with the Manties, and God knew
they'd certainly managed to stiffen that ninny Pritchart's spine! But who would
ever have expected her to do something like this? And now that she had,
what the hell did they do about it?
He frowned,
worrying at one thumbnail with his teeth, wondering how Giancola could
remain—or, at least, appear to remain—so unconcerned. He supposed that after
this long without detection, he should be feeling less worried, himself. After
all, if anyone was going to suspect something, certainly they should have done
so by now, right?
But it
didn't work that way. Whether anyone suspected now or not, eventually they
would, and there was no statute of limitations on treason.
He drew a
deep breath and forced his hand back down into his lap. There was nothing to do
about it right now, and if the war lasted long enough, and if Giancola played
his political cards astutely enough, it was entirely possible that President
Giancola would be in a position to quash any unfortunate investigations after
the fighting finally ended.
And if he
couldn't, at least Grosclaude had tucked away the vital evidence he could
undoubtedly trade to the prosecution for at least limited immunity.
That, he
knew, was all he could realistically do to disaster-proof his own position. In
the meantime, he'd just have to keep his head down and concentrate on being as
innocent and above board as possible. It wasn't easy, but he hoped this ski
trip would help. It ought to at least let him burn off some of his accumulated
nervous energy!
He chuckled
at the thought and made himself stretch and yawn, then settled more firmly into
the couch. His flight plan was just about to take him through the Arsenault
Gorge, one of the most spectacular mountain passes on Haven. It was a huge,
axe-blow of a chasm through the Blanchard Mountains, with sheer cliffs towering
vertically for as much as two hundred and fifty meters in some places. It was
quite a tourist attraction, and Grsoclaude himself loved it. He always
programmed his flight path to take him through it, despite the need to slow
down around its hairpin bends.
Now the
autopilot dipped the air car slightly, dropping a bit lower to give him a
better view, and he felt a familiar stir of enjoyment as the rocky,
tree-crowned cliffs loomed up on either side of his prow.
And at that
moment, something very peculiar happened.
Yves
Grosclaude felt something almost like a mental tickle. As if someone were
running a finger down his spine, except that it was behind his eyes somewhere.
He started to frown, but then the frown vanished into another expression
entirely.
He'd never
noticed the almost microscopic capsule which had somehow found its way into the
yogurt he'd enjoyed with his supper two nights ago. He hadn't been looking for
anything of the sort, never suspected anything like it was remotely possible.
Nor was it
. . . for the Republic's tech base. That capsule's contents had been well
beyond the capability of Haven's own scientists, and as the capsule itself
disintegrated in his digestive tract, submicroscopic virus-based nanotech had
infiltrated his bloodstream. They'd traveled to his brain, seeking very
specifically targeted sections of it, and then waited.
For this
specific moment.
Yves
Grosclaude jerked in his seat as the tiny invaders executed their programmed
instructions. They did no physical damage at all; they simply invaded his
body's "operating system" and overwrote it with instructions of their
own.
He watched
helplessly, screaming in the silence of his mind, as his hands switched off the
autopilot. They settled on the stick and throttle, and his eyes bulged in
silent horror as his right hand wrenched the stick suddenly to the right even
as his left rammed the throttle to the wall.
The vehicle
was still accelerating when it struck a vertical cliff face head-on at well
over eight hundred kilometers per hour.
"All
right, Kevin. What's all the mystery this time?"
President
Eloise Pritchart's striking, topaz-colored eyes tracked slowly from the FIA
director's face to that of the petite, dark-haired woman with him. Presidential
Security was never happy when she met alone with anyone, even in her private
office, out from under their protective oversight, although at least in this
case the person she was meeting with was their ultimate boss. Which, she
thought, had undoubtedly helped with Kevin's insistence that this meeting had
to be completely off the record. Her personal detachment had made no more than pro
forma protests before withdrawing and shutting down the various covert
surveillance systems which normally let them discreetly monitor while remaining
out of sight but ready to respond instantly. And Kevin's position meant they
probably really had turned them off this time, which meant she was enjoying a
novel sense of freedom for at least the next little bit.
Of course,
she was always more than a bit nervous about anything Kevin wanted kept
black.
"Thank
you for clearing the time for us," Usher said, and Pritchart's eyebrows
rose at his unwontedly formal—and somber—tone. "This, by the way," he
indicated her other visitor, "is Special Senior Inspector Danielle
Abrioux. Danny is one of my top troubleshooters."
"And
why am I seeing the two of you without the additional presence of the Attorney
General?" Pritchart leaned back in her comfortable chair. "If I
remember correctly, Denis is not simply your direct superior, but also a member
of my Cabinet."
"Yes,
he is," Usher agreed. "On the other hand, much as I like Denis, and
as much as I respect him, he's very much a connect-all-the-dots, follow
procedure kind of guy."
"Which
is why he's Attorney General, and why the wild cowboy, seat-of-the-pants
kind of guy works for him. Correct?"
"Granted.
In this case, however, I think you need to know about this before we decide
exactly how to bring him into it officially. His principles are just as
cast-in-battle-steel as Tom Theisman's. And in this particular instance, his
own dislikes and distrust might push him into a more . . . confrontational
stance than we can afford at this particular moment."
"Kevin,"
Pritchart said, with very little humor, "you're starting to really worry
me. What the hell is all this about?"
The woman
with him—Abrioux, Pritchart reminded herself—looked decidedly nervous as the
President glared at the FIA Director. Usher, however, only settled deeper into
his chair, herculean shoulders tensing as if under a massive weight.
"It's
about the diplomatic correspondence the Manties altered," he said.
"What
about it?"
"Actually,
what I ought to have said," Usher replied, "is that it's about the
diplomatic correspondence the Manties are alleged to have altered."
For an
instant, Pritchart felt only puzzled by his choice of words. Then an icy dagger
seemed to run down her spine.
"What
do you mean 'alleged'?" she demanded harshly. "I saw the originals. I
know they were altered."
"Oh,
they certainly were," Usher agreed grimly. "Unfortunately, I've begun
to have some serious questions about just who did the altering."
"My
God." Pritchart knew her face had gone white. "Please, Kevin. Please
don't tell me what it sounds like you're about to tell me."
"I'm
sorry, Eloise," he said gently. "At first, I thought it was just
because of how much I disliked Giancola. It seemed preposterous, even for him.
And, for that matter, it seemed outright impossible. But I couldn't shake the
suspicion. I kept picking at it. And a few weeks ago, I put Danny here on it,
very, very quietly. It's not only possible, I'm pretty damn sure it
happened."
"Sweet
Jesus." Pritchart stared at him, more flattened—more horrified—then she'd
been even by the knowledge that Oscar Saint-Just fully intended to have Javier
Giscard shot. In which case, he would inevitably have discovered just how she
had been covering for Javier for so long.
"How
could he possibly have done such a thing?" she asked finally. "Not why
did he do it—if he did—but how?"
"Assuming
the right accomplice in the right position, and assuming the sheer big brass
balls to try it in the first place, it really wouldn't have been all that
technically difficult to make the substitutions," Usher said. "I'd
pretty much worked out how he could have done it before I ever brought Danny
into it, and she's pretty much confirmed that it could have been—and almost
certainly was—done that way. She can give you the technical details, if you
want them. Basically, though, he could send out whatever version of your
agreed-upon diplomatic notes he wanted to. After all, he's Secretary of State.
And as long as the fellow playing mailman for him didn't blow the whistle on
them, there'd be no way for anyone at this end to know he'd departed from the
planned script. And we've also figured out how he could have had access to the
Manties' Foreign Office validation key, which would have let him change the incoming
correspondence, as well."
"That—"
Pritchart paused and drew a deep breath. "That doesn't sound good, Kevin.
Especially given how black you wanted this meeting. If you've figured all that
out, and you're not ready to seek an indictment or make open accusations, then
there's got to be a boot in the works somewhere. Right?"
"Right,"
he said grimly, and waved one hand at Abrioux. "Danny?" he invited.
"Madam
President," Abrioux said, her expression more than a little nervous,
"I wasn't too sure Kevin—the Director, I mean—hadn't stripped a gear when
he sprang all of this on me. I've known him a long time, though, and he is my
boss, so I had to take the possibility seriously. And the more I looked into
it, the more I realized it really could have been done exactly the way he'd
hypothesized. But the key element, as he and I both recognized from the
beginning, was that Giancola couldn't have acted alone, couldn't have done it
all by simply manipulating the electronic message traffic. He had to have at
least one flesh-and-blood accomplice. Someone who could cover for him at the
other end and conceal the true content of our actual outgoing correspondence
and the Manties' incoming traffic from anyone else in the Republic.
"And
as soon as we'd come to that conclusion, it was obvious who his accomplice—if
he'd had one—had to have been: Yves Grosclaude."
"Our
'Special Representative,'" Pritchart said, nodding her head grimly.
"Exactly."
Abrioux nodded back. "The fact that he had an accomplice was, frankly, the
one real chink I could see in his armor. I'm sure there has to be other
physical evidence, but we're up against the need to show probable cause before
we can go looking for it. If I could pull Grosclaude in and sweat him a little,
put a little pressure on him, he might give Giancola up. Or, he might at least
provide me with something concrete to lend at least some credence to the
rather preposterous scenario the Director had come up with. On the other hand,
I needed to approach him a bit cautiously, hopefully without Giancola figuring
out I was interested in him at all.
"Unfortunately,
either I wasn't cautious enough, or else Giancola's had his own plans for
Grosclaude all along."
"Meaning
what?" Pritchart demanded when she paused with a chagrined expression.
"Meaning
Mr. Grosclaude was killed in a single-air car accident four nights ago,"
Usher said flatly.
"Oh, shit,"
Pritchart said with soft yet deadly feeling. "An air car accident?"
"I
know. I know!" Usher shook his head. "It's like some sort of bad
joke, isn't it? After all the inconvenient people StateSec disappeared in
mysterious one-air car accidents, this is going to be just peachy keen when we
have to go public, isn't it?"
"Unless
we can prove it wasn't one," Pritchart said, eyes slitted in intense
thought. "Before, it was always the state claiming it had been an
accident. If we claim it wasn't an accident—and if we can prove it—we
might actually turn that around and use it in our favor."
"If
there is any way to turn this 'in our favor' you may have a point,"
Usher said. "Honestly, though, the more I've looked at this thing, the
less sure I've become there is such a way. And even if there is, I'm afraid
that so far it doesn't look as if we're going to be able to prove any such
thing."
"Why
not?"
"I've
tapped very quietly into the investigation of his death, Madam President,"
Abrioux replied for Usher. "I've kept my interest in it entirely black,
which has required calling in quite a few old markers. But the crash
investigation team has been through the wreckage of his air car—which, by the
way, was reduced to very small pieces—very, very carefully without finding any
indication of any sort of mechanical or electronic sabotage. The black boxes
came through more or less intact, and they all agree that for some unknown
reason, Grosclaude suddenly disengaged his autopilot, put the throttle right
through the gate, and flew straight into a near vertical cliff. He impacted at
a speed somewhere around Mach one."
"He
did what?" Pritchart sat up straight and frowned at the senior
inspector.
"There's
no question, Madam President. And there's also no explanation. That's one
reason the Director and I didn't come to you sooner; we kept hoping we'd find something
significantly bogus. But the weather was clear, visibility was good, and there
was no other traffic on or near his flight path at the time; the crash team's
pulled the air traffic satellite records to confirm that. There's no sign
anyone tampered with his vehicle in any way, and there's absolutely no
indication of any external factor which could have inspired him to do what he
did. At the moment, to be perfectly honest, the crash team is leaning towards
the theory that it was a suicide."
"Oh,
that's just wonderful!" Pritchart snarled, fear and the sudden cold
suspicion that she'd gone back to war because of a lie driving her into an
uncharacteristically savage fury. "So now we're not even claiming it was
an 'accident.' Now we're going to tell the galaxy our suspect fucking committed
suicide! That's going to give us a lot more credibility when we try to
pin anything on him!"
"I
suppose it's possible it really was suicide," Usher pointed out.
Pritchart glared at him, and he shrugged. "Just playing devil's advocate,
Eloise. But it really is possible, you know. An awful lot of people have been
killed since the shooting started again, and more are going to be killed,
whatever else happens. If he was involved in anything with Giancola, he might
well have been feeling a lot of guilt over all those deaths. Or, conversely, he
may have wanted to come forward but been afraid Giancola would eliminate him if
he tried. In that case, he might have seen this as his only way out."
"And
if you believe that fairy tale for a moment, I've got some bottom land I want
to sell you," Pritchart said caustically. "Just don't ask me what
it's on the bottom of."
"I
didn't say I believed it," Usher responded mildly. "I just said it's
possible, and it is."
"Bullshit,"
Pritchart said bluntly. "Much as I'd like to believe you're completely off
the beam with this one, Kevin, you're not. God knows it would be better if you
were, but Grosclaude's death—especially this way, at this time—is just too
damned coincidental. And too damned convenient for Giancola. No." She
shook her head. "I don't know how he did it, but somehow he got to
Grosclaude."
"So
you believe he did alter the correspondence?"
"I
don't want to," she admitted heavily, "but you said it would take big
brass balls. Well, that's one thing Arnold has. And he's not overly burdened
with scruples, either. Certainly not burdened enough to offset his ambition. I
doubt he wanted it to go this far, but . . . ."
She shook
her head again.
"There
is one odd thing about Grosclaude's death, Madam President," Abrioux said
after a moment.
The
President's topaz eyes swung back to the senior inspector, and she twitched the
fingers of one hand in a "tell me" gesture.
"Given
the . . . peculiar circumstances of the 'accident,'" Abrioux said,
"the crash team's lead investigator requested a complete toxicity screen
and blood workup as part of the autopsy. Given the nature of the impact, the
doctors didn't have a whole lot to work with, you understand. There was more
than enough to make a genetic identification of the remains they could find,
but nowhere near what they needed for any sort of regular autopsy.
"The
medical examiner, however, did note that there appeared to be 'unidentifiable
organic traces and DNA markers' in one of the blood samples."
"Meaning
what?" Pritchart's expression was intent.
"Meaning
we don't know what the hell what," Usher replied. "When he says
'unidentifiable,' that's exactly what he means. All the organic elements he's
picked up on could be explained away by a simple case of the flu, except that
there's no indication of it in any of the other samples. If you really want to
wade through his report, I can get you a copy of it, but I doubt it will mean
anything more to you than it did to me. The key element, though, seems to be
the DNA he turned up. There's been some speculation in Solarian medical
literature for a while now about the possibility of viral nanotech."
"Are
they insane?" Pritchart demanded incredulously. "Didn't those
lunatics learn anything from the Final War?"
"I
don't know. It's not my field, by two or three light-years. But apparently the
people doing the speculating believe it should be at least theoretically
possible to control their viruses and prevent unwanted mutations. After all,
we've managed the same sort of thing with nanotech for centuries now."
"Because
the damned things don't have DNA and don't reproduce even in medical
applications!" Pritchart said snappishly.
"I
didn't say I thought it was a good idea, Eloise," Usher said. "I just
said there's been some Solly speculation about the possibilities. As far as I'm
aware, and I've done some judicious research on the subject since Danny brought
me the blood workup results, it's all purely theoretical at the moment. And
even if the Sollies can do it, there's no one here in the Republic who
could. So assuming these highly ambiguous results—found, I remind you, in only
one of the blood samples—mean Grosclaude was murdered using that sort of
technology, where the hell did Giancola get access to it?"
"You're
just full of sunshine this evening, aren't you?"
"If a
shit storm's on the horizon, it's good to know far enough ahead you can at
least bring along an umbrella," Usher said philosophically, and she
grimaced at him. Then she sat thinking hard for several endless seconds.
"All
right, Kevin," she said finally. "You've had longer to think about
this than I have, and I doubt very much, knowing you, that you asked for this
meeting without at least some idea of how we might proceed."
"As I
see it," Usher said after a moment, "there are four basic dimensions
to this problem. First, there's the war itself and just why in hell we're
fighting the damned thing. Second, there's the constitutional implications of
treason on this level by a Cabinet secretary. Not to mention the fact that I'm
not even certain what he did—assuming we're right, and he did actually do
it—falls under the Constitution's definition of 'treason' in the first place.
Abuse of office, conspiracy, malfeasance, high crimes and misdemeanors; I'm
sure we could get him on any of those. But treason is a rather specific crime.
Third, after the constitutional aspects, there are the purely political ones.
Not in terms of interstellar diplomacy and wars, but in terms of whether or not
our system is strong enough yet to survive something like this. And, of course,
the question of just how effective your administration can be if it turns out
one of your own Cabinet secretaries manipulated us into going to war. And,
fourth, there's the question of just how we proceed with this investigation,
bearing all those other aspects of this particular can of worms in mind."
He looked
at the President, one eyebrow raised, and she nodded in glum agreement with his
analysis.
"I'm
not in any sort of position to comment on the first point," he said then.
"That's your bailiwick—yours and Admiral Theisman's. On the constitutional
implications, Denis would probably be a much better authority than me. My gut
reaction is that the Constitution probably gives us the scope we need to carry
out an investigation and, if it turns out the bastard did it, to bring the
hammer of God down on him with a vengeance. However, that brings us to the
political aspects. Specifically, I'm worried as hell that we haven't had the
Constitution back up and running long enough to weather this kind of
crisis."
He met the
President's eyes, his strong-featured face as grim as she recalled ever having
seen it.
"I've
played fast and loose around the margins more than once, Eloise. You know that.
In fact, I'm pretty sure it's one of the reasons you wanted me for this job.
But I really do believe in the Constitution. I believe the only cure, the only
preventative, for the sorts of outright insanity the Republic's been prey to is
a powerful consensus on the absolute sanctity of the rule of law. If we pursue
this, then it's more than possible, in my estimation, that we could wind up
pulling the pillars of the temple down on our own heads.
"If
we're going to accuse Arnold Giancola of what I'm almost certain he did, we've
got to have proof. Not suspicions, however profound. Not hypotheses, however
convincing. Proof. Without that, he and his partisans—and he has a lot
of them, as we all know—are going to scream we're simply pulling a StateSec.
We're concocting ludicrous charges against a political adversary as a pretext
for purging your opposition. Anyone who actually knows you would realize how
preposterous that was, but by the time the spin masters on both sides get done
with it, no one outside your immediate circle is going to be sure of that.
Which means we might just find Giancola and his supporters seeking to topple
your administration on the basis that they're the ones protecting the
Constitution from abuse and manipulation. And if he can generate enough
confusion, drum up enough support, the consequences for everything we've been
trying to accomplish could be very, very ugly."
"It's
probably even worse than you're thinking," Pritchart said unhappily.
"This war's incredibly popular at the moment. I hadn't realized how much
public opinion wants to get our own back against the Manties for the way they
kicked our ass in the last round. And at the moment, there's absolutely no
question in Congress that the Manties manipulated the diplomatic
exchanges. Why should there be? I personally certified that there wasn't!
"So
what happens if I suddenly go before Congress and announce that we're the
guilty parties after all? Suppose I tell the Senate's Foreign Affairs Committee
we went back to war—with Congress's enthusiastic support—on the basis of a lie
told not by the Manties, but by our own Secretary of State?"
"I
have absolutely no idea," Usher admitted frankly. Abrioux shook her head,
as well. Unlike Usher, however, her expression was that of someone who was
entirely certain she was involved with something way, way above her pay grade.
"The
first thing that's going to happen," Pritchart told him with absolute
certainty, "is that they're going to refuse to believe it. Even with the
sort of proof you've already pointed out we need, it would take time—probably
quite a bit of it—to convince a majority of Congress of what really happened.
And that assumes a majority of Congress is willing to be open-minded enough to
even entertain the possibility. Don't forget how many friends Arnold has over
there.
"But
even if Congress buys our version of it, we're winning the damned war.
At least, that's the way it looks right now, and Congress as a whole is
absolutely convinced we are. So even if it turns out the shooting started
because one of our own cabinet officers deliberately manipulated, falsified,
and forged diplomatic notes, there's going to be a sizable number of senators
and representatives who don't care. What they're going to see is that this
time it's the Manties on the ropes, and there's no way in hell they're
going to be willing for us to drop an e-mail to Elizabeth Winton saying 'Oops.
Sorry about the misunderstanding. Let's all make nice now.' Especially not if
that means—as it damned well ought to, if Arnold's done what you—we—think
he has—that the Republic publicly acknowledges its war guilt. And if we make
what we believe happened public knowledge, we've got to acknowledge our
guilt if we're ever going to convince the rest of the galaxy we're not still
the People's Republic of Haven."
Her
beautiful face was drawn, her topaz eyes shadowed, and Usher nodded slowly.
"I
knew it was going to be a shit bucket, whatever happened," he said.
"I didn't follow through to realize just how bad it really would be,
though."
"It's
not your job to worry about the political consequences. It's mine. And if you
can come up with concrete proof—proof I can take in front of a judge, proof I
could lay in front of an interstellar arbitration panel, or use to convince
even our Congress—then I've got no option but to make that proof public and try
to survive whatever the political, diplomatic, and constitutional consequences
may be. If you give me that proof, then I will by God do it, too."
"Eloise—"
"No,
Kevin. This isn't something we can avoid, or dance around. We can't afford to
open it up in public at all without proof. But if that proof exists, we can't
afford not to open it up. Sooner or later, if it really happened, and if
there's proof it did, then it's going to become public knowledge whatever we
do. And I won't—I can't—let the Constitution prove to be something built
on foundations of sand. If we're ever going to put the old power games behind
us once and for all, then you're right, it has to be done on the basis of the
rule of law. And that means we have to follow the law wherever it leads us,
whether we want to go there or not."
"All
right, Madam President," Usher said with unusual formality, his eyes dark
with mingled concern and respect. "That's your call. Whatever you decide,
however you decide to handle it, you know I'll back your decision."
"Yes,
I do," she said softly, topaz eyes softening.
"But
that brings us to the final consideration. And, frankly, to the reason I did an
end run around Denis for this meeting. You say we need proof. I don't know for
a fact we're going to be able to find it, even if I'm a hundred percent correct
in my suspicions. But before I can find it, if it exists at all, we need to
decide how I'm going to go about looking for it. Under a strict
interpretation of the law, I need to inform the Attorney General of my
suspicions. He, in turn, needs to inform you, and you need to inform the
Foreign Affairs Committees of both houses, at the very least, because of their
oversight role. And there are probably at least a couple of other committees
which also ought to be brought on-line. Plus, an official investigation ought
to be opened by the Attorney General, through the FIA, under a finding of
probable cause from a magistrate. Unfortunately, all of that requires bringing
dozens, almost certainly hundreds, of other people into the investigation.
"If we
do that, it's going to leak. At the very least, word of it will get to Giancola
from one of his friends. More probably, it'll hit the info boards within a
matter of hours. In which case—"
He
shrugged, and Pritchart bit her lip and nodded.
"The
worst of all worlds," she acknowledged. "Especially if Arnold decides
his best defense is to mount a strong offense before the investigation really
gets rolling."
"And
particularly if he decides not to restrict himself to due process when he
does," Usher pointed out.
"Absolutely."
She drummed
nervously on her desktop with her fingertips, then shook herself.
"I
notice you said all of that was what would follow from a strict interpretation
of the law. I'm almost afraid to ask this. No, I am afraid to ask
it." She grimaced. "Unfortunately, I don't have much of an option.
So, tell me, Kevin. Just how un-strict do you suggest we be?"
"Believe
it or not, Eloise, I wish to hell we could do this one one hundred percent by
The Book. If we don't, and if the wheels come off, it's going to be at least as
bad as anything you've just described. In fact, it's probably going to be
worse.
"Even
so," he continued implacably, "I don't see any way we can. You're
going to have to decide who else you can trust to bring in on this. I think
you're going to have to tell Theisman, and God knows how he's going to
react. And even though I'm the one who deliberately cut him out of the loop for
this meeting, I really want to bring Denis in on it. Not only does he have both
a right and a constitutional responsibility to know what we're doing, but if he
doesn't know, we're a lot more likely to have someone step on his own
reproductive equipment if I'm running some sort of clandestine op he doesn't
know about. Especially if he finds out I'm up to something without
knowing what that 'something' is.
"But
after you've decided who else needs to know, everything else has to be blacker
than black until we either have the proof in hand or know with absolute
certainty where that proof is and how to get our hands on it. I don't like it,
it's dangerous, but it's the least dangerous option I see under the
circumstances."
"I
wish you were wrong. Dear God, how I wish you were wrong."
Pritchart
closed her eyes for a moment, rubbing her forehead, then exhaled noisily.
"Unfortunately,
you aren't," she said. "All right. I hereby authorize you to pursue
your black investigation. But be very, very careful, Kevin. This one could
destroy everything you and I—and Tom Theisman and Javier—have fought for for
decades. I'll have to think long and hard about who else to tell, and how, but
at least if someone has to be finding our way through the minefield, I'm glad it's
you."
"Gee,
thanks." Usher made a face, and the President chuckled. There wasn't much
humor in the sound, but perhaps it was at least a beginning.
"How
are you going to start?" she asked.
"With
Danny here." Usher nodded at the senior inspector. "She's already on
board, and she's already black. I'll just keep her that way. However," he
looked Pritchart straight in the eyes, "before she makes a single
additional move, I want a presidential pardon, signed and in her hand, for any
laws she happens to break doing what we're asking her to do."
"You
always were loyal to your people in the Resistance," Pritchart said with a
smile, and looked at Abrioux. "As a matter of fact, Inspector Abrioux, so
was I." She looked back at Kevin. "The senior inspector will have her
letter of pardon within the hour," she promised.
"Good.
And as far as where we begin, Danny is going to have to put together her own
team, one we can cut completely out of normal Agency operations. I think she's
already got the people she wants in mind, and I'm pretty sure I can do a little
creative paperwork on their assignments to make them available to her. And once
that's out of the way, we'll probably start by putting the entire life of the
late Yves Grosclaude under an electron microscope. If he really was Giancola's
accomplice, and the fact that he's dead would seem to suggest very strongly
that he was, then he may have been careless and left us something. For that
matter, he may have had an insurance file stashed away somewhere. We're not
going to get any legal search warrants without proving probable cause, which
we've just agreed we can't do without going public, but if Danny and her people
can figure out where what we need is, I can probably finagle some
semi-plausible way to get possession of it in a way which won't irreparably
taint it in an evidentiary sense."
Pritchart's
nostrils flared, and he shrugged again.
"I'm
going to have to do some dancing in the shadows to make this one work, Eloise.
You know I am."
"Then
I probably need a pardon for you, too," she said.
"No,
you specifically don't need a pardon for me," he disagreed.
"I'm the cutout. The rogue, working without any authorization from you
because of my personal antipathy for Secretary Giancola."
"Kevin—"
she began in automatic protest, but he shook his head.
"You've
got to have deniability on this one," he said flatly. "If news of
what we're doing leaks and we haven't found the proof we need, you're going to
need someone to throw off the sleigh. If you don't have it, the consequences
are going to be worse than our having gone public from the get-go would have
been. And I'm the only logical candidate."
She looked
at him, seeing her fellow revolutionary, her longtime friend and sometime
lover, and she wanted desperately to disagree with him. She wanted it as badly
as she'd ever wanted anything in her life. But—
"You're
right," President Eloise Pritchart said. She hesitated only a heartbeat
longer, then nodded sharply.
"Do
it," she said.
"Well,
Chief," Captain Scotty Tremain said, "what do you think?"
"Me,
Sir?" Chief Warrant Officer Sir Horace Harkness shook his head. "I
think the rest of the Navy got itself reamed a new one while we were off at
Marsh. And I think they expect us to do something about it now."
"Chief,
that is so cynical of you." Captain Tremain shook his head with a
lopsided smile.
"No,
Sir. Not cynical, just experienced. Look at it. Everywhere we've been with the
Old Lady, we've kicked ass and taken names. And the minute those assholes
working for High Ridge send us off to the back of beyond, what happens? And who
do they always send in to do the dirtiest jobs after it all hits the fan? The
Old Lady. And us, of course," Harkness added with becoming modesty.
Tremain's
smile grew wider, but he really couldn't argue with Harkness' analysis. And
everything he'd seen so far, especially in the classified situation reports and
ONI analyses to which his rank allowed him access, suggested things were even
worse than the warrant officer knew.
"I'm
sure Duchess Harrington is vastly relieved to know you're along, Chief,"
he said. "In the meantime, we've got an entire squadron of carriers
waiting for us to whip their LAC groups into shape. Now, Her Grace hasn't seen
fit to tell me exactly what we're going to be doing, but from the force
mix I've seen and a few things Admiral Truman's let drop, it's not going to be
picketing the approaches to the home system. So I was thinking it's time you
and I spent a few productive afternoons thinking up particularly evil training
scenarios for those poor souls entrusted to our care."
"Actually,
Sir," Harkness said with a grin of his own, "I've already been giving
some thought to that. You want to get Lieutenant Chernitskaya in on this?"
"Of
course I do. She's our tac officer, after all. And it distresses me to see such
innocence and lack of guile in an officer of her seniority and native talent.
It's time we began initiating her into the true deviousness of our
profession."
"Officers
really have a way with words, don't they, Sir?"
"We
try, Chief. We try."
* * *
"So
you're fairly satisfied with the Cutworm target list, Ma'am?"
"As
satisfied as I can be, Andrea," Honor agreed, sitting back from the table
and wiping her lips on a napkin. The scattered remains of lunch lay on the
table between her, Jaruwalski, Brigham, Alice Truman, and Samuel Miklós, and
she looked up with a smile as James MacGuiness refilled her cocoa mug and
handed Nimitz a fresh stick of celery.
"I
don't like spreading our forces this thinly," she continued more
seriously, looking back at her subordinates as MacGuiness silently withdrew
from the dining cabin of Imperator's enormous admiral's quarters.
"But we've got to get this op moving. We've been sitting here for
over three weeks since we finally activated the command, and we still
don't have our entire assigned order of battle. Part of me wants to go right on
waiting until we do, so we'd have the strength to hit better defended targets,
but we can't. And given the pressure to move, it's probably as good a
distribution as we could hope to come up with."
"That's
true enough, Honor," Truman agreed, "although I don't think I'm any
crazier than you are over the notion of splitting up into such small penny
packets. On the other hand, we ought to catch them fairly unprepared."
"I
know." Honor sipped cocoa, letting her mind run back over the framework of
the operation which had been assigned the randomly generated codename of
"Cutworm." It was a silly name, but no sillier than "Operation
Buttercup" had been. And unlike some navies—including, apparently, the
Havenite fleet, upon occasion—the Royal Manticoran Navy had a pretty good track
record for selecting operational designators which didn't give clues as to what
those operations were intended to do.
"To be
honest," she said finally, lowering her mug, "I think part of what
I'm suffering from is opening-night jitters. But all of us need to remember
that Thomas Theisman and Lester Tourville, at least, have frighteningly steep
learning curves. The fact that we're almost certain to get away with it the
first time around is really, really going to . . . irritate them. Which means
they're going to devote some serious effort to figuring out what to do about us
before we come calling the next time."
"Agreed,
Your Grace," Miklós said. "Still, their options are going to be
constrained by the availability of forces, unless they do exactly what we want
them to do in the first place, and divert rear area security detachments from
their frontline formations. In which case, we'll have achieved our primary
objective."
"Which
will no doubt be very satisfying to our next of kin," Truman observed
dryly, and a chuckle ran around the table.
"All
right," Honor said, sitting a bit more upright in her chair, "given
the target list Andrea and Mercedes have come up with, how soon do you
two—" she looked at Truman and Miklós "—think we can be ready to
move."
"That
depends partly on how ready the screen and Alistair are," Truman, as the
senior of the two vice admirals, replied after a moment. "Speaking purely
for the carriers, I think . . . another week. Miklós?"
She glanced
at the other CLAC squadron commander and cocked one eyebrow.
"About
that," he agreed. "We could go sooner if Unicorn and Sprite
had gotten here on schedule. But—"
He
shrugged, and everyone at the table understood his wry expression perfectly.
"They're
not really fully up to standard yet, but they're coming along well. I'd be
happier with more time for exercises, of course. Any flag officer always is.
But, to be perfectly honest, the way we're breaking the formations up pretty
much precludes the need for training above the divisional level. And we're
hitting them deep enough we'll have another nine days to drill en route."
"That's
what I was thinking." Truman nodded. "And on that basis, I think
we're in pretty good shape. But if you don't mind, Sam, I've got some training
scenarios I'd like to upload to your carriers, as well." Miklós looked
faintly curious, and she gave him a rather nasty grin. "It would appear
our good Captain Tremain has pretty accurately deduced what we're going to be
doing. He and Chief Harkness have put together some simulator packages built
around individual LAC groups."
"Scotty
and Harkness?" Brigham laughed. "Why do I find that particular combination
of authors just a bit ominous, Ma'am?"
"Because
you know them?" Honor suggested.
"Probably,"
Truman agreed. "On the other hand, Lieutenant Chernitskaya, Scotty's tac
officer seems to have made quite a few contributions of her own. I think you'd
like her, Honor. She's . . . devious."
"Chernitskaya?"
Jaruwalski repeated. "Any relation to Admiral Chernitsky?"
"His
granddaughter," Truman said.
"Viktor
Chernitsky?" Honor asked.
"Yes.
Did you know him?"
"We
only met once, after he'd retired. Admiral Courvoisier once told me, though,
that he thought Viktor Chernitsky might have been the greatest strategist he'd
ever known. He always said it was a great pity Chernitsky was too old for
prolong by the time it got to the Star Kingdom."
"I
don't know about strategy, but if there's a gene for sneaky tactics, I
think he passed that one on," Truman said.
"I'm
always looking for new sims," Miklós said. "Mind telling me what's so
special about these, though?"
"Mostly
the op force. The bad guys in these simulations are about as sneaky as they
get, and Scotty and his minions have consistently integrated ONI's most
pessimistic assumptions about the Peeps' current hardware, as well.
Somewhere—" Truman smiled at Honor "—he seems to have come up with
the notion that the best simulations put you up against enemies who are better
than anyone you're actually likely to meet."
"Makes
sense to me," Miklós said. "But you said it was mainly the op
force?"
"The
other part is that Scotty seems to have visualized what we're going to be doing
more clearly than most of the other COLACs. His sims are almost all built
around raids and how the bad guys might respond. No one's given him any
official briefings all the others didn't get, but he's clearly figured out what
these operations are going to entail."
"Then
by all means let's get them as widely distributed as we can," Honor
decided.
"Yes,
Ma'am," Jaruwalski acknowledged, making a note in her memo pad.
"And
while she's doing that, Mercedes," Honor decided, "you and I are
going to hop one of the shuttle flights back to Manticore. We can make the
round-trip in thirty-six hours, even allowing for time at the Admiralty, and I
want to touch base with Sir Thomas one last time before we actually kick
off."
"Of
course, Your Grace," Mercedes murmured, and Honor tasted her chief of
staff's carefully concealed fond amusement. Obviously, Mercedes realized she
was also looking forward to "touching base" with Hamish Alexander, as
well as his First Space Lord. While Brigham clearly continued to nurse some
serious reservations about the wisdom of the entire affair—Honor managed not to
wince at her own unintentional double entendre—she'd apparently come to
the conclusion that it had been good for Honor, at least in a personal sense.
On the
other hand, she didn't know about certain rapidly approaching consequences of
their relationship.
"While
we're there," Honor continued serenely, "I'll inform Sir Thomas that,
barring any unforeseen eventualities, we'll be launching Operation Cutworm in
approximately seven days from now."
* * *
"All
of that sounds excellent, Honor," Sir Thomas Caparelli said. He was tipped
back in his chair behind the desk in his Admiralty House office, where Honor
and Mercedes Brigham had just finished a final briefing on Cutworm.
"I'm
sorry it's taken us so long to get organized, Sir Thomas," Honor said.
"Not
your fault." He shook his head quickly. "After episodes like that
fiasco in Zanzibar, and the pressure of the Alizon raid, we've been forced to
do more redeploying of assets than anyone here at the Admiralty ever wanted to.
The delays in building up your order of battle have been entirely our fault,
not yours."
"I
know. But at the same time, I also know how badly we need to do something to
keep them from launching more attacks like the one on Zanzibar."
"We
do. But you were absolutely right when you pointed out that attacking in
insufficient strength would be worse than useless." He sighed. "I
just wish it didn't feel so much like 'insufficient strength' is all we've
got."
"We'll
just have to maximize the edges we have, " Honor replied. She glanced at
Brigham for a moment, then went on. "Mercedes and I haven't mentioned
anything about the new targeting systems in our staff sessions, Sir Thomas. We
don't like to think about losing people or having them captured, but it can
happen, and we decided to restrict that information as tightly as possible. But
the last time I spoke to Commander Hennessy, he indicated that Admiral
Hemphill's people were planning an all up test over in Gryphon space. Do we
have the test results yet?"
"Yes,
we do." Caparelli nodded. "I've only seen the preliminary report so
far, not the details, but I understand it looked promising. Very promising. No
one's talking about deploying it tomorrow, but it's beginning to look like it
should be available, at least in small numbers, sometime in the next three to
four months."
"That
quickly?" Honor smiled. "If it lives up to Hennessy's billing, the
Havenites are going to hate that. May I also ask how we're coming on the
Andermani refits?"
"That's
a bit less cheerful," Caparelli replied. "It's not coming along as
well as I'd hoped, nor as badly as I'd feared. It's going to take at least a
few weeks more than Admiral Hemphill's original projections suggested to get
their pod-layers refitted with our old-style MDMs. The good news is that we'll
probably get a bigger 'python lump' of them delivered in a single shot. Of
course," he grimaced, "Silesia's drawing a lot of the Andies'
attention just now. Ours, too, for that matter."
"I
haven't been following the reports on Silesia as closely as I should
have," Honor admitted. "Still, the last I heard, things seems to be
going fairly well."
"Compared
to the cesspool the Confederacy used to be? Certainly. Compared to any half-way
honestly governed section of the galaxy, though, it's entirely too interesting
for my taste. Admiral Sarnow has his hands full, believe me."
"What
do you mean?" Honor asked, just a trifle anxiously. Mark Sarnow was an old
friend, and she would have thought he was an almost perfect choice for the new
Silesia Station's CO.
"Oh,
it's nothing he isn't going to be able to deal with eventually," Caparelli
said reassuringly. "But some of the old Silesian administrators obviously
didn't really believe us when we told them it wasn't going to go right on being
business as usual. And although most of the appointive system governors were
simply retired as part of the annexation deal, almost a quarter of the
governors were 'freely elected' by their citizens."
"Trust
me, Sir Thomas," Honor said dryly, "there was nothing 'free' about an
old-style Silesian election. The winning candidate paid cash on the barrel head
for every one of those votes."
"I
know, I know. But we can't simply go in and depose elected governors, however
they got themselves elected in the first place, without excellent justifying
cause. Some of them are stupid enough to think that will let them get away with
running things the old way, and, unfortunately, several of the stupid variety
had their local Confederacy Navy command structure firmly in their pockets
under the previous regime. There's been a lot of passive resistance to Admiral
Sarnow's instructions to decommission so many of their older units, obsolescent
pieces of junk or not. And there's been even more resistance and obstructionism
to his policy of completely reshuffling the star systems' command staffs. He's
made a couple of salutary examples which seem to be convincing all but the most
brain-dead we mean business, but unfortunately, we can't account for almost
thirty percent of the Confeds' official ship list."
"Thirty
percent, Sir?" Surprise startled the question out of Mercedes Brigham,
despite her relative lack of seniority, and Caparelli chuckled with very little
humor.
"It's
nowhere near as bad as that sounds, Commodore," he reassured her. "At
least half—more probably two-thirds—of the ships we can't account for were long
gone before we ever came along. Hell, one of the more audacious system
governors and his local naval commander were listing an entire squadron of
battlecruisers—eight ships, and the next best thing to twenty thousand
personnel—as present on active duty when they didn't even exist! The two of
them, and maybe a half dozen other officers they needed to maintain the
charade, were pocketing the nonexistent crews' salaries, not to mention every
penny that was supposedly being spent on ammunition, reactor mass, maintenance,
etc."
He shook
his head, obviously bemused by anything which could operate on that sort of
basis and still call itself a "navy."
"Still,"
he continued after a moment, his voice a bit bleaker, "some of those ships
really did disappear, crew and all. I suspect that more than a few of the ones
that did were already doing a little freelance piracy on the side, and I'm
quite certain a lot of them think they can get away with doing it full-time,
given how distracted we are by the Peeps. Which means, of course, that the very
ship types Sarnow needs to chase them down are also the ones Eighth Fleet
needs for operations like Cutworm. And then, of course, there's always
Talbott."
"Are
the reports about terrorist operations accurate, Sir?" Honor asked
quietly.
"I
think they've probably been sensationalized a bit by the media, and so far
they're highly localized, but, yes. There've been some ugly incidents,
especially in the Split System. Admiral Khumalo isn't exactly the sharpest
stylus in the box, either, I'm afraid. Not a bad administrator, under most
circumstances, but not really the right man to have on the spot when there's
blood in the streets. Fortunately, Baroness Medusa is quite the opposite."
"I
remember her from Basilisk," Honor agreed with a nod.
"Experience
dealing with occasionally murderous aborigines is probably standing her in
pretty good stead just at the moment," Caparelli said with an alum-tart
smile. "Still, whatever I may think of Khumalo, it's hard to fault him for
the way he keeps screaming for more ships. His area of responsibility's
actually considerably larger than Sarnow's, and he's spread awfully thin.
Unfortunately, there's only so much butter for our bread. We've had to send him
at least a few modern ships, but overall, he's just going to have to make do
with what he has. And we're just going to have to hope the situation
there doesn't get any worse."
Honor
nodded again. That seemed to describe the only thing they could hope for in
quite a few places, at the moment, she reflected.
"Well,
Sir Thomas," she said after a moment, climbing out of her chair and
lifting Nimitz onto her shoulder, "we'll just have to do what we can to
reduce pressure here closer to home."
"Yes,
we will." He rose behind his desk. "And at least it looks like you've
got a good command team to do the reducing with."
"That
I do. If we don't manage to pull it off, it's not going to be their fault."
* * *
Late
afternoon sunlight lay heavy and golden on the emerald green lawns of White
Haven as Honor's armored limousine settled on the parking apron. The sting
ships lifted away, and she climbed out of the car and stood for a moment,
filling her lungs with the crisp northern air while her eyes devoured the
towering, ancient trees.
Breeze
moved through the swaying branches and plucked at her hair with tiny, gentle
hands, and a deep, unabashedly sensual pleasure seemed to purr in her bones and
muscles. Part of it was the reaction she always had after spending time on
shipboard. The artificiality of her normal working environment was an
inescapable fact of her life, but she'd been born and raised in the wilderness
of Sphinx. She was as much a child of mountain forests and the vibrant,
sometimes wild energy of sailboats on Sphinx's deep, cold oceans, as an officer
of the Queen's Navy. It was an odd, sometimes painful, dichotomy which made her
appreciate both her worlds even more deeply.
Yet there
was more to it than that this time. She felt Nimitz at the back of her mind,
savoring her sense of . . . content. That was the word, she decided, reaching
up to rub the 'cat's ears gently. In the deepest sense of the word,
"home," for her, had always been her parents' house on Sphinx. The
house Stephanie Harrington's parents had built so many centuries before, which
had sheltered so many generations of her family. Harrington House on Grayson
was also "home" these days, in another sense, of course. And she
supposed her Manticoran mansion on Jason Bay was, too, although somehow it
still seemed more her "house" than truly home. Perhaps that was why
she'd gone along with MacGuiness and Miranda—and her mother—when they insisted
on rechristening that "Harrington House" as simply "the Bay
House" to distinguish it from her home on Grayson.
But this,
she thought, letting the quiet sounds of stirring wind, birds, and the musical
sounds of flowing water sweep through her, this had also become home.
Certainly more than Jason Bay. More even than Harrington House on Grayson.
Possibly as much so as the house in which she'd quite literally been born. Not
because of the welcoming tranquility of the grounds, the sense of being
welcomed and enveloped by the ancient house and its lovingly maintained
grounds, although she certainly felt that, as well. But what made this truly
home were the people who lived here.
Her
three-man detail fell into formation about her even here as she headed up the
graveled path. The door opened as they approached, and her heart leapt as
Hamish Alexander stepped out of it. Nimitz's purr buzzed in her ear, rich with
loving amusement as he tasted and shared her brilliant flash of joy, and then a
float chair drifted smoothly and silently out of the door behind Hamish.
Samantha
lay curled up on Emily's chest like a long, sinuous question mark, her chin
resting on Emily's right shoulder, and Nimitz's purr abruptly redoubled. Honor
laughed, but she couldn't really fault his reaction. Not when her own sense of
homecoming had just redoubled, as well.
"Welcome
home," Emily said softly, almost as if she'd been reading Honor's mind, as
Honor climbed the steps.
"I
can't believe how good it feels to be here," Honor replied, and then her
eyes widened in surprise as Hamish put his arms around her. She stiffened for
just an instant, in startlement, not resistance, looking over his shoulder at
Emily. They had always been so careful to never openly embrace one another in
front of her armsmen or the White Haven staff. In front of anyone,
actually. And perhaps especially, by unspoken agreement, in front of Emily.
But as
Honor looked at Emily, tasting her emotions, she realized they needn't have
worried. There was still that thread of bittersweetness, that descant of
sorrowful regret for all Emily had lost, but there was also a sense of intense
. . . satisfaction. A welcoming happiness that echoed Hamish's own with a joy
all Emily's own.
Honor's
stiffness vanished. Her eyes pickled, and she let her cheek rest on Hamish's
broad shoulder, hugging him with her left arm while she reached her right hand
past him to Emily.
"It
ought to feel good here," Emily said gently. "It's where you
belong."
* * *
Honor
looked narrowly back and forth between Hamish and Emily as they escorted her
into the house. Now that the initial emotional high of homecoming had started
to ebb just a bit, she realized there was something else going on under the
surface of their emotions.
Nimitz
sensed it, too. He had leapt lightly from Honor's shoulder to Emily's float
chair, joining Samantha, but now he looked up at his person, and she tasted his
own curiosity.
They're up
to something, she thought. They've got
some sort of surprise in store for me.
She started
to say something, then stopped. Whatever they had in mind, they were obviously
looking forward to it with anticipation, and she wasn't about to do anything to
spoil their surprise. And it was a surprise when they walked into
Emily's atrium and found both her parents waiting for them.
"Mother?
Daddy?" Honor stopped dead in the doorway when she saw them. "What are
you doing here?"
"Always
the diplomat," Allison Harrington said mournfully, shaking her head.
"No soft soap from this girl. Brisk, business-like, and straight to the
point. Always makes you feel so welcome, doesn't she Alfred?"
"I
think someone needs a spanking," her husband said tranquilly. "And
not our daughter."
"Ooooooh!
Promise?" Allison demanded, smiling at him wickedly.
"Mother!"
Honor protested with a laugh.
"What?"
Allison asked innocently.
"Filial
piety precludes my answering that question the way it really deserves,"
Honor said repressively. "So, if you don't mind, and to return to my
original question. What are you doing here? Not that I'm not delighted
to see you both, of course. But having the entire Harrington family at White
Haven at the same time doesn't exactly come under the heading of a discreetly
low profile, now does it?"
She glanced
at Hamish and Emily as she spoke, but neither of them seemed particularly
worried. In fact, they seemed inordinately pleased.
"So
you really were surprised," Emily said with immense satisfaction,
confirming Honor's impression. "Good! You have no idea how difficult it
can be to try to surprise someone who's an empath!"
"I'd
figured out you were up to something," Honor told her, "but it
never occurred to me that Mom and Dad might be sitting in here waiting for us.
Which, if no one especially minds," she added pointedly, "brings me
back to my original question. Again."
She swept
the entire quartet—and the two obviously amused treecats, as well—with a
demanding gaze, and Emily laughed. Laughed, Honor realized, around a bubble of
intense joy. One which included her happiness at seeing Honor again, but which
also partook of something else—something at least as powerful and even deeper.
"No
one could possibly object to their presence," Emily said. "After all,
it's a matter of public record that I invited you to dinner—I thought it
was rather clever of me to time the invitation for a moment when I knew you'd
be in Tom Caparelli's office and then go through the switchboard. And it's
perfectly reasonable, when I invite a friend to supper, for me to invite her
parents, as well. Especially," her voice softened, "when one of those
parents is my newest physician."
"Physician?"
Honor repeated.
"Yes."
Emily smiled with a curious serenity. One that felt somehow more . . . whole in
some indefinable fashion. "Your mother and I had a very interesting
discussion when she told me you wanted my voice, as well as Hamish's, for the
Briarwood recordings. The fact that you did meant a lot to me. But, in some
ways, what your mother had to say meant even more. Hamish and I have an
appointment of our own over there next week."
It took
Honor an instant to realize what Emily had just said. Then the implications
shot home.
"Emily!"
Somehow, Honor found herself on her knees beside the float chair, holding
Emily's right hand to her cheek with both of her own hands. The tears which had
pickled at the backs of her eyes when Hamish and Emily welcomed her
"home" spilled free, and Emily blinked her own eyes hard.
"That's
wonderful!" Honor said. "Oh, Emily! I wanted to suggest the same
thing so badly, but—"
"But
you thought I wasn't ready for the notion," Emily interrupted, the force
of her happiness at Honor's instant and obvious joy at the news flooding
through the younger woman. "Well, I thought I wasn't, as far as
that goes. That was before I discovered where you get your stubbornness, of
course."
"I am
not, and never have been, stubborn," Allison said with enormous
dignity. "Determined, forceful, a compassionate healer—always a
compassionate healer. Clearly committed. Insightful. Blessed with a unique
ability to visualize the most successful possible outcome in any given
situation. Always forging ahead in pursuit of—"
"Definitely
a spanking," Alfred decided.
"Bully."
Allison smacked him gently on the shoulder. "Bounder. Cad!"
"'Stubborn'
is a remarkably pale word to describe my esteemed female parent," Honor
said, sitting back on her heels to look deeply into Emily's eyes, and wondering
just how . . . forceful her mother's "suggestions" might have been.
"I've often thought 'obstinate' would be a better fit."
"I
imagine that's part of what makes her such a successful physician," Emily
replied, her happiness and deep satisfaction an unspoken answer to the question
Honor hadn't asked.
"Yes,
it is," Honor agreed. "But this is really what you want?
Truly?"
"More
truly than you can possibly imagine," Emily said softly.
* * *
" . .
. so I called Briarwood and made the appointment," Emily said much later,
as all five of them sat in her private dining salon looking out into the embers
of sunset as they sipped after-dinner coffee or chocolate.
"Who's
your doctor?" Honor asked.
"Illescue,"
Allison replied for Emily, and grimaced when Honor looked at her. "I
really would have preferred Womack or Stilson, but it was probably inevitable
that Illescue would assign himself. And I have to admit, he's very good at what
he does."
"Mother,"
Honor said in a semi-accusing tone, "when I met Dr. Illescue, I had the
distinct impression I wasn't exactly his favorite person in the entire galaxy.
Which I found peculiar, since I've never met the man before. Is there something
you'd like to tell me? Something which, perhaps, you might have told me before
I went to Briarwood myself?"
"Don't
look at me, dear," Allison said, and jabbed her husband in the ribs with a
knuckle. "This overgrown adolescent is probably responsible for any slight
hostility you might have detected."
"Meaning
what?"
"Meaning
the two of them were at medical school together on Beowulf, and they didn't
exactly see eye to eye."
"Daddy?"
Honor leveled her gaze on her father, who shrugged.
"It
wasn't my fault," he assured her. "You know what an invariably
easy-going, pleasant sort I am."
"I
also know where I get my temper," Honor told him tartly.
"Never
laid a finger on him," Alfred Harrington said virtuously. "I was
tempted a time or two, I'll admit. It's hard to imagine someone who could have
been a bigger snot than Franz Illescue at twenty-five. He comes from one of the
best medical families here in the Star Kingdom—his family's been physicians
ever since the Plague Years—and he wasn't about to let a mere yeoman from
Sphinx forget about it. Especially not a yeoman who was being sent to med
school by the Navy. He was one of those people who thought the only reason
people joined the Navy was because they couldn't get jobs in the 'real world.'
I understand he's mellowed a bit with time, but the two of us were like a
leaking hydrogen canister and a spark when we were younger."
"Tell
her everything, Alfred," Allison admonished.
"Oh,
well, there was one other minor matter," Alfred said. "He'd
asked your mother out once or twice before I came along."
"Once
or twice!" Allison snorted. "He'd been just a bit more
persistent than that. I think he was trophy hunting—he always did think of
himself as quite the ladies' man."
"Maybe
he was," Alfred acknowledged. "But if so, at least he had impeccable
taste, Alley. You have to admit that."
"Such
a sweet man," Allison said, patting his cheek, and looked at Emily.
"You see why I keep him?"
"Does
all that history mean you're going to have a problem working with him,
Mother?" Honor asked with an edge of seriousness after the chuckles had
subsided.
"I've
worked with him before," Allison told her calmly. "He's grown up
quite a bit over the last half-century. And, as I say, he really is very good
in his area. He wouldn't be Briarwood's senior partner if he wasn't. Given what
the two of us do, it was inevitable we'd wind up at least consulting from time
to time, and both of us recognized that long ago. So while I'd really prefer
one of the other docs, I don't foresee any difficulty working with Franz."
"Good."
Honor shook her head with a crooked smile. "The things one finds out about
one's parents. And here for all these years I thought I was bad about
picking up feuds."
"Well,
you've refined an inherited ability to a truly rarefied height," her
mother said, "but I suppose you did come by it honestly in the
beginning."
* * *
"Imperator,
this is India-Papa-One-One, requesting approach instructions."
"India-Papa-One-One,
Imperator Flight Ops. Be advised our approach pattern is currently full.
Please stand by."
"Flight
Ops, India-Papa-One-One. Understand approach pattern is currently full.
However, be advised that I have Eighth Fleet flag on board."
There was a
moment of silence, and the pinnace's pilot grinned at his copilot.
"Ah,
India-Papa-One-One, Imperator Flight Ops." The controller aboard
the flagship sounded suddenly much brisker. "Come to approach vector
Able-Charlie. You are cleared for immediate approach to Boat Bay Alpha."
"Thank
you, Flight Ops. India-Papa-One-One copies approach vector Able-Charlie for
immediate approach to Bay Alpha," the pinnace pilot acknowledged, without
allowing even a trace of satisfaction to show.
* * *
"How
was your visit to the Admiralty, Ma'am?"
"Good,
Rafe." Honor looked at her flag captain as the two of them, accompanied by
Nimitz, Mercedes Brigham, her three armsmen, and Timothy Mears rode the lift
car from the boat bay towards Flag Bridge. "That's not to say everything
Sir Thomas had to tell me was something I wanted to hear, but at least we're
all on the same page. And," her mouth tightened slightly, "it's more
important than ever that we get Cutworm launched successfully."
"Everything's
ready, Ma'am," Cardones told her soberly.
"I
expected it would be." Honor brought up the time display in her artificial
eye, then looked over her shoulder at her flag lieutenant.
"Tim,
general signal to all flag officers. They're all invited to supper. We should
just about have time for that before we all pull out."
"Alpha
translation in seventeen minutes, Ma'am," Lieutenant Weismeuller said.
"Understood,"
Lieutenant Commander Estwicke acknowledged, and turned to her com officer.
"Pass the final readiness signal to Skirmisher."
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am," Lieutenant Wilson acknowledged, and Estwicke nodded to her
executive officer.
"Bring
the ship to general quarters, Jethro."
"Yes,
Ma'am." Lieutenant Jethro Stanton replied, and pressed the GQ button on
his console. Alarms blared throughout the ship, although they were scarcely
needed. HMS Ambuscade's crew had closed up to their action
stations over half an hour ago, taking their time, making certain they'd done
it right.
Readiness
reports flowed back to the bridge steadily, and Stanton listened carefully,
watching the icons in his display's sidebar blink from amber to a steady, burning
red.
"All
battle stations report manned and ready, Skipper," he reported formally as
the last symbol turned red.
"Very
good." Estwicke swiveled her chair to face Lieutenant Emily Harcourt, her
tactical officer. "Stand by to deploy the remotes."
* * *
"Unidentified
hyper footprint! Correction—two hyper footprints! Range
four-six-point-five light-minutes! Bearing one-seven-three by
oh-niner-two!"
Captain
Heinrich Beauchamp looked up sharply, swiveling his chair to face the petty
officer. The twin, rapidly strobing blood-red icons of unknown hyper
translations glared in the depths of the master plot, and the chief of the
watch was leaning forward over the shoulder of one of the other sensor techs,
watching her display as she worked to refine the data.
"What do
we have so far, Lowell?" Beauchamp asked the petty officer who'd made the
initial report.
"Not a
lot, Sir," the noncom said unhappily. "That far out, we don't have
any of the FTL platforms close enough for a good look, and the sub-light—"
He broke
off as the crimson icons vanished as abruptly as they had appeared.
"Did
they translate out?" Beauchamp demanded.
"Don't
think so, Sir," Petty Officer Lowell replied.
"Definitely
not, Sir," Chief Torricelli said, looking up from where he'd been watching
the sensor tech work the contacts. "Whatever they are, they've gone into
stealth."
"Damn,"
Beauchamp muttered. He let his chair swing back and forth in a tight arc for a
few seconds, then shook his head. "All right, Chief. How much did we
get?"
"Not
much, Sir," Torricelli admitted. "We only had them on sensors for
about eight minutes, and like Lowell says, that's an awful long way out for any
kind of detail. Best I can tell you is they weren't anything really big.
Might've been a pair of light cruisers, but it looked more like destroyers,
from the little we got."
"If
that's all we've got, it's all we've got," Beauchamp said, more
philosophically than he really felt, and punched the com stud on the arm of his
bridge chair.
"System
HQ, Commander Tucker," a voice responded in his earbug.
"George,
it's Heinrich," Beauchamp said. "I know the Commodore just turned in,
but you might want to wake him."
"This
better be good," Tucker replied. "He was dead tired before I managed
to chase him off to bed."
"I
know. But we just picked up two unidentified hyper footprints—destroyer or
light cruiser range. We had them on sensors for a bit less than eight minutes,
then lost them. Our best estimate is that they're still out there, just in
stealth."
"Shit."
There was silence for several seconds, then Beauchamp heard Tucker inhale
deeply. "Not good, Heinrich. I guess I really will have to wake him back
up."
* * *
"Good
light-speed telemetry on the arrays, Skipper," Lieutenant Harcourt
reported, studying the readings coming back over the whisker lasers.
"Deployment profiles look optimal."
"Skirmisher
reports good deployment as well, Ma'am," Wilson added from
Communications.
"Good,"
Estwicke replied to both officers simultaneously. "Any sign they got a
hard read on us, Emily?"
"Impossible
to say, Ma'am," Harcourt replied in the respectfully formal tone she kept
for those rare special occasions when her commanding officer asked a silly
question. "We didn't pick up any active sensors, of course. But there's no
way of knowing whether or not we came out close enough to one of their
platforms for it to get a good read on passives."
"Understood."
Estwicke's wry smile acknowledged the ever so proper smack on the wrist the tac
officer had just given her.
"I
haven't picked up any grav-pulse transmissions," Harcourt added.
"Anything they did get on us, aside from our footprint itself, has to be
coming in light-speed. So whatever it might be, they won't have it for another
twenty-five minutes or so."
"By
which time we'll have cut even the laser links and be very tiny needles in a
very large haystack," Estwicke said with a nod of satisfaction.
"Exactly,
Skip," Harcourt agreed. Then she cocked her head. "By the way,
Skipper, there's something I've always meant to ask."
"And
what might that be?"
"What
the hell is a 'haystack,' anyway?"
* * *
"I
don't like this, George," Commodore Tom Milligan said. "I don't like
it a bit."
The
Commanding Officer, Hera System Command, and his chief of staff were hunched
over the latest report from the Hera System's sensor arrays.
"I
don't either, Sir," Commander Tucker agreed. The chief of staff's face was
tight with worry, but far less exhausted looking than Milligan's. Then again,
he was sleeping better than Milligan was.
Probably, he thought, because the ultimate responsibility is
his, not mine.
"Those
damned ships have been hanging around for two frigging days," Milligan
continued harshly.
"We think
they have, Sir," Tucker amended conscientiously.
"Oh,
of course." Milligan's irony was withering, although Tucker knew it wasn't
actually directed at him. He was simply unfortunate enough to be in range.
"Well, I think they're hanging around for a reason," the
commodore continued in slightly less sarcastic tones. "And I don't like
these readings, either."
He tapped
another paragraph of the report, and Tucker nodded silently.
"They
aren't very strong, Sir," he pointed out after a moment. Milligan looked
at him, and the commander shrugged slightly. "I wish they were a little
stronger. Maybe then we could at least have gotten a directional bearing for
the LAC sweeps."
The chief
of staff wasn't happy about how much wear and tear they'd put on their LAC
personnel. The LACs were the only search platforms they had with a chance of
running down something as elusive—and fast—as a stealthed Manty destroyer.
Unfortunately, they didn't have very many of them, and as the last two days had
demonstrated, even their chance was a piss poor one without at least some sort
of sensor clue to give them an edge.
"Wouldn't
have mattered much if we had," Milligan said moodily. "Our birds are
too slow to run them down before they could break back across the limit and
translate out. Besides, we may not know where they are, but we sure as hell
know what they are."
Tucker
nodded again, not even tempted to play devil's advocate this time. The only
thing those transmissions could be were scraps of backscatter from Manticoran
directional FTL transmissions. Which, of course, meant the ships which had
deployed the recon platforms producing them were still in the system receiving
their reports . . . somewhere.
Or at least
one of them was, anyway.
"Well,"
Milligan said again, bracing both hands on the tabletop and straightening his
back, "I can only think of one reason for them to be hanging around this
way."
"I'm
afraid I agree, Sir." Tucker smiled without humor. "Which isn't to
say I wouldn't like to discover that all they're doing is screwing with our
minds."
"Just
trying to convince us they have something nastier in mind, you mean?"
Milligan snorted. "That would be better than what I'm pretty sure
they're really up to. Unfortunately, I don't think we're going to be that
lucky."
"Me
either," Tucker admitted.
"And I
don't much like what their damned sensor arrays are telling them, either,"
Milligan continued more heavily. "Damn. Who would've expected the bastards
here?"
That,
Tucker thought, was a very good question. The Hera System was just over sixty
light-years from Trevor's Star . . . and barely thirty light-years from the Haven
System itself. That was closer to the capital system than the Manties had ever
come, even during Operation Buttercup, but Hera was scarcely a major bastion
like the Lovat System. It was important, true, but clearly a second-tier
system: a significant industrial node, but not vital enough to demand a heavy
fleet presence for its security. Especially not when it was only four days from
the capital itself, which meant it could be quickly reinforced in the unlikely
event that the Manties managed to mount a second Buttercup.
Except that
wasn't what was going to happen.
"We've
sent for help, Sir," Tucker said after a moment. "And we've brought
the local defenses to Condition Two. I wish there were something more we could
do, but I don't think there is."
"No,
there isn't," Milligan agreed. "It's just—"
"Excuse
me, Sir." Both officers turned to face the office door as the duty
communications tech appeared in it. "Sorry to disturb you," the young
woman continued, her face tight with worry, "but Perimeter Watch just
picked up unidentified hyper footprints."
"How
many?" Milligan demanded sharply.
"It
looks like at least six ships of the wall, split into two groups, Sir,"
the com tech said. "They're coming in on converging courses, and Captain
Beauchamp estimates they're accompanied by six additional cruiser-range
vessels."
Milligan's
jaw tightened. Six wallers—even six old-style wallers—would go through
his "System Command" like a pulser dart through butter. And if they
were coming in separated but on converging courses, they undoubtedly meant to
pincer any defensive forces between them. However unnecessary that particular
refinement might actually be.
"Very
well," he said after a moment. "Instruct Captain Beauchamp to keep us
informed. Then transmit a general signal to all units. Set Condition One. After
that, inform Captain Sherwell that the staff and I will be joining him aboard
the flagship directly. He's to immediately begin and expedite preparations for
getting underway. And—" he glanced at Tucker "—inform Governor
Shelton that I'll be speaking to him shortly."
"Yes,
Sir." The communications tech braced briefly to attention and disappeared.
"Sir,"
Tucker said very quietly, "if this really is six wallers, we're not going
to stop them."
"No,"
Milligan said bleakly. "But if they're doing what I think they are, we
couldn't avoid action with them even if we tried."
Tucker
started to open his mouth, then changed his mind and nodded, instead.
"Get
with Stiller," Milligan continued. "I want an immediate evacuation of
the entire orbital infrastructure. I'll get Shelton to confirm that when I
speak to him."
"And
our civilian shipping, Sir?"
"Anything
that's hyper-capable and can reach the hyper limit before the Manties can bring
it into range, runs for it. Get that order out immediately. Anything in their
way, tries to evade, but I don't want any more dead heroes than I can help. If
a ship's crew is ordered to abandon or, God help us, simply fired on, I want
them to take to the boats immediately."
"Yes,
Sir."
"As
for the system defense units, we'll just have to do our best. Maybe,"
Milligan showed his teeth in a rictus-like caricature of a smile, "we can
at least scratch their paint."
* * *
"Unidentified
hyper footprints! Many unidentified footprints at eighteen light-minutes,
bearing oh-niner-oh by oh-three-three!"
Rear
Admiral Everette Beach, CO, Gaston System Command, wheeled towards his
operations officer, blue eyes widening in disbelief.
"How
many? What class?" he barked.
"We
can't say yet, Sir," the ops officer replied. "Looks like a couple of
ships of the wall—might be CLACs, instead—with at least a dozen battlecruisers
or cruisers. Probably at least a couple of destroyers, as well. And—" she
turned to look Beach straight in the eye, and her voice harshened almost
accusingly "—we've got a single destroyer-range impeller signature already
in-system and moving to meet them."
Beach's jaw
tightened, and anger sparkled in his eyes. But angry as he was at Commander
Inchman, he knew even more of his anger was directed at himself. Inchman had
tried to convince him that the "sensor ghost" the arrays had picked
up two days ago was really there, but Beach had disagreed. Oh, it had looked
like a hyper footprint, but almost a full light-hour beyond the system
hyper limit? At that range, given the rudimentary state of Gaston's sensor net,
it could have been almost anything. And whatever it was, it had vanished within
minutes of appearing in the first place.
Sure it did, he thought harshly. And you were so damned sure
Inchman was wrong about it's simply going into stealth, weren't you Everette?
You stupid shit. You've been whining to the Octagon ever since you took
over here that you needed a better sensor net. Well, genius, why didn't you at
least pay attention to what you had?
"You
were right," he made himself say, a little surprised his voice sounded so
close to normal. "They were scouting us."
Inchman
didn't reply. Not that he'd really expected her to. But he'd owed her that
apology, and assuming he survived, he'd have to make it official in his
after-action report. The one he'd no doubt have plenty of time to write after
the board of inquiry beached him.
"Signal
to all units," he continued, "Condition Red-Three. Axis of threat is
oh-niner-oh, oh-three-three. All merchant shipping to immediately get underway.
Order the industrial platforms to commence evacuation at once."
"Yes,
Sir."
* * *
"Right
on the tick, Your Grace," Mercedes Brigham observed with immense
satisfaction as Commander Estwicke's Ambuscade accelerated steadily
towards rendezvous with Imperator. "And exactly where she's
supposed to be," the chief of staff continued, watching the destroyer's
icon on the huge plot on Imperator's flag bridge.
"So
far, so good," Honor agreed. She stood beside the admiral's command chair,
watching the plot as Ambuscade's fresh tac data started coming in.
Commander Daniels' Skirmisher had delivered the basic take from the two
destroyers' heavily stealthed arrays six hours ago, at the prearranged
rendezvous, but Estwicke had remained behind to make sure there'd been no
important changes after Skirmisher's departure. Now Honor gazed intently
at the star system's schematic while a skinsuited Nimitz perched on the chair's
back. She felt him at the back of her mind, sharing her tension as he had so
many times before, and she reached out to him with a quick mental caress.
"I
hope the other groups' timing is as good," Andrea Jaruwalski said from
Honor's other side, and Honor glanced at her. "I know it doesn't really
matter all that much in the greater scheme of things, Your Grace," the ops
officer said with a crooked smile, "but this is opening night, so to
speak. I want our audience to appreciate all the trouble we've gone to in order
to impress them."
"Oh, I
imagine they'll get the message," Honor said with a half-smile of her own.
She could taste Jaruwalski's excitement and anticipation, and the information
from her scouting destroyers' spy mission strongly suggested that Hera was
going to prove a case of severe overkill. No wonder the captain was confident
of success.
So was
Honor. In fact, she'd suspected from the beginning that they were bringing
along more firepower than was going to be required. But Hera was the closest of
their targeted systems to Nouveau Paris, and this was the only attack going in
without any carrier support at all. So she'd brought along Alistair McKeon's
entire squadron . . . in no small part to make the point to Thomas Theisman
that the Alliance could—and would—operate even its most modern
superdreadnoughts aggressively this deep behind the front line systems. But,
unlike Jaruwalski, Honor wasn't really looking forward to what they were about
to do.
Or to
killing all the men and women who were about to die.
"Ambuscade's
upload is complete, Commodore Jaruwalski," one of the ops officer's
plotting team's petty officers announced.
"What
does it show?" Jaruwalski asked, as she and Honor both moved closer to the
plot.
"CIC
sees no changes from Skirmisher's data, Ma'am. It still looks like two
battleships, four battlecruisers or big heavy cruisers, and less than a hundred
LACs."
"I
still find that hard to believe," Jaruwalski muttered, then grimaced as
Honor cocked a sardonic eyebrow at her. "Sorry, Your Grace. I don't mean
to suggest Daniels and Estwicke didn't do a good job. I'm just surprised their
system picket is that light, even this close to Nouveau Paris."
Honor
shrugged, never taking her gaze from the icons of the ships trapped between her
own incoming forces. Skirmisher's report had allowed her to plot her own
alpha translations perfectly, and the defenders found themselves caught
squarely between the two prongs of her attack.
They'd
obviously realized the system was being probed and brought their mobile
units—such as they were—to a high state of readiness, because they were already
underway. In fact, they were accelerating hard, almost directly towards her
flagship and its division mate, HMS Intolerant. Clearly their commander
had realized she could never get outside the attackers' MDM envelope and had
elected to attempt to stay as far away as possible from the four SDs of
McKeon's first and third divisions. The defenders' outclassed, obsolescent
ships and sparse LAC force stood no chance of survival against a pair of Invictus-class
superdreadnoughts, but they probably had a marginally better chance of
inflicting at least some damage on her single division before they died.
"They
can't be strong everywhere, Andrea," she said after a moment. "That's
the whole point behind Cutworm. And don't forget that Ambuscade and Skirmisher
probably didn't get reliable reads on any system-defense pods they may have deployed."
"Agreed."
Jaruwalski nodded. "Still, they're hanging all but naked. And I've got to
say, I didn't expect to see any battleships still in commission."
"I
didn't either. On the other hand, this is an awful long way from the front. I
suppose if they've got one or two left, it makes more sense to use them here
than somewhere more likely to be attacked. Of course," Honor's smile was
knife-blade thin, "they're going to be reevaluating where attacks are
'likely' very shortly now."
* * *
"It's
confirmed, Sir." Captain Beauchamp's expression was grim on the com screen
connecting Milligan's flag bridge to the system's planet-side Defense
Headquarters. "Bogey Alpha is two superdreadnoughts and three big heavy
cruisers—they look like the new Saganami-Cs. Bogey Beta is four SDs and
three light cruisers. From the emissions signatures, two of Beta's wallers are Medusa-class
SD(P)s. We don't have positive IDs on Beta's other SD, or on either of Alpha's,
but all three of them are even bigger than a Medusa."
"Invictuses,"
Tucker said bitterly. "They've got to be."
"Here?"
Milligan shook his head. "According to NavInt, they can't have more than a
handful of them. Why in God's name would they send three of them this deep into
the Republic to hit a target as secondary as Hera?"
"At a
guess, Sir, they're sending a message," Tucker replied. Milligan looked at
him, and the chief of staff waved one hand at the ominous light codes in the
plot. "We've all been assuming they'd have no choice but to pull in their
horns and fort up after Thunderbolt, and especially after Grendelsbane."
He shrugged. "Well, Sir, I'd say they intend to suggest we were
mistaken."
* * *
"Harper."
"Yes,
Your Grace?"
"Record
a message for the system commander."
"Of
course, Your Grace." If Lieutenant Brantley thought there was anything odd
about sending a message to the commander of a naval force one intended to
destroy momentarily, no sign of it showed in his voice or expression.
"Live
mike, Ma'am," he said after a moment, and Honor looked directly into her
pick up.
"This
is Admiral Honor Harrington, Royal Manticoran Navy," she said levelly.
"By this time, you must be aware of the disparity of combat power between
your forces and mine. I am here to destroy the industrial infrastructure in
this star system, and I will do so, however regretfully. I have no
interest in killing anyone when that can be avoided, however. I submit to you
that the forces under your command, even assuming—as I do—that they're backed
by a substantial number of previously deployed missile pods, can't hope to
seriously damage my own units. Your vessels, on the other hand, are little more
than targets. Courage alone cannot substitute for tactical inferiority on this
scale. You are already inside my powered missile envelope; you won't survive to
bring us into your shipboard range. Nor will your LACs survive to
reach attack range of us."
She paused
for just a moment, then continued in that same level, measured voice.
"It's
obvious from your maneuvers to this point that you're prepared to do your duty
in defense of this star system, however hopeless you must know that defense to
be. I respect that, but I also implore you not to throw away the lives of the
men and women under your command. If you continue to close, I will fire
on you. If, however, you choose to abandon ship and scuttle at this time, I
will not fire upon your small craft or life pods. Nor will I fire upon your
LACs if you order them to withdraw and stand down. I'm not asking you to
surrender your vessels to me; I'm simply asking you to allow your personnel to
live.
"Harrington,
clear."
"Clean
recording, Your Grace," Brantley said, after replaying it to be certain.
"Then
send it," she said.
"Do
you think it will do any good, Ma'am?" Mercedes Brigham asked, leaning
close to Honor's command chair and speaking quietly into her ear.
"I
don't know," Honor replied bleakly, rubbing Nimitz's ears as he curled in
her lap. "I like to think I'd be rational enough to abandon in her
shoes, but, to be completely honest, I'm not certain I would. I just know I
don't want to slaughter people who can't even shoot back."
* * *
" . .
. asking you to allow your personnel to live. Harrington, clear."
Tom
Milligan watched the message from the tall, level-voiced, exotically attractive
woman in the black-and-gold uniform and white beret silently, his eyes hard.
There was no doubt in his mind that Harrington—God, it would be Harrington,
wouldn't it?—had summarized his command's chances of survival with
agonizing accuracy.
Of course,
she did wait until—as she herself just pointed out—she'd trapped us into
entering her missile envelope, whether we'd wanted to or not, didn't she?
Obviously, however concerned she may be with sparing people's lives, she's not
especially concerned about what's likely to happen to my career!
He
surprised himself with a chuckle, but it was short-lived.
"Sir?"
He turned
his head. Commander Tucker stood beside his bridge chair, where he'd viewed the
message along with his commodore, and his expression was profoundly unhappy.
"Yes,
George?" Milligan asked, his voice remarkably calm.
"Sir,
she may be right about our relative combat power. But we can't just blow up our
own ships!"
"Even
if she's going to do it for us sometime in the next ten or fifteen
minutes?"
Milligan
nodded his head at the implacably advancing icons in the plot. Harrington's
converging superdreadnought divisions were already up to a velocity of over
twelve thousand kilometers per second, forging straight ahead, like twin
daggers plunged directly into the heart of the Hera System. He felt a spike of
pure, burning rage at the complete—and completely justified—confidence
of their unwavering approach.
Harrington.
"The Salamander" herself, coming straight down his throat with a pair
of SD(P)s while four more came right up his backside, and armed with the
advantage of detailed tactical scans of the star system and his own defensive
forces. No wonder she was "confident!"
"But,
Sir—!" Tucker protested, and Milligan smiled grimly.
"George,
for what it matters—and, at this particular moment, it doesn't matter a whole
hell of a lot—my career crashlanded the instant those ships came over the hyper
wall. I realize that, unlike the previous management, Admiral Theisman's
unlikely to have me shot for something that obviously wasn't my fault, but
someone's still going to have to carry the can for this one, and I'm elected.
Under the circumstances, it's not going to make things much worse for me personally
if I do what she's suggesting. And, in case you've forgotten, there are over
six thousand people aboard these two obsolete, piece-of-crap battleships,
alone. I'm not sure I'd take a lot of consolation from the knowledge that I got
them killed for absolutely no return. In fact, what I most regret right now, is
that I didn't simply order them all to turn tail and run from the outset."
"You
couldn't do that, Sir."
"I
could have, and I damned well should have! Not that it would've done much good,
given her approach vectors, although at least the LACs might have been
able to stay away from her," Milligan said with quiet, intense bitterness.
Then he inhaled deeply.
"Inform
Captain Beauchamp that he's to coordinate the missile pod engagement from
dirt-side," he said flatly. "Then instruct the LAC crews to return
immediately to their launch platforms. They're to abandon and evacuate to the
planetary surface, and the platform skippers are to set their demolition
charges and accompany them."
Tucker was
staring at him in something like shock, but Milligan continued steadily.
"In
the meantime, I'll contact Admiral Harrington. I'll accept her offer on behalf
of our mobile units, and we'll abandon ship."
"Sir!"
"God damn
it, George!" Milligan grated. "I am not going to get
thousands of people killed for nothing! I won't do it. We'll take our
best shot with the missile pods, but those ships—" he jabbed his finger at
the hostile icons "—can kill anything we have from outside any range where
we can even shoot back. Our 'main combatants' don't have MDMs, and our LACs are
Cimeterres, not frigging Shrikes. They'd never live to reach
their own range of superdreadnoughts without MDM support to cover their
approach. We're fucked, and nothing we can do can change that. Do you understand
me?"
"Yes,
Sir," Tucker said finally, slowly, and turned away.
"Communications,"
Milligan said heavily, "raise Admiral Harrington for me."
* * *
"There
they go, Your Grace," Andrea Jaruwalski said, and Honor nodded. Her remote
sensor arrays were close enough to see the drive signatures of the Havenite
warships' small craft. Individual life pods were much harder to detect, even at
that range and even with Manticoran sensors, but their beacons showed as a fine
green haze of diamond dust glittering around the warship icons, and the ships
themselves had struck their wedges five minutes earlier.
"That
isn't a happy man over there," Mercedes Brigham murmured, and Honor looked
at her.
"I've
been in his shoes, Mercedes. When I ordered Alistair to surrender his ship.
It isn't easy, however hopeless the situation might be. Milligan showed a lot
of moral courage when he accepted my offer, although I doubt most of his
critics will see it that way."
"From
his tone, I think he agrees with you, Ma'am.
Honor
snorted softly at Brigham's understatement. Milligan had actually thanked her
for offering an out which would spare his people's lives, but he'd looked—and
sounded—like a man chewing ground glass.
"I
noticed he didn't say anything about any missile pods, Your Grace,"
Jaruwalski observed quietly.
"No,
he didn't, did he?" Honor looked at her opns officer. Jaruwalski was as
professionally focused as ever, but Honor tasted something very like
frustration under the younger woman's surface. That wasn't exactly the right
word for the emotion, but it came close. Andrea Jaruwalski was no more enamored
of killing people just to kill them than Honor was, but the tactician in her
couldn't help . . . regretting the lost opportunity to carry through with their
neatly planned mousetrap and finish off the enemy ships herself.
"I
didn't ask him to stand down the pods, either, Andrea," Honor
continued. "Mostly because I knew he'd refuse, just as you or I would have
in his position. If I'd made the stand down of all of his defenses a
precondition for my offer, he would have rejected it."
"It
might have been worth a try, anyway, Your Grace." Jaruwalski's tone was
mostly humorous, but she grimaced and gestured at one of the secondary plots.
"We're beginning to pick up active targeting emissions. A lot of
them."
"As
expected." Honor examined the indicated plot. "Actually," she
said after a moment, "there aren't as many as I'd expected. I wonder if
that means they're as light on pods as they were on ships?"
"We
can hope, Ma'am," Brigham said. "Of course—"
"There
go the scuttling charges, Commodore Jaruwalski!"
Honor and
both her staffers turned towards the main plot once more. The range was still
long enough that in the visual display, the brief, bright stars which once had
been warships of the Republic of Haven were little more than short-lived,
brilliant pinpricks. The presentation in the plot was even less dramatic than
that. Seven crimson icons simply blinked once, and disappeared.
The bright
ruby light chips representing the Herrick System's LACs were still there, but
they continued to accelerate steadily away from Honor's ships, obviously
bound—as Commodore Milligan had promised—for their base platforms.
"You
think they'll turn around if their missile pods get lucky, Ma'am? Brigham asked
softly, gazing at the retiring light attack craft.
"That's
hard to say." Honor considered the question for a few seconds, then
shrugged. "Their pods would have to get awfully lucky to make any
difference. If those were Shrikes or Ferrets, it might be
different, but they aren't."
"Missile
launch!" a Plotting rating announced suddenly. "Multiple missile
launches! Time to impact four-point-six minutes!"
* * *
"Captain
Beauchamp has launched, Commodore!"
Tom
Milligan looked up at the announcement. He'd been staring moodily and silently
out the pinnace's viewport, gazing out into the endless emptiness which had
swallowed up the dispersing plasma of his command. Now he shoved himself out of
his seat and stepped quickly to the cramped command deck's hatch.
A pinnace's
sensor capability wasn't particularly good at the best of times, and the
display was far too small to show much detail, but he could see the wavefront
of Beauchamp's outgoing missiles. He'd been surprised when Harrington hadn't
tried to insist that he agree to stand them down, as well. In her place, he
certainly would have at least made the attempt. Unless, of course, her scouting
destroyers had managed to tell her just how threadbare all of Hera's
defenses were.
* * *
"Estimate
eleven hundred—I say again, one-one-zero-zero—inbound," Plotting reported.
"Target is Second Division."
"Makes
sense," Brigham said quietly. "We're closer to most of their platforms,
and two superdreadnoughts have to have less missile defense than four of
them."
Honor
didn't respond. In fact, she was almost certain her chief of staff didn't even
realize she'd spoken aloud.
The tornado
of multidrive missiles howled towards them, and whoever had programmed their
launch times and accelerations had done her job well. Despite how widely
separated many of the launching pods were, their coordination was flawless. All
of those missiles would arrive on target simultaneously as a single, tightly
focused hammer blow.
The quiet
murmur of voices behind her grew louder, more clipped and intense, as
Jaruwalski's plotting parties and tactical crews concentrated on their tasks.
Not that there was a great deal for them to actually do at this moment.
Everything an admiral's staff could do for a situation like this had to happen
earlier, in the planning and training stages, when the crews of the individual
ships of the admiral's command were learning what was expected of them, and how
to perform it.
As
Imperator, Intolerant, and their screening heavy cruisers were
performing it now.
As little
as five or six T-years earlier, that many missiles, fired at a mere pair of superdreadnoughts,
would have been both enormous and deadly. Today, it was different. In an era of
pod-laying ships of the wall, missile densities like that had become something
defense planners had to take into the routine calculations.
Doctrine
and hardware had required major modifications, and the modifying process was an
ongoing one. The Mark 31 counter-missiles Honor's ships were firing represented
significant improvements even over the Mark 30 counter-missiles her command had
used as recently as the Battle of Sidemore, only months before. Their insanely
powerful wedges were capable of sustaining accelerations of up to 130,000 for
as much as seventy-five seconds, which gave them a powered range from rest of
almost 3.6 million kilometers.
Kill
numbers at such extreme ranges were problematical, to say the least, and the
incoming Havenite missiles were equipped with the very best penetration aids
and EW systems Shannon Foraker could build into them. That made them much, much
better than anything the People's Navy had possessed during the First Havenite
War, but BuShips and BuWeaps hadn't precisely been letting grass grow under
their feet, either, Honor thought grimly. Her ships mounted at least three
times as many counter-missile launchers as ships of their classes had mounted
before the advent of pod-based combat.
Their
telemetry and control links had been increased by an even higher factor, and
each of her ships had deployed additional Mark 20 electronics platforms at the
ends of dedicated tractor beams. Nicknamed "Keyhole" by the Navy, the
Mark 20 wasn't a traditional tethered decoy, or even an additional sensor
platform or Ghost Rider EW platform. These platforms were placed much
further from the ships which had launched them, and they had only one function—to
serve as fire control telemetry relays. They extended well beyond the
boundaries of their motherships' impeller wedges, like an old-style wet-navy
submarine's periscope, and they gave the tactical crews aboard those ships the
ability to look "down" past the blinding interference of their own
outgoing counter-missiles' wedges.
To a
civilian, that might have sounded like a small thing, but the implications were
huge. The Keyhole platforms were massive and expensive, but they allowed a ship
to control multiple counter-missiles for each dedicated shipboard fire control
"slot." And they also allowed counter-missile launches to be much
more tightly spaced, which added significant depth to the antimissile
engagement envelope.
And as a
final refinement, the grav-pulse com-equipped reconnaissance arrays deployed in
a shell three and a half million kilometers out watched the incoming missiles'
EW with eagle eyes, and their FTL data streams provided the missile defense
crews aboard Honor's ships a priceless eleven-second advantage. Although the
missile controllers and their AIs were still limited to light-speed telemetry
links, they were able to refine and update targeting solutions with much
greater speed and precision than had ever been possible before.
Shannon
Foraker had been forced to rely on mass and sheer numbers, to build a wall in
space using thousands of weapons whose individual accuracy was very low.
Manticore had approached the problem from a different direction, relying on its
technological advantages and superior technique.
The first
counter-missile launch killed only a hundred and six of the incoming MDMs. The
second, intercepting them less than ten seconds later killed another hundred.
But the third launch, with almost twenty seconds for its controllers to
react, killed three hundred.
* * *
Tom
Milligan turned away from the pinnace's tiny display without a word. He
returned to his seat, staring out the viewport once again, and his expression
was bleak.
One hit, he thought. Surely one frigging hit wasn't
too much to ask for!
But the
Republic hadn't gotten it. Only forty of Beauchamp's MDMs had broken through
the Manties' counter-missiles, and the point defense laser clusters—whose
numbers also seemed to have been hugely increased—had blasted those threadbare
survivors out of existence well short of attack range.
We knew
they were improving their antimissile doctrine, but nothing I ever saw
suggested that they'd improved it this much! And it's going to play hell with
our system defense doctrine.
Hera's
defenses had been weak, even by the existing standards of the Republican Navy.
He should have had at least three times the missile pods he'd actually been
able to deploy, and they ought to have been backed up by a much stronger LAC
force, at a bare minimum. But given what he'd just seen, even the defensive
strength he ought to have had wouldn't have stopped Harrington.
I've never
failed this completely at anything before in my life, he thought bitterly. At least I didn't get all of my
people killed for nothing, but just at the moment, that's pretty cold comfort.
He stared
broodingly into the endless ebon infinity of space. It looked so peaceful out
there, so calm. And that cold, merciless vista was infinitely preferable to
what was about to happen closer to the life-giving beacon of the star called
Hera.
* * *
"That's
the last of them, Your Grace," Jaruwalski said. "They may have some
additional pods squirreled away, but if they could have reached us with more of
them, they would have. Anything else they throw our way will be lighter, easier
to handle."
Honor
didn't respond for several seconds. She was gazing into her plot, her eyes
picking out the icons of orbital factories, extraction facilities, power
satellites, warehouses. By the standards of a wealthy star system like the
Manticore home system, or of a major transportation node, like one of the
Junction's termini, Hera's orbital and deep-space facilities might seem sparse,
but they still represented decades of investment. They were where people worked,
what powered over half the star system's economy. They represented literally
billions of dollars of investment, and even more earning potential, all in a
star nation struggling doggedly to overcome more than a century of ongoing
economic disaster.
And she was
here to destroy them. All of them.
"One
of the platforms in planetary orbit just blew up, Ma'am," Brigham
reported. Honor looked at her, and the chief of staff pointed into the plot,
indicating the icon of the platform in question.
"That
one," she said. "According to CIC, it was one of the LAC basing
platforms, so it looks like they're making good on Milligan's stand down
order."
"Yes,
it does." Honor's chocolate eyes were sad, and her fingers caressed
Nimitz's silken coat while she drew strength from the bright, fierce power of
his support and love, but her voice was calm, unshadowed.
"All
right, Mercedes, Andrea," she said after a moment, turning her command
chair to face them. "We came to wreck this system's space-going economy,
and it would appear the way is clear. So let's be about it."
"What
the hell are those things?" Rear Admiral Beach murmured. Behind
him, he could hear the disciplined bedlam as his communications staff
coordinated the evacuation of Gaston's deep-space industrial infrastructure,
but his attention was focused on two of the tentatively identified Manty
battlecruisers.
"They've
got to be battlecruisers," Commander Myron Randall, his chief of staff,
replied.
"I
know that," Beach said, just a bit impatiently. "But look at the
tonnage estimates. According to CIC, these things mass dammed close to two
million tons. That's a big dammed battlecruiser, Myron!"
"The
Graysons' Courvoisier IIs mass over a million tons," Randall
pointed out.
"Which
is still considerably smaller than these are." Beach shook his head.
"I'll bet you this is the Manties' version of a pod-laying
battlecruiser."
"Wonderful,"
Randall muttered.
"Well,"
Beach said, glancing at the shoals of LACs which had launched themselves from
the incoming CLACs, "how much worse can it get, Myron? We've got three
hundred Cimeterres, the missile pods, and four battlecruisers. I don't
think the fact that they've brought along some of their newer toys is going to
make a lot of difference in the long run."
* * *
"Message
from Admiral Henke, Ma'am."
"Put
it on my tertiary display," Dame Alice Truman replied, and a moment later
Michelle Henke's ebony face appeared on the tiny flatscreen by Truman's knee.
"Mike,"
the vice admiral greeted her.
"Admiral,"
Henke responded.
"To
what do I owe the honor?"
"We've
been going over the fresh data from Intruder's platforms over here,
Ma'am. Have your people noticed that odd little cluster of blips they're
picking up in Charlie-Two-Seven now that they've gone active?"
"Just
a minute, Mike." Truman looked up from the display, and beckoned to her
chief of staff. Captain Goodrick crossed to her immediately, and she waved him
forward into the field of her own com pickup. "Would you repeat that for
Wraith, Mike?"
"Have
your people noticed that cluster of blips in Charlie-Two-Seven?" Henke
asked, after nodding a welcome to Goodrick.
"You
mean the ones just to system north of the refitting platform?" She nodded
again, and he shrugged. "We've seen them, but so far we've put them down
as just orbital clutter. You know how sloppy a lot of civilian facilities are
about disposing of their trash."
"Tell
me about it," Henke said sourly. "In this case, though, I don't think
that's what it is." Goodrick raised his eyebrows, and she grimaced.
"The arrays aren't getting very clear returns off of them. In fact, it
looks to us over here as if that could be because we're not supposed to."
"Low-signature
platforms?" Truman asked.
"Definitely
a possibility," Henke agreed. "Especially if you look at how they're
distributed. Captain LaCosta's tactical section agrees with us that they look
like what could be missile pods dispersed just widely enough to clear their
birds' impeller wedges when they launch."
Goodrick
was leaning over a secondary display, re-examining the sensor data for himself.
Now he looked up and nodded to Truman.
"I
think Admiral Henke has a point, Ma'am," he said. "As a matter of
fact, it looks to me like what we're seeing here could be just a portion of the
entire pattern. I'd say there's a good chance they've got a lot more of them
than we've actually picked up."
"Well,
we expected something like it," Truman observed. She considered for a
moment, then shrugged. "I don't think it really changes anything, Wraith.
But launch an additional shell of arrays and pass the word to Scotty. I want
them sweeping the space in front of him like a fine tooth comb, and I want him
tied directly into their take."
"Yes,
Ma'am. I'll get right on it."
Goodrick
began issuing orders, and Truman nodded to Henke over the com.
"Good
catch, Mike. Aside from that, how are things looking from your side?"
"Nominal,
so far." Henke's smile was unpleasant. "I know it's on a lot smaller
scale, but I think we're about to get a tiny bit of our own back for
Grendelsbane."
"That's
what we came for," Truman agreed, and leaned back in her command chair,
studying the plot.
Given
Eighth Fleet's command structure, she was actually wearing three separate
"hats." She was Honor's second-in-command and carrier commander; the
commanding officer of CLAC Squadron Three; and the CO of CarRon 3's first
division, the carriers Werewolf and Chimera. Of course, two of
those three slots weren't especially relevant just now, she thought, watching
Werewolf's and Chimera's LACs moving steadily away from their
carriers. And, speaking as the commander of the first division—and the senior
officer of the Gaston attack force—things seemed to be going quite well at the
moment.
Knock on
wood, she reminded herself. Knock on
wood.
* * *
"They're
coming right in on us, Sir," Commander Inchman said flatly.
"But
they aren't closing into standard missile range, are they, Sandra?" Beach
observed, standing at her shoulder and looking down at the icons on her plot.
"Their
hyper-capable units aren't, Sir; it looks like they're decelerating to rest
relative to the planet at about one light minute. But their LACs are still
boring straight in."
"And
if anyone thinks they're going to leave our hyper-capable units intact
to shoot at their LACs, they're dreaming," Myron Randall muttered from
behind the rear admiral.
"Probably
not," Beach agreed grimly, and Randall colored slightly. Obviously, he
hadn't realized he'd spoken loudly enough for his admiral to overhear.
"On
the other hand," Beach continued, "they are going to come into range
of our missile pods." He showed his teeth in what only the most myopic
might have called a smile. "Pity they didn't wait another couple of
months."
"You've
got that right, Sir," Inchman agreed, her voice harsh with angry
frustration.
"Maybe,
and maybe not, Sandra." Beach put his hand on her shoulder and squeezed
gently. "Odds are Supply would've been sending us their regrets
again."
He
understood Inchman's frustration—and anger—perfectly. The additional pods
they'd been promised would have increased their long-range missile power
hugely. Then again, they'd been "promised" for quite some time.
"I
know, Sir. It's just—" Inchman bit off what she'd been about to say, and
Beach sighed.
"They're
shipping them to the front line systems as quickly as they can, Sandra.
Someone's got to suck hind teat when quantities are limited. And to be fair, if
you'd been in charge of prioritizing deliveries, would you have
predicted an attack on Gaston, of all damned places?"
"No,
Sir," she admitted.
"So we
do the best we can with what we've got," Beach said as philosophically as
he could. He looked over his shoulder at Randall.
"How
long until we can get underway, Myron?"
"Another
twelve minutes," Randall said, after checking his chrono quickly.
"Captain Steigert's engineers are doing their best, but—"
"Understood."
Beach gave a bitter chuckle, and squeezed Inchman's shoulder again. "If
I'd listened to Sandra, at least I'd have had our impellers at a higher state
of readiness."
He brooded
down at the ops officer's plot, then drew a deep breath and turned away.
"They'll
be in range to engage us in another thirty-five minutes, even if we just sit
here in orbit. To be honest, if I thought it would do any good, I'd order all
of our hyper-capable units to just bug out."
Randall
looked at him with an expression which mingled surprise and disapproval, and
Beach snorted.
"Of
course I would, Myron! It might not be particularly glorious, but if those are
pod-laying battlecruisers out there—and their deceleration profile
certainly suggests they are—then we're truly and royally screwed. Dying
gloriously sounds good in bad historical novels. Speaking for myself, I think
doing it in real life when you don't have to is fucking stupid, and it
irritates the hell out of me that we don't appear to have any choice."
He couldn't
quite keep the bitterness out of his voice, but he drew another breath and gave
himself a mental shake.
"Since
we can't avoid action with them, and since we can't match their engagement
range, I want all of our ships moved around to the far side of the planet.
We'll keep it between us and them as long as we can."
Randall
looked vaguely rebellious. He didn't say anything, but Beach read his thoughts
without much difficulty.
"No,
it's not particularly glorious. And I doubt it's going to make a lot of
difference in the end, for that matter. But if whoever's in command over there
is feeling particularly stupid, he may send in his LACs to flush us out of
cover. If he does, we might actually manage to pick a few of them off. Even if
he doesn't, he'll have to maneuver his MDM-capable units to clear the planet if
he wants a shot at us. For that matter, he may decline to fire from extended
range at us at all, if we're close enough to the planet."
"I
think the Admiral has a point, Myron," Inchman said. Both men looked at
her, and she shrugged. "Given all the other irons the Manties have in the
fire right now, they certainly aren't going to court a violation of the Eridani
Edict, and even their MDMs' targeting discrimination is pretty shaky at
long range. This is our best chance to at least draw them into a range where
we'll get to shoot back."
* * *
"They're
pulling back behind the planet, Ma'am," Commander Oliver Manfredi said.
"Not
very obliging of them," Michelle Henke observed dryly, and Manfredi
chuckled without much humor.
Henke
smiled and tipped back in her command chair, steepling her fingers under her
chin in a posture she'd seen Honor assume scores of times. She couldn't say the
Peep CO's choice of tactics was totally unexpected, but that didn't make it any
more welcome.
"All
right, Oliver," she told her golden-haired chief of staff after a moment.
"Make sure Dame Alice has that information, and inform her that unless she
disapproves my actions, I intend to execute Grand Divide."
"Aye,
Ma'am," Manfredi replied.
The chief
of staff's own smile creased his classically chiseled features and showed
perfect white teeth, and Henke suppressed a mental laugh as he turned towards
Lieutenant Kaminski, her communications officer. It wasn't anything Manfredi
had done; it was simply the way he looked. He was as competent as he was
decorative, but he really ought to have been on Truman's staff, not Henke's.
For some reason, Alice Truman always seemed to have an executive officer, or a
chief of staff, or a flag captain who was as golden-haired and blue-eyed as she
was.
But not
this time, Henke thought with amused
satisfaction. This time, I've got him . . . not to mention the
rest of my "harem."
It was
harder not to laugh this time. Unlike her friend Honor, Truman had always
enjoyed an . . . energetic love-life, although she'd never allowed it to spill
over on to her professional life. This time, though, it had been Honor's turn
to twit her from the moment Henke had invited her to dinner aboard Ajax
and she'd laid eyes on Henke's assembled staff. Manfredi was certainly the most
gorgeous of her staffers, but every single one of them was male, and there
wasn't a homely one in the bunch.
She pushed
the thought aside and straightened in her chair. Grand Divide was the approach
she'd worked out with her staff to deal with a situation like this one. It
wasn't a perfect solution, but that was because there weren't any
"perfect solutions." It was just the best available.
She glanced
at the master plot, watching the projected vectors of her ships began to shift.
She had only four of her six battlecruisers actually under her own command—her
third division, HMS Hector and HMS Achilles—had been attached to
Samuel Miklós' force for the attack on Tambourin, which left her only Agamemnon,
Ajax (her own flagship), and the second division's Priam and Patrocles.
They had four of the Edward Saganami-class heavy cruisers in support,
including Henke's old ship, the Saganami herself, but none of them were
equipped to fire internally launched MDMs. On the other hand, they did have
several dozen of the new-style missile pods tractored to their hulls.
Now
Agamemnon and Ajax, accompanied by two of the heavy cruisers, began
to angle away from Priam, Patrocles, and the other two heavy
cruisers. By spreading her forces, she ought to be able to bring the defenders'
starships under fire with at least one of them. After all, the opposition
Commander couldn't keep the planet between her ships and everybody. But
it meant Henke would probably be able to engage with only half her total
platforms. Worse, it meant her two attack groups were moving steadily out of
mutual support range for missile defense.
If the
destroyers which had scouted the system had detected larger numbers of deployed
missile pods, Henke would never have dared put Grand Divide into action. Even
against the number of pods the destroyers had detected, she was risking
significant damage. But they couldn't take out the system's industrial base
without going in close, not when virtually all of it orbited the system's
inhabited planet. Which meant the defending ships had to be neutralized
first.
Well, at
least it should be interesting, she told
herself.
* * *
"They are
splitting up, Sir," Inchman reported. Her in-system sensor platforms
had the Manticoran units under observation, and she indicated the changing
vector analyses under the icons of the two diverging cruiser forces. "CIC
is designating this force Alpha and this one Beta."
"They're
going to pincer us," Beach grunted. "About what I expected. Too bad
they didn't just go ahead and send in the LACs as beaters."
"But
look at this, Sir," Randall said, indicating the red arrows of projected
vectors. "They may be going to try to open clear lines of sight to us, but
on their current headings, the range will be less than seven million
klicks."
"So
they are a little nervous about Eridani violations," Beach observed, and
smiled humorlessly. "On the other hand, our ships' best powered envelope
from rest is under two million. Not a huge improvement."
"Except
that we haven't fired any of our orbital pods yet, Sir," Inchman pointed
out. "And the closer they come before we do, the better our firing
solutions are going to be."
"True."
Beach nodded and frowned thoughtfully down at the plot. "I know doctrine
says to kill the CLACs as our first priority in a situation like this
one," he said, after a moment, "but they aren't being obliging enough
to bring them in closer. If we had more pods, if we could get a better
salvo density, it might still make sense to go after them, first. Under the
circumstances, though, I think we'll hold our fire as long as we can, then
concentrate it all on Alpha. Run your firing solutions accordingly, Sandra."
"Yes,
Sir."
"And
while we're waiting, Myron," Beach turned to the chief of staff,
"tell the LACs to continue to fall back. If they can, I want them drifting
towards system east."
"You
want them in position to hit Alpha if the pods actually get through, Sir?"
"Exactly."
"What
about us, Sir?" Randall waved one hand at the icons representing
Beach's battlecruisers.
"It's
tempting, but it wouldn't work." Beach shook his head. "We're too far
away. Even at our best acceleration, it would take us over an hour to get into
our range of them. Unless the pods and the LACs do a hell of a lot better than
I expect, they'd pick us off with MDMs before we ever reached them. Worse, as
soon as we left the planetary shadow, Beta would nail us." He shook
his head again. "No. We stay put, using the planet for cover against Beta.
If we can hammer Alpha, so much the better, but we can't afford to get out into
deeper water against sharks like these."
* * *
"That's
a pretty cool customer over there, Ma'am," Commander Manfredi said.
"That
it is, Oliver," Henke agreed. "I don't think it's going to do her a
lot of good in the end, though. She's obviously decided to play it all the way
out, but she's holding a losing hand."
She
swivelled her command chair to face Lieutenant Commander Stackpole, her
operations officer.
"John,
I think she's going to hold fire on her pods to the last possible minute. I
know I would, in her place. And notice the way her LACs are shifting oh so
casually over to flank our vector."
"You
think he's going to concentrate on us and ignore the carriers, Ma'am?"
"It's
what I'd do. She can't possibly hope to kill them, anyway, and she's not
going to beat off our attack. So the only thing left for her to do is to
inflict whatever losses she realistically can. Which means us."
Stackpole
considered it for a moment. Although he was physically attractive—taller than
Honor and almost as dark as Henke herself, with high cheekbones and a powerful
nose—he was nowhere near as decorative as Manfredi's holo-star good looks. He
was probably, however, even better at his job.
"You're
thinking about the pods, aren't you, Ma'am?"
"I
am."
"Well,"
he said thoughtfully, "we've still only picked up a couple of hundred of
them. With hard locks, I mean. CIC's projecting general zones for about twice
that many, but we don't have anything we could use for reliable targeting
information on them. We could kill most of those we've actually found with
proximity warheads, but they're all awfully close to the planet, Ma'am."
"Too
close," Henke agreed. "Especially for MDMs at this range. We might
have a nasty accident, and Duchess Harrington wouldn't like that."
"No,
Ma'am, she wouldn't," Stackpole agreed with feeling.
Honor had
made it abundantly, one might almost say painfully, clear that she would not be
amused by anything which might be remotely construed as a violation of the
Eridani Edict's prohibitions, even by accident. And if smacking an inhabited
planet, however accidentally, with a ninety-five-ton missile moving at fifty
percent of light-speed couldn't be construed as using a "weapon of mass
destruction" against it, very few things could be.
"I
think we've still got to find a way to make them use them at longer-range,
though," Henke said. "Albert."
"Yes,
Ma'am?" Lieutenant Kaminski replied.
"Message
to Admiral Truman. My compliments, and I would appreciate it if she could order
the LACs to go after the pods."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
"Antonio."
"Yes,
Ma'am?" Lieutenant Commander Braga, her astrogator, responded.
"Compute
us a new course. I want to end up in the same spots, but assuming the Admiral
agrees to let the LAC jockeys kill pods for us, I want to reduce our
acceleration to give them more time."
"Yes,
Ma'am. How much more time?"
* * *
"They've
reduced their acceleration, Sir."
Beach swung
his command chair to face Commander Inchman.
"By
how much?"
"Almost
fifty percent," Inchman replied.
"And
their LACs?"
"Changing
course and coming straight in on the planet, Sir." It was apparent from
Inchman's tone that she'd anticipated her admiral's second question, and Beach
nodded unhappily.
"So
they aren't going to reach their originally projected firing points until after
the LACs' get close enough to start killing pods," he said.
"No,
sir, they aren't. And," Inchman turned her head to meet Beach's eyes,
"if they're close enough to kill pods, they're also close enough to kill
all our orbital platforms on their side of the planet."
"Are
the LACs on profile for a zero-zero approach?"
"Yes,
Sir. They'll hit turnover on their current profile in about twenty
minutes."
"Crap."
Beach drummed on the arm of his command chair for a moment, then shrugged.
"So
much for using the Cimeterres against Alpha. Contact Captain
Abercrombie. Order him to reverse course and engage the Manties' LACs."
"Aye,
Sir."
"At
least they'll meet far enough from their battlecruisers and cruisers to be out
of standard shipboard weapons range," Commander Randall observed quietly.
"That
should help some," Beach agreed, although both of them knew it wouldn't
make a great deal of difference. Gaston System Command had three hundred and
twenty Cimeterre-class LACs. The Manty attack force had just over two
hundred Shrike and Ferret-class LACs, and they must know about
the "Triple Ripple" by now. Given the difference in the basic
capabilities of the two sides, Beach's LACs were about to face a painful
exchange rate.
In theory,
Beach could have moved his battlecruisers out to support them, since the Manty
LACs would have to enter the reach of his own shorter-ranged shipboard
missiles. But that would have required him to come out from behind the planet
and expose his ships to MDM fire.
He couldn't
do that. And so he sat in his command chair, watching the plot, as his
Cimeterres swept around and headed directly towards their much more
dangerous foes.
* * *
"Vector
change!" Lieutenant Veronika Chernitskaya announced. "Their LACs are
coming back around, Skipper."
"They have
to protect their pods, Vicki," Captain Tremain replied philosophically.
"Frankly, I'm a bit surprised they didn't make the move sooner."
"Probably
didn't like the odds, Skip," Chief Harkness replied from HMLAC Dacoit's
engineering station. "Might've taken whoever's in command a few minutes to
decide he had to bite the bullet and do it anyway."
Tremain
nodded, but his attention was focused on Dacoit's plot as the tight
formation of Havenite LACs accelerated towards his own formation at almost
seven hundred gravities. Numerically, the odds were better than three-to-two in
the Havenites' favor; in terms of actual combat power, they weren't even close.
Examination of the Havenite light attack craft captured at the Battle of
Sidemore made it clear the Cimeterres carried carried more missiles than
even a Ferret, but those missiles were much less capable than those in
Tremain's LACs' magazines. And the Havenites had nothing remotely comparable to
the massive grasers built into his Shrikes.
Of course,
it didn't take weapons that powerful just to kill another LAC. Anything
would kill a LAC . . . assuming it could score a hit in the first place. But
the Havenites' sidewalls and EW were both far inferior to their Manticoran
counterparts, and none of the Cimeterres at Sidemore had mounted a bow
or stern wall at all. Worse, from the Havenites' perspective—though they might
not realize it yet—six of Tremain's squadrons were Grayson Katanas.
Designed
specifically as "space superiority" LACs, the Katanas
were the Alliance's conceptual equivalent of the Cimeterre itself.
Unlike the Cimeterre, however, the Katana incorporated all of the
Alliance's tech advantages. It was smaller than its Havenite rival—and also
faster, more maneuverable, far better protected, with enormously superior
electronic warfare capabilities and the LAC-sized version of the new bow wall
"buckler," and equipped with what were for all intents and purposes a
trio of superdreadnought point defense laser clusters, in addition to the
Grayson-designed Viper anti-LAC missile.
The Viper
was about two-thirds the size of a standard LAC missile, but it was quite
different. It carried a much smaller warhead, without the multiple lasing rods
of a conventional warhead, in order to incorporate significantly better seekers
and an enhanced AI. And it also was designed for engagements at much shorter
ranges. Engagements in which massive acceleration, agility, and the ability to
reach targets quickly were vastly more important than endurance. Which was why
the Viper used the same drive systems as the Mark 31 counter-missile.
"Central,
Dagger One," he said to Dacoit's com system. A tone sounded in his
earbug as the AI which had replaced the regular communications officer aboard
the highly automated LACs routed his transmission to Commander Crispus
Dillinger, the senior Katana Squadron CO.
"Dagger
One, Ramrod," Tremain said, identifying himself as the Third Carrier
Squadron's COLAC.
"Ramrod,
Dagger One," Dillinger's voice came back instantly.
"They're
coming to meet us after all, Chris. I think it's time your people took center
stage. We'll go with Bushwhack Three."
"Ramrod,
Dagger One copies Bushwhack Three."
"Go
get them," Tremain replied. "Ramrod, clear."
* * *
Captain
Boniface Abercrombie watched the Manticoran LACs on the plot of his command
LAC. He didn't much care for the odds. The Cimeterre was a pure
attrition unit, designed to overpower the individual superiority of its Manty
opponents by means of massive numerical superiority. Abercrombie knew Admiral
Foraker and her staff were working furiously to improve the Cimeterre's
capabilities in the Republic's second-generation light attack craft, but the
limitations of their tech base, even with the rumored upgrades from the
Erewhonese, meant her teams simply couldn't match the Manties' capabilities.
Current
doctrine called for engaging Manty LACs at minimum odds of four-to-one. Even at
that level, Republican casualties would probably be heavy in a straight-up fight.
It was hard to say for certain, because the only LAC-on-LAC engagements so far
had been dominated by the Republic's surprise "Triple Ripple" tactic.
But the MDM missile profiles employed against Captain Schneider at Zanzibar
were chilling proof the Manties knew all about the Ripple. They'd undoubtedly
adjusted their LAC tactics even more than their MDM doctrine, and Abercrombie
didn't look forward to being the first Republican COLAC to discover exactly how
they had.
Unfortunately,
it appeared he didn't have any choice.
"Stand
by for Zizka," he said tautly. Lieutenant Banacek, his tactical officer,
looked at him, and he shrugged. "I don't know if they're going to give us
the opportunity to use it, but if they do, I want it ready."
"Yes,
Sir," Banacek acknowledged.
"It's
more likely we'll be looking at a close-in dogfight," Abercrombie
continued. "I want squadron discipline maintained. They're going to have
the range advantage, and our point defense is going to have to carry the load
until we get close enough to hurt them."
"Understood,
Sir." There was the slightest edge of a tremor in Banacek's voice, but her
gray eyes were steady, and Abercrombie gave her a tight smile of approval.
* * *
"Range
four-point-six-eight million klicks. Closing velocity one-two-thousand
KPS."
Commander
Crispus Dillinger, call sign "Dagger One," grunted in acknowledgment
of Lieutenant Gilmore's report while his brain whirred steadily, balancing
variables and possibilities.
At their
closing velocity, the missile geometry extended their powered missile envelope
at launch by almost five hundred thousand kilometers from the 3.6 million
kilometers the Viper could attain from rest. Which meant they'd be in extreme
range in another thirty-five seconds.
He wondered
why the Peeps hadn't fired yet. The one drawback of the Viper was that its
maximum range was little more than half that of a more conventional anti-ship
missile. In theory, that had given the Peeps almost three minutes in which they
could have fired upon their opponents without taking return fire. From the Katanas,
at least; if they'd opened fire from that far out, the Ferrets backing
the Dagger squadrons would have replied in kind.
Probably
holding their own birds as long as we'll let them, he thought. All the indications are that their
accuracy sucks compared to ours, and their tac crews have to baby them more on
the way in, so they've got to worry more about light-speed transmission lags.
They'll want to get to as short a range as they can in order to maximize their
hit probabilities. And they may think they can get away with that damned
EMP maneuver of theirs. If they do, it's time we . . . disabused them of the
notion.
"All
Daggers, Dagger One," he said over the net. "Bushwhack Three is
confirmed. Repeat, Bravo-Whiskey-Three is confirmed. Stand by to initiate
launch sequence on command."
Acknowledgments
came back from his squadron commanders, and he felt himself settling deeper
into his flight couch as the range flashed downwards. Then he nodded sharply to
Gilmore.
"Initiate!"
she said sharply. "Repeat, initiate!"
* * *
"Missile
separation!" Lieutenant Banacek called out. "Multiple missile
separations. Flight time . . . seventy-five seconds?"
Disbelief
burned in her voice as her computers reported the enormous acceleration rate of
the incoming missiles, and Boniface Abercrombie didn't blame her a bit.
"Christ,"
somebody whispered, and Abercrombie felt his own jaw tighten.
"So
that's their answer to the Ripple," his XO said quietly, bitterly.
"That's
got to be Katanas launching," Abercrombie replied, almost calmly.
He'd wondered what the infernally inventive Graysons had come up with. NavInt
had managed to confirm that they had, indeed, developed a dedicated space
control LAC, but no one in the Republic had had any idea exactly what they'd
done.
Until now.
"They
can't sustain that kind of accel for long," the XO said. "It's got to
be some adaptation of a counter-missile."
Abercrombie
nodded, never taking his eyes from the plot.
"They'll
be short-legged," he agreed. "But they're going to be a real bitch to
stop. Worse, they're launching staggered."
It was the
XO's turn to nod. He and Abercrombie had discussed it often enough, and it
seemed the Manties—or Graysons, as the case might be—had come up with the same
solution to the Ripple as they had. They weren't going to let their onboard
sensors be blinded again; that part had been a no-brainer, once the Manties
realized what had been done to them. Nor were they going to expose their decoys
and EW platforms any sooner than they must, and it was a given that they'd have
spread their remote recon platforms as widely as possible in order to get them
outside the Ripple's area of effect.
And now
they'd taken Zizka out of the equation, as well, by the simplest expedient of
all. They knew Republican missile defense doctrine, especially for LACs, relied
more on mass and volume than individual accuracy, so they'd realized it was
less the density of a missile salvo than its duration which
really mattered. At any sort of extended range, Abercrombie's LACs had no
choice but to attempt to saturate the incoming missile patterns rather than
attempting to pick off individual threats, the way Manty missile-defense crews
would have. So it wasn't really necessary for the Manties to achieve the sort
of precise time-on-target concentrations which would have been used to saturate
more sophisticated defenses. Or, to put it another way, Abercrombie's defenses
were too crude to be significantly degraded by that sort of sophistication.
So the
Manties had staggered their launches, spreading them out in time, and seeded
their attack birds with their damnably effective EW platforms. Coupled with the
impossibly high speed of the attack missiles themselves, those decoys and
jammers were going to degrade point defense kill probabilities
catastrophically. And by stretching out their launch envelope, by creating what
was effectively a missile stream, rather than a single, crushing hammer
blow, they'd made it impossible for a single Ripple launch to kill more than a
fraction of their total attack. Worse, the LACs who'd launched the Ripple could
no more see through it than vessels on the other side could, and Abercrombie
couldn't afford to further hamstring his missile defense by providing the enemy
with the opportunity to effectively attack "out of the sun."
A part of
him cried out to issue orders, enforce his will on the engagement, do something
to give his people a better chance. But there was no time for that, no
last-minute adjustments that would have any impact on what was unfolding. For
all intents and purposes, he was a passenger now, waiting to see how well his
battle plan worked.
He didn't
entertain very high hopes in that regard.
* * *
Commander
Dillinger's missiles streaked towards the Havenite LACs.
It was the
first time they'd ever been used against live targets, and even Dillinger was a
bit surprised by how well they performed. Their AIs were better than those of
any previous missile remotely close to their size, and those AIs had been carefully
optimized to go after small, fast, fragile targets. They were far more
capable of independent engagements, with less need for telemetry links to the
vessels which had launched them. After all, LAC EW—or, at least, the Havenite
version of it—was much less capable than that of a starship. There was less
need for fire control officers to correct for the sort of sophisticated
razzle-dazzle larger ships could perform, and their shorter powered envelope
meant the Vipers' sensors had a much better look at their target when they were
launched.
In effect,
they were launch-and-forget weapons, which saw to their own midcourse
corrections, and the Katanas were free to maneuver, and to employ all of
their fire control links for counter-missiles, once they'd gotten the Vipers
away.
And it was
obvious the Peeps hadn't had a clue that they were going to face attack
missiles whose acceleration had just been increased by forty-two percent. The
incoming Vipers were actually over thirty percent faster than the
counter-missiles trying to kill them.
* * *
Boniface
Abercrombie listened to the combat chatter, jaw clamped as he heard the
consternation—in all too many cases the outright panic—of missile-defense crews
who'd suddenly discovered all of their defensive programs' threat parameters
were out of date. He turned his head, watching Banacek working frantically,
trying to update her tracking and threat prioritization in the seventy-odd
seconds she had.
Then he
looked away. Not even Shannon Foraker could have pulled that one off, he
thought grimly.
* * *
Each
Katana fired twenty-five Vipers.
The six
Dagger squadrons between them put eighteen hundred of them into space over a
thirty-second window, and they scorched through the shell of Havenite
counter-missiles like white-hot awls.
Some of
them were killed.
A few of
the counter-missiles—a very few—managed to discriminate between real threats
and the false targets of the Dragons Teeth platforms. Managed to see through
the blinding strobes of jamming. Managed to steer themselves and their wedges
into the path of the preposterously fleet attackers. But they were the
exception. Most of the kills were attained only because even against an attack
like this, Shannon Foraker's layered defense was at least partially effective.
There were simply so many counter-missiles that blind chance meant some of them
had to find and kill Vipers.
Under the
circumstances, any kills were an impressive achievement . . . but the
counter-missiles managed to actually stop less than three hundred.
Laser clusters
began to fire as the Vipers scorched in, clearly visible to fire control at
last as they broke clear of the blinding interference of outgoing
counter-missile wedges. The missile-defense crews were highly trained, highly
disciplined. A substantial percentage were veterans of the bloody multi-sided
civil war Thomas Theisman had fought against breakaway adherents of the old
régime. Even now, very few of them panicked, and they stood to their stations,
firing steadily, doing their best.
But their
best wasn't good enough. Their fire control software simply wasn't up to the
challenge, couldn't react quickly enough, to missiles capable of that sort of
acceleration. Not at such short range, not without more time to adjust.
Vipers
broke past the last, desperate shield of laser fire, and warheads began to
detonate.
* * *
"Oh my
God," Sandra Inchman whispered, her face white as her surveillance
platforms showed Cimeterre after Cimeterre disappearing from her
plot. They went not by ones or twos, but by tens.
Captain
Abercrombie's was one of the first to die, but he'd kept his tactical uplink
on-line to the very end. Inchman could scarcely believe the acceleration
numbers, yet she had no choice but to believe as the brutally
efficient massacre wiped away the Gaston System's total LAC force in less than
three minutes.
Everette
Beach sat frozen in his command chair. His swarthy face was the color of cold
gravy, and his hands were pincers clamped on the armrests of his chair.
"I
can't—" Commander Randall paused and cleared his throat. "I can't
believe that," he said.
"Believe
it," Beach rasped. He closed his eyes for a moment, then thrust himself up
out of the chair.
"I
knew we were going to lose them," he said flatly. "But I never would
have sent them in if I'd even guessed they wouldn't kill a single Manty."
Some of
Abercrombie's Cimeterres had gotten off their own offensive launches,
but they'd achieved nothing. At their slower acceleration rate, it had taken
them nine seconds longer to reach their targets, and most of the ships which
had launched them were already dead by the time they did. Even the handful of
Cimeterres which hadn't already been destroyed had had little or no
attention to spare for the attack profile updates Republican missiles needed so
much more badly than Manty missiles did, anyway. The tactical crews which would
normally have provided those updates had been too distracted by the threat
they'd faced . . . and too busy dying.
Superior
Manty EW, sidewalls, point defense, and maneuverability had done the rest.
"You
couldn't have known, Sir," Inchman said quietly.
"No.
No, I couldn't have. And just at the moment, that's remarkably cold comfort,
Sandra."
He gave her
a tight smile, trying to take the sting from his response to her effort to
comfort him, and she managed to smile back, briefly.
"What
now, Sir?" Randall asked in a low voice.
"First,
we make sure all of the tactical details on what they just did to Abercrombie
get recorded in the secure database dirt-side. The next poor son-of-a-bitch
some stupid fucking admiral sends in against Manty LACs needs to at least know
what he's getting into. And after that—"
He turned
to look at his chief of staff.
"After
that, it's our turn."
"Good
evening, Senator."
Arnold
Giancola pressed the hold key on the document viewer in his lap as one of his
bodyguards opened the limousine door.
"Good
evening, Giuseppe," Senator Jason Giancola said, nodding courteously to
the security man as he slid in through the opened door to join his older
brother in the luxurious passenger compartment.
Giuseppe
Lauder closed the door behind him, gave the immediate vicinity a quick scan,
then waved to the chase car and climbed into the front passenger seat beside
the driver.
"Central,
State One is departing for the Octagon," he said into his boom mike.
"Central
copies, Giuseppe. State One departing the Residence for the Octagon at . . .
eighteen-thirty-one hours."
The
response wasn't exactly by The Book, but Camille Begin had the Central Dispatch
watch this evening, and she and Lauder had worked together for over three
years.
"Confirm,
Central," Lauder said. He nodded to the driver, and the limo and its chase
car lifted quietly into the evening.
* * *
"Just
what's this 'emergency meeting' all about, Arnold?" Jason Giancola asked.
"You're
asking me?" Arnold replied. "You're the one on the Naval Oversight
Committee, Jason! And—" he smiled without much humor "—our good
friend Thomas Theisman seems to've lost my personal com combination these
days."
"Because
he hates your guts," the younger Giancola said seriously. Arnold cocked an
eyebrow at him, and Jason frowned. "I know you're the brains, Arnold. I've
never pretended you weren't. But I'm telling you, that man is dangerous."
"I
never thought he wasn't," Arnold said mildly. "On the other hand, he
believes passionately in due process. Until—and unless—I do something illegal,
he's not going to take the law into his own hands, however much he and I may .
. . disagree."
"Maybe
not," Jason conceded. "But getting back to my original question, I
don't know any more about this meeting than you do. Except for the fact that I
got my invitation as the ranking minority member of the Naval Committee.
So whatever it is, it sounds like it's got a military dimension."
"What
doesn't, these days?" Arnold said philosophically.
"Not
much."
Jason
glanced up to be certain the partition between the passenger compartment and
the driver's compartment was closed, and that the privacy light on the intercom
was illuminated. Then he looked very intently at his older brother.
"I
don't know everything you've been doing, Arnold. But I do have my own sources,
and according to one of them, someone inside the FIA is showing an awful lot of
interest in Yves Grosclaude. I'm not going to ask you to tell me anything you
don't want me to know, but the source who handed me that seems to think the
interest in question has something to do with you, as well. Which, to be
honest, is one reason I mentioned the fact that Theisman doesn't like you very
much."
"Interest
in Yves?"
Arnold
blinked mildly at the Senator, his expression only moderately curious. After
all, it wasn't as if Jason's warning was the first he'd heard about it.
Jean-Claude Nesbitt had informed him four days ago that someone else had
finally quietly—and quite illegally—accessed Grosclaude's documentary file. The
information had produced a slight adrenaline jag, but mostly, what he'd felt
was something very like relief.
"I
don't have the least idea why anyone should be officially interested in Yves,
Jason," he said after a moment, his gaze candid. "And if someone is,
I don't see how it could possibly concern me."
* * *
His name
was Axel Lacroix, and he was twenty-six T-years old. His family had been
Dolists for three generations, until the First Manticoran War. He'd been only a
child when that war began, but he'd grown to young adulthood against its
backdrop. He'd seen his family move off the BLS at last, seen his parents
regain their self-respect, despite the oppressive grip of the Committee of
Public Safety and State Security. He'd seen the changes beginning in the
educational system, seen the even greater changes his younger siblings had
faced when they entered school. And he'd seen the restoration of the
Constitution and the concepts of personal responsibility . . . and liberty.
He'd been
too young to serve in the First War, and he knew his parents really would have
preferred for him to remain a civilian. But he owed a debt for all of those
changes, and so when the fighting resumed, he'd enlisted in the Republican
Marines.
Because of
his occupation—he was a trained shipyard worker—his induction had been delayed,
but orders to report for duty had finally been delivered to his modest
apartment the day before.
He couldn't
say the prospect didn't worry him. It did. He wasn't an idiot, after all. But
he also had no regrets. He'd spent most of yesterday with his family, and today
it had been time for the "going away party" his buddies and fellow
workers at the yard had put together for him. The alcohol had flowed freely,
there'd been laughter, and some tears, but no one had really been surprised.
And since he was under orders to report the next day, he'd decided it was time
for him to turn in early and sleep off as much of the conviviality as he could.
"You're
sure you're okay to drive, Axel?" Angelo Goldbach asked as they walked
across the parking garage.
"Of
course I am," Axel replied. "It's not very far, anyway."
"I
could run you home," Angelo offered.
"Don't
be silly. I'm fine, I tell you. Besides, if you did, we'd probably sit up late
drinking, and I need the sleep. And Georgina would hunt me down and hurt me if
I kept you out all night again."
"If
you're sure," Angelo said.
They
reached Angelo's parking stall, and he stood looking at his friend for a
moment, then swept him into a quick, rough embrace.
"You watch
your ass, Axel," he said, standing back and shaking Lacroix gently by the
shoulders.
"Damn
straight," Lacroix said jauntily, a little embarrassed by Goldbach's
intensity. He smacked his friend on the upper arm, watched Goldbach climb into
his car and pull out of the parking stall, then continued to his own vehicle.
The
runabout wasn't very new, but personal vehicles of any sort were still
relatively rare, especially here in the capital city, where most people relied
on mass transit. For Lacroix, though, the slightly battered, jaunty little
sports air car had always symbolized his and his family's success in proving
they were more than simply one more clan of Dolist drones. Besides—he grinned
as he unlocked the door and settled into the front seat—it might be old, but it
was still fast, nimble, and downright fun to fly.
* * *
"Five
minutes, Mr. Secretary."
"Thank
you," Arnold Giancola acknowledged Giuseppe Lauder's warning and began
sliding his document viewer and sheafs of record chips into his briefcase.
"Well,
Jason," he said with a smile, "I imagine we'll be finding out shortly
what all the mystery is about. And just between the two of us—"
"Ten
o'clock!"
Giancola's
head snapped up at Lauder's sudden shout. The limousine swerved wildly, yanking
hard to the right, and the Secretary of State's head whipped around to the
left.
He just had
time to see the runabout coming.
* * *
"With
your permission, Madam President, I'll have Admiral Lewis go ahead and begin
the briefing," Secretary of War Thomas Theisman said.
Eloise
Pritchart looked at him, then glanced at the two empty chairs at the conference
table.
"I
realize the situation is serious," she said, after a moment. "But I
think we might give the Secretary of State a few more minutes."
There might
have been just the tiniest hint of a reprimand in her voice, although only
someone who knew her well would have recognized it as such. Theisman did, and
he bobbed his head very slightly in acknowledgment. One or two of the other
people seated around the table seemed to have some difficulty suppressing
smiles as they observed the byplay. But Secretary of Technology Henrietta
Barloi, one of Giancola's staunchest allies in the Cabinet, was not among them.
"I
certainly agree, Madam President," she said frostily. "In fact—"
"Excuse
me, Ma'am."
Pritchart
turned her head, eyebrows rising in mild surprise at the interruption. Sheila
Thiessen, the senior member of her security detachment, was a past mistress at
being totally unobtrusive at high level, sensitive meetings. She also possessed
a formidable degree of self-control—what Kevin Usher called a "poker
face"—which made her present stunned expression almost frightening.
"Yes,
Sheila?" Pritchart's voice was sharper than usual, sharper than she'd
intended it to be. "What is it?"
"There's
been an accident, Madam President. Secretary Giancola's limousine's been
involved in a mid-air."
"What?"
Pritchart stared at Thiessen. Shock seemed to paralyze her vocal cords for a
moment, then she shook herself. "How bad is it? Was the Secretary
injured?"
"I . .
. don't have the details yet," Thiessen said, brushing her unobtrusive
earbug with a fingertip as if to indicate the source of what she did know.
"But it doesn't sound good." She cleared her throat. "The
preliminary message said there appear to have been no survivors, Ma'am."
* * *
"Jesus.
I did not need this on top of everything else."
Thomas
Theisman leaned back in his chair, rubbing both eyes with the heels of his
hands. The emergency meeting had been hastily adjourned while the President
dealt with the stunning news that her Secretary of State and his brother were
both dead. Theisman couldn't fault her priorities, especially not in light of
the inevitable time delays in the transmission of any messages or orders over
interstellar distances. It wasn't as if responding to what had prompted the
meeting in the first place was as time-critical as dealing with the immediate
consequences of what promised to be a fundamental shift in the Republic's
domestic politics.
But now
that everyone who needed to be informed had been told and Pritchart had
released her official statement (which dutifully expressed her profound regrets
over the unexpected demise of her valued colleague and longtime friend), the
President and her closest advisers and allies—Theisman himself, Denis LePic,
Rachel Hanriot, Kevin Usher, and Wilhelm Trajan—had assembled in the Secretary
of War's Octagon office.
"Oh,
we didn't need it in more ways than you know, Tom," Pritchart said
wearily. The last three hours had been a hectic whirl, and even she looked a
little frazzled around the edges.
"Especially
not combined with the news of the Manties' raids," Hanriot said sourly.
"What's that old saying about when it rains it pours?"
"I
expect public opinion isn't going to take kindly to the news the Manties just
bloodied our nose," Theisman agreed. "On the other hand, it's
possible what happened to Giancola will actually distract the newsies. And
let's be honest here—I don't think anyone in this room is especially going to
miss him."
"You
might be surprised." Pritchart's tone was bleak, and Theisman frowned at
her.
"What
do you mean, Eloise? You've been sounding semi-cryptic all evening."
"I
know. I know!"
The
President shook her head. But instead of explaining immediately, she looked at
Usher.
"Have
you heard from Abrioux, Kevin?"
"Yes,
I have." Usher's voice was deeper than usual. "All the preliminary
indications are that it was a genuine accident."
Theisman
looked back and forth between the President and the FIA Director.
"And
just why shouldn't it have been a 'genuine accident'?" he asked. "I
admit I detested the man, but I promise I didn't have been killed!"
Nobody
smiled, and his frown deepened.
"How
did it happen?" Pritchart asked Usher. "I mean, a traffic accident
less than five minutes from the Octagon!"
"According
to the forensics team's preliminary, the other driver—an Axel Lacroix,"
Usher said, consulting his memo pad's display"—was well over the legal
limit for blood-alcohol. Basically, he was simply flying on manual, rather than
under traffic control, and he failed to yield and broadsided Giancola's limo at
a high rate of speed."
"Flying
on manual?" LePic repeated. "If his blood-alcohol was so high, why
was he on manual?"
"We'll
have to wait for the tech teams to complete their examination of the wreckage,
but Lacroix was driving an older model runabout. Right off the top of my head,
I'd guess the internal sensors weren't working properly. Hell, I suppose it's
even possible he deliberately disconnected the safety overrides. It's against
the law, of course, but a lot of people used to do it simply because traffic
control was so spotty they didn't trust it in an emergency. At any rate, for
some reason the overrides which should have locked someone in his condition out
of manual control didn't do it."
"Oh,
how perfectly fucking wonderful," Pritchart said bitterly, and Theisman
leaned forward, both palms flat on his desk.
"All
right," he said, his voice the flat, no-nonsense one of a flag officer
accustomed to command, "suppose you just explain to me what the hell is
going on here?"
If anyone
in that room—with the possible exception of Hanriot—found his tone an
inappropriate one in which to address the President of the Republic, they
didn't say so.
"Tom,"
Pritchart said instead, her voice very serious, "this is going to open an
incredible can of worms."
Theisman
looked like a man in serious danger of spontaneously exploding, and she went on
in the same flat, hard tone.
"Kevin's
been conducting a black investigation of Giancola for almost a month now. Denis
has known about it from the beginning, but I didn't tell you about it
because, frankly, you're an even worse actor than Denis. You already hated
Giancola, and I was afraid you'd have a hard time not making him suspicious
that something was going on. I'd intended to bring you fully on board as soon
as Kevin's team had anything concrete to report."
"Investigating
him over what?" Theisman's eyes were intent, as were Trajan's. Hanriot's
expression still showed more puzzlement than anything else, but alarm was
beginning to show, as well.
"Investigating
the possibility that he falsified our diplomatic correspondence, not the
Manties," Pritchart sighed.
"That
he what?" Theisman erupted to his feet. Trajan didn't even move, as
if astonishment had frozen him, and Hanriot jerked back as if Pritchart had
slapped her.
"Kevin,"
Pritchart said harshly. "Tell them."
All eyes
swivelled to the FIA chief, and he sighed.
"It
all started when I began asking myself a few questions I couldn't answer,"
he said. "And when I started trying to find the answers, it turned
out that—"
* * *
"—so
we finally hacked into Grosclaude's attorney's files six days ago," Usher
concluded, several minutes later. "And when we did, we found Grosclaude
had apparently tucked away evidence which incontrovertibly proved Giancola was
responsible for altering both our own outgoing diplomatic correspondence and
the incoming notes from the Manties."
"Let
me get this straight," Theisman said in a dangerously calm voice.
"You found this file four days ago, and this is the very first I'm
hearing about it?"
"First,"
Pritchart said crisply, "you're the Secretary of War, Tom Theisman.
You are not the Attorney General, you aren't a judge or magistrate, and you had
no pressing 'need to know' until we'd been able to confirm things one way or
the other."
Steely
topaz eyes met angry eyes of brown, and it was the brown ones which looked
away.
"Second,"
the President said slightly more mildly, "as I've already mentioned, your
thespian abilities leave something to be desired in a politician operating at
your level.
"Third,
despite the fact that I very unofficially authorized Kevin's investigation,
it's been totally black and, to be perfectly honest, operating outside the law.
You wouldn't have been very happy to hear about that. And even if you'd been
prepared to sing joyous hosannas, there was the minor problem that the only
evidence we had was illegally obtained.
"And,
fourth—" She gestured at Usher.
"And,
fourth," Usher took over, "the evidence in the files was clearly
fabricated."
"Fabricated?"
Any number
of people would have been prepared to testify that Thomas Theisman was a
tough-minded individual, but he was beginning to sound undeniably shellshocked.
"There
are at least three significant internal inconsistencies," Usher said.
"They aren't at all obvious on a first read-through, but they become quite
apparent when you analyze the entire file carefully."
"So
Giancola didn't do it?"
"On
the basis of the documentary evidence we currently possess, no," Usher
said. "In fact, on the basis of the evidence, it looks very much as if Grosclaude
did it and intended to frame Giancola if and when his actions were
discovered."
"Why
do I seem to hear a 'but' hovering in the background?"
"Because
I'm pretty sure that somehow or other it was actually Giancola who fabricated
the files we found and then planted them on Grosclaude. After having him
murdered."
"In an
'air car accident,'" Theisman said.
"There
seem to be a lot of those going around," Usher agreed with mordant humor.
"So
you see our problem, Tom? And you, Rachel?" Pritchart said. "The only
'evidence' we've actually been able to turn up—illegally—is demonstrably
falsified. Apparently, it was intended to implicate Giancola, which would
undoubtedly be construed by a lot of people, especially his allies and
supporters, as proof he was actually innocent. However, we have the fact that
the person who supposedly falsified it was killed in what Kevin and I both
consider to be a highly suspicious 'accident.' And now, unfortunately, our only
other suspect has just been killed in yet another air car accident.
Bearing in mind just how fond of similar 'accidents' both the Legislaturalists
and StateSec were, how do you suppose public opinion—or Congress—is going to
react if we lay this whole—What did you call it, Kevin? Oh, yes. If we lay this
whole 'shit sandwich' out on the public information boards?"
"But
if he did do it, then our entire justification for going back to war
disappears." Theisman shook his head, his expression haunted.
"Yes,
it does," Pritchart said unflinchingly. "I could argue—convincingly,
I think—that what the High Ridge Government actually did do would have
justified our threatening to use force, or actually using it, to compel the
Manties to negotiate in good faith. Unfortunately, that isn't what we did. We
used force because we appeared to have evidence they were negotiating in bad
faith, and we published the diplomatic correspondence they'd falsified
to prove our point.
"And
that, however much we may regret it, and however we got there, is the point we
have to begin from now. We're in a war. A popular war, with powerful political
support. And all we have is a theory, evidence we can't use (and which was
probably manufactured), and two dead governmental officials, who we'll never be
able to convince the public died in genuine accidents. And on top of that,
we've got the news of these raids by Harrington."
She shook
her head.
"How
bad were the raids?" Hanriot asked. Theisman looked at her, and the
Treasury Secretary grimaced. "Look, part of this is probably a case of my
looking for anything to distract me from this little vest pocket nuke Eloise
and Kevin have just dropped on us. On the other hand, I really do need to
know—both as the head of the Treasury Department and if I'm going to be able to
offer any opinion on how news of them would combine with all the rest of
this."
"Um."
Theisman frowned, then shrugged. "All right, I see your point,
Rachel."
He tipped
his chair back again, clearly marshaling his thoughts.
"To
put it bluntly," he said, after a moment, "Harrington just gave us an
object lesson in how rear area raids ought to be conducted. She hit Gaston,
Tambourin, Squalus, Hera, and Hallman, and there's not a damned bit of orbital
industry left in any of them."
"You're
joking." Hanriot sounded shocked.
"No,"
Theisman said in a tone of massive self-restraint, "I'm not. They took out
everything. And, in the process, they also destroyed our defensive forces in
all five systems."
"How
much did you lose?" Pritchart asked.
"Two
battleships, seven battlecruisers, four old cruisers, three destroyers, and
over a thousand LACs," Theisman said flatly. "And before anyone says anything
else," he continued, "as depressing as those numbers are, remember
the pickets were spread across five separate star systems. None of the system
commanders had anything like the forces he would've required to stand off an
attack planned this carefully and executed in such force. And all of that is a
direct consequence of the deployment patterns I authorized."
"But
if they took out everything," Hanriot said, "then the economic
consequences are—"
"The
economic damage is going to be bad," Theisman said. "But in the final
analysis, all five of the systems were effectively non-contributors to the war
effort. And, for that matter, to the economy as a whole."
Hanriot
started to bristle, but Theisman shook his head.
"Rachel,
that's based on your own department's analysis. Remember the one you and Tony
Nesbitt put together before Thunderbolt?"
Hanriot
settled back in her chair and nodded slowly. After two T-years of hard,
unremitting labor, her analysts, in conjunction with Nesbitt's Commerce
Department, had completed the first really honest, comprehensive survey of the
Republic's economic status in better than a century barely six months before
the shooting had started back up.
"All
these systems were listed in the 'break even' category," the Secretary of
War continued. "At best, they were second-tier systems, and Gaston and
Hallman, in particular, had been money-losing propositions under the
Legislaturalists. That was turning around, but they were still barely
contributing to our positive cash flow. The destruction in the star systems is
going to have a net negative effect, I'm sure—your analysts will be able to
evaluate that better than I'm in any position to do—because the damage to the
local civilian infrastructure means we'll be forced to commit federal relief
funds and resources on an emergency basis. But none of them were particularly
critical. Which is, frankly, the reason they weren't more heavily defended. We
can't be strong everywhere, and the systems we've left most weakly covered are
the ones we can most readily survive losing."
"Granted,"
Pritchart said after a moment. "But what we can afford in cold-blooded
economic and industrial terms and what we can afford in terms of public opinion
may not be exactly the same thing."
"They
almost certainly aren't the same thing, and the Manties clearly understand
that," Theisman replied. "Whoever selected their targets did a damned
good job. Harrington was able to use relatively limited forces and still attain
crushing local superiority. She took virtually no losses of her own, cost us
sixteen hyper-capable units in addition to all those LACs, and scored the
Manty's first clear-cut offensive victory of the war. And, to be
perfectly honest, the fact that they did it under Honor Harrington's command is
also going to have an impact. She's something of our own personal bogeyman,
after all.
"So,
completely exclusive of any physical damage she's done to us," he
continued, "this is inevitably going to have an impact in Congress. I've
already got the General Staff considering how we're going to respond when the
senators and representatives from every system which hasn't been raided yet
start demanding we strengthen their covering forces."
"I'm
afraid you're absolutely right about what they're going to demand,"
Pritchart said. "And it's going to be hard to explain why they can't have
it."
"No,"
Theisman disagreed. "It's going to be very easy to explain we can't
possibly be strong everywhere, and especially not without frittering away our
offensive capability, exactly as the Manties want us to do. What's going to be
hard is convincing frightened men and women to listen to the
explanation."
"Not
just members of Congress, either," LePic said heavily. "It's going to
be just as hard to explain to the general public."
"Actually,"
Pritchart said, "I'm less concerned about explaining that to them, or even
explaining how we 'let this happen,' than I am about the impact on public
support for the war. It isn't going to undermine it—not at this point, at least.
What it's going to do is further inflame public opinion."
"I
admit it could have that effect," Trajan said, "but—"
"No,
Wilhelm. She's right," Hanriot interrupted. "Public opinion has been
riding a sustained emotional high since Thunderbolt. As far as the woman in the
street's concerned, we cleaned the Manties' clock everywhere except at
Sidemore, and there's a tremendous feeling of satisfaction, of having
rehabilitated ourselves as a major military power. I think it would be
impossible to overestimate the degree to which our sense of national pride has
rebounded with the restoration of the Constitution, the turnaround in the
economy, and now the successful reconquest of the occupied systems, coupled
with the enormous losses we've inflicted on the Manties' navy. So far, this has
got to have been the most popular war in our history.
"And
what's happened now?" She shrugged. "The Manties have punched us
back. They've hurt us, and they've demonstrated that they may be able to do it
again. But our actual naval losses, however painful they may be, are literally
nothing compared to the losses we inflicted on them in
Thunderbolt. So what's going to happen, at least in the short term, is that
public opinion's going to demand we go out and whack the Manties back, harder,
to demonstrate to them that they don't want to piss us off. There's going to be
some panic, some shouting about reinforcing to protect our more vulnerable star
systems, but mostly, people are going to figure the best way to do that is to
finish Manticore off, once and for all."
"I'm
afraid Rachel's right, Wilhelm," Pritchart said. "And that's one
reason I wish to hell Arnold hadn't gotten his goddamned traitorous ass
killed this evening. If I'm ever going to go public with all this, this would
be the best time to do it—now, immediately. The longer we wait, the more
suspect the theory's going to look for anyone who's not already inclined to
believe it. But there's absolutely nothing concrete we can give the newsies,
Congress, or anybody else, only theories and suspicions we can't prove. If I
did what I really ought to do—ordered a standstill of our own forces, told the
Manties what we think happened, and asked for an immediate cease-fire—I'd
probably be impeached, even assuming anyone in Congress, or any of Arnold's allies
in the Cabinet, were prepared to believe us for a moment. And, frankly, I don't
know if the Constitution could survive the kind of dogfight this would turn
into."
Silence
hung heavily in the office for at least two minutes. Then Theisman shook
himself.
"Bottom
line time, Madam President," he said. "As I see it, we have two
options. One is to do what you 'really ought to do' on the basis of what we think
happened. The other is to vigorously pursue military victory, or at least
our efforts to attain a sufficiently powerful position of military advantage to
force the Manties to accept our original, fairly limited objectives.
What I don't think we can do is try to accomplish both of those at once."
"Not
without some sort of proof of what happened," Hanriot agreed.
"At
the moment, I think it's entirely possible we'll never have that sort of
proof," Usher cautioned. "These are awfully muddy waters, and the
only two people who really knew what happened—Grosclaude and Giancola—are both
dead."
"Sooner
or later we're going to have to get to the bottom of it, and it's going to have
to be done publicly," Pritchart said. "There's no other way for an
open society which believes in the rule of law to handle it. And if we don't do
it now, then when we finally get around to it, all of us—and especially me, as
President—are going to be castigated for delaying open disclosure. Our personal
reputations, and quite possibly everything we've accomplished, are going to
come under attack, and a lot of it's going to be vicious and ugly. And, to be
perfectly honest, we'll deserve it."
She looked
around the office, her shoulders squared.
"Unfortunately,"
she said into the silence, "at this moment, I don't see any choice. Kevin,
keep looking. Find us something. But until he does," she swept the
office once again with her eyes, "I see no option but to keep our
suspicions to ourselves and get on with winning my goddamned war."
"All
right," Admiral Marquette said. "What do we actually know?"
"We're
still getting the details, Sir," Rear Admiral Lewis told the Chief of the
Naval Staff and Thomas Theisman's immediate uniformed subordinate. "We
know there's still a lot to come, but so far, it looks like most of what we
don't already have is only going to be variations on the same theme."
"And
those variations are?" Marquette prompted when Lewis paused.
"I'm
sorry, Arnaud," Vice Admiral Trenis said, "but I thought Admiral
Theisman was going join us today."
"And
you're wondering why I'm not waiting for him." Marquette smiled thinly.
"I'm afraid that's one point about which not even you and Victor have a
'need to know,' Linda. Let's just say something else has come up which requires
the attention of the Secretary and certain other members of the Cabinet. And
when they get done with that meeting," he added a bit more pointedly,
"they're going to want analysis and, if possible, recommendations from us.
So, let's get to it, shall we?"
"Of
course, Sir," Trenis said, and nodded to Lewis. "Victor?"
"Yes,
Ma'am."
Lewis
tapped his memo pad to life, glanced at it—more out of habit than need,
Marquette suspected—and then looked back up at his two superiors.
"I
think probably our initial evaluation of why they hit the targets they hit was
on the money," he said. "All five systems have enough population to
give them several representatives in the lower house, plus, of course, their
senators. If the object is to create political pressure to disperse our forces,
that would obviously have been a factor in their thinking, and my people are
confident it was.
"Economically,
as I'm sure we're all already aware, the elimination of their industrial bases
will have only a minor direct impact on our ability to sustain our war effort.
The indirect economic implications are something else, of course, and I expect
Secretary Hanriot and Secretary Nesbitt are going to be less than happy dealing
with the civilian fallout."
"How
complete was the destruction, Victor?" Marquette asked. "Was it is
bad as the initial reports indicated?"
"Worse,
Sir," Lewis said glumly. Marquette arched an eyebrow, and the rear admiral
gave an unhappy shrug.
"Our
own raids have been primarily probes for information, Sir—reconnaissances in
force, for all intents and purposes. We've used light units, primarily LACs,
and we've settled for picking off individual industrial lobes that we could get
to without taking on really heavy forces. And, of course, the Manties don't have
anywhere near as many systems to protect as we do. That means the ones they do
have to cover are generally picketed much more heavily than anything except our
truly critical ones.
"Harrington's
target selection was different. She wasn't after information; she was here to
deliver a message. She picked star systems which weren't heavily defended, and
she attacked them with much heavier forces. She not only brought along the
firepower she needed to destroy all of our defensive units, she also brought
along enough she was able to spread out, take her time, and destroy effectively
every single orbital platform in each of the systems she hit. Asteroid
extraction centers, foundries, power satellites, communications satellites,
navigation satellites, construction platforms, freight platforms, warehouses—all
of it, Sir. Gone."
"And
that was part of her 'message,' as you put it?"
"Yes,
Sir. It was a statement of the level of 'scorched earth" policy the
Manties are prepared to embrace. It was also a statement that they intend to
operate as aggressively as possible within the limitations of their force
availability. Please note, for example, that they committed both Invictus-class
superdreadnoughts and what appears to be their complete current inventory of
Agamemnon-class pod battlecruisers. And they weren't particularly shy about
showing us just what the Katanas and those frigging awful missiles of
theirs could do, either."
"In
other words, they're prepared to pull out all the stops."
"Yes,
Sir. And they're also prepared to let some of their technical cats out of the
bag. They're not trying to maintain operational security, which is an
indication of how important they believe their raids to be. This is the first
team they're sending in, Admiral. The fact that Harrington is in command of it
would be a strong enough indication of that, but the force mix they're
employing confirms it, in my opinion."
"And
mine," Marquette agreed. Trenis nodded as well, but then she tapped a
forefinger on the conference table.
"There's
another message in what they've done, this far, at least, Arnaud," she
said.
"I'm
certain there are quite a few," the chief of staff said dryly. "Which
one did you intend to point out?"
"The
casualty figures," she said flatly. "I know we took virtually one hundred
percent casualties in our LAC groups in Gaston, Tambourin, Squalus, and
Hallman. And our shipboard casualties were almost as bad—not surprisingly, I
suppose, when they destroyed every single ship they managed to bring into
range. But in Hera, Harrington herself gave Milligan the option of saving his
people's lives. And they didn't kill or even injure a single civilian when they
took out the infrastructure in that system, or anywhere else."
"That
was partly because they had the time, Ma'am," Lewis pointed out.
"They had complete control of the star systems, and they could afford to
give our civilians time to evacuate."
"Agreed.
But Harrington didn't have to let Milligan stand down his forces. And they
would have been justified, under accepted interstellar law, in simply giving us
'a reasonable time' to evacuate, which would have been a lot shorter than the
time they actually gave us." She shook her head. "No, I think part of
it was the Manties' way—or, at least, Harrington's way—of telling us that if we
show restraint—whenever we can, at least—they'll do the same."
"You
may have a point," Marquette said. "Certainly Harrington's record,
despite that ridiculous 'murder conviction' the Legislaturalists cooked up
after Basilisk, would lead us to expect that out of her. But I think she may
also be being a bit subtler than some of our analysts would have expected out
of her."
"Subtler?"
"Yes.
Think about the other side of her 'message' to Milligan. 'Our technical
superiority is so great we could kill you anytime we want to, but because we're
nice guys, we're not going to today. All you have to do is blow up your own ships
and get out of our way.'"
Marquette's
irony was withering, and Trenis frowned.
"You're
seeing it as an attack on our people's confidence and morale."
"At
least in part. Mind you, from what we know of Harrington, I'm sure she was
delighted to not to kill anyone she didn't have to. But she apparently also
believes in killing as many birds with each stone as she can."
Trenis
nodded silently for a moment, then looked almost diffidently at the chief of
staff.
"May I
ask if a Board's going to be convened on Milligan's actions?"
"I
think you can confidently assume one is," Marquette said a bit grimly.
"And I'm not at all sure how it's going to come out, but if I had to place
a bet, it wouldn't be on a happy outcome. The fact is that Milligan showed good
sense in not getting his people killed for nothing. Unfortunately, that
psychological warfare element I just mentioned has to be considered as well. I suspect
any Board's going to find he acted appropriately . . . and that he's going to
be beached anyway, as a sort of object lesson. It's not fair, but we have to
consider the morale of the Service as a whole."
"I
agree that we do, Sir," Trenis said after a moment. "On the other
hand, we've gone to some lengths to convince our people they won't get shot as
an example to others if they get caught in the gears through no fault of their
own. And, frankly, that's exactly what happened to Tom Milligan. He couldn't
run, he couldn't bring the enemy into his weapons' range, and the force mix we'd
assigned him was hopelessly inadequate even to stand off modern Manty LACs,
much less SD(P)s. If we hammer him for his actions, then we tell people we
expect them to do the same thing Admiral Beach did, and that we'll hammer them
if they don't."
"Um."
Marquette pursed his lips, then shrugged. "I said I wasn't sure how it's
going to come out, and what you've just said is the main reason I'm not. As for
Beach, he wasn't given the same option Harrington gave Milligan, so it's not
exactly as if he rejected the opportunity to save his people's lives. And from
what we've been able to piece together about his tactics, they were about as
good as someone in a position that hopeless could have come up with."
"I
wasn't criticizing him, Sir. As a matter of fact, Everette and I knew one
another for almost fifteen T-years. I'm just not sure most of our people would
appreciate the difference between the options he and Milligan had, and I don't
want to create a situation in which our flag officers and captains start to
think we expect them to go down, every beam firing, no matter how hopeless the
situation." Trenis' expression was grim. "I lost too many friends,
saw too many good ships blown out of space, because their COs knew that was exactly
what the Committee expected out of them."
Marquette
considered her thoughtfully. Linda Trenis wasn't simply one of the new
Republican Navy's senior admirals. As the head of the Bureau of Planning, she
was responsible for the formulation and implementation of doctrine and training
standards. As such, the concerns she was expressing fell squarely and correctly
within her purview.
"Very
well, Linda. Your concern is noted, and I'll make certain it's taken into consideration
whenever the Board on Hera is impaneled. For what it's worth, I agree that the
points you've raised are entirely valid. The problem's going to be exactly
where we balance them against the need to maintain the most aggressive mental
and psychological stance we can."
Trenis
nodded, and Marquette turned back to Victor Lewis.
"As you
just pointed out, Victor, they did show us their best where their combat
hardware is concerned. What did we learn in the process?"
"Not
as much as I'd have liked, Sir," Lewis said frankly. "Especially not
given the price we paid for the info we did get. There are a few things we know
now that we didn't know then, though.
"The
one drawback to Milligan's acceptance of Harrington's terms, from our
perspective over at Operational Research, is that her SD(P)s were never forced
to fire. As such, we weren't able to get any sort of feel for how the Invictuses'
armaments may vary from their Medusa/Harrington ships. The one thing
that does stand out from the visual scans some of our recon platforms got and
transmitted down to the planet before Harrington wiped them out is that the
reports that the Invictus mounts no broadside missile tubes appears to
be accurate. We're not certain why. We've had to make the same decision
primarily because our missiles are so damned big, compared to theirs, that we
really can't afford the mass penalty for launchers big enough to handle them in
ships already designed to deploy pods. All the indications from captured
hardware and what we've gotten from Erewhon are that the Manties don't suffer
from that particular problem, or not, at least, to anything like the same
degree, so there's obviously a different basis for the design philosophy.
"In
the case of Gaston, we got a lot of sensor information on the Grayson
Katanas. I'm having all of it sent directly to Admiral Foraker at Bolthole
for her teams' consideration, although my initial take on it is that most of it
indicates the Katana is built around more of that damned Manticoran
miniaturization tech we can't match yet. Certainly, they're very small units,
with extremely high acceleration rates. They appear to have all the Shrike's
defensive capabilities, and whatever the hell they call that new missile of
theirs. On the other hand, they never fired a shot in energy range, so we're
not sure what they carry there. Even bearing in mind that we're talking about a
Manty-derived design, there can't be a lot of room for the kind of energy
armament the Shrike hauls around with it.
"The
real bad news seems to be those missiles. They obviously can't have the sort of
range our Cimeterres' missiles do, but they're incredibly fast. At the
very minimum, we're going to have to completely overhaul our missile defense
software to deal with their speed and maneuverability, and their sensor and
tracking ability appear to have significantly improved, as well. The fact that
the Manties obviously know about the Triple Ripple, and have adapted their
tactics to defeat it, further complicates the situation. Frankly, at least
until the next-generation LACs start coming out of Bolthole, I don't think our
LACs are going to be able to encounter Manty units—or, at least, Katanas—with
any realistic hope of victory."
"My
initial feeling was that Victor was being unduly pessimistic, Sir," Trenis
put in. "Having had a better look at the raw data, though, I no longer
think that. My own feeling, at this time, is that we need to restrict the
Cimeterres essentially to the anti-missile role. If they have to mix it up
with a Manty or Grayson LACs, they're really going to need to do it from within
our own starships' engagement envelope. They're going to need the support that
badly."
"Wonderful,"
Marquette muttered sourly. Then he shrugged. "On the other hand, we never
did see the Cimeterre as anything except a way to blunt Manty LAC
attacks. Certainly they've been useful in other roles, but no one on our side
is likely to confuse them with a main combatant. Actually, I'm more interested
in what we know about their Agamemnons."
"First
of all, Sir, they're big," Lewis said. "Our best estimate from
Admiral Beach's tactical take is that they're somewhere around one-point-seven
to one-point-eight megatons. That makes them about twice the size of their
previous battlecruiser classes.
"Secondly,
they don't appear to deploy the same number of pods per salvo as we've seen out
of their SD(P)s. Manty pods are damnably hard sensor targets, but it looks like
they were only rolling four pods at a time. However—" he looked up and met
Marquette's eyes "—the pods they were rolling apparently carried fourteen
missiles each."
"Fourteen?"
"That's
correct, Sir. So their four-pod salvos were effectively rolling almost as many
missiles as their SD(P)s' six-pod salvos."
"How
in God's name did they cram that many missiles into a single pod?"
Marquette demanded.
"I
know I'm in charge of NavInt, Sir, but that's a question I just can't answer.
Not yet. We do know they've gone to a fusion plant, instead of capacitors, in
their current-generation MDMs. All indications, however, were that they were
sticking with about the same number of birds per pod and simply reducing the
size of each pod, to get more combat endurance rather than greater salvo
density. That doesn't seem to be what they've done here, though, and so
far, we don't have a clue how you could possibly stuff that many missiles—even
if they are fusion-powered—into battlecruiser-sized pods. Some of my people are
suggesting that we must be looking at an entirely new missile, but if we are, they
managed to keep its development completely black. Which, unfortunately,
wouldn't exactly be a first. Say what you will about the Manties, they're
clearly aware of the importance of their tech advantage, and they're very good
at maintaining security on their R&D programs."
"Fourteen
birds," Marquette muttered, shaking his head. "Jesus. If they do start
packing their SD(P)s' pods that full, proportionately, we're going to be in
even more trouble in a long-range duel."
"Agreed,"
Trenis said. "On the other hand, they appear to have concluded that
sixty-missile salvos are about the max for their fire control. For the moment,
at least."
"Sure,"
Marquette snorted. "Until they get around to upgrading it!"
He frowned
down at the tabletop, considering what he'd been told so far, then inhaled
deeply.
"All
right. Whatever else we may think about Admiral Beach's tactics, or the
casualties he suffered, we're damned lucky we got all the tactical info that we
did. And we wouldn't have, if he'd declined to fight. Another point," he
looked up at Trenis, "to be considered when the Board sits on Milligan's
actions.
"I can
tell from what you've already said," he returned his attention to Lewis,
"that Admiral Theisman and I are going to want to sit down and spend some
time with your detailed, written report. And, as you've already observed, it's
imperative we get all of this information to Admiral Foraker as soon as
possible.
"However,
I want you personally, Victor, to concentrate on something else."
"Sir?"
"There's
going to be hell to pay in Congress when news of this is confirmed. People are
going to be screaming for additional protection for their constituents,
and it's going to be damned hard to tell them no. By the same token, if we're
looking at an increased technological inferiority, it's going to be more
imperative than ever that we keep our combat power concentrated. I can't begin
to predict how that's all going to play out—politics, thank God, aren't part of
my turf! But I do know, from the brief conversations I've had so far with the
Secretary, that he's going to want some sort of prediction of where they're
likely to do this to us next."
"Sir,"
Lewis said, his expression troubled, "I don't see any way to do that.
There are literally dozens of places they could hit us the way they did here.
We've got maybe twenty-five or thirty first-tier systems, and that many again
secondary or tertiary systems. Without completely dispersing our fleet
strength, we can't begin to cover that broad an area against attacks in the
strength these demonstrated. And I'm afraid tea leaf-readers have at least as
good a chance as my analysts do of predicting which of them we need to
cover. For that matter, if they scout aggressively enough, they'll be able to
tell where we've beefed up the defenses and simply go someplace else. What they
did with their stealthed destroyers and FTL arrays this time around is proof
enough of that."
"I
assure you, I'm already painfully aware of the points you just raised,"
Marquette said grimly. "I'm also aware that I'm asking you to do something
which is quite possibly impossible. I don't have any choice but to ask you,
however, and you don't have any choice but to figure out how to do it
anyway. There has to be some sort of underlying pattern to their target
selection. I can't believe someone like Harrington is just reaching into a hat
and pulling out names at random. For that matter, the spacing on this cluster
of raids demonstrates she isn't. So try to get inside her head. Run it through
the computers, kick it around, try to get some sort of feel for what kind of
tendencies or inclinations may be pushing her choices."
"We
can do that, Sir—run it through the computers and kick it around, I mean.
Whether or not we can get 'inside her head' is something else entirely. And,
Sir, I'm afraid that even if that's possible, we're going to need a bigger
sample of her target selections before any pattern begins to suggest itself. In
other words, I don't think I'll be able to give you any sort of prediction
until after she's hit us again, possibly more than once."
"Understood,"
Marquette said in a heavy voice. "Do your best. No one's going to expect
miracles out of you, but we need your very best on it. If we can guess right,
even once, and smack her with heavier forces than she anticipates—maybe even
mousetrap one of her raiding forces—we may be able to make them reconsider this
entire strategy."
"That's
the last of them, Your Grace."
"Everyone?"
"Yes,
Ma'am." Mercedes Brigham smiled hugely at Honor. "According to the
preliminary reports, we didn't lose anyone on combat ops."
"That's
. . . hard to believe," Honor said. She reached up to gently caress
Nimitz's ears and shook her head. "Mind you, I'm delighted to hear it. I
just didn't expect it."
"Good
planning, good target selection, detailed pre-attack reconnaissance, FTL sensor
capability, overwhelming force advantage at the point of contact, and Katanas
to smack hell out of their piece-of-crap LACs." Brigham shrugged.
"Ma'am, we were playing with our deck, and they didn't even get to cut the
cards, much less shuffle."
"Not
this time," Honor agreed. "I suspect they're going to make it a
priority to see to it we don't do that to them again, though."
"Which
was the entire point of the exercise, wasn't it, Your Grace?"
Brigham
grinned at her. Nimitz bleeked in amusement, echoing the chief of staff's
cheerfulness, and Honor was forced to smile back at her.
"Yes,
Mercedes. Yes, it was," she agreed. "And I rather suspect the
Admiralty's going to be pleased with us."
"I'm
sure they are," Brigham said a bit less jubilantly. "And they're also
going to want us to go out and do it again, as soon as we can."
"Of
course they are, although I'm sure we'll have at least a couple of weeks to
plan."
"I'd
like to have more time, Your Grace," Brigham's tone was downright sober
this time. Honor looked at her a little quizzically, and the chief of staff
shrugged. "Part of the reason it went so well this time was that you,
Andrea, Admiral Truman and Admiral McKeon, and I had so much time to kick it
around. There was time to look at the best current intelligence data, to model
the attacks, to think about where their rear area coverage was going to be
weakest. With less time, we're more likely to miss something and stub our
toes."
"It's
always that way, isn't it?" Honor's smile was a bit more crooked than the
artificial nerves in the left side of her face could normally account for.
"Remember what Clausewitz said."
"Which
quote this time?"
"'Everything
in war is very simple, but the simplest thing is difficult.'"
"Well,
he got that one right, Your Grace."
"He
got quite a few of them right, actually. Especially for a theorist who never
exercised high command himself. Of course, he got some of them wrong,
too. In this case, though, I think we'll probably be okay for at least Cutworm
II. Especially if any of our additional units have reported in while we were
away."
"That would
be nice, wouldn't it? Care to place any small wagers on whether or not they
have?"
"Not
particularly." Honor shook her head, her smile tarter than ever. "We
should know in the next few hours, one way or the other. In the meantime,
Tim," she looked over her shoulder at her flag lieutenant, "please
have Harper make a general signal. I'd like all flag officers to repair aboard
the flagship, with their senior staffers, by fourteen-thirty hours. I want them
prepared to discuss each system, including analysis of damage inflicted, and
any observations on the Havenites' system defense doctrine. I also want
discussion of how well our current doctrine and hardware worked and any
suggestions for how we might make further improvements. And tell them to plan
on staying for dinner."
"Yes,
Ma'am." Lieutenant Meares grinned. "But this time, they all know what
that means!"
"Lieutenant,
I have no idea what you're talking about," Honor said sternly, almond eyes
twinkling, then made a shooing motion with one hand. "Now run along and
see to it before something nasty happens to you."
"On my
way, Ma'am, and—" Meares paused in the day cabin hatch just long enough to
give her another grin "—shaking in abject terror."
He
disappeared, and Honor looked at Brigham.
"Is it
my imagination, or does the staff seem to be getting just a bit uppity these
days?"
"Oh, definitely
your imagination, Your Grace."
"I
thought it was."
* * *
"Okay,"
Solomon Hayes said, "what's so important?"
He sat in
an expensive Landing restaurant, looking out through its two hundredth-floor's
crystoplast wall across the waters of Jason Bay. The sun was just dipping below
the horizon, turning the wrinkled blue sheet of water bloody and painting the
clouds in crimson, purple, and vermilion.
The food
was almost good enough to justify its priciness, and the view, he admitted, was
spectacular. And not just where the scenery was concerned. The exquisitely
attired woman seated across the table from him looked as if she'd probably
profited from more than a bit of biosculpt, and the flowing mass of beautiful
red hair spilling down her back spoke directly to Hayes's smattering of ancient
Irish genes.
She was
also immoderately wealthy, with powerful political connections. Most of which,
he conceded, could probably be construed as liabilities, just at the moment.
Still, she'd been an important inside source during the High Ridge years, and
she continued to offer an insight into the inner workings of the currently
gelded Conservative Association.
"So
direct and to the point," she said now, pouting slightly. "You might
at least pretend I'm more than just a newsy's source, Derek."
"My
dear Countess," Hayes replied, leering at her only half-professionally,
"I believe I've amply demonstrated in other environs that you're much more
than just a source. In fact, I do hope you haven't made other plans for the
evening?"
"Bertram
has, but since he didn't discuss them with me—and since I believe they include
a pair of barely legal-age girls—I felt free to reserve my own evening for
other . . . activities. Did you have something in mind?"
She smiled,
and Hayes smiled back.
"As a
matter of fact, I do. Something involving a friend's yacht, moonlight,
champagne, silk sheets, and a few other things like that."
"My
goodness, you do know how to compensate an informant for her news, don't
you?" There was an ever so faint steeliness in the glorious blue eyes
across the table from him.
"I
try," he said, not attempting to deny the implication. There wasn't much
point, after all. Besdies, Countess Fairburn had used him at least as much as
he'd ever used her. That little matter of the supposed Harrington-White Haven
love affair came to mind, among others.
"And
you succeed nicely," she told him, sipping wine. Then she smiled.
"And since you've taken such pains to arrange a pleasant evening, why
don't we go ahead and get the sordid details out of the way now?"
"I
think that would be an excellent idea," he agreed. "The best reason
to put business before pleasure is to dispose of the former early so you can
concentrate on the latter properly."
"I see
why you've done so well working with words," she said, setting the wine
glass down. "Very well. It's actually a fairly small tidbit, in some ways,
but I'll confess that I take a certain amount of pleasure in being able to pass
it along to you. After all, there's not much point pretending I'm not a rather
vengeful sort at heart."
She smiled
again, and this time there was no humor at all in the expression.
"That sounds
a bit ominous," he said lightly, watching her warily.
"Oh, I
suppose it will be . . . for some. And after that unfortunate little fiasco
last year, I'm sure you'll want to check it out independently before you do
anything with it." Hayes's eyes had narrowed at the "fiasco"
reference, and she chuckled. "It just happens to have come to my
attention," she said, "that the heroic Duchess Harrington, before her
departure for Trevor's Star, stopped by the Briarwood Reproduction Center."
Hayes
blinked.
"Briarwood?"
he repeated after a moment.
"Precisely.
Now, I suppose it's possible she was there to consult with the doctors because
of some fertility problem. That seems a bit unlikely, given her profession and
current duties, however. And even if it didn't, according to a little bird who
sang into my ear, she was there for a routine outpatient procedure. The tubing
of a fetus, I believe."
Hayes
looked at her, his eyes narrower than ever, and she smiled back sweetly.
"How
good a source is your 'little bird'?" he asked.
"Quite
good, actually."
"And
he—or she—says this is Harrington's child?"
"I
can't imagine any other reason for her to have outpatient surgery, can
you?"
"Not
at Briarwood," Hayes conceded. "Not unless, for some bizarre reason,
she was trying to get pregnant at this moment." He thought some
more. "Do you happen to know who the father is?"
"No."
For just a
moment, something ugly flashed in the countess' eyes. Disappointment, Hayes
realized. He knew who she wanted the father to be, but she knew
equally well that after the way Emily Alexander had rabbit-punched the attempt
to link her husband and "the Salamander," he wasn't about to leap to
any conclusions that couldn't be firmly substantiated. Not in this case, at
least, no matter how sharp a personal ax he had to grind. Or perhaps because
of how very personal this particular ax was.
"Pity,"
he said, picking up his own wine and sipping thoughtfully.
"I do
have three other bits of information," Fairburn said. "Straws in the
wind, one might say."
"Which
are?"
"First,
Harrington's declined to declare paternity. She didn't simply ask Briarwood to
maintain confidentiality; she didn't tell them. Secondly, and not surprisingly,
I suppose, she's designated her mother, Dr. Harrington, to act in loco parentis
for her child while she's away or if anything . . . unfortunate should happen
to her. And third—third, dear Derek, Dr. Harrington is also the
physician of record for one Emily Alexander, who has mysteriously decided,
after sixty or seventy years in a life-support chair, that the time has come
for her and her husband to become parents, as well."
Hayes
blinked again. He was sure he could have come up with half a dozen explanations
for the coincidences Fairburn had just listed without even trying. But that
didn't matter. His instincts told him that, motivated by vengefulness or not,
the countess had zeroed in on what was actually going on. Especially in light
of Harrington's refusal to declare paternity even to Briarwood's medical staff.
"Those
are interesting straws, Elfrieda," he conceded after several seconds.
"And I do have my own ways of confirming your information—not that I
believe for a moment that it isn't accurate." This time, he didn't
add, although he was certain she heard it anyway. "I imagine you'd like me
to maintain confidentiality about your own part in bringing this to my
attention?"
"I'm
afraid so," she sighed with what he realized was genuine regret. "A
part of me would dearly love to let that lowborn upstart bitch know precisely
who blew the whistle on her. Given the current . . . unfortunate political
climate and the disgusting way the proles are fawning all over her, however, it
probably wouldn't be very wise to make myself a target for retaliation. Bertram
wouldn't thank me for it, either."
"I
thought as much," Hayes said, projecting as much sympathy as he could.
"So I'll be very careful to document any hard facts I use without
mentioning your name."
"Such
a dear, cautious man!" Countess Fairburn cooed.
"I
try, Elfrieda. I try."
* * *
"Honor!"
Sir Thomas
Caparelli came to his feet, stepping out from behind his desk and smiling
broadly as he reached out to grip Honor's hand firmly.
"It's good
to see you," he said, and Honor smiled as she tasted the personal
warmth behind his greeting. "And you, of course, Nimitz," Caparelli
continued, nodding to the treecat on Honor's shoulder. "And you,
Commodore," he added with a smile as he released Honor's hand to shake
Mercedes Brigham's.
"I see
you have your priorities in proper order, Sir Thomas," Brigham murmured,
responding to the twinkle in the First Space Lord's eye.
"Well,
Her Grace and Nimitz do rather come as a unit, Commodore."
"That
they do, Sir."
"Sit
down. Sit down, both of you—well, all three of you!" he invited, waving at
the comfortable chairs in the conversational nook around his splendid office's
coffee-table. Two carafes—one of coffee, and one of hot chocolate—steamed on
the coffee-table in question, which also offered cups and saucers, a plate of
fresh croissants, and a fresh head of celery.
Honor and
Brigham obeyed, and Nimitz slithered down into Honor's lap, eyeing the celery
with cheerful greediness. Honor chuckled and gave him a gentle smack, and he
rolled over onto his back, grabbing her wrist with true-hands and hand-feet and
wrestling with it cheerfully.
"And
this," Caparelli observed with a chuckle, "represents Sphinx's native
sentient species?"
"Some
'cats tend to revert to kittenhood more readily than others, Sir Thomas,"
Honor told him, swatting at Nimitz with her free hand while he purred happily.
"I'm
glad he likes you," Caparelli said. "I've seen pictures of what those
claws of his can do." He shook his head. "Personally, I've always
wondered how something that short can do so much damage."
"That's
probably because, like most people, you think of treecat claws the way you do
of terrestrial cats' claws. In fact, they aren't at all the same.
Stinker?"
Nimitz
released her wrist and forearm and sat up in her lap. He extended one
true-hand—long, wiry fingers slightly crooked—and unsheathed his needle-pointed
claws. Caparelli leaned closer, his expression fascinated, and Nimitz held them
up where he could see them clearly.
"If
you'll notice," Honor said, "his claws are much broader at the base
than those of a terrestrial cat. When people call them 'scimitar-shaped,' it's
literally descriptive, except that the wrong side is edged. And they retract
into some fairly specialized, cartilage-lined receptacles, because they're
actually more like a terrestrial shark's tooth than anything someone from Old
Earth would call a 'claw.' The actual composition of the claw itself is more
like stone than it is like horn, cartilage, or bone, and this curved inner
section is at least as sharp as most flaked obsidian knives. It's true they
aren't very long, but for all intents and purposes, he's got scalpel blades on
each finger that are the next best thing to a centimeter and a half in length.
That's why a 'cat in a true killing rage looks so much like a berserk buzz saw.
Each individual cut isn't that deep, but with all six limbs going at once in
repeated slashes, well—"
She
shrugged, and Caparelli shuddered slightly at the image her words had evoked.
"I
never realized just how formidable those weapons were," he confessed.
"Well,
Sir Thomas," Honor said cheerfully, "if you want something to give
you real nightmares, you might consider that hexapumas—which, you know, are
just a little bigger—have exactly the same sort of claws. Of course, their
claws tend to be eight or nine centimeters long. Which is why we Sphinxians
never go into the bush unarmed."
"Your
Grace," Caparelli said, "if I were a Sphinxian and knew about
hexapuma claws, I wouldn't go into the bush at all!"
"We do
lose the occasional tourist," she said, straight-faced.
"No
doubt," he said dryly, leaning forward and personally pouring coffee for
Brigham and chocolate for Honor. He waved at the croissants and celery, and
settled back in his own chair with a cup and saucer while they helped
themselves.
"I've
got a formal meeting set up for tomorrow afternoon," he told them more
seriously. "I'll have several people there—including Hamish, Honor—and I
hope you and Commodore Brigham will be prepared to give us a comprehensive
brief and answer any questions about Cutworm."
He raised
one eyebrow interrogatively, and Honor nodded.
"Good.
In the meantime, I just wanted to say the preliminary read on Cutworm indicates
that it did exactly what we had in mind. Good work. Especially pulling it off
without any losses of your own. Whether or not it has the long term effect we
hoped for remains to be seen, but no one else could have done the job better.
Or, for that matter, as well, probably."
"Thank
you, Sir Thomas," Honor murmured, tasting the sincerity behind his words.
"We've
managed to scare up a few more units for you, as well," Caparelli
continued. "Not as many as I'd like, or anywhere near as many as we'd
originally scheduled, although some of them will be a bit newer than projected,
to compensate. What we have been able to dig up will be waiting for you when
you get back to Eighth Fleet. The main problem, as I'm sure you've guessed, is
the need to cover Zanzibar and Alizon. Especially Zanzibar, since the Peeps got
such a good look at our defensive deployments there. To be honest, your success
in Cutworm is actually going to make that particular problem worse. The logic,
I'm sure, is going to run something like 'If Harrington can do that to them,
then they could do it to us.' And the hell of it, of course, is
that they're right. Even if they weren't, the political realities of the
Alliance would require us to respond to their concerns."
Honor
frowned very slightly, and he shook his head.
"One
of the reasons those realities are real, Honor, is that they ought to be. High
Ridge's total incompetence makes the situation even worse, I agree. But it
doesn't change the fact that those two systems are our allies; that they're
currently the most exposed—and most attractive—secondary targets available to
the Peeps; and that they have a moral right to demand, and receive, adequate
protection. I don't like what it does to my deployable fleet strength, but I
can't pretend they don't have that right."
"Maybe
so, Sir," Brigham said diffidently, "but Admiral al-Bakr's decisions
when the Peeps probed Zanzibar didn't help any."
"No,
they didn't," Caparelli agreed in a tone whose very neutrality was a
gentle rebuke. "That, however, is now atmosphere out the airlock,
Commodore. We have to deal with the situation as it exists. And while I know it
wasn't your intent, we can't afford to lend any credence to the attitude which
unfortunately exists among some of our own personnel. Things are thorny enough
already without suggesting to the Zanzibarans that we believe they're
incompetents or cowards who jump at shadows."
"No,
Sir. Of course not," Brigham agreed.
"Leaving
that aside, however," Caparelli continued, turning back to Honor,
"the newsies are already playing this one up as our first offensive
victory of the war, which means you now hold title to both our defensive and
offensive accomplishments. I'm afraid your reputation's been even further
enhanced."
"That's
ridiculous," Honor half-muttered. She shook her head irritably.
"'Offensive victory,' indeed! Those poor Havenite picket forces were so
outclassed it was like . . . like feeding baby chicks to near-sharks!"
"Of
course it was." Caparelli shook his own head—in his case, more in
amusement than anything else. "That's the way it's supposed to be,
whenever we can arrange it. On the other hand, your accomplishments—and
especially the way you allowed Milligan to scuttle his own ships—is the kind of
copy the newsfaxes dream of. They can't quite seem to decide whether to play
you as the elegant, chivalrous corsair or the tough-as-nails, blood-and-guts
warhorse. Hamish mentioned a couple of wet-navy types from Old Earth. Someone
named Raphael Semmes and someone else named Bill Halsey. Although he did
comment that you had marginally better tactical sense than Semmes and better
strategic sense than Halsey."
"Oh,
he did, did he?" Honor's eyes gleamed ominously, and Caparelli chuckled.
"Somehow
I suspect he was looking forward to having me tell you that. Still, however . .
. irksome you may find it, don't expect anybody in the Government or the Navy
to try to put the brakes on it. Frankly, we need all the good press—and all the
morale-boosting stories—we can get. Anything that simultaneously helps our
morale and hurts the Peeps' morale is much too valuable for us to even consider
not using."
"In
that respect, Sir Thomas," Brigham said, "I think what the Katanas
and Agamemnons did to them ought to have a definite morale-hurting
effect. For that matter, I suspect it's going to make them reconsider their
estimates of relative combat effectiveness across the board."
"I
hope you're right, Commodore. And I also have to admit that what I've seen in
the preliminary reports makes me feel better about the relative
effectiveness of the new ships and hardware. But the fact of the matter is that
we don't have very many of them. In fact, that's one reason we gave such a high
percentage of the ones we do have to Eighth Fleet. We want the Peeps to see
them being used—to throw them right into Theisman's face in hopes he'll be so
impressed by their effectiveness he won't realize how few of them we actually
have."
"And
just how likely does ONI think that is, Sir?" Honor asked neutrally. In
her own mind, she already knew, and Caparelli smiled wryly at her.
"About
as likely as you think it is," he said. "On the other hand,
when the . . . water is this deep, Your Grace, you reach for anything that
might help you keep your head above the surface."
"Welcome
home, Honor." Emily Alexander smiled broadly from her life-support chair
as Honor stepped through the White Haven door. "I seem to be saying that a
lot. I'm only sorry I don't get to say it more often."
"I'm
afraid White Haven isn't as convenient to Admiralty House as Jason Bay, Emily.
Besides, I have to keep reminding myself a certain degree of discretion is
indicated. Otherwise," Honor bent to kiss Emily's cheek, "I'd be out
here every minute I was on the planet."
"Hmmm.
I suppose that could be called indiscreet."
"Tell
me about it. Miranda and Mac have certainly done their best—in, of course,
their own exquisitely tactful fashions—to make the point."
"Do
they disapprove?"
Emily
frowned slightly, and Honor tasted the older woman's ambiguous emotions. For
all her natural graciousness and kindness, and for all the deep and mutual
devotion between her and her servants, she was a product of the Manticoran
aristocracy. For her, servants could become friends, literally members of her
family, but they were always servants. It might be important to her that
her servants think well of her, but whether they did or not would never be
allowed to affect her decisions, and that little, naturally aristocratic corner
of her couldn't help feeling it would be presumptuous for any servant to
actually judge her actions.
"No,
they don't."
Honor
straightened with a smile. Emily might be a natural born aristocratic, but
Honor Harrington certainly wasn't. She wasn't about to let other people's
opinions dictate her decisions, either, but for quite different reasons. And
for her, people like Miranda LaFollet and James MacGuiness would never be
"servants," even if they were her employees. Retainers, perhaps, but
never servants. Even leaving aside the fact that both of them were millionaires
in their own rights, she thought with a mental chuckle.
"They
don't disapprove at all of my doing what my heart requires, to borrow a phrase
from the bad novelists. They just worry about what could happen if the newsies
get hold of this . . . relationship." She grimaced. "They had an
entirely too up close and personal look at what the 'faxes put us through last
time, and they worry about me. Can't imagine why."
"Of
course you can't." Emily's incipient frown turned into a smile once more.
"Actually,
what I mind the most about this whole clandestine thing, in a lot of
ways," Honor said with a grimace, "is that I see so little of Miranda
these days. She's still officially my 'maid' as far as Grayson is concerned,
but she's effectively my chief of staff, especially here on Manticore. So I end
up leaving her home to tend to business, and it would look a bit odd if I
started dragging her out here to visit 'friends.' Of course, on Grayson, under
similar circumstances—although I admit that the mind boggles at the concept of
'similar circumstances' there—I'd be leaving Mac home to tend to
business and dragging Miranda around with me." She shook her head.
"It's a lot less complicated being a commoner, you know."
"Cling
to your illusions if you must," Emily replied. "Given your rank,
little things like your military reputation, and the fact that you're probably
one of the dozen welthiest people in the entire Star Kingdom, I doubt very much
that your life could ever be uncomplicated again."
"Oh,
thank you for that douche of reality!"
"You're
welcome."
* * *
"This
is your wakeup call, Admiral Harrington."
Honor
twitched as the deep, soft voice spoke into her ear, and her sleeping mind
snuggled closer to the bright, caressing mind-glow behind the words. Perhaps
that was why she didn't awaken the way she normally did—quickly, completely,
senses coming immediately alert.
"This
is your wakeup call," the voice repeated with a chuckle, and
Honor's eyes snapped open—very quickly indeed, this time—as she tasted Hamish's
intent. Quick as she was, she wasn't quite quick enough, and ruthless
fingers danced up her ribs to her armpits, despicably exploiting the secret she
had guarded for so many decades.
"Hamish!"
she half-shrieked as he tickled her mercilessly. Her upper arms clamped tight
to her rib cage, trapping his hands, but his fingers went right on moving, and
she writhed. Both of them were perfectly well aware she could have broken both
his arms anytime she chose to, but he continued his attack with the
fearlessness of someone prepared to take unscrupulous advantage of the
knowledge that she loved him.
She flung
herself out of bed, whipping around to face him, and he propped himself on one
elbow, stretched sensually, and grinned wickedly at her. Nor was his the only
amusement in the bedroom; Nimitz and Samantha sat side-by-side on the
headboard, bleeking with laughter.
"I see
you're awake," Hamish said cheerfully.
"And you,
Earl White Haven, are a dead man," she told him with a glower.
"I'm
not afraid of you." He elevated his nose with a sniff. "Emily will
protect me."
"Not
when I tell her why you have to die. When I explain, she'll help me hide the
body."
"You
know, she might, at that."
"Darn
right she might."
"Well,
it was probably worth it anyway to wake up to a sight like this," he said,
blue eyes gleaming, and Honor actually felt herself blushing as she glanced
down at her nude state. The taste of the treecats' amusement at her reaction
only made her blush more rosily, and she shook her fist.
"I
think," she said ominously, "that all of you need to be seen
to. Especially you, My Lord Earl. To think, I trusted you enough to
actually admit I'm ticklish. The sheer treachery of your actions takes my
breath away."
"Of
course it does." He sat up and swung his own legs over the side of the
bed. "Which is undoubtedly the reason you shared your deep, dark secret in
the first place. You must have known any decent tactician would take advantage
of it when the critical nature of his mission required it."
"Definitely
seen to." She smiled sweetly. "You know, I was talking it over with
Andrew just the other day, and he mentioned to me that it's never too late to
take up a new form of exercise. Take you, for example, Hamish. I realize that
at your advanced and decrepit age you may think you're too old to learn new
tricks, but you are a prolong recipient, and I saw you on the handball
court just a couple of months ago. I think you'd be a fine prospect."
"Prospect
for what?" he asked warily.
"Why,
for taking up coup de vitesse, of course." She widened her eyes
innocently. "Think how much it would increase your self-confidence, not to
mention how good it is as a systemic exercise."
"You,
young lady, are out of your mind if you think I'm going to let you get me onto
the mat as your punching bag." He snorted. "I might—might, I
say—be prepared to take up Grayson-style fencing. I was always pretty good with
foil and epee. At least I was, many, many years ago, when I was at the
Island. But that brutal, sweaty hand-to-hand business of yours isn't my style
at all." He shook his head. "Oh, no—self-defense is your forte,
not mine. If we should ever happen to encounter a mugger who somehow penetrates
the protection of those three Rottweilers of yours, I'll be perfectly happy to
hold your coat while you mop up the pavement with him. Heck, I'll even
buy you a bonbon and a cup of hot chocolate afterward."
Honor
chuckled, trying to picture a Grayson male, however enlightened, suggesting
anything of the sort to any woman, be she ever so well-trained in
self-defense.
"Well,"
she said, after a moment, checking the date/time display in her artificial eye,
"we're both going to need to brush up on our self-defense skills if we
don't get ourselves down to breakfast pretty quickly."
"Hey,
don't blame me! I've been trying to get you up! And, I warn you, I fully
intend to tell Emily that when we're late to breakfast."
"God,
there're no limits to your treachery," Honor said, snatching up her
kimono and sliding into it. "If only I'd known ahead of time!"
"Sure,
sure." He stood and stretched luxuriously. "And speaking of treachery
. . . ."
Honor
frowned. He was up to something, she could taste it. But—
Hamish
smiled sweetly at her, and then, with absolutely no warning, dashed for the
bathroom.
"Hamish,
don't you dare—!"
She was too
late. The master bath's palatial shower's door clicked shut, and she slid to a
halt as he smiled at her through it.
"Looks
like I get the first shower," he said complacently. "Unless,
of course, you'd care to . . .?"
He flipped
the shower door open, just a crack, and Honor laughed and let the kimono slip
back off her shoulders to the floor.
They were,
indeed, late to breakfast.
* * *
Given the
fact that Andrew LaFollet and her other armsmen knew exactly why Honor had been
to Briarwood, the colonel had clearly decided there was no longer any point in
pretending he didn't also know exactly what was going on. Hamish's reaction the
first time he'd opened the door of his suite and found LaFollet standing
guard outside it had not been one of unalloyed amusement. He'd had the good
sense not to make an issue of it, however, and it was certainly much more
convenient for Honor to no longer have to go scurrying through the back
hallways every morning.
There were,
however, some things not even an armsman could protect a steadholder from, and
she and Hamish peeked through the dining room door cautiously when they finally
got there.
Emily sat
in her life-support chair, parked in her normal place, with a steaming cup of
coffee in front of her. But she looked up quickly at their arrival, and Honor's
smile disappeared instantly.
Nimitz
jerked upright on her shoulder, and Samantha did the same on Hamish's, as both
treecats tasted what Honor already had. Hamish couldn't, but the quickness and
unanimity of the other three's reaction wasn't lost upon him.
"Emily?"
Honor stepped quickly through the door, her voice concerned, all humor in
abeyance. "What is it?"
"It's—"
Emily started to speak quickly, then stopped herself. "It's not
good," she said after a moment, the words coming less rapidly, sounding
much more like her. "I'm afraid," she showed her teeth in a
humorless smile, "we're not quite as finished with the newsies as we'd
hoped."
Honor moved
across to Emily's chair, her appetite disappearing, despite her enhanced
metabolism. She pulled back one of the dining room chairs, turning it to face
Emily, and sank into it. Nimitz slid down into her lap, gazing at Emily as
intensely—and anxiously—as Honor herself, and she felt Hamish stepping up close
behind her even before his hand came down on her shoulder.
"It
leaked," she said flatly.
"I
think you could say that," Emily agreed with poison-dry humor. Her right
hand flipped a 'fax viewer onto the table. "You remember our good friend
Solomon Hayes, I'm sure."
The sinking
sensation in Honor's midsection intensified abruptly. She glanced up over her
shoulder at Hamish, then drew the viewer in front of her and keyed it.
She wasn't
at all surprised when it lit with the current day's Landing Tattler. Nor
was she surprised that the display was centered on Solomon Hayes' gossip
column. It wasn't the first time she'd found herself the object of Hayes'
interest, and white-hot anger glowed as she remembered the smear campaign High
Ridge and his cronies had used Hayes to open.
Her eyes
ran down the text, and her lips tightened. Normally, Hayes touched on several
victims in each of his maliciously barbed columns. And he was also normally
careful to couch his accusations and veiled insinuations sufficiently obliquely
to avoid anything which might be actionable under the Star Kingdom's stringent
libel laws.
This time,
the entire column was devoted to only a single topic, and there was nothing
oblique about it at all. Especially not about its three concluding paragraphs.
" . .
. to sources at Briarwood," she read, "Duchess Harrington was
attended by Dr. Illescue, Briarwood's senior physician, who personally oversaw
the tubing of her son seven weeks ago. Despite all inquiries, it was impossible
to determine who the father might be. Indeed, sources indicate the Duchess has
specifically declined to declare paternity.
"That,
of course, is her unquestioned legal and moral right. Nonetheless, those of us
in the press must inevitably find ourselves speculating on her reasons for availing
herself of that right. Certainly it's only natural for a military woman, facing
all the risks of naval combat, to be concerned about the future. To assure
herself and her loved ones of a child. Still, one must wonder just why she felt
it necessary to proceed in that perfectly reasonable project with such secrecy.
One might almost say clandestinely.
"And
yet another, clearly coincidental yet interesting, tidbit has come to our
attention. We feel confident that all of Lady Emily Alexander's myriad fans and
well-wishers will be delighted to learn that Countess White Haven has also
availed herself of Briarwood's services. According to the same sources, her
child will be born within less than two months of Duchess Harrington's."
"That
son-of-a-bitch," Hamish hissed behind her as he read it over her
shoulder. "That goddamned, worthless, cowardly, mealy-mouthed
piece of—"
He chopped
himself off with a physical effort Honor could literally feel, and walked
across to sit on Emily's other side.
"I
wonder who his 'sources' might be?" Honor mused in a tone whose lightness
fooled no one.
"Actually,"
Emily said, "you might not want to leap to any conclusions in that
regard." Honor look at her, and Emily snorted. "It doesn't take an
empath to guess which road you're headed down, Honor, given what your parents
had to say about their history with Illescue. And you might even be right. But
I've had a little longer to think about this than you two have, and there are
several rather odd things about this particular column."
"Beside
the fact that this time he laid his sights on just one target—well, two targets?"
Hamish put in.
"As a
matter of fact, yes. The biggest difference between this one and his usual
style is that he's very specific. He gives the exact day you were actually at
the Center, Honor. And he also gives the correct date for our second child's
birth. He wouldn't do that unless he was entirely confident of his facts,
knowing what the three of us would do to him in court if he didn't have them
right. But he specifically mentions Dr. Illescue by name, and if Illescue were
his source, he wouldn't have provided that particular snippet of
information. There's no reason he has to, and the one thing he's never done is
give up his sources."
"That's
because half the time he doesn't have any sources," Honor
half-snarled.
"That's
not really fair," Emily observed. "Solomon Hayes is a loathsome,
disgusting, toad-like gigolo who homes in on vicious gossip and rumors like a
near-buzzard homing in on carrion. Three-quarters of his 'news' comes from
bored, wealthy women with the moral fiber of Old Earth alley cats in heat, at
least half of whom have scores of their own to settle. But he usually does have
a source. The thing that lets him survive is that most of the time there's
at least a core of truth to the rumors he spreads. Distorted, exaggerated, or
deliberately twisted, perhaps, but still there. That's what made him so
damnably effective when High Ridge and North Hollow used him against you
before. Salaciousness has always sold 'faxes, and a lot of people take Hayes
lightly because of that. But the truth is, he's actually a very dangerous
enemy, with much more power than many people assume, precisely because he does
have that reputation for knowing what secrets he's spilling so gleefully."
Her tone
was almost dispassionate, but it wouldn't have fooled anyone who could see the
fire in her green eyes.
"You
may be right," Hamish said after a moment. "No, scratch that. You're
almost certainly right—you usually are about things like this, love.
Unfortunately, that doesn't give me any ideas about what to do about this.
Aside from hiring an assassin, at least."
"If we
want to go that route, we don't need any assassins," Honor said grimly.
"Somehow,
I suspect challenging him to a duel and then shooting him smartly between the
eyes, however satisfying, might not be precisely the best way to handle the
situation," Emily said dryly. "Not that we couldn't make a tidy
fortune selling tickets to the event."
"Ha!
The instant you challenge him, he'll emigrate to Beowulf!" Hamish growled.
"They don't allow duels there."
"I
think perhaps we can leave that pleasant fantasy out of our
considerations?" Emily suggested just a bit tartly, and her husband
muttered something she chose to take as agreement.
"The
thing that bothers me the most," Honor said, her eyes troubled,
"is how explicitly he's linked you and me, Emily. Well," she smiled
almost naturally, "that and the fact that I didn't really want to know
whether it was a boy or girl just yet."
"The
question in my mind," Emily said thoughtfully, "is whether he
genuinely believes Hamish is also the father of your child, Honor, or if he
included the linkage only as a way to remind his readership about his earlier
allegations about the two of you. Does he know something, or is he simply using
innuendo to take a swipe at the three of us because of what we did to him last
time around?"
"I
think he either knows, or strongly suspects," Honor said. Then she shook
her head. "No, I think it has to be 'strongly suspects.' The only way he
could know would be if he'd somehow managed to obtain a genetic
comparison of the child and Hamish, and if Illescue isn't his source,
then I don't see any way he could have done that."
"That's
a good point," Hamish agreed. "And I'm inclined to agree with you.
Which leads to another point." He grimaced unhappily. "You've been
spending an awful lot of time at White Haven whenever you're on-planet, Honor.
It's not going to take a hyper-physicist to figure that out. And the fact that
we were accused of being lovers when we weren't isn't going to help us very
much now that we are. So whether he openly suggests I'm the
father or not, the suggestion's going to be out there very soon, if it isn't
already."
"I
suppose I could try staying away," Honor said slowly, her expression much
unhappier than his had been.
"No,
you certainly can't," Emily said tartly, and shook her head. "You two
should never be allowed out in a social situation without a keeper!" Both
of them looked at her, and she snorted derisively. "If you suddenly stop
visiting your friend Emily after Hayes' little bombshell, the only conclusion
anyone is going to be able to draw is the correct one—which is the last thing
you want at this particular moment, don't you agree, Honor?"
"Well,
yes, but—"
"But
me no buts," Emily interrupted. "Besides, in the final analysis,
since we've always intended to eventually admit Hamish's paternity, we can't
stand up and call Hayes a liar. He's a cretin, a sneak, and a treacherous
little worm, but this time, at least, the one thing he isn't is a liar.
If we call him one now, it's going to create all sorts of problems when we
finally come forward. And unless we're prepared to do that, suddenly changing
your habits would be the same thing as admitting he's hit the nail on the head
. . . and that you're trying to pretend he hasn't."
"So
what do we do?" Honor demanded.
"Nothing,"
Emily said flatly. The other two looked at her incredulously, and she flipped
her working hand in her shrug equivalent. "I didn't say I liked the idea.
It's just that the best of the several bad options available to us is simply to
ignore it. Honor's going to be going back off-world tomorrow, and the sort of
newsy who'd be interested in following up on a story like this is going to find
it pretty hard to get to her when she's back with Eighth Fleet. And much as I
hate playing on the 'poor invalid' stereotype, it does offer me a
certain amount of protection from the same sort of intrusiveness. Which means
the only one who's likely to be stalked over this is you, Hamish."
"Gee,
thanks for the warning," he said glumly.
"You're
a politician now, not a mere admiral," his wife told him. "That makes
you fair game, and by now you ought to have at least some notion of how the
rules work."
"No
comment?"
"That
will probably work for anything from your official press secretaries. After
all, even if Hayes is right, it's a personal matter, not something government
spokespeople should waste time and effort on. It won't work for you,
though. If someone manages to corner you in a personal interview, you're going
to have to come up with something better, or you might just as well go ahead
and tell them you're the father."
"And
your suggestion is?"
"I
think your response ought to be that if, in fact, Duchess Harrington is having
a child tubed, and if she's declined—at this time—to disclose that child's
paternity, that's certainly her right, and you have no intention of speculating
about it."
"And
if they ask me point-blank if I'm the father?" Hamish waved one
hand in a gesture of intense frustration. "Damn it, I am the
father, and accident or not, I'm proud to be!"
"I
know you are, sweetheart," Emily said softly, eyes luminous as she laid
her working hand on his forearm. "And if they do ask you point-blank, the
one thing you can't do is lie. So my suggestion would be that you
laugh."
"Laugh?"
"As
naturally as you possibly can," she agreed. "I know your thespian
skills leave a bit to be desired, dear, but I'll help you practice in front of
a mirror."
There was
actually a twinkle in her eye, and he made a face at her.
"But,"
she continued more seriously, "that really is your best response. Laugh.
And if they continue to press, simply repeat that you have no intention of
speculating, and that you believe Honor's obvious wishes in this matter ought
to be respected by everyone. You, at any rate, intend to respect them
just as thoroughly as you would if you were the father."
"And
you really think this is going to work?" he asked skeptically.
"I
never said that," Emily replied. "I just said it was our best
option."
"Do
you want me to do anything about this . . . person while you're away, My
Lady?"
Miranda
LaFollet sat at her desk in her Jason Bay office, and when Honor poked her head
in the open doorway, her "maid" held up a 'fax viewer between thumb
and forefinger with the expression of someone who'd just found a dead mouse in
her soup.
"And
just what did you have it in mind to do about Mr. Hayes?" Honor inquired
mildly. "This isn't Grayson, you know, Miranda."
"Oh, I
certainly do, My Lady." Miranda's mouth twisted in distaste, and Farragut,
her treecat, made a soft hissing sound from the perch beside her chair.
"Freedom of the press is a wonderful thing, My Lady. We have it on
Grayson, too, you know. But this Hayes person wouldn't care at all for what his
brand of 'journalism' would get him back home."
"Sounds
like a very free press to me," Honor observed." Not that I don't
think Mr. Hayes would look ever so much better with a couple of broken legs.
Unfortunately, if that were a practical solution to the problem, I'd already
have taken care of it myself."
"There's
always Micah," Miranda pointed out. Micah LaFollet, her youngest brother,
had just turned twenty-six. Young enough for third-generation prolong and
blessed with adequate diet and medical care since childhood, he towered more
than fourteen centimeters taller than his eldest brother, Andrew. Despite his
formidable height (he was actually five centimeters taller than Honor herself),
he looked much younger than his age to Grayson eyes, but he was already in the
final stages of armsman training, and he had a pronounced case of hero worship
where Honor was concerned.
"No,
there isn't always Micah," Honor scolded. "He's not an armsman
yet, and he's overly enthusiastic. Besides, assault with violence is a felony
here in the Star Kingdom, and unlike your older brother, he doesn't have
any sort of diplomatic immunity."
"Well,
then surely there's something Richard could do about him." Miranda
kept her tone light, trying to pretend she was no more than half-serious, but
Honor tasted the white-hot rage just below the younger woman's surface.
"Miranda,"
she said, stepping fully into the office, "I truly, truly appreciate how
angry you. How much you—and Andrew, and Simon, and Micah, and Spencer, and
Mac—all want to protect me from this. But you can't do it. And while Richard's
a very good attorney, Solomon Hayes has spent decades figuring out exactly how
close he can sail to outright libel without quite crossing the line into
something actionable."
"But,
My Lady," Miranda protested, abandoning her pretense of humor, "word
of this is going to get home to Grayson. It's not going to matter much to our
steaders, but that midden-toad Mueller and his loathsome bunch are going to
try as hard as they can to hurt you with it where the conservatives are
concerned."
"I
know," Honor sighed. "But there's not anything I can do about it at
this point. I'm getting out of town and away from the newsies myself by going
back to the Fleet, but I've sent letters to Benjamin and Austen, warning them
about what's coming. That's about all I can do at this point."
Miranda
looked rebellious, and Honor smiled at her.
"It's
not like I've never had anyone taking shots at me in the 'faxes before,"
she pointed out. "And so far, I've managed to survive, however little I've
enjoyed the experience, sometimes. And . . . ."
She paused
for a moment, then shrugged.
"And,"
she confessed, "I'm not being quite as blasé about this entire
thing as you seem to be assuming. Trust me, Mr. Hayes is going to come to
regret this particular . . . endeavor."
"My
Lady?" Miranda perked up noticeably, and there was a slight, edge to her
voice. An edge accompanied by the sort of look a Grayson nanny might employ
when not one of her charges seemed to know anything about how that dead
sandfrog had miraculously materialized in the nursery air purifier.
"Well,"
Honor said, "I just happened to run into Stacey Hauptman at lunch
yesterday, and somehow or other the conversation turned to journalism. And it
seems Stacey has been considering venturing into that area for some time. She
told me she thinks she might begin by buying the Landing Tattler—just to
get her toes wet, you know. Sort of explore the possibilities. And I think she
might also have said something about making it her business to—how did she
put it? Oh, yes. Making it her business to 'clean up the professionalism of
Manticoran journalism generally.'"
"My Lady,"
Miranda said in quite a different tone, her gray eyes twinkling suddenly.
"Oh, that's evil!" she continued with deep satisfaction.
"I never
suggested that she take any action whatsoever," Honor said virtuously,
"and no one could possibly accuse me or any of my retainers of taking any
sort of action, either. I will confess, however, that I find the prospect of
Stacey Hauptmann taking personal aim at Mr. Hayes . . . profoundly satisfying.
It won't do much to undo what he's already done, but I feel fairly confident we
won't be hearing from him a third time."
"And
you were just suggesting the Grayson press might incorporate a few
journalistic constraints."
"Even
in the Star Kingdom, Miranda, private citizens—as opposed to governmental
agencies or public bodies—are permitted to make their displeasure known, so
long as they violate no laws or civil rights. Which, I assure you, Stacey has
no intention of doing. Or, now that I think about it, any need to
do."
"Oh,
of course not, My Lady!"
* * *
"I want
to know who leaked this, and I want to know yesterday."
Dr. Franz
Illescue's voice was flat, almost calm, with a lack of emphasis and exclamation
points which rang alarm bells in every member of the Briarwood Reproduction
Center's senior staff.
"But, Doctor,"
Julia Isher, Briarwood's business manager, said cautiously, "so far, we
don't really have any evidence it was one of our people who was
responsible."
"Don't
be stupid, Julia. And let's not pretend I am, either," Illescue
said in that same almost-calm tone, and Isher winced.
Franz
Illescue could be an unmitigated pain in the ass, and despite the very nearly
half-century he'd spent getting the worst of his natural aristocratic arrogance
knocked out of him, there would always be that core of implicit superiority.
That unassailable knowledge that he was, by the inevitable process of birth and
the natural working of the universe, inherently better than anyone around him.
Despite that, however—or possibly even because of it—he was normally very
careful to observe the rules of courtesy with the "little people"
with whom he came into contact. On the rare occasions when he wasn't, it was a
very, very bad sign, indeed.
"One
of 'our people,' as you put it, most definitely was responsible,"
he continued after a heartbeat or two. "Whether someone deliberately sold
the information to this . . . this . . . individual Hayes or not, that
information had to come from someone inside the Center. Someone with
access to our confidential records. Someone who, if he or she didn't
deliberately sell the information was still criminally—and I use the adverb
advisedly, in light of our confidentiality agreements with our
patients—negligent. Someone who either gossiped about it where he or she
shouldn't have or allowed someone else unauthorized access. In either case, I
want his—or her—ass. I want it broiled, on a silver platter, with a nice side
of fried potatoes, and I intend to see to it that whoever it was never works in
this field—or any other branch of the medical profession—in the Star Kingdom
again."
More than
one of the staffers seated around the huge table blanched visibly. Illescue had
still to raise his voice, but the temperature in the conference room
seemed to hover within a degree or two of absolute zero Kelvin. Some of those
staffers, like Isher herself, had been with Illescue for twenty T-years or
more, and they had never seen him this incandescently angry.
"Doctor,"
Isher said, after a moment, "I've already initiated a review of everyone
who had access to Duchess Harrington's records. I assure you we're doing
everything we possibly can to determine how that information got out of our
files and into Mr. Hayes' hands. But so far our security people, some of whom
are very well versed in forensic cybernetics, are coming up completely blank. I
asked Tajman Meyers—" Meyers was the Center's head of security, who was
absent from this meeting only because he was out personally heading the
investigation "—if we need to bring in someone else, like the Landing PD.
He says our people are probably as good as most of the LCPD's investigators,
but he also agrees that if you want to bring in a completely outside team,
he'll cooperate fully."
She met
Illescue's hooded, basilisk gaze levelly.
"The
truth of the matter is, though, Sir, that we may never be able to identify the
individual responsible. As you say, it could have been a case of idle gossip.
Or, of course, although I don't like to think any of our people would violate
our trust that way, someone could have deliberately handed the information
over. In either case, however, my personal feeling is that it was almost
certainly done verbally, with no written or electronic record. Which doesn't
leave us very much in the way of clues."
Illescue
looked at her, eyes cold, his normal, reassuring physician's personality
noticeably in abeyance. The fact that he knew she was right only made him still
angrier.
"I
want a list of every name of every member of our staff who had access to both
Duchess Harrington and Countess White Haven's files," he said, after a
moment. "Everyone—physicians, nurses, technicians, clerical staff.
As a general rule, I don't much care for witch hunts, but I'm going to make an
exception in this case." He looked around the conference room and showed
his teeth in an expression no one would ever mistake for a smile. " To be
perfectly honest, I'm looking forward to it."
* * *
"Jesus,
Julia," Martijn Knippschd muttered softly as he walked down the hall
beside her, "I've never seen him that mad!" He shook his head.
"I mean, this is terrible, sure. I agree, and not just because of the way
it violates Duchess Harrington's confidentiality. It leaves us covered with
crap here at the Center, too. But, let's face it—this really isn't the first
time we've had an information leak. And that talk of his about 'witch
hunts'—!"
"It
isn't just talk, Marty," Isher said, equally quietly. "He means it.
And if he does find out who's responsible . . . ."
She
shrugged, her expression bleak, and Knippschd shook his head.
"I
believe you. I just don't understand why."
Isher
looked at him for a moment, clearly considering whether or not to say something
more. Dr. Martijn Knippschd was, in many ways, her equivalent on the medical
support side of Briarwood's operations. He wasn't one of the Center's partners,
but he was directly responsible for overseeing the labs' physical operation and
directing the technicians who worked in them. And unless something very
unexpected happened, he would be Briarwood's newest junior partner
within the next three T-years.
"It's
. . . personal this time," she said finally. "Dr. Illescue has
something of a history with the Harringtons."
"I had
the impression he'd never met the Duchess before she became a patient,"
Knippschd objected.
"I
didn't say he had a history with her, Marty. He has one with her parents,
and it's personal, not professional. I'm not going to go into any details, but
suffice it to say that if there are any two physicians in the entire Star
Kingdom who he'd crawl across ground glass to avoid giving a reason to fault
his professional conduct, it's Alfred and Allison Harrington. Worse, I think
he's afraid they may believe he let the information out himself."
"That's
preposterous!" Knippschd was genuinely angry. "He can be a royal
pain, but I've never met a physician who takes his professional, ethical
responsibilities more seriously than he does!"
"I
agree," Isher said mildly. "And I didn't say I think the
Harringtons are going to believe anything of the sort. What I said was that he's
afraid they may. And that, Marty, is why I am delighted that I, for one, am
not the person who actually did spill the beans to Solomon Hayes."
The two of
them walked along in silence for another few moments, and then Isher chuckled
humorlessly.
"What?"
Knippschd asked.
"I was
just thinking. He says he wants whoever it is broiled, right?" Knippschd
nodded, and she shrugged. "Well, I wonder if he'd let me at least
light the fire for him when the time comes?"
* * *
"We're
coming up on her now, Your Grace," the pinnace pilot announced over the
intercom. "She's at your ten o'clock, low."
Honor
leaned close enough to the pinnace viewport that the tip of her nose almost
touched the armorplast. She was on the starboard side of the small craft,
seated just forward of the variable geometry wings, and she peered still
further forward as the sleek, white spindle of a starship came into view.
A missile
barge hung close beside it in orbit, which gave her a sense of perspective,
something to relate the new ship's size to, and that perspective made her look
just a bit odd to experienced eyes. She was obviously a battlecruiser, yet she
was larger than any battlecruiser Honor had ever seen. The Agamemnons,
like Michelle Henke's Achilles, massed almost 1.75 million tons, but
this ship was more than a quarter-million tons heavier still. And where the
Agamemnons were a pod-laying design, this one most definitely was not.
She stepped
up the magnification of her artificial eye, zooming in on the hull number just
aft of the forward impeller ring. BC-562, it said, and under that, the name:
Nike.
She tasted
the name in the depths of her mind, and her feelings were mixed as she gazed at
the splendid new ship. This Nike's predecessor had been listed for
disposal by the Janacek Admiralty in order to free the name for this new
class's lead ship. The sudden eruption of renewed hostilities had saved BC-413
from the breakers, but the name had already been reassigned, so 413 had been
renamed Hancock Station. If they'd had to rename her, Honor couldn't
really fault the choice, but as that Nike's first captain, she would
always think of the older ship as the rightful holder of that name.
And yet,
despite her manifold disagreements with the late Edward Janacek and her bitter
opposition to so many of his disastrous policies at Admiralty House, she had to
admit that this time he might have gotten it right. Nike was the
proudest ship name in the Royal Manticoran Navy. There was always a Nike,
and she was always a battlecruiser. And when she was commissioned, she
was always the newest, most powerful battlecruiser in the fleet.
Yet the old
Nike—Hancock Station—was at best obsolescent, despite the fact that
she was barely sixteen T-years old. She'd been worked hard during those sixteen
years, but it was the changes in weapons and tactics, especially in missile
warfare, not senility, which had relegated her to the second rank of
effectiveness. In an age of multi-drive missiles, the traditional
battlecruiser's niche had altered dramatically, and BC-413 was simply out of
date.
Battlecruisers
were designed to run down and destroy enemy cruisers, or to raid and run. The
ideal commerce protectors, and, conversely, the ideal commerce destroyers.
Traditionally, especially in Manticoran service, they weren't intended to stand
in the wall of battle, because their relatively light armor and "cruiser
style" construction could never stand the pounding superdreadnoughts were
expected to endure. They were intended to run away from wallers—to be able to
destroy anything lighter than them, and to outrun anything heavier.
Yet the
sheer range of the MDM made staying out of effective range far more difficult
than it had ever been before, and the emphasis on long-range missile combat
required denser salvos and greater magazine space. For a time, it had seemed
the battlecruiser had simply become obsolete, as the battleship had before it,
and that it would vanish just as completely from the order of battle of
first-class navies. But the type—or, at least, the role it filled—was just too
valuable to be allowed to disappear, and improvements in compensator efficiency
and other aspects of military technology had allowed a transformation.
The
Graysons had led the way toward one possible iteration of the type, with their Courvoisier
II-class of pod-layers. The RMN's Agamemnons were the Manticoran
version of the same design concept, as the Blücher-class was for the
Andermani, and that approach clearly offered significant advantages over the
older designs.
But the
BC(P) wasn't really completely satisfactory. Although it could produce a very
heavy volume of fire, its endurance at maximum-rate fire was limited, and the
type's hollow core design came at a greater cost in structural integrity than
the same concept did in a bigger, far more strongly built superdreadnought. So
Vice Admiral Toscarelli's BuShips had sought another approach at the same time
it was designing the new Edward Saganami-C-class heavy cruisers.
Nike was the result: a 2.5 million-ton
"battlecruiser," almost three times the size of Honor's old ship, but
with an acceleration rate thirty percent greater. The old Nike had
mounted eighteen lasers, sixteen grasers, fifty-two missile tubes, and
thirty-two counter-missile tubes and point defense clusters. The new Nike
mounted no lasers, thirty-two grasers—eight of them as chase weapons, fifty
missile tubes (none of them chasers), and thirty counter-missile tubes and
laser clusters. The old Nike had carried a ship's company of over two
thousand; the new Nike's complement was only seven hundred and fifty.
And the new Nike was armed with the Mark 16 dual-drive missile. With the
"off-bore" launch capability the RMN had developed, she could bring
both broadsides' missile tubes to bear on the same target, giving her fifty
birds per salvo, as opposed to the older ship's twenty-two. And whereas the old
Nike's maximum powered missile range from rest had been just over six
million kilometers, the new Nike's had a maximum powered endurance of
over twenty-nine million.
She
couldn't fire the all-up, three-stage MDMs the Courvoisiers and
Agamemnons could handle, so her tactical flexibility was marginally less,
and her warheads were slightly lighter, but an Agamemnon rolling pods at
her maximum rate would shoot herself dry in just over fourteen minutes, whereas
Nike carried sufficient ammunition for almost forty minutes, and she
carried fifty percent more counter-missiles, as well. For that matter, although
the Courvosiers did, in fact, carry the three-stage weapons, the RMN had
chosen to load the Agamemnons' pods with Mark 16s. BuWeaps had gone
ahead and produced the standard pods, as well, but Admiralty House had decided
the salvo density the Mark 16 permitted was more important that the bigger
missiles' greater powered envelope.
Personally,
Honor was convinced that this Nike represented the pattern for true
battlecruisers of the future, and she deeply regretted the fact that although
the Janacek Admiralty had authorized her construction, they had seen her as a
single-ship testbed. The Navy desperately needed as many Nikes as it
could get, and what it had was exactly one. Which was all it would have
for at least another full T-year.
But at
least Honor had the only one of her there was, and—she smiled at her reflection
in the armorplast—she'd convinced Admiral Cortez to give her to a captain who
was almost as competent as he was . . . irritating.
"Do
you want another pass on her, Your Grace?" the pilot inquired, and Honor
pressed the intercom key on the arm of her chair.
"No,
thank you, Chief. I've seen enough. Head straight on to the flagship; Captain Cardones
is expecting me in time for lunch."
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am."
The pinnace
turned away, and Honor leaned back in her seat as her mind reached out to the
future.
* * *
"Dr.
Illescue! Dr. Illescue, would you care to comment on the press accounts of
Duches Harrington's pregnancy?"
Franz
Illescue walked stolidly across the Briarwood lobby, ignoring the shouted
questions.
"Dr.
Illescue, are you prepared to confirm that Earl White Haven is the father of
Duchess Harrington's child?"
"Dr.
Illescue! Isn't it true Prince Michael is the child's father?"
"Are
you prepared to categorically deny that the father is Baron Grantville or
Benjamin Mayhew?"
"Dr.
Illescue—!"
The lift
doors cut off the hullabaloo, and Illescue keyed his personal com with an
almost savage thumb jab.
"Security,
Meyers," a voice responded instantly.
"Tajman,
this is Dr. Illescue." The fury seething in Illescue's normally controlled
baritone was almost palpable. "Will you please explain to me what the hell
that . . . that three-ring circus in our lobby is about?"
"I'm
sorry, Sir," Meyers said. "I wasn't aware you were coming in through
the public entrance, or I would have at least warned your driver. They
descended on us right after lunch, and so far, they haven't committed any
privacy violations. According to SOP, I can't bar them from the public area of
the facility until they do."
"Well,
as it happens, I wrote the damned SOP," Illescue half-snarled,
"and as of now, you can bar those jackals from any part of this
facility until Hell's a hockey rink! Is that perfectly clear?!"
"Uh,
yes, Sir. I'll get on it right away, Sir."
"Thank
you." Illescue's voice was marginally closer to normal as he broke the
circuit and inhaled deeply.
He leaned
back against the wall of the lift car and rubbed his face wearily.
He and Meyers
were no closer to finding the leak than they'd been when they began, and the
story was ballooning totally out of control. Not that he'd ever had much hope
of controlling it in the first place. The press was working itself up to a
feeding frenzy, and the most preposterous speculation imaginable—as the shouted
question in the lobby indicated—had become rampant. At least he'd spoken to
both Doctors Harrington, unpleasant though it had been, and he felt reasonably
confident neither of them thought it had been his doing, but that didn't
make him feel much better. Even though he was prepared to dislike Duchess
Harrington because of her parentage, she was a patient. She had a legal and
moral right to privacy, to trust that doctor-patient confidentiality would not
be violated, and it had been. It was almost like a form of rape, even if the
assault was non-physical, and he would have been coldly, bitterly furious in any
patient's case. In this instance, given the prominence of the patient in
question and the way that prominence was goading the newsies speculations, his
emotions went far beyond fury.
Franz
Illescue was not a man with much use for the custom of dueling, even if it was
legal. But in this case, if he could find out who was responsible, he was
prepared to make an exception.
* * *
"Welcome
back," Michelle Henke said with a smile as Andrew LaFollet peeled off at
her day cabin's hatch and Honor and Nimitz stepped through it.
"Thanks."
Honor crossed the cabin and flopped onto Henke's couch far more inelegantly
than she would ever have considered if anyone else had been present.
"I
trust Diego did the honors properly?" Henke asked lightly. Captain Diego
Mikhailov was Ajax's captain. "I told him you wanted it kept low
key."
"He
kept is as low key as my faithful minion outside the hatch there would
permit," Honor replied. "I like him," she added.
"He's
a likeable sort. And good at his job. Not to mention smart enough to realize
how harried and hunted you must feel right now. He understands exactly why he's
not invited to dinner tonight. In fact, he commented to me that you must be
delighted to be back aboard ship."
"As a
matter of fact, I've seldom been happier to find myself confined aboard ship in
my entire life," Honor admitted as she rested her head on one couch arm,
closed her eyes, and stretched out with Nimitz on her chest.
"That's
because the worst that can happen here is that you get blown up,"
Henke said dryly. She crossed to the wet bar, opened a small refrigerator, and
produced a pair of chilled bottles of Old Tilman.Honor chuckled appreciatively,
although her amusement was clearly less than complete, and Henke grinned as she
opened the beer bottles.
"I
told Clarissa I'd buzz for her if we decided we needed her," she
continued, holding out one of the bottles to Honor. "Here." Honor
cracked one eye and looked up, and Henke waggled the bottle at her. "You
look like you need this."
"What
I need is about fifteen minutes—no, ten minutes would do nicely,
actually—alone with Mr. Hayes," Honor said balefully. She accepted the
bottle and swallowed a mouthful of cold beer. "I'd feel ever so much
better afterward."
"At
least until they came to put you in jail."
"True.
The courts are tacky about things like that, aren't they?"
"Unfortunately."
Henke swallowed some of her own beer, leaning back in an armchair facing
Honor's couch, and rested one heel on the expensive coffee table on the thick,
even more expensive carpet between the two of them.
Honor
smiled at her and looked around curously. It was the first time she'd visited
Henke aboard Ajax, and although Henke's day cabin was substantially
smaller than her own lordly flag quarters aboard Imperator, it was still
large and comfortable indeed by the standards of most battlecruisers. Ajax's
total complement was under six hundred, including Marines, and her designers,
faced with all that space, had obviously felt someone as lordly as a flag
officer deserved the very best. The deep pile carpet was a dark crimson, which
Honor knew Henke would never have chosen for herself and undoubtedly intended
to change at the earliest possible moment, but the paneled bulkheads, indirect
lighting, and holoscupltures gave it an air of almost sinfully welcoming
comfort.
Best of
all, it was totally empty except for Henke, Honor, and Nimitz.
"Feeling
better?" Henke asked after a moment.
"Some."
Honor closed her eyes again and rolled the chilled beer bottle across her
forehead. "Quite a bit, actually," she went on, after a moment.
"The mind-glows out here are a lot easier on Nimitz and me."
"There
must be times when being an empath is a complete and total pain," Henke
said.
"You
have no idea," Honor agreed, opening her eyes once more and sitting up a
bit. "To be perfectly honest, Mike, that's one reason I was so happy you
invited me to dinner tonight. All my staffers are firmly in my
corner, but if I'd stayed home aboard the flagship, I'd almost have had to host
a formal dinner on my first night back. Eating alone with my oldest friend is
an awfully much more attractive proposition. Thanks."
"Hey,
it's what friends are for!" Henke said, more lightly than she felt and
trying not to show how touched she was.
"Well,
the company's good," Honor said with a crooked smile. "But I suppose
if I'm going to be completely honest, the real attraction is
Chief Arbuckle's paprikash."
"I'll
see to it that Clarissa gives Mac the recipe," Henke said dryly.
* * *
"Attention
on deck!"
The Eighth
Fleet's flag officers, their senior staffers, and their flag captains rose as
Honor, Rafael Cardones, Mercedes Brigham, and Andrea Jaruwalski entered the
compartment. Simon Mattingly and Spencer Hawke parked themselves against the
bulkhead just outside the compartment, flanking the hatch, and Andrew LaFollet
followed the naval officers in. He took his customary, inconspicuous place
against the bulkhead behind Honor's chair, and level gray eyes swept the entire
briefing room with instinct-level, microscopic attention to detail.
"Be
seated, Ladies and Gentlemen," Honor said, striding to her own place.
MacGuiness
had contrived a proper perch for Nimitz, bracketed to the back of her chair,
and the treecat gave a buzzing purr as he arranged himself upon it. Honor
smiled as she tasted his approval of the new arrangements, then seated herself
and looked out at her command team.
The senior
divisional commanders were present this time, as well, and they were no longer
such unknown quantities. There were a few about whom she nursed some minor
concerns, but by and large she was supremely confident in the temper of her
weapon. Whether it would be enough for the tasks demanded of it was more than
she could say, but if it failed, it would not be because of any fault in the
quality of the men and women of whom it was composed.
"As
you all know," she said after a moment, "we've actually received a
few reinforcements. Not as many as we were slated to—other commitments,
unfortunately, are drawing off units which otherwise would have been earmarked
for us. Nonetheless, we have more striking power than we had last time.
And," this time, the wolf at her core showed in her smile, "we're
still getting the opportunity to show the Havenites our newest and best."
Several
other people smiled, as well, and Honor looked at Michelle Henke.
"I'm
sure you were less than pleased when Captain Shelburne reported Hector's
engineering casualty, Admiral Henke. I trust, however, that the replacement
I've managed to arrange for you until Hector can get that beta node
replaced is satisfactory?"
"Well,
Your Grace," Henke replied judiciously, "I suppose, under the
circumstances, I'll just have to make do."
This time,
the people who'd smiled laughed out loud, and Honor shook her head.
"I'm
sure you'll manage somehow, Admiral," she told Henke. Then she looked at
the other officers again.
"In
most ways, this meeting is something of a formality," she told them.
"You've all done well in training and preparing your commands for Cutworm
II. You've all had time to study our objectives. And I'm confident all of us
are well aware of the importance of this operation."
She paused
to let that sink in.
"Cutworm
II is both more ambitious and less ambitious than our first attacks were,"
she continued after a moment. "It's more ambitious primarily in terms of
timing and how deep we're penetrating to hit Chantilly and Des Moines. Since
all of our task forces will have different transit times, and since I've
decided to once more orchestrate our strikes to hit our targets simultaneously,
Admiral Truman and Admiral Miklós will depart immediately after this meeting.
Admiral McKeon will depart for Fordyce the day after tomorrow, and Admiral
Hirotaka and I will depart for Augusta four days after that.
"Remember,
hitting our assigned objectives—hard—is critically important, but bringing your
ships and your people home is equally so. It seems unlikely the Republic will
have been able to adjust its defensive stance significantly in the last three
weeks. Nonetheless, it isn't impossible, so be alert. We're more likely to see
changes in doctrine and tactical approaches than we are to see significant
redeployment of covering forces. Eventually, obviously, we hope that's going to
change, but simple message transit times are going to preclude their having
done it yet. Hopefully," she smiled again, "our modest efforts over
the next two weeks will provide additional encouragement for their efforts.
"In
just a moment, Commodore Jaruwalski will run through the entire ops schedule
one last time. Afterward, I want to go over the plan individually with each
task force commander. If any questions or suggestions have occurred to any of
you since our last meeting, that will be the time to bring them forward."
She paused
a second time, then nodded to Jaruwalski.
"Andrea,"
she invited, and sat back in her own chair to listen as the ops officer
activated the holo display above the conference table.
* * *
"Your
guests are here, Reverend."
Reverend
Jeremiah Sullivan, First Elder of the Church of Humanity Unchained, nodded in
response to his secretary's announcement and turned away from the picture
window of his large, comfortable office in Mayhew Cathedral.
"Thank
you, Matthew. If you'd be good enough to show them in, please."
"Of
course, Your Grace."
Brother
Matthew bowed slightly, and withdrew. He was back a moment later, accompanied
by half a dozen men. Most were of at least middle years. The sole exception was
a very young man, indeed, for the office he held. Obviously a prolong
recipient, but less than thirty-five T-years old.
He was also
the evident leader of the delegation.
"Reverend,"
he murmured, bending to kiss the ring Sullivan held out to him. "Thank you
for seeing us."
"I
could hardly say no to a request from such distinguished visitors, Steadholder
Mueller," Sullivan said easily. Mueller smiled and stepped aside, and
Sullivan extended his ring hand to the next steadholder in line.
Mueller's
smile became just a trifle fixed as he watched. It was certainly correct
etiquette for visitors, however exalted their rank, to kiss the Reverend's ring
of office. But it was customary in cases like this morning's meeting for
the Reverend to settle for receiving the courtesy from the senior member of the
delegation.
All five of
Mueller's fellows kissed the ring in turn, and Sullivan waved a graceful hand
at the half-circle of chairs arranged before his desk to await them.
"Please,
My Lords. Be seated," he invited, and waited courteously until all of them
had settled before seating himself behind the desk once more with an attentive
expression on his strong, fierce-nosed face.
"And
now, Lord Mueller, how may Father Church serve the people of Grayson?"
"Actually,
Your Grace, we're not quite sure," Mueller replied with an air of candor.
"In fact, we're here more to consult than for anything else."
"Consult,
My Lord?" Sullivan arched one eyebrow, his bald scalp gleaming in the
morning sunlight pouring in through the hermetically sealed window behind him.
"About what?"
"About—"
Mueller started impatiently, then made himself stop.
"About
the Manticoran news reports concerning Steadholder Harrington, Your
Grace," he said after a moment, his tone and expression once more
controlled.
"Ah!"
Sullivan nodded. "You're referring to that person Hayes' column about Lady
Harrington?"
"Well,
to that, and to all the other commentary and speculation he seems to have
generated in the Manticoran press," Mueller agreed, and produced a grimace
of distaste.
"Obviously,
I find the original story and its thinly veiled innuendos an unconscionable
invasion of the Steadholder's private life. The sort of thing, I'm afraid, one
might expect from such a thoroughly . . . secular society. Nonetheless, the
story's been printed, and widely commented upon, in the Star Kingdom, and it's
already starting to make its way through our own news media here in
Yeltsin."
"So
I'd observed," Sullivan agreed almost placidly.
"I'm
sure," Mueller said, his tone more pointed, "you must find that fact
as deplorable as I do, Your Grace."
"I
find it inevitable, My Lord," Sullivan said in a tone of mild correction,
and shrugged. "Steadholder Harrington is one of our most popular public
figures, as all of us are perfectly well aware. This sort of speculation about
her is bound to create a great deal of public comment."
Despite his
formidable self-control, Mueller's eyes flickered as Sullivan referred to
Harrington's popularity. He really did look a great deal like a much younger
edition of his deceased father, Sullivan mused. It was unfortunate the
resemblance went so much deeper than the surface.
"Comment
is one thing, Your Grace," Mueller said now, a bit sharply. "The sort
of comment we're observing, however, is something else entirely."
The other
members of the Conclave of Steadholders' delegation looked uncomfortable, but
none disagreed with their spokesman. In fact, Sullivan saw, most seemed firmly
in agreement. Not surprisingly, given that they'd more or less nominated
themselves for their present mission.
"In
what specific way, My Lord?" the Reverend inquired, still mildly, after a
moment.
"Your
Grace, you're obviously aware Steadholder Harrington's declined to reveal the
paternity of her child," Mueller said. "Moreover, as I'm sure you're
also aware, the Steadholder isn't married. So, I'm very much afraid, that her
son—the son, I remind you, who ought to replace Lady Harrington's sister in the
succession of her Steading—is illegitimate. Not to put too fine a point upon
it, Your Grace, this boy will be not simply a bastard, but a bastard whose
father is a total unknown."
"I
might point out," Sullivan replied tranquilly, "that Manticoran
practices are somewhat different from our own. Specifically, Manticoran law
doesn't recognize the concept of 'bastardy' at all. I believe one of their more
respected jurists once said there are no illegitimate children, only
illegitimate parents. Personally, I find myself in agreement with him."
"We're
not talking about Manticoran law, Your Grace," Mueller said flatly.
"We're talking about Grayson law. About Lady Harrington's
responsibility, as a Steadholder, to keep the Conclave of Steadholders informed
about the birth of an heir to her Steading. About the fact that she hasn't
bothered to marry this boy's father, or even to inform us as to who that father
is!" He shook his head. "I believe, however great her services to
Grayson, we have legitimate cause to be concerned when she so clearly chooses
to flaunt the law of our planet and of Father Church."
"Excuse
me, My Lord, but precisely how has she done that?"
Mueller
stared at the Reverend in consternation for at least three seconds. Then he
shook himself.
"My
Lord, as I'm sure you're perfectly well aware, I, as a steadholder, am required
by law to inform my fellow steadholders of the prospective birth of any heir to
my steading. I'm also required to provide proof that the heir in question is my
child and the legitimate inheritor of my title and my responsibilities. Surely
you aren't suggesting that simply because Lady Harrington wasn't born on
Grayson she's somehow exempt from the obligations binding upon every other steadholder?"
It was
obvious from his manner that Mueller very much hoped Sullivan would make
such an argument. As his father before him—although, so far, at least, without
crossing the line into active treason (so far as anyone knows, at any
rate, Sullivan told himself tartly)—Travis Mueller had found his natural
home in the ranks of the Opposition. And in the Opposition's eyes, Honor
Harrington represented everything they detested about the 'Mayhew
Restoration's' 'secularization' of their society. The unassailable position
Steadholder Harrington held in the hearts of the majority of Graysons was
gall-bitter on their tongues, and Sullivan could almost physically taste the
eagerness with which they anticpated this opportunity to discredit her.
Not that
the unfortunately large number of people who'd attempted the same task before
them had enjoyed much luck, he reflected.
"First
of all, My Lord," he said after a moment, "I'd recommend you consult
a good constitutional scholar, since you appear to be laboring under a
misapprehension. Your responsibility as a steadholder is to inform myself, as
the steward of Father Church, and the Protector, as Father Church's champion
and the guardian of secular matters here on Grayson. It is not to inform the
Conclave as a body."
Mueller's
eyes first widened, then narrowed, and he flushed slightly.
"I'll
grant you, My Lord," Sullivan continued imperturbably, "that, traditionally,
that's included a notification of the Conclave as a whole. However, the
Conclave's responsibility to examine and prove the chain of succession actually
begins only after the birth of the heir in question. And, although I realize
you weren't aware of it, Lady Harrington informed Protector Benjamin and myself
almost two full months ago that she was pregnant. So I assure you all of her
constitutional obligations have been faithfully discharged."
"It
hasn't simply been traditional to notify the Conclave, Your Grace,"
Mueller said sharply. "For generations, it's had the force of law. And
that notification is supposed to be given well before the actual birth of the
child in question!"
"Quite
a few erroneous practices had the 'force of law' prior to the reestablishment
of the correct provisions of our written Constitution, My Lord."
For the first time, there was a very definite iciness in Reverend Sullivan's
voice. "Those errors are still in the process of correction. They are,
however, being corrected."
Mueller
started to reply angrily, then clamped his jaw and visibly made himself
reassert control of his temper.
"Your
Grace, I suppose you're technically correct about the letter of the written
law," he said, after several moments, speaking very carefully.
"Personally, I disagree with your interpretation. You are, however, as you
pointed out a short time ago, Father Church's steward. I will, therefore, not
contest your interpretation at this time, although I reserve the right to do so
without prejudice at another time and in another forum.
"Nonetheless,
the fact remains that Steadholder Harrington isn't married; that our law,
unlike that of the Star Kingdom of Manticore, clearly does recognize the
concept of bastardy and regards it as a bar to inheritance; and that we don't
even know who the father of this child is."
"No,
Lady Harrington isn't married," Sullivan agreed. "And, you're quite
correct that Grayson law, as presently written, does recognize bastardy and the
disabilities and limitations which normally attach to it. However, it's
incorrect to say that we—in the legal sense of Father Church and the
Sword—don't know who the father of Lady Harrington's son is."
"You know
who the father is?" Mueller demanded.
"Of
course I do, as does the Protector," Sullivan said. For that matter, he
thought, everyone on the entire planet knows, whether they're
prepared to admit it or not.
"Even
so," Mueller said after a brief pause," the child is clearly still a
bastard. As such, he must be unacceptable as the heir to a steading."
His voice
was flat, hard, and Sullivan nodded mentally. Mueller had finally and
unambiguously thrown down his gauntlet. Whether or not a majority of the
Conclave of Steadholders would agree with him and sustain his position was
another matter. It was possible a majority would, but even if—as Sullivan
thought was far more likely—the majority didn't agree with him, he would
gleefully take advantage of the opportunity to do all he could to blacken Honor
Harrington's reputation in the eyes of Grayson's more conservative citizens.
"It
occurred to me, when Lady Harrington first informed me she was pregnant,"
the Reverend said mildly after a long, thoughtful moment, "that a view
such as that might present itself. Accordingly, I asked my staff to conduct a
brief historical review."
"Historical?"
Mueller repeated, against his will, when Sullivan deliberately paused and
waited.
"Yes,
historical."
The
Reverend opened a desk drawer and withdrew a fat, old-fashioned hard-copy
folder. He laid it on the blotter, opened it, glanced at the top sheet of
paper, and then looked back at Mueller.
"It
would appear that in 3112, nine hundred and ten T-years ago, Steadholder
Berilynko had no legitimate male children, only daughters. The Conclave of
Steadholders of that time therefore accepted the eldest of his several
illegitimate sons as his heir. In 3120, Steadholder Elway had no legitimate
male children, only daughters. The Conclave of Steadholders of that time
therefore accepted the eldest of his several illegitimate sons as his heir. In
3140, Steadholder Ames had no legitimate male children, only daughters. The
Conclave of Steadholders of that time therefore accepted the eldest of his
several illegitimate sons as his heir. In 3142, Steadholder Sutherland had no
legitimate male children, only daughters. The Conclave of Steadholders of that
time therefore accepted the eldest of his several illegitimate sons as his
heir. In 3146, Steadholder Kimbrell had no legitimate male children, only
daughters. The Conclave of Steadholders of that time therefore accepted the
eldest of his reportedly thirty-six illegitimate sons as his heir. In 3160,
Steadholder Denevski had no legitimate male children, only daughters. The
Conclave of Steadholders of that time therefore accepted the eldest of his
illegitimate sons as his heir. In 3163—"
The
Reverend paused, looked up with a hard little smile, and closed the folder once
more.
"I
trust you'll observe, My Lords, that in a period of less than seventy years
from the founding of Grayson, when there were less than twenty-five steadings
on the entire planet, no less than six steadholderships had passed through
illegitimate—bastard—children. Passed, mind you, in instances in which
there were clearly recognized, legitimate female children. We have nine
hundred and forty-two years of history on this planet. Would you care to
estimate how many more times over that millennium steadholderships have passed
under similar circumstances?" He tapped the thick folder on his desk.
"I can almost guarantee you that whatever total you guess will be too
low."
Silence
hovered in his office, and his old-fashioned chair creaked as he sat back in it
and folded his hands atop the folder.
"So
what we seem to have here, My Lords, is that although the stigma of bastardy
legally bars one from the line of succession of a steadholdership, we've
ignored that bar scores of times in the past. The most recent instance of
which, I might point out, came in Howell Steading less than twenty T-years ago.
Of course, in all the prior instances of our having ignored the law, the
bastards in question were the children of male steadholders. In fact, in
the vast majority of the cases, there was no way for anyone to prove those
steadholders were actually even the fathers of the children in question.
However, in the case of a female steadholder, when the fact that she's
the mother of the child in question can be scientifically demonstrated beyond
question or doubt, suddenly bastardy becomes an insurmountable bar which
can't possibly be set aside or ignored. I'm curious, My Lords. Why is
that?"
Four of the
Reverend's visitors looked away, unable—or unwilling—to meet his fiery,
challenging eye. Mueller only flushed darker, jaw muscles ridging, as he glared
back. And Jasper Taylor, Steadholder Canseco, looked just as stubbornly angry
as Mueller.
"Very
well, My Lords," Sullivan said finally, his voice hard-edged with
something far more like contempt than these men were accustomed to hearing,
"your . . . concerns are noted. I will, however, inform you, that neither
Father Church nor the Sword questions the propriety of this child's inheriting
Steadholder Harrington's titles and dignities."
"That,
of course, is your privilege and right, Your Grace," Mueller grated.
"Nonetheless, as is also well established in both our Faith and our
secular law, a man has both the right and the responsibility to contend for
what he believes God's Test requires of him, whatever the Sacristy and Sword
may say."
"Indeed
he does," Sullivan agreed, "and I would never for a moment consider
denying you that right, My Lord. But before you take your stand before God and
man, it might, perhaps, be prudent of you to be certain of your ground.
Specifically, this child will not be illegitimate."
"I beg
your pardon?" Mueller jerked upright in his chair, and the other
steadholders with him looked equally confused.
"I
said, this child won't be illegitimate," Sullivan repeated coldly.
"Surely that should satisfy even you, My Lord."
"You're
God's steward on Grayson, Your Grace," Mueller shot back, "but not
God Himself. It's been well established, in both Church and civil law, that no
Reverend—not even the entire Sacristy in assembly—can make falsehood true
simply by saying something is so."
"Indeed
I cannot," Sullivan said icily. "Nonetheless, this child will not be
illegitimate. You will not be given the opportunity you so obviously desire to
use Lady Harrington's child as a weapon against her. Father Church won't permit
it. I won't permit it."
He smiled
once again, his eyes frozen agate-hard.
"I
trust that is sufficiently clear, My Lord?"
"Ma'am,
I hate to disturb you, but I think you'd better see this."
Rear
Admiral Jennifer Bellefeuille, the Republican Navy's senior officer in the
Chantilly System, turned towards the dining cabin hatch with a scowl that was
angry, despite her best effort to control her temper.
"What
is it, Leonardo?" She tried to keep herself from chopping the words off in
small, icy chips, but it was more than she could manage.
"Admiral,
Mr. Bellefeuille, I apologize for breaking in on your dinner, but I think this
is urgent."
Commander
Ericsson, Bellefeuille's operations officer, held out a message board to his
admiral. She managed to not—quite—snatch it out of his hand, and glared at the
display. Then, abruptly, her angry expression smoothed into something very
different.
"This
is confirmed?" she asked crisply, looking back up at Ericsson.
"Yes,
Ma'am. I had Perimeter Tracking doublecheck before I broke in on you." He
smiled apologetically. "I know how much you and your family have been
looking forward to this visit, Admiral. I really wish I hadn't had to disturb
you on your very first evening."
"I
wish you hadn't had to, too," Bellefeuille said, her own smile thin.
"For a lot of reasons." She glanced at the message board again, then
set it down on the table. "Ivan's seen a copy of this, as well?"
"Yes,
Ma'am. And I also routed a copy to Governor Sebastian's office."
"Thank
you." This time Bellefeuille's smile was warmer, though it still seemed
strained, a bit taut. "I don't think there's much we can do about it right
now. If they get clumsy and we get a solid read on them, I'd love to nail them.
I'm not going to try holding my breath until we do, though, and I don't want to
give away anything we don't have to. So tell Ivan to activate Smoke and
Mirrors. I want everything we've got brought to immediate readiness, but no one
moves, and we shut down the Mirror Box platforms right now. And I want all of
our stealth-capable units except the destroyers into stealth now. They stay
there until I tell them differently."
"Yes,
Ma'am. Anything else?"
"Not
right now, Leonardo. Thank you."
Commander
Ericsson smiled, nodded once again to his admiral and her family, and withdrew.
"Jennifer?"
The
Chantilly System commander looked up. She realized she'd been settling into
what her mother used to call "a brown study," but the sound of her
name pulled her back out of it abruptly. Her husband looked back at her,
waiting patiently despite the concern in the back of his deep, brown eyes.
"I'm
sorry, Russ," she said quietly. "I know you and the girls just got
here, and I've really been looking forward to this visit. But it appears the
Manties didn't get the memo about your trip."
Russell
Bellefeuille's lips quirked very slightly at her feeble attempt at humor, but
their children, Diana and Matthew, didn't even try to conceal their worry.
"Can
you tell us about it?" Russell asked. His tone said he'd understand if she
couldn't, and she smiled at him, far more warmly, while she wondered how many
other spouses could have honestly said the same in his position.
Russell
Bellefeuille had spent thirty T-years fighting a hopeless struggle against the
"democratized" Legislaturalist educational system. Fortunately, he
and his wife had been born and raised in the Suarez System, and Suarez had been
added to the People's Republic only thirty-six years before the outbreak of the
first war with Manticore, so at least he hadn't had to deal with the
entrenched, massively intrusive bureaucracy of places like Nouveau Paris. He'd
had enough slack to get away with actually teaching his students
something, and although—like his wife—he'd hated and despised the People's
Republic of Rob Pierre and State Security, he'd finally seen the idea that
schools were supposed to teach students take root once more.
Along the
way, he'd found the time and patience to marry a serving naval officer, despite
all of the dislocation a military career imposed on anyone's personal life . .
. and the very real risk involved in marrying an officer while Oscar
Saint-Just's State Security was shooting entire families under his infamous
policy of "collective responsibility." And in the middle of all that,
he'd somehow managed to raise two teenaged children, with only occasional
visits from their mother, and done a damned good job.
"There's
not much to tell . . . yet," she said. "Perimeter Tracking's detected
what's probably a pair of hyper footprints well out from the system primary. It
may be nothing."
"Or it
may be Manty scout ships, like I saw on the boards about Gaston and Hera,"
Diana said tautly. At seventeen, she was the older of Bellefeuille's children,
with her mother's dark hair coloring and gray-green eyes. She also had her
mother's sharp-edged, adrenal personality, and at the moment Bellefeuille
wished she'd inherited more of her father's equanimity.
"Yes,
it may," Bellefeuille said as calmly as she could. "In fact, I think
it probably is."
"Here?"
Technically, Matthew wasn't quite a teenager yet. One reason for this trip to
Chantilly had been to celebrate his thirteenth birthday, and at the moment, he
looked and sounded very young—and frightened—indeed. "The Manties are
coming here, Mom?"
"Probably,"
Bellefeuille repeated.
"But—"
"That's
enough, Matt," Russell said quietly. The boy looked at him, as if he
couldn't believe he could be so blasé about it. But then he saw his father's
eyes, and his mouth shut with an almost audible click.
"Better,"
Russell said, reaching out to ruffle his hair gently, the way he had when
Matthew had been much younger. Then he turned back to his wife.
"All I
really know is what I've read in the 'faxes and on the boards," he told
her. "Is this as bad as I think it is?"
"It's
not good," she told him honestly. "Just how not-good, I don't
know yet. We probably won't, for at least a couple of days."
"But
you expect them to attack?"
"Yes."
She sighed. "I wish now you hadn't come."
"I
don't," he said softly, and her eyes pickled as he looked steadily at her
across the table. Then he reached for his fork and glanced at their children.
"I think we should go ahead and finish eating before we pester your mother
with any more questions," he told them.
* * *
"There's
another one, Sir," Chief Sullivan said flatly.
"Did
we get a locus on it?" Lieutenant Commander Krenckel asked.
"I
wish, Sir," Sullivan replied in disgusted tones. He looked up from his
display, and his expression was a mixture of frustration and apology.
"Whatever it is—and between you and me, Sir, it's got to be a stealthed
Manty recon platform—it's moving like a bat out of hell. I wish to hell I knew
how they got these kinds of acceleration levels and endurance numbers on their
platforms!"
"NavInt
says they've probably put micro fusion plants on them."
Sullivan
blinked.
"Fusion
plants? On something this small?"
"That's
what they say." Krenckel shrugged. "I haven't seen any raw data on
captured hardware or anything to support it, but it comes out of Bolthole. And
if anyone knows what they're up to, it's got to be Admiral Foraker and her
teams."
"Well,
isn't that just peachy," Sullivan muttered, then grimaced.
"Sorry, Sir."
"You're
not saying anything I haven't thought, Chief," Krenckel said dryly.
"Still, it'd make sense out of how small they've managed to make their
MDMs. Not to mention the hellacious power levels their remote EW platforms
pump."
"Yeah,
it would," Sullivan agreed. Then he seemed to give himself a mental shake.
"But what I was saying, Sir—all we're getting is the back scatter, and
their directional transmission capability's better than ours. The best read
we've gotten was an accident—one of our own platforms just happened to wander
into their transmission path—and we haven't gotten what we need for a good
crosscut bearing for any of them. Even if we did, by the time we could vector
anything out there, the platform would be long gone. It'd have to see us
coming, and it can pull a hell of a lot more accel than any LAC we might send
after it."
"Then
we're just going to have to hope we do get a cross bearing, I guess,"
Krenckel said.
"Yes,
Sir."
Sullivan turned
back to his display, bending once more to the wearisome task of listening for
the tiny spies flitting about the Augusta System. Personally, he figured the
effort was as pointless as it was exhausting. They knew the bastards were out
there; they knew they weren't going to be able to run down any of the
platforms, even if they spotted them; and they knew those platforms wouldn't be
there if Hell itself wasn't coming to dinner.
Still, he
supposed he might as well waste his time doing this as anything else.
* * *
"Commander
Estwicke's data is coming in now, Your Grace."
"Thank
you, Andrea."
Honor
nodded to her ops officer, then turned back to the com.
"You
heard, Rafe?"
"Yes,
Ma'am. Yolanda's already looking at the preliminaries. So far, it seems to be
about what we expected."
"Then
it probably is. But remember, surprise—"
"Is
usually what happens when someone misinterprets something he's seen all
along," Cardones finished for her. She closed her mouth, then chuckled.
"I
think I may have spent too many years at the Island."
"No,
Ma'am. You've always been a teacher."
Honor was a
little surprised by the flicker of embarrassment she felt at the sincerity in
Cardones' tone.
"Well,
I had some pretty good teachers of my own," she said, after a moment.
"Admiral Courvoisier, Captain Bachfisch, Mark Sarnow. I guess once you get
stuck in the pattern, it's hard to break."
"If
it's all the same to you, Ma'am, I think we'd all just as soon you didn't
try."
"I'll
. . . bear that in mind, Captain Cardones."
"Good.
And now, if you don't mind, Your Grace, we've both got some tactical
information to look over. So," he grinned broadly at her, "let's be
about it."
* * *
"Tell
the Admiral we've got a major hyper translation."
Commander
Ivan deCastro, Rear Admiral Bellefeuille's chief of staff hoped he looked
calmer than he felt as he gazed into the display at Commander Ericsson.
"How
big is it, Leonardo?" he asked.
"At
least thirteen footprints," Ericsson said grimly. "It may be
fourteen. We're working to refine the numbers."
"Not
good," deCastro said, and Ericsson snorted.
"I see
you subscribe to the theory understatement can be its own form of
emphasis."
"When
it's all you've got, you might as well be witty, I suppose." DeCastro
produced a wan smile. Then he squared his shoulders. "All right, I'll tell
her. At least she's got her family dirt-side now, not on the flagship."
"I
know." For just a moment, Ericsson's expression was haunted. "Christ,
that's got to be hard. Knowing your kids are down there. That they know exactly
what's happening."
"It's
a bastard, all right," deCastro agreed. "Get me those refined numbers
as soon as you can."
* * *
"How
big a force did you say?"
Governor
Joona Poykkonen's face was gray on Rear Admiral Baptiste Bressand's com. Not
that Bressand blamed him a bit. The rear admiral intended to do his best to
defend Augusta, but after he had—and after the wreckage had
dissipated—Poykkonen was going to have to deal with what the frigging Manties
were about to do to his star system.
"Perimeter
Tracking makes it four superdreadnoughts, four battlecruisers, and seven heavy
and light cruisers," Bressand repeated. "It's possible one or more of
the superdreadnoughts could be a carrier, but so far the emissions signatures
are consistent with Invictus and Medusa-class SD(P)s. If I had to
guess, I guess we're up against the same force that hit Hera."
"Harrington
is here?" Poykkonen's face got a little grayer, if that was possible.
"Honor
Harrington is not the devil herself," Bressand said testily. "So far
as I'm aware, she hasn't even made any deals with the devil—assuming the
devil exists. Which I don't."
"I'm
sorry, Baptiste." Poykkonen shook his head like a man trying to shake
water out of his ears and managed an apologetic smile. "It's just, well .
. . . Oh, hell! You know what it is."
"Yes."
Bressand sighed. "Yes, Joona, I know what it is."
"Do
you intend to fight her?" Poykkonen asked quietly after a moment.
"I've
got some orders around here somewhere that say something about my being the
Augusta System's naval commander. If memory serves, they also say something
about defending my station against attack."
"I
know they do." Poykkonen's tone told Bressand his feeble attempt at humor
had failed. "But that doesn't change the fact that you've got one
old-style superdreadnought, six battlecruisers, and a couple of hundred LACs.
That's not enough to stop her, and you know it."
"So
what do I do, Joona?" Bressand sat back and raised one hand, palm
uppermost. "Do I lie down and play dead? Do I just let her—or whoever's in
command over there—waltz right in and blow this system's economy and industrial
base to hell? We've got pods on tow, we've got the system defense pods already
deployed, and if they don't have any CLACs of their own, then at least they
don't have any of those damned Katanas to throw at us. I sent off a
dispatch boat to Haven as soon as we realized they were scouting the system. A
relief force is probably already on its way. If I can just delay these people
until it gets here, we may be able to save at least some of your star system
for you, after all."
"We're
thirty light-years from the capital, Baptiste. That's four days' transit for a
task force and your message can't reach the Octagon until sometime later today.
Do you really think you can stand off a force this size for four frigging days?"
"Probably
not," Bressand said bleakly. "But that doesn't mean I don't have to
try." The two friends looked at one another for a moment, and then
Bressand cleared his throat. "In case we don't get another chance to talk,
Joona, take care of yourself."
"I
will," the Governor promised softly. "And if you don't mind, I'm
going to ask that God you don't believe in to look after you."
* * *
"They're
here, Ma'am," Commander Alan McGwire said. "Perimeter Tracking makes
it at least six of the wall—some of them might be carriers, of course—ten
cruisers, and at least three destroyers."
Commodore
Desiree Carmouche, CO of the 117th Heavy Cruiser Squadron and the Republic of
Haven Navy's senior officer in the Fordyce System, looked at her chief of staff
and shook her head.
"Bit
of overkill there, wouldn't you say?" she observed with ironic bitterness.
"I'm
guessing their intelligence appreciation was off," McGwire replied.
"Up until Thunderbolt, we had a much heavier system defense force stationed
here." He shrugged. "Without an actual recon before they dropped
their damned destroyers and stealthed arrays in on us, they had no way of
knowing the system picket had been so reduced."
"For
what I'm sure seemed like a perfectly good goddamned reason at the time,"
Carmouche grated. She glared at the plot for several seconds, eyes fiery as she
studied the blood-red rash of incoming enemy warships and the seven threadbare
green icons of her own understrength squadron, and then her shoulders sagged visibly.
"There's
nothing we can do to stop them, Alan," she said heavily.
"No,
Ma'am, there isn't," he agreed softly. "Petra's already passed the
word to Governor Dahlberg."
Commander
Petra Nielsen was Carmouche's operations officer, and the commodore nodded in
understanding and approval.
"I've
been on the horn with Captain Watson, myself," McGwire continued. Captain
Diego Watson commanded the Fordyce LAC groups. "He says his people are
prepared to engage."
"In
which case I might as well simply shoot them myself." Carmouche turned
away from the plot at last. "For Christ's sake, Diego has less than a
hundred and fifty Cimeterres! If I commit him against these people,
they'll blow him out of space before he even gets into his missile range of
them. And just what the hell does he imagine he'd accomplish against superdreadnoughts
even if he got into range in the first place?"
"Of
course he wouldn't accomplish anything, Ma'am. But what did you expect him to
say?"
"That
he was ready to go in," Carmouche sighed, then shook her head wearily.
"And I suppose the rest of our magnificent 'task force' is equally ready
to get itself killed for absolutely nothing?"
"They
are if you ask them to, Ma'am," McGwire said softly, and she looked at him
sharply. He met her eyes steadily, and after a moment, she nodded.
"It
does come down to that, doesn't it?" She inhaled deeply. "Well, Alan,
as it happens, I'm not prepared to get all those people killed pointlessly.
Have Communications pass the evacuation order for all of the civilian
platforms, as well as the Fleet yard and repair station. If these are the same
people who hit us last month, they're probably going to be careful about
inflicting civilian casualties. But they might not be the same ones, so let's
not take any chances."
"Aye,
Ma'am," McGwire said formally.
"Then
turn the Squadron around. We've got time to get out of the system before the
Manties can range on us, but only if we start now. Any civilian starships who
can evade are to do the same thing, but if the Manties bring them into range
and order them to halt, they are to obey immediately. Make certain that's
clearly understood."
"And
the LACs, Ma'am?" McGwire's voice was completely nonjudgmental as
Carmouche announced her intention of abandoning the star system to the enemy.
"They're
to return to base immediately, and those bases' personnel are to be evacuated
dirt-side as rapidly as possible. After which they'll blow their fusion
plants," she replied flatly. "I wish we had the personnel lift to
pick up Diego's crews in passing, but we don't. And I very much doubt the
Manties brought along transports to haul prisoners home with them,
anyway."
"That
would require a bit of gall, Ma'am," McGwire agreed. "On the other
hand, look how close to Haven they're operating. I'm afraid gall is one thing
they obviously aren't short on."
* * *
"Well,
this is an anticlimax," Alistair McKeon observed to his chief of
staff.
"ONI
can't get it right all the time, Sir," Commander Orndorff said. "The
last time we looked, there was a substantial picket here. Obviously, times have
changed." She shrugged philosophically. She was a substantial woman, who
produced a substantial shrug, and the treecat on her shoulder flirted his tail
in agreement with his person's observation.
"As if
you know anything about intelligence appreciations!" McKeon told
the 'cat.
"Banshee
made it all the way through the Crusher with me, Sir," Orndorff pointed
out. "You might be surprised what he picked up along the way."
"I
might at that," McKeon agreed, chuckling as he remembered the first
treecat he'd ever met. Then he shook himself.
"All
right, CIC is confident about its tracking data?" he asked.
"Yes,
Sir," another voice said. It belonged to Commander Alekan Slowacki,
McKeon's ops officer and a relative newcomer to his command team. Now Slowacki
gestured at the master plot's display of the Fordyce System, indicating a small
cluster of red dots accelerating rapidly towards the hyper limit.
"That's
all seven of the heavy cruisers Venturer's arrays picked up, Sir,"
he continued. "And this," he pointed to another swarm of ruby light
chips, "is over a hundred LACs returning to base." He shook his head.
"Their system commander, whoever he is, hasn't commed us to announce he's
standing down, but he's obviously intelligent enough to know what would happen
if he didn't."
"And
their missile pods?"
"No
word on those, Sir. Probably the reason the system CO hasn't contacted you
directly," Slowacki said. "He's not prepared to stand them down,
as well, and he's afraid you might insist he do so."
"Damned
straight I would," McKeon half-growled. Then he shook his head. "Not
that I'd be inclined to commit any atrocities if he declined. Mind you, it'd
tempting, but Duchess Harrington would feed me to Nimitz, one bite at a time if
I did anything like that!"
"That's
probably an understatement, Sir," Orndorff said with a ghost of a smile.
"Whatever."
McKeon brooded over the plot for several more seconds, then nodded decisively.
"Okay.
They're abandoning the system—or, at least, they aren't going to defend it with
anything except the pods—and according to Venturer and Mandrake,
they don't have more than a hundred or so of those. I'm going to assume they
have at least twice as many as we've actually found, however. And if they don't
want to get their LACs killed, I don't see any reason we should get ours killed,
either. Contact Admiral Corsini. I want only the Katanas deployed,
strictly in the missile defense role. We'll take Intransigent and Elizabeth
in, covered by Gottmeyer's cruisers and the Katanas. Corsini is to
retain Atchison's cruiser division and the destroyers as a screen for the
carriers and stay outside the hyper limit. If any unpleasant strangers appear,
she's too immediately withdraw and return directly to Trevor's Star."
"We
could probably sweep up the pieces faster with a couple of LAC groups,
Sir," Orndorff pointed out in a diplomatic tone, and McKeon nodded.
"Yes,
we could. On the other hand, a couple of SD(P)s can wipe out every significant
platform out there in less than fifteen minutes if we have to. I'm not going to
send in the LACs while holding the wallers out of missile range, and if I'm
going to take the division in anyway, there's no point exposing Shrikes
and Ferrets to potential lucky hits from the pods. If it takes us a
little longer to do the job this way, so be it."
"Aye,
aye, Sir," Orndorff said, and waved Slowacki towards the flag bridge's com
section.
* * *
Captain
Arakel Hovanian, acting commodore of the 93rd Destroyer Squadron, Republican
Navy, glared at the master plot showing the icons of four CLACs, four
battlecruisers, and seven destroyers and light cruisers sweeping inward from
the hyper limit of the Des Moines System.
"Sir,
Governor Bruckheimer is on the com," Commander Ellen Stokley, the skipper
of the destroyer RHNS Racer and Hovanian's flag captain said quietly.
"Switch
it to my display," Hovanian directed, and the small com flatscreen filled
with the image of Governor Arnold Bruckheimer as the commodore slid into his
command chair.
"Commodore
Hovanian," the Governor said without preamble. "What the hell are you
still doing here?"
"I beg
your pardon?" Hovanian's eyes narrowed in surprise.
"I
asked you what the hell you're still doing here," Bruckheimer repeated
flatly. "Aside from the very high probability of getting yourself and all
of your personnel killed, that is?"
"Governor,
I'm responsible for the defense of this system, and—"
"And
if you try to defend it, you're going to fail," Bruckheimer interrupted
brusquely. "I can still read a tactical plot, you know."
Hovanian
had opened his mouth to reply hotly, but he closed it again with a click at the
reminder that Bruckheimer was a retired admiral.
"Better,"
Bruckheimer said a bit more conversationally. Then he cocked his head to one
side, his eyes compassionate. "Commodore—Arakel—you just got dropped
straight into the crapper through absolutely no fault of your own. If they'd
waited another three weeks, we'd have had some significant reinforcements
waiting for them. But they didn't, and you don't have a single capital ship
under your command. There are exactly twenty-six Cimeterres in this
entire star system; I know even better than you just how thin our missile pods
are stretched; and you've got less than half your own squadron present for
duty. There's no way you're going to stop this with three destroyers,
and," Bruckheimer's voice hardened around the edges once more, "if you
try—and survive the experience—I will personally see you court-martialed. Do I
make myself clear?"
"Yes,
Sir," Hovanian said after a long, still moment. "Yes, Sir. You
do."
"Good."
Bruckheimer ran the fingers of his right hand through his hair and grimaced.
"We're going to have to come up with some sort of response to this
strategy of theirs, but I'm damned if I know what the Octagon's going to do
about it. In the meantime, get your people out of here before they all get
killed."
"Aye,
Sir," Hovanian said. He nodded to Stokely, who began issuing the necessary
orders, then looked back at Bruckheimer. "And . . . thank you, Sir,"
he said to the man who had just saved his life.
* * *
"I
wonder what other systems they're hitting today?" Admiral Bressand said.
"Maybe
they aren't hitting any other systems, Sir," Commander Claudette
Guyard, his chief of staff said.
"Oh,
please, Claudette!" Bressand shook his head.
"I
didn't say I thought they weren't, Sir. I just pointed out a possibility."
"Theoretically,
anything is possible," Bressand said. "Some things, however,
are more likely—or, conversely, less likely—than others."
"True,
but—"
Guyard
paused as Lieutenant Commander Krenckel appeared quietly at her elbow.
"Yes,
Ludwig?" she said.
"We've
confirmed it," Bressand's ops officer said. "Assuming they haven't
decided to try to spoof our identification for some reason, two of those ships
are definitely a pair of the Invictuses that hit Hera. I'm guessing one
of them is the Manties' Eighth Fleet's flagship."
"Which
means we probably are about to play host to 'the Salamander'
herself," Guyard observed. "There's an honor—you should pardon
the pun—I could have done without."
"You
and me both," Bressand said, remembering his conversation with Poykkonen.
"Not that it's going to take any tactical genius to kick the crap out of
us with this kind of force imbalance."
"Maybe
not, Sir," Krenckel said. "On the other hand, there's a sort of
backhanded compliment in getting pounded by the other side's best."
"Did I
ever mention that you're a very strange man, Ludwig?" Guyard asked.
"It
looks like we caught them with their pants down, doesn't it?" Vice Admiral
Dame Alice Truman observed as her Task Force Eighty-One accelerated steadily
in-system towards Vespasien, the inhabited planet of the Chantilly System.
"Yes,
it does," Michelle Henke agreed from the vice admiral's com. "Of
course, I have this sneaky suspicion that it's supposed to look that
way."
"Why,
Admiral Henke! I hadn't realized you had such a broad streak of paranoia."
"It
comes from associating with people like you and Her Grace," Henke said
dryly. Then she continued more seriously. "As Honor keeps pointing out,
the Peeps aren't stupid. And this time around, they don't have political
masters insisting they act as if they were. They haven't had time to reinforce
heavily, but Chantilly is a jucier target than Gaston was. It should have been
more heavily defended to begin with, and they sure as hell had more
hyper-capable units in-system than the three destroyers our arrays have picked
up. Which suggests to my naturally suspicious mind that as soon as they
realized we'd inserted those arrays, they went to full-court stealth on their
main combatants."
"It's
what I'd do," Truman agreed. She drummed lightly on the arm of her command
chair for a few moments, then shrugged. "Our arrays are good, but their
stealth systems have gotten a lot better, and any star system represents a huge
volume. If you were going to hide your defensive task force, where would
you put it?"
"It's
got to be close enough to protect the near-planet platforms," Henke
replied. "Ninety percent of the system's industry's concentrated there, so
there's no point deploying to defend any other area. Greyhound and Whippet
swept the entire volume on this side of Vespasien very carefully, though. Even
assuming they were stealthed, our arrays probably would have spotted them. But
they have to base their deployment plans on the probability that we'll go for a
least-time approach and figure they'll adjust if we do something else, instead.
So, if I were looking for a good hiding place, I'd probably put my units
on this side of the primary, but inside Vespasien's orbit. Far enough in-system
the other side's remotes would have to do a fly-by on the planet, and all of
the bunches and bunches of recon platforms of my own I'd have concentrated
covering the inner system, before they could see me. But close enough so I
could build an intercept vector headed out to meet an attack short of the
planet."
"More
or less what I was thinking," Truman murmured.
"To be
perfectly honest, I'm less concerned about their warships than I am about their
pre-deployed pods," Henke said. "They didn't have a huge number of
them in Gaston, but that's the most cost-effective area-denial system they've
got. And we found out in Gaston that they're a lot harder to spot than we
thought they'd be. It's pretty obvious—assuming we're right about where their
starships are—that whoever's in command here's a pretty cool customer. Sneaky,
too. I don't like to think about what someone like that could do with a big
enough stack of system defense pods if she put her mind to it."
* * *
"Do
you think their scouts spotted us, Ivan?"
"It's
too soon to say, Ma'am," Commander deCastro replied. "If they got
close enough, if they looked in the right direction—if they got lucky—then,
yes. They probably know exactly where we are. But nothing Leonardo's sensor
crews have picked up suggests they did."
And we both
know it's not going to make a lot of difference, either way, he thought, looking affectionately at his admiral.
"I
guess it's just the principle of the thing," Admiral Bellefeuille said
whimsically, as if she'd heard what he carefully hadn't said. "Whether it
does any good or not, knowing we managed to at least surprise them would do
wonders for my own morale."
"Well,
in that case, let's assume they're surprised until and unless we know
differently, Ma'am."
* * *
"So I
want you to take point, Captain ," Michelle Henke said.
"I'm
honored," the tall, gangly man at the other end of the com link drawled in
a maddening aristocratic accent. "Be interestin' t' see how well she does
in her first action, too."
"She's
got a lot to live up to," Henke said.
"I
know," Captain (senior grade) Michael Oversteegen agreed. "In fact, I
believe someone may have mentioned t' me in passin' that the last Nike's
first captain and XO had a little somethin' t' do with that."
"We
tried, Captain. We tried."
Despite
Oversteegen's sometimes infuriating mannerisms and sublime—one might reasonably
say arrogant—self-confidence, Henke had always rather liked him. The
differences between their families' political backgrounds only made that liking
even more ironic, as had the fact that their fathers had loathed one another
cordially. But not even the Earl of Gold Peak had ever questioned Michael Oversteegen's
competence or nerve, and she was glad he was senior to Captain Franklin
Hanover, Hector's CO. She liked Hanover, and he was a good, solid man.
But he wasn't Michael Oversteegen, and Oversteegen's seniority gave him command
of Henke's third division. If ever there'd been a case of the right man in the
right place, this was it, and she watched Nike and Hector crack
on a few more gravities of acceleration.
Winston
Bradshaw and his two Saganami-class cruisers—HMS Edward Saganami
and HMS Quentin Saint-James—closed up on Truman's carriers, while Henke
herself, with Ajax, Agamemnon, and the light cruisers Amun, Anhur,
and Bastet followed in Oversteegen's wake. She didn't want the interval
between her own ships and Oversteegen's division to get too great, but she
wanted at least a few more seconds to react to any traps or ambushes
Oversteegen might trip. And she wanted to be sure she kept her ships and the
four squadrons of Katanas providing her close cover between Oversteegen
and the two hundred-plus Peep LACs shadowing the Manticoran ships.
She looked
at the tiny icons of the LACs on her plot, and once again, she was tempted to
roll pods. The small vessels were well within her powered missile envelope, but
far enough out accuracy would be even lower than usual against LACs, and Agamemnons
weren't wallers. They had to watch their ammunition consumption carefully.
* * *
"I
don't think they do know where we are, Ma'am," deCastro said. "It
looks like they may suspect, though. And I'd say it's pretty definite that someone's
figured out we're pretending we're a hole in space somewhere."
"Pity,"
Bellefeuille a replied. "I'd hoped they'd keep coming all fat and happy.
Anyone care to speculate on whether or not they've deployed additional recon
drones?"
* * *
"Anythin'
on the drones yet, Joel?"
"Not
yet, Sir. Betty is still steering them into position."
Commander
Joel Blumenthal had moved up from tactical officer to exec when Captain
Oversteegen had to give up HMS Gauntlet in order to assume command of
Nike. Linda Watson, Oversteegen's XO in Gauntlet had no longer been
available, since she'd received a long overdue promotion of her own to captain
and taken over his old ship. And, despite some people's possible qualms,
Oversteegen had brought along the newly promoted Lieutenant Commander Betty
Gohr to replace Blumenthal as Nike's brand spanking new tactical
officer. Competition for any slot on Nike's command deck had been
fierce, but Michael Oversteegen had a knack for getting the bridge crew he
wanted.
Which
probably, Blumenthal reflected, had something to do with the results he
consistently produced.
"I
believe Admiral Henke's correctly deduced the other side's most probable
position," Oversteegen said now, tipping back in his command chair with a
thoughtful expression. "The question in my mind is precisely what they
hope t' accomplish."
"I
imagine not getting shot at for as long as possible is pretty high on their
list, Sir," Blumenthal said dryly, and Oversteegen gave one of the
explosive snorts he used instead of a chuckle.
"No
doubt it is," he said after a moment. "At th' same time, if that was
all they wanted, th' simplest thing for them t' have done would be t' have
simply decamped. No." He shook his head. "They've got somethin' more
than that in mind."
He pondered
for a few more moments, then looked at Lieutenant Commander Gohr.
"Have
we confirmed Greyhound and Whippet's numbers on the pods they did
detect, Betty?"
"No,
Sir." Gohr looked up from her own console and half-turned to face her CO.
"But as Commander Sturgis pointed out, his platforms had a very difficult
time picking them up in the first place on passives," she reminded him.
"It's probably not too surprising there's a discrepancy."
"Perhaps
not. But are our numbers high compared t' his, or low?"
"Low,
Sir. We seem to be coming in at least twenty-five percent lower than his
original numbers overall."
"That's
what I thought," Oversteegen said softly, and Blumenthal gave him a sharp
look. One that turned suddenly speculative.
"Precisely,"
Oversteegen said, then looked at his communications section. "Lieutenant
Pattison, I believe I need t' speak t' Admiral Henke again. Would you be so
kind as t' see if she's prepared t' take my call?"
* * *
"I
think Oversteegen's onto something, Ma'am," Michelle Henke told Dame Alice
Truman.
"But
how could they have moved them without Sturgis' arrays seeing them?"
Truman's question was thoughtful, not dismissive.
"Very
carefully," Henke replied dryly. Truman made a face, and Henke chuckled
humorlessly.
"Seriously,
Ma'am," she went on, after a moment, "think about it. Whoever this
is, she's cool enough, and she's thought far enough ahead, to get her mobile
units—aside from her LACs—into stealth before our arrays found her. Personally,
I'm betting she did it as soon as her sensors picked up Greyhound and
Whippet's hyper footprints. And I'm also betting she'd already decided what
she was going to do with her pods if it came to it. So what she's probably been
doing is quietly using some of that near-planet 'merchant traffic' Sturgis
reported to pick up and drop off previously deployed pods. If she did, I think
we need to rethink our recon doctrine."
"Go
ahead and park one or two in close and just let them sit?"
"Yes,
Ma'am."
Henke
didn't mention that she'd already suggested that modification only to have the
Powers That Were at Admiralty House shoot it down. They were concerned that a
stationary platform would be more readily tracked down, especially since it
would be inside most of the system's defenders' surveillance platforms, which
would give them a far better chance of detecting the array's directional
transmissions and triangulating on their source. Having the arrays localized
and destroyed would have been bad enough, but the present generation of recon
drones had all the Ghost Rider bells and whistles, including the very
latest grav-pulse coms and several other goodies Erewhon had never had to turn
over to Haven in the first place. The possibility that one of them might be
disabled without being destroyed, while slight, did exist, and Admiralty House
strongly objected to the notion of handing the Star Kingdom's latest and best
hardware to the other side for examination.
"I
think you were probably right all along, Mike," Truman said after a
moment. "Certainly, if they did what Oversteegen thinks they did, having a
couple of platforms—or even just one—keeping a close, permanent eye on
near-planet space would probably've caught them at it."
"Maybe.
The question, though, Ma'am, is what we do about it," Henke pointed out.
"Well,
I see two possibilities. First, we send in the LACs. That means radically
slowing your ships' approach while Scotty and his LAC jockeys get themselves organized
and catch up with you. Second, we go right on doing what we're doing. Which do
you vote for?"
"A
variant of Option Two," Henke said without any appreciable hesitation.
"I don't want to waste any more time than we have to, since we don't know
where any response force they've sent for is coming from, or exactly how long
it's going to take to get here. What I propose is that I send the Katanas
ahead to catch up with Oversteegen. Hopefully, the bad guys won't have guessed
we've taken a page from their own missile-defense doctrine, but whether they
have or not, forty-eight Katanas should help out quite a bit."
"I
don't know, Mike," Truman said dubiously. "Scotty would only need a
couple of hours more than Oversteegan to get there, and Shrikes and Ferrets
are a lot harder targets for their fire control than battlecruisers."
"And a
lot easier to kill if they get hit," Henke pointed out. "Besides,
we're already inside their powered missile envelope, if they're where we think
they are. At the moment, they're not firing because we're still closing, and
they're willing to wait until we give them better firing solutions. But if we
suddenly break off, they're going to fire anyway, well before we could get a
LAC strike in close enough to start killing platforms. Since we've already
stepped into their parlor, I think our best chance is to just keep going, offer
Oversteegen as the most attractive target, and back him up with the best
missile-defense capability we can."
Truman
thought some more. Then she nodded, once, sharply.
"All
right, Mike. Do it."
* * *
"They've
definitely figured out roughly what we're doing with our main combatants,
Ma'am," Leonardo Erickson said. He tapped the projected vectors CIC was
throwing into the master plot. "Look at this."
The four
squadrons of LACs which had been glued tightly to the second Manty
battlecruiser division were accelerating away from it, closing rapidly on the
lead division. At the same time, some of the near-planet sensor platforms
were beginning to pick up the shadowy ghosts of Manticoran recon drones. They
weren't finding many of them, but that didn't mean they weren't there; the
drones were hellishly difficult sensor targets at the best of times. The
limited number they were actually seeing suggested there was probably a solid
shell of them, spreading out in front of the oncoming Manty starships, and CIC
was doing its best to project where that shell was in three-dimensional space.
The tracking crews' hard data was limited, but Bellefeuille felt confident
they'd gotten it effectively correct, and the shell they were projecting was
aligned all too closely upon her own ships' positions.
"So,"
she said flatly, "the question is whether we fire now, when it's pretty
clear they haven't quite locked in our positions, or wait a little longer in
hopes of improving our firing solutions. Opinions, anyone?" She looked up
from the plot. "Ivan?"
"Wait,"
Commander deCastro said, quickly and positively. She cocked an eyebrow, and he
shrugged. "We're so outgunned that one good shot is all we're likely to
get, Ma'am," he pointed out. "That being the case, I'd like it to be
as effective as we can make it. That's what Smoke and Mirrors was all about to
start with."
"I
see. Leonardo?" she looked at her ops officer.
"Normally,
I'd tend to agree with Ivan," Erickson said after a moment. "But I
don't like this." He indicated the steadily accelerating icons of the
enemy LACs once more. "They've been careful to keep them between our known
LAC concentrations and the rest of their ships. To me, that suggests they're
probably Katanas in the escort role. But now they're sending them in
along with their probe, and I'm wondering if they've evolved something like our
LAC fleet missile-defense doctrine. If they have, then the people we're going
to have the improved firing solutions on are also going to've significantly
improved their defenses by the time we finally fire."
"On
the other hand, Ma'am," deCastro pointed out, "the closer they get to
us, the further they are from their main body. And if they are a sizable
chunk of the Manties' Katana force, mousetrapping them now might
be the best thing we could do. Especially since they also seem to've completely
missed Mirror Box."
Jennifer
Bellefeuille nodded slowly, and her senior staffers waited. She always invited
opinions, careful to avail herself of the best advice available, and she always
made the final decision herself.
"We
wait," she said. "Not as long as you'd probably like, Ivan, but long
enough for our solutions to tighten up. I think we'll wait until their Katanas—and
I think you're right about what they are, Leonardo—are about ten minutes from
matching vectors with their battlecruisers. I'd actually have liked to catch
them close enough to engage our missiles with their counter-missiles but still
too far out to use their laser clusters, but that's not going to work, given
the geometry. I think we'll go with a staggered launch, though."
"Staggered,
Ma'am?" Erickson repeated.
"The
first one to concentrate on their battlecruisers," she said, with a thin
smile. "I'll want it heavy enough to get their attention pretty
emphatically, too. Particularly, I'd like their Katanas to commit as
many as possible of their counter-missiles to stopping the first wave."
Her thin
smile grew vicious, and her staffers found themselves returning it slowly.
* * *
"Dagger
One, Ramrod."
"Ramrod,
Dagger One," Commander Dillinger replied. "Go."
Dillinger
and his Katanas were over five million kilometers in front of Scotty
Tremain's command LAC and the rest of the carrier division's strike, but there
was no perceptible delay in their grav-pulse FTL conversation.
"I'm
getting that uncomfortable feeling between my shoulder blades, Crispus,"
Tremain continued more informally. "I don't know why, but I've got the
feeling there's something nasty waiting out here."
"Ah,
Ramrod," Dillinger said with a smile, "I'm afraid I didn't quite copy
that threat analysis. Could you repeat all after 'something.'"
"Dagger
One, you're a smart ass," Tremain told him. Then his tone sobered.
"Seriously, Crispus. Watch your six. I don't like how conspicuous these
people's inactivity has been. I don't know exactly what they're up to, but
they're up to something. That much I am confident of."
"Ramrod,
I hear you," Dillinger responded, his smile fading. "So far, though,
I haven't seen a thing you haven't."
"I
know." Tremain frowned as he gazed at his own plot aboard Dacoit.
"That's what worries me. Ramrod, clear."
* * *
"Another
ten minutes, I think," Jennifer Bellefeuille said quietly.
She stood
beside Commander Ericsson, gazing into the master plot of RHNS Cyrus,
her battlecruiser flagship, at the icons of the oncoming warships. Even a few
years before, she knew, the Manties would already have localized her own ships,
opened fire, and almost certainly destroyed them by now. But one of the Manty
drones had passed within less than ten light-seconds of her flaship and simply
continued on its way, which made it obvious the improvements in the Republic's
stealth systems were giving the enemy's sensors a hard time. The fact that none
of her starships had their wedges up and that all of them had gone to total
emissions control undoubtedly helped, but even so, she felt the tension
prickling sharper in her palms. Cyrus and her consorts were barely one
light-minute from Vespasien, and the Manties were clearly looking for them
hard.
But they
haven't found us yet, she
reminded herself. So it's time to give them something else to think about
before they do.
"Initiate
Decoy," she said.
"Aye,
Ma'am," Ericsson said , and nodded to the com officer. "Send
'Initiate Decoy.'"
* * *
"I
have something, Sir!" Lieutenant Commander Gohr said sharply. "The
Gamma-Three array is picking up what looks like stealthed impeller wedges.
Bearing three-four-niner, zero-zero-niner from the ship, range approximately
five-six-point-eight million klicks!"
Michael
Oversteegen punched a command into the small-scale plot deployed from the arm
of his command chair, and his eyes narrowed as the display zoomed in on the
indicated datum.
Nike and Hector were still 20,589,000 kilometers from
Vespasien, but their velocity was down to a mere 5,265 KPS as they continued to
decelerate at a steady 5.31 KPS2. Their present flight profile would
bring them to a halt, relative to the system primary, one light-minute short of
the planet. That was close enough to bring all the near-planet orbital
infrastructure into sufficiently short range to avoid any embarrassing
accidents . . . like unintentional missile strikes on an inhabited world. But
it was also far enough out to keep him at least two light-minutes from
his own estimate of the enemy's closest probable position.
Commander
Dillinger's Katanas were continuing to close from astern. Their higher
acceleration rate meant they'd been able to attain a higher base velocity
before they began decelerating towards a rendezvous, and their current velocity
was 6,197 KPS. Their vectors would merge with Nike's in another ten
minutes, at which point they would both be down to a velocity of 2,079 KPS and
less than four hundred thousand kilometers from their planned zero-zero
point—or about 18,400,000 kilometers from Vespasien.
The new
emission signatures Gohr had picked up were just over two light-minutes inside
Vespasien's orbit. Assuming the ships responsible for the signatures had pods
of multi-drive missiles, that would put his ships inside their effective range,
but far enough out for Havenite accuracy to be very, very poor.
"Move
the platforms closer, Betty," he said, after a moment. "And don't
forget t' watch the other approaches, as well."
"Yes,
Sir."
* * *
Jennifer
Bellefeuille watched her own plot, gray-green eyes slitted in concentration. It
was impossible to tell whether or not the Manties had bitten, but the decoy
emissions looked very convincing to her own recon platforms. She didn't have
much faith in their ability to fool the Manties for long, but if CIC's
projection of their recon shell's probable deployment was correct, it would take
them precious minutes to get even one of their drones close enough to
realize the units they were picking up were actually the recon variant of the Cimeterre.
There were eight of them out there, each with a standard tethered decoy
tractored to it, and their only job was to "leak" enough of an
impeller signature to keep the Manties looking in their direction just a
little longer.
* * *
"Dagger
Flight will match vectors with us in about six minutes, Sir," Lieutenant
Commander Gohr announced.
"Very
good. Anythin' more on those impeller signatures?"
"Not a
lot, Sir. But the arrays are closing in, and so far it looks like a half-dozen
or so point sources. Maybe a few more."
"I
see." Michael Oversteegen grimaced. Over the years, he'd learned to trust
his instincts, and those instincts told him something wasn't quite right. He
looked up and waved Blumenthal closer to his command chair.
"Yes,
Sir?"
"Why
d'you suppose these fellows are just sittin' there?"
Blumenthal
frowned. He gazed down into Oversteegen's plot for a second or two, then looked
back up.
"If
they're planning to let us continue to close, which seems to be what they've
been doing so far, then they're probably waiting until they're sure they've
been detected," he said, in the tone of a man who wondered if he'd just
been asked a trick question.
"Unless
they're complete and total idiots, like my beloved cousin, Countess
Fraser," Oversteegen replied, "they've got t' have a pretty shrewd
notion we've already picked them up." He pointed an index finger at the
blue-white icon of Vespasien. "One thing Commander Sturgis was able t'
positively confirm, Joel, is that the space around Vespasien is crawlin' with
Havenite reconnaissance assets. D'you seriously think we managed t' get that
many of our own drones right past the planet without any of those assets
noticin' as they went by?"
"Well,
no, Sir. Of course, they are very stealthy."
"Yes,
they are," Oversteegen agreed dryly. "But good as our stealth
technology is, it's not yet perfect. And, much as it pains me t' admit it,
between what they got from the Erewhonese and what they've probably managed t'
pick up on their own from examinin' captured hardware, our cloak of
invisibility's probably just a tad thinner than any of us would like t' think.
I'm not sayin' they can get solid lockups on our platforms. But when we operate
this many of them, in such close proximity and so deep into the other side's
sensor envelope, they're bound t' pick up at least some of them. And if
they've managed t' do that, any tac officer worth his salt should be able t'
project our basic deployment pattern. In which case, they damned well ought t'
know that if they're sittin' there with active impeller wedges, we're goin' t'
have picked them up by now."
"Put
that way, Sir, you may have a point," Blumenthal conceded. "At the
same time, they may be waiting until our platforms go active and they know we've
got them."
"Maybe
so, but why put themselves that far from the planet?" Oversteegen asked.
"It puts Vespasien outside their best MDM envelope by a considerable
margin, which means they're riskin' an accidental hit on the planet if
they engage us. They didn't have t' let us this close t' the planet in the
first place. They ought t' be at least a light-minute closer, and if they
aren't, then they ought t' still be lyin' doggo." He shook his head.
"No, they've got somethin' else in mind."
He brooded
down at the plot for a few more seconds, then looked up at Gohr.
"Launch
another shell," he said. "I want t' sweep this area again."
He tapped a
command into his armrest alphanumeric pad, highlighting the indicated volume of
space on Gohr's larger plot.
"Sir,
I can recall the Beta platforms to cover that volume," she pointed out.
"I'm
certain you could," he agreed pleasantly. "Unfortunately, that would
require at least twenty minutes, and I want it swept now."
"Yes,
Sir."
Gohr
beckoned to her assistant, and the two of them began punching in commands to
deploy the specified drone shell to cover the area to system north of Vespasien
once again.
* * *
"Crap,"
Leonardo Ericsson muttered as the fresh drones began deploying from the
outsized Manty battlecruiser.
"So
they didn't buy the decoys after all," deCastro said.
"No."
Bellefeuille shook her head. "They bought them—for a little while, at
least. But whoever that is over there, she's a suspicious one. So she's
doublechecking the 'clear areas' just in case."
"Well,
they're going to pick us up, emissions control or no emissions control, in
about another seven minutes, Ma'am," Ericsson pointed out. "These
two, especially, are coming straight down our throats."
He tapped
two light codes on his display, and this time Bellefeuille nodded.
"Yes,
they are. And they're about where we wanted them anyway." She
straightened, inhaled deeply, and nodded to deCastro.
"It's
time," she said.
* * *
"Missile
launch!" Betty Gohr barked suddenly. "Multiple missile
launches!"
Oversteegen
looked up sharply as the deadly, blood-red icons appeared on the master plot.
"Range
at launch eight-five-point-two light-seconds," Gohr said flatly.
"Time to attack range six-point-one-three minutes!"
* * *
Jennifer
Bellefeuille and her staff had devised the operational plan she'd dubbed
"Smoke and Mirrors" in response to the Manticorans' first set of
raids. Although Chantilly had been assigned a substantially heavier system
defense force than Gaston or Hera to begin with, she'd known it was grossly
insufficient to hold off attacks in such strength using any conventional
defensive plan, so she'd had to go outside the box.
Her six
heavily refitted Warlord-class battlecruisers and three Trojan-class
destroyers were the only hyper-capable combatants she had, but she also had
almost six hundred Cimeterres and almost a thousand system-defense
missile pods to back them up. And she also had two hundred and forty standard
MDM pods to go with it.
The problem
was that although the system-defense pods' out-sized, over-powered birds could
actually slightly exceed Manticoran MDMs' acceleration rates, her standard
pods' missiles couldn't quite match them, and neither of them were as accurate
as Manty missiles. In addition, what had happened in Gaston demonstrated that
her LACs simply could not mix it up with Katanas—on Manty terms, at
least—and win. So she'd had to get creative if she wanted to do any good.
The instant
Perimeter Tracking picked up evidence the Manty's were scouting Chantilly, her
battlecruisers, already in their preselected positions, had gone to stealth and
strict emissions control under the Smoke and Mirrors operational plan. In
addition, two-thirds of her total LAC strength had gone to immediate readiness,
but been restricted to its bases. She'd continued to operate two hundred LACs
normally, making certain the Manties saw them, but four hundred additional Cimeterres,
based on Vespasien's main space station and a dozen other innocuous orbital
platforms, outwardly indistinguishable from any freight-handling facility, had stayed
completely covert.
Now, like
any good magician, Bellefeuille began her stage show by fixing her audience's
attention firmly on the distraction she wanted it to see.
* * *
"Estimate
nineteen hundred incoming," Lieutenant Commander Gohr announced.
"Understood.
Lieutenant Pattison, request Dagger One t' expedite his arrival, if you
please."
Michael
Oversteegen's voice was as calm and drawling as ever as he watched the cyclone
of missiles tear through space towards his command.
"Defense
Plan Alpha," he continued, and HMS Nike and HMS Hector
altered course. They rolled up on their sides to turn the bellies of their
wedges towards the incoming fire while Keyhole platforms deployed far beyond
the boundaries of their protective sidewalls, and counter-missile defense
solutions were already cycling.
"Looks
like you had a point, Sir," Blumenthal observed quietly.
"Those—" he jabbed his head at the elusive impeller signatures the
Gamma arrays had detected"—have to be decoys."
Oversteegen
nodded. The missiles coming at Nike and Hector had been launched
from a point in space this side of Vespasien and just under one
light-minute "north" of it . . . the next best thing to four
light-minutes away from Blumenthal's decoys.
"Obviously
they wanted t' get us in as close as they could before launchin', so they kept
us lookin' somewhere they weren't," he agreed. But even as he spoke,
something continued to bother him.
* * *
"All
Daggers, Dagger One!" Commander Dillinger snapped. "Flyswatter. I say
again, Flyswatter!"
The forty-eight
Katanas of Dagger Flight changed acceleration in almost instant response.
One moment they were decelerating at seven hundred gravities, sixty thousand
kilometers astern of Nike and slowing neatly towards rendezvous; the
next, they were accelerating at the same seven hundred gravities as they
charged to catch up with and pass the battlecruisers. Although they were
smaller and far frailer than any battlecruiser, they were also much more
difficult targets for long-range missile fire, and they raced towards the enemy
to place their own defensive missile launchers between the incoming MDMs and
their targets.
* * *
"The Katanas
are moving to intercept, Ma'am," Ericsson announced, and Rear Admiral
Bellefeuille jerked her head in combined acknowledgment and approval. The
possibility of Cyrus' surviving the next half-hour or so was remote, but
she'd actually managed to put that out of her mind as she concentrated on the
task in hand.
"Remind
the Mirror Box platforms that they do not launch without my specific
order," she said.
"Aye,
Ma'am."
* * *
"Damn,"
Michelle Henke said, far more mildly than she felt. The fact that her instincts
had been correct didn't make her feel much better as she watched the massive
missile launch sweeping towards Nike and Hector.
"Take
us to maximum acceleration," she told Stackpole. "Close us up on
Oversteegen and prepare to support his missile defenses."
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am!" her ops officer said crisply. "But it's going to be
awfully long range for our CMs," he pointed out. "And we're really
too far out to coordinate with Nike and Hector. Even with FTL
telemetry, we're simply too far away to data share effectively."
"I
understand that, John. But, worst case, any attack bird we kill is simply one
Oversteegen would have nailed anyway. And if we take out one he would have
missed . . . ."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
Stackpole
began issuing orders, and Henke turned back to her own display. The ops officer
was certainly correct about the dispersal problem, she thought. Her own
battlecruiser division was two and a half million kilometers behind
Oversteegen. She had the reach—barely, with the new extended-range
counter-missiles—to bolster his defensive umbrella, but her support would be
far less effective from this far out. Still, something about the attack
pattern—
"There
aren't enough birds," Oliver Manfredi said suddenly. She looked up,
turning towards the chief of staff, and Manfredi shook his golden head.
"There's less than two thousand in the salvo, Ma'am. That's less than
three hundred of their standard pods. So where are the others?"
Henke
looked at him for perhaps three seconds, then spun her chair to face Lieutenant
Kaminski.
"Get
me an immediate priority link to Captain Oversteegen!"
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am," the communications officer replied instantly.
* * *
"Weapons
free!" Commander Dillinger snapped, and the Katanas of Dagger
Flight began punching counter-missiles at the incoming fire.
Dillinger
didn't really like to think about just how expensive each of his LACs'
"counter-missiles" actually was. The systems built into the Viper for
its anti-LAC role meant it cost twice as much as the standard extended-range
Mark 31 CM on which it was based. But the Viper retained the Mark 31's basic
drive system, and a counter-missile's impeller wedge was what it used to
"sweep up" attack missiles. Which meant the Viper was still perfectly
capable of being used defensively, and earmarking a percentage of them for
missile defense, rather than using magazine space on dedicated Mark 31s which couldn't
be used in the anti-shipping role, simplified their ammunition requirements and
gave them a potentially useful cushion both offensively and defensively.
Now the
Vipers bored out of their launch tubes, streaking to meet the incoming
missiles, and Dillinger smiled nastily. He was willing to bet the Peeps had
never seen LACs kill missiles at this range!
* * *
"You
were right, Ma'am," deCastro said. "They do use those things for
counter-missiles, too."
"Made
sense," Bellefeuille said almost absently, watching her plot. "The
signatures Admiral Beach recorded at Gaston made it pretty clear they were
basically the same missile body and drive package, after all."
"And
it's a reasonable decision from the viewpoint of ammo supply, too,"
Ericsson agreed, then showed his teeth. "Of course, sometimes even the
most reasonable decisions can bite you right on the ass."
"Especially
if someone else helps it do it," deCastro said with a tight, answering
grin.
* * *
"Tactical,"
Michael Oversteegen said suddenly. "Have the near-planet pods we've
located launched?"
"Sir?"
Lieutenant Commander Gohr sounded startled. It took her a fraction of a second
to shake her mind loose from the anti-missile engagement as the steady
vibration of counter-missile launches shook Nike. The first wave of
Vipers from Dagger Flight was beginning to rip holes in the Havenite salvo, and
her own missile defense section was running at full stretch, analyzing the
attack missiles' EW patterns. But then she stabbed a quick look at a secondary
plot, and Oversteegen saw her twitch upright in her chair as the data
registered.
"No,
Sir," she said, turning her head to look directly at him. "None
of this fire's coming from Vespasien orbit!"
"That's
what I thought," he said grimly. "Com, get me Dagger One."
"Sir,"
Lieutenant Pattison said, "you have an immediate priority signal from
Admiral Henke."
"Put
it through, Jayne—and get me Dagger One!"
"Aye,
aye, Sir."
Michelle
Henke's face appeared on Oversteegen's display, her expression tense.
"Michael,
I'm looking at the missile density, and—"
"And
it's too low," Oversteegen broke in. "We've just confirmed the
near-planet platforms haven't launched a single bird." A window opened in
the corner of his display, showing Crispus Dillinger's face. "And now,
I've got t' go," Oversteegen told his admiral, and punched the button that
brought Dillinger to the center of the display.
"Yes,
Sir?" Dillinger said.
"There's
somethin' peculiar about their attack pattern, Commander," Oversteegen
said quickly. "They're only using a fraction of their total missile
power—and everything they're actually firin' is coming from further away, with
what have t' be poorer targetin' solutions."
"Sir?"
Dillinger looked puzzled, and Oversteegen shook his head impatiently.
"They're
tryin' t' distract us—and quite possibly t' lure us into expendin'
counter-missiles before their real attack."
"But—"
"This
isn't a debatin' society, Commander," Oversteegen said. "Abort your
missile defense of this division—now!"
* * *
Crispus
Dillinger looked at the face on his communications display with something very
like incredulity. The man had to be insane! There were almost a thousand
missiles tearing down on each of his ships, and he wanted Dillinger to stop defending
them?!
But—
"All
Daggers," he said harshly, "Dagger One. Abort Flyswatter. Repeat, abort
Flyswatter. Missile Defense Alpha is now in effect."
* * *
"Well,
it was nice while it lasted," Jennifer Bellefeuille said as the torrent of
counter-missiles pouring from the Katanas slowed abruptly to a trickle.
She looked at Ericsson. "Estimates on their expenditure, Leonardo?"
"Assuming
they have the same basic magazine space as the Manty missile LACs we were able
to inspect after Thunderbolt, and that these things are basically the same size
as their standard counter-missiles, that has to be at least fifty percent of
their total loadout, Ma'am. Possibly as high as sixty, if they've committed
additional volume and mass to more point defense clusters, as well."
"And
they did a real number on our missiles with them, too," deCastro pointed
out. "Their kill percentages are damned close to twice what Cimeterres
would have managed, even at much shorter ranges."
"True."
Bellefeuille nodded. "On the other hand, there are less than fifty of
them, and if Leonardo's right, they don't have a lot of missiles left."
She gazed
at the plot a second or two longer, then nodded again, crisply.
"Initiate
Phase Two, Leonardo."
* * *
HMS Nike
twisted sinuously as the depleted missile storm tore down upon her and her
division mate.
The
Katanas had thinned it considerably before Oversteegen ordered them to
stand down. Of the nineteen hundred missiles which had launched, the LACs had
killed seven hundred. The battlecruisers' counter-missiles killed two hundred
and sixty, and another hundred and fifty or so simply lost lock and wandered
off on their own. Three hundred and twelve more locked onto the Ghost Rider
decoys Nike and Hector had deployed, and another sixty looped
suddenly back towards the Katanas, only to be ripped apart by the LACs'
point defense clusters.
But that
left four hundred and seventy-eight, and as they streamed past the Katanas,
the battlecruisers were on their own.
Oversteegen
watched them come, absolutely motionless in his command chair, narrow eyes very
still. Thirty point defense laser clusters studded each of Nike's
flanks. They were individually more powerful than any past Manticoran
battlecruiser had ever mounted, with fourteen emitters per cluster, each
capable of cycling at one shot every sixteen seconds. That came to one shot
every 1.2 seconds per cluster, but that was only twenty-five per broadside per
second, and these were MDMs. They had traveled over twenty-five million
kilometers to reach their targets, their closing speed was almost 173,000
KPS—fifty-eight percent of the speed of light—and they had a standoff attack
range of 30,000 kilometers.
They
crossed the inner perimeter of the counter-missile interception zone, losing
another hundred and seventeen in the process. Of the three hundred and
sixty-one survivors, fifty-eight were electronic warfare platforms, which
meant"only" three hundred and three missiles—barely fifteen percent
of the original launch—actually attacked.
The space
about Nike and Hector was hideous with incandescent eruptions of
fury, and bomb-pumped lasers ripped and gouged at their targets. But these
battlecruisers had been designed and built to face exactly this sort of attack.
Their sidewalls—especially Nike's—were far tougher and more powerful
than any previous battlecruisers had mounted, and both of them were equipped
with the RMN's bow and stern walls. The fact that they'd been able to keep
their wedges turned towards the incoming fire even while they engaged it with
their own counter-missiles presented additional targeting problems for the
Havenite missiles' onboard systems. Instead of the broadside aspect ships were
normally forced to show attack missiles' sensors, all these missiles saw
was the wedge itself. But no sensor could penetrate a military-grade impeller
wedge, which made it impossible for them to absolutely localize their targets.
They could predict the volume in which their target must lay, but not precisely
where within that volume to find it.
And that
was why Nike and Hector survived. The missiles' sensors could have
seen through the battlecruisers' sidewalls, but the sidewalls were turned away
from them. Most of them streaked "above" and "below" the
Manticoran battlecruisers, fighting for a "look-down" shot, while
others crossed the Manticorans' bows or sterns, trying for
"up-the-kilt" or "down-the-throat" shots. Tough as Nike's
passive defenses were, they were no match for the raw power of the Havenite
lasers, but the very speed which made MDMs such difficult targets for
short-range point defense fire worked against them now. They simply didn't have
time to find their targets and fire in the fleeting fragment of a second they
took to cross the Manticoran ships' tracks.
* * *
"No
damage, Sir!" Lieutenant Commander Gohr announced jubilantly.
"None!"
"Well
done, Guns," Oversteegen replied.
"Captain
Hanover reports one hit forward on Hector, Sir," Lieutenant
Pattison reported. "No casualties, but she's lost one graser and a laser
cluster."
"Good,"
Oversteegen said. "In that case, let's—"
"Missile
launch!" Gohr said suddenly. "Multiple launches! Sir, I have LAC
separation from in-system platforms!"
Oversteegen's
eyes flew to the main plot, and his jaw tightened as threat sources exploded
across it. A fresh wave of MDMs had abruptly appeared, launched from the same
spot as the first salvo. But this one was considerably more massive. The next
best thing to six thousand missile icons spangled the display, streaking
towards his ships—and also Dillinger's LACs and Michelle Henke's division—and
Gohr was right about the LAC launches, as well. The two hundred Task Force 81
had already known about went suddenly to full acceleration, charging towards
the Manticorans, but twice that many more were erupting into space, turning
towards Dillinger's Katanas and the battlecruisers behind them.
Oversteegen
glared at the innocent icons of the near-planet missile pods Gohr's sensor
crews had managed to locate. They hadn't launched yet, but they would, he knew.
They were waiting, until their missiles could join the missile storm coming in
from further out. Their lower base velocities when they arrived would make them
easier targets, but it would also give them better shots at his sidewalls, and
there were probably at least another two or three thousand missiles aboard them.
The tactician in him cried out to hit them with proximity-fused warheads, to
kill them before they fired. But they were too close to Vespasien. There was
too big a chance a faulty firing solution would hit the planet itself or kill
one of the unarmed civilian platforms and everyone aboard it.
No. They
were simply going to have to take it, and his expression was bleak as he
watched the attack come in. It was unlikely that even this would destroy his
ship. The one mistake whoever had planned it had made was in his targeting
selection. He ought to have directed all of that fire at no more than one or
two targets, not spread it among so many. But it was hard to fault him for
that, when he probably hadn't realized just how tough the battlecruisers he
faced truly were. And if he wasn't going to kill them, that didn't mean he
wasn't going to hurt them badly. Which didn't even consider what was
going to happen to Dillinger's Katanas after they'd been mousetrapped
into expending so many of their missiles against the first wave of MDMs.
For just a
moment, behind the armor of his eyes, Michael Oversteegen felt a fleeting glow
of admiration for his opponent. Whoever he was, he'd made maximum use of his
limited resources, and Task Force 81's lead elements were about to get
hammered.
But the
moment passed, and Oversteegen straightened in his command chair.
"Defense
plan Alpha-Three," he said calmly.
"Reverend
Sullivan." Robert Telmachi, Archbishop of Manticore, walked across his
spacious, sunlit office to shake hands as the bald, fierce-nosed visitor was
ushered into it.
"This
is an honor," Telmachi continued. "And, if I may say so, a meeting
I've hoped for for quite some time."
"Thank
you, Archbishop." The head of the Church of Humanity Unchained shook the
offered hand firmly. "I, too, have looked forward to meeting you.
Monsignor Davidson has been most satisfactory as your representative on
Grayson, but given the intimacy of our two star nations' political relationship
. . . ."
He smiled,
and Telmachi nodded with a smile of his own.
"Precisely,"
he said, escorting his guest towards an inviting conversational nook arranged
in the office's huge, floor-to-ceiling bay window. "Of course," he
continued, his smile broadening as they sat, "I don't have quite as much
authority in the Star Kingdom's spiritual matters as you do in the
Protectorate's."
"You
might be surprised," Sullivan said wryly. "Our doctrine of the Test
makes for a certain spiritual obstreperousness."
"But
obstreperousness can be a good thing, as long as you learn to pay attention to
its causes," Telmachi replied. "We found that out the hard way in my
own Church. In fact, I believe we'd begun discovering it well before your own
ancestors departed for Grayson."
"As
did we, with those lunatics on Masada," Sullivan said more grimly.
"Every
Faith has its moments of lunacy, Reverend." Telmachi shook his head sadly.
"The Inquisition, the Islamic terrorist movement, the New Athens Jihad,
your own Faithful . . . . Extremism is no one's monopoly when faith turns to
fanaticism."
"But
no one faith has a monopoly on resisting fanaticism, either,"
Sullivan replied. "A point certain of my own predecessors have had
difficulty remembering on Grayson, given Father Church's monopoly—" he
reused the word deliberately "—on spiritual authority there."
"Perhaps,"
Telmachi said. "Yet I think no one could accuse you or Reverend Hanks of
that. I've deeply admired the way both of you have grappled with the huge
changes your society has faced in the wake of your alliance with the Star
Kingdom."
"You
mean, in the wake of our having been exposed to an entire galaxy of dangerous,
if not downright heretical, notions about radical things like women's
rights," Sullivan corrected with an easy chuckle.
"Well,
of course I did. But I'm far too diplomatic to ever say so."
Both men
laughed, but then Telmachi sat back in his chair, crossed his legs, and looked
at his visitor thoughtfully.
"Your
Grace, I'm truly delighted to meet you, and I see you're just as engaging in
person as Monsignor Davidson's reports indicated. But I'm also aware this is
the first time in the history of Grayson any Reverend has ever left the planet
for any reason. I've issued all the expected press statements and news
releases, and I've arranged to attend the meetings with representatives of all
of our major religions and denominations which you requested. But I must
confess I wasn't very surprised when your staff contacted mine to suggest a
private preliminary meeting between the two of us."
"You
weren't?" Sullivan asked, leaning back in his own chair.
"No.
Monsignor Davidson is, as I'm sure you've discovered, as intelligent as he is
charming. From certain questions which you'd asked him, he concluded you were
particularly interested in establishing direct contact with me. He did not,
however, suggest a reason for your interest, although I may have drawn a few
conclusions of my own."
Sullivan
looked out the window, at the sky-piercing towers of the City of Landing. It
was a fascinatingly alien sight for any Grayson. Landing had been built by a
counter-gravity civilization, on a planet whose environment had welcomed
mankind, rather than attempting to repel the audacious invader. Its buildings
towered far higher than any Grayson structure, and there wasn't a single
environmental dome in sight. All that unobstructed sky was enough to make any
Grayson nervous, especially when he watched the branches of the city greenbelts'
trees dance in the brisk morning breeze. The Reverend felt almost undressed,
and his hand twitched as he suppressed the reflex to reach for the breath mask
normally cased on the right side of his belt. The fact that airborne dust on
Manticore didn't represent a dangerous toxic threat was something his intellect
had accepted more readily than his emotions. And yet, as he looked at the
moving air cars, the pedestrians, the sidewalk cafes he could see from where he
sat, he saw much the same people, however bizarrely some of them were dressed,
as he might have seen at home.
He turned
to gaze at the Archbishop once more, and there, too, he found the alien mingled
with the utterly familiar. He recognized Telmachi's personal faith, and his
genuine welcome, and Sullivan had deliberately immersed himself in studies of
comparative theology since Grayson had been wrenched into the galactic
mainstream. He saw in Telmachi the current heir to an apostolic succession
stretching clear back to the dawn—the source—of their shared faith in God. And
yet, Telmachi's spiritual authority was far less than his own. His
Church had seen its uncontested primacy broken long before Man ever left Old
Earth, and it had come to terms with that. It had evolved, survived, reached
out to the stars along with a multiplicity of other religious beliefs and ways
of thought which would have been totally bewildering to any Grayson. In many
ways, he knew, Telmachi was far more . . . cosmopolitan then he himself was,
but was that strength, or was it weakness? And in Telmachi, did Sullivan see
the Reverends of Grayson's future?
That lay in
God's hands, the Reverend told himself. One of the cardinal elements of the New
Way, perhaps the cardinal element, was the belief that the book was
never closed, never ended. God was infinite; Man's understanding was not. And
so, there would always be more for Man to learn, more for God to teach him, and
as the doctrine of the Test taught, it was best to pay attention to one's
lessons, whatever the form in which they might come.
Like his
visit here, today.
"Actually,
Archbishop," he said, "you're right. I see Monsignor Davidson's
description of your own intelligence was accurate. I do have many pressing and
completely valid reasons, as Father Church's spiritual head, for meeting with
as many Manticoran religious leaders as possible. For almost a thousand years,
Grayson has been effectively a theocracy—a closed theocracy. Given our
doctrines, our people have tended, by and large, to see the opening of the
doors of our temple, as it were, as yet another of God's Tests. There's been
some friction, but less, I suspect, than there would have been on almost any
other planet under similar circumstances.
"Still,
as we've become more and more integrally involved with the Star Kingdom on a
secular level, the influx of foreigners with their very foreign belief
structures has swelled steadily. I see no reason to believe that tendency will
reverse itself, and so I think it's probably past time Father Church reached
out his hand to the Star Kingdom's religious leadership. There will undoubtedly
be misunderstandings, or at least points of difference, but we must embrace the
religious toleration which has always been a part of the Manticoran tradition.
To that end, my visit to Manticore will have great significance for Father
Church's members back home on Grayson.
"Yet,
while all of that is true, the reason I specifically asked to meet with you had
less to do with the fact that you are, whether you choose to admit it or not,
what I suppose I might think of as the senior member of the Manticoran
religious establishment, than it did with a pastoral concern."
"Pastoral."
Telmachi smiled. "Let me see," he murmured. "Now, what could it
possibly be about? Hmmmm. . . . Could it be something to do with Steadholder
Harrington and certain members of my own flock?"
"Monsignor
Davidson didn't do you justice, Your Grace," Sullivan said with an
answering smile.
"It
wasn't very difficult to guess, Your Grace," Telmachi replied.
"Especially not in light of Dame Honor's stature on Grayson and the rather
poisonous commentary of one of our less than scintillating examples of
journalistic professionalism. Of course, the fact that she's neither Catholic
nor a member of the Church of Humanity Unchained does leave both of us in
rather a gray area where she's concerned."
"She
may not be a daughter of Father Church," Sullivan said quietly, his eyes
level, "but of my own experience, I can tell you she is most certainly a
daughter of God. I'll be honest with you and admit that nothing would give me
greater joy than to have her embrace Father Church, but this is one woman for
whose soul I feel no concern at all."
"That
accords well with my own impression of her," Telmachi said seriously.
"I believe she's a Third Stellar?"
"She
is. Which presents me with something of a problem, since the Third Stellars
appear to have no organized hierarchy in the sense your Church or mine
does."
"The
Third Stellars are actually rather like I suppose the Church of Humanity might
have turned out without a firmly established hierarchy," Telmachi said.
"When the representatives of all their congregations meet for their
General Convocation every three T-years, they elect a leadership for the
Convocation, and also the membership of a Coordinating Committee to function
between Convocations, but each congregation—and each individual member of each
congregation—is personally responsible for his or her relationship with God.
I'm on quite good terms with several of their clergy, and one of them compared
their General Convocation to an exercise in herding treecats."
Sullivan
chuckled at the image, and Telmachi nodded.
"They
agree about a great many core doctrines and issues, but beyond those central
areas of agreement, there's room for an enormous diversity."
"I'd
gathered that impression from my own conversations with Lady Harrington and her
parents," Sullivan agreed. "And I believe you're probably correct—the
. . . individualism the Third Stellars encourage does have many resonances with
our own doctrine. Indeed, I've often thought that was one of the reasons Lady
Harrington's been so comfortable with Father Church, despite our inevitable
differences.
"However,
the problem to which I referred was my inability to identify some one
individual member of the Third Stellar clergy with whom to discuss my concerns.
My impression of their doctrine is that it is extremely . . . inclusive, but I
must confess I'm less familiar with it then I could wish."
"If
your concerns are what I suspect they are, Your Grace," Telmachi said,
"I think you don't need to worry. However, I'd be very happy to suggest
two or three of their theologians with whom you might discuss your thoughts."
"I
would deeply appreciate that," Sullivan said, bending his head in an
abbreviated bow of thanks. "But that, of course, brings me to the reason I
specifically needed to meet with you."
"Reverend,"
Telmachi said with another chuckle, "Mother Church has learned a
few lessons of her own over the millennia. I don't believe there will be any
problems."
* * *
"So, here
you are," Dr. Allison Harrington said severely. "And just what
made you think you were going to be allowed to stay at a hotel, if I may
ask?"
"The
Royal Arms Hilton is scarcely a mere 'hotel,' My Lady," Jeremiah Sullivan
replied mildly as he stepped past a solemn Harrington armsman into the foyer of
Honor's Jason Bay mansion. He smiled, then bent over her hand and kissed it in
approved Grayson style.
"Piffle!"
she shot back. "I'll bet it was really just that you planned on stealing
the towels. Or one of those cute little bathrobes of theirs."
The armsman
seemed to cringe slightly, obviously awaiting the thunderbolt, but Sullivan
only smiled more broadly as her eyes twinkled at him.
"It
was the soap, actually, My Lady," he said solemnly.
"I
knew it!"
She gurgled
a laugh and tucked her arm through his as she escorted him into the house.
"It's
good to see you," she said more seriously. "And while I'm sure you
really would have been perfectly comfortable at the Royal Arms, Honor and
Benjamin would both have wanted my scalp if I'd let you stay there. Besides, I
wouldn't have been that happy about it myself."
"Thank
you," he said.
"Nonsense."
She squeezed his arm tighter, and the laughter in her eyes was momentarily
quenched. "I still remember how comforting you were when we all thought
Honor was dead."
"As I
remember the day you explained to me why our birthrate has always been so
skewed," he replied. "And the day you and your team showed our
own fertility experts how to identify sperm with the lethal combination."
"Yes.
Well, now that we've both congratulated one another on what splendid people we
are," Allison said, "what really brings you to Manticore?"
"Why,
what makes you think I might have any sort of ulterior motivation?"
Sullivan fenced, accepting the change of subject with a smile.
"The
fact that I have a functional brain," she replied tartly. He looked at
her, and she snorted. "In a thousand years, not one Reverend has ever left
the planet. Not one. Now, three weeks after that poisonous toad Hayes' articles
must have reached Grayson, here you are. Allowing a week or so for travel time,
you must have set some sort of galactic record for arranging this 'state visit'
of yours!"
"I do
hope," Sullivan said a bit plaintively, "that my Machiavellian
schemes aren't going to be this transparent to every Manticoran I
meet."
"Most
Manticorans don't know you as well as I've come to," Allison assured him
comfortably. "And most other Manticorans wouldn't begin to understand how
damaging something like this could be to a political figure like Honor on
Grayson. Or," she smiled warmly at him again, "how deeply you care
about my daughter."
He inclined
his head slightly, and she nodded.
"I
thought so. You've come to straighten out the children's problems, haven't
you?"
He burst
out laughing, and she paused, turning to smile up at him until he shook his
head.
"My
Lady, all of the 'children' involved, including your daughter, are quite a few
T-years older than I am!"
"Chronologically,
perhaps. In other ways?" She shrugged. "And whatever your comparative
ages may be, they definitely need straightening out. Which is why
you're here, isn't it?"
"Yes,
Allison," he admitted, surrendering at last. "I do intend to
accomplish a few other things while I'm here, but, yes. Mostly, I came to
straighten out the children's problems."
"Tell
me you've got some good news for a change, Armand," Thomas Theisman said
moodily as the naval Chief of Staff stepped into his office with a memo board
clasped under his left arm.
"The
only 'good' news I've got is a follow up report that Bellefeuille survived
after all," Admiral Marquette replied.
"She
did?" Theisman perked up just a bit, and Marquette nodded.
"She
and her entire staff got off Cyrus before the scuttling charges blew. We
lost a lot of good people, but not her, thank God."
"Absolutely,"
Theisman agreed fervently.
Of the four
star systems Harrington had hit this time around, only Chantilly had mounted
any effective resistance. Not for want of trying, he reminded himself grimly.
Rear Admiral Bressand had done his best in Augusta, but he'd been totally
outclassed and outgunned . . . and not as cunning as Jennifer Bellefeuille.
Harrington's pod-layers had reduced his hyper-capable combatants to scrap metal
in return for minor, if any, damage. And when his LACs had closed with suicidal
gallantry, they had discovered that the Manties' counter-missile tubes, at
least aboard their newer construction, were perfectly capable of launching the
"dogfighting" missiles they'd developed for their damned Katanas.
It had been
a massacre, and not one for which he could blame Bressand. A part of him would
have liked to, and he could actually make a case for it, if he really tried.
After all, Bressand could have exercised his discretion and declined to engage
such a massively superior force. But the reason that force had been so superior
to his was that his own superiors—headed by one Thomas Theisman—had failed to
adequately support him.
Bressand
had done his job with what he had, and, like Bellefeuille in Chantilly, he'd
obviously hoped to inflict at least attritional damage on the raiders. And
that, Theisman reminded himself, was probably a direct consequence of the staff
analysis he'd ordered shared with all of his system commanders. Given the
numerical advantage the Republic enjoyed—or shortly would enjoy—even an
unfavorable exchange rate was ultimately in Haven's favor. He'd ordered that
analysis disseminated because it was true, yet it had been much easier to
accept its truthbefore so many thousands of Navy men and women had died in
Augusta.
"Do we
have a better read on the damage Bellefeuille managed to inflict?" he
asked Marquette, resolutely turning his mind away from Bressand.
"We
hurt their LACs pretty badly, relatively speaking," Marquette said. Then
he grimaced. "I can't believe I just said that. Bellefeuille took out
about seventy of their LACs, including fifty or so of their Katanas, in
return for just over five hundred of our own. As exchange rates go, that
sucks, but it's the equivalent of about three quarters of one of their LAC
groups, and much as I hate to say it, we can replace our personnel and materiel
losses more easily than they can.
"On
the starship side, we didn't do as well. Mostly because those damned new
battlecruisers of theirs are a hell of a lot tougher than a battlecruiser has
any right being. We hammered one of their pod-layers pretty badly—her wedge
strength was down, and she was venting a lot of atmosphere by the end.
Bellefeuille's other main target—that big-assed 'battlecruiser' that just has
to be this new Nike we've been hearing rumors about—got off with what
was probably only minor damage."
Marquette
shook his head, his expression rueful.
"That's
a very tough ship, Tom. And they appear to have armed her with that new,
smaller MDM NavInt's also been hearing about. By the way, that's how the staff
weenies figure they've managed to cram so many missiles into their
battlecruiser pod-layers' pods. They're using pods big enough to fire all-up
missiles, but loading them with these smaller ones. It costs them something in
total powered envelope, but it also increases their throw weight, and accuracy
at extreme range's so poor the heavier fire more than compensates across the effective
envelope. And the reports that they're somehow firing both broadsides
simultaneously from their more conventionally armed ships—and doing it while
they're rolled on their sides relative to their targets, to boot—seem to be
confirmed."
"Wonderful."
Theisman turned his chair to gaze out the window behind his desk at the massive
towers of the city of Nouveau Paris, all of them freshly refurbished and
properly maintained for the first time in his memory. Clean windows glittered
in the slanting rays of the westering sun, air cars and air buses moved
steadily in the traffic lanes, and the walkways and pedestrian slideways were
crowded with busy, purposeful people. It was a scene of rebirth and
revitalization—of rediscovery—of which he rarely tired, but today, his
expression was profoundly unhappy.
"How
are we going to respond, Tom?" Marquette asked quietly after a moment, and
Theisman's expression turned unhappier still. He stared out the window into the
sunset for several more seconds, then turned back to face the Chief of Staff.
"We've
got two options—well, three, I suppose. We could do nothing, which wouldn't
exactly sit well with Congress or the public at large. We could immediately
launch a general offensive, which might succeed, but probably
wouldn't—at least until we've got more of the new construction up to speed and
ready for action—and which definitely would entail heavy casualties. Or we dust
off the contingency plans for Operation Gobi and hand it to Lester."
"Of
the three, my gut reaction is to favor Gobi," Marquette said.
"Especially given the intelligence we've managed to gather and the
operational data Diamato brought back."
"I
think I agree with you, but that doesn't make me extraordinarily happy. It's
going to divert us and disperse at least a sizable fraction of the striking
force we've been working so hard to build up. Worse, it's going to take at
least three weeks or a month for Lester to get it up and running. If the
Manties stick to their apparent operational tempo, that means they'll hit us
again at least once while we're hitting them."
"We
could have him try something a little more extemporaneous." Marquette
didn't seem especially pleased by his own suggestion, but he continued anyway.
"He's got Second Fleet's core organization just about set up, and he's got
a nucleus of experienced units to go with the new ones. He could probably slice
off a battle squadron or two for a quick-and-dirty, off-the-cuff job if we told
him to."
"No."
Theisman shook his head firmly. "If we hand him Gobi—and I think we're
going to have to—he gets time to set it up right. I saw too many operations
fucked up when the old management decided to improvise and demand miracles. I
won't send our people in without adequate time to prepare unless there's
absolutely no other alternative."
"Yes,
Sir," Marquette said quietly, and Theisman smiled almost apologetically at
him.
"Sorry.
Didn't mean to sound like I was biting your head off. I think maybe I'm using
you to rehearse what I'm going to wind up saying in front of the Naval
Committee when it wants to know why we haven't already kicked the
Manties' asses."
"I
suppose it shouldn't really have come as a surprise that a genuine
representative government's no more immune to the 'But what have you done for
me recently?' syndrome than the Legislaturalists were," Marquette
said sourly.
"No,
it shouldn't have. But it's still a lot more satisfying to work for. And at
least we don't have to worry about being shot, just fired."
"True."
Marquette
stood for a moment, rubbing his chin thoughtfully, then cocked his head.
"Actually,
Tom," he said slowly, "there may be a fourth option. Or, at
least, one we could try in conjunction with Gobi."
"Really?"
Theisman regarded him quizzically.
"Well,
Lewis and Linda have handed me their tea leaf-readers' best guess as to the
most threatened systems. Their report is full of qualifiers, of course. Not so
much because they're trying to cover their asses, as because they really don't
have a good predictive model. They're having to use more intuition and old
fashioned WAGs than number-crunching at this point, and they don't like it.
Despite that, though, I think they're on to something."
"Tell
me more," Theisman commanded, and pointed at one of the chairs facing his
desk.
"Basically,"
Marquette said, sitting obediently, "they tried looking at the problem
through Manty eyes. They figure the Manties are looking for targets they can
anticipate will be fairly lightly defended, but which have enough population
and representation to generate a lot of political pressure. They're also
hitting systems with a civilian economy which may not be contributing very much
to the war effort, but which is large enough to require the federal government
to undertake a substantial diversion of emergency assistance when it's
destroyed. And it's also pretty clear that be want to impress us with their
aggressiveness. That's why they're operating so deep. Well, that and because
the deeper they get, the further away from the 'frontline" systems, the
less likely we are to have heavy defensive forces in position to intercept
them. So that means we should be looking at deep penetration targets, not
frontier raids."
"All
of that sounds reasonable," Theisman said after considering it.
"Logical, anyway. Of course, logic is only as good as its basic
assumptions."
"Agreed.
But it's worth noting that two of the systems they predicted might be hit were
Des Moines and Fordyce."
"They
were?" Theisman sat a bit straighter, and Marquette nodded.
"And
Chantilly was on their secondary list of less likely targets."
"That is
interesting. On the other hand, how many other systems were on their
lists?"
"Ten
on the primary list and fifteen on the secondary."
"So
they hit three out of a total of twenty-five. Twelve percent."
"Which
is a hell of a lot better than nothing," Marquette pointed out.
"Oh,
no question. But we could fritter away an awful lot of strength trying to cover
a list of systems that long without being strong enough in any one place to
make a difference."
"That
wasn't really what I had in mind."
"Then
tell me what you did have in mind."
"You
and I—and our analysts, for that matter—agree that these raids represent what's
basically a strategy of weakness. They're trying to hurt us and throw us off
balance for a minimal investment in forces and minimal losses of their own. So
I would submit that we don't really have to stop them dead everywhere; we just
have to hammer them really hard once or twice. Hurt them proportionately worse
than they're hurting us."
"All
right." Theisman nodded. "I'm in agreement so far."
"Well,
Javier's doing a lot of expansion work, too, if not as much as Lester. He's
been discussing training missions and simulations to fit his new units into
existing battle squadrons and task group organizations, and he'd really like a
chance to try some of his task force and task group commanders in independent
command before it's a life-or-death situation. What if we were to take, say,
three or four—maybe a half-dozen—of those task groups and pull them back from
the front? We're not going to be committing them to offensive action anytime
soon, and it's obvious the Manties aren't going to launch any frontal assaults
when they're running this sensitive about losses. So it wouldn't weaken our
offensive stance, and it would give us some powerful forces close to likely
targets."
"Ummmm
. . . ." Theisman gazed into space, the fingers of his right hand drumming
lightly on his blotter. He stayed that way for quite some time, then refocused
on Marquette.
"I
think this has . . . possibilities," he said. "I should've thought of
a similar approach on my own, but I guess I've been too fixated on maintaining
concentration instead of swanning around in understrength detachments the way
we used to operate. There are still some risks involved, though. Strategy of
weakness or no, this is clearly their first team were talking about. If it
weren't, Harrington wouldn't be in command of it. So it's not something we want
to throw green units in front of."
"I was
figuring we'd use detachments working up a relatively smaller percentage of new
units," Marquette replied. "And, while I'm thinking about it, I think
it would be a very good idea to put Javier himself in position to cover the
system we think is most likely to be hit."
"Now
that is a very good notion." Theisman nodded enthusiastically.
"He's still kicking himself over Trevor's Star, and pointing out to him
that he's being wise with the benefit of hindsight doesn't seem to help much.
It'd make a lot of sense for him to be involved in training his own squadrons,
and if he just happened to kick the ass of a Manty raid . . . ."
"That's
what I was thinking," Marquette agreed. "It would do a world of good
for his confidence, and the shot in the arm it would provide for public and
fleet morale wouldn't be anything to sneer at, either."
"And
if we get some of Shannon's new goodies deployed to help him out, things could
get hot enough for even 'the Salamander' to think twice about climbing back
into the oven again," Theisman said.
He thought
about it again for several seconds, then nodded once more.
"Sit
down with Linda. Draft me a preliminary plan for it by tomorrow
afternoon."
"Excuse
me, Your Grace."
Honor
paused in her conversation with Mercedes Brigham, Alice Truman, Alistair
McKeon, and Samuel Miklós, and one eyebrow rose in surprise. It was very unlike
James MacGuiness to obtrude into a serious meeting like this. He was a past
master at unobtrusively refilling coffee and cocoa cups, sliding food in front
of people when they started looking peaked, and otherwise keeping them provided
with whatever they needed. But the key word was "unobtrusively." Most
of the time, people never even realized he'd been there until he was already
gone.
That was
her first thought. Her second was more concerned as she tasted his emotions.
"What
is it, Mac?" she asked as Nimitz sat upright on the back of her chair and
pricked his ears at the man who still insisted on functioning as Honor's
steward.
"You
have a personal message, Your Grace. From your mother." Honor stiffened,
eyes darkening with concern. "I have no idea what it's about," he
continued quickly, "but it came up in the standard mailbag from Jason Bay.
If it were really bad news, I'm sure it would have been delivered by special
courier. For that matter, Miranda would have dropped me a line about it, as
well."
"You're
right, of course, Mac," she said, smiling in thanks for his reassurance.
"On
the other hand, Your Grace," he said, "it does carry a priority code.
I really think you ought to view it as soon as possible."
"I
see."
MacGuiness
bobbed his head and withdrew, and Honor frowned thoughtfully for a moment. Then
she shook herself and returned her attention to her guests.
"I
think we're just about at a decent stopping point, anyway, aren't we?" she
said.
"I
think so," Truman agreed. "We need to spend a little more time
kicking around what happened at Chantilly, but we can do that later. I'd never
heard of this Admiral Bellefeuille until she screened me after the shooting was
over to thank us for arranging the full evacuation of the civilian platforms
before we blew them. She was floating around in a pinnace—or maybe even a life
pod—for most of that time, I understand. But I think we need to bring her name
to ONI's attention. This woman is sneaky, Honor. She reminds me a lot of
what you've said about Shannon Foraker, and if she'd had better information on
our defensive capabilities, we'd have gotten hurt a lot worse."
"It
was bad enough, anyway," McKeon growled, shaking his head. "Hector's
going to be out of action for at least three months."
"I know,
I know," Truman sighed. "But at least Hanover's personnel casualties
were light. To be perfectly honest, I'm more distressed by what happened to my
Katanas. We managed a four- or five-to-one exchange rate even after
Bellefeuille tricked us into firing off so many of their missiles, but that's
pretty cold comfort. And," she looked at Honor, "Scotty blames
himself."
"That's
ridiculous," McKeon said sharply.
"I
agree entirely," Truman replied. "The deployment decision was
mine—not his, not Mike Henke's, but mine. Given what I knew at the time, I'd do
the same thing again, too. But Scotty seems to think he should have argued with
me, although exactly what form of clairvoyance was supposed to tell him this
was coming eludes me."
"And
how is Mike taking it?" Honor asked quietly.
"Better
than I was afraid she might, actually," Truman said. "She's not happy
about it, and especially not about the fact that she was the one who suggested
using Hector and Nike as her point. But the truth is that she was
right. Hector may have gotten hammered, but her core hull was never
penetrated, and she and Nike stood up to missile attack even better than
BuShips predicted they might. And if Dillinger hadn't used up so many of his
Vipers defending Oversteegen's division, he'd have made out much better against
the Peep LACs. I think she's drawn the right conclusions."
Honor
nodded. She knew both Truman and McKeon well enough to be confident they
understood why she was concerned without getting any more specific.
"I
hope you and she both have," she said aloud, smiling wryly at Truman.
"The two of you are developing a nasty habit of always finding the
feistiest system defense forces! I'd appreciate it if you'd cut that out."
"Hey,
you're the one assigning the targets," Truman shot back. "Well, you
and Mercedes here."
"Don't
blame me!" Brigham protested. "My idea of how to assign the
task forces was to pull system names out of a hat. For some reason, neither
Andrea nor Her Grace thought that was a wonderful idea."
"Nonsense,"
Honor said as the other admirals laughed. "What I said was that it didn't
seem very professional and it wouldn't do very much for the public's confidence
in the Navy if we did it that way and word got out."
"As
long as it works as well as it seems to be working so far, I don't think they'd
have any problems," McKeon said, and Truman and Miklós nodded in
agreement.
"Then
let's keep it that way, shall we?" Honor replied. "And on that note,
I think we should probably adjourn and let me find out what's on Mother's mind.
Alice, could you have dinner with me this evening? And invite Mike and
Oversteegen along? For that matter, bring Scotty and Harkness, too; I haven't
seen either of them in a while, and their perspective on something like this is
almost always worth getting. Let's go over it with all of them in person. As
you say, we need to get a better feel for what Bellefeuille did to us, and I'd
like to give Mike and Oversteegan, especially, a chance to talk out their own
reactions to it."
"I
think that would be a good idea," Truman agreed.
"In
that case, people, let's be about it."
* * *
"Hello,
Honor," Allison Harrington said, and smiled from Honor's display. "We
got the news about your return this morning—Hamish screened from Admiralty
House to tell us you and Nimitz are back safe and sound. Obviously, we're all
delighted to hear that . . . some even more than others."
She smiled
again, wickedly, but then her expression grew more serious.
"I'm
sure you have all sorts of Navy things you need to attend to, but I think it
would be a very good idea if you could come home for a day or two. Soon."
Honor felt
herself tightening internally. Nothing about her mother's expression suggested
anything terrible, but she was a little surprised to realize how much it bothered
her to be unable to taste Allison's emotions from the recorded message. Had she
become that reliant upon her odd empathic capabilities?
"There
are several reasons I feel that way, dear," Allison continued. "Among
them, the fact that Reverend Sullivan's extended his visit to the Star Kingdom.
They were going to put him up at the Royal Arms, but I put a stop to that, and
he's been comfortably ensconced here at the Bay House. I'm sure that one reason
he's stayed over longer than he originally planned was to see you before he
returns to Grayson. So take care of anything you really need to deal with, and
then hop one of the shuttle flights home as soon as you can. We're all really
eager to see you. I love you. Bye!"
The display
blanked, and Honor frowned. A lifetime's instincts told here there was more to
her mother's request than a simple desire for her to have dinner with Sullivan
before the Reverend went home. Not that that wouldn't have been a perfectly
valid consideration. It just wasn't the only thing on her mother's mind, and
she wondered exactly what sort of devious scheme was revolving inside that
agile brain.
Unfortunately,
there was only one way to find out, and she punched a button on her com.
"Admiral's
Quarters, MacGuiness speaking," a voice said.
"Mac,
please check my calendar with Mercedes. You and she both know what I'm doing
better than I do, anyway. I need to clear a couple of days, the sooner the
better, for a quick hop back to Manticore."
"I
thought you might, Ma'am." Even across the voice-only circuit, Honor could
almost feel his satisfaction. "I've already checked. I believe that if you
shift a few of your meetings—and possibly combine the meetings you'd scheduled
with the division and squadron commanders into a single session—you could be on
the evening shuttle flight tomorrow. Would that be satisfactory?"
"And
have you already discussed your proposed agenda with my chief of staff, O
Puppetmaster?"
"Not
in any specific detail, Ma'am." MacGuiness's dignified response was
somewhat flawed by the chuckle lurking in its depths.
"Well,
do so."
"Of
course, Your Grace."
* * *
"There's
the limo, My Lady."
Honor
turned her head, looking in the indicated direction, and saw Jeremiah Tennard,
the senior of Faith's personal armsmen, standing beside the door of one of the
VIP lounge's private air car stages.
"So I
see, Andrew," she said, and chuckled. "I wonder how Mother pried him
loose from fending off assassination attempts on Faith to send him after
us?"
"Actually,"
Andrew LaFollet said seriously, "we have a very good team in place at the
house. Especially since Captain Zilwicki upgraded our electronic systems for
us. He's not really running any risks leaving her uncovered, My Lady. You know
I wouldn't tolerate that, don't you?"
"Andrew,
it was a joke," she said, turning back to him. "I
didn't—"
She stopped
speaking as she tasted her personal armsman's emotions. No one, looking at his
expression, could doubt for a moment the earnest seriousness of his response to
her question. She, however, had certain additional advantages, and her eyes
narrowed.
"All
right," she told him. "You got me. For a minute, there, I actually
thought you were serious."
"My
Lady," he said in shocked tones, "I'm always serious!"
"You,
Andrew LaFollet," she said severely, "have been hanging around with
Nimitz entirely too long. His questionable excuse for a sense of humor seems to
have infected you."
Nimitz
bleeked a laugh on her shoulder, and his hands flashed.
The first
two fingers of his right true-hand closed onto his thumb. Then the hand rolled
over, palm downward, and folded into the sign for the letter "N" and
jerked slightly downward. Next, it rose to his temple, curled into the closed
fist sign for the letter "E," and moved forward. Both true-hands
folded their fingers over in the palm-up sign for the letter "A,"
then swung inward and down twice, ending palm-down. The right hand extended all
three long, wiry fingers, while the left hand extended only two, signing the number
five in one of the compromises forced upon the treecats by the fact that they
had fewer digits than humans did. Next, both true-hands rose, slightly bent,
fingertips just touching his chest, and the right hand flicked back slightly
before turning to form a palm-out "A" that moved slightly to his
right. Then the two opened fingers of the letter "P" circled his face
before the right true-hand touched its fingers to his chin, then dropped into
the palm of his left true-hand. The bent second finger of his right true-hand
tapped behind his ear, then fell to meet his left true-hand as he linked the
thumb and first fingers of both hands before raising both hands to the corners
of his mouth in the "H" sign.
"So
there was no need for you to infect him, since he already had a good sense of
humor?" Honor said.
Nimitz
nodded and raised his right true-hand, palm-in, to press his forefinger to his
forehead, then twisted it into a palm out position before it closed into the
upright, thumb-extended fist of the letter "A." Then he held up two
fingers and patted the thigh of his right leg with his right true-hand formed
into the extended forefinger and thumb of an "L."
"Oh,
for a 'two-legs' is it?" she demanded, and he nodded again, even more
complacently, while she shook her head. "You're riding for a fall there,
Stinker. Besides, I know your sense of humor, and I don't think the sign
for 'good' means quite what you think it does."
The 'cat
only looked away, flirting his tail airily, and LaFollet chuckled.
"Don't
take that as a compliment," Honor told him darkly. "Not until you've
discussed some of his ideas of what constitutes a joke with the Harrington
House staff, at any rate."
"Oh, I
have, My Lady!" LaFollet assured her. "My favorite was the one with
the stuffed treecat and the cultivator."
"Stuffed
treecat?" Honor's eyebrows arched, and he chuckled again.
"They
were using the robotic cultivators to trench for the new irrigation
system," the armsman explained. "So Nimitz and Farragut kidnapped one
of the lifesized stuffed treecats from Faith's bedroom."
"They
didn't—" Honor began, dark eyes starting to laugh, and LaFollet nodded.
"Oh,
but they did, My Lady. They used those sharp little claws of theirs to . . .
disconnect the front and back ends, then burrowed down on either side of the
trench and left the tail sticking up on one side and one poor, pathetic
true-hand poking up on the other. The assistant gardener almost died on the
spot when he found it."
"Stinker,"
Honor said, as severely as a sudden attack of giggles would permit, "when
they finally come for you with pitchforks, I'm not going to protect you
from the mob. I hope you realize that right now."
Nimitz
sniffed, elevating his muzzle. Timothy Mears had hopped the same shuttle flight
back to Manticore with his Admiral, and he laughed out loud. Honor gave him a
glare and shook her head at him.
"A
proper flag lieutenant does not encourage his Admiral's 'cat in the ways
of evil, Lieutenant Mears!"
"Of
course not, Ma'am!" Mears agreed, eyes twinkling. "I'm shocked that
you should think I would even consider doing such a thing!"
"Sure
you are," Honor growled. Then she smiled at him as Tennard started across
the lounge towards them. "As Andrew says, our ride is here, Tim. Can we
drop you anywhere?"
"No,
thanks, Ma'am. I'll catch a cab. I need to do a little shopping before I head
home to surprise Mom and Dad."
"All
right, then you'd best be about it," she said, and he smiled back at her,
saluted, and trotted off just as Tennard reached them.
"My
Lady, Colonel." The armsman bowed to Honor in greeting.
"Jeremiah."
Honor nodded back. "It's good to see you."
"And
you, My Lady. We've missed you—all of us. Especially Faith, I think."
"How
is she?" Honor asked.
"Excited
about her new nephew," Tennard replied, with a smile.
"Is
she really?"
"Really,
My Lady," Tennard said, reassuringly. "Don't forget, she's seen what
Bernard Raoul has to put up with, and she's a smart child. She's already
figured out that she's been getting off light where her own security detachment
is concerned, compared to most steadholders' heirs, and I don't think she
really wants to have to put up with any more of us armsmen than she has to. At
this particular point in her life, avoiding that is a lot more important than
being Steadholder Harrington could ever be."
"Good,"
Honor sighed. Then she smiled. "And I suppose you're here to ferry me off
to meet the Reverend at the house?"
"To
meet the Reverend, yes, My Lady. But not at the Bay House. You and your parents
are having dinner at White Haven this evening, and he's joining you
there."
"He's
what?" Honor blinked, but Tennard only shrugged.
"That's
the itinerary I was given, My Lady. If you want to argue with your Lady
Mother about it, you go right ahead. I have better sense."
"Mother's
been a terrible influence on all of you armsmen," Honor said. "I
don't remember you being this uppity before she got hold of you!"
"It's
all purely self-defense, My Lady, I promise," Tennard said earnestly, and
she laughed.
"That I can believe. All right. If it's White Haven, it's
White Haven. Let's get this cavalcade in the air."
* * *
"What
the—?!" Timothy Mears jerked back as he opened the air cab door and got
hit in the face with an eye-stinging spray of moisture.
"Oh,
shit!" a voice said, and he blinked his burning eyes, then found himself
glaring somewhat blearily at the cabby on the other side of the opened
partition between the cockpit and the passenger compartment. She was an
attractive, if not spectacular, blonde, and she held a bottle of commercial air
freshener in one hand, still pointed almost directly at Mears. She also wore an
expression of almost comical dismay.
"I'm
so sorry, Lieutenant!" she said quickly. "I didn't see you
coming, and my last fare was a smoker." She shook her head in angry
disgust. "Big sign, right there," she jabbed her head at the "No
Smoking In This Vehicle" notice on the partition, "and the jerk sits
right down and lights up. A cigar, of all damned things. And not a very
expensive one, from the stink!"
The air
freshener's scent was almost overpowering, but as it began to dissipate, Mears
could smell the tobacco reek to which she'd referred. And, he admitted, it
really was pretty bad.
"So I
was just turning around to spritz some of this stuff—" she waved the air
freshener "—and you opened the door, and, well . . . ."
Her voice
trailed off, and her expression was such a mixture of dismay and apology that
Mears had to laugh.
"Hey,
I've had worse happen, okay?" he said, wiping the last film of air
freshener off his face. "And you're right. It is pretty ripe back here. So
I'll just stand back and let you spray away to your heart's content."
"Oh,
gee, thanks!" she said, and applied the air freshener industriously for
several seconds. Then she sniffed critically.
"That's
about as good as it's going to get, I'm afraid," she said. "You still
want a ride? Or do you want to wait for something that smells a little
fresher?"
"This
smells just fine to me," Mears said, and climbed into the cab.
"Where
to?" she asked.
"I
need to do some shopping, so let's hit Yardman's first."
"You
got it," she agreed, and the cab whined away towards the capital's best
known shopping tower.
Behind it,
a nondescript man watched it with carefully incurious eyes, then turned and
walked away.
* * *
"Hello,
Nico," Honor said as Nico Havenhurst opened the front door for her.
"You seem to have quite a mob out here this evening."
"Oh,
it's been more crowded than this upon occasion, Your Grace," Havenhurst
said, stepping back with a welcoming smile. "Not in the last few decades,
you understand, but—"
He
shrugged, and Honor chuckled. Then she stepped past him into the entrance hall,
and paused in mid-stride. Emily, Hamish, and her parents were there. So was
Reverend Sullivan, but Honor had expected that. What she hadn't expected was
the distinguished, dark-haired man in the episcopal purple cassock and
glittering pectoral cross. She recognized him almost instantly, although they'd
never met, and she wondered what Archbishop Telmachi was doing at White Haven.
Surprise
kept her focused on him for at least a few heartbeats. Long enough for her feet
to get reorganized and resume carrying her forward. She'd just noticed the
younger man standing at Telmachi's elbow and recognized him as Father
O'Donnell, Emily and Hamish's parish priest, when the mingled flow of the
welcoming committee's emotions swept over her.
There were
too many individual sources for her to analyze their feelings clearly, but
Hamish and Emily's strands stood out more clearly than those of anyone else,
including her parents. She felt herself reaching out for them, as automatically
as breathing, and then both eyebrows rose as she tasted the mingled love,
determination, apprehension, and almost giddy anticipation rising off of them
like smoke.
Obviously,
she'd been right to suspect her mother was up to something. But what?
"Hello,
Honor," Emily said calmly, reaching out her hand. "It's good to see
you home."
* * *
The meal,
as always, was delicious, although Honor decided Mistress Thorne could have
taught Tabitha DuPuy a thing or two about poaching salmon. The company had also
been convivial, and Honor was pleased by the genuine friendship and mutual
admiration she tasted between Sullivan and Telmachi. The Star Kingdom was
legally nondenominational, with a specific constitutional bar against any state
religion. Despite that, the Archbishop of Manticore was recognized as the
"dean" of the Manticoran religious community, and she was glad he and
Sullivan had hit it off so well.
But despite
that, and despite her happiness at being home, she found it increasingly
difficult not to select someone at random to strangle as supper went on and on
and the strange combination of the Alexanders' emotions—and her parents', and
even Sullivan's, now that she thought about it—continued to swirl about
her. She still didn't have a clue what they were all so . . . energized about,
which was maddening enough. But what made it even more maddening was her
absolute confidence that it all focused on her, somehow.
At last,
finally, the dessert dishes were cleared away, the servants withdrew, and the
Alexanders and their guests were left alone around the huge table. It was the
first time Honor had ever eaten in White Haven's formal dining salon, and
despite its low ceiling and ancient wood paneling, she found it just a bit overpowering.
Possibly because it was half the size of a basketball court, or seemed that
way, at least, after the more intimate quarters in which she, Hamish, and Emily
normally dined.
"Well,"
her mother said brightly as the door to the serving pantry closed, "here
we all are at last!"
"Yes,"
Honor said, handing a last celery stalk to Nimitz, "here we are, indeed,
Mother. The question in my mind—and it does appear to be in my mind,
alone, since everyone else at this table obviously already knows the answer—is
why we're all here."
"Goodness!"
Allison said placidly, and shook her head. "Such youthful impetuosity! And
in front of such distinguished guests, too."
"I
might point out that the guests in question are Hamish and Emily's, not
yours, Mother," Honor replied. "Except, of course, that whenever
someone is pulling the strings and you're present, I never have to look very
far for the puppetmaster."
"Honor
Stephanie Harrington!" Allison shook her head mournfully. "Such an
undutiful child, too. How could you possibly think of me in that way?"
"Sixty
years of experience," the undutiful child in question responded. "And
now, if someone could possibly answer my question?"
"Actually,
Honor," Hamish said, and his voice—and emotions—were far more serious than
her mother's droll tone, "the person 'pulling the strings,' inasmuch as
anyone is, isn't your mother. It's Reverend Sullivan."
"Reverend
Sullivan?" Honor looked at the Grayson primate in surprise, and he nodded
back gravely, although there was a twinkle in his dark eyes and she clearly
tasted the affectionate amusement behind it.
"And
just which strings are being pulled?" she asked more warily, looking back
at Hamish and Emily.
"What
it comes down to, Honor," Emily said, "is that, just as we'd feared,
the news about your pregnancy—and mine—has gotten back to Grayson. It's already
started to die down a bit here in the Star Kingdom, actually. Especially,"
a bubble of pure, malicious delight danced in her mind-glow, "since the Landing
Tattler's new management discovered certain irregularities in Solomon
Hayes' financial records and let him go. I believe he's currently discussing
those irregularities with the LCPD and the Exchequer.
"But,"
the brief flicker of amusement faded, "the situation on Grayson was about
what you and I had feared it might be. In fact, a delegation of Steadholders
called on the Reverend to discuss their . . . concerns."
Her mouth
tightened bleakly for a moment, then she flipped her right hand in a shrug.
"Needless
to say, Reverend Sullivan supported your position strongly," Honor glanced
at Sullivan, who bent his head gravely in response to the gratitude in her
eyes, "but it was clear some of them—especially Steadholder Mueller, I
understand—are prepared to use this situation to attack you as publicly as
possible. So the Reverend decided to take matters into his own hands,
pastorally speaking."
Emily
paused, and Reverend Sullivan looked at Honor.
"In
some ways, My Lady," he said, "I suppose my decision to involve
myself in such a deeply personal matter must be considered intrusive,
especially since none of you are communicants of the Church of Humanity
Unchained, and I hope I haven't offended by doing so. I might argue that my
position as Reverend and First Elder and head of the Sacristy, and the constitutional
obligations of those offices, give me a responsibility to involve
myself, but that would be less than fully honest of me. The truth is," he
looked directly into her eyes, and she tasted his utter sincerity, "that
my own heart would have driven me to speak, were I Reverend or not. You, as a
person, not simply as Steadholder Harrington, are important to far too many
people on Grayson, myself included, for me to do otherwise."
"Reverend,
I—" Honor paused and cleared her throat. "I can think of many things
people could do which I might find offensive. Having you take a hand to help in
a situation like this certainly isn't one of them."
"Thank
you. I hope you'll still feel that way in a few minutes."
Despite the
ominous words, there was a very faint gleam in his eye, and Honor frowned in
puzzlement.
"The
thing is, Honor," Emily continued, reclaiming her attention, "the
Reverend's come up with a solution for all our problems. Every one of
them."
"He's
what?" Both of Honor's eyebrows rose, and she looked back and forth
between Sullivan, Hamish and Emily, and her parents. "That's . . . hard to
believe."
"Not
really," Emily said, with a sudden, huge smile and a matching internal
swell of delight. "You see, Honor, all you have to do is answer one
question."
"One
question?"
Honor
blinked as her eyes prickled suddenly and unexpectedly. She didn't even know
why—just that the joy inside Emily had reached out and blended with a matching
tide of joyous anticipation from Hamish into something so strong, so exuberant
and yet so intensely focused on her, that her own emotions literally
couldn't help responding to it.
"Yes,"
Emily said softly. "Honor, will you marry Hamish and me?"
For an
instant that seemed an eternity Honor simply stared at her. Then it penetrated,
and she jerked upright in her comfortable chair.
"Marry
you?" Her voice trembled. "Marry both of you? Are . . . are you
serious?"
"Of
course we are," Hamish said quietly, while Samantha purred from the high
chair beside him as if the bones were about to vibrate right out of her body.
"And if anyone can be certain of that," he added, "you
can."
"But .
. . but . . ." Honor looked at Archbishop Telmachi and Father O'Donnell,
finally understanding why they were both here. "But I thought your
marriage vows made that impossible," she said hoarsely.
"If I
may, My Lord?" Telmachi said gently, looking at Hamish, and Hamish nodded.
"Your
Grace," the Archbishop continued, turning to Honor, "Mother Church
has learned a great deal over the millennia. Many things about human beings and
their spiritual needs never change, and God, of course, is always constant. But
the context in which those humans confront their spiritual needs does change.
The rules evolved to handle those needs in a pre-industrial, pre-space
civilization simply cannot be applied to the galaxy in which we live today, any
more than could the one-time religious ratification of slavery, or of the
denial of the rights of women, or the prohibition of women in the priesthood,
or the marriage of priests.
"Hamish
and Emily chose to wed monogamously. The Church didn't require that of them,
for we've learned that what truly matters is the love between partners, the
union which makes it a true marriage, and not simply a convenience of the
flesh. But that was their decision, and at the time, I believe it was the
proper one for them. Certainly, anyone looking at them or speaking with them
today, after all their marriage has endured, can still see the love and mutual
commitment they share.
"But
we live in an era of prolong, when men and women live literally for centuries.
Just as Mother Church was eventually forced to deal with the tangled problems
of genetic engineering and of cloning, she's been forced to acknowledge that
when individuals live that long, the likelihood that even binding decisions
must be revisited increases sharply.
"The
Church doesn't look lightly upon the modification of wedding vows. Marriage is
a solemn and a holy state, a sacrament ordained by God. But ours is a loving
and an understanding God, and such a God wouldn't punish people to whom He's
given the joyous gift of a love as deep as that which binds you, Hamish, and
Emily together by forcing you to remain apart. And because the Church believes
that, the Church has made provision for the modification of those vows, so long
as all parties are in agreement and there's no coercion, no betrayal. I've
spoken with Hamish and Emily. I have no question in my mind that they would
welcome you into their marriage with unqualified joy. The only question which
must be answered before I grant the necessary dispensation is whether or not
that's what you most truly and deeply desire."
"I—"
Honor's vision wavered, and she blinked back tears. "Of course it's what I
desire," she said huskily. "Of course it is! I just never thought,
never expected—"
"Forgive
me for suggesting it, dear," her mother said gently, rising from her chair
to fold her arms about her seated daughter, "but sometimes, much as I love
you, you can be just a tiny bit slow."
Honor
gurgled with tearful laughter and hugged her mother tightly.
"I
know. I know! If I'd ever thought for a minute—" She broke off and looked
at Hamish and Emily through her tears. "Of course I'll marry you, both of
you! My God, of course I will!"
"Good,"
Reverend Sullivan said, and smiled when Honor turned to look at him. "It
just happens that Robert, here," he waved one hand at Telmachi, "has
already granted the necessary dispensation, contingent upon your acceptance of the
idea. And it also just happens that Father O'Donnell, here, has brought along
his prayerbook and a special license, and that I happen to know the Alexander
family chapel just happens to have been given a most thorough cleaning this
morning. And it just so happens that at this particular moment there's a
representative of Father Church here on Manticore to serve as the temporal
witness required for any steadholder's marriage. So since the bride's
family," he bowed to include Nimitz and Samantha in that family, "are
present, I don't really see any reason why we couldn't get this little
formality out of the way tonight."
"Tonight?"
Honor stared at him.
"Indeed,"
he replied calmly. "Unless, of course, you had other plans?"
"Of
course I had—!"
Honor
chopped herself off, torn between laughter, more tears, and a sense of the
entire universe whirling further and further out of control.
"What?"
her mother demanded, still hugging her. "You want a big fancy, formal
wedding? Piffle! You can always have that later, if you really feel the need,
but all that hoopla isn't what makes a marriage—or even a wedding. And even if
it were, I'd think having the Archbishop and the Reverend assist in the
ceremony should satisfy even the highest social stickler!"
"It
isn't that, and you know it!" Honor half-laughed, giving her mother
a shake. "It's just all moving so quickly. I hadn't even considered it ten
minutes ago, and now—!"
"Well,
it's something you ought to have considered long ago, My Lady,"
Sullivan said with twinkle-eyed severity. "After all, you are a
Grayson. And if you think I'm going to permit you and this man—" he jabbed
a finger at Hamish "—to spend one more night cavorting in sin, then you
have another think coming."
He waved
the jabbing finger at Honor, smiling as she simultaneously laughed and blushed.
"All
right. All right! You win, all of you. But before we get to the 'I do's, we've
got to get Miranda and Mac out here. I can't get married without them!"
"Now
that," Allison congratulated her, "is the first reasonable objection
you've raised all night. And, as the Reverend is fond of saying, it just so happens
I sent Jeremiah back to fetch them—and Farragut and the twins—about the time we
sat down to dinner. They should be here in—" she checked her chrono
"—another thirty minutes or so. So," she cupped Honor's face between
her hands, and her own smile was just a little misty, "why don't you and I
spend the time between now and then making you even more beautiful, love?"
Admiral
Lady Dame Honor Alexander-Harrington, Duchess and Steadholder Harrington (and
possibly—Hamish wasn't certain exactly how it would work out—Countess White
Haven), walked across the shuttle pad lounge in a euphoric haze.
Being
married was going to take some getting used to. This floating feeling of joy
and relaxation—the knowledge that she'd truly come home at last—was worth any
price, yet she already foresaw all sorts of problems on Grayson, once news of
the marriage became public. Grayson conventions denoting marital status all
assumed the husband's surname would be adopted by all of his wives. But those
same conventions had also always assumed any steadholder would be male, and she
had a pretty shrewd notion the Conclave of Steadholders wouldn't take kindly to
the notion of changing the Harrington Dynasty to the Alexander Dynasty in the
very first generation of the Steading. Plus, of course, the fact that they were
going to have to deal with the fact that the Steadholder was the junior
wife of a man who stood completely outside the succession.
Personally,
she was rather looking forward to watching her fellow steadholders work their
way through the problems. It would do their residually patriarchal little
hearts good, she thought as she counted noses in her travel party. Then she
frowned, as she came up a nose short.
"Wasn't
Tim supposed to hop back up with us?" she asked MacGuiness.
"Yes,
he was, My Lady." MacGuiness shook his head with an irritated expression.
"But he screened last night, and I forgot to tell you. He'll be catching
the next shuttle flight back. Something about his younger sister's birthday, I
believe. Technically, he's got another thirty-six hours before he's due to
report back aboard, so I told him I didn't think there'd be any problem."
"Oh."
Honor rubbed the tip of her nose for a moment, then shrugged. "You were
right, of course. And goodness knows a birthday party's more important—and
probably a lot more fun—than riding back to the flagship with a stodgy old flag
officer."
"Nonsense,
My Lady," MacGuiness said with an absolutely straight face. "I'm sure
he doesn't think of you as old."
"And
you, Mac, may not get a lot older," she told him with a smile.
"I'm
terrified, Your Grace," he said sedately.
* * *
"You
did what?" Michelle Henke asked, staring at Honor.
"I
said that while I was back on Manticore and didn't have anything better to do,
I went ahead and got married," Honor repeated with a huge smile. "It
. . . seemed like the thing to do."
She
shrugged, and Nimitz bleeked with laughter on her shoulder as the two of them
enjoyed Henke's poleaxed mind-glow.
"But .
. . but . . . but—"
"Mike,
you sound like one of those antique motorboats Uncle Jacques and his SCA
buddies play with."
Henke
closed her mouth, and her stunned expression began to transform itself into one
of outrage.
"You
married Hamish Alexander—and his wife—and you didn't even invite me?!"
"Mike,
I almost didn't get invited," Honor said. "Reverend Sullivan,
Archbishop Telmachi, my mother, Hamish and Emily—I think about thirty percent
of the entire population of Manticore!—knew about it before anybody bothered to
tell me. And when the Reverend suggests you get married right now
instead of—how did he put it? Oh, yes—instead of continuing to 'cavort in sin'
with your intended groom, it takes more intestinal fortitude than I just
discovered I have to say no."
"Yeah,
sure you don't." Henke eyed her narrowly. "I've known
treecats—hell, I've known boulders—less stubborn then you are, Honor
Harrington. No way in the world did anyone hold a pulser to your head and make
you do this!"
"Well,
that's true," Honor admitted. "In fact, I'm a more than a little
ticked off with myself for not having thought of this and proposed it myself
months ago. It's just, after the High Ridge smear campaign, it never occurred
to me."
"Even
if it had," Henke said shrewdly, "you wouldn't have suggested it.
You'd have just sat on it and hoped the idea occurred to Emily."
"You
might be right," Honor said, after a moment. "I hadn't really thought
about that while I was busy kicking myself for being so slow."
"Honor,
you're my best friend in the universe, but I've got to tell you, you've got one
blind spot about two kilometers wide. It's funny, given that you're also the
only functional two-foot empath I know, but it's true. You are constitutionally
incapable of suggesting anything that will get you what you want if it might
step on someone else. And you're so incapable of it, that you go into
some sort of immediate internal denial where the very possibility of suggesting
it is concerned."
"I do
not!"
"You
do so." Henke looked at Nimitz. "Doesn't she, Stinker?"
Nimitz
looked down at Henke from Honor's shoulder for a moment, and then nodded
firmly.
"See?
Even your furry minion knows it. Which is one reason this marriage of yours is
going to be so good for you. Somehow, I don't see Hamish and Emily Alexander—or
Hamish and Emily Alexander-Harrington, I suppose now—letting you get away with
that anymore."
Honor
considered protesting further, but she didn't. And one reason she didn't, she
admitted to herself, was that she wasn't positive she could, and be
honest. The notion certainly bore thinking on, at any rate.
"Whatever,"
she said, instead, smiling at Henke. "But the main thing is that, aside
from Mac and my armsmen, you're the only one in the Fleet who knows. I'm going
to tell Alice and Alistair, as well, but no one else. Not for a while."
"Marriage
licenses and wedding certificates are public records, Honor," Henke
pointed out. "You can't keep this one quiet for long."
"Longer
than you might think," Honor replied with an urchin-like grin. "Since
I'm Steadholder Harrington, and a steadholder outranks a duchess or an earl,
the license and certificate are both being filed on Steadholder Harrington's
planet of residence. In the Public Records Office of Harrington Steading, as a
matter of fact. Reverend Sullivan offered to take care of it for me."
"Well,
wasn't that nice of him," Henke said with a matching grin. "I don't
suppose they're likely to get temporarily misfiled, are they?"
"No,
they aren't," Honor said, more seriously. "They're important official
documents, so we're not going to be playing any games with them. But we're also
not going to mention to anyone that they're there, and while the records are
public, they have to be requested, so we'll know if anyone accesses them."
She shrugged. "We couldn't keep it secret forever, even if we wanted to,
which we don't. This will just buy a little more time."
"But
why buy it in the first place?" Henke frowned. "Like Emily said, this
solves all your problems. Except, of course, for the people who're going to
suggest that the fact that you're marrying them now probably proves Hayes was
right with his original rumors about you and Hamish."
"The
main reason is my command and Hamish's position at the Admiralty," Honor
admitted. "Hamish's theory is that since the First Lord, unlike the First Space
Lord, is a civilian without any authority to issue orders to uniformed
personnel, he's not in my direct chain of command, and so there's been no
official prohibition against our . . . involvement from the start.
Unfortunately, that's currently just his opinion. Before we go public,
we want to be certain the courts are going to agree with him."
"And
if they don't?" Henke frowned again. Rules-lawyering was very unlike the
Honor Harrington she'd always known.
"And
if they don't, the solution's relatively simple. I resign my Manticoran
commission, and High Admiral Matthews makes Admiral Steadholder Harrington
available to the Alliance to command Eighth Fleet. That we know would be
legal, since there's no similar prohibition in Grayson service. But it would be
complicated and an obvious case of finding a way to technically comply with the
law, and we'd all prefer to simply find out that what we're doing is legal in
the first place under the Star Kingdom's Articles of War."
"And
how long will it take for you to determine whether or not it is?"
"Not
too long, I hope. I've got Richard Maxwell working on it now, and he feels
confident he can have a definitive opinion for us within a month or so. Which
is actually moving at light-speed for the legal system, you know. In the
meantime, we've got to get Cutworm III organized and launched, and no one at
Admiralty House or here in the Fleet needs to be worrying about something like
this while we're planning an op."
"I
don't suppose I can argue about that," Henke said. "Personally, given
who you and Hamish are—not to mention Emily—I figure you could probably get
away with just about anything short of murder!"
"Maybe
we could," Honor said with a frown of her own, "but that's one game I
really don't want to start playing."
"Honor,
you've earned a little slack, a little special consideration,"
Henke told her quietly.
"Some
people may think so. And, in some respects, I suppose I do, too," Honor
said slowly. "But the minute I begin demanding some sort of free pass, I
turn into someone I don't want to be."
"Yes,
I guess you would," Henke said, shaking her head with a slight, rueful
smile. "Which is probably one reason everyone else would be so willing to
give it to you. Oh, well." She shook herself. "I guess we'll just
have to put up with you the way you are."
* * *
"And
don't forget to write this time!"
"Mom!"
Lieutenant Timothy Mears protested. "I always write! You know I
do!"
"But
not often enough," she said firmly, with an impish smile, as she
banked into the final approach to Landing Field's parking bays.
"All
right. All right," he sighed, giving in with a smile of his own.
"I'll try to write more often. Assuming the Admiral gives me the free
time."
"Don't
you go blaming your slackness on Duchess Harrington," his mother
scolded. "She doesn't keep you that busy."
"Yes,
she does," Mears objected in tones of profound innocence. "I swear
she does!"
"Then
you won't mind me dropping her a little note of my own to ask her not to
overwork my baby boy that way?"
"Don't
you dare!" Mears protested with a laugh.
"That's
what I thought," his mother said complacently. "Mothers know these
things, you know."
"And
they fight dirty, too."
"Of
course they do. They're mothers."
The air car
settled into the designated parking bay, and she turned to look at him, her
expression suddenly much more serious.
"Your
father and I are very proud of you, Tim," she said quietly. "And we
worry about you. I know—I know!" She raised one hand when he started to
protest. "You're safer on the flagship then you would be almost anywhere
else. But a lot of mothers and fathers who thought their children were safe
before the Peeps started shooting again found out they were wrong. We're not
lying awake at night, unable to sleep. But we do worry, because we love you. So
. . . be careful, all right?"
"I
promise, Mom," he said, and kissed her cheek. Then he climbed out of the
car, collected his single light bag, and waved goodbye.
His mother
watched him step onto the pedestrian slideway. She watched him until he
disappeared into the crowd, then lifted the air car into the exit traffic lanes
and headed home.
She never
noticed the nondescript man who also watched her son head for the departure
concourse.
* * *
"I
wish we were getting a few reinforcements, Ma'am," Rafael Cardones said as
he, Simon Mattingly, and Honor and Nimitz walked down the passage away from the
flag briefing room where the first preliminary meeting for Cutworm III had just
broken up.
"So do
I," Honor replied. "But realistically, it's only been three months
since we activated Eighth Fleet. It's going to be at least a few more months
before we start seeing anything else, I'm afraid."
"Three
months." Cardones shook his head. "It doesn't seem anywhere near that
long, somehow, Ma'am."
"That's
because of how much more intense the operational pace has been this time
around," Honor said with a shrug. "For us, at least. Time is probably
dragging for the folks in Home Fleet and Third Fleet." It was her turn to
shake her head. "I was always fortunate, as a captain. I didn't get
anchored to one of the major defensive fleets and have to sit around cooling my
heels for months at a time with nothing but simulations to keep my people
sharp."
"No,
you didn't," Cardones said dryly. "If I recall correctly, Your Grace,
you were generally too busy getting the crap shot out of your ship to worry
about something like that."
"Picky,
picky, picky," Honor said, and the flag captain chuckled. "At least
it kept my people from getting bored," she added, and he laughed
harder.
Honor
smiled, and the four of them stepped through the hatch onto Imperator's
flag bridge.
It was
fairly late in the shipboard day, and the watch was at a minimum. Mattingly
peeled off, just inside the hatch, and Honor and Cardones crossed the spacious
command deck to stand on its far side, gazing into the main visual display. The
endless depths of space lay before them, crystal clear and sooty black,
spangled with stars.
"Beautiful,
isn't it, Ma'am?" Cardones asked quietly.
"And
it looks so peaceful," Honor agreed.
"Too
bad looks can be so deceiving," her flag captain said.
"I
know what you mean. But let's not get too moody. It's always been 'deceiving,'
you know. Think about what each of those tiny little, cool-looking stars is
like when you get close to it. Not so 'peaceful" then, is it?"
"You
do have an interesting perspective on things, sometimes, Your Grace,"
Cardones observed.
"Do
I?"
Honor
turned her head as the hatch opened again and Timothy Mears walked through it,
carrying his memo board under his arm. The flag lieutenant had stayed behind to
tidy up his notes of the session.
"If my
perspective seems odd," she continued, turning back to Cardones,
"it's only because—"
Her voice
chopped off as abruptly as a guillotine blade, and she whirled back towards the
hatch even as Nimitz catapulted off her shoulder with a bloodcurdling,
tearing-canvas snarl. Cardones' jaw dropped, and he started to turn himself,
but he was far too slow.
"Simon!"
Honor shouted, even as her right hand flashed up, caught Cardones by the front
of his tunic, and flung him towards the floor with all the brutal power of her
genetically-engineered heavy-world musculature.
The
armsman's head snapped up, but he lacked Honor's empathic sense. He couldn't
taste what she tasted—couldn't recognize the sudden, surging horror radiating
from Timothy Mears as the young man abruptly found his body responding to the
orders of someone—or something—else.
It wasn't
Mattingly's fault. Timothy Mears was part of his Steadholder's official family.
He was her aide, her student, almost an adoptive son. He'd been alone in her
company literally thousands of times, and Mattingly knew he was no
threat. And so, he was totally unprepared when Mears' right hand reached out
casually—so casually—in passing . . . and snaked Mattingly's pulser out of his
holster.
The armsman
reacted almost instantly. Despite the totality of his surprise, his own arm
lashed out, seeking to recapture the weapon, or at least immobilize it. But
"almost instantly" wasn't quite good enough, and the pulser snarled.
"Simon!"
This time
it was no shout. Honor screamed her armsman's name in useless protest as the
burst of heavy-caliber darts ripped into his abdomen and tracked upward into
his chest. His uniform tunic, like Honor's, which had been modified to resist
Nimitz's claws, was made of antiballistic fabric, but it wasn't designed to
resist military-grade pulser fire at point-blank range, and Mattingly went down
in an explosion of blood.
Honor felt
the agony of his death, but there was no time to grieve. And agonizing as what
had just happened to Mattingly was, it was actually less agonizing than
what she tasted from Timothy Mears. His horror, shock, disbelief and guilt as
his hand killed a man who'd been his friend was like some horrifying
shroud. She could feel him screaming in protest, fighting with desperate
futility, as his arm came up, sweeping around the bridge, holding down the stud
on the stolen pulser.
A hurricane
of darts shrieked across Flag Bridge. Two Plotting ratings went down, one of
them screaming horribly. The Communications section exploded as the darts
chewed their way through displays, consoles, chair backs. The deadly muzzle
tracked onward, slicing the bandsaw of hyper-velocity darts across Andrea
Jaruwalski's unmanned station and killing the Tactical quartermaster of the
watch. And yet, even as the carnage mounted, Honor knew it was all incidental.
She knew her horrified flag lieutenant's actual target.
Nimitz hit
the back of a command chair, bounding towards Mears, but the cyclone of darts
slammed into the chair. They missed the 'cat, but the chair literally exploded
under him, and not even his reflexes could keep him from falling to the
deck. He landed with his feet under him, already prepared to bound upward once
again, but he'd lost too much time. He couldn't possibly reach the flag
lieutenant before the pulser in Mears' hand found Honor.
Honor felt
it coming. Felt the useless denial screaming in Timothy Mears' mind. Knew the
flag lieutenant literally could not resist whatever hideous compulsion had
seized him. Knew he would rather have died himself than do what he'd just done.
What he was about to do.
She didn't
think about it, not consciously. She simply reacted, just as she'd reacted by
throwing Rafael Cardones out of the line of fire. Reacted with the trained
instincts of over forty years of practice in the martial arts, and with the
muscle memory she'd drilled into herself on the firing range under her Jason
Bay mansion.
Her
artificial left hand flexed oddly. It rose before her, forefinger rigid, and in
the instant before Timothy Mears' fire reached her, the tip of that forefinger
exploded as a five-dart burst of pulser fire ripped across the flag bridge and
the flag lieutenant's head erupted in a ghastly spray of gray, red, and
pulverized white bone.
"Your
Grace, Captain Mandel is here," James MacGuiness said quietly.
Honor
looked up from her console with a feeling of guilty relief. She'd gotten only a
few hours of fitful sleep in the twenty-one hours since the massacre on her
flag bridge, and she was still dealing with personal letters to the families of
the dead. The message she'd already composed for Simon Mattingly's family had
been bad enough; the one she was recording now, for Timothy Mears' parents, was
far worse.
MacGuiness
stood in the open hatch of the office workspace attached to her day cabin, and
his expression was as haggard as she felt. Simon Mattingly had been his friend
for over sixteen T-years, and Timothy Mears had been like a younger brother.
Eighth Fleet's entire command structure was stunned by what had happened, but
for some, Honor thought, it was far more personal than for others.
"Show
the Captain in, please, Mac."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
MacGuiness
disappeared, and Honor saved what she'd already recorded for Timothy's parents.
As she did, her eyes fell on the black glove on her left hand—the glove
concealing the tattered last joint of her index finger—and she felt once again
the terrible, tearing grief there'd been no time to feel then as she shot down
all of the potential and youthful exuberance of the flag lieutenant who'd meant
so much to her.
A throat
cleared itself, and she looked up once more.
"Captain
Mandel, Your Grace," the burly, broad-shouldered officer just inside the
hatch, black beret tucked under his left epaulet and spine ramrod straight,
said gruffly. He and the slightly taller, slender woman beside him both wore
the insignia of the Office of Naval Intelligence. "And this," Mandel
indicated his companion, "is Commander Simon."
"Come
in, Captain, Commander." Honor pointed at the chairs in front of her desk.
"Be seated."
"Thank
you, Your Grace," Mandel said. Simon—Honor felt herself flinch inside as
the commander's last name lacerated her sense of loss—said nothing, only smiled
politely and waited a moment until Mandel had seated himself. Then she sat, as
well, economically and neatly.
Honor
regarded them thoughtfully, tasting their emotions. They were an interesting
contrast, she decided.
Mandel's
emotions were just as hard-edged as his physical appearance. He radiated
bulldog toughness, but there was no sense of flexibility or give. Focused,
intense, determined . . . all of those applied, yet she had the sense that he
was a blunt instrument. A hammer, not a scalpel.
But Simon,
now. Simon's emotions were very different from her outward appearance. She
looked almost colorless—fair-haired, with a complexion almost as pale as
Honor's own and curiously washed out looking blue eyes—and her body language
appeared diffident, almost timid. But under that surface was a poised,
'cat-like huntress. An agile mind, coupled with intense curiosity and an odd
combination of a puzzlesolver's abstract concentration and a crusader's zeal.
Of the two,
Honor decided, Simon was definitely the more dangerous.
"Now,
Captain," she said, after a moment, folding her hands atop her blotter,
"what can I do for you and the Commander?"
"Obviously,
Your Grace, everyone at Admiralty House—and in the Government at large, for
that matter—takes a very grave view of what's happened," Mandel said.
"Admiral Givens will be personally reviewing all our reports, and I've
been instructed to inform you that Her Majesty will also be receiving
them."
Honor
nodded silently when he paused.
"Commander
Simon is attached to counter-intelligence," Mandel continued. "My own
specialty is CID, however, which means I'll be functioning as the lead
investigator."
"Criminal
Investigation Division is taking the lead?" Honor managed to keep the
surprise out of her voice, but her eyes sharpened.
"Well,
clearly what's happened here represents a serious security breach," Mandel
replied. "The Commander has an obvious responsibility to determine how the
penetration occurred. However, in a case like this, it's usually most efficient
to allow an experienced criminal investigator to go over the ground first. We
know what to look for, and we can often identify the points at which the
perpetrator began acting abnormally." He shrugged. "With that to
direct them to the point at which he was first recruited, the
counter-intelligence types can hit the ground running."
"Perpetrator,"
Honor repeated, and to her own ears her voice was oddly flattened.
"Yes,
Your Grace." Mandel radiated puzzlement at her comment, and she smiled
thinly.
"Lieutenant
Mears," she said quietly, "was a member of my staff for almost a full
T-year. He was a diligent, responsible, conscientious young man. Had he lived,
he would, I feel no doubt, have attained senior rank and discharged it well. He
won't do that now, because I killed him. I would greatly appreciate it,
Captain, if you could find some word other than 'perpetrator' with which
to describe him."
Mandel
looked at her, and something clicked into place behind his eyes. She could feel
it, taste his sense of "Oh, that's what it was!" as he
recognized—or thought he did—what he was dealing with.
"Your
Grace," he said compassionately, "it's not unusual, especially this
soon after something like this, for it to be difficult to accept that someone
we knew and liked, trusted, wasn't exactly what we thought he was. I'm sure you
feel responsible for the death of the 'conscientious young man' you killed. But
you killed him in self-defense, and the fact that you had to demonstrates that
he wasn't who or what you thought he was."
Honor's
eyes narrowed, and she heard Nimitz's soft, sibilant hiss.
"Captain
Mandel," she said even more quietly, "did you or did you not read my
own report about what happened here?"
"Of
course, Your Grace. I have a copy of it here." He tapped the microcomputer
cased at his belt.
"In
that case, you ought to be aware that Lieutenant Mears was not responsible for
his actions," she said flatly. "He wasn't the 'perpetrator' of this
crime, Captain; he was its first victim."
"Your
Grace," Mandel said in patient tones, "I did, indeed, read your
report. It was well written, concise, and to the point. However, you're a
combat officer. You command ships and lead fleets in battle, and the entire
Star Kingdom knows how well you do it. But you aren't a criminal investigator.
I am, and while I don't doubt a single factual observation from your report,
I'm afraid your conclusion that Lieutenant Mears was under some form of
compulsion simply doesn't make sense. It's just not supported by the
evidence."
"I beg
your pardon?" Honor asked, almost conversationally, and a slight tic began
at the right corner of her mouth.
"Your
Grace," Mandel probably wasn't even aware of his own sense of patient,
confident superiority in his area of expertise, but Honor certainly was,
"you stated in your report that Lieutenant Mears was attempting to resist
some sort of compulsion the entire time he was killing people, including your
own armsman. But I'm afraid that statement is in error—a conclusion I base on
two main points of observation and logic.
"First,
I've reviewed the flag bridge visual records of the incident, and there's
absolutely no sign of hesitation on his part. Secondly, for him to have been
operating under compulsion would have required major personality adjustment,
were he, in fact, the person you believed him to be.
"It's
not at all unusual, when something as violent and totally unexpected as this
incident occurs, for someone involved in it to be mistaken in his observations.
And that, I'm afraid, is even more common when the observer doesn't want—for
perfectly understandable, very human reasons—to believe what's happening or
why. The visual records, however, are immune to that sort of subjectivity, and
they reveal nothing but purposeful, intentional, controlled, unhesitating action
on Lieutenant Mears' part.
"And
as far as personality adjustment is concerned, it's simply not possible.
Lieutenant Mears, like all Queen's officers, had received the standard
anti-drug and anti-conditioning protocols. It wouldn't have been flatly
impossible for those safeguards to be broken or evaded, but it would have been
difficult. And even without them, adjustment takes time, Your Grace.
Quite a lot of it. And we can account for almost every instant of Lieutenant
Mears' time over the past T-year. Certainly, there's no unaccounted for period
long enough for him to have been involuntarily adjusted to carry out an action
like this one."
The
intelligence captain shook his head, his expression sad.
"No,
Your Grace. I know you want to believe the best of an officer to whom you were
so attached. But the only explanation for what happened here is that he was,
and had for some time, been an agent for Peep intelligence."
"That's
preposterous," Honor said flatly. Mandel's face stiffened, his feeling of
professional superiority segueing into beginning anger, and Honor leaned
forward in her chair. "If, in fact, Lieutenant Mears—Timothy—" she
used the dead officer's first name deliberately, "had been a Havenite
agent, he would have been far more valuable as a spy than as an assassin. As my
flag lieutenant, he had access to virtually all of Eighth Fleet's most
secure and sensitive data. He would have been a priceless intelligence asset,
and they would never have thrown that away in an attempt like this.
"In
addition, Captain, I didn't state in my report that I believed him to have been
under compulsion; I stated that he was under compulsion. That was not
interpretation. It was an observed fact."
"With
all due respect, Your Grace," Mandel said stiffly, "my own analysis
of the visual records doesn't support that conclusion."
"My observation,"
Honor stressed the noun deliberately, "didn't rely upon visual
analysis."
"Feelings
and instinct are a poor basis for a criminal investigation, Your Grace,"
Mandel said even more stiffly. "I've been doing this for almost fifty
T-years. And, as I explained on the basis of that experience, it's normal for
emotions to cloud one's interpretation of events like this one."
"Captain,"
the muscle tic at the corner of Honor's mouth was more pronounced, "you're
aware of the fact that I've been adopted by a treecat?"
"Of
course, Your Grace." Mandel was obviously trying to sit on his temper, but
his voice came out just a bit too clipped. "Everyone is aware of
that."
"And
you're aware that treecats are empaths and telepaths?"
"I've
read some articles to that effect," Mandel said, and Honor felt her own
temper click a notch higher at the dismissiveness in his emotions. Clearly, the
captain was one of those people who continued, despite the evidence, to reject
the notion that 'cats were fully sentient beings.
"They
are, in fact, telepathic and empathic, and also highly intelligent," she
told him. "And because they are, Nimitz was able to sense what
Lieutenant Mears was feeling in the last few moments of his life."
She
considered—briefly—telling Mandel she'd sensed those emotions herself,
personally and directly, but rejected the temptation immediately. If he was
sufficiently closed-minded to reject all the recent scientific evidence of
treecat intelligence and capabilities, he would undoubtedly consider any human
who claimed the same empathic ability was obviously insane.
"Nimitz
knows, Captain Mandel. He doesn't suspect, and he doesn't think, he knows Timothy
was trying desperately not to do what he was doing. That he was
horrified by his own actions but couldn't stop them. And that, I submit to you,
is the exact definition of someone acting under compulsion."
Mandel
looked at her, and she tasted his incredulity that anyone could possibly expect
him to allow the supposed observations of an animal, be it ever so clever, to influence
the direction of his investigation.
"Your
Grace," he said finally, "I'm attempting to make full allowance for
your obvious close emotional attachment to Lieutenant Mears, but I must
disagree with your conclusions. As far as his value as an intelligence asset is
concerned, I will, of course, defer to the judgment of Commander Simon's people
in counter-intelligence. From my own perspective, however, and given how
successful Eighth Fleet's operations have been, it seems obvious you'd make a
perfect target for an assassination. We know the Peeps are fond of
assassination as a technique, and your death would have been a major blow to
the Star Kingdom's morale. In my own judgment, it seems likely Peep
intelligence felt that killing you would be even more valuable than whatever
sensitive data Lieutenant Mears might have been in position to give them.
"As
far as your treecat's 'observations' are concerned, I'm afraid I can't allow
them to overrule my own analysis of the visual records, which aren't subject to
emotional overtones or subjectivity. And those records show absolutely no sign
of hesitation on Lieutenant Mears' part from the instant he seized your
armsman's weapon.
"And,
finally, as I've already pointed out," he concluded with dangerous,
pointed patience, "there simply hasn't been an unaccounted for block of
the lieutenant's time long enough for him to have been adjusted."
"Captain,"
Honor said, "should I conclude, from what you've just said, that you don't
believe a treecat's empathic sense is a valid guide to the emotional state of
humans in his presence?"
"I'm
not sufficiently versed in the literature on the subject to have an opinion,
Your Grace," he said, but she tasted the truth behind the meaningless
qualification.
"No,
you don't believe it," she said flatly, and his eyes flickered.
"Nor," Honor continued, "is your mind even remotely open to the
possibility that Timothy Mears was acting against his will. Which means,
Captain Mandel, that you're completely useless for this investigation."
Mandel
reared back in his chair, eyes wide with shock, and Honor smiled thinly.
"You're
relieved of authority for this investigation, Captain," she told him
softly.
"You
can't do that, Your Grace!" he objected hotly. "This is an ONI
investigation. It falls outside your chain of command!"
"Captain,"
Honor emphasized his rank coldly, "you do not want to get into a
pissing contest with mee. Trust me on that. I said you're relieved, and you are
relieved. I will inform all Eighth Fleet personnel that you have no authority,
and instruct them not to cooperate with your investigation in any way. And if
you choose not to accept my decision, I will personally return to Manticore to
discuss it with Admiral Givens, Admiral Caparelli, Earl White Haven, and—if
necessary—with the Queen herself. Are you reading me clearly on this,
Captain?"
Mandel
stared at her, then seemed to deflate in his chair. He didn't say a word, and
as she tasted his emotions, she knew he literally couldn't.
She held
him for a moment longer with icy brown eyes, then turned her attention to
Commander Simon. The commander was almost as stunned as Mandel, but she was
already beginning to come to grips with it.
"Commander
Simon."
"Yes,
Your Grace?" Simon had a pleasant mezzosoprano much warmer than her washed
out coloring, Honor noticed.
"On my
authority, you'll assume lead responsibility for this investigation until and
unless Admiral Givens assigns a replacement for Captain Mandel."
"Your
Grace," Simon said carefully, "I'm not certain you have the authority
in my chain of command to give that order."
"Then
I suggest you accept it provisionally, under protest, if you must, until the
situation is clarified by someone you know is in your chain of
command," Honor said coldly. "Because unless you do, this
investigation will go nowhere until such time as an entire new team is sent out
from Manticore. I will not have Captain Mandel in charge of it. Is that
clear?"
"Yes,
Your Grace," Simon said quickly.
"Very
well then, Commander. Let's be about it."
"So
we've been rethinking our previous target selection criteria and force
levels," Andrea Jaruwalski said, looking around the flag briefing room.
All of
Eighth Fleet's division commanders attended electronically, each with his or
her own individual quadrant of the huge holo display hovering above the
conference table. The squadron and task force commanders, and Scotty Tremain as
Eighth Fleet's senior COLAC, were physically present, and even now, almost
three full days after the flag bridge massacre, Honor could taste the residual
shock, the stunned desire to disbelieve what had happened, hovering in the
compartment like smoke.
"At
this point," Jaruwalski continued, seeking her own escape from personal
grief in brisk professionalism, "Commander Reynolds and I are in agreement
with Her Grace. The Peeps have to have begun putting in place some response to
Cutworm I and Cutworm II. What that response may be, we can't predict. Obviously,
we all know what we'd like it to be. However, even if we've succeeded
completely in convincing them to do what the Admiralty wants, it's still a
situation with a definite downside for us here in Eighth Fleet. Specifically,
the targets are going to get tougher. Whether it's simply improved
doctrine—more of what we saw at Chantilly—or an actual redeployment of assets,
they're going to do their best to ensure that we don't have any more cakewalks.
"Bearing
that in mind, we're reducing our objectives list for Cutworm III to only two
star systems: Lorn and Solon. Admiral Truman will command the attack on Lorn;
Her Grace will command the attack on Solon. We'll be assigning one carrier
squadron to each attack, and splitting the heavy cruisers and battlecruisers
just about down the middle."
She paused,
looking up and sweeping the faces of her audience, corporeal and electronic,
then continued.
"Even
without any precautionary redeployment on the Peeps' part, both these targets
would almost certainly be more heavily defended then our previous objectives.
Lorn, in particular, is a relatively important secondary naval shipyard. It's
not a building yard, but a satellite yard that handles a lot of refit activity,
although it's really geared to working on units below the wall. Also, we know
from prior intelligence that Lorn is fairly heavily involved in construction of
the Peeps' new LACs. Because of that, we anticipate that the likelihood of
encountering at least light and medium combatants in some numbers is relatively
high.
"Solon
is less directly involved in the construction or maintenance of Peep naval
units. It is, however, substantially more heavily populated than any of the
systems we've hit so far. According to the last census data available to us,
the system population is over two billion, and its economy was one of the
relatively few bright spots for the Peeps even before the Pierre Coup. This
makes it particularly valuable from our perspective, since a successful attack
on it is certain to generate powerful political pressure for Theisman and his
staff to deploy additional heavy units for home defense. In addition, the
severity of the economic damage inflicted by the destruction of this system's
industrial infrastructure will be truly significant. All of which, again, suggests
the system will be more heavily defended than the more lightly populated
systems we've attacked so far."
She paused
once again, glancing over the notes on her individual display, then looked up
once more.
"That
completes the overview, Your Grace. Would you care to entertain discussion of
the points already raised, or would you prefer for me to begin the
point-by-point operational brief?"
"I
think we'll begin by seeing if anyone has anything she wants to add to what
you've already said," Honor replied.
It was her
turn to look around the faces, physical and electronic, and she smiled, despite
her fatigue and her aching awareness of the empty spots behind her which should
have been filled by Simon Mattingly and Timothy Mears.
"Who'd
like to start the ball rolling?" she asked.
* * *
The
intercom buzzer sounded shockingly loud in the stillness.
Honor sat
up quickly, brushing her right hand across her eyes, and grimaced as she
brought up the time display in her left eye. She'd been stretched out on the couch
for barely fifty minutes, and the small amount of sleep she'd gotten made her
feel even worse than she had before she collapsed onto it.
The
intercom buzzed again, and she shoved herself to her feet and stalked across to
it.
"Mac,"
she said, with unaccustomed ire, "I thought I told you—"
"I'm
sorry, Ma'am," MacGuiness interrupted. "I know you didn't want to be
disturbed before supper. But there's someone here you should see."
"Mac,"
she said again, without her previous atypical heat, but wearily, "unless
it's some sort of an emergency, I really don't want to see anyone. Can't
Mercedes handle whatever it is?"
"I'm
afraid not, Ma'am," MacGuiness replied. "He's come directly from
Admiralty House specifically to speak to you."
"Oh."
Honor made
her spine straighten and inhaled deeply. There'd been just enough time for her
blistering comments on Mandel to reach Admiralty House and draw a response, and
the fact that they'd sent someone out to deliver that response in person
suggested that Admiral Givens and the Judge Advocate General might not have
been too delighted by her actions.
Well,
that's just too bad, she thought grimly. I'm a
full admiral, a fleet commander, a duchess, and a steadholder. This
investigation is too important to be sandbagged at the outset by someone too
closed minded to even consider the blindingly obvious, and this time
around, the Powers That Be are damned well going to pay attention to me!
The anger
in her own thoughts surprised her, just a bit, and she wondered—not for the
first time—how much of it stemmed from her own feeling of guilt. But that
didn't really matter. Not when she knew she was right about whatever had
been done to Timothy Mears.
"Very
well, Mac," she said, after a moment, "give me two minutes, then send
him in."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
Honor keyed
off the intercom, picked up her uniform tunic and slipped it back on, sealed
it, and glanced into a bulkhead mirror. She shrugged their shoulders to settle
the tunic perfectly in place, and ran her right hand lightly over her hair.
That hair fell halfway to her waist when it was unbound, these days, but its
tightly coiled braids hadn't slipped during her all too brief nap, and she
nodded in approval. The slight tightness around her eyes might have told
someone who knew her very well how weary she actually was, but there was no
fault to find in her outward appearance.
She glanced
at Nimitz, but the 'cat was draped over his sleeping perch, still sound asleep.
She sensed him in the back of her mind, just as she knew he was always at least
peripherally aware of her, even when his sleep was deepest, but she didn't wake
him. He was as exhausted as she was, and he, too, was still dealing with his
grief for two people who had been close personal friends.
Simon
Mattingly's funeral had helped . . . some. There'd been at least a little
catharsis in it, but at the same time it had only made her more aware of how
far he'd come from his native world to die. She'd borrowed Brother Hendricks,
the chaplain attached to one of the Grayson LAC groups assigned to Alice
Truman's carrier squadron, to perform the ceremony. She'd known from agonizing
personal experience that the Grayson tradition was that an armsman was buried
where he fell, and Andrew LaFollet and Spencer Hawke had stood ramrod straight
at her back throughout the brief military funeral ceremony. And then they,
Alistair McKeon, Michelle Henke, and James MacGuiness had carried the
Harrington Steading flag-draped coffin to the waiting airlock.
The two
armsmen had stood rigidly at attention at her back once again as the airlock's
inner hatch closed. And then Brother Hendricks had spoken quietly.
"Unto
Almighty God we commend the soul of our brother departed, and we commit his
body to the endless sea of space, in sure and certain hope of the Resurrection
unto eternal life, through the Intercessor, our Lord Jesus Christ, at whose
coming in glorious Majesty to judge the universe, it shall give up its dead,
and the corruptible bodies of those who sleep in Him shall be changed, and made
like unto His glorious body, according to the mighty workings whereby He is
able to subdue all things unto Himself. Amen."
Honor had
reached out as he spoke, and at the final word, she'd pressed the button beside
the hatch that expelled Simon Mattingly's coffin. The coffin's small reaction
drive had activated as soon as it was clear of the ship, turning the coffin,
aligning it perfectly with the distant fusion furnace of Trevor's Star, and
she'd felt her own heart go with it.
Perhaps
she'd be able, in time, to find the comfort in the ancient words of farewell.
And certainly, if there'd ever been a man who had met the Test of his life,
that man had been Simon Mattingly. But, oh, she missed him so.
She drew a
deep breath, crossed to her desk, seated herself behind it, switched on her
terminal, and pretended to be studying the document upon it, then waited.
Precisely
one hundred and twenty seconds from the moment she'd given him the instruction,
MacGuiness opened the cabin hatch.
"Your
Grace," he said, "your visitor is here."
There was
something peculiar about his voice, and something even odder about his
emotions, and Honor looked up sharply.
"Hello,
Honor," her visitor said, and she shot up out of her chair.
"Hamish!"
She never
clearly remembered stepping around her desk. She just was, and then she walked
straight into his arms.
She heard a
thump behind her as Samantha vaulted from Hamish's shoulder and flowed across
the carpet. She tasted Nimitz's awakening and sudden delight as his mate's
mind-glow reached out to him, and then Hamish's arms were about her, and hers
were about him.
"Hamish,"
she repeated more quietly, almost wonderingly, letting her head rest on his
shoulder.
"'Salamander,'
indeed." Hamish's deep voice was more than a little frayed around the
edges, and his arms tightened. "Damn it, woman—can't you go anywhere without
somebody trying to kill you?!"
"I'm
sorry," she said, never opening her eyes as she tasted his very real
worry. "I'm sorry, but no one could have seen this one coming."
"I
know, I know," he sighed, and his embrace loosened at last.
He put his
hands on her upper arms, holding her back at arm's length, and looked deeply
into her eyes. He lacked her own empathic abilities, but once again, she tasted
that echo of a treecat bonding between them, and she knew she could no more
conceal her innermost feelings from him than he could conceal his from her.
"Poor
Honor," he said, after a moment. "Love, when we got the initial
dispatches, Emily and I—" He broke off, shaking his head firmly.
"Let's just say we didn't take it well. I wanted to come straight out here
personally, but I was afraid of the attention I might have drawn. But then you
fired Mandel, and I decided the hell with the attention I might attract. I know
you, Honor. You wouldn't have brought the hammer down that hard on him unless
he was a complete and utter idiot and you felt an overriding urgency to get
someone competent to replace him, or unless you were really, really hurting. In
either case, I needed to be here."
"I
suppose it was a bit of each," she admitted, stepping back and linking her
arm through his. She urged him across the cabin, and the two of them sat side
by side on the couch, leaning comfortably against one another.
"I am
hurting, badly," she said quietly. "Not just over Simon. Not even
mostly over him, in some ways. Tim—"
She broke
off, biting her lip, her vision misting, remembering how vehemently she had
rejected Mercedes Brigham's suggestion that perhaps she should be thinking
about filling the hole in her staff Mears death had left. But no admiral was
required to have a flag lieutenant, and Honor refused to replace him. It
might not be the most rational decision she'd ever made, but she had no
intention of changing her mind.
"I'm
hurting," she repeated. "And I will be, for a long time. But I
honestly believe that it was mostly because he was such a square peg in a round
hole."
"From
the tone of your dispatches—and, frankly, his report to Pat Givens—I
sort of figured it was something like that," he said. "Although, I
understand Mandel really does have a reputation as an effective investigator.
"I
don't doubt he does," she said. "In fact, tobe scrupulously fair,
which I really don't want to, I imagine he really is very good at what he does
. . . under more normal circumstances. But in this instance, he's simply not
the man for the job. Maybe he's too experienced. It's like . . . like
he's got some sort of tunnel vision. He knows what he knows, and he's going to
focus in on that and get the job done without any distractions from amateurs
who don't know their ass from their elbow about criminal investigations."
Hamish
quirked one eyebrow at her language.
"You are
pissed," he observed.
"Frustrated,"
she corrected. "Well, and maybe pissed off because he made me so
frustrated. But he wouldn't believe me when I told him Tim was being compelled
somehow, and he wasn't ready to believe Nimitz was smart enough to recognize
what was going on—assuming a 'cat really had any sort of telempathic ability in
the first place—or to tell anyone anything sensible if he could recognize
it."
"Jesus,
he managed to step on all your sore toes, didn't he?"
"Just
about," she admitted, smiling faintly at the humor in his voice. "But
he was so fixated on the notion that my sense of guilt was making me
believe the best about Tim that he wasn't paying any attention to what I was
telling him about what really happened. And he wasn't about to change his mind,
either. I could tell."
She tapped
her temple with her right forefinger, grimacing wryly, and he nodded.
"I
figured that was what it was. And I imagine from what you're saying you weren't
about to tell him you'd sensed what was happening?"
Honor
simply snorted, and he chuckled without much humor.
"Frankly,
I'm just as glad you didn't. I'd like you to go on holding that little ability
in reserve for as long as you can. Let people think Nimitz is the one doing the
sensing. It never hurts to be underestimated in some ways."
"I
know. Not to mention the fact that I don't want people to think I'm some sort
of mind-reading, privacy-invading freak."
"Um."
Hamish
gazed into space for a few moments, then looked back at her.
"I
don't doubt a single thing you've said," he told her, "but I've got
to tell you, I viewed the same footage from the bridge visuals." His face
tightened. "It scared the shit out of me, too, even though I knew
you hadn't been hurt before they ever showed it to me."
He shook
his head, jaw muscles bunching for a second, and she slipped her arm around him
and squeezed tightly.
"But
the point I was going to make," he continued more normally after a couple
of heartbeats, "was that watching what happened, I can see why someone who
didn't realize how you can get inside somebody else's head would discount the
possibility that Lieutenant Mears was trying to stop himself. He moved so fast,
Honor. So smoothly. As if he'd not only planned out what he was going to do,
but actually rehearsed it ahead of time. I don't know if you really realize
sometimes just how fast your own reflexes are, but you killed him just
fractions of a second before he would have killed you. And I
don't think anyone else could have done it, trick finger or not."
Honor
looked down at her gloved left hand.
"I
know it was fast," she said. "If I'd had even a fraction of a second
more warning—if I'd been able to do more than just shout Simon's name—we might
. . . ."
She stopped
and made herself inhale.
"I'll
always wonder if it would have been better not to shout," she said,
admitting to Hamish what she wasn't certain she would have been able to admit
only to herself. "Did I distract him? Did I make him look at me, in
exactly the wrong direction, when he might have seen something, noticed
something?" She looked into Hamish's eyes. "Did I get him
killed?"
"No."
Hamish shook his head firmly. "Yes, you may have distracted him, but
distracted him from what? From watching a young man he'd seen literally
thousands of times walk into Flag Bridge on a perfectly legitimate
errand?" He shook his head again. "Not even a Grayson armsman would
have expected anything like this, love."
"But
he was my friend," Honor half-whispered. "I . . . loved him."
"I
know."
It was
Hamish's turn to squeeze her, and she leaned into his embrace.
"Nonetheless,"
he went on, "the fact that you had to so little warning suggests a couple
of things to me."
"Such
as?"
"First,
there's no way he was a Peep agent. He never could've concealed that from
you—or Nimitz—for this long. Second, whatever happened to him, he hadn't been
personality adjusted."
"Why
not? I mean, why can you be so confident of that?"
"Partly
because Mandel, however pigheaded you may've found him, was right. Adjustment
takes time—lots of time, even without the safeguards built into our military
security protocols. And partly because someone who's been adjusted knows he
has. On some level, he's aware of the fact that he's not fully in control of
his own actions. In fact, I made a quick flight out to your parent's house on
Sphinx with Samantha and had her consult the Bright Water memory singers about
the attempted assassination of Queen Adrienne."
"You
know, I'd actually forgotten about that," Honor said in a chagrined voice.
"You've
been under a lot of stress," Hamish told her. "But Samantha got the
memory song of the entire episode. She says the assassin knew what was
happening to him from the moment he came into Seeker of Dream's mental reach.
It wasn't like . . . turning on a switch. Seeker of Dreams picked him up before
he ever got into visual range of the Princess, and he knew there was something
badly wrong the instant he tasted the assassin's mind-glow. That wasn't the
case here."
"No,
it wasn't," Honor agreed. "He was perfectly cheerful when he stepped
through the hatch. Everything was normal, exactly the way it always was. And
then, suddenly, he went for Simon's pulser."
"So he
wasn't adjusted," Hamish said thoughtfully, "but he was
programmed."
"I
suppose you could say that. But how could that be done?" Honor shook her
head. "That's what I keep coming back to, again and again. How in the name
of God could someone program another human being that way without the
human in question even being aware it had happened?"
"I
don't know the answer to that one," Hamish said grimly, "but here's
another one. Why did it happen now? Why not before this?"
"You're
suggesting whatever was done to him was done during his last trip to
Manticore?"
"It
seems likely, although CID's been over his entire visit with a fine tooth comb
without finding anything out of the ordinary. And leaving that point aside for
the moment, why that moment, in that place? Why not in a staff
meeting, or when you invited him to dinner?"
"Opportunity,
maybe," Honor said thoughtfully. He looked at her, and she shrugged.
"I think it was the first time he and I and a single armsman were in the
same place at the same time. Or, at least, when there was a single armsman he
had a legitimate reason to come within arm's length of so naturally that not
even a Grayson armsman would think it was anything out of the ordinary."
"And
why would that be significant?"
"Because,"
she said grimly, "my armsmen are the only people constantly in my presence
who're armed. To kill me, he first had to have a weapon, and, secondly, he had
to . . . disable my bodyguard. By taking Simon's weapon the way he did, he
accomplished both."
"I
see." Hamish frowned, then shrugged. "You may be onto something
there. I don't know. But I do know where something like this happened
before."
"Where—Oh!
Colonel Hofschulte!"
"Exactly.
Pat Givens has already sent a message to the Andermani requesting all their
case files on Hofschulte, because it sounds like exactly the same thing. A
totally trusted, totally loyal, longtime retainer who just suddenly snapped and
tried to kill Prince Huang and his entire family. My understanding is that they
very carefully considered the possibility of adjustment, but that Hofschulte
was never out of sight long enough for that to happen. Which, again, sounds
exactly like what happened here."
"But
why should the Havenites have tried to kill the Andermani Crown Prince?"
Honor asked in puzzlement.
"That
I can't tell you," Hamish admitted. "I just know the modus
operandi appears to be extremely similar. I can see some possible
advantages for them, I suppose, in killing him now that they're at war with the
Andies as well as us, but then?" He shook his head. "Of course,
StateSec was still running their entire intelligence machine at that point.
Maybe they did have some sort of motive we just can't see from here."
"That's
hard to imagine," Honor said thoughtfully. "I wonder . . . ."
"Wonder
what?" Hamish asked after a few seconds.
"What?
Oh!" Honor gave herself a shake. "I was just wondering if there's someone
else out there, someone who's developed a technique that would let them do
something like this, and made it available on a hire basis?"
"Possible."
Hamish considered. "Quite possible, really. Because I can't think of
anyone besides the Peeps who'd have both the motive and the resources to pull
something like this off."
"I
can't either," Honor agreed, but her expression was troubled.
Yes,
assassination had always been a favorite tactic of the People's Republic,
whether it was being run by InSec or StateSec. But it wasn't the sort of tactic
she would have associated with Thomas Theisman. On the other hand, Eloise
Pritchart had come up through the Havenite Resistance, and her Aprilists had
been credited with several dozen assassinations of key Legislaturalists and
InSec personnel. And however Honor wanted to look at it, she, as the commander
of the Allied fleet which had done the most damage to the Republic's civilians,
as well as its military, was clearly a legitimate military target.
And
assassination didn't kill anyone deader than a bomb-pumped laser.
"Well,"
Hamish said finally, "one of the reasons I came out was to tell you that,
although Pat would appreciate it if you'd go through channels next time, if you
want Mandel out of the picture, he's gone. And she intimated to me that if he'd
gotten out of line, instead of simply being dumb as a post, she'd see to it he
was for the long drop, as well."
"No."
Honor shook her head. "No, as much as the nasty side of me would like to
see that happen, it really was just a matter of his being . . . unresponsive to
novel hypotheses."
"My,
what a diplomatic way to put it," her husband murmured. Then he grinned
crookedly. "Her second question was whether or not this Commander Simon
was acceptable to you?"
"She
is. Just speaking to her is like prodding a wound with your finger, because of
her name, but she's much more open-minded then Mandel. I don't say she agrees
with me—yet, at least—but she hasn't ruled the possibility out. And she hasn't
already wedded herself to some theory of her own. And she apparently does
believe what the xenologists have been saying about the 'cats and their
abilities for the past few years."
"Good,
because in that case, I want Samantha to talk to her. I don't suppose we're
lucky enough that she reads sign?"
"No,
she doesn't."
"Pity.
In that case, I'll just have to translate, I suppose." Hamish shrugged.
"It may be an interesting conversation, especially when Samantha tells her
about the memory song about Queen Adrienne. And at least I'll feel like I'm
actually doing something about the bastards who tried to murder my
wife."
His voice
hardened on the last sentence, and she felt the fury—and fear—behind it.
"They
may've tried, and they may have killed a lot of other people, but they didn't
kill me, and they aren't going to," she promised him, reaching up to touch
the side of his face with her right hand.
"Not
with assassins, anyway," Hamish said with a slightly strained smile.
"Not with both you and your furry shadow watching out for them."
Honor
smiled back, then stiffened.
"That's
it," she said softly.
"'It'
what?" he asked when she didn't say anything else immediately.
"It's
just that if there is some new assassination technology out there,
something they used to get to Tim without his disappearing long enough to be
adjusted, then they could do it to anyone. Which means literally anybody
could be a programmed assassin, without even realizing it."
"Talk
about your security nightmares," Hamish muttered, and she nodded grimly.
"But
at the moment whatever the programming is kicks in, they do know someone
or something else is controlling them," she said, "and no treecat
could miss something like that."
"Like
food tasters," Hamish said slowly. "Or canaries in coal mines back on
Old Earth."
"More
or less," she agreed. "It wouldn't be much warning, but at least it
would be some. And if the security types guarding the intended target knew to
take their cue from the 'cat, it might be enough."
"Palace
Security and the Queen's Own have been paying attention to treecats for
centuries now," Hamish said. "They, at least, won't have any problems
with the idea."
"No,
and you need to get Dr. Arf and her commission involved in this. It's exactly
the sort of thing she's been looking for, and she's already in position to
coordinate with all the 'cat clans to come up with volunteers. We can't put
treecats everywhere—there aren't enough of them, even if they were all prepared
or mentally equipped to work that closely with so many humans in such
proximity—but with her help, we can probably cover most of the major
ministerial targets, for example."
"An
excellent notion," Hamish approved, then smiled at her in quite a
different way.
"What?"
she demanded as she tasted the sudden shift in his emotions and a pleasant heat
deep down inside her responded to it.
"Well,"
he said, turning sideways on the couch to take her face between the palms of
his hands, "I can now truthfully tell my fellow Lords of Admiralty that I
discharged official business when I was out here. So with that out of the way,
why don't we discharge a little unofficial business, Ms.
Alexander-Harrington?"
And he
kissed her.
"So
tell me, Boss. Are we sure this is a good idea this time around?" Captain
Molly Delaney asked.
Admiral Lester
Tourville looked at her with a slight frown, and she shrugged.
"I'm
not saying it isn't," his chief of staff said. "It's just that the
last time the Octagon sent us off on one of its little missions, it didn't work
out so well."
Times had
certainly changed, Tourville reflected. An officer who'd said what Delaney just
had would have been arrested, charged with defeatism and treason against the
People, and almost certainly shot—probably in less than twenty-four hours—under
the old regime.
Not that
she didn't have a point, he admitted to himself.
"Yes,
Molly," he said aloud. "As a matter of fact, I do think it's a
good idea. And," he added just a bit pointedly, "what you say to me
in private like this is one thing."
"Understood,
Sir," Delaney said a bit more formally—but, Tourville was pleased to note,
without any trace of obsequiousness.
"I'll
admit," the admiral continued after a moment, "that attacking a
target like Zanzibar isn't exactly something for the weak-nerved, but at least
this time we've got what looks like adequate—and accurate—operational
intelligence. And assuming the numbers we've got are correct, we've also got a
big enough hammer this time."
"I
know," Delaney said, and there might have been just a bit of embarrassment
in her smile. "It's just that we got caught with our trousers so
thoroughly down around our ankles last time."
"That,"
Tourville conceded, "we certainly did. Of course, this time we can
also be fairly certain Honor Harrington is going to be somewhere else. And while
I'm not particularly superstitious, I have to admit that I consider that a good
omen."
He and
Delaney exchanged grins whose humor was more than a bit strained as they
recalled the Battle of Sidemore. It was the second time Lester Tourville had
crossed swords with Honor Harrington. The first time, units under his command
had crippled her ship and captured her. The second time, she had—he
acknowledged it freely—kicked his ass up between his ears.
His calm
expression concealed an inner shudder as he remembered the nightmare in the
Marsh System. Four hundred light-years from home, with a fleet which was
supposed to have a decisive edge over its unprepared, unsuspecting opponents,
only to discover that its opponents were anything but unsuspecting . . . and very
well prepared, indeed.
When
Harrington sprang her trap, he hadn't expected to get anything out. As it was,
he'd somehow managed to extract almost a third of his total fleet. Which, of
course, was another way of saying he'd lost over two-thirds of it. And
he would have lost it all, if Shannon Foraker's defensive doctrine hadn't
worked so well. Most of the ships he'd gotten out had been badly battered, and
although he'd managed to evade any pursuit in the depths of hyper-space, the
voyage home had been a nightmare all its own. Restricted by damage to the Delta
bands, his maximum apparent velocity had been only 1,300 c, which meant
the trip had taken over three months. Three months of dealing with damage out
of limited onboard resources. Three months of watching his wounded recover—or
not—when even his surviving units had lost thirty percent of their medical
personnel. And three months without any idea at all how the rest of
Operation Thunderbolt had gone.
It was
fortunate that the answer to that last question was that it had gone quite well
indeed. The success of the other fleet commanders might have rubbed a little
more salt into the wound of his own failure, but at least the Manties had been
hammered far harder overall than the Republic. It was a pity Javier Giscard
hadn't gone ahead and attacked at Trevor's Star, but Tourville couldn't fault
that decision—not on the basis of what Javier had known at the time. But the
Grendelsbane attack, especially, had been a crushing success, and no one at the
Octagon had blamed Tourville or his staff for what had happened to Fourth Fleet
in Marsh.
One or two
politicians had had a few things to say. In fact, a couple of them had been
vocal enough to get themselves firmly onto Lester Tourville's personal shit
list. That was one side of a living, breathing democracy which Tourville was
honest enough to admit he could have done without. But the most telling
evidence that he continued to enjoy the confidence of his n superiors was his
new assignment.
Second
Fleet was a new organization. The old Second Fleet had been dissolved after
Thunderbolt, and the new one's skeleton of veteran units was receiving
primarily new construction, straight from completing working up exercises under
Shannon Foraker's direction in Bolthole. When he'd been given the command, his
understanding had been that it wouldn't be committed to action for at least a
T-year, and probably somewhat longer. Second Fleet was supposed to be the
knuckleduster no one on the other side knew existed until it landed in a devastating
right cross.
But even
the best plans were subject to change, and Operation Gobi was right down Lester
Tourville's alley. Nor was it going to require him to commit his complete
strength. He could put together the required strike force out of his more
experienced, battle hardened units without exposing his newbies. In fact, he
supposed he really could have handed the entire operation over to one of his
task force commanders . . . if there'd been a single chance in hell he wouldn't
be commanding it himself.
"It
ought to be interesting, anyway," he said after a few moments. "I
wasn't there when Icarus smashed Zanzibar last time, but somehow I don't think
the Zanzibarans are going to be especially happy about getting run over by an
air lorry a second time. And Zanzibar is at least as important to the
Alliance's war effort as all of the systems Harrington has hit so far,
combined, were to ours."
"I
know, Boss." Delaney nodded. "As a matter of fact, I think that's one
reason I may be feeling a little more anxious." Tourville quirked an
eyebrow at her, and she shrugged. "They have to know Zanzibar's important
to them, if we do. And they gave up an awful lot of intel on their defensive
deployments the last time we hit them. If I were them, I'd have been making
some changes since."
"Which
is exactly what the operations plan assumes they've done," Tourville
pointed out. "But unless they're prepared to make a major commitment of
ships of the wall, they're going to be using some variant of what we already
saw. And unlike them, we are prepared to make a major commitment of the
wall." He smiled thinly. "I don't think they're going to enjoy the
experience as much as we are."
* * *
Honor stood
on Imperator's flag bridge, hands clasped loosely behind her, and
watched her plot as Eighth Fleet headed out on Cutworm III. The bloodstains had
been cleaned up long ago, of course, and the shattered consoles and command
chairs had been replaced. But no one on the bridge was likely to forget that
six people they'd all known well had died there. And Honor could feel Spencer
Hawke, standing in Simon's spot beside the hatch.
She watched
the silent, peaceful icons moving across the plot, accelerating steadily
towards Trevor's Star's hyper limit, and tried to analyze her own emotions.
Sorrow predominated, she thought. And then . . . not guilt, exactly, but
something like it.
Too many of
her armsmen had died in the line of duty, protecting her back, or simply caught
in the crossfire of naval engagements they would never have been anywhere near
if not for her. At first, she'd felt almost angry at them because of the way
their deaths weighed upon her sense of responsibility. But gradually she'd come
to understand it didn't really work that way. Yes, they'd died because they'd
been her armsmen, but every one of them had been a volunteer. They'd
served her because they'd chosen to, and they were content. They were no more
eager to die than anyone else, but they were as confident that they had given
their service to someone worthy of them as Honor Harrington had been confident
of the same thing the first day she met Elizabeth III face to face. And because
they were, it wasn't her job to keep them alive—it was her job to be worthy
of the service they'd chosen to give.
And yet,
despite that, she carried the weight of their deaths as she carried the weight
of all her dead, and she desperately wanted them to live. And however she might
feel about Simon Mattingly's death, or the deaths of her other bridge
personnel, there was Timothy Mears himself. The young man she'd killed.
She stood
in almost exactly the same spot she'd stood then. She could turn around and see
exactly where Simon had fallen, where Mears' body had slammed to the deck. She
knew she'd had no choice, and that even as she killed him, Mears had understood
that. But he'd been so young, had so much promise, and to die it like
that—killed by a friend to stop him from killing other friends . . . .
Nimitz
bleeked in her ear, the sound scolding, and she shook herself mentally as she
tasted his emotions. He, too, grieved for Simon and for Mears, but he blamed
neither her nor Mears. His hatred was reserved for whoever had sent
Timothy Mears on his final horrifying mission, and Honor realized he was right.
She didn't
know who had ordered her assassination, or planned its execution . . . but she
would. And when she did, she would personally do something about it.
Nimitz
bleeked again, and this time the sound was hungrier and soft with agreement.
* * *
"Sir,
the task force is ready to proceed."
Lester
Tourville turned his head to look down into the small com display. Captain
Celestine Houellebecq, the commanding officer of RHNS Guerriere,
flagship of Second Fleet, looked back out of it at him.
"What?"
Tourville asked with a small smile. "No last minute delays? No liberty
parties still adrift?"
"None,
Sir," Houellebecq replied deadpan. "I informed the shore patrol that
anyone who reported in late was to be shot beside the shuttle pad as an object
lesson to others."
"There's
the spirit I like to see!" Tourville said, although, truth be told, he
found the joke just a bit too pointed, given the previous régime's history.
"Always find a positive way to motivate your personnel."
"That's
what I thought, Sir."
"Well,
in that case, Celestine, let's get them moving. We've got an appointment with
the Manties."
"Aye,
Sir."
Houellebecq
disappeared from the display as he began issuing the orders necessary for Task
Force 21 to break parking orbit, and Tourville turned his attention to his
plot.
The slowly
moving light codes wouldn't have meant much to a civilian, but they were an
impressive sight to the trained eye. He picked out the ponderous might of his
four battle squadrons, shaking down into cruising formation as they accelerated
slowly. Ahead of them were the icons of a pair of battlecruiser squadrons, and
six Aviary-class CLACs followed in their wake. A sprinkling of lighter
units spread out in a necklace of jewels ahead of the main formation, watching
alertly for any hint of an unidentified starship, and a trio of fast
replenishment ships loaded with additional missile pods trailed along behind
the carriers.
Not a
capital ship on the display was more than three T-year old, and once again
Tourville felt something suspiciously like awe. The Republican Navy might
remain technologically inferior, in some ways, to the Royal Manticoran Navy,
but unlike the Manties, it had risen from the ashes of defeat. Its officers,
its senior personnel, had known what it meant to lose battle after battle, but
now the same officers and personnel had learned what it was to win. More than
that, they'd come to expect to win, and Lester Tourville wondered if the
Manties truly realized just how true that was.
Well, he thought, if they don't realize it now, we'll give
them a hint in about two weeks.
* * *
"Sir,
we've just picked up a hyper footprint. It looks like at least two ships,
probably destroyers or light cruisers."
"Where?"
Captain Durand demanded, walking across the space station's command deck to
Plotting.
"Forty-two
light-minutes out from the primary, on our side and right on the ecliptic,
Sir," Lieutenant Bibeau replied.
"So
the foxes are scouting the hen house," Durand murmured.
The
Plotting officer looked up at him a bit strangely; Charles Bibeau was from the
slums of Nouveau Paris, whereas Durand came from the farming planet of
Rochelle, and the Skipper kept coming up with oddball metaphors and similes.
But the lieutenant caught his drift just fine, and nodded in agreement.
"All
right, Lieutenant," Durand said after a moment, resting one hand lightly
on Bibeau's shoulder as he watched the hyper footprints fade from the plot.
"Keep an eye out. If we can pick up their platforms, so much the better,
but the main thing I want to know is when anyone else hypers in."
"Aye,
Sir."
Durand
patted him on the shoulder once, then turned and walked slowly back to his own
command chair.
Somewhere
out there, he knew, Manty reconnaissance arrays were creeping stealthily
inward, spying out the details of the Solon System's defenses. He knew what
they were going to see, and it wasn't all that impressive: a single division of
old-style superdreadnoughts, a slightly understrength battlecruiser squadron,
and a couple of hundred LACs. Hardly enough to cause a Manty raiding force to
break a sweat.
Which was
fine with Captain Alexis Durand. Just fine.
"We
have Commander Estwicke's report, Your Grace," Andrea Jaruwalski said.
"Good."
Honor
turned away from the visual display's gorgeous imagery. Task Force 82 forged
through hyper-space, closing in on its objective steadily in close enough
formation for the display to show the glowing disks of the nearest ships'
Warshawski sails. Intolerant, Imperator's sister ship and the
flagship of Rear Admiral Allen Morowitz, the division's CO, was the
nearest vessel. Her sails—three hundred kilometers across—flickered with
lambent fire, like a slice of heat lightning moving across the glowing depths
of hyper-space in a visual spectacle Honor never tired of, but she turned her
back upon it with what was almost a sense of relief at Jaruwalski's
announcement.
"Let's
see it," she said, crossing to the secondary plot at Jaruwalski's bridge
station. The ops officer touched the keyboard, shunting the download from HMS
Ambuscade onto the display, and then she and her admiral stood back and
watched the data assemble itself.
"Not
as much firepower as we'd anticipated, Your Grace," Jaruwalski observed
after a moment.
"No."
Honor
frowned and rubbed the tip of her nose. All their planning had assumed Lorn
would be the target more likely to be covered by mobile units, which was why
she'd swapped Alice Truman two of Alistair McKeon's superdreadnought divisions
and Matsuzawa Hirotaka's older battlecruisers in return for Michelle Henke's
more modern but understrength squadron. She'd also given Alice Winston
Bradshaw's Seventh Cruiser Squadron, with its four Edward Saganami-C-class
cruisers, while she took Charise Fanaafi's CruRon 12, with its older Saganami
and Star Knight-class cruisers. Still, they'd anticipated more defensive
strength than this for a target as populous and economically important as
Solon.
"I
make it two superdreadnoughts," she continued after moment, "plus
seven battlecruisers and roughly—" she consulted a display sidebar
"—a hundred and ninety LACs."
"For
mobile units, yes, Your Grace," Jaruwalski agreed. "But it looks like
they've got a fairly dense shell of missile pods in close to the planetary
industry around Arthur."
"And
another little clutch here, around Merlin," Honor pointed out, and frowned
some more. "That's a rather strange spot for them, wouldn't you say?"
"I
certainly would."
Jaruwalski
looked at the data and pursed her lips while she considered it.
"That's
much too far out to cover the Nimue Belt's extraction centers," she said.
"Is there something going on out among Merlin's moons that we don't know
about?"
"I
suppose there could be," Honor mused, gazing at the stupendous gas
giant—only a bit smaller than Old Earth's Jupiter—in question. "According
to the astro data, a couple of Merlin's moons are darned nearly the size of
Manticore, and it's got a total of eleven. There could be something exploitable
in among all of those. But whatever it is, it's on the far side of the primary
from Arthur at the moment, anyway. So I think we'll just leave Merlin alone and
concentrate on Arthur and the belter installations."
"That
suits me just fine, Your Grace," Jaruwalski agreed.
"It
looks like our best bet is probably Alpha Three," Honor continued.
"I'd just as soon avoid any unnecessary bells and whistles."
"Alpha
Three works for me, Your Grace," Jaruwalski agreed again. "Shall I
pass the word to Admiral Miklós?"
"Go
ahead." Honor nodded. "And tell him to doublecheck his alternate recovery
points with his COLACs."
"Of
course, Your Grace," Jaruwalski said, then paused, looking at her admiral
thoughtfully. "Um, is there some particular reason you wanted to do that,
Your Grace?"
"Nothing
I can put a finger on," Honor said after a moment. "I guess I'm just
a little antsy. As you say, we'd anticipated a significantly heavier defensive
force for a system this important."
"Yes,
Ma'am. You're thinking that whoever's in command here has tried to pull a
Bellefeuille on us?"
"Not
really," Honor said almost unwillingly, then shook her head at her own
formless misgivings. "Estwicke knows her job, and everybody was thoroughly
briefed on what happened at Chantilly."
And, she reminded herself, that's one reason we gave her
an extra eighteen hours to scout the system. If there'd been anything close
enough to Arthur to pose a threat, Ambuscade and Intruder would
have found it.
"I
suppose part of it could just be the fact that Solon lies right in the middle
of a gravity wave," she continued aloud. "I always get a sort of
uncomfortable feeling between my shoulder blades in a case like this."
Jaruwalski
nodded. No flag officer really liked attacking a star system which lay in the
middle of a hyper-space gravity wave—not unless she was totally confident she'd
brought along enough firepower to take the system outright—for a very simple
reason. A starship could not enter a gravity wave and survive without
functioning Warshawski sails, and no ship could produce a Warshawski sail if it
had lost an alpha node out of one of its impeller rings. Which meant a single
unlucky hit could leave a warship with otherwise trifling damage unable to
withdraw into hyper if the rest of its task force or fleet had to run for it.
Frankly,
Jaruwalski suspected that was one reason Honor had assigned herself to command
the Solon attack. Well, that and the fact that they'd anticipated—erroneously,
as it turned out—that Solon, with its heavily populated planet and relatively
thriving economy would have considerably heavier fixed defenses than Lorn.
"As I
say," Honor continued, "I don't have any real reason to feel uneasy,
but have him doublecheck, anyhow." She smiled crookedly. "I'm not
trying to develop a reputation for infallible intuition, so it won't hurt
anything if I do a little excess worrying and people catch me at it."
* * *
"Captain
Durand! Captain Durand to the command deck immediately!"
Alexis
Durand punched the flush button, yanked up his trousers, and hit the lavatory
door running. One of the space station's civilian maintenance techs grinned as
the naval officer charged past him, still sealing his trousers. Well, Durand
could stand a little civilian amusement at his expense.
He came
through the command deck hatch and slid to a stop at Plotting. Bibeau had the
watch again, and he looked up as Durand appeared beside him.
"You
wanted to know when anyone else turned up, Sir," the petty officer said
grimly, waving at his display. "Well, here they are."
"So I
see, Lieutenant. Have you informed Adiral Deutscher?"
"Yes,
Sir. And passed to word to Moriarty, too."
"Good,"
Durand said softly, leaning closer to the display. "What does CIC make of
it so far?"
"Twenty-nine
point sources, Sir. It looks like nine superdreadnoughts or carriers, eleven
battlecruisers or heavy cruisers, and nine light cruisers or destroyers, all on
our side of the primary and right on the limit. Plus, of course, whatever they
left in-system to keep an eye on us."
"Of
course." Durand nodded, and he and the lieutenant exchanged wolf-like
grins.
"Sir,"
a communications rating said respectfully, "Governor Matheson wants to
know if he should begin evacuating the platforms?"
"By
all means," Durand said. "And remind him to be obvious about
it."
"Aye,
Sir."
Durand
returned his attention to Bibeau's plot and folded his arms across his chest
while he thought.
"No
sign of LAC separation yet?" he asked after a few moments.
"No,
Sir."
"Very
good. Inform me as soon as you see it, as soon as their lead starship crosses
the hyper limit, or as soon as any of them micro-jump."
"Aye,
Sir."
Durand
gazed at the plot for a few more moments, then walked slowly to his own command
chair and seated himself in it.
Despite
Rear Admiral Deutscher's seniority, this portion of the operation was
officially Durand's responsibility, and part of him wanted to send the message
now. But he made himself put the temptation firmly aside; they needed to let
the situation settle down a bit first.
* * *
"Very
well, Samuel, let's be about it," Honor said. "Launch your
LACs."
"Aye,
aye, Your Grace," Vice Admiral Miklós acknowledged, and turned away from
his com pickup on the flag bridge of HMS Succubus to pass the order. A
moment later, Honor saw the first LACs' icons appear on her tactical plot.
The six
CLACs carried over six hundred and seventy LACs between them, but she was
leaving HMS Unicorn's wing behind to provide security for Miklós weakly
armed carriers. She was also leaving three of Mary Lou Moreau's light cruisers—Tisiphone,
Samurai, and Clotho—to help keep an eye on things, but the rest
of the task force headed steadily in-system with her flagship.
She
supposed she could have left a few main combatants, as well, given how sparse
the defenses were, but she still felt that unaccountable itch between her
shoulder blades. She was fairly certain she was jumping at shadows, but it
wouldn't hurt anything to stay concentrated.
The five
hundred and sixty LACs accompanying her starships spread out in a globe about
them, and Andrea Jaruwalski sent an advanced guard of recon platforms out ahead
as they shaped their course to intercept the planet Arthur's orbit.
* * *
"Sir,
they're crossing the limit," Bibeau said. "Present velocity
two-point-six-one thousand KPS. Range to Arthur ten-point-two light-minutes.
Tracking makes their current accel four-point-eight-one KPS squared."
"They're
staying concentrated? No detachments?"
"Pretty
much, Sir. It looks like they're leaving their carriers behind with three
cruisers and a LAC security patrol, but all the rest of them are headed
in-system."
Durand
nodded, not without a flicker of disappointment. Not that he was really
surprised. He'd always thought the Merlin pods were unlikely to suck them in,
but it had been worth a try. And they'd needed something to camouflage the Tarantula
platforms, anway.
"Time
to Arthur?" he asked.
"Assuming
a zero/zero intercept and constant accelerations, approximately three hours and
seventeen minutes, Sir. They'll make turnover niner-one-point-eight million
klicks out in ninety-four minutes."
"Very
good. Communications!"
"Yes,
Sir?"
"Send
Lieutenant Bibeau's data to Tarantula and instruct Lieutenant Sigourney
to execute his orders."
"Aye,
Sir."
* * *
"Their
superdreadnoughts are starting to stir, Your Grace."
Honor broke
off her conversation with Mercedes Brigham at Jaruwalski's announcement. Her
own force had been headed in-system for thirty-seven minutes. Her velocity
relative to the system primary was up to 13,191 KPS, and she'd come just over
seventeen million kilometers since crossing the hyper limit . . . which meant she
had a hundred and sixty-six million still to go.
She glanced
at the plot, and noted the vector arrows which had appeared next to the tiny
defensive force in orbit around Arthur. As Jaruwalski said, the
starships—escorted by the swarm of LACs—were beginning to move. She studied
their vector for a moment, then frowned.
"Odd,"
she murmured.
"Ma'am?"
She looked up. Brigham stood at her elbow, where she'd been gazing at the same
display, and the chief of staff arched one eyebrow as their eyes met.
"I
said that's odd." Honor indicated the icons of the accelerating defenders.
"They're coming to meet us, which is odd enough on its own. I would have
expected them to wait for us as deep into the envelope of their system defense
pods as they could. If they keep accelerating at that rate, they'll be right at
the very fringe of their pods' effective range when we engage, which means
accuracy will be even lower than usual. By the same token, the range to their
ships will be lower for us, which means our accuracy will be greater.
But not only are they coming to meet us, but from these acceleration numbers,
they don't have many, if any, pods of their own on tow."
"You
think they're up to something sneaky? Or is this just a panic reaction?"
"I
don't see what kind of 'sneakiness' they could have in mind," Honor said
after a second. "Estwicke's arrays got visual-range imagery off of both of
the SDs, so we know they aren't pod-layers. That means they don't have any MDM
capability, without towing pods, which they clearly aren't doing. Oh," she
waved a hand, "they may have a few dozen tractored inside their wedges,
but nowhere near enough to take us on in a missile duel, especially with the
Katanas to thicken our point defense.
"On
the other hand, this is a bit late in the game for a panic reaction. We've been
in the system for over forty-five minutes. For them to be underway at all at
this point, they must have been at at least standby readiness when we turned
up—which makes sense, since they obviously realized Estwicke was scouting for a
raid. But from standby readiness they could have been underway a good
fifteen minutes sooner than this—a half-hour sooner, if they were sitting there
with hot nodes. So why wait until now to 'panic'?"
"So
what do you think they're doing?" Brigham asked.
"I
don't know," Honor admitted, rubbing the tip of her nose once more.
"It looks like they're reacting in confusion, and I suppose that
could be what's happening. But that just doesn't feel right, somehow."
She
contemplated the plot for a few more moments, then climbed out of her command
chair, scooped a skinsuited Nimitz up in her arms, and crossed to Jaruwalski's
station.
"How's
their evacuation coming, Andrea?"
"It's
still going full bore, Your Grace." Jaruwalski indicated a secondary
display driven by transmissions from the stealthed arrays hovering near Arthur.
"I wouldn't go so far as to call it panic stricken," she continued,
"but they're obviously hauling everybody dirt-side as quick as they
can."
"Still
no word from the system authorities, Harper?" Honor asked, turning her
head towards Communications.
"No,
Your Grace," Harper Brantley replied, and Honor grimaced.
"But
you're still picking up those grav-pulses?" she asked.
"Yes,
Your Grace." The com officer nodded his head at Jaruwalski. "Commander
Jaruwalski's arrays are actually picking up most of them, but we've been
looking at them over here, as well. So far, it all looks like our own
early-generation traffic, probably from fixed recon arrays scattered around the
system. Their pulse repetition frequency rate's still on the low side, so the
information they're passing is probably limited, but there are at least a
couple of stations out there with a higher PRF."
"Can
you localize the more capable transmitters?"
"We've
nailed down two of them, Your Grace," Jaruwalski reported. "One of
them seems to be aboard this space station."
A red
sighting ring popped into existence around the system's main space station as
she spoke. It was a big thing, though no more than twenty percent the size of
Hephaestus, back home.
"And
the other?" Honor asked, eyes narrowing intently.
"The
other one is out here, Your Grace."
Jaruwalski
dropped another icon into the display. This one appeared to be in orbit around
Merlin, which put it over forty light-minutes outside the system hyper limit on
the far side of the primary.
"Are
they talking to each other, Harper?"
"I'd
say, yes, Your Grace. I can't be positive, of course, but pattern analysis
strongly suggests that they are."
"Thank
you."
Honor
nodded and walked slowly back across to her command chair, right hand gently
caressing the plushy fur between Nimitz's ears.
"Your
Grace, I know that expression," Brigham said quietly as Honor and Nimitz
rejoined her.
"I beg
your pardon?"
"I
said I know that expression. May I ask what's provoking it this time?"
"I
don't know, really." Honor shrugged. "There's just . . . something
wrong. It's like they're going off in all directions at once—panicky evacuation
of their orbital platforms, ships heading out to meet us without even bringing
along heavy pod loads, no effort to communicate with us at all, and now this
FTL message traffic."
"Maybe
they really are going off in all directions at once, Your Grace,"
Brigham suggested. "It's one thing to know the other side is scouting your
system; it's another to see a force this powerful coming down on you."
"I
know, I know." Honor snorted. "Maybe I'm simply being paranoid! But I
just can't shake the feeling that there's something out of kilter."
"Well,
Ma'am, even if Arthur is talking to someone out at Merlin, it's not like either
of them were close enough to pose any sort of threat to us. For that matter,
Merlin's on the entirely wrong side of Solon!"
"Exactly.
So why—"
Honor broke
off abruptly, her eyes suddenly widening.
"Your
Grace?" Brigham asked sharply.
"Sidemore,"
Honor said. "They're taking a page from Sidemore!"
Brigham
looked blank for a moment, then inhaled deeply.
"They'd
have to have accurately predicted our objectives," she said.
"No
reason they couldn't have," Honor replied almost absently, eyes intent as
she stared into the depths of her tactical plot. "Not in a general sense,
at least. Deciding what sorts of targets we'd be likely to hit wouldn't be that
hard. Picking the exact, specific targets would probably come down to a
guessing game, but it looks like someone guessed right."
She looked
into the plot for a few more seconds, then turned away.
"Harper,
get me a priority link to Admiral Miklós!"
* * *
"Too
bad they didn't go for the cheese, Sir," Captain Marius Gozzi said as he
and Javier Giscard watched the master plot aboard RHNS Sovereign of Space.
"I
never figured there was more than one chance in three they would," Giscard
replied. "Still, it was worth a try."
He stood
back from the plot and folded his hands behind him while he thought. From the
reports of his own sensor platforms, it was very likely that one of those Manty
superdreadnoughts was Eighth Fleet's flagship. In which case, he was about to
sit down across the table from the best the Manties had.
But this
time I get to use my own cards, he
reminded himself. And they're marked.
The one
thing he wished he had was real-time intelligence on exactly what the Manties
were up to, but that simply wasn't possible. The Tarantula net could get
tactical information to him, but only by sending it aboard dispatch boats, and
he didn't have an unlimited supply of them. Nor could he send any of the boats
back after they'd reported to him, since the Manties would have been much too
likely to detect their hyper footprints when they translated back into
normal-space.
At least,
so far, the raiders appeared to be doing what he wanted them to do. He would
have preferred for them to take the "cheese," as Gozzi had called it.
If they'd decided the missile pods planted around Merlin indicated there was
something out there worth attacking, they might have divided their forces. Of
course, the real reason for the pods had been to provide background clutter to
hide the Tarantula platforms, because Shannon hadn't been able to get
the new FTL coms into something small enough to count on evading the notice of
Manty sensor arrays. But there'd always been the chance of killing multiple
birds with a single stone. And once they'd come in close enough to Merlin, they
would have been trapped inside the massive gas giant's own hyper limit, pinned
while his units closed in behind them. Still, as he'd told his chief of staff,
he'd never really had much confidence they would.
He checked
the time display. Four minutes until the next dispatch boat was due.
"Selma,
pass the preparatory signal for Ambush Three," he said.
"Aye,
Sir," Commander Selma Thackeray, his operations officer responded.
* * *
"Yes,
Your Grace?" Vice Admiral Samuel Miklós said as he appeared on Honor's com
display.
"It's
a trap, Samuel," Honor said flatly. The FTL com grav pulses meant there
was no light-speed lag in their conversation, and Miklós' eyes widened in
surprise. "I can't prove it—yet," she continued, "but I'm sure
of it. Get your carriers out. Go to Omega One."
It was
obvious from Miklós' expression that he wanted to ask her if she was certain
that was what she really wanted to do, but he didn't. He only nodded.
"Yes,
Your Grace. At once. And you?"
"And
we, Samuel, are going to have our hands full, I'm afraid," she said
grimly.
* * *
"Captain
Durand!"
"Yes,
Charles?" Durand turned quickly towards Bibeau.
"Sir,
their carriers just translated out!"
"Damn."
Durand
thought furiously for perhaps ten seconds. There could be a perfectly
innocent reason for the Manties to have suddenly decided to move their
carriers, but he didn't believe it for a moment. No. Somehow, they'd guessed
what was coming, and he suppressed a desire to swear yet again.
"Communications,
pass Lieutenant Bibeau's current sensor data on to Tarantula. Tell them
I recommend an immediate relay to Admiral Giscard."
* * *
The
dispatch boat one light-minute outside Merlin's orbit received the Durand's FTL
transmission, relayed to its light-speed communications arrays by the
Tarantula net, seventy-two seconds after it was transmitted. The boat's
computers updated, and it translated smoothly across the alpha wall. Javier
Giscard's task force was waiting exactly where it had been for the past week
and a half, and the dispatch boat quickly relayed the tactical update to his
flagship.
"Sir,
it looks like the Manties smelled a rat," Commander Thackeray reported.
"Their CLACs just translated out."
"Damn
it," Gozzi muttered, but Giscard only showed his teeth in a tight grin.
"Actually
catching them that far outside the limit would have been problematical, at
best, Marius," he said. "You know how hard it is a to plot a hyper
jump this short. And they weren't exactly likely to be sitting there with their
hyper generators off-line and their impeller nodes cold. Unless we'd translated
down right on top of them, they'd have had time to get into hyper before we
could range on them." He shrugged. "I'd figured we were going to lose
them from the moment the Manties left them behind. However," his grin
turned positively lupine, "if the carriers are gone, the LACs are stuck,
aren't they?"
He looked
at the updated plot for a few more seconds, then nodded decisively to himself.
"Selma,
execute Ambush Three."
* * *
"Oh, crap,"
Commander Harriman muttered.
"Talk
to me, Yolanda!" Raphael Cardones said quickly.
"CIC
reports multiple hyper footprints, Skipper," Imperator's tactical
officer reported harshly. "Three separate clusters—one dead astern of us
at three-zero-point-four million clicks, one at polar north, and one at polar
south. They've got us boxed, Sir."
Cardones
felt his jaw muscles clench as his own tactical plot updated with the new
icons.
Well, the
Old Lady's been warning us the Peeps were eventually going to get wise, he told himself. I could wish they hadn't gotten
quite this wise, though!
* * *
"It's
confirmed, Your Grace," Andrea Jaruwalski said. "Three separate
forces, a total of eighteen wallers and six CLACs, plus screening elements.
We're designating the Arthur detachment Bogey One, the task group to system
north is Bogey Two, the one to system south is Bogey Three, and the one astern
of us is Bogey Four."
"And
their units are evenly distributed between Two, Three, and Four?"
"That's
what it looks like, Your Grace."
"So,
three-to-one in wallers, at best," Mercedes Brigham said quietly, her expression
taut. "Nine-to-one if they manage to concentrate. Plus the older ships
in-system, of course!"
"If we
let them concentrate on us, we'll deserve whatever happens to us." Honor's
soprano was completely calm, almost detached.
The good
news was that the three ambushing task groups had clearly been waiting in place
in hyper, motionless relative to Solon. They'd come across the alpha wall with
an effectively zero velocity, and though they were accelerating hard at five
hundred and twenty-nine gravities, which meant their compensator safety margins
must be down to zero, it was going to take them time to build a vector, whereas
her own command was already up to over fourteen thousand kilometers per second.
Moreover, her maximum acceleration rate was higher than theirs, so the force
astern of them couldn't possibly overtake them unless they suffered drive
damage. The bad news was that they were only thirty million kilometers back . .
. and on low-powered settings, current-generation Havenite MDMs had a powered range
of almost sixty-one million kilometers from rest.
"Missile
defense, go to Plan Romeo," she said crisply. "Shift to formation
Charlie. Theo."
"Yes,
Your Grace?" Lieutenant Commander Kgari said instantly.
"We'll
break south," Honor told her staff astrogator. "Take us to military
power and plot me a course that bends us the maximum distance away from Bogey
One but maintains at least current separation from Bogey Four."
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am."
Kgari bent
over his console, and Honor returned her attention to the tactical plot,
watching the icons of her formation shift rapidly.
It won't be
long now, she thought.
* * *
"Sir,
we've got about the best targeting solutions we're going to get,"
Commander Thackeray reported. Giscard looked at her, and she met his gaze frankly.
"Our accuracy isn't going to be very good at such extended range,"
she said.
"Understood,
Selma. On the other hand, we've got a lot of missiles. Let's start getting them
into space. Fire Plan Baker."
"Aye,
Sir!"
"Missile
separation!" Andrea Jaruwalski announced. "I have multiple missile
separations. Range at launch three-zero-point-four-five million kilometers.
Time to attack range seven minutes!"
"Understood.
Do not return fire."
"Do
not return fire, aye, aye, Ma'am," Jaruwalski replied.
"Your
Grace, I have that course," Kgari said.
"Give
it to Andrea."
"Come
to two-niner-three, zero-zero-five at six-point-zero-one KPS squared,"
Kgari said.
"Two-niner-three,
zero-zero-five, six-point-zero-one KPS squared," Jaruwalski repeated, and
the task force altered course while the first salvo howled up its wake.
* * *
Each of
Javier Giscard six SD(P)s could roll six pods simultaneously, one pattern every
twelve seconds, and each pod contained ten missiles, each a bit larger than the
Royal Manticoran Navy's own first-generation MDMs. The range was extremely long
for accuracy, especially using Havenite fire control systems, so Giscard opted
for maximum density salvos, both to saturate the enemy's defenses and to give
him more possibilities of hits.
Each of his
ships deployed three patterns—a total of one hundred and eight pods—programmed
for staggered launch. And then, precisely on schedule, all of them launched and
sent a total of almost eleven hundred multi-drive missiles screaming up Task
Force 82's wake.
The range
at launch was 30,450,000 kilometers. Given the relative motion of the two
forces, actual flight distance was 36,757,440 kilometers. At that distance, and
an acceleration of 416.75 KPS2, the MDMs attained a velocity
relative to the primary of 175,034 KPS, which equated to an overtake velocity
against Task Force 82 of 152,925 KPS, or fifty-three percent of light-speed.
Thirty-six
seconds later, a second, identical salvo roared out of its pods.
And
thirty-six seconds after that, a third.
In the
space of six and a half minutes, eleven salvos—just under twelve thousand
missiles—went hurtling after Task Force 82.
In a
traditional engagement, the pursuing Republican superdreadnoughts would have
been able to fire only a handful of missiles from their bow-mounted chase
tubes. In an era of pod-layers, that limitation had long since disappeared, but
what remained true was that missiles closing from directly ahead or directly
astern faced the weakest defensive fire. There simply wasn't room to mount as
many point defense laser clusters and counter-missile tubes on a warship's ends
as on her broadside. The clusters mounted were the most powerful ones in her entire
armament, but there could be only a few of them. Telemetry links to
counter-missiles were also limited, and the fact that wedge itself offered no
protection against fire from those angles only made the situation worse.
And, of
course, just to make things even better from Task Force 82's perspective,
Havenite MDMs carried bigger and more powerful warheads as compensation for
their poorer accuracy and penetration aids.
* * *
"Why
aren't they returning fire?" Gozzi asked quietly.
"I
don't know," Giscard replied. "Maybe they don't want their own attack
birds' wedges interfering with their fire control. Besides, unless they want to
alter heading to open their broadsides, they can't have the control links to
manage a salvo dense enough to get through our point defense."
Gozzi
nodded, and Giscard turned his attention back to the plot. His hypothesis was
at least superficially logical, but deep inside, he didn't believe it himself.
* * *
Bogey
Four's first salvo's MDMs raced onward, crossing the vast gulf between the
ships which had launched them and their targets. Seventy lost lock and arced
off uselessly four minutes into their flight, due to a telemetry glitch. One
thousand and ten continued on course.
"Enemy
fire appears to be tracking in on Imperator and Intolerant,"
Jaruwalski reported tensely.
"Not
surprising, I suppose," Mercedes Brigham muttered.
"But
maybe not the smartest targeting," Honor replied calmly. Brigham looked at
her, and Honor shrugged. "I admit, it would pay the highest dividend if
they managed to knock out an alpha node on one of the superdreadnoughts, but
their defenses are a lot tougher than anyone else's, and given the geometry,
they'll have a long time to throw missiles at us. If I were in command over
there, I'd start with the battlecruisers, or maybe even the heavy
cruisers."
"Kill
the weaker platforms first and attrit our missile defenses," Brigham said.
"Exactly.
Each of them represents a smaller percentage of our total defensive capability,
but they'd be a lot easier to kill or cripple." Honor shrugged again.
"You could argue it either way, I suppose—go for the 'golden BB' on an
SD(P), or chew up the weaker escorts first. Personally, I'd have done it the
other way."
She stood
gazing into the master tactical plot, left hand resting on the corner of a
tactical rating's console, right hand slowly, gently stroking Nimitz's head,
and her expression was calm, thoughtful.
"Counter-missile
launch in . . . fifteen seconds," Jaruwalski announced.
* * *
The powered
range from rest for the Mark 31 counter-missile was 3,585,556 kilometers, with
a flight time of seventy-five seconds. Given the geometry of the engagement,
effective range at launch was over 12.5 million kilometers, and the defensive
missiles started to go out ninety seconds before the Havenite MDMs reached
standoff attack range of their targets. The Mod-2-XR counter missile launcher
had a cycle time of eight seconds, which meant there was time for eleven
launches per tube.
In the old
days—all of four T-years ago—that wouldn't have mattered all that much, since
the interference of the counter-missiles' own wedges would have blinded
follow-up launches. Even now, that would have been true of a Havenite ship,
although with the changes Shannon Foraker had made, any ship in a Havenite
formation could now "manage" any other ship's counter-missiles, as
long as both units had arranged the handoff prior to launch. That meant a
Republican formation with the same degree of separation between units as Task
Force 82 could have managed perhaps three times the number of counter-missiles
it once could have.
But the
Royal Manticoran Navy had added the Keyhole platforms to its bag of tricks.
Instead of
a half-dozen or a dozen counter-missiles per ship, they could bring the fire of
their entire broadside counter missile batteries to bear. They weren't
restricted to the telemetry links physically mounted on their after
hammerheads; they had sufficient links to control all of their
counter-missiles aboard each Keyhole, and each ship had two Keyholes
deployed. And as missile defense Plan Romeo rolled Honor's ships up on their
sides, those platforms gained sufficient "vertical" separation to see
past the interference of subsequent counter-missile salvos fired at far tighter
intervals than had ever before been possible.
They still
couldn't control eleven salvos . . . but they could control eight, and
each of those eight contained far more missiles than anyone else could have
managed.
Javier
Giscard's staff had anticipated no more than five CM launches, and they'd
allowed for an average of only ten counter-missiles per ship, for a total of
two hundred per launch. Their fire plans had been predicated on facing
somewhere around a thousand ship-launched CMs, and perhaps another thousand or
so from the Katanas.
What they
got was over seventy-two hundred from Honor's starships alone.
* * *
"My
God," Marius Gozzi said softly as the impeller signatures of their attack
missiles vanished under the swarm of Manty counter-missiles. "How in the
hell did they do that?"
"I
don't know," Giscard gritted, "but that's why they didn't
counter-launch MDMs. They figure their defenses can handle whatever we throw,
and the bastards are simply conserving their ammo!"
He glared
at the display, then looked up at Thackeray.
"Abort
Baker. We're going to need a lot heavier salvos to get through that."
He jerked
his head at the plot, where his second salvo had just disappeared as
tracelessly as the first.
"I
don't know if we can throw a dense enough salvo to get through it,
Sir," Thackeray said. Her expression was almost shocked, but her eyes were
intent, and it was obvious her brain was still working.
"Yes,
we can," Giscard told her flatly. "Here's what I want you to
do."
He
explained for a few seconds, and Thackeray nodded sharply when he finished.
"It'll
take me a little while to set it up, Sir."
"Understood.
Go."
Giscard
pointed at her console, and as she dived back into the tactical section, he
returned his attention to Gozzi.
"I
never counted on that level of defensive fire, either," he said. "But
I think it means we're going to have to change our plans for Deutscher."
"What
do you want him to do, Sir?"
"Their
new vector is going to take them within fifty million kilometers of Arthur.
Given that that's almost certainly Honor Harrington in command over there, I
don't expect them to peg any missiles at the civilian orbital platforms as they
go by. Of course, it may not be her, or I could be wrong about what
she's going to do. At any rate, we're not going to be able to prevent her from passing
that close. But given that, I don't want Deutscher getting any closer to her
than he has to. Besides, if he stops accelerating now, he'll have extra time to
build his own side of the trap."
"I
understand, Sir."
* * *
"Your
Grace, they've ceased fire!" Andrea Jaruwalski reported jubilantly.
"No,
they haven't," Honor replied quietly. Jaruwalski looked at her, and Honor
smiled thinly. "What they're doing over there right this minute, Andrea,
is deploying a lot more pods. I'd guess they'll probably roll at least ten or
twelve patterns each. Sequencing that many launches for a simultaneous time on
target will be complicated, but not all that difficult."
"You're
probably right, Your Grace," Jaruwalski conceded after only a moment's
thought. "It's the obvious counter, now that you've pointed it out."
"So
the next salvo is going to be just a bit more difficult to kill. In which
case," Honor said grimly, "it may be time to distract them just a
bit. I want the battlecruisers held in reserve—they don't have enough ammo
capacity to use up pods at this range—but Imperator and Intolerant will
engage the enemy. Pick one superdreadnought and pound it, Andrea."
"Aye, aye,
Ma'am!"
"Admiral,"
one of Jaruwalski's ratings said, "Bogey One just killed its
acceleration."
"I expected
that," Honor said. "Bogey One was never strong enough to fight us. I
suspect the only reason it headed towards us in the first place was to
contribute to the impression of a system defense force that was thoroughly
uncoordinated and panicked. Now that the trap's been sprung, they're not going
to want to get any closer to us than they can help."
* * *
"We're
ready, Admiral," Selma Thackeray said.
"Very
well. Execute."
Javier
Giscard's task group abruptly altered heading by ninety degrees, bringing its
broadsides to bear on Task Force 82. The maneuver cut their acceleration
towards the Manticoran ships to zero. But their relative velocity was losing
ground steadily, anyway, and the turn also brought all of their broadside fire
control to bear. Which meant they had many times as many control links as
they'd had before. He was effectively conceding the pursuit in order to
maximize his chances of crippling one or more of his foes.
"Missile
launch!" Thackeray's assistant operations officer barked suddenly.
"We have multiple missile separations, Admiral! Range at launch
three-niner-point-four-oh-four million kilometers! Time to attack range
seven-point-six minutes!"
"Well,
that wasn't exactly unexpected," Giscard said, just a bit more calmly than
he actually felt. "They've figured out what we're up to, and they want to
force us to 'use them, or lose them.'"
"Launching
now, Sir!" Thackeray said, and Giscard nodded.
* * *
"So,
they have a few new wrinkles of their own," Honor observed.
Selma
Thackeray had spent the last six minutes deploying missile pods. In that time,
she'd positioned 1,080 of them. Now she launched all of them
simultaneously.
The next
best thing to eleven thousand MDMs hurled themselves at Task Force 82. Given
their lower acceleration rate, and the fact that TF 82 was continuing to
accelerate away from them, their flight time would be twenty-five seconds
longer than TF 82's, and their closing velocity would be almost nine thousand
KPS lower when they arrived, but what they lacked in performance, they more
than made up in sheer numbers.
They
couldn't possibly have enough control links to manage that many missiles
simultaneously, Honor thought. But the way the individual components of the
enormous salvo were spreading out and separating, it looked as if they'd come
up with a data sharing approach similar to that of the Alliance. If she was
right, their control circuits were bouncing back and forth between individual sub
flights of missiles, which was going to cost them even more in accuracy. But
given the size of the attack wave it made possible, they probably figured the
new technique was well worth it.
And they're
probably right about that, too, she told
herself.
"All
units, Missile Defense Sierra!" Jaruwalski snapped. "Carter, stay on
the attack birds!"
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am!" one of her assistants replied, and Jaruwalski turned
her full attention to the defensive engagement.
* * *
"We
have a probable total of two hundred and eighty-eight incoming in each salvo,
Sir," Thackeray reported.
Giscard
nodded in understanding. Given the greater capacity per pods the Manties
appeared to be getting out of their new, downsized MDMs, Thackeray's estimate
worked out to a double pattern from each of the Manty superdreadnoughts. Of
course, given the fiendishly capable EW capabilities of Manty missile
penetration aids, an accurate count of the incoming was a virtual
impossibility. Still, the interval between salvos—twenty-four seconds—accorded
well with Thackeray's estimate.
"Get
the Cimeterres into position," he said.
"Aye,
Sir," Thackeray replied, and he heard her coaching the escorting LACs into
positions from which their counter-missiles and laser clusters could engage the
incoming warheads without fouling Thackeray's telemetry to her own attack
birds.
* * *
"They're
moving their LACs in to intercept," Lieutenant Carter announced, his voice
a bit hoarse.
Despite his
superb instrumentation, he himself had absolutely no control over the attack.
He was simply monitoring it for Honor while the tac officers of the individual
ships executed the instructions Jaruwalski had already transmitted, and he was
very young.
"It's
to be expected," Honor told him quietly. She stood behind Jaruwalski, watching
the ops officer's plot as the incredible Havenite missile storm roared towards
her command. "Just take it as it comes, Jeff."
"Yes,
Your Grace."
Carter drew
a deep breath and settled himself in his chair, and Honor reached out to rest
her right hand lightly on his shoulder for a moment. But even as she did, her
eyes stayed on Jaruwalski's plot.
ONI
estimated that the latest Havenite SD(P)s carried approximately the same number
of missile pods as a Medusa-class. Assuming that was accurate, then each
of the six superdreadnoughts pursuing her task force carried five hundred pods.
They'd expended at least a hundred and sixty each in the first exchange, and
there had to be at least a thousand pods in this monster salvo. That came to a
total of somewhere around two thousand. So, if the six of them carried three
thousand pods between them, that meant they'd have expended two thirds of their
total ammunition allotment by the time these missiles arrived.
They can't
sustain this level of fire, she told
herself. On the other hand, if they get through with enough of it this time
around, it may not matter.
"They're
targeting the battlecruisers this time, too, Your Grace," Brigham said
softly, and Honor nodded curtly. They weren't ignoring the superdreadnoughts,
but they'd clearly devoted at least some of their total fire to Henke's
battlecruisers.
* * *
"Here
it comes," someone said.
The voice
was low, and Giscard didn't recognize it. Nor did he try to. He doubted whoever
it was realized he'd spoken aloud, anyway.
Not that
anyone had required the announcement.
The first
Manticoran salvo streaked into his task group's teeth, and it was obvious the
Manties had concentrated everything on a single target.
* * *
Task Force
82's missiles roared down on the superdreadnought RHNS Conquete. There
were, in fact, two hundred and forty attack missiles and forty-eight EW platforms
in the lead salvo. Half of the EW birds were Dragons' Teeth, and as they
entered Bogie Four's counter-missile envelope, they suddenly appeared on the
Havenite tracking displays as two hundred and forty additional attack missiles.
Counter-missiles which had been locked onto them suffered massive confusion as
their targets abruptly shoaled into literally dozens of false images. Other
counter-missiles, which had been earmarked for genuine threats, diverted to the
new targets, spending themselves uselessly.
Fourteen of
the Dragons' Teeth survived to cross the first interception zone. Six of them
survived to cross the second interception zone. Two of them made it half way
across the inner counter-missile zone. But before the last of them was
destroyed, they'd carried a hundred and fifty-six attack missiles and fourteen
Dazzler EW platforms with them.
Laser
clusters tracked onto the surviving Manticoran missiles, but those missiles
were closing at sixty-two percent of light-speed. Each cluster had an effective
range of 150,000 kilometers, but Manticoran MDMs had a standoff attack range of
40,000 kilometers . . . and it took them barely half a second to cross the
intervening 110,000 kilometers. There were literally thousands of laser
clusters aboard the superdreadnoughts and their escorting Cimeterres,
but they got at most one shot each.
And just
before they fired, the fourteen surviving Dazzlers erupted in bursts of jamming
that blinded sensors searching desperately for targets.
Despite
everything the superior Manticoran EW could do, Shannon Forkner's defensive
doctrine worked. Not as well as a Manticoran defense might have, perhaps, but
sheer volume of firepower still made itself felt. Of the two hundred and forty
attack missiles in the salvo, only eight survived to attack range.
Two of them
detonated late, wasting their power on the roof of Conquete's
impenetrable impeller wedge. The other six detonated between fifteen and twenty
thousand kilometers off the ship's port bow, and massive bomb-pumped lasers punched
brutally through her sidewall.
Alarms
howled as Conquete shuddered in anguish. Five point defense clusters,
two counter-missile tubes, and three graser mounts, blew apart. Beta Nodes One,
Three, and Five; Radar One; Gravitic One; and three of her fire control
telemetry arrays were blotted away. Fifty-one members of her crew were killed,
another eighteen were badly wounded, and splinters of armor—some the size of a
pinnace—blasted away from her hull. But for all the horrific power of those
hits, the damage was actually minor. Superdreadnoughts were designed and built
to survive the most savage punishment imaginable, and Conquete went
right on rolling missile pods.
* * *
"It
looks like we got at least a couple of hits through, Your Grace,"
Lieutenant Carter reported. "It's hard to be certain at this range, even
with the remote arrays, but CIC feels fairly confident."
"Good,"
Honor said. "Good."
"And
here comes the response," Brigham said grimly. "What was that old
wet-navy saying you told me about, Your Grace? 'For what we are about to
receive—'?"
"'May
we be truly thankful,'" Honor finished without looking away from the plot.
"That's
it," Brigham agreed, and then the MDMs were upon them.
It was the
Republic's turn, and the tsunami of missiles crashed into Task Force 82's outer
counter-missile zone. Havenite EW might not be as good as the RMN's, but it did
its best, and that best was much better than it once had been.
Almost
eleven thousand MDMs had been launched. Six hundred and seventeen had simply
become lost and wandered away as Bogie Four's fire control strained to meet the
demands placed on it. The remaining 10,183 continued to charge forward as the
Mark 31s came to meet them. Twenty-six hundred of them died in the outer
interception zone. Another three thousand two hundred died in the intermediate
zone, and the Mark 31s killed another two thousand nine hundred in the inner
zone. But then it was their turn to slash across the laser clusters'
engagement envelope in less than a second, and there were still 1,472 of them
left. Two hundred were EW platforms, and the targeting solutions of the other
twelve hundred were far poorer than Task Force 82's had been, but there were a
great many of them.
The
last-ditch lasers aboard the warships and their escorting LACs killed over nine
hundred. Of the three hundred and seventy-two surviving attack missiles, a
hundred and three wasted themselves uselessly against their targets' impeller
wedges. Of the other two hundred and sixty-nine, a hundred and seventy-two attacked
the two superdreadnoughts, and Imperator and Intolerant heaved as
lasers ripped into them. Their sidewalls intercepted and blunted most of the
lasers, but it was the turn of Manticoran armor to shatter under the pounding.
Imperator emerged with relatively minor damage, including the loss
of three grasers and half a dozen laser clusters, but Intolerant
staggered as dozens of hits hammered her thick, multi-ply armor. Huge splinters
of it blew away, energy mounts and laser clusters were wiped out, and
communication and fire control emitters, radar and gravitic arrays shattered.
She bucked in agony under the pounding . . . and then a final, freak hit ripped
straight into the gaping missile hatch in the center of her after hammerhead.
Rear
Admiral Morowtiz's flagship rocked as the powerful energy blast smashed forward
along the unarmored, open central core of a pod-layer. Hundreds of missile pods
were wrecked, turned into twisted and shattered alloy and wreckage. The missile
handling rails were torn apart, and over thirty of her crew were killed.
Yet
terrible as the damage was, BuShips had considered the possibility of just such
a hit. Unlike the original Medusa/Harrington-class SD(P)s, the
Invictus-class had been built from the beginning with a double-sided core
hull wrapped around its hollow center, and the walls of her central missile
well were armored almost as heavily as her flanks. The cofferdamming and
compartmentalization weren't as deep, but they were far deeper than in the
earlier classes, and the additional defenses proved their worth as a ring of
vaporized and splintered alloy blasted back out of the shattered missile hatch,
for the ship survived. Not only survived, but maintained her maximum
acceleration while her antimissile defenses continued to engage the last of the
incoming MDMs.
* * *
"Your
Grace, Intolerant's lost her entire offensive missile armament and both
Keyholes," Jaruwalski said in a tight voice. "Casualties are heavy,
and her flag bridge took a heavy hit. Sounds like something blew back through
CIC. Admiral Morowitz and most of his staff are down." She shook her head.
"It doesn't sound good for the Admiral, Ma'am."
"Understood,"
Honor said quietly.
"Star
Ranger also took a beating," Jaruwalski continued. "She's still
combat capable, but she's already confirmed sixty-two dead, and her starboard
sidewall is at less than half strength forward.
"Aside
from that, the only other damage is to Ajax." Honor's expression didn't
even flicker, but a cold fist seemed to touch her heart, and she looked quickly
for the sidebar on Henke's flagship. "It's relatively minor,"
Jaruwalski went on. "She's got half a dozen wounded, only a couple of them
seriously, and she's lost one graser and two point defense clusters out of her
port broadside."
"Understood,"
Honor said again. She looked at Lieutenant Brantley.
"Harper,
inform Captain Cardones that Admiral Morowitz is down and that I'm assuming
tactical control of the division for now."
"Aye,
aye, Your Grace."
"Andrea,"
Honor turned back to Jaruwalski, "drop the LACs back. With Intolerant's
damage, we'll need the Ferrets and the Katanas' Vipers.
* * *
Task Force
82's second wave of MDMs roared in on Bogey Four. Counter-missiles streamed to
meet them, Dragons Teeth spawned, targets proliferated, Dazzlers flared,
counter-missile and MDM impeller wedges vanished in mutual self-destruction.
And then the surviving attackers hurled themselves once again upon Conquete.
"Multiple
hits aft!" Conquete's captain listened to his senior engineering
officer's report from Damage Control Central. "Heavy damage between frames
one-zero-niner-seven and two-zero-one-eight. Graser Forty's gone—just gone;
there's a hole you could park a fucking pinnace in where it used to be, and it
looks like hundred percent casualties on the mount. Forty-Two's out of the fire
control net, as well, and Sidewall Ten and Eleven are toast. We've got a core
hull breach at frame two-zero-zero-six, I've lost at least three more laser
clusters, and they just took two beta nodes out of the after ring."
"Do
what you can, Stew," the captain replied, looking at the scarlet-splashed
damage control schematic on one of his secondary plots.
"We're
on it," the engineer replied, and the captain nodded to himself.
Conquete was hurt, no question about it, and he knew the pain of the people
he'd just lost was waiting for him. But she was still combat capable, and that
was what really mattered.
* * *
"Conquete
reports moderate damage," Marius Gozzi told Giscard. "Captain
Fredericks says she's still combat capable, but he's rolling ship to pull his
starboard sidewall away from the Manties."
"Good,"
Giscard replied, never looking away from the main tactical plot. He didn't like
the fact that the Manties had managed to hit Conquete that hard with
only two salvos, but Fredericks was a solid, reliable CO. And by simply rolling
ship rather than delaying to ask permission, he was showing the sort of
intelligent initiative Giscard, Tourville, and Thomas Theisman had worked so
hard to create.
The
thoughts ran through the back of Giscard's mind, but virtually all of his
attention was focused on the plot as he waited for the light-speed report on
what his first huge salvo had accomplished.
"Sir,
we're showing hits on multiple enemy units!" Selma Thackeray said
suddenly, her voice jubilant, and Giscard's eyes narrowed as the same results
appeared on the plot's sidebars.
"Hits
on both SDs and at least two of the cruisers," Thackeray continued,
listening to CIC's verbal report over her earbug. "And . . . ."
She paused,
listening intently, then turned her head to look directly at Giscard.
"Sir,
the platforms confirm major damage to one of the SD(P)s!"
"Good
work!" Giscard replied, but his pleasure at the report was not unalloyed.
The third Manty MDM launch was coming in, and he watched the missiles slashing
in on Conquete.
* * *
"At
least five more hits, Your Grace," Jaruwalski reported. "Her wedge
strength is dropping, and her point defense is weakening."
"Which
would be nice, if we still had the missiles to pound her with," Mercedes
Brigham said quietly to Honor. Honor glanced at her, and the chief of staff
bobbed her head in Jaruwalski's direction. "Do you want to use the
Agamemnons to make up for Intolerant's pods?" she asked.
"No."
Honor shook her head, watching Giscard's second stupendous missile wave
overtake her ships from astern. "This has to be the last launch this size
they can manage. They've shot themselves dry to manage this kind of density,
and I won't do the same thing with Mike's battlecruisers just to try to kill a
ship that can't shoot at us anymore, anyway. Not when we may need them worse
shortly."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
The
attacking MDMs came sweeping in, like a comber rearing higher as it neared the
beach, and Mark 31s, Vipers, and standard LAC counter-missiles from the Ferrets,
slashed into it. The loss of Intolerant's Keyhole platforms weakened the
defensive umbrella significantly, but the time the Havenites' needed to
"stack" patterns had increased the interval between salvos enough for
Honor's LACs to drop back and take up optimum intercept positions astern of her
starships.
Several
dozen MDMs lost lock on their programmed targets as the LACs' impeller
signatures cluttered the range. They quested for replacements, obedient to
their onboard programming, and twenty-six of them found LACs. Nineteen of them
got through, and seven Shrikes, nine Ferrets and three Katanas—along
with the hundred and ninety men and women aboard them—died.
Thirty-seven
other MDMs got through everything Task Force 82 could throw at them. Six of the
leakers were EW platforms; the other thirty-one streaked in on Imperator
and Intolerant.
* * *
"Four
hits starboard aft," Commander Thompson reported to Rafe Cardones from
Damage Control. "Two more midships, about frame niner-six-five. Graser
Twenty-Three's out of the net, but the mount's undamaged; it's prepared to fire
in local control. No major penetrations and no personnel casualties, but we've
lost a couple of laser clusters from the after starboard quadrant, and we're
down one beta node from the after ring. I think I can get the node back in
about twenty minutes, but I could be wrong."
"Do
what you can, Glenn," Cardones said, but his attention was on a secondary
display. His own ship's wounds were minor, superficial, at worst. The same
couldn't be said for Intolerant.
* * *
"Intolerant
reports loss of her entire starboard sidewall aft of midships, Your Grace. She
has at least three core hull breaches, and one fusion plant's off-line. Her
shipboard fire control and point defense are seriously compromised."
Honor
nodded, keeping her expression calm as she listened to Jaruwalski's report.
"Harper,
get me Captain Sharif."
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am."
"Captain,"
Honor said, moments later as Captain James Sharif appeared on her com display.
"Your
Grace." Sharif's face was taut, but his expression and voice were under
firm control.
"How
bad is it over there, James?"
"Honestly?"
Sharif shrugged. "Not good, Your Grace. I've got serious personnel
casualties, and Engineering's lost about twenty-five percent of its damage
control remotes—almost a hundred percent in the missile core. Our compensator's
undamaged, and we've got enough node redundancy to maintain military power, but
our offensive combat capability outside energy range is shot. And I'm afraid
our missile defense pretty much sucks right now."
"That's
what I was afraid of." Honor glanced at the astrogation display, then
looked back at Sharif. "We've run out of Bogey Four's MDM range, and on
our present heading, we'll just scrape by outside Bogey Three's envelope. But
that's going to take us within range of the pods they've got deployed around
Arthur in about another fourteen minutes. How much missile defense can you
restore in that much time?"
"Not a
lot," Sharif said grimly. "We've lost both Keyholes. I don't think we
can get either of them back this side of an all-up shipyard visit, Your Grace,
and we still have a major fire in secondary fire control. My shipboard control
links to starboard have taken a real beating, too. We're mostly intact to port,
so as long as I can keep that side of the ship towards the threat, we'll be
able to control three or four CM salvos, but, at best, I figure we'll be at
maybe forty percent of design missile defense capability."
"Do
what you can," she said. "Go ahead and roll ship now. I'll try to
adjust the formation to give you a little more cover."
"Thank
you, Your Grace." Sharif smiled tightly. "I'm glad you're thinking
about us."
"Take
care, James," Honor replied. "Clear."
She looked
over her shoulder at Lieutenant Brantley.
"Admiral
Henke, Harper," she said.
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am."
Less than
ten seconds later, Michelle Henke's face had replaced Sharif's on the com
display.
"Mike,"
Honor began without preamble, "Intolerant's in trouble. Her missile
defense is way below par, and we're headed into the planetary pods' envelope. I
know Ajax's taken a few licks of her own, but I want your squadron moved
out on our flank. I need to interpose your point defense between Intolerant
and Arthur. Are you in shape for that?"
"Of
course we are." Henke nodded vigorously. "Ajax's the only one
who's been kissed, and our damage is all pretty much superficial. None of it'll
have any effect on our missile defense."
"Good!
Andrea and I will shift the LACs as well, but they've expended a lot of CMs
against those two monster launches from Bogey Four." Honor shook her head.
"I didn't think they could stack that many pods without completely
saturating their own fire control. It looks like we're going to have to rethink
a few things."
"That's
the nature of the beast, isn't it?" Henke responded with a shrug. "We
live and learn."
"Those
of us fortunate enough to survive," Honor agreed, just a bit grimly. Then
she gave herself a little shake. "All right, Mike. Get your people moving.
Clear."
* * *
"They're
shifting formation, Admiral," Selma Thackeray reported. "It looks
like they're moving their battlecruisers between their damaged superdreadnought
and Arthur."
"Sounds
like we got a pretty good piece of her, Sir," Gozzi observed.
"I'd
have preferred a better one," Giscard said, his eyes on the damage control
report from Conquete scrolling up his display.
Despite the
disparity in firepower, the Manties' stubborn concentration on a single target
had paid them dividends. Conquete was the only one of Giscard's ships
they'd damaged, but they'd hammered her severely. Her max acceleration was down
by almost twenty-two percent, her point defense had been significantly degraded,
she had over two hundred casualties, and like all Giscard's SD(P)s, she'd
effectively exhausted her offensive missile capacity.
But
superdreadnoughts were tough, and the Republic's damage control capabilities
had improved dramatically over the past few years. Conquete might be
hurt, but she would still have been combat capable . . . if there'd been any
one in range for her to fight.
"Their
present course is going to carry them clear of Sewall, isn't it, Marius?"
he asked after a moment.
"Yes,
Sir, I'm afraid it is," Gozzi replied. Rear Admiral Hildegard Sewall
commanded the Republican task group closing in from system south. "Not by
very much, though," the chief of staff continued. "If Deutscher
manages to inflict more impeller damage, I think she'll probably be able to
bring them into her engagement envelope."
"And
with one of their superdreadnoughts already beat up on." Giscard nodded.
"Well, I suppose it's all up to Deutscher, then."
Additional
damage reports came in over the next several minutes, and Honor settled back in
her command chair as she digested them. Intolerant's damages were the
worst, and from the medical reports, it sounded very much as if Alistair McKeon
was going to require a new CO for his battle squadron's first division. Honor
had never gotten to know Allen Morowitz as well as she would have liked . . .
and it didn't look as if she would ever have the chance to.
Star Ranger was the next most badly damaged. Her personnel
casualties were even worse than Intolerant's, but that was
largely because she was one of the older, manpower-intensive Star Knight-class
ships. From the her reports, her people seemed to have things under control,
but she, too, was going to require an extensive shipyard stay. Given her age, and
how long repairs were likely to take, it was probable BuShips would simply
write her off, but at least Honor should be able to get her home.
Ajax's damage was much less severe. Assuming nothing else
happened to her, her repairs should be both routine and rapid.
Taken
altogether, things could have been far worse, she told herself. She'd allowed
her task force to be mousetrapped, and the fact that the Havenites had used a
variant of her own Sidemore tactics to do it lent it an additional sting. But
the thing which had made it effective at Sidemore was the same thing which had
made it equally effective here: no one in normal-space could "see"
into hyper-space to detect units there. And at least she'd gotten the carriers
clear before the bad guys dropped in on her.
"Is
Rifleman still clear, Mercedes?" she asked looking up from the damage
reports.
"As
far as we can tell, they don't haven't a clue where she is," Brigham
replied.
"Good.
But tell her to stay where she is until we clear the hyper limit." Brigham
looked a question at her, and Honor smiled thinly. "Whoever's in charge on
the other side has already demonstrated she's pretty good. At the moment, it
looks like all her available units, aside from Bogey Four, are still
accelerating in-system. They probably hope we'll take enough lumps from the
Arthur pods to slow us down, let them overhaul. But if I were in command
on the other side, and if I had enough hulls for it, I'd have at least one more
task group waiting in hyper."
"To
drop just outside the limit, right in our faces just when we think we're about
to get away clean," Brigham said.
"Exactly.
Mind you, I think the odds are good that they've committed everything they have
already, but let's make sure before Rifleman hypers out to tell Samuel
where to pick up his LACs."
"Yes,
Your Grace. I'll see to it."
* * *
"Is
Moriarty ready?" Rear Admiral Emile Deutscher asked his chief of staff.
"Yes,
Sir," the chief of staff replied.
"Good."
Deutscher returned his attention to his tactical display. His two obsolete
wallers had almost certainly been completely dismissed by the Manties as a
threat. And, by and large, the Manties would have been correct about that.
After all, at this range, without pods on tow, they couldn't possibly have a
weapon with the range to reach them.
But the
superdreadnoughts' real purpose, from the beginning, had simply been to attract
the Manties' attention away from the real threat.
"Sir?"
Deutscher
looked back up at his chief of staff.
"Yes?"
"Sir,
why did Admiral Foraker call it 'Moriarty'? I've been trying to figure it out
for weeks now."
"I
don't really know," Deutscher admitted. "I asked Admiral Giscard the
same question. He said one of Admiral Foraker's staffers had introduced her to
some old, pre-space fiction. 'Detective stories,' he called them. Apparently
this 'Moriarty' was some kind of mastermind character in one of them." He
shrugged.
"Mastermind,"
the chief of staff repeated, then chuckled. "Well, I guess that does make
sense, in a way, doesn't it?"
* * *
"We'll
be entering the estimated range of Arthur's pods in another forty-five seconds,
Your Grace," Jaruwalski said.
"Thank
you." Honor turned her command chair to face the Ops officer. "Remind
all of our tac officers of that."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
* * *
"They're
entering range now, Sir."
"Thank
you," Deutscher said. "Send the execute."
"Aye,
Sir!"
* * *
"Missile
launch! Multiple missile launches, multiple sources!"
Honor
snapped her command chair back around, staring at the master plot at
Jaruwalski's sudden sharp announcement.
"Estimate
seventeen thousand—I say again, one-seven thousand—inbound!
Time to attack range, seven-point-one minutes!"
For just a
moment, Honor's brain flatly refused to believe the numbers. Their scout ships'
arrays had detected only four hundred pods in orbit around Arthur. The maximum
number of missiles aboard them should only have been four thousand!
Her eyes
darted across the plot, and then flared wide in sudden understanding. The
others—all the others—were coming from the nine ships of Bogey One.
Which was flatly impossible. Two superdreadnoughts and seven battlecruisers
couldn't possibly have fired or controlled that many missiles, even if they'd
all been pod designs! But—
"Where
the hell did they all come from?" Brigham demanded, and Honor looked at
her.
"The
battlecruisers," she said, her mind going back to the Battle of Hancock.
"Battlecruisers?"
Brigham looked incredulous, and Honor chuckled without any humor at all.
"They
aren't battlecruisers, Mercedes; they're minelayers. The Havenites build their
fast fleet minelayers on battlecruiser hulls, just like we do. And we were so
busy worrying about superdreadnoughts and pod-layers it never occurred to us to
look closely at the 'battlecruisers.' So they've been sitting there, ever since
they stopped accelerating, doing nothing but lay pods."
"Jesus!"
Brigham murmured softly, and it was a prayer, not an imprecation. Then she drew
a deep breath. "Well, at least they can't have the fire control to handle
it all!"
"Don't
bet on it," Honor said grimly. "They wouldn't have gone to all the
trouble of setting this up if they hadn't figured they could actually hit
something with it after they did."
* * *
"Moriarty
confirms control, Sir."
"Good,"
Deutscher said, and sat back with a hungry smile.
* * *
"Engage
Bogey One!" Honor snapped.
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am," Jaruwalski responded. "Should I use the Agamemnons,
too?"
"Yes,"
Honor replied. "Gamma sequence."
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am," Jaruwalski repeated, and began issuing orders over the task
force's tactical net.
Given the
geometry—the effective closing speed between TF 82 and the launch platforms was
almost thirty-six thousand KPS—the battlecruisers' Mark 16 MDMs, with one less
"stage" than Imperator's larger missiles, had a maximum
powered range of forty-two million kilometers. But the range was over
fifty-three million, which meant the Mark 16s would have to coast ballistically
for eleven million kilometers between stage activations. That would add an
additional minute and a half to their flight time, bringing it to a total of
thirteen and a half minutes, whereas Imperator's more powerful missiles
could make the entire run under power, in only seven. Moreover, the smaller
missiles' closing speed relative to their targets would be over twenty thousand
KPS lower.
But by
using the gamma sequence she and Jaruwalski had worked out months ago,
Imperator would roll her first half dozen patterns with missile settings
which duplicated those of the Mark 16s. The Agamemnons would roll six
patterns each at the same rate, which would take seventy-two seconds, and those
six salvos—each of two hundred and seventy-six missiles—would make the crossing
at the Mark 16s' speed.
Only after
the smaller MDMs were away would Imperator begin firing full-power
patterns of her own, one double pattern every twenty-four seconds. The first of
her 120-strong salvos would arrive on target eight and a half minutes
after she first began rolling pods, five minutes before the battlecruisers'
fire.
* * *
In Arthur
orbit, the installation codenamed Moriarty came fully on-line for the first
time. It wasn't a very huge installation. In fact, it was no larger than a
heavy cruiser, and it had been transported in two prefabricated modules aboard
a fleet supply ship, then assembled in place in less than forty-eight hours.
As a
warship tonnages went, four hundred thousand wasn't a lot . . . unless all
of it was dedicated to fire control.
Moriarty
was Shannon Foraker's system defense answer to the individual inferiority of
the Republic's missile pods. The control station was a flat, light-drinking
black, constructed of radar absorbent materials. It was almost impossible to
detect, as long as it practiced strict emission-control discipline, and the
Manticoran recon arrays had missed it entirely.
Now it
reached out through the other innocent looking orbital platforms which
had been seeded about the system at the same time. Each of those platforms was,
in effect, a less capable, simpler minded version of the RMN's own Keyholes.
They formed a network, an expanding spray of tentacles, which gave Moriarty
literally thousands of fire control telemetry links. And what those links
lacked in Manticoran-style sophistication they made up in numbers, because they
could control the missiles assigned to them without break all the way to their
targets.
Moriarty
had only one real weakness, aside from the fact that if it had been
detected, killing it would have been relatively simple. That weakness was the
light-speed limitation on its telemetry. It simply couldn't provide real-time
corrections as its missiles raced down range. On the other hand, neither could
Honor's telemetry links. Aside from the superior seeking systems and more capable
AIs aboard the Manticoran missiles, the accuracy playing field had just been
leveled.
And the
Republic's salvo contained sixty-two times as many missiles as the largest salvo
TF 82 was firing.
* * *
"Get
on them! Get on them now!"
Captain
Amanda Brankovski, Samuel Miklós's senior COLAC, knew her people didn't need
any exhortations from her, but she couldn't help it. She watched the incredible
cyclone of missile icons streaking across her plot towards the task force, and
it seemed impossible that any of its ships could survive.
The five
LAC wings, arranged "above" and "below" the heavier ships
and fifty thousand kilometers closer to Arthur, belched an answering hurricane.
Vipers and standard counter-missiles began to launch from the LACs as Mark 31s
roared away from the starships, and incoming missiles began to vanish.
Brankovski
had five hundred and sixty LACs, one for every thirty attack missiles, and they
punched a steady stream of counter-missiles into their teeth. Tethered and
free-flying Ghost Rider decoys sang to the Republican MDMs' sensors. Dazzlers
were launched into their faces, exploding in bursts of blinding interference.
And Imperator and her consorts punched out wave after wave of Mark 31s.
The front
of the Republic's missile attack eroded under TF 82's defensive fire like a
cliff, crumbling under the assault of a stormy sea. But, like the cliff, it was
only the front of a far larger mass. Thousands of MDMs were killed, yet
more thousands remained, and Honor Harrington watched them reaching out for her
command.
* * *
Emile
Deutscher watched Moriarty's fire race towards the enemy. Even from here, he
could see that virtually none of the attack missiles were becoming lost in
midflight, as normally happened in MDM combat. All of them held their courses,
and he felt totally certain no defenses, not even the Manties', could stop
them.
Which left
the little problem of the fire coming at him.
* * *
It took the
massive attack seven minutes to reach Task Force 82. Of the seventeen thousand
missiles in the initial launch, only sixty lost their telemetry links and
self-destructed after wandering off course. The Mark 31s killed over three
thousand in the outermost intercept zone. In the middle zone, bolstered by the Katanas'
Vipers and the standard counter-missiles from the Shrikes and Ferrets,
they killed another four thousand. Jammers blinded another sixteen hundred
missiles as they tried to settle into final acquisition, and the incredible
cauldron of missile, starship, and LAC impeller wedges was too much for
Moriarty's arthritic light-speed telemetry to sort out any longer.
The
surviving eighty-three hundred MDMs dropped into autonomous mode as they hit
the inner counter-missile zone. Shipboard EW did its best to spoof and blind
the attackers, last-second decoy launches drew some of them astray, and a
seemingly solid wall of Mark 31s met them head on.
Four
thousand more MDMs were wiped out of space. Another eleven hundred fell prey to
decoys or jamming. Three hundred of the survivors were penetration-aid EW
platforms, without laser heads, and almost half the remaining twenty-nine
hundred lost lock and reacquired not starships, but the nearer, more readily
seen LACs. They streaked in to the attack, but Manticoran LACs were
extraordinarily difficult targets. "Only" two hundred and eleven of
them—and the twenty-one hundred of Honor's men and women aboard them—were
killed.
And then
the final sixteen hundred missiles attacked TF 82's starships, most of them
targeted on the two superdreadnoughts.
Only one
thing saved HMS Imperator, and that was the damage already inflicted on
Intolerant. Imperator's consort's defenses and electronic warfare
capability were simply far below par. She was both easier to see and easier to
hit. The near-sighted autonomous-mode MDMs mobbed her in huge numbers, ignoring
Imperator, and her last-ditch defenses weren't equal to the task of
protecting her.
Warhead
after warhead, literally hundreds of them, detonated in a hellish pattern of
strobes—bubbles of nuclear fusion spitting deadly harpoons of coherent
radiation that crashed through Intolerant's wavering sidewalls and
ripped deep, deep into her massively armored hull. Mike Henke's battlecruisers
did their best to beat that tide of destruction aside, but they simply lacked
the firepower, and they themselves were not immune from attack.
Honor clung
to the arms of her command chair, feeling Imperator shudder under the
pounding of her own hits, tasting Nimitz in the back of her brain, clinging to
her with all his fierce love and devotion as death thundered and bellowed about
their ship. Yet even as she did, her eyes were on the plot, watching the lethal
wave of fire washing over Intolerant.
No one
would ever know how many hits the superdreadnought took, but however many there
were, it was too many. They ripped into her again, and again, and again,
until, suddenly, she simply disappeared in the most brilliant, eye-tearing
flash of them all.
Nor did she
go alone. The light cruisers Fury, Buckler, and Atum
vanished from Honor's plot, as did the battlecruisers Priam and
Patrocles. The heavy cruisers Star Ranger and Blackstone were
reduced to crippled hulks, coasting onward ballistically without power or
drives. And HMS Ajax faltered suddenly as her entire after impeller ring
went down.
Imperator took over a dozen direct hits of her own, yet the
flagship's actual damage was incredibly light. Her thick armor shrugged off
most of the hits with little more than superficial cratering, and despite the
loss of half a dozen energy mounts, she remained fully combat capable.
Honor gazed
into the bitter ashes of her display, tasting the cruel irony of her flagship's
apparent inviolability as she saw the harrowed wreckage of the rest of her
command. Of the twenty starships and five hundred and sixty LACs she'd taken
across the hyper limit, only twelve starships, all but two of them damaged, and
three hundred and forty-nine LACs survived. And even as she watched, Ajax
and the heavy cruiser Necromancer were falling behind due to impeller
damage.
"Your
Grace," Andrea Jaruwalski said quietly. Honor looked at her. "The
remote arrays confirm the destruction of two of their minelayers and heavy
damage to one of their superdreadnoughts."
"Thank
you, Andrea." Honor was astounded by how calm, how normal, her own
voice sounded. It was a pathetic return for what the Havenites had done to her,
but she supposed it was better than nothing.
"Harper,"
she said, "get me a link to Admiral Henke."
"Yes,
Your Grace."
Several
seconds passed before Michelle Henke's strained face appeared on Honor's com.
"How
bad is it, Mike?" Honor asked as soon as she saw her friend.
"That's
an interesting question." Henke managed to produce at least the parody of
a smile. "Captain Hamilton and his exec are both dead, and things are . .
. a bit confused over here, just now. Our rails and pods are still intact, and
our fire control looks pretty good, but our point defense and energy armament
took a real beating. The worst of it seems to be the after impeller ring,
though. It's completely down."
"Can
you restore it?" Honor asked urgently.
"We're
working on it," Henke replied. "The good news is that the damage
appears to be in the control runs; the nodes themselves look like they're still
intact, including the alphas. The bad news is that we've got one hell of a lot
of structural damage aft, and just locating where the runs are broken is going
to be a copperplated bitch."
"Can
you get her out?"
"I
don't know," Henke admitted. "Frankly, it doesn't look good, but I'm
not prepared to just write her off yet. Besides," she managed another
smile, this one almost normal looking, "we can't abandon very well."
"What
do you mean?" Honor demanded.
"Both
boat bays are trashed, Honor. The Bosun says she thinks she can get the after
bay cleared, but it's going to take at least a half-hour. Without that—"
Henke shrugged, and Honor bit the inside of her lip so hard she tasted blood.
Without at
least one functional boat bay, small craft couldn't dock with Ajax to
take her crew off. There were emergency personnel locks, but trying to lift off
a significant percentage of her crew that way would take hours, and the
battlecruiser carried enough emergency life pods for little more than half her
total complement. There was no point carrying more, since only half her crew's
battle stations were close enough to the skin of the hull to make a life pod
practical.
And her
flag bridge was not among the stations which fell into that category.
"Mike,
I—"
Honor's
voice was frayed around the edge, and Henke shook her head quickly.
"Don't
say it," she said, almost gently. "If we get the wedge back, we can
probably play hide and seek with anything heavy enough to kill us. If we don't
get it back, we're not getting out. It's that simple, Honor. And you know as
well as I do that you can't hold the rest of the task force back to cover us.
Not with Bogey Three still closing. Even just hanging around for a half-hour
while we try to make repairs would bring you into their envelope, and your
missile defense has been shot to shit."
Honor wanted
to argue, to protest. To find some way to make it not true. But she couldn't,
and she looked her best friend straight in the eye.
"You're
right," she said quietly. "I wish you weren't, but you are."
"I
know." Henke's lips twitched again. "And at least we're in better
shape than Necromancer," she said almost whimsically,
"although I think her boat bays are at least intact."
"Well,
yes," Honor said, trying to match Henke's tone even as she wanted to weep,
"there is that minor difference. Rafe's coordinating the evacuation of her
personnel now."
"Good
for Rafe." Henke nodded.
"Break
north," Honor told her. "I'm going to drop our acceleration for about
fifteen minutes." Henke looked as if she were about to protest, but Honor
shook her head quickly. "Only fifteen minutes, Mike. If we go back to the
best acceleration we can sustain at that point and maintain heading, we'll
still scrape past Bogey Three at least eighty thousand kilometers outside its
powered missile range."
"That's
cutting it too close, Honor!" Henke said sharply.
"No,"
Honor said flatly, "it isn't, Admiral Henke. And not just because Ajax
is your ship. There are seven hundred and fifty other men and women aboard
her."
Henke
looked at her for a moment, then inhaled sharply and nodded.
"When
they see our accel drop, they'll have to act on the assumption Imperator
has enough impeller damage to slow the rest of the task force," Honor
continued. "Bogey Three should continue to pursue us on that basis.
If you can get the after ring back within the next forty-five minutes to an
hour, you should still be able to stay clear of Bogey Two, and Bogey One is
pretty much scrap metal at this point. But if you don't get it back—"
"If we
don't get it back, we can't get into hyper anyway," Henke interrupted her.
"I think it's the best we can do, Honor. Thank you."
Honor
wanted to scream at her friend for thanking her, but she only nodded.
"Give
Beth my best, just in case," Henke added.
"Do it
yourself," Honor shot back.
"I
will, of course," Henke said. Then, more softly, "Take care,
Honor."
"God
bless, Mike," Honor said equally quietly. "Clear."
The
communicator on her desk buzzed, and she looked up from the report and pressed
the acceptance key.
"Yes?"
"Your
Grace," Harper Brantley's voice said, "you have a message."
"What
is it?"
"We've
just been informed that the First Lord and First Space Lord are aboard the
midday shuttle flight, Your Grace. Their pinnace will dock with Imperator
in thirty-seven minutes."
"Thank
you, Harper."
Honor's
courteous voice was calm enough to fool anyone who didn't know her very well
indeed. Harper Brantley was one of those who did.
"You're
welcome, Your Grace," he said quietly, and cut the circuit.
Honor sat
back in her float chair, and Nimitz crooned comfortingly from his perch. She
looked up and smiled, acknowledging both his love and his effort to cheer her,
but they both knew he hadn't succeeded.
She looked
back at her terminal, and the latest in the merciless progression of reports
floating in its display. There was never an end to any Queen's officer's
paperwork, and she'd found that was even truer after a resounding defeat than
it was after a victory. In many ways, she was grateful. It gave her something to
do besides sitting in the stillness of her quarters, listening to her ghosts.
Nimitz
hopped down onto the desk and rose on his haunches, leaning forward to rest his
true-hands on her shoulders while the tip of his nose just touched hers. He
stared into her eyes, his own grass-green gaze as deep as the oceans of Sphinx
they had sailed together in her childhood, and she felt him deep inside her.
Felt his concern, and his scolding love as they both grappled with her sense of
guilt and loss.
She reached
out and folded her arms about him, holding him to her breasts while she buried
her face in his soft, soft fur, and his croon sang gently, gently through her.
* * *
Honor stood
in Imperator's boat bay, Andrew LaFollet at her shoulder, as the pinnace
settled into the docking arms. The green light glowed, the inner end of the
personnel tube opened, and the bosun's pipes shrilled as Major Lorenzetti's
Marine side party snapped to attention.
"First
Lord, arriving!" the intercom announced, and Hamish Alexander, Samantha on
his shoulder, swung himself through the tube first, as befitted his seniority
as Sir Thomas Caparelli's civilian superior.
"Permission
to come aboard, Captain?" he asked, as Rafe Cardones saluted.
"Permission
granted, My Lord."
"Thank
you." Hamish nodded and shook Cardones' proffered hand. Then he stepped
past the captain and his eyes met Honor's for just a moment before he held out
his hand to her. She shook it without speaking, her empathic sense clinging to
the concern and love in his mind-glow, acutely aware of all the other, watching
eyes, as the bay speakers spoke again.
"First
Space Lord, arriving!"
"Permission
to come aboard, Captain?" Sir Thomas Caparelli asked in the ancient
ritual.
"Permission
granted, Sir," Cardones gave the equally ritualistic response, and
Caparelli stepped across the painted line on the deck.
"My
Lord, Sir Thomas," Honor said in formal greeting as she released Hamish's
hand to shake Caparelli's in turn.
"Your
Grace," Caparelli replied for both of them, and Honor tasted his emotions,
as well. The anger she'd half dreaded and yet half desired was absent. Instead,
she tasted sympathy, concern, and something very like compassion. Part of her
was glad, but another part—the wounded part—was almost angry, as if he were
betraying her dead by not blaming her for their deaths. It was illogical and
unreasonable, and she knew it. And it didn't change her emotions one bit.
"Would
you and Earl White Haven care to join me in my quarters?"
"I
think that's an excellent idea, Your Grace," Caparelli said after only the
briefest glance at Hamish.
"In
that case, My Lords," Honor said, and waved her right hand at the waiting
lifts.
* * *
The short
journey to Honor's quarters was silent, without the casual small talk which
would normally have filled it. LaFollet peeled off outside the day cabin hatch,
and Honor waved her visitors through it.
She
followed them, and the hatch slid shut behind her.
"Welcome
to Imperator, My Lords," she began, then chopped off in
astonishment as Hamish turned and enfolded her in a fierce embrace. For just a
moment, conscious of Caparelli's presence, she started to resist. But then she
realized she tasted absolutely no surprise from the First Space Lord, and she
abandoned herself—briefly, at least—to the incredible comfort of her husband's
arms.
The embrace
lasted several seconds, and then Hamish stood back, his left hand on her right
shoulder, while his feather-gentle right hand brushed an errant strand of hair
from her forehead.
"It's
. . . good to see you, love," he said softly.
"And
you." Honor felt her lower lip try to quiver and called it sternly to
order. Then she looked past Hamish to Caparelli and managed a wry smile.
"And it's good to see you, too, Sir Thomas."
"Although
not, perhaps, quite as good, eh, Admiral Alexander-Harrington?"
"Oh,
dear." Honor inhaled and looked back and forth between the two men.
"Have we gone public while I was away, Hamish?"
"I
wouldn't put it quite that way," he replied. "A few people have
either figured it out or been informed because it's just so much simpler that
way. Thomas here falls into both categories. I informed him . . . and he'd
already figured it out. Essentially, at least."
"Your
Grace—Honor," Caparelli said with a crooked smile, "your relationship
with Hamish has to be one of the worst kept secrets in the history of the Royal
Manticoran Navy." Alarm flickered in her eyes, but he only chuckled.
"I might add, however, that I doubt very much that any Queen's officer
would breathe a word about it. If nothing else, he'd be terrified of what the
rest of us would do to him when we found out."
"Sir
Thomas," she began, "I—"
"You
don't have to explain anything to me, Honor," Caparelli cut her off.
"First, because I think Hamish is probably right where the Articles of War
are concerned. Second, because I've never seen any indication of your allowing
personal feelings to influence your actions. Third, because you've made it
crystal clear throughout your career that you have absolutely no interest in
playing the patronage game and relying on 'interest' to further that career.
And, fourth, and probably most importantly of all, the two of you—the three of
you—have damned well earned it."
Honor
closed her mouth, tasting the rock-ribbed sincerity behind his words. It was an
enormous relief, but she made herself bite off any thanks. Instead, she simply
waved for the two of them to be seated on the couch, then seated herself in one
of the facing armchairs.
Hamish
smiled faintly but said nothing as she deliberately separated the two of them
from one another. Samantha hopped down from his shoulder, and she and Nimitz
leapt up into the other armchair, curling down beside one another and purring
happily.
"I
imagine," Honor said after a moment, her mood darkening once more,
"that you've come out to discuss my fiasco."
Hamish's
expression never wavered, but she felt his internal wince at her choice of
noun.
"I
suppose that's one way to describe it," Caparelli said. "It's not the
one I would've chosen, however."
"I
don't see a better one." Honor knew she sounded bitter, but she couldn't
quite help it. "I lost half my superdreadnoughts, sixty percent of my
battlecruisers, half my heavy cruisers, thirty-eight percent of my light cruisers,
and over forty percent of my LACs. In return for which I managed to destroy two
minelayers and damage two superdreadnoughts, one of them a pre-pod relic. And
to inflict absolutely no damage on the system's infrastructure which was my
original objective." She smiled without a trace of humor. "That
sounds like the dictionary definition of a 'fiasco' to me."
"I'm
sure it does," Caparelli said calmly. "What struck me most
strongly, however, was how light your losses were, given what you sailed
into."
His raised
hand stopped her protest, and his eyes met hers levelly.
"I
know exactly what I'm talking about, Honor, so don't tell me I don't. You
walked into a carefully prepared ambush. I've reviewed your reports, and those
of your surviving captains, and the log recordings from your flag bridge and
from Imperator's tactical section. I reviewed them very carefully, and
whether you want to believe this or not, I also reviewed them very critically.
And, on the basis of what you knew, when you knew it, I can't see a
single thing you did wrong."
"What
about sailing directly into that last missile launch?" Honor challenged.
"If anyone should have seen that coming, I should have!"
"The
fact that you and Mark Sarnow used similar tactics at Hancock Station sixteen
T-years ago doesn't make you clairvoyant," Caparelli replied. "You did
realize they were coming in out of hyper behind you, and I doubt very much
most flag officers would have figured it out as quickly. And without knowing
the size of the salvos Bogey One could throw, your decision to stay away from a
force which outnumbered you three-to-one in ships of the wall was the only
reasonable one you could have made."
"And
what about abandoning Ajax?" Honor's voice was so low it was almost
a whisper.
"That,
too, was the proper decision, Your Grace," Caparelli said quietly. Honor
looked up, meeting his eyes once more, tasting his sincerity. "It was
hard. I know that. I know how close you and Admiral Henke were. But your
overriding responsibility was to the ships you could still get out, and with
the damage you'd already suffered, slowing to cover Ajax would have made
that impossible. If you'd been able to evacuate her personnel, that might have
been one thing. But you couldn't."
"But—"
Honor began, eyes burning, and Caparelli shook his head.
"Don't.
I've been there, too, and I know leaving people behind, however correct the
tactical decision may have been, always hurts. You always ask yourself if there
wasn't some way you could've gotten everyone out, and curse yourself at night
for not having found one. The fact that you and Countess Gold Peak were so
close, for so long, has to make that still worse, but I've come to know you.
Whether Michelle Henke had been aboard that ship or not, you'd still feel what
you're feeling right now."
Honor
blinked, then looked away for just a moment. He was right, and she knew it. And
yet, remembering Mike—
She closed
her eyes, her memory replaying the last she'd seen—the last she would ever see—of
Michelle Henke. She and her other survivors had gotten across the hyper limit,
with Bogey Two and Bogey Three in hot pursuit. Rifleman had performed
her part of Omega One by translating up into hyper to rejoin Samuel Miklós'
CLACs at the designated rendezvous once the task force's other survivors were
across the limit. And Miklós' squadron had executed a flawless micro-jump to
rendezvous with Honor's survivors, in turn. They'd gotten the surviving LACs
aboard the carriers and translated out less than fifteen minutes before Bogey
Three crossed the hyper limit after them, but that hadn't been soon enough to
prevent her from knowing what happened.
She wished
there'd been time for at least one last personal message, but Ajax's
communications section had taken massive damage in the first salvo Bogey Two
had fired into Henke's lamed flagship. There'd been no way to communicate—even
the remote sensor arrays had been too far away to see it clearly—but from the
sensor recordings, it looked as if Ajax had taken at least one battlecruiser
with her. The explosion when her own fusion plants let go, however, had been
far clearer.
"I
left her," she said softly. "I left her behind to die."
"Because
her drive was damaged," Caparelli said, deliberately misinterpreting the
pronoun's antecedent. "Because you had no choice. Because you were a fleet
commander, with a responsibility for the survival of the other ships under your
command. It was the right decision."
"Maybe."
Honor
looked back at him, and the First Space Lord cocked his head. She could taste
him accepting that that "maybe" was as close as she could yet come to
agreeing with him, and her mouth moved in an almost-smile.
"But
whether it was the right decision or not, I still got my backside kicked right
up between my ears and didn't take out my objective. Exactly what Eighth Fleet
wasn't supposed to have happen to it."
"It's
not given to us to simply command victory," Caparelli told her. "The
other side has an interest in winning, as well, you know. And when you're
consistently given the most difficult jobs to do, the chances of running into
something like you ran into at Solon go up rather steeply.
"As
for your failure to hit your objectives, yes, you did. Admiral Truman, on the
other hand, operating according to your plan, blew the Lorn shipyard, every bit
of its supporting industry, and every mobile unit in the system into scrap for
the loss of six LACs."
"I
know she did," Honor conceded. "And I also know our primary objective
was to force the Republic to redeploy, which—on the evidence of Solon—they've
certainly done. But I feel depressingly confident that the way this story is
going to be spun for their civilian population will dwell on how hard they hit my
task force, not how well Alice's did."
"I
think we can all safely depend upon that," Caparelli agreed.
"Especially since you've been the one blacking their eyes up until
now. The defeat of 'the Salamander'—and I agree that, however well you did to
salvage what you did, it was a defeat—is going to be page-one news in
every Peep 'fax. They're going to play it up to the max, exactly the way our
own 'faxes have been playing up Eighth Fleet's successes.
"Nor,
I'm afraid," he said, much more bleakly, his emotions suddenly far darker,
"is that the only thing they're going to have to play up."
"I beg
your pardon?"
Honor
looked at him, and he shrugged heavily.
"The
initial report came in this morning. Their Admiral Tourville is apparently back
from Marsh, and they've given him a new fleet to replace the one you trashed.
Units under his command hit Zanzibar about the same time you were attacking
Lorn and Solon."
Honor
inhaled sharply, looking back and forth between Caparelli and Hamish.
"How
bad was it?"
"About
as bad as it could have been," Hamish replied. She looked at him, and he
sighed. "He came in with four full battle squadrons of pod-layers, and
their battle squadrons are still eight ships strong. He also had a couple of
divisions of carriers and at least two battlecruiser squadrons to support them,
and although we'd reinforced heavily after Admiral al-Bakr's fiasco—and I use
the word deliberately," he added bitterly "—it wasn't heavily enough.
He hit the defenses like a hammer, and he started right out by sweeping the
asteroid belt with remote arrays of his own, followed by LAC strikes on our
pre-deployed pods. Not only that, he'd brought along fast colliers stuffed with
additional missile pods. He left them tucked away in hyper, came in just far
enough to draw our mobile units away from their own support bases, and engaged
them at long range until both sides had burned most of their ammo. Then he
pulled back across the limit, reammunitioned, and came right back in before we
could replace the expended defense pods get our own pod-layers back in-system
to rearm. It was a massacre."
"How
bad?" she repeated.
"Eleven
SD(P)s and seven older superdreadnoughts," Caparelli said grimly.
"Plus seven hundred LACs, six battlecruisers, and two heavy cruisers.
Those were our losses. Most of the Zanzibaran Navy went with them. Not
to mention," the First Space Lord added harshly, "the near total
destruction of Zanzibar's deep-space industry. For the second time."
Honor
paled. Those losses made her own seem almost trivial.
"I
think we can all safely agree," Caparelli continued, "that as things
stand right this instant, it's going to be relatively easy for the Peeps to
convince their public—and possibly even our own—that the momentum's just
shifted. Which makes it even more imperative for us to convince them
they're wrong."
"What
do you have in mind, Sir Thomas?" Honor asked, watching his face closely.
"You
know exactly what I have in mind, Honor," he told her. "That's one
reason I came out here with Hamish. I know you're hurting, and I know your
people have to be shocked by what happened at Solon. And I also know it's going
to take at least several weeks for you to be in any position to plan and mount
another op. But we need you—and your people—back in the saddle, and we need you
there quickly. We'll do what we can to reinforce you and replace your losses,
but it's essential, absolutely essential, that Eighth Fleet resume offensive
operations at the earliest possible moment. We simply cannot afford to allow
the enemy, or ourselves, to believe the initiative has passed into his
hands."
Thomas
Theisman watched through the viewport as the shuttle made its final approach to
the stupendous superdreadnought. The Republic's Secretary of War and Chief of
Naval Operations smiled as he remembered the last time he'd made this trip. His
waiting host had been in a somewhat different mood that time.
The shuttle
slowed to a halt relative to the superdreadnought, and the boat bay's docking
tractors locked onto it. They snubbed away the remainder of its motion, then
drew it smoothly into the bay. It settled into the docking arms, the personnel
tube ran out, and Theisman and Captain Alenka Borderwijk, his senior naval
aide, climbed out of their seats.
"Don't
lose that, Alenka," Theisman said, tapping the case under Borderwijk's
left arm.
"Don't
worry, Sir," the captain replied. "The thought of being shot at dawn
holds absolutely no attraction for me."
Theisman
grinned at her, then turned to lead the way down the tube into Sovereign of
Space's boat bay gallery.
"Chief
of Naval Operations, arriving!" the announcement rang out, and Theisman
smothered another grin.
Technically
speaking, he should have been referred to as the Secretary of War, since the
Secretary was the CNO's civilian superior. It was common knowledge throughout
the Fleet, however, that he preferred to think of himself as still an honest
admiral, not a politician, and he was always amused when the Navy's uniformed
personnel chose to pander to that particular vanity of his.
"Welcome
aboard, Sir," Captain Patrick Reumann said, stepping forward to greet him
before he could request formal permission to board.
"Thank
you, Pat." Theisman shook the tall captain's hand, then looked past him to
Javier Giscard.
"Welcome
aboard, Sir," Giscard said, echoing Reumann as they clasped hands.
"Thank
you, Admiral." Theisman raised his voice slightly. "And while I'm at
it, allow me to express my thanks—and the Republic's—to you and all the men and
women under your command for a job very well done."
He still
felt a bit silly playing the political leader, but he'd learned not to despise
the role, and he saw the smiles on the faces of the officers and enlisted
personnel in range of his voice. What he'd said would be relayed throughout the
ship—and, later, throughout Giscard's entire command—with a speed which mocked the
grav pulses of an FTL com. And although he knew Giscard understood what he was
doing perfectly, he also saw the genuine pleasure in the other man's eyes as
his ultimate service superior made certain his thanks had been publicly
delivered.
"Thank
you, Sir," Giscard said, after a moment. "That means a lot to me,
just as I know it will to all our personnel."
"I'm
glad." Theisman released Giscard's hand as Reumann finished greeting
Alenka Borderwijk and she stepped forward to join him and Giscard. "And
now, Admiral, you and I have a few things to discuss."
"Of
course, Sir. If you'll accompany me to my flag briefing room?"
* * *
"I
meant what I said, Javier," Theisman said, as the briefing room hatch
closed behind them. "You and your people did a damned fine job.
Combined with what Lester did to Zanzibar, the Manties have to be feeling as if
they strayed in front of an out-of-control freight shuttle at the bottom of a
gravity well."
"We
aim to please, Tom," Giscard said, waving the CNO and his aide into
chairs, then dropping into one himself. "Linda and Lewis are the ones who
really made it possible by guessing right. Well, them and Shannon." He
shook his head, his wry grimace less than amused. "If it had been just my
mobile units, she'd have gotten away clean."
"I
think that's a bit pessimistic," Theisman disagreed. "Based on the
system sensor platforms' data, you got a hell of a good piece of one of the SDs
before Moriarty ever got a shot at them."
"Yeah,
and I shot six SD(P)s dry to do it," Giscard responded. "I'm
not trying to denigrate what my people accomplished, and I'm not trying to poor
mouth my own accomplishments. But that missile defense of theirs." He
shook his head. "It's a bear, Tom. Really, really tough."
"Tell
me about it!" Theisman snorted. "I know you haven't seen Lester's
after-action report on Zanzibar yet, but he makes exactly the same point. In
fact, he feels that the only reason he managed to carry through was the reloads
he'd brought along for his superdreadnoughts. Basically, he ran them out of
ammunition at extreme range, then closed in to almost single-drive
missile range to get the best targeting solutions he could. And even then, he
needed a superiority of three-to-one."
He
shrugged.
"It's
something we're going to have to deal with. The next-generation seekers are
about ready to deploy—that should help some—and Shannon's already working on
other solutions . . . in her copious free time." He and Giscard both
chuckled at that one. "In the meantime, we're having to rethink our
calculations over at the Bureau of Planning on the relative effectiveness of
our units. At the moment, we're still confident we'll attain it, but it's
beginning to look as if it will take longer than we'd anticipated."
"How
much longer?" Giscard asked, his expression faintly alarmed.
"Obviously,
I can't answer that definitively yet, but nothing we've seen so far indicates
more than a few months slippage—six or seven at the outside—from our original
schedule. We're not talking about requiring construction not already in the
pipeline, only about needing more of that construction ready to go than we'd
thought we would. And given that our margin of superiority was going to
continue growing for a full year beyond our original target date, six or seven
months is completely acceptable."
"I
hope it doesn't run longer, but—" Giscard paused for a moment, then
shrugged and continued. "The thing that concerns me, Tom, is that our
projections are based on what they've already shown us and what we've been able
to extrapolate on that basis. But we didn't correctly extrapolate the
improvement in their defensive capability. We knew it was going to get better,
but I think it's safe to say none of us anticipated the actual margin of
improvement. Just like none of us anticipated this dogfighting missile of
theirs. What if they do the same thing to us with their MDMs?"
"That's
a completely valid point," Theisman said gravely, "and I'd be lying
if I said I hadn't had the occasional qualm myself. I think, though, that what
we've already seen with Moriarty and the steady improvement in our own FTL
communication and coordination ability, indicates we're still making up ground
faster than we're losing it. And at the moment, it appears both we and the
Manties are up against a fairly hard limit on the accuracy of full-ranged MDM
exchanges. Theirs is better than ours, but with improvements like the new seekers,
ours is getting better faster than theirs is."
He tipped
back in his chair and folded his arms across his chest.
"I've
got Linda and Op Research running every combat report through every analysis we
can think of. We're charting the qualitative and quantitative improvements on
both sides as accurately as we can, and we're constantly readjusting our
projections. It's possible something will come along to overturn all our
calculations. I don't think it will, and I hope it doesn't. But if it does, we ought
to spot it in time to rethink both our options and our plans. And the bottom
line is that I have no intention of committing the Navy to a decisive offensive
operation unless I'm confident our calculations haven't been
invalidated."
"And,
with all due respect, Admiral Giscard," Alenka Borderwijk put in,
"what you accomplished at Solon completely validated the Moriarty concept.
We're moving ahead rapidly with deployment in other star systems, beginning
with the most vital ones. On the basis of Solon, we believe our defensive
doctrine and capabilities are sufficient to make it impossible for the Manties
to accept the attritional losses major offensives of their own would
entail."
"It
certainly looks that way right now," Giscard agreed. "On the other
hand, remember that at Solon we were up against only one task force, with only
a single division of Invictuses. The missile defense of an entire Manty
fleet would be much deeper and more resilient. I think you're right that
Moriarty represents what's currently our best option for fixed system defenses,
but it's going to have to be deployed in even greater depth than it was at
Solon if it's going to stand up to a major Manty offensive."
"Granted,"
Theisman said, amused—and deeply pleased—by the confidence and persistence of
Giscard's arguments. It was a far and welcome cry from the way Giscard had
persisted in second-guessing—and blaming—himself after Thunderbolt.
"Granted,"
the CNO repeated. "And we're working on that. In addition, Shannon has the
new system defense missiles almost ready to go into actual production. We still
haven't been able to figure out a way to fit them into something an SD(P) can
handle, but they ought to give the Manties fits when they run into them. That's
the plan, anyway."
"So
what saying we ought to have a firm enough defensive capability to be able to
take a few chances operating offensively," Giscard said.
"Within
limits," Theisman agreed. "But only within limits. The one
thing we can't afford is to shoot ourselves in the foot through sheer
overconfidence. Even if," he grinned suddenly, "you did just
thoroughly trounce 'the Salamander.'"
"Well,"
Giscard admitted with a grin of his own, "I have to admit it did feel
good. I don't have anything personally against her, you understand, but as I'm
sure Lester would agree, playing the part of her round-bottomed doll gets old
in a hurry."
"I've
been going back over the combat reports—my own included—from the last
round," Theisman said thoughtfully. "It's a bit early, but I'm
inclined to think she's even better than White Haven was, tactically at least.
I know he gave us conniptions, and God knows their damned 'Buttercup' was a
fucking disaster, but Harrington is sneaky. There are times I don't
think she's even bothered to read The Book, much less pay any attention
to it. Look at that insane trick she pulled at Cerberus, for God's sake! And
then what she did to Lester at Sidemore."
"Personally,
and speaking as someone who gleefully used her own ideas against her,"
Giscard said, "I'm wondering how much of what happened at Hancock was
Sarnow's idea, and how much was hers? I know NavInt gave Sarnow the
credit, and everything I've seen indicates he was good enough to've come up
with it on his own, but it has all the Harrington fingerprints."
"Now
that you mention it, it does," Theisman said. He frowned, then shrugged.
"Well, she's only one woman, and as you just demonstrated, she's not
invincible. Tough, and not someone I want to go up against without a
substantial advantage, but not invincible. Which, by the way, the newsies have
been playing up with joyous abandon ever since your dispatches arrived. I warn
you, if you turn up in public anywhere on Haven, be prepared to be embarrassed
within a centimeter of your life."
"Oh,
God," Giscard muttered in disgusted tones. "Just what Eloise and I
needed—smutsies."
Theisman
laughed. He shouldn't have, and he knew it, but smutsies—the modern heirs of
the old pre-space paparazzi—had always been a particularly virulent fact of
life in the People's Republic. In fact, they'd been almost a semi-official
adjunct of the Office of Public Information's propagandists. They'd been used
to titillate—and divert—the Mob with all sorts of intrusive, sensationalized
stories about entertainment figures, supposed enemies of the People, and,
especially, political leaders of opposition star nations. Some of the stories
about Elizabeth III and her alleged . . . relations with her treecat, for
example, had been decidedly over the top. Not to mention, he felt sure,
anatomically impossible.
Unfortunately,
the smutsies had survived the People's Republic's fall, and the new freedom of
information and the press under the restored Constitution actually made them more
intrusive, not less. So far, Giscard and President Pritchart had managed to
keep their relationship more or less below the smutsies' radar horizon, and
what the so-called "journalists" would do when they finally realized
what they'd been missing formed the basis for the unofficial presidential
couple's joint nightmares.
"Well,"
Theisman said, and held out his hand to Borderwijk, "I can understand why
that would be a matter of some concern. And while I hate to do this, I'm afraid
I may be going to make it just a bit worse."
"Worse?"
Giscard regarded him suspiciously. "Just how are you going to make it
worse? And don't bother telling me you regret it—I can see the gleam in your
eye from here!"
"Well,
it's just . . . this," Theisman said, opening the case Borderwijk
handed him and extending it to Giscard.
The admiral
took it with another suspicious glower, then glanced down into it. His
expression changed instantly, and his eyes shot back up to Theisman's face.
"You're
joking."
"No,
Javier, I'm not." Theisman's smile had disappeared.
"I
don't deserve it," Giscard said flatly. "This is what Jacques
Griffith got for taking out Grendelsbane, for God's sake!"
"Yes,
it is."
Theisman
reached out to reclaim the case, and lifted the rather plain looking silver
medal out of it. It hung on a ribbon of simple blue cloth, and he held it up to
catch the light. It was the Congressional Cross, a medal which had been
abandoned a hundred and eighty T-years ago when the Legislaturalists
"amended" the Constitution out of existence. It had been replaced,
officially at least, by the Order of Valor, awarded to"Heroes of the
People" under the People's Republic. But it had been resurrected, along
with the Constitution, and so far, only two of them had been awarded.
Well, three
of them, now.
"This
is goddamned ridiculous!" Giscard was genuinely angry, Theisman saw.
"I won one small engagement against a single task force, half of
which got away, whereas Jacques took out their entire damned building program!
And Lieutenant Haldane gave his life to save the lives of almost three hundred
of his fellow crewmen!"
"Javier,
I—"
"No,
Tom! We can't demean it this way—not this soon! I'm telling you, and I'll tell
Eloise, if I have to!"
"Eloise
had nothing to do with it. Nor, for that matter, did I. Congress decides
who gets this, not the President, and not the Navy."
"Well
you tell Congress to shove it up—!"
"Javier!"
Theisman cut the admiral off sharply, and Giscard settled back in his chair,
mouth shut but eyes still angry.
"Better,"
Theisman said. "Now, by and large, I agree with everything you've just
said. But, as I already pointed out, the decision is neither mine nor Eloise's.
And, despite your personal feelings, there are some very valid arguments for
your accepting this medal. Not least the public relations aspect of it. I know
you don't want to hear that, but Harrington's raids have generated an enormous
amount of anger. Not all of that anger's directed at the Manties,
either, since the general view seems to be that we ought to be stopping her
somehow. And her activities have also begun generating fear, as well.
Now you've not only stopped one of her raids cold, but you've decisively
defeated her, as well. All that pent-up frustration and anger—and
fear—is now focused on what you've accomplished as satisfaction.
To be frank, I'm certain that's a lot of the reason Congress decided in its
infinite wisdom to award you the Cross."
"I
don't care what its reasons were. I won't accept it. That's it. End of
story."
"Javier—"
Theisman began, then stopped and shook his head. "Damn, you're even more
like 'the Salamander' than I thought!"
"Meaning
what?" Giscard asked suspiciously.
"Meaning
there are persistent rumors that she refused the Parliamentary Medal of
Valor the first time they tried to give it to her."
"No,
did she?" Giscard chuckled suddenly. "Good for her! And you can tell
Congress that if they decide to offer me the Cross again, I may accept it. But
not this time. Let them find something else, something that doesn't devalue the
Cross. This is too important to the Navy we're trying to build to be turned
into a political award."
Theisman
sat there for several seconds, gazing at the admiral. Then he replaced the
silver cross in the case, closed it, and sighed.
"You
may be right. In fact, I'm inclined to agree. But the important point, I
suppose, is that you genuinely intend to be stubborn about this."
"Count
on it."
"Oh, I
do." Theisman smiled without a great deal of humor. "You're going to
put me and Eloise into a very difficult position with Congress."
"I'm
genuinely and sincerely sorry about that. But I I'm not going to change my
mind. Not about this."
"All
right. I'll go back to Congress—thank God the award hasn't been announced yet!—and
suggest to them that your natural humility and overwhelming modesty make it
impossible for you to accept it at this time. I'll further suggest that they
might want to simply vote you the thanks of Congress. I trust that that won't
be too highfalutin for you?"
"As
long as it's not the Cross. And—" Giscard's eyes gleamed as Theisman
groaned at the qualifier "—as long as it includes thanks to all of my
people, as well."
"That
I think I can arrange." Theisman shook his head. "Jesus! Now I'm
going to have to tell Lester about this."
"What
do you mean?"
"Well,
you know how long and hard he worked on that out-of-control cowboy image of his
before we got rid of Saint-Just. How do you think he's going to react to the
fact that Congress wants to give him the Cross for Zanzibar? Especially
now that you've opened the way to turning the damn thing down!"
"Your
Grace," Dr. Franz Illescue said stiffly, "on behalf of Briarwood
Reproduction Center, I offer you my sincere and personal apologies for our inexcusable
violation of your confidentiality. I've discussed the matter with our legal
department, and I've instructed them not to contest any damages you may choose
to seek because of our failure. Furthermore, in recognition of the media furor
the unauthorized release of this information provoked, I have informed our
billing department that all additional services will be billed at no charge to
you."
Honor stood
in the Briarwood foyer, facing Illescue, and tasted his genuine remorse. It was
overlaid with more than a little resentment at finding himself in this
position, especially in front of her. And there was no question that he also
suspected—or feared, at least—that her parents would hold him personally
responsible. Yet for all that, it was remorse and professional responsibility
which truly drove his emotions. It was unlikely most people would have believed
that, given his stiff-backed, tight-jawed body language and expression. Honor,
however, had no choice but to accept it.
She rather
regretted that. After running the gauntlet of newsies outside Briarwood—despite
Solomon Hayes' fall from grace, the story was still grist for the mills of a
certain particularly repulsive subspecies of newsy—she'd been positively
looking forward to removing large, painful, bloody chunks of Franz Illescue's
hide. Now she couldn't do that. Not when it was so obvious to her, at least,
that he truly meant his apology.
"Dr.
Illescue," she said after a moment, "I know you personally had
nothing to do with the leakage of this information."
His eyes
widened slightly, and she tasted his astonishment at her reasonable tone.
"In
addition," she continued, "I've had quite a bit of experience with
large, bureaucratic organizations. The Queen's Navy, for example. While I'm
aware the captain is responsible for anything that happens aboard her ship, I'm
also aware that things happen over which she has no actual control. I'm
convinced this leak was an example of that sort of lapse.
"I
won't pretend I'm not angry, or that I don't strongly resent what's happened. I
feel confident, however, that you've done everything in your power to discover
just how this information got into the hands of someone like Solomon Hayes. I
see no point in punishing you or your facility for the criminal actions of some
individual acting without your authority and against Briarwood's policies on
patient confidentiality. I have no intention of seeking damages, punitive or
otherwise, from you or Briarwood. I'll accept your offer to provide your future
services without fee, and for my part, I'll consider the matter otherwise
closed."
"Your
Grace—" Illescue began, then stopped. He gazed at her for a moment, his
clenched expression easing slightly, then drew a deep breath.
"That's
extraordinarily generous and gracious of you, Your Grace," he said, with
absolute sincerity. "I won't apologize further, because, frankly, no one
could apologize adequately for this lapse. I would, however, be honored if
you'd allow me to personally escort you to your son."
* * *
Honor stood
in the small, pleasantly pastel room, Andrew LaFollet at her back, and gazed at
the innocuous looking cabinet at the room's center. She could have pressed a
button which would have retracted the "cabinet's" housing and
revealed the artificial womb in which her child was steadily maturing, but she
chose not to. She'd viewed all the medical reports, and the medical imagery,
and a part of her wanted to see the fetus with her own eyes. But she'd already
decided she wouldn't do that until Hamish and Emily could accompany her. This
was her child, but he was also theirs, and she would not take that
moment from them.
She smiled
at her own possible silliness, then walked across the room, seated herself
beside the unit, and lowered Nimitz from her shoulder to her lap. The powered
chair was luxuriously comfortable, and she leaned back, closing her eyes and
listening. The volume wasn't turned very high on the speakers, but she could
hear what her unborn son was hearing. The steady sound of her own recorded
heart beat. Snatches of music—especially the works of Salvatore Hammerwell, her
favorite composer—and the sound of her own voice reading. Reading, in fact, she
realized with another, quite different smile, from David and the Phoenix.
She sat
there for several minutes, listening, absorbing, sharing. This was the child of
her body, the child she'd been unable to carry, and this quiet, comfortable
room existed exactly for what she was doing. For bringing herself, at least
temporarily, into the presence of the mystic process from which circumstance,
fate, and duty had excluded her. And in Honor's case, there was even more to it
than for other mothers.
She reached
out from behind her eyes, listening with more than just her ears, and there, in
the quiet of her mind, she found him. She felt him. He was a bright, drowsy,
drifting presence. As yet uninformed, yet moving steadily towards becoming. His
mind-glow danced in the depths of her own mind and heart, glorious with the
promise of what he would be and become, stirring to the sound of his parents'
voices, yearning from his peaceful dreams towards the future which awaited him.
In that
moment, she knew, at least partly, what a treecat mother felt, and a part of
her quailed at the thought of ever leaving this room again. Of separating herself
from that new, bright life glowing so softly and yet so powerfully in her
perceptions. Her closed eyes prickled, and she remembered the verse Katherine
Mayhew had found for her when she'd had Willard Neufsteiler arrange the funding
for her first Grayson orphanage. It was an ancient poem, older than the
Diaspora itself, carefully preserved on Grayson because of how perfectly it
spoke to their society and beliefs.
Not flesh
of my flesh, or bone of my bone,
But still
miraculously my own.
Never
forget for a single minute;
You didn't
grow under my heart, but in it.
She
supposed it didn't really apply to her in this case. And yet . . . it
did. Because whatever else was true of this child, he was growing daily,
stronger, more vibrant, more real within her heart. And she'd already
asked Katherine to send her a presentation copy of it for Emily.
She
blinked, then turned her head and looked at LaFollet. The colonel wasn't
looking at her at that instant. His eyes, too, were on the unit at the center of
the room, and his unguarded expression mirrored his emotions. This was his
child, too, she realized. Unlike most Grayson males, LaFollet had never
married. She knew why that was, too, and she felt a sudden fresh flicker of
guilt. But perhaps in part because of that, the emotions flooding out of him as
he gazed at the bland cabinet hiding his Steadholder's unborn son were more
than simply fiercely protective. They were, in fact, very, very similar to the
ones she tasted from Nimitz.
Honor
savored her armsman's mind-glow, and as she did, something crystallized within
her. She looked at LaFollet again, seeing the gray flecking his still thick
auburn hair, the crows feet at the corners of his steady gray eyes, the lines
etched in his face. He was eight T-years younger than she was, but physically
he could have been her father.
And he was
also the only surviving member of her original personal security team. Every
one of the others, and all too many of their replacements, had been killed in
the line of duty. Including Jamie Candless, who'd stayed behind aboard a ship
he'd known was going to be blown up, to cover his Steadholder's escape.
There was
no adequate recompense for that sort of loyalty, and she knew it would have
insulted Andrew LaFollet if she'd suggested there ought to be one. But as she
tasted his fierce devotion, his love for her unborn son—and for her—an equally
fierce determination filled her.
"Andrew,"
she said quietly.
"Yes,
My Lady?"
He looked
at her, eyes slightly narrowed, and she tasted his surprise at her tone.
"Sit
down, Andrew."
She pointed
at the chair beside hers, and he glanced at it, then looked back at her.
"I'm
on duty, My Lady," he reminded her.
"And
Spencer is standing right outside that door. I want you to sit down, Andrew.
Please."
He gazed at
her for a moment longer, then slowly crossed the room and obeyed her. She
tasted his growing concern, almost wariness, but he regarded her attentively.
"Thank
you," she said, and reached out to lay one hand lightly on the artificial
womb.
"A lot
of things are going to change when this child is born, Andrew. I can't even
begin to imagine what some of them are going to be, but others are pretty
obvious to me. For one thing, Harrington Steading's going to have a new heir,
with all the security details that involves. For another thing, there's going
to be a brand new human being in this universe, one whose safety is far more
important to me than my own could ever be. And because of that, I have a new
duty for you."
"My
Lady," LaFollet began quickly, his tone almost frightened, "I've been
thinking about that, and I have several armsmen in mind who'd be—"
"Andrew."
The single
word cut him off, and she smiled at him, then reached out and cupped the side
of his face in her right hand. It was the first time she'd ever touched him
quite like that, and he froze, like a frightened horse.
She smiled
at him.
"I
know who I want," she told him quietly.
"My
Lady," he protested, "I'm your armsman. I'm
flattered—honored—more than you could possibly imagine, but I belong with you.
Please."
His voice
wavered ever so slightly on the last word, and Honor caressed his cheek with
her fingers. Then she shook her head.
"No,
Andrew. You are my armsman—you always will be. My perfect armsman. The
man who's saved my life not once, but over and over. The man who helped save my
sanity more than once. The man whose shoulder I've wept on, and who's covered
my back for fifteen years. I love you, Andrew LaFollet. And I know you love me.
And you're the one man I trust to protect my son. The one man I want to
protect my son."
"My
Lady—" His voice was hoarse, shaky, and he shook his head slowly, almost
pleadingly.
"Yes,
Andrew," she told him, sitting back in her chair again, answering the
unspoken question she tasted in his emotions. "Yes, I do have another
motive, and you've guessed what it is. I want you as safe as I can make you.
I've lost Simon, Jamie, Robert, Arthur, and Anthony. I don't want to lose you,
too. I want to know you're alive. And if, God forbid, something happens and I'm
killed in action, I want to know you're still here, still protecting my son for
me, because I know no one else in this universe will do it as well as you
will."
He stared
at her, his eyes brimming with tears, and then he laid his hand atop the
artificial womb exactly as he'd once laid it atop a Bible the day he swore his
personal fealty to her.
"Yes,
My Lady," he said softly. "When your son is born. On that day, I'll
become his armsman, too. And whatever happens, I swear I will protect him with
my life."
"I
know you will, Andrew," she told him. "I know you will."
* * *
"Well,
that didn't work out too well, did it?" Albrecht Detweiler said
conversationally.
Aldona
Anisimovna and Isabel Bardasano glanced at one another, then turned back to the
face displayed on the secure com. They sat in Anisimovna's office—one of her
offices—on Mesa itself, and they had no doubt what Detweiler was referring to.
Just over one T-month had passed since the attempt on Honor Harrington's life,
and this was the first time since then that they'd been back in the Mesa
System.
"I
haven't had time to fully familiarize myself with the reports, Albert,"
Bardasano said after a moment. "As you know, we've only been back
in-system for a few hours. On the basis of what I've seen so far, I'd have to
agree it didn't work out as planned. Whether that's a good thing or a
bad one remains to be seen."
"Indeed?"
Detweiler cocked his head, one eyebrow rising, and Anisimovna tried to decide
whether his expression was more one of amusement or irritation.
"Are
you sure you aren't simply trying to put the best face possible on a failure,
Isabel?" he asked after a moment.
"Of
course I am, to some extent." Bardasano smiled slightly. "If I said I
wasn't, I'd be lying. Worse, you'd know I was. That could be decidedly
unhealthy for me. By the same token, however, you know what my usual success
rate is. And I think you also recognize I'm valuable not simply for the
operations I carry out successfully, but also for my brain."
"That's
certainly been true up till now," he agreed.
"Well,
then," she said, "let's look at what happened. The operation should
have succeeded—would have succeeded, according to the reports I have had
time to look over—if not for the fact that Harrington had a pulser, of
all things, actually built into her artificial hand."
She
shrugged.
"None
of the intelligence available to us suggested any such possibility, so it was
impossible to factor it into our plans. Apparently, our vehicle succeeded in
taking out her bodyguard, exactly as we'd planned, and under circumstances
which should have left him armed when she wasn't. And then, unfortunately, she
shot him . . . with her finger."
Bardasano
grimaced, and Detweiler actually chuckled, ever so slightly.
"So
that's why the operation failed," she continued. "However, removing
Harrington herself, while it would have been extremely satisfying personally to
all of us on several levels, was never really the primary object of killing
her. True, it would have been useful to deprive the Manties of one of their
best naval commanders. And, equally true, the fact that she and Anton Zilwicki
have become such good friends only adds to the reasons to want her dead. But
what we were really after was killing her in a way which would convince the
Manties generally, and Elizabeth Winton in particular, Haven had done
it. And that, Albrecht, is exactly the conclusion which our Foreign Office
agent informs us they all reached. After all, who else had a reason to want her
killed?"
"I
think Isabel has a point, Albrecht," Anisimovna put in. Technically, the
Harrington assassination hadn't been Anisimovna's responsibility in any way.
The fact that she and Bardasano were working together on several other
projects—and that Bardasano's sudden demise would complicate those projects
significantly—gave her a distinct vested interest in the younger woman's
survival, however.
"You
do?" Detweiler's eyes moved from Bardasano to Anisimovna.
"I
do," she replied firmly. "It's well known that the Legislaturalists
and Pierre and his lunatics all used assassination as a standard tool. Given
that history, it was inevitable, I think, for the Manties to automatically
assume that Pritchart—who's killed quite a few people herself, in her
time—ordered Harrington's assassination. Especially given how successful
Harrington's raids have been." She shrugged. "So as far as I can see,
Isabel's right. The operation succeeded in its primary objective."
"And,"
Bardasano added almost diffidently, "the reports I've had a chance to view
so far all agree that the Manties don't have any more clue as to how we managed
it than the Andermani did."
"That's
true enough." Detweiler pursed his lips thoughtfully for a moment, then
shrugged. "All right, on balance I agree with you. I would, however, add
that I was one of the individuals who expected to take considerable personal
satisfaction in knowing she was dead. Should the opportunity to rectify that
aspect of this operation present itself, I trust it will be taken."
"Oh,
you can count on that," Bardasano promised with a thin smile.
"Good.
Well, turning from that, how are things proceeding in Talbott?"
"Well,
as of our last reports," Anisimovna said. "Obviously, we're several
weeks behind here, thanks to the communications lag, but both Nordbrandt and
Westman seem to be working out well, each in his or her own way. Personally, I
think Nordbrandt is more useful to us where Solly public opinion is concerned,
but Westman's probably the more effective, in the long term.
"Politically,
the reports coming out of their constitutional convention indicate Tonkovic is
still digging in to resist annexation terms which would be acceptable to
Manticore. She doesn't have any intention of actually killing the annexation,
but she's so genuinely stupid she doesn't realize she's playing her fiddle
while the house burns down above her. And reports from our people in Manticore
all confirm that the combination of Nordbrandt's attacks and Tonkovic's
obstructionism are contributing to a small but growing domestic resistance to
annexing the Cluster after all."
"And
Monica?"
"Levakonic
is effectively in charge of that part of the operation," Bardasano said.
"Aldona and I did the original spadework, but Izrok is coordinating the
delivery and refitting of the battlecruisers. According to his last dispatch,
they're running behind schedule. Apparently the Monicans' shipyards are less
capable than they assured Izrok they were. He's brought in some additional
technicians to expedite matters, and even with the slippage to date, we're well
within the originally projected timetable. I'm not totally comfortable with the
fact that the schedule is slipping at all, but at the moment things appear to
be under control."
"Verbs
like 'appear' always make me uncomfortable," Detweiler observed in a
whimsical tone.
"I
realize that," Bardasano said calmly. "Unfortunately, in black ops
like this, they crop up quite a lot."
"I
know." Detweiler nodded. "And what about the propaganda offensive in
the League?"
"There,"
Anisimovna admitted, "we're hitting some air pockets."
"Why?"
"Mostly
because the Manties have replaced the complete incompetents High Ridge and
Descroix had assigned to their embassy on Old Earth." Anisimovna grimaced.
"I never would have picked Webster as an ambassador, but I have to admit
that he's doing them proud. I suppose it has something to do with all the
political experience he gained as First Space Lord. At any rate, he comes
across as a very reassuring, solid, reliable, truthful fellow. Not only
as a talking head on HD, either. Several of our sources tell us he comes across
that way in one-on-one conversations with League officials, as well. At the
same time, he—or someone on his staff, although all the indications are that
he's the one behind it—has orchestrated a remarkably effective PR campaign.
"We're
making progress, Albrecht. All the imagery of blood, explosions, and body parts
coming out of Split are at least creating a widespread sense that someone in
the Cluster objects to the annexation. And our own PR people tell us they're
making some ground in convincing the Solly in the street to project
Nordbrandt's activities onto all the Cluster's systems. But I'd be
misleading you if I suggested Webster isn't doing some very successful damage
control. In particular, he's succeeded in pointing out that actions like
Nordbrandt's are those of a lunatic fringe, and that lunatics aren't exactly
the best barometer for how the sane members of any society are
reacting."
"And
how serious is that?"
"For
our purposes, not very, at this point," Anisimovna said confidently.
"We're providing a justification for Frontier Security to do what we want.
We don't have to convince the Solly public; we only have to provide a pretext
OFS can use, and they've had lots of practice using far less graphic pretexts
then Nordbrandt and Westman. Assuming President Tyler and his Navy hold up
their end, Verrochio will have all the fig leaf he needs."
"I
see." Detweiler pondered for several seconds, then shrugged.
"I
see," he repeated. "Still, from what you're saying, this Webster is
at least a minor irritant, yes?"
"I
think that's fair enough," Anisimovna agreed.
"And
he's popular on Manticore?"
"Quite
popular. In fact, there was considerable pressure to reassign him to command
their Home Fleet, rather than 'waste' him as a diplomat."
"Then
having him assassinated by the Peeps would be more than mildly
irritating?"
"It
certainly would."
"Very
well. Isabel."
"Yes,
Albrecht?"
"I
know you've got a lot on your plate, but I'd like you to see to this little
matter, as well. And this time, when you choose your vehicle, pick someone from
the Havenite diplomatic staff on Old Earth. Sometimes you have to be really
obvious to convince neobarbs to draw the desired conclusion."
"Well,
Honor. I believe you and Hamish have something you want to tell me about, don't
you?"
Honor
turned quickly, putting her back to the archaic, battlemented parapet of King
Michael's Tower. She cursed herself silently for the suddenness of her
movement, and hoped she didn't look too much like a Sphinx chipmunk suddenly
confronted by treecat.
Sunlight
poured down over the tower's flat roof, less warm than the sun had been for her
last visit to Mount Royal Palace four months earlier, but still hot. The
rooftop garden's flowers and shrubs s were in full leaf, and the fringe of the
sun awning over the garden chairs popped gently in the breeze. The sky was a
deep, cloudless blue, and some of Mount Royal's flock of Old Earth ravens rode
the wind in circles high overhead.
Queen
Elizabeth and Crown Prince Justin sat in two of the garden chairs, their treecats
stretched out comfortably on the old-fashioned wicker table between them.
Hamish sat to one side, with Emily's life-support chair beside him, and
Samantha and Nimitz lay sprawled together in a patch of shade on Emily's other
side.
It was a
charmingly tranquil domestic scene, Honor thought. Unfortunately, she tasted
the gently malicious amusement behind the Queen's innocent brown eyes.
"What
makes you think that, Elizabeth?" she asked, sparring for time and tasting
Hamish's sudden consternation. She did not, she noticed, sense any such
emotion from Emily.
"Honor,"
the Queen said patiently, "I'm the Queen, remember? I have thousands and
thousands of spies whose sole job is to make sure I know things. More to the
point, I've known Hamish and Emily since I was born, and you for—what? Fifteen
T-years, now? You may not be aware of how your body language has changed around
them, but I certainly am. So, which of you miscreants wants to confess that you
and Hamish are in violation of the Articles of War?"
Honor felt
Hamish's flicker of dismay, but there was too much devilish delight in
Elizabeth's mind-glow for Honor to share it.
"As a
matter of fact," she replied after a moment, "according to my
attorney, Richard Maxwell, there's every reason to believe that since the First
Lord is a civilian and I'm not, any relationship between us wouldn't be in
violation of the Articles. Assuming, of course," she added with a smile,
"that there was any such relationship."
"Oh,
certainly assuming any such thing," Elizabeth agreed affably.
"Ah, and it would it happen there is such a relationship?"
"Actually,
Beth," Emily said tranquilly, "there is. We're married."
"You
shock me." Elizabeth chuckled and leaned back in her chair, fanning
herself with one hand. "Oh, how my trust in all three of you has been
betrayed! Woe and lamentations. And so forth."
"Very
funny," Emily said politely.
"You
don't seem surprised that I'm not surprised," Elizabeth pointed
out.
"Unlike
my lamentably overly trusting spouses, I felt more than a slight twinge of
suspicion when you invited the three of us for a private audience. They,
needless to say, walked in all innocent and unwary." Emily shook her head
sadly. "Well, Honor may not have. She's really much more clever about
these things than Hamish, but I'm fairly confident you managed to at least
partially blindside her, as well."
"I
certainly tried." Elizabeth looked at Honor, her eyes glinting in the
awning's shade. "It's not always the easiest thing to do," she added.
"It's
been happening to me with depressing regularity for the past several months,
actually," Honor told her. "First the minor matter of that unexpected
pregnancy. Then Solomon Hayes' helpful announcement of it. Then there was the
little ambush Reverend Sullivan, Archbishop Telmachi, my mother, and my husband
and wife—only they weren't my husband and wife at that point, you
understand—set up. Did you know I was proposed to and married in less than two
hours? The Reverend came all the way from Grayson to make an honest woman out
of me. And then," despite herself, her mood darkened, "there've been
a few other, less pleasant surprises since."
She felt a
quick, sharp echo of her own darkness from Elizabeth as her words brought back
the pain of losing Michelle Henke. Then Nimitz looked gave her a firm, scolding
bleek, and she shook her head quickly.
"Sorry
about that." She smiled almost naturally. "I don't mean to be the
ghost at the banquet."
"Apology
accepted," Elizabeth told her. She drew a breath, then shook herself and
smiled back, banishing her own sense of loss and reaching back out for her
previous mood.
"However,"
she continued, "the real devious reason I invited you three here and
strong-armed your confession out of you, is that I'm wondering just how long
you intend to wait before you publicly . . . regularize your situation?"
"We
were waiting until Richard was able to confirm Hamish's interpretation of the
legal complications," Honor said.
"And,"
Hamish admitted, "keeping quiet about it has sort of gotten to be a habit.
I think we're all just a little bit nervous—no, a lot nervous—over how
the public will react to this. Especially after High Ridge's smear
campaign."
"Knowing
you all, I assume there was no truth to Hayes' allegations at the time?"
"No,
there wasn't," Hamish said firmly, then glanced at Emily and Honor.
"Not," he added with scrupulous honesty, "that there wasn't
considerable temptation, whether Honor and I had admitted it to ourselves or
not."
"I
thought as much." Elizabeth regarded them thoughtfully, then shrugged.
"I'm sure a lot of people who don't know you will assume otherwise.
Unfortunately, nothing you can do is going to change that, and waiting until after
your son is born will only make it worse. You do realize that, don't you?"
"We
do—even Hamish," Emily said, smiling demurely at her husband.
"Under
some circumstances," Elizabeth continued just a bit more seriously,
"this could have been a significant political liability. Not only is
Hamish First Lord, but Willie is Prime Minister. Which, by the way, is the
first time in the Star Kingdom's history two sibs have simultaneously held such
important positions in a government. The idea that all of us were lying,
whether we were or not, is going to present itself, and the Opposition would
just love to pounce on it. At the moment, however, there is no effective
Opposition. The only person who could put one together, really, is Cathy
Montaigne, and given her own . . . irregular personal life—not to mention her
basic personality—she'll be standing on top of the Parliament building
toasting the brides and groom and leading choruses of obscene drinking songs in
their honor.
"What
I'm trying to say is that, politically speaking, there's no time like the
present. I think you should go ahead and make your marriage public. Besides,
I've consulted the Queen's Bench. They agree with Hamish's interpretation. And
they also agree I have the authority as Queen to set aside Article
One-Nineteen. For that matter, they tell me Admiral Caparelli could make the
same decision 'for the good of the service' on the basis that the Crown can't
afford to lose either of you at this particular time. So it's time to come out
of the closet, you three."
"That's
. . . a scary thought," Honor admitted softly, her smile just a bit
tremulous. "One I'm really looking forward to, you understand, but still
scary after so long. And I have to go back to Trevor's Star the day after
tomorrow. I'll feel awfully guilty if we're all wrong and this blows up in
everyone else's face while I'm off with the fleet and out of range!"
"If we
wait until you can hang around to absorb your share of any slings and arrows,
we'll never get it announced," Emily pointed out. "Eighth Fleet is
eating up every minute of your time." She pouted. "It was bad enough
when the Navy was only seducing one of my spouses away from me!"
"Hey,
if you can't take a joke, you shouldn't follow the Fleet, girlie," Hamish
said with a wicked grin, and Emily gurgled a laugh.
"I bet
you say that to all your dirt-side dollies, spacer!" she growled.
"If we
can return this conversation to a somewhat less salacious basis,"
Elizabeth said severely, eyes twinkling, "I have a suggestion."
"Which
is?" Honor asked, ignoring Hamish and Emily as Emily reached out and
smacked him on the head with her working arm.
"Which
is that we can probably defuse at least some of any adverse public reaction if
we make the announcement the right way."
"Which
is?" Honor repeated.
"You
three were already invited to tonight's state dinner," Elizabeth said.
"It was going to be one of those boring but necessary evenings, full of
ambassadors and toasts and looking confident for the newsies and HD cameras.
And I'll be honest with you, looking confident is more necessary than usual at
the moment."
Her
expression darkened once more, and Ariel's ears flattened in reaction to her
mood shift.
"What
happened to you at Solon, Honor, and what the Peeps did to us at Zanzibar, have
had a measurable impact on public morale. Events in Talbott aren't helping,
either. At the moment, Admiral Sarnow seems to be getting on top of the
situation in Silesia, but that butcher Nordbrandt is killing hundreds of people
in Split. And what happened when the Peeps tried to assassinate you also has to
be factored into the mix."
"My
read is that the assassination attempt mainly pissed people off," Hamish
said.
"It
certainly did," Emily agreed. "And if you think people were 'pissed
off' here in the Star Kingdom, you don't even want to know how Grayson reacted!
It was bad enough when they thought the Peeps had executed you, Honor—this is
even worse, in a way. At the same time, though, all kinds of rumors are flying.
In fairness to Lieutenant Mears and his family, I authorized the release of the
information that he was acting under some form of compulsion. But the fact that
we can't suggest how the compulsion was exerted is contributing to a climate of
suspicion. Or fear, perhaps. After all, if the Peeps got to him, who else can
they get to?
"At
any rate, anything that pushes morale upward is very much worthwhile, and I
think having your marriage announced here at Mount Royal, by me, with all the
appropriate hoopla, ought to have a sort of festive effect. You three are
probably among the dozen or so most popular public figures in the Star Kingdom
right now, and that's going to more than compensate for anyone who might suspect
Hamish and Honor were . . . dallying with one another before you actually
were."
"Politics,"
Honor sighed, then laughed a trifle sadly.
"What?"
Hamish asked.
"I was
just recalling a discussion with Admiral Courvoisier before we deployed to
Grayson for the first time," Honor said, shaking her head.
"Politics
are always important at our level of responsibility, Honor," Elizabeth
told her. "That doesn't necessarily make this a sordid decision."
"I
wasn't trying to suggest it does. It's just that it gets so fatiguing
sometimes."
"That
it does. On the other hand, sometimes I get to combine things I genuinely want
to do with political considerations. Of course, it works the other way around,
too, sometimes. More often, I usually think. In this case, though, I have a
belated wedding gift for the three of you."
Honor
regarded the Queen warily. At the moment Elizabeth's idea of what she was
"due"—especially after Solon—would leave an unpleasant taste in her
mouth.
Elizabeth
looked back at her as if the Queen were the empath, then reached under
her chair and pulled out a small, flat case.
"Nothing
excessive," she reassured her vassal with a slight smile. "I just
asked Broughton & Stemwinder to make these up for me."
She handed
the case to Emily, and Honor walked over so that Emily's life-support chair was
between her and Hamish. Emily looked up at both of them, then looked back down
and ran her finger across the raised, intertwined "B" and
"S" crest of the firm which had been jewelers to the House of Winton
for over three T-centuries.
She opened
it, and Honor drew a deep breath as she saw the three rings nestled into the
velvet interior. They were Grayson-style wedding bands, larger and heavier than
the Manticoran norm, and exquisitely wrought, if not quite in the pure Grayson
style. On Grayson, men's wedding rings were traditionally of yellow gold and
women's of silver, but all three of these bands were made up of three
interwoven strands, one each of yellow gold, white gold, and silver. They
carried the Harrington Steading key on one side and the rampant White Haven
stag on the other, and the flat-topped bezels bore the traditional circle of
diamonds, each centered by a different semiprecious stone.
"I
checked," Elizabeth said. "Honor, you were born in October, old-style.
Hamish, you were born in March, and Emily was born in August. That makes your
birthstones opal, jade, and sardonyx. So I had these made for you. They aren't
quite Grayson, and they aren't quite Manticoran, just as the three of you no
longer belong to just one of us."
"They're
beautiful, Elizabeth." Emily looked up with bright eyes. "Thank
you."
"As
gifts go, they're small enough for people who mean as much to me as you
do," Elizabeth said simply. "And these are from us—from Elizabeth and
Justin, not the Crown."
Honor
reached into the case and removed the opal-crested ring. She held it,
glittering in the sun, gazing down at it for a few seconds. Then she tried it
on the third finger of her left hand.
It was a
bit large, and she felt a flicker of surprise. Elizabeth had obviously taken
pains to get this gift right, and it shouldt have been easy for her to get
Honor's ring size, given that Honor's father had the exact dimensions of her
prosthetic hand. But then she felt Elizabeth's eyes on her and sensed the Queen's
waiting watchfulness. She thought about it for a moment, then removed the ring
from her left hand and tried it on her right.
It fit
perfectly, and she held it up, looking past it at Elizabeth.
"If
you want it resized, it won't be a problem, Honor," Elizabeth told her.
"But I think I know you pretty well by now, and it occurred to me that you
might want to wear it on your flesh-and-blood hand."
"I
think you're right," Honor said slowly, lowering her hand and looking down
at it. She'd never been one to wear much jewelry, but that ring looked perfect,
and she smiled. Then she took it back off and handed it to Emily.
"Please,
Emily," she said, holding out her hand as well. "On Grayson, the
senior wife gives the wedding band to her junior. I know that, as Elizabeth
says, we're not really Manticoran or Grayson anymore, but it would mean a lot
to me."
"Of
course," Emily said gently, then looked up at her husband. "Hamish,
would you help me?"
Hamish
smiled at both of them, then reached down, gently holding Honor's wrist as
Emily slid the ring back onto her finger. Emily gazed at it, then looked back
up.
"It
looks good there, doesn't it?" She moved her gaze to Elizabeth. "And
I think I'll have mine resized for my right hand, too."
"No
need," Elizabeth told her. "It already is."
"Such
a clever person you are," Emily told her distant cousin, and Elizabeth
chuckled.
"I
have it on the best of authority that all queens named 'Elizabeth' are
clever."
"Ha!
Probably that sycophantic Crown Prince you're married to currying favor with
you!" Emily retorted.
"Thereby
proving," the maligned Crown Prince in question said equably, "how
clever he is."
"Congratulations,
Your Grace," Mercedes Brigham said with a huge smile, waiting just inside
the hatch as Honor and Nimitz swam the transfer tube between the shuttle from
Manticore and her pinnace. Andrew LaFollet and Spencer Hawke followed the two
of them, and Brigham chuckled as Honor raised an eyebrow at her greeting.
"The
news is all over the Fleet by now." The chief of staff gestured at the
ring glittering on Honor's right hand. "I was actually a bit surprised by
how many people were surprised, if you know what I mean."
"And
the reaction?" Honor asked.
"Ranges
from mere approval to ecstatic, I'd say," Brigham told her.
"No
concerns over One-Nineteen?"
"Of
course not." Brigham chuckled again. "You know as well as I do that
One-Nineteen is probably the most winked at of the Articles. Even if it
weren't, nobody's going to suggest it applies to you and Earl White Haven.
Or," Brigham cocked her head, "is he Steadholder Consort Harrington
now?"
"Please!"
Honor gave a deliberate shudder. "I can hardly wait for the Conclave of
Steadholders to start in on this one! I seem to spend most of my time trying to
find ways to give the real conservatives apoplexy."
"One
can only hope it carries some of them off," Brigham said tartly, with all
the fervor of the years she'd spent in the Grayson Space Navy.
"A
most improper thought—with which I agree completely, however
unofficially."
Honor
looked demurely over her shoulder at LaFollet, who returned her gaze with a
deadpan expression. Then she held out her arms, and Nimitz swarmed down into
them from her shoulder as she moved towards her seat. Brigham followed her, and
seated herself across the aisle as the flight engineer sealed the hatch and the
transfer tube detached. She and Honor and Honor's armsmen were the pinnace's
only two-legged passengers, and LaFollet and Hawke chose seats two rows in front
of Honor, between her and the flight deck.
It wasn't
their usual position, and Honor's cheerfulness dimmed slightly as she tasted
their emotions. Simon Mattingly's death, and Honor's narrow escape, had left
their mark. Her armsmen's professional paranoia had risen to new heights, and
she didn't much like the hairtrigger on which they were poised. She made
another mental note to discuss the situation with LaFollet, then returned her
attention to Brigham.
"What's
the word on our repairs?"
"Imperator's
going to be in yard hands for at least another month, Your Grace."
Brigham's expression sobered. "Probably more, actually. None of the damage
may've gotten through to the core hull, but her after graser mounts took a lot
heavier beating than we thought before the yard survey. Agamemnon's
going to be out of service even longer than that. Truscott Adams and Tisiphone
should be returning sometime in the next three to six weeks."
"I was
afraid of that when I saw the preliminary yard surveys," Honor sighed.
"Oh, well. What can't be cured must be endured, as we say on Grayson. And
it's not as if repairs are the only thing that's going to be slowing us
up."
"Your
Grace?"
"I
spent three days at Admiralty House, Mercedes. The situation after Zanzibar is
even worse than we'd thought. The Caliph is apparently considering withdrawing
from the Alliance."
"What?"
Brigham sat upright abruptly, and Honor shrugged.
"It's
hard to blame him, really. Look at it. His star system's been hammered flat
twice, and he joined the Alliance in the first place for protection. It's kind
of hard to argue we've protected his people successfully."
"And
it's his own admiral's damned fault!" Brigham said hotly. "If al-Bakr
hadn't overruled Padgorny and given the Peeps a roadmap of the system defenses,
it never would have happened!"
"I
know that's the general view in the Fleet, but I'm not sure it's fair."
Brigham
looked at her semi-incredulously, and Honor shrugged.
"I'm
not saying al-Bakr made the right decision, or that the decision he did make
didn't help the Havenites considerably. But if they'd sent in the same attack
force against our original defensive deployment, it would have steamrollered
anything in its path anyway. Sure, the missile pods would've hurt them more
than they did, but not enough to stop an attack that powerful under Lester
Tourville's command. The fact that they knew what we'd originally deployed may
have inspired them to send a heavier force in the first place, but once they'd
made that level of commitment, our original setup wouldn't have stopped them
even if it had taken them completely by surprise."
"Maybe
you're right." Brigham's concession was manifestly unwilling. "But
even if you are, our losses would have been a lot lighter if we hadn't
had to throw good money after bad by reinforcing."
"Mercedes,"
Honor said just a bit sternly, "we have an alliance. That implies
mutual responsibilities and obligations—and I might remind you that High Ridge's
idiotic failure to remember that has already cost us Erewhon. If we find our
obligations under the treaty too onerous, then we should be happy to see
Zanzibar withdraw from it. If we don't, then the Star Kingdom—and the
Queen—have a direct, personal responsibility to discharge them. And that means
reinforcing a threatened ally to the very best of our ability."
Brigham
looked at her rebelliously for just a moment, then sighed.
"Point
taken, Your Grace. It's just—" She broke off, shaking her head.
"I understand,"
Honor said. "But the Fleet's angry enough as it is. You and I have a
special responsibility to avoid pumping any more hydrogen into that particular
fire."
"Understood,
Ma'am."
"Good.
Having said that, however," Honor continued, "there are some members
of the Government—and a few people at Admiralty House, for that matter—who
think we should actually be encouraging Zanzibar, and possibly Alizon, as well,
to declare nonbelligerent status."
"They what?"
Brigham blinked. "After all the trouble we went to to build the Alliance
in the first place?"
"The
situation was a bit different then," Honor pointed out. "We were on
our own against the Peeps, and we were looking for strategic depth. Zanzibar
and Alizon have both been net contributors to the Alliance—or would have been,
if the need to rebuild both of them after McQueen's Operation Icarus hadn't
cost so much—but what we really wanted them for was forward bases when everyone
was still thinking in terms of system-by-system advances."
She
shrugged.
"Strategic
thinking's changed, as our own ops—and Tourville's attack on
Zanzibar—demonstrate. Both sides are thinking in terms of deep strikes now,
operating deep into 'enemy territory,' and simple strategic depth, unless
you've got one heck of a lot of it, is looking less and less important. Not
only that, but with Zanzibar effectively knocked out of the war for at least
eight T-months to a T-year, the system's become a defensive obligation which
offers no return. And Alizon, which also got hammered by Icarus, really only
offers us the capacity to build a few dozen battlecruisers or lighter units at
a time.
"So
the new school of thought argues that freeing ourselves of the defensive
commitments to protect relatively minor star systems would actually allow us to
concentrate more strength in Home Fleet and here in Eighth Fleet. At the same
time, assuming the Republic's willing to accept their neutrality and leave them
alone, it gets them out of the line of fire. And the important allies at
this moment are Grayson and the Andermani. We can protect Grayson more strongly
if we can recall the forces currently tied down by commitments like Alizon, and
the Andermani are effectively secure against direct attack simply because of
how far away they are."
Brigham sat
without speaking for almost two minutes, obviously considering what Honor had
just said, then looked at her admiral.
"And
do you agree with the 'new school of thought', Your Grace?"
"I
think it's a rational, fresh approach to the problem. And I think that if the
Republic is willing to accept and respect the future neutrality of
current members of the Alliance, it would be very much in our interest to
pursue the possibility. My biggest reservation is whether or not the Republic
will accept anything of the sort, though."
"They've
been trying to split the Alliance for decades," Brigham pointed out.
"Yes,
they have. But one thing Eloise Pritchart and Thomas Theisman obviously aren't
is stupid, which means they're as well aware as we are of how the strategic and
operational realities have changed. So, if I were they, I'd be very tempted to
reject any easy out for our allies. I'd insist on their surrender,
rather than simply allowing them to say they're tired of playing and want to go
home."
"Or,"
Brigham said slowly, "you might agree to allow them to become neutral,
when what you really intend to do is sweep them right up as soon as we withdraw
our units and leave them on their own."
"That's
certainly one possibility. And given the Pritchart Administration's apparent
track record in interstellar diplomacy, quite a few people opposed to the idea
are making the same point. Personally, I think that if Pritchart officially
agreed to accept their neutrality, she'd almost have to stand by her word
precisely because of the dispute over what happened to our diplomatic
correspondence before the shooting started again. I've said as much, not
without evoking quite a bit of incredulity. It's not a point on which the
Government at large and I, or even my new brother-in-law and I, seem to be in
close agreement." She grimaced. "Fortunately, perhaps, it's a
decision I don't have to make."
"But
it is going to affect our stance here, isn't it? That's why you brought it
up."
"Yes,
it is. As things stand now, we're being forced to make even heavier commitments
to Alizon and the other secondary systems because of what happened at Zanzibar.
Which means, of course, that finding replacements and reinforcements for Eighth
Fleet just got even harder. And given what we blundered into in Solon,
Admiralty House is insistent that we have to be reinforced before we resume
offensive operations. We can't afford another hammering like the one Giscard
gave us."
"So
it's confirmed that it was Giscard?"
"The
news came in just before my shuttle left. He's been officially voted the thanks
of the Republic's Congress for his successful defense of Solon. And Tourville
got the same thing for hammering Zanzibar."
"That's
good to know," Brigham said thoughtfully. Honor looked at her, and the
chief of staff shrugged. "It always makes me feel better, somehow, to be
able to put a face on the enemy, Your Grace."
"Does
it?" Honor shook her head. "It helps me when I consider their
probable actions or reactions, but I really think I'd rather not know the
people on the other side. It's easier to kill strangers."
"Don't
fool yourself, Your Grace," Brigham said quietly. "I've known you a
long time now. The fact that they're strangers doesn't make you feel any better
about killing them."
Honor
looked at her again, more sharply, and her chief of staff looked back levelly.
And she was right, Honor thought.
"At
any rate," she continued, her tone conceding the point, "we can't
afford to let them do that to us again for several reasons. The losses
themselves are painful enough, but we've got to regain the momentum, and we're
not going to be able to do that if they keep bloodying our nose. So the
decision's been taken that even though it's important to get back onto the
offensive as quickly as we can, we're not going to do it until we've been able
to reinforce Eighth Fleet significantly. Which means turning up additional
modern wallers, among other things."
"Which
is going to take how long?" Brigham asked anxiously.
"At
least another six to eight weeks. That's why I said Imperator's repair
time wasn't going to set us back badly."
"New
wallers sound good, but I hate the thought of giving them that much free time,
Your Grace." Brigham's expression was worried. "They've got to be
tempted to follow up their success against Zanzibar, and if we take the
pressure off of them for a couple of months . . . ."
She let her
voice trail off, and Honor nodded.
"I
made the same point to Admiral Caparelli and the Strategy Board. And I also
made a suggestion about how we might alleviate some of the worse consequences
of having to effectively stand down Eighth Fleet's offensive for that
long."
"What
sort of suggestion, Your Grace?" Brigham regarded her narrowly.
"We're
going to try to keep them looking over their shoulders. Beginning next
week—about the time we'd be doing it anyway, if we were following the cycle we
established in Cutworm Two and Three—our destroyers are going to start scouting
half a dozen of their systems. They'll do exactly what they've been doing as
the preliminary for each of our earlier attacks. Except, of course, that there
won't be any attacks."
"That's
. . . deliciously nasty, Your Grace," Brigham said admiringly.
"They'll have to assume we do plan to attack and react accordingly."
"Initially,
at least. I suspect they're smart enough to wonder if that isn't exactly what
we're doing, since they know they've hurt us badly. But I think you're right;
they're going to have to honor the threat, at least the first time we do it to
them. After that, they could change their minds."
"So if
we do it to them two or three times while we aren't ready to attack,"
Brigham said, "get them accustomed to the idea that our scouts are just
part of a strategy of bluffs, then when we are ready to attack—"
"Then
hopefully, scouting the systems will actually give us a bit of an edge of
surprise, since they'll know we aren't really going to hit them,"
Honor agreed. "And if we do it right, we may be able to convince them to
do an al-Bakr and tip their hands on their current defensive thinking and
deployments."
"I
like it," Brigham said. "Obviously, I'd prefer not to have to suspend
operations, but if we have to, let's make it work for us as much as we
can."
"That's
more or less what I was thinking. So why don't you and I spend some time
thinking about which systems we'd like to make them most nervous about?
* * *
"Your
Grace?"
Honor and
Spencer Hawke broke immediately, stepping back towards opposite sides of the
mat. They fell into rest positions, then Honor bowed and Hawke returned the
courtesy before she turned towards James MacGuiness.
"Yes,
Mac?"
MacGuiness
stood just inside the gymnasium hatch. Like Honor's original flagship, HMS
Second Yeltsin was an Invictus-class superdreadnought. Honor had
transferred her flag to her while Imperator was undergoing repairs, but
although she and her staff been aboard Second Yeltsin for almost two
weeks now, ever since her return from Manticore, the ship still didn't feel
like "home."
Still, it
wasn't exactly like camping out in a hut in the woods, either. Second
Yeltsin, like Imperator, had been built as a flagship from the keel
out, and several of her amenities reflected her flagship status, including the
small, well-equipped private "flag gym" one deck down from the
admiral's personal quarters. Honor had preferred to use the main gymnasium
aboard Imperator, where she could take the pulse of the flagship's
crew's morale and attitudes, but since Simon Mattingly's and Timothy Mears'
deaths, Andrew LaFollet had put his foot down firmly. He simply could not
guarantee her security with so many people so close together, and his
feelings—and concern—had been so strong that this time Honor had offered barely
token resistance. Even now, she could taste her personal armsman's focused
attention as he stood behind MacGuiness, of all people, tautly wary of any
sudden move on the other man's part.
"There's
a special courier boat, Your Grace." If MacGuiness was aware of LaFollet's
scrutiny, and he almost certainly was, he gave no sign of it. Nor did Honor
taste any resentment of her armsmen's heightened wariness in MacGuiness'
mind-glow. "It's from Admiralty House," he continued. "It just
came through the Junction, and Harper's already received a transmission from
it. It has personal dispatches aboard for you."
Honor felt
her eyebrows try to rise. The regular morning shuttle from Manticore had
arrived barely three hours ago; the evening shuttle was due in another five. So
what was so urgent that the Admiralty had sent it aboard a special dispatch
boat?
She felt a
sudden pang of anxiety, then forced herself to put it aside. If this had been
some sort of personal bad news, it would have arrived aboard a private courier,
not an official Admiralty dispatch boat.
"Thank
you, Mac," she said calmly. "I'll grab a shower and take the
dispatches in my quarters."
"Of
course, Your Grace."
MacGuiness
bobbed his head and departed, and Honor turned back to Hawke.
"I'm
sorry to break this up, Spencer. I think you're starting to get the hang of
it." Hawke grinned; he'd only been studying coup de vitesse for ten
T-years. "Schedule permitting, maybe we can finish the session before
supper," she said.
"As
always, My Lady, I'm at your disposal," he told her with a bow, and she
chuckled and looked at LaFollet.
"By
golly, we're getting close to getting him civilized, aren't we?"
"'Close'
only counts in horseshoes, hand grenades, and tactical nuclear weapons, My
Lady," LaFollet replied gravely.
* * *
Honor slid
the data chip into her desktop terminal. The display came up, and she frowned
slightly as a header floated before her. The dispatch bore the electronic seal
and personal cipher key of the First Lord, not the First Space Lord. Was
it a personal message from Hamish, after all?
She input
her own key and slid her right hand across the DNA sniffer. An instant later,
the display blinked in acceptance, and the header disappeared, replaced by
Hamish's face. He looked oddly excited, but not worried. In fact, if anything,
the reverse.
"Honor,"
he said, "I suppose I could've let this come to you through normal
channels, but I decided you'd hurt me if I did. So I pulled rank and got Tom
Caparelli to agree to let me send you a special dispatch. Hold onto your socks,
love."
He drew a
deep breath, and Honor felt her shoulders tightening in anticipation of she
knew not what.
"We
just got an official message from the Peeps, delivered through Erewhon. It's an
updated list of the names of POWs and of our personnel who they've confirmed as
KIAs. According to it, Mike Henke is alive."
Honor sat
back in her chair as abruptly as if someone had punched her in the chest.
Which, she realized an instant later, as Nimitz reared up on his perch in
reaction to her emotional spike, was exactly what it felt like. She stared at
the display, and Hamish looked back out of it at her without speaking for
several seconds, as if he'd anticipated her reaction and was giving her time to
fight through it before he continued.
"We
don't have many details," he went on after several seconds, "but it
sounds as if Ajax must've gotten at least one of her boat bays
cleared. From the list, it looks like about a third of her people got off,
including Mike. She's hurt, we don't know how badly, but according to the
Peeps' message, her injuries are definitely not life-threatening, and she's
getting the best medical care they can provide. In fact, all of your wounded
are.
"There's
at least a suggestion, towards the end of their message, that they might be
open to the idea of prisoner exchanges. You've been telling us all along that
there's a big difference between the current régime and Pierre and his
cutthroats. This certainly seems to bear that out. Of course, there are
those—including the Queen—who argue that this is some sort of a trick,
something designed to put us off guard, somehow, by a leopard who doesn't know
how to change its spots. But whether they're right or not, I knew you'd want to
know about Mike as soon as possible.
"According
to their dispatch, the Peeps intend to allow personal messages from and to their
POWs, strictly according to the Deneb Accords. Which is another refreshing
change from StateSec or the Legislaturalists. I figured you'd probably want to
start thinking about a message to her."
He paused
again, giving her a few more seconds to think, then smiled.
"Whatever
her suspicions, Elizabeth's overjoyed to know Mike is still alive. So is
everyone who knows her. And Emily and I are almost happier for you than
we are for ourselves. Be well, love. Clear."
The display
blanked, and Honor sat staring at it. Nimitz swarmed down from his perch,
climbed into her arms, and patted her on the cheek. She looked down, and his
flying fingers began to sign.
<See?
Told you things would get better. Now maybe your mind-glow will finish
healing.>
"I'm
sorry, Stinker." She stroked the back of his head. "I know I haven't
been the best company since Solon."
<You
lost a fight,> he signed back. <The first one you ever really lost. I
don't think you knew how to do that. And you thought your friend was gone. Of
course your mind-glow was darker. Strong Heart and Sees Clearly are good for
you, they make you whole, but you have always been hardest on yourself. Deep
inside, you could not forgive yourself for Mike's death. Now you don't have
to.>
"Maybe
you're right." She hugged him gently. It was unusual for him to use Hamish
and Emily's treecat names in normal conversation. The fact that he had
reflected how concerned he'd been about her, she realized, and she hugged him
again.
"Maybe
you're right," she repeated, and her face blossomed in an enormous smile
as she felt the realization that her best friend was still alive sinking home
on an emotional as well as an intellectual basis. "In fact, Stinker, I
think you are right. And I also think we'd better go find Mac and tell him
about this before he finds out from someone else!"
* * *
"Admiral
Henke."
Michelle
Henke opened her eyes, then struggled hastily upright in the hospital bed as
she saw the person who'd spoken her name. It wasn't easy, with her left leg
still in traction while the quick heal rebuilt the shattered bone. But although
they'd never met, she'd seen more than enough publicity imagery to recognize
the platinum-haired, topaz-eyed woman standing at the foot of her bed.
"Don't
bother, Admiral," Eloise Pritchart said. "You've been hurt, and this
isn't really an official visit."
"You're
a head of state, Madam President," Henke said dryly, getting herself
upright and then settling back in relief as the elevating upper end of the bed
caught up with her shoulders. "That means it is an official
visit."
"Well,
perhaps you're right," Pritchart acknowledged with a charming smile. Then
she gestured at the chair beside the bed. "May I?"
"Of
course. After all, it's your chair. In fact," Henke waved at the pleasant,
if not precisely luxurious, room, "this is your entire hospital."
"In a
manner of speaking, I suppose."
Pritchart
seated herself gracefully, then sat there for several seconds, her head cocked
slightly to the side, her expression thoughtful.
"To
what do I owe the honor, Madam President?" Henke asked finally.
"Several
things. First, you're our senior POW, in several senses. You're the highest
ranking, militarily speaking, and you're also—what? Fifth in the line of
succession?"
"Since
my older brother was murdered, yes," Henke said levelly, and had the
satisfaction of seeing Pritchart flinch ever so slightly.
"I'm
most sincerely sorry about the death of your father and your brother, Admiral
Henke," she said, her voice equally level, meeting Henke's eyes squarely
as she spoke. "We've determined from our own records that StateSec was, in
fact, directly responsible for that assassination. The fanatics who actually
carried it out may have been Masadans, but StateSec effectively recruited them
and provided the weapons. As far as we're able to determine, all the
individuals directly involved in the decision to carry out that operation are
either dead or in prison. Not," she continued as Henke's eyebrows began to
arch in disbelief, "because of that particular operation, but because of
an entire catalog of crimes they'd committed against the people of their own
star nation. In fact, while I'm sure it won't do anything to alleviate your own
grief and anger, I'd simply point out that the same people were responsible for
the deaths of untold thousands—no, millions—of their own citizens. The Republic
of Haven has had more than enough of men and women like that."
"I'm
sure you have," Henke said, watching the other woman carefully. "But
you don't seem to have completely renounced their methods."
"In
what way?" Pritchart asked a bit sharply, her eyes narrowing.
"I
could bring up the little matter of your immediately pre-war diplomacy, except
that I'm reasonably certain we wouldn't agree on that point," Henke said.
"So instead, I'll restrict myself to pointing out your attempt to
assassinate Duchess Harrington. Who, I might remind you, happens to be a
personal friend of mine."
"I'm
aware of your close relationship with the Duchess," Pritchart said.
"In fact, that's one of the several reasons I mentioned for this
conversation. Some of my senior officers, including Secretary of War Theismann
and Admiral Tourville and Admiral Foraker have met your 'Salamander.' They
think very highly of her. And if they believed for a moment that my
administration had ordered her assassination, they'd be very, very displeased
with me."
"Forgive
me, Madam President, but that's not exactly the same thing as saying you didn't
authorize it."
"No,
it isn't, is it?" Pritchart smiled. "I'd forgotten for a moment that
you're used to moving at the highest level of politics in the Star Kingdom. You
have a politician's ear, even if you are 'only a naval officer.' However, I'll
be clearer. Neither I, nor anyone else in my administration, ordered or authorized
an attempt to assassinate Duchess Harrington."
It was
Henke's eyes' turn to narrow. As Pritchart said, she was accustomed to dealing
with Manticoran politicians, if not politics per se. In her time,
she'd met some extraordinarily adroit and polished liars. But if Eloise
Pritchart was another of them, it didn't show.
"That's
an interesting statement, Madam President. Unfortunately, with all due respect,
I have no way to know it's accurate. And even if you think it is, that doesn't
necessarily mean some rogue element in your administration didn't order
it."
"I'm
not surprised you feel that way, and we here in the Republic have certainly had
more than enough experience with operations mounted by 'rogue elements.' I can
only say I believe very strongly that the statement I just made is accurate.
And I'll also say I've replaced both my external and internal security chiefs
with men I've known for years, and in whom I have the greatest personal
confidence. If any rogue operation was mounted against Duchess Harrington, it
was mounted without their knowledge or approval. Of that much, I'm absolutely
positive."
"And
who else would you suggest might have a motive for wanting her dead? Or the
resources to try to kill her in that particular fashion?"
"We
don't have many specific details about how the attempt was made,"
Pritchart countered. "From what we have seen, however, speculation seems
to be centering on the possibility that her young officer—a Lieutenant Mears, I
believe—was somehow adjusted to make the attempt on her life. If that's the
case, we don't have the resources to have done it. Certainly not in the
time window which appears to have been available to whoever carried out the
adjustment. Assuming that's what it was, of course."
"I
hope you'll forgive me, Madam President, if I reserve judgment in this
case," Henke said after a moment. "You're very convincing. On the
other hand, like me, you operate at the highest level of politics, and politicians
at that level have to be convincing. I will, however, take what you've
said under advisement. Should I assume you're telling me this in hopes I'll
pass your message along to Queen Elizabeth?"
"From
what I've heard of your cousin, Admiral Henke," Pritchart said wryly,
"I doubt very much that she'd believe any statement of mine, including a
declaration that water is wet."
"I see
you've got a fairly accurate profile of Her Majesty," Henke observed.
"Although that's probably actually something of an understatement,"
she added.
"I
know. Nonetheless, if you get the opportunity, I wish you'd tell her that for
me. You may not believe this, Admiral, but I didn't really want this war,
either. Oh," Pritchart went on quickly as Henke began to open her mouth,
"I'll freely admit I fired the first shot. And I'll also admit that given
what I knew then, I'd do the same thing again. That's not the same thing as wanting
to do it, and I deeply regret all the men and women who have been killed
or, like yourself, wounded. I can't undo that. But I would like to think it's
possible for us to find an end to the fighting short of one of us killing everyone
on the other side."
"So
would I," Henke said levelly. "Unfortunately, whatever happened to
our diplomatic correspondence, you did fire the first shot. Elizabeth isn't the
only Manticoran or Grayson—or Andermani—who's going to find that difficult to
forget or overlook."
"And
are you one of them, Admiral?"
"Yes,
Madam President, I am," Henke said quietly.
"I
see. And I appreciate your honesty. Still, it does rather underscore the nature
of our quandary, doesn't it?"
"I
suppose it does."
Silence
fell in the sunlit hospital room. Oddly enough, it was an almost companionable
silence, Henke discovered. After perhaps three minutes, Pritchart straightened
up, inhaled crisply, and stood.
"I'll
let you get back to the business of healing, Admiral. The doctors assure me
you're doing well. They anticipate a full recovery, and they tell me you can be
discharged from the hospital in another week or so."
"At
which point it's off to the stalag?" Henke said with a smile. She waved
one hand at the unbarred windows of the hospital room. "I can't say I'm
looking forward to the change of view."
"I
think we can probably do better than a miserable hut behind a tangle of razor
wire, Admiral." There was actually a twinkle in Pritchart's topaz eyes.
"Tom Theismann has strong views on the proper treatment of prisoners of
war—as Duchess Harrington may remember from the day they met in Yeltsin. I
assure you that all our POWs are being properly provided for. Not only that,
I'm hoping it may be possible to set up regular prisoner of war exchanges,
perhaps on some sort of parole basis."
"Really?"
Henke was surprised, and she knew it showed in her voice.
"Really."
Pritchart smiled again, this time a bit sadly. "Whatever else, Admiral,
and however hardly your Queen may be thinking about us just now, we really
aren't Rob Pierre or Oscar Saint-Just. We have our faults, don't get me wrong.
But I'd like to think one of them isn't an ability to forget that even enemies
are human beings. Good day, Admiral Henke."
The pinnace
drifted slowly down the length of the spindle-shaped mountain of alloy. Honor,
Nimitz, Andrew LaFollet, Spencer Hawke, Rafael Cardones, and Frances Hirshfield
sat gazing out the armorplast viewport as the small craft reached the
superdreadnought's after hammerhead and braked to a complete halt, like a
tadpole beside a slumbering whale.
Hard-suited
construction workers, robotic repair units, and an ungainly webwork of girders
and work platforms, all arranged with microgravity's grand contempt for the
concept of "up and down," clustered about the ship as she floated
against the stars. Powerful work lamps illuminated the frenetic activity of the
repair crews and their robotic minions, and Honor frowned thoughtfully as she
watched the bustling energy.
"Looks
pretty terrible, doesn't it, Your Grace?" Cardones said, and she shrugged.
"I've
seen lots worse. Remember the old Fearless after Basilisk?"
"Or
the second one after Yeltsin," Cardones agreed. "But it's still like
seeing your kid in the emergency room." He shook his head. "I hate
seeing her in this shape."
"She
looks a lot better than she did, Skipper," Hirshfield pointed out.
"Yes,
she does," Cardones acknowledged, glancing at his executive officer.
"On the other hand, there was a lot of room for improvement."
"The
important thing is that the yard dogs say you can have her back in another six
days," Honor said, turning away from the viewport to look at him,
"and that's good. Captain Samsonov's been perfectly satisfactory, but I
want my flag captain back."
"I'm
flattered, Your Grace. But even after I get her back, we're going to need some
pretty serious exercises to blast the rust off."
"Oh,
I've been keeping an eye on you, Rafe," Honor said with a smile. "You
and Commander Hirshfield here have kept your people hopping in the simulators
the entire time the ship's been down. I'm sure you will need a few days, at
least, but I doubt you've let too much rust accumulate."
"We've
tried not to," Cardones admitted. "And it's helped that we didn't
have to completely shut down. Just being able to keep our people on board
helped, and we've been able to drill regularly with the forward weapons mounts,
at least."
"I
know. I wish I'd been able to stay, myself. Unfortunately—"
Honor
shrugged, and Cardones nodded in understanding. Honor could, theoretically,
have remained on board Imperator, since the repair techs had been
working primarily on exterior sections of the hull and, as Cardones had said,
the rest of her crew had never had to leave her. Unfortunately, Imperator
had been thoroughly immobilized, and if any emergency had turned up, Honor would
have required a flagship capable of moving and fighting.
"Still,"
she went on, "I'm looking forward to moving back aboard. Mac is looking
forward to it, too." She grinned. "Actually, he's got at least half
my stuff already packed up!"
"We're
ready whenever you are, Ma'am," Cardones told her.
"Unless
the yard dogs manage to break something new, I think I'll make the move in
about four days," Honor said. "I'll start then, anyway. It's going to
take at least a couple of days for Mac to get everything moved and settled back
into place, and I need to make another run to Admiralty House this week,
anyway. I think I can schedule it to overlap with the move and let Mac get
everything arranged while I'm on Manticore."
"That
sounds fine to me, Your Grace," Cardones said, and Hirshfield—who, as
Imperator's XO, was actually in charge of all such housekeeping
details—nodded in agreement.
"Good,"
Honor turned away from the viewport. "In that case, let's get back over to
Yeltsin. We'll just about have time for lunch before the staff meeting if
we hurry."
* * *
"We're
calling the new operation 'Sanskrit,'" Andrea Jaruwalski told the
assembled admirals, commodores, and captains in HMS Second Yeltsin's
flag briefing room. "'Cutworm,' unfortunately, got leaked to the newsies,
and it's been bandied about quite a bit over the last several weeks. Besides,
we're going to be adopting an entirely new operational approach, so a new
designation makes sense from a lot of perspectives."
She looked
around the big compartment, and Honor reached up to gently rub Nimitz's ears
while she listened. The next best thing to eight weeks had passed since Task
Force 82 limped back into Trevor's Star, and as she'd feared, Eighth Fleet's
reinforcement had taken a heavy hit in the wake of the Zanzibar disaster.
Despite the fact that there was nothing left, really, to defend in the Zanzibar
System, it had been politically impossible to refuse to station a powerful
defensive force to keep an eye on the ruins. And Alizon, in particular, had
been vociferous about the need to bolster its defenses. It was fortunate
that over forty Andermani superdreadnoughts had finally completed their refits
to handle Manticoran missile pods and reported for duty. But even with that
reinforcement, finding the sheer number of hulls required had been
extraordinarily difficult.
Now,
though, things were beginning to look up. An entire division of Invictuses had
arrived just yesterday, and two more superdreadnought divisions, all pod types,
were anticipated before the end of the week. If things stayed on schedule,
Eighth Fleet would have three entire squadrons of SD(P)s—eighteen ships—on its
order of battle within the next two weeks. Additional battlecruisers, including
the next five Agamemnons, had also come in, and Admiralty House was
promising her three more Saganami-Cs, as well. And while all that had
been going on, Alice Truman and Samuel Miklós had been reorganizing their
carriers' LAC wings, incorporating twice as many Katanas into their
orders of battle.
"This,
of course," Jaruwalski continued, "is only a preliminary meeting. Her
Grace wants us to be sure we're all thinking in the same direction. At the
moment, we're planning on an execute date nineteen days from today. The preliminary
operations plan, based on our anticipated units, will be drafted over the next
ten days. At the end of that time, we'll conduct a dress rehearsal in the
simulators. Any problems that come up will be discussed, and we'll draft a
revised ops plan over the next three or four days. At that time we should know
definitely what our unit availability will be, and we'll make any adjustments
necessary. We'll run the revised plan through the simulator at X minus three
days."
One or two
of the people sitting at the table looked less than delighted at the
timetable's tightness. In fact, Honor sensed several spikes of emotion which
verged on consternation, and she couldn't blame the officers who were feeling
them.
She looked
up at Jaruwalski and made a tiny gesture with her right hand. The operations
officer immediately turned to face her, and every other eye followed hers as if
by magnetic attraction.
"I
realize we're cutting things tight, people," Honor said, when she was sure
she had everyone's attention. "That's particularly true for the new ships
just joining us. And for those of you who've been with us from the beginning,
it seems even more rushed, I'm sure, after our relative inactivity over the
last couple of months.
"The
problem is that we don't have a lot more time. Intelligence reports indicate
the Havenites have been doing a lot of the same things we've been doing.
They've been analyzing and considering what happened at Solon and Zanzibar, and
they've also been adding new construction to their fleets. Those same reports
strongly suggest they're getting ready to uncork a new offensive of their own.
It's imperative that we get our punch in first and force them to worry about
their rear areas again. Unfortunately, we haven't been able to do any
definitive planning of our own because we simply haven't known what we'd have
available at the time. And, frankly, because the operational change Commander
Jaruwalski has already referred to required a substantial reinforcement of our
wall of battle.
"The
ships we need are finally becoming available, and the instant I have sufficient
hulls to launch Sanskrit, it goes. I want that clearly understoodt. This
operation must proceed as expeditiously as possible. ONI's latest
estimate gives the Havenites over five hundred SD(P)s; the Alliance at this
moment has less than three hundred. It's quite possible," her brown eyes
were very level, "that the fate of the Star Kingdom may depend on our
ability to make the Havenites anxious enough about their rear areas to divert
heavy forces to protect them."
The
compartment was very quiet, but Honor felt a sense of satisfaction as she
tasted her subordinates' emotions. Concern still colored several individual
mind-glows, but determination predominated, and she nodded.
"Andrea?"
she said.
"Thank
you, Your Grace."
Jaruwalski
also surveyed the officers around the huge conference table, then keyed a
holographic star map. It appeared above the conference table, and she tapped
keys on her control pad, dropping a cursor into the map. It singled out a star,
and Honor felt a fresh stir of surprise.
"Lovat,
Ladies and Gentlemen," Jaruwalski said. "The system Admiral White
Haven would have taken if High Ridge hadn't swallowed Saint-Just's bait hook,
line, and sinker. We're going back there."
* * *
"You're
confident you can do it with just three battle squadrons?" Admiral
Caparelli asked.
"As
confident as I can be," Honor replied, a bit more calmly than she actually
felt.
She sat in
a conference room deep inside Admiralty House, at a conference table surrounded
by comfortable chairs, most of them empty at the moment. Honor herself was
flanked by Mercedes Brigham on her right and Andrea Jaruwalski on her left.
Nimitz lay stretched across the back of her chair, and Andrew LaFollet stood
directly behind her.
Caparelli
faced her across the table, flanked by Captain Dryslar, his chief of staff, and
Patricia Givens. Admiral of the Green Sonja Hemphill was also present, along
with Commander ColemanHennessy, her chief of staff, but Hamish
Alexander-Harrington was conspicuously absent. Technically, this was a matter
for his uniformed subordinates, and he'd been extraordinarily careful ever
since becoming First Lord to avoid stepping on those subordinates' toes, but
under other circumstances he might have attended, anyway.
"This
isn't going to be like Cutworm," Honor continued. "We're going to do
to Lovat what Tourville did to Zanzibar. We're going to strike directly at one
of the nodes they strengthened heavily post-Buttercup, and we're going to do it
in a way which makes a declaration. Were going to tell them that they really,
really don't want to screw around with us."
"That
sounds like a very good idea, Your Grace," Admiral Givens said. "My
only concern is how badly you may get hurt in the process of attempting to pull
it off."
"We're
not going to 'attempt' anything, Pat," Honor said flatly. "We're
going to do it."
"Run
through it for us again, please," Caparelli requested.
"A lot
of our planning revolves around Admiral Hemphill's newest toys," Honor
said, nodding respectfully to the BuWeaps CO. "The rest is predicated on
three basic assumptions. First, that the Havenites are likely to believe our
scouting destroyers are simply more of the misdirection we've been using to
cover up our inability to mount actual operations. The second is that they know
we've been forced to divert large numbers of wallers to thicken the defenses of
Alizon, Zanzibar, and our other minor allies. And the third is that we
established an operational pattern in Cutworm of operating in relatively light
strength against relatively lightly defended star systems, and that they'll
expect to us to continue it.
"Obviously,
we can't absolutely rely on any of those premises, but we believe they should
all hold true. In particular, although they've got to be concerned about the
security of Lovat, we've consistently shied away from hitting targets that
hard. That ought to generate at least some sense of false security, no matter
how good they are.
"We
know from our operations over the last sixty days that they've been reacting
vigorously to our scouting operations. It's pretty obvious they've been trying
to identify the systems we're likely to hit and stationing forces in hyper to
cover them.
"As
you know, we planned and executed a feint attack on the Suarez System three
weeks ago. We sent in scouting destroyers, then, after a couple of days, sent
in Admiral Truman's carrier squadron, escorted by a single squadron of
battlecruisers and one of heavy cruisers. Admiral Truman launched half her LACs
and sent them in-system, accompanied by a dozen Ghost Rider EW platforms
simulating the emissions signatures of battlecruisers and superdreadnoughts,
then translated back out with her hyper-capable units. Given the endurance on
the Ghost Rider micro fusion plants, we estimated that they'd be able to
continue their deception long enough to draw a response.
"We
got one. It was a virtual repeat of what they did to me at Solon. This time,
though, we'd expected what we got, and they'd planned their interception based
on the maximum acceleration rates of the wallers they thought we'd sent in, not
LACs. In addition, three-quarters of our LACs were Katanas, which made
them extraordinarily difficult missile targets. Our LACs were able to avoid
interception and break back out across the limit before any of the defenders
could follow them. Admiral Truman recovered them at the prearranged rendezvous,
and translated back out.
"The
operation did several things. First, it confirmed that, at that time, at least,
they were sticking with a doctrine which had worked. Second, it gave us an
opportunity to evaluate how quickly this covering force, as compared to the one
we encountered at Solon, responded. Third, we hope it made them even more
confident that we've been essentially running a bluff, without the
wherewithal—or the will—to mount a serious raid. And, fourth, while they were
busy bringing up their defenses, and before they realized we were using drones
on them, they activated the same sort of control network they must have used at
Solon. We'd hoped they would, and Admiral Truman had sensor arrays deep enough
in-system to see them do it, so now we know what to look for in our next
op."
She paused
and reached for the glass sitting at the corner of her blotter. Andrea
Jaruwalski quickly topped it off with ice water from a carafe, and Honor smiled
her thanks before she sipped. Then she set the glass down and looked back up at
Caparelli, Givens, and Hemphill.
"We
ran a few other ops, similar in nature but without the electronic warfare
platforms. In two cases, we drew no response at all, which leads us to suspect
that in those two cases there were picket forces hiding in hyper which never
got called in because they never saw a threat. In most of the others, the
arrival of our scout units was the signal for courier boats to translate out,
and fairly hefty response forces turned up within anywhere from forty-eight
hours to four days. So, it looks like they've adopted a nodal strategy, in
addition to staking out the systems they believe we're most likely to attack.
"By
picking Lovat, we believe we'll be striking directly at one of those nodal
forces. If we can punch it out when we hit, there shouldn't be anything else
close enough to be called in on us for at least seventy-two hours, if our
analysis of their previous operations is accurate. In addition, since we'll be
scouting a heavily defended system, and we've established a pattern of sending diversionary
scouts into systems we have no intention of attacking, we believe they'll be
skeptical about our intentions. Even if they aren't, there's no reason for them
to call in additional reinforcements before we actually hit them.
"And
this time around, especially since we know what to look for in their system
defense control net, we ought to be able to neutralize it with Mistletoe before
they ever get a chance to use it. In which case, it will be our wallers and our
LACs against theirs, in a standup fight without the sort of missile launch
which hammed us at Solon."
"So
you're confident you can neutralize their system defense command and control
systems?" Givens asked, but her attention was more than half on Hemphill,
and Honor smiled.
"Admiral
Hemphill and I haven't always been on the same page," she began, and
Hemphill actually chuckled.
"You
might say that, Your Grace," she said, "if you're given to
understatement. I seem to recall a rather passionate debriefing you gave the
Weapons Development Board after that little affair in Basilisk."
"I was
younger then, Admiral," Honor said almost demurely. "And I was mildly
irritated, at the time."
"And
rightly so," Hemphill said with a nod. She shook her head. "I don't
believe I've ever had the opportunity to actually tell you this, Your Grace,
but I always envisioned Fearless as a testbed. I never expected her to
be committed to combat, especially not totally unsupported. The fact that you
managed to win was an impressive testimony to your tactical ability. And the
fact that you were—'mildly irritated,' I believe you said—was certainly
understandable. Besides," she chuckled again, "having watched your
track record over the last few years, I'm inclined to doubt you've mellowed all
that much since."
"Not
mellowed," Honor said with another smile. "Just gained a greater
sense of . . . diplomacy."
This time
Caparelli and Givens joined Hemphill's laughter, and Caparelli tipped his chair
back.
"I
believe you are about to respond to Pat's question, Your Grace?" he said.
"Yes,
I was," Honor agreed, turning her attention back to Admiral Givens.
"What I was about to say, Pat, is that this time around, I'm convinced
Admiral Hemphill's new wrinkles will do the job. I'd hoped to keep her new toys
tucked away against a rainy day, without letting the Havenites know they exist
until we really, really needed them. Unfortunately, 'really, really need them'
is a pretty good description of where we are right now. At any rate, we've
quietly tested the new hardware in exercises at Trevor's Star, and it's
performed to specs. Obviously, that's not the same as using it operationally,
but the exercise results look very good. In fact, they look much better than
the original projections. We're really still just beginning to appreciate all
the tactical possibilities, but even what we've already worked out is going to
give whoever gets in our way at Lovat fits."
She smiled
again, and this time there was no amusement at all in her expression.
"As a
matter of fact," Admiral Lady Dame Honor Alexander-Harrington said softly,
"I'm rather looking forward to the opportunity."
"Well,
that went pretty well, I thought, Your Grace."
Andrea
Jaruwalski was trying very hard not to preen in satisfaction, and Honor
smothered a smile. Jaruwalski, Brigham, Rafe Cardones, and Yolanda Harriman had
joined her for dinner, and now they all sat back from the table, nursing
after-dinner coffee—or cocoa, as the case might be.
"I suppose
you could say that," Honor said slowly, pursing her lips with a dubious
expression. "Of course, there were a few little glitches."
"There
always are," Brigham pointed out. "Personally, Your Grace, I found
myself wondering just who programmed the simulation to throw that extra
squadron of superdreadnoughts at us."
She gave Honor
an intensely speculative look, which Honor returned with one of total
innocence. The chief of staff transferred her speculation to Commander
Harriman, who suddenly seemed to find the bottom of her coffee cup
extraordinarily interesting.
"It
occurred to me, while I was wondering," Brigham continued, "that
whoever might have decided to do it—and, I trust you'll note, I name no
names—would have needed a minion somewhere in the flagship. Preferably, someone
with access to the tactical computers. Of course, once that ignoble suspicion
occurred to me, I womanfully put it behind me as one unworthy of our open and
forthright command staff."
"Mac!"
Honor called through the pantry hatch.
"Yes,
Your Grace?"
"Bring
me my hip-waders, would you? It's getting deep in here."
"Of
course, Your Grace," MacGuiness replied with perfect aplomb. "Would
you like your snorkel mask, as well?"
"I
don't think it's going to get quite that deep," Honor said as her guests
laughed.
"Very
good, Your Grace," MacGuiness said as he stepped back out of the pantry
and set a second serving of peach cobbler in front of Honor. She smiled her
thanks and picked up her dessert fork again.
"Your
Grace," Brigham said wistfully, watching Honor dig in, "there are
times when I positively hate you and that metabolism of yours."
She patted
her own reasonably flat stomach and shook her head sadly.
"You
should try the downside of it sometime, Mercedes," Honor told her.
"You may envy the way it lets me pander to my sweet tooth, but try waking
up with the sort of middle-of-the-night munchies I got as, say, a
twelve-year-old." She shuddered. "Trust me, as an adolescent, I
seemed to spend all my time shoveling in food, not just half of
it."
She felt a
sudden jab of darker emotion from behind her and glanced over her shoulder.
Andrew
LaFollet stood inside the dining cabin hatch. Before the attempt on Honor's
life, he would have been content to stand his post outside the hatch, given the
guest list. These days, that was out of the question as far as he was
concerned, and she recognized the somberness radiating from him. He was
remembering PNS Tepes and her own half-starved gauntness when he, Jamie
Candless, and Robert Whitman broke her out of a StateSec holding cell.
She caught
his eye long enough to smile gently at him, and he smiled back, shaking off his
mood. Then she turned back to her guests, none of whom had picked up on that
particular bit of byplay.
"Actually,
Andrea, getting back to your original comment, I have to agree. Things did seem
to go quite well, over all. I was especially pleased with the way Mistletoe
worked."
"I
was, too, Your Grace," Cardones said. "At the same time, I can't help
worrying a little bit about the simulation's parameters. If it turns out
Mistletoe doesn't work as well in practice—or, even worse, gets picked up
early—we could be in a world of hurt against another missile attack like the
one they threw at us at Solon."
"You're
right, of course." Honor nodded. She forked up another bite of cobbler,
chewed, and swallowed, then continued. "We deliberately used the more
pessimistic set of assumptions from Admiral Hemphill's testing programs, but we
won't know for certain until we test it against active Havenite defenses. For
the most part, though, BuWeaps has done a pretty good job of simulating enemy
threat levels for quite some time now."
"I
know." Cardones nodded, and smiled. "I didn't say my worries were all
that reasonable, Your Grace. I just said I had them."
"Personally,
Skipper," Harriman told him, "I'm looking forward to seeing Apollo in
action." Imperator's tactical officer smiled almost beatifically.
"Their point defense better be really good if they expect to go
home with a whole hide this time!"
"I
only hope they don't figure out how few of the new pods we really have,"
Brigham said.
"Unless
their spies have managed a lot better penetration than ONI thinks they have,
they shouldn't realize that," Honor replied. "And if they do have
that kind of penetration, we're in so much trouble already that it won't really
matter if they figure out that particular point."
Brigham
chuckled.
"You're
right, Your Grace, I—"
"Excuse
me, Your Grace."
Honor
turned, eyebrows lowering, as MacGuiness stepped back out of his pantry.
"What
is it, Mac?"
"Communications
just buzzed. A special Admiralty courier boat just cleared the Junction.
According to her captain, she has emergency dispatches onboard."
* * *
The levity
and confidence of Honor's dinner guests was notable for its complete absence as
she sat in her flag briefing room once again. Only Cardones, her staff, and
Andrew LaFollet and Nimitz were physically present, but the huge com display
above the conference table was divided into quadrants showing the faces of
every squadron and divisional commander of her enlarged and more powerful
Eighth Fleet.
The
enlarged and more powerful fleet which wasn't going anywhere, after all, she
thought grimly.
"I'm
sorry to get you all up this late," she began. "Unfortunately, the
Admiralty's news isn't good."
She saw no
surprise on the tense faces in the display. That much, at least, they'd all
obviously guessed.
"This
afternoon, the Admiralty received an emergency dispatch from Admiral Khumalo in
Talbott," she continued evenly. "A copy of that dispatch was included
in the Admiralty download I received an hour ago. Commander Reynolds," she
waved a hand at her intelligence officer, "will put together copies of
most of the material and distribute it to all of you immediately after this
conference. For the moment, to summarize, Admiral Khumalo's informed the
Admiralty that Captain Aivars Terekhov has deduced that the apparently
unrelated terrorist incidents in the Cluster have, in fact, been carefully
orchestrated by outside elements. Specifically, the terrorist Nordbrandt and
her 'Freedom Alliance of Kornati' are being armed with modern weapons by Mesa.
The same apparently holds true for the terrorists operating in the Montana
System, as well."
She clearly
had everyone's attention, she noted with bitter amusement.
"Apparently,
Captain Terekhov has physical proof of that part of his theory. He intercepted
and captured a Jessyk Combine slaver being used to run in the weapons. Before
he did so, however, it used a laser cluster to destroy one of his pinnaces and kill
everyone aboard it."
She closed
her eyes briefly in pain, recalling the bright promise and eagerness of
Midshipwoman Ragnhild Pavletic. Then she opened them once more and continued.
"After
interrogating the slaver's surviving crew and breaking into its computers,
Terekhov concluded that the Republic of Monica is also involved. He believes
the Monicans are being provided with modern warships in sufficient numbers to
provoke a crisis in the Cluster. And he believes the Office of Frontier
Security is also involved, and that OFS is prepared to commit Solly fleet units
to 'restore order' in the Cluster after the Monicans have acted."
Every eye
was riveted on her now, and she looked back steadily.
"At
this moment, the last thing in the universe the Star Kingdom needs is a
shooting incident with the Solarian League Navy. Captain Terekhov is clearly
well aware of that, because, on his own initiative, he's assembled a small
squadron of cruisers and destroyers and moved directly on Monica."
"He's what?"
Alistair McKeon asked sharply. Honor looked at him on the display, and he shook
his head. "He's launched an unauthorized invasion of a sovereign star
nation in time of peace. Is that what you're saying, Your Grace?"
"It's
exactly what I'm saying," Honor replied flatly. "His report was
obviously written with an eye towards publication. He's very careful to make it
clear he's operating solely on his own, without authorization from any
superior. He doesn't say so, but it's clear he's deliberately setting himself
up to be disavowed if necessary. At the same time, he intends to personally
investigate the situation in Monica and, if his suspicions are confirmed, to .
. . neutralize the threat by any means necessary."
There was
total silence, and her eyes moved across the display, examining the face of
each of her senior subordinates in turn.
"Admiral
Khumalo," she continued after a moment, "dispatched a courier boat to
Admiralty House as soon as he received Terekhov's report to him. In his own
dispatches, he informed the Admiralty that he fully endorsed Terekhov's actions
and was moving to support him with all available units."
She
wondered how many of her officers were as surprised by that as she was, but she
allowed no sign of the thought to show itself.
"Under
the circumstances, Admiral Khumalo felt he had no option but to request
immediate reinforcement. Since it's possible Terekhov, or Khumalo, or both of
them may find themselves in a shooting incident with Solarian units, the
Admiralty felt it had no option but to dispatch a significant reinforcement
from Home Fleet. Those units are already on their way to Monica.
"Obviously,
all of these moves have implications for us. The most immediate one is that
Home Fleet is now going to be understrength, and one of the functions of Eighth
Fleet, like Third Fleet, is to serve as a ready reserve for Home Fleet. There's
also the possibility that the Star Kingdom is about to find itself engaged
against Solarian units, and no one is prepared to predict the possible
ramifications of that.
"Because
the entire strategic situation's suddenly been thrown into such a state of
flux, Admiralty House has ordered the temporary stand down of Operation
Sanskrit. For now, we're postponing the execution date by three weeks. That
should give us time to receive dispatches from Terekhov or Khumalo from Monica.
Hopefully, those dispatches will confirm that Terekhov was either wrong or that
he and Khumalo have managed to defuse the situation. In either of those cases,
Sanskrit will be reactivated, although we'll probably face some delay because
of our need to factor in intelligence on any changes which may occur in the
meantime."
She sat
very still, looking at her flag officers, and her face was grimmer than any of
them remembered ever having seen it.
"People,
in my judgment, the Star Kingdom is now facing the greatest danger we have ever
faced," she said quietly. "It's entirely conceivable that we could
find ourselves simultaneously at war with the Republic of Haven and the
Solarian League. Should that occur, our strategic situation would be about as
close to desperate as any I can conceive of. The next month to six weeks may
very possibly determine the fate of our kingdom."
* * *
"You
wanted to see me, Kevin?" Eloise Pritchart asked warily.
"I
wouldn't put it exactly that way," Kevin Usher said almost whimsically.
"I'd say I needed to see you."
"Which
means you're about to tell me something I don't want to hear."
"Which
means I'm about to you something you don't want to hear," Usher agreed.
"Actually, Senior Inspector Abrioux is about to tell you."
"Senior
Inspector?" the President turned to the petite FIA officer, and Danielle
Abrioux returned her look with an unhappy expression.
"Madam
President," she said, "I'm sorry, but the Director and I both feel
we've hit a stone wall. We've tried everything we can think of, and we can't
give you the smoking gun you need."
"Why
not?" Pritchart shook her head quickly. "I'm sorry. That came out
sounding almost accusatory, and I didn't mean it that way. What I meant was,
why is it a stone wall?"
"Because
both our original suspects are dead, and we haven't been able to identify a
single additional damned accomplice," Usher replied for Abrioux.
"Grosclaude still looks like a suicide, although Danny and I are both
positive it was actually homicide. Giancola, damn his black soul to hell, was a
genuine accident, but no one's going to believe it. And Grosclaude's so-called
'evidence' is an obvious, if fairly clever, forgery. Those, unfortunately, are
the only hard facts we have. We've tried every avenue, short of opening a very
public exhaustive investigation, without being able to move beyond those
points. And, frankly, I don't think going public would let us turn up anything
we haven't already found.
"My
own theory, and I think Danny agrees with me," he glanced at Abrioux, who
nodded vigorously, "is still that Giancola pulled the entire thing off
basically on his own, and that he's responsible for the 'forgeries' in
Grosclaude's personal files. He needed Grosclaude to make the substitutions,
and I can't escape the suspicion that he had someone else helping him out at this
end, as well—at least with the computer access he needed. Unfortunately,
there's no clue as to who that someone may have been, assuming he actually
existed at all and that he's not simply someone I desperately want to
exist so I can find him and choke a confession out of him with my bare hands.
But even if he existed, it was Giancola's show."
"And
you're convinced he never meant it to go as far as it did?"
"I'm .
. . not as certain of that as I was," Usher said slowly, and Pritchart
straightened in her chair, looking at him intently.
"Why
not? What's changed?"
"Danny
pointed something out to me the other day," Usher replied. "The Manty
lieutenant who tried to kill Harrington three months ago was apparently acting
under some form of compulsion. From all the information available to us, he was
very close to Harrington. He'd been with her for quite some time, and NavInt's
dossier on her suggests that her inner circle is almost always intensely loyal
and personally devoted to her. So whatever the compulsion was, it had to be
powerful enough to overcome that sort of personal devotion and push him into
committing what was ultimately a suicidal act. But the Manties—whose medical
and forensic establishments, let's face it, are both better than our
own—haven't been able to come up with any explanation for how he was compelled.
Doesn't that sound like what happened to Grosclaude to you?"
"You
think the same people who killed Grosclaude—or, at least, gave Arnold whatever he
used to do the job—also tried to kill Harrington?""Let's just say
I strongly suspect that whatever technique is being used came from the same
source. Now, as the nasty and suspicious sort I am, it occurs to me that if it
came from the same source, it's very possibly being used in support of some
unified strategy. It's possible, I suppose, that it's simply a case of someone
marketing the technology to whoever needs it and can afford it, but I'm
beginning to doubt that's the case." Usher shook his head. "No,
Eloise. There's a pattern here, I just haven't been able to figure out what it
is yet. But what I have seen of it suggests that whoever is behind it doesn't
much care for either us or the Manties."
"So
now you're saying Arnold may have been actively working for someone else to
provoke fresh hostilities between us and the Manties?" Pritchart wished
she'd been able to sound more incredulous than she did.
"I
think it's possible," Usher agreed. "But there are still way too many
unanswered questions for me to suggest exactly why someone might want
that. Did they have enough information on Bolthole to expect to us to roll
right over the Manties for them? In that case, presumably Manticore is the
primary target, and we're simply the blunt instrument. Or did they expect the
Manties to roll over us, which would make us the primary target? Or do
they, for some reason I can't currently envision, simply want the two of us
shooting at one another again, which would make both of us the target of
some third party with a completely unknown agenda of his own?"
"Jesus
Christ, Kevin!" Pritchart stared at him in something very like horror.
"That's so . . . so . . . so twisty just thinking about it makes my
head hurt! What good could sending us back to war with Manticore do any
hypothetical third party?"
"I
just said I couldn't envision what their motives might be. If I could, I could
make a pretty fair stab at figuring out who they were, as well. And it's
entirely possible I'm totally out to lunch with the whole theory. It could be
no more than my 'spook' experience making me see things because Danny and I
have exhausted all of the potential domestic avenues we could see. I just don't
know, Eloise. But I do know this—my instincts all tell me that so far
all we've seen is the tip of an iceberg."
"Good
morning, everyone," Eloise Pritchart said as she walked briskly into the
sunlit chamber.
The Cabinet
Room was on the eastern side of the President's official residence, and the
tide of morning light which flooded in through the extensive windows on the
room's outer wall gleamed on the expensive, polished conference table, inlaid
with half a dozen exotic species of wood. The thick, natural fiber carpet was
like a deep pool of cobalt water, with the Presidential Seal floating on it
like a golden reflection. All of the chairs, except for Pritchart's own, were
upholstered in black; hers was the same blue as the carpet, with the seal of
her office emblazoned on its back. Glasses and expensive crystal carafes of ice
water sat at each place, and optical pickups on the roof of the building fed
the chamber's interior smart walls, which were configured to give a panoramic
view of the city of Nouveau Paris and its morning traffic.
"Good
morning, Madam President," Thomas Theisman, as her Cabinet's acknowledged
senior member, replied for all of them.
According
to the presidential succession established by the Constitution, Leslie
Montreau, Arnold Giancola's successor as Secretary of State, was technically
senior to Theisman, but no one in this room was under any misapprehensions.
Theisman's devotion to the Constitution, and his personal determination to
avoid the office of President, had been accepted by even the most cynical
cabinet secretaries. In a way, however, that only enhanced his powerbase. They
knew he had absolutely no personal ambitions and that he stood squarely behind
Elizabeth Pritchart, the Republic's first elected president in three centuries.
And that
the Republic's military stood squarely behind him.
Pritchart
crossed to her chair, drew it out from the table, sat, and waited a moment
while it adjusted to her body. Then she leaned forward very slightly and swept
the members of her Cabinet with her eyes.
"I
know you're all wondering what this unscheduled meeting is about," she
began. "You're about to find out. You're also about to discover some
things which only a few people in this room already knew. Those things are
going to be shocking, and probably more than a little upsetting, to most of
you. Despite that, I believe you'll understand why the details have been kept
confidential, but I have a policy initiative in mind that's going to require
the full—and fully informed—cooperation of every senior member of this
Administration. I hope you'll give me that cooperation."
She had
their full attention, she observed, and smiled almost whimsically.
"Denis,"
she looked at her Attorney General, "would you ask Kevin and Wilhelm to
join us?"
"Of
course, Madam President."
Denis LePic
pressed a key on his terminal. A moment later, a door opened in the western
wall, like a gap ripped from the heart of the living, breathing image of
Nouveau Paris. Pritchart always found that particular image rather disturbing,
and today it seemed more ominous than usual.
She nodded
in greeting to them, then indicated the empty chairs provided to either side of
LePic. They settled into them, and she returned her attention to her Cabinet,
several of whose members were clearly perplexed . . . and not a little
apprehensive.
"Kevin
and Wilhelm are here to help explain things," she said. "In
particular, Kevin is going to be briefing you on something which he brought to
my attention almost six T-months ago. The short version of it, Ladies and
Gentlemen, is that the High Ridge Government did not falsify our
diplomatic correspondence."
The handful
of people who'd already known that, like Rachel Hanriot, took it fairly calmly.
The rest only stared at her, as if their minds simply weren't up to
understanding what she'd said, for the first several seconds. After that, it
was hard to say whether consternation, disbelief, or anger was the most
predominant emotion. Whatever the emotional mix might have been, however, what
it produced was something very like pandemonium.
She let
them sputter and wave their hands for fifteen or twenty seconds, then rapped
sharply on the table top. The crisp sound penetrated the upheaval, and people
sank back in their chairs once again, still stunned looking, but also more than
a little embarrassed by their initial reactions.
"I
don't blame you for being surprised," the President said into the renewed
silence with generous understatement. "My own reaction when Kevin brought
me his hypothesis was very similar. I'm going to ask him to brief you on a
black investigation which I authorized. It was off the books, and, frankly,
probably not particularly constitutional. Under the circumstances, however, I
felt I had no choice but to green-light his efforts, just as I now have no
choice but to bring all of you into it."
She looked
at Usher.
"Kevin,
if you would," she invited.
* * *
"So
that's about the size of it," Pritchart said thirty minutes later.
Usher's
actual briefing had taken less than ten minutes; the rest of the time had been
occupied in answering questions—some incredulous, some hostile, most angry, and
all worried—from the rest of the Cabinet.
"But
it's all still just speculation," Tony Nesbitt, the Secretary of Commerce,
objected. As one of Arnold Giancola's strongest allies in the Cabinet, he still
seemed much inclined towards incredulity. "I mean, Director Usher just
told us there's no proof."
"No,
he didn't, Tony," Rachel Hanriot said.
Nesbitt
looked at her, and she returned his gaze with one that was almost
compassionate, although they'd generally found themselves on opposite sides of
the power struggle between Pritchart and Giancola.
"What
he said," she continued, "is that there's no way to prove who on
our side did it, although given Arnold's position at State, it's impossible for
me to believe he wasn't the prime mover. But even if the Grosclaude documents
are forgeries, they're very convincing proof that somebody in the
Republic's government falsified the correspondence. At any rate, they seem to
me to clearly demonstrate that the Manties have been telling the exact, literal
truth about their correspondence. Which strongly suggests they're also telling
the truth about the correspondence they say they received from us. Which,
again, points the finger squarely at Arnold."
"But .
. . but my cousin Jean-Claude is—was—Arnold's security chief," Nesbitt
protested. "I can't believe Arnold could've managed something like this
without Jean-Claude at least suspecting." He looked at Montreau.
"Leslie? Have you found anything at State to support all these
allegations?"
Montreau
looked acutely uncomfortable. Despite her position in the official hierarchy,
she was the newest member of the Cabinet, and she cleared her throat a bit
nervously.
"No, I
haven't," she said. "On the other hand, Tony, it never would have
occurred to me to look for any evidence of such . . . incredible criminal
activities. I will say this, however," she added reluctantly. "The
security measures in place at State may still be a bit too much like the ones
the Legislaturalists and the Committee had in place."
"What
do you mean?" Nesbitt asked.
"I
mean too much control passes directly through the Secretary's hands,"
Montreau said bluntly. "I was frankly astonished when I found out how much
access to and control of the Department's security processes goes directly
through my office. It would never have occurred to me that Secretary Giancola
might have done any such thing, but looking at the access I have, and
assuming—as Director Usher does—that he had access to the Manties' Foreign
Office validation codes, as well, he really could have done it. And I'm afraid
that so far, at least, I can't think of anyone else who could have."
Nesbitt sat
back in his chair, clearly dismayed. Pritchart regarded him thoughtfully, but
as far as she could tell, he was at least as astonished as anyone else in the
room. More to the point, he seemed horrified.
"Obviously,"
she said, after a moment, "I've had to proceed very cautiously where this
entire incredible bucket of snakes is concerned. As Kevin and Denis have just
explained in answer to your questions, we don't have—and probably never will
have—the sort of smoking gun we'd need to convince Congress and the public that
what we believe happened actually did. Without that sort of proof, going public
would still be a highly risky decision, I believe."
"It
may be the only option available to us, Madam President," Nesbitt said
after a moment. Everyone looked at him, and he shrugged unhappily. "Don't
think I like saying that. God knows if there's anyone in this room Arnold
completely fooled, it's me, and I'm going to look like an utter idiot when the
newsies finally get hold of this! But if you're right about what happened, then
we're fighting a war we were maneuvered into by a member of our own
administration." He shook his head. "We can't possibly justify not
telling the truth."
"But
the President's right," Henrietta Barloi, the Secretary of Technology,
objected. "No one's going to believe us, and given what happened to
Arnold, everyone is going to think we had him eliminated."
"But
why would we have done that?" Nesbitt demanded.
"I'm
afraid I can come up with several scenarios, Mr. Secretary," Kevin Usher
said.
Everyone
looked at him, and he shrugged.
"If I
were a conspiracy theorist, or just someone with personal political ambitions
or a desire to restore the old régime, my interpretation of what happened might
well be that Secretary Giancola figured out what that arch traitor President
Pritchart had done to justify seeking a declaration of war. When he learned the
truth, she—and, by extension, all of you—ordered his execution. Now, however,
we're afraid the truth is going to leak out, and so we're attempting to fasten
the blame on the man who's safely dead because we murdered him. All of which
demonstrates that our highflown principles and devotion to 'the rule of law'
are so much crap. Which means this entire government—not just the administration—is
a corrupt edifice built upon a Constitution which is nothing but yet another
huge swindle perpetrated on the longsuffering people."
"That's
insane," Nesbitt protested.
"Of
course it is!" Usher snorted. "The best conspiracy theories usually
are! How do you think Cordelia Ransom managed to stay in front of the Mob as
long as she did? But if you don't like that one, here's another. Someone else,
someone in the security area—probably me or Wilhelm, here—did all of this.
Giancola found out, we killed him, and now through a sinister cabal, for
reasons of our own, we're trying to bring the war to a less than fully
successful conclusion and we've spun this whole theory of Giancola's
responsibility as a way to do that. Or, if you don't like that one, it's all an
attempt by someone—probably an alliance of some of the Cabinet secretaries and
Wilhelm and me—to sabotage the President's fully justified and so far
successful war against the evil Manties. Unfortunately, we've managed to pull
the wool over her eyes, and she actually believes our preposterous tale about
Giancola's doctoring the correspondence. Really, the Manties did it all along,
and we murdered him because he was the one man who could have proved they had.
Or—"
Nesbitt was
looking more than a little cross-eyed by then, and Pritchart raised her hand at
Usher.
"That's
enough, Kevin," she said. Then she turned her attention fully to Nesbitt.
"Kevin can't quite forget he used to be a spook, Tony. He's used to
thinking in this kind of twisted, convoluted way. But the point he's
making—that God only knows how this entire thing can be spun by power seekers
or people simply hostile to the Constitution—is unfortunately valid. And don't
any of you believe for a moment that there aren't people out there who fall
into those categories. They're not just all ex-SS goons who've gone to earth,
hoping for a change in the political climate more favorable to their
objectives, either. Unless I'm very much mistaken, Arnold himself was one of
the people who see themselves as players under the old Legislaturalist rules
and would love to see the Constitution overturned, or at least gelded, so they
can get on with it. There are more of them out there, and this situation could
play directly into their hands."
"But
if we can't go public, what can we do?" Nesbitt asked almost
plaintively.
"And,"
Walter Sanderson, Secretary of the Interior, asked, his eyes narrow, "why
tell us about it now? Some of us—like Tony and I—were very close to Arnold. You
can't be certain none of us were involved in whatever he was up to. You also
can't be certain we're not going to leave this room and immediately spill what
you've just told us to the newsies."
"You're
right." Pritchart nodded. "In fact, any or all of you could make an
excellent case for having a constitutional responsibility to go public with it,
whatever I ask you to do. There's no official investigation into it,
yet, but I'm pretty sure a case could be made for my decisions to date
amounting to an attempt to obstruct justice."
"So
why tell us?" Sanderson pressed.
"Because
we may have a window of opportunity to negotiate an end to the war,"
Pritchart told them all.
"What
sort of window, Madam President?" Stan Gregory, the Secretary of Urban
Affairs, asked, and several other people sat more upright, looking almost
hopeful.
"According
to Wilhelm and NavInt," Pritchart said, nodding towards Trajan, "the
Manties are having serious problems in the Talbott Cluster. We don't have
anything like complete information, you understand, but what we do have
suggests they're looking at at least the possibility of a shooting
confrontation with the League."
Someone
inhaled audibly, and Pritchart gave a very thin smile.
The
Solarian League was the galaxy's eight kiloton-gorilla. Although she strongly
suspected that the League Navy had no idea what sort of vibro blade it would be
reaching its fingers into if and when it tangled with the Royal Manticoran
Navy, the possibility of the Star Kingdom's successfully standing up against
such a towering monolith in the long term was remote, to say the least. No
one wanted to take on the Sollies.
"This
presents us with two separate possible opportunities," she continued.
"On the one hand, if they do get into a war with the Solarian League, our
problems, militarily speaking, are solved. They'd have to accept whatever peace
terms we chose to offer if they were going to have any hope at all of resisting
the League.
"On
the other hand, if we offer to negotiate with them now, and let them know we're
aware of the pressures they're under in Talbott, then they'll also be aware we
aren't actively moving to take advantage of this diversion . . . but that we could,
if we wanted to.
"So my
idea is to propose a direct summit meeting, to be held at some mutually
acceptable neutral site, between myself and Queen Elizabeth."
"Madam
President, I don't think—"
"Wait,
are you suggesting—?"
"But
they'll feel like we're holding a pulser to their heads, and—"
"I
think it could work, if—"
Pritchart
rapped on the table top again, harder than before, until the babble subsided.
"I'm
not suggesting this is going to be some sort of silver pulser dart," she
said. "And, yes, Walter, I'm aware that they're going to know we're
'holding a pulser to their heads.' I don't say I expect them to be very happy
about the idea, but if I can ever sit down across the table from Elizabeth
Winton, I may have a chance of convincing her to agree to terms acceptable to
both the Star Kingdom and to our own public."
"Excuse
me, Madam President, but how much of that is realism, and how much is wishful
thinking?" Nesbitt asked almost gently.
"Leslie?"
Pritchart looked at the Secretary of State.
"That's
very difficult to say, Madam President," Montreau said after a moment.
"I take it you're thinking in terms of signing a peace treaty first, and
then, after peace has had a chance to take hold, going public with our
suspicions and holding an open investigation into them?"
"That's
pretty much what I have in mind, yes."
"Well,
it might actually work." Montreau frowned at the Nouveau Paris skyline,
rubbing the tips of her right hand's fingers on her blotter.
"For
one thing, you're right about the pressure the Manties are going to be under,
assuming whatever's going on in Talbott is as serious as you're suggesting.
They won't like that, but they'll have to be realistic, and in the final
analysis, talking is less dangerous to them than shooting, especially if they're
looking at the possibility of a two-front war.
"In
addition," she continued with mounting enthusiasm, "a face-to-face
meeting between the two of you would be such a dramatic departure that even if
you came home with terms which might not be as good as our current military
advantage could secure, the public would probably accept them. Which also
means, of course, that you could go even further towards what the Manties
consider acceptable than you've already offered."
"That's
what I was thinking." Pritchart nodded. "And I'm also thinking, that
if and when we do go public with this in the wake of a peace settlement, we
candidly admit the way in which we allowed ourselves to be maneuvered and offer
fairly hefty reparations to the Manties."
She started
to go further, then stopped. This was no time to admit that she was seriously
considering at least a partial admission of their current suspicions to the
Manticoran Queen if the talks seemed to be going well. One or two of the people
around the table looked outraged at the suggestion she'd already made, but she
shook her head firmly.
"No,"
she said. "Think about it first. First, it's the right thing to do.
Secondly, if we want any peace settlement with the Manties to stand up over the
long haul, and if it turns out someone on our side was responsible for
manipulating our correspondence with them, then we're going to have to make a
substantial gesture towards them, especially since we're the ones who
reinstituted hostilities. And finally, if we find what we all, I think, expect
we'll find, it's going to do enormous diplomatic damage to us. By acknowledging
our responsibility, and by offering to make amends as best we can, we'll have
the best shot at damage control and rehabilitating ourselves in terms of
interstellar diplomacy."
Most of the
outrage faded, although several people still looked profoundly unhappy.
"May I
make a suggestion, Madam President," Thomas Theisman said formally.
"Of
course you may."
"In
that case, I'd suggest one additional point to include in your suggestion of a
summit." Pritchart raised an eyebrow at him, and he shrugged. "I'd
recommend that you specifically request Duchess Harrington's presence at the
conference as a military adviser."
"Harrington?
Why Harrington?" Sanderson asked.
"Several
reasons," Theisman replied. "Including, in no particular order, the
fact that our sources indicate she's consistently been a voice of political
moderation, despite her position as one of their best fleet commanders. The
fact that she's now married to the First Lord of their Admiralty, which also
makes her a sister-in-law of their Prime Minister. The fact that although she
and her Queen are clearly not in agreement where we're concerned, she
remains one of Elizabeth's most trusted confidants, plus a Grayson Steadholder,
and probably the one Benjamin Mayhew trusts most of all. The fact that she and
I, and she and Lester Tourville, have met and, I think, established at least
some sense of rapport. And the fact that all reports indicate she has a rather
uncanny ability to tell when people are lying to her. Which suggests she can
probably tell when they're telling the truth, as well. In short, I think she'd
be a moderating influence on Elizabeth's temper, and the closest thing to a
friend in court we're going to find."
"Madam
President, I think that's an excellent idea," Montreau said. "It
wouldn't have occurred to me, because I tend to think of her as a naval officer
first, but Secretary Theisman's made some very telling points. I recommend you
follow his advice."
"I
agree, too, Madam President," Rachel Hanriot said.
"Very
well, I think we can consider that a part of our suggestion." Pritchart
looked around the table again. "And may I also assume we have a consensus
that the summit ought to be pursued?"
"Yes,"
Nesbitt said, not without a certain obvious reluctance. Pritchart looked at
him, and he shrugged. "I've invested so much in seeing the Manties
beaten after what they did to us in the last war that a part of me just
loathes the thought of letting them off the hook now. But if Arnold did what it
looks like he did, we have no choice but to stop killing each other as quickly
as we can. Just please don't expect me to ever like them."
"All
right." Pritchart nodded. "And, as I'm sure I don't have to remind any
of you, it's absolutely essential we keep our suspicions about all the rest of
this to ourselves until after I've met with Elizabeth."
Vigorous
nods responded, and she leaned back in her chair with a smile.
"Good.
And since we're in agreement, I think I may have exactly the emissary to carry
our offer to Manticore."
"Skipper,
we've got an unscheduled hyper footprint at six million kilometers!"
Captain
Jane Timmons, CO, HMS Andromeda, spun her command chair towards her
tactical officer. Six million kilometers was inside single-drive missile
range!
She opened
her mouth to demand more information, but the tac officer was already providing
it.
"It's
a single footprint, Ma'am. Very small. Probably a dispatch boat."
"Anything
from it?" Timmons asked.
"Not
FTL, Ma'am. And we wouldn't have anything light-speed for another—" he
glanced at the time chop on the initial detection "—another four seconds.
In fact—"
"Captain,"
the com officer said in a very careful voice, "I have a communications
request I think you'd better take."
* * *
The
communicator buzzed in the darkened cabin. Honor sat up quickly, with the
instant wakefulness which had become the norm over the years. Except, perhaps,
she thought with a fleeting smile, even as she reached for the com, when she
was "home" in bed. Then her finger found the dimly illuminated
voice-only acceptance button, and she pressed it.
"Yes?"
"Your
Grace, I'm sorry to wake you." Honor's eyes narrowed. It wasn't
MacGuiness, who almost always screened her after-hours calls; it was Mercedes
Brigham.
"I
don't suppose you did it without reasonably good cause," Honor said, when
Brigham paused.
"Yes,
Your Grace." Honor heard the chief of staff clear her throat. "One of
the perimeter patrol battlecruisers just relayed a transmission to us. It's
from an unscheduled courier boat." She paused again. "A Peep courier
boat."
"A
Havenite courier?" Honor repeated carefully. "Here?"
"That's
correct, Your Grace." There was a very strange note in Brigham's voice,
Honor noticed. But before she could probe, the chief of staff continued,
"I think you should probably view the transmission we received from it,
Your Grace. May I patch it through?"
"Of
course," Honor said, feeling just a bit mystified, and pressed the button
to accept a visual feed, as well. The display blinked alive with Imperator's
communications system's wallpaper, and then Honor twitched as a most familiar
face appeared.
"I
suppose this is all a bit irregular," Rear Admiral Michelle Henke said,
"but I have a message for Her Majesty from the President of the Republic
of Haven."
* * *
Honor was
waiting behind the side party as Andromeda's pinnace settled into the
boat bay docking arms. She managed to look completely calm, although the slow,
steady twitching of Nimitz's tail as he sat on her shoulder, gave away her
inner mood to those who knew the 'cat well.
The
personnel tube ran out, the green light blinked, and then Michelle Henke swung
gingerly through the interface from the tube's microgravity into Imperator's
internal grav field. She obviously favored her left leg as she landed, and
Honor could taste her physical discomfort as she came to attention and saluted
through the twitter of bosun's pipes.
"Battlecruiser
Squadron Eighty-One, arriving!"
"Permission
to come aboard, Sir?" she requested from the officer of the deck.
"Permission
granted, Admiral Henke!"
Both hands
fell from the salute, and Henke stepped past the BBOD with a noticeable limp.
"Mike,"
Honor said, very quietly, taking her friend's offered hand in a firm clasp.
"It's good to see you again."
"And
you, Your Grace," Henke said, her always husky contralto just a tad more
husky than usual.
"Well,"
Honor released her hand at last, stepping back a bit from their mutual joy at
the reunion, "I believe you said something about a message?"
"Yes,
I did."
"Should
I get Admiral Kuzak out here?"
"I
don't believe that will be necessary, Ma'am," Henke said formally, aware
of all of the watching eyes and listening ears.
"Then
why don't you accompany me to my quarters?"
"Of
course, Your Grace."
Honor led
the way to the lift shaft, with an improbably wide awake-looking Andrew
LaFollet coming along behind. She pressed the button, then smiled faintly and
waved Henke through the opening door before her. She and LaFollet followed, the
door slid shut behind her, and she reached out and gripped Henke's upper arms.
"My
God," she said softly, "it is good to see you, Mike!"
Honor
Alexander-Harrington had never been one for easy embraces, but she suddenly
swept Mike Henke into a bear hug.
"Easy!
Easy!" Henke gasped, returning the embrace. "The leg's bad
enough, woman! Don't add crushed ribs to the list!"
"Sorry."
For a
moment, Honor's soprano was almost as husky as Henke's contralto, but then she
stood back and cleared her throat while Nimitz buzzed a happy, welcoming purr
from her shoulder.
"Sorry,"
she repeated in a more normal voice. "It's just that I thought you were
dead. And then, when we found out you weren't, I still expected months, or
years, to pass before I saw you again."
"Then
I guess we're even over that little Cerberus trip you took," Henke said
with a crooked smile.
"I
guess we are," Honor agreed with a sudden chuckle. "Although you
at least weren't dead long enough for them to throw an entire state funeral for
you!"
"Pity.
I would've loved to watch the HD of it."
"Yes,
you probably would have. You always have been just a bit peculiar, Mike
Henke!"
"You
only say that because of my taste in friends."
"No
doubt," Honor said dryly, as the lift doors opened and deposited them in
the passageway outside her quarters. Spencer Hawke was standing guard outside
them, and she paused and looked over her shoulder at LaFollet.
"Andrew,
you and Spencer can't keep this up forever. We've got to get at least one other
armsman up here to give the two of you some relief."
"My
Lady, I've been thinking about that, but I haven't had the time to select
someone. I'd have to go back to Grayson, really, and—"
"No,
Andrew, you wouldn't." She paused to give him a moderately stern look.
"Two points," she said quietly but firmly. "First, my son will
be born in another month. Second," she continued, pretending she hadn't
noticed the flicker of pain in his gray eyes, "Brigadier Hill is quite
capable of selecting a suitable pool of candidates back on Grayson and sending
them to us for you and me to consider together. I know you have a lot on your
mind, and I know there are aspects of the situation you don't really like. But
this needs to be attended to."
He looked
back at her for perhaps two seconds, then sighed.
"Yes,
My Lady. I'll send the dispatch to Brigadier Hill on the morning shuttle."
"Thank
you," she said gently, touching him lightly on the arm, then turned back
to Henke.
"I
believe someone else is waiting to welcome you back," she said, and the
hatch slid open to show a beaming James MacGuiness.
* * *
"So,
Mike," Honor said fifteen minutes later, "just what induced the
Havenites to send you home?"
She and
Henke sat in facing chairs, Henke with a steaming cup of coffee, and Honor with
a mug of cocoa. MacGuiness had seen to it that there was also a plate of
sandwiches, and Honor nibbled idly on a ham and cheese, taking advantage of the
opportunity to stoke her metabolism. Henke, on the other hand, was content with
just her coffee.
"That's
an interesting question," Henke said now, cradling her cup in both hands
and gazing at Honor across it through a wisp of steam. "I think mostly,
they picked me because I'm Beth's cousin. They figured she'd have to listen to
a message from me. And, I imagine, they hoped the fact that they'd given me
back to her would at least tempt her to listen seriously do what they had to
say."
"Which
is? Or is it privileged information you can't share with me?"
"Oh,
it's privileged all right—for now, at least. But I was specifically told I
could share it with you, since it also concerns you."
"Mike,"
Honor said, with just a trace of exasperation as she tasted the teasing
amusement behind Henke's admirably solemn expression, "if you don't come
clean with me and quit tossing out tidbits, I'm going to choke it out of you.
You do realize that, don't do?"
"Home
less than an hour, and already threatened with physical violence," Henke
observed in tones of profound sadness, shaking her head, then cowered
dramatically as Honor started to stand.
"All
right, all right! I'll talk!"
"Good.
And," Honor added pointedly as she settled back, "I'm still
waiting."
"Yes,
well," Henke's amusement faded into seriousness, "it's not really a
laughing matter, I suppose. But put most simply, Pritchart is using me as her
messenger to suggest to Beth that the two of them meet in a face-to-face summit
to discuss a negotiated settlement."
Honor sat
abruptly further back in her chair. Despite the dramatic nature of Henke's
return, the unanticipated radicalness of Pritchart's proposal was almost
stunning. Sudden glittering vistas of an end to the killing spread out before
her, and her heart leapt. But then she made herself step back and draw a deep breath
of reality.
"That's
a very interesting offer. Do you think she really means it?"
"Oh, I
think she definitely wants to meet with Beth. Just what she intends to offer is
another matter. On that front, I wish you'd been the one talking to her."
Henke glanced
significantly at Nimitz, who raised his head from his comfortable sprawl on the
back of Honor's chair.
"What
sort of agenda did she propose?"
"That's
one of the odd parts about the offer," Henke said. "Basically, she
left it wide open. Obviously, she wants a peace treaty, but she didn't list any
specific set of terms. Apparently, she's willing to throw everything into the
melting pot if Beth will agree to negotiate with her one-on-one."
"That's
a significant change from their previous stance, at least as I understood
it," Honor observed.
"I
hate to say it, but you're probably in a better position to know that then I
am," Henke admitted. She shrugged, with a slightly sheepish grin.
"I've been trying to pay more attention to politics since you tore a strip
off me, but it's still not really a primary interest of mine."
Honor gave
her an exasperated look and shook her head. Henke looked back, essentially
unrepentant. Then she shrugged again.
"Actually,
it's probably a good thing you are more interested in politics and
diplomacy than I am," she said.
"Why?"
"Because
one specific element of Pritchart's proposal is a request that you also attend
the conference she wants to set up."
"Me?"
Honor blinked in astonishment, and Henke nodded.
"You.
I got the impression the original suggestion to include you may have come from
Thomas Theisman, but I'm not sure about that. Pritchart did assure me, however,
that neither she nor anyone in her administration had anything to do with your
attempted assassination. And you can believe however much of that you want
to."
"She'd
almost have to say that, I suppose," Honor said thoughtfully, her mind
racing as she considered Pritchart's proposal. Then she cocked her head.
"Did she say anything about Ariel or Nimitz?"
"No,
she didn't . . . and I thought that was probably significant," Henke said.
"They know both you and Beth have been adopted, of course, and it was
obvious that they have extensive dossiers on both of you. I'm sure they've been
following the articles and other presentations on the 'cats capabilities since
they decided to come out of the closet."
"Which
means, in effect, that she's inviting us to bring a pair of furry lie detectors
to this summit of hers."
"That's
what I think." Henke nodded. "I guess it's always possible they
haven't made that connection after all, but I think it's unlikely."
"So do
I." Honor gazed off into the distance, thinking hard. Then she looked back
at Henke.
"The
timing on this is interesting. We've got several factors working here."
"I
know. And so does Pritchart," Henke said. Honor looked a question at her,
and the other woman snorted. "She made very certain I knew they know about
this business in Talbott. She made the specific point that her offer of a
summit is being made at a time when she and her advisers are fully aware of how
tightly stretched we are. The unstated implication was that instead of an
invitation to talk, they might have sent a battle fleet."
"Yes,
they certainly could have."
"Have
we heard any more from the Cluster?" Henke asked anxiously.
"No.
And we won't hear anything back from Monica for at least another ten or eleven
days. And that's one reason I said the timing on this was interesting. On the
chance that the news we get may be good, I've been ordered to update our plans
for Operation Sanskrit—that's the successor to the Cutworm raids," Honor
explained when Henke raised an eyebrow "—with a tentative execution date
twelve days from tomorrow. Well," she brought up the date/time display in
her artificial eye, "from today, actually, now."
"You're
thinking about the way Saint-Just derailed Buttercup by suggesting a cease-fire
to High Ridge."
"Actually,
I'm thinking about the fact that Elizabeth is going to remember
it," Honor replied, shaking her head. "Unless they've got a lot more
penetration of our security than I believe they do, they can't know what our
operational schedule is. Oh, they've probably surmised that Eighth Fleet was
just about ready to resume offensive operations, assuming we were going to do that
at all, when Khumalo's dispatch arrived. And if they've done the math, they
probably know we're about due to hear back from him. But they must have packed
you off home almost the same day word of our diversions from Home Fleet could
have reached them. To me, that sounds like they moved as quickly as possible to
take advantage of an opportunity to negotiate seriously. I'm just afraid it's
going to resonate with Buttercup in Elizabeth's thoughts."
"She's
not entirely rational where Peeps are concerned," Henke admitted.
"With
justification, I'm afraid," Honor said. Henke looked surprised to hear her
say that, and Honor shook her head, wondering if Mike knew everything about her
own family's experiences with various Havenite régimes.
"Well,
I hope she doesn't get her dander up this time," Henke said after a
moment. "God knows I love her, and she's one of the strongest monarchs
we've ever had, but that temper of hers—!" It was Henke's turn to shake
her head.
"I
know everyone thinks she's a warhead with a hair trigger," Honor said a
bit impatiently, "and I'll even acknowledge that she's one of the best
grudge-holders I know. But she isn't really blind to her responsibilities as a
head of state, you know!"
"You
don't have to defend her to me, Honor! I'm just trying to be realistic. The
fact is that she has got a temper from the dark side of Hell, when it's roused,
and you know as well as I do how she hates yielding to pressure, even from
people she knows are giving her their best advice. And speaking of pressure, Pritchart
was careful to make sure I knew she knew the goings on in the Cluster
have given the Republic the whip hand, diplomatically speaking. Not only
that," Henke added with a combination of frustration and grudging
admiration, "she told me to inform Beth that she's releasing an official
statement tomorrow in Nouveau Paris informing the Republic and the galaxy at
large that she's issued her invitation."
"Oh,
lovely." Honor leaned back, resting the back of her head lightly against
Nimitz's warm, furry weight. "That was a smart move. And you're right,
Elizabeth is going to resent it. But she's played the interstellar diplomacy
game herself—quite well, in fact. I don't think she'll be surprised by it. And
I doubt very much that any resentment she feels over it would have a decisive
impact on her decision."
"I
hope you're right." Henke sipped coffee, then lowered her cup. "I
hope you're right," she repeated, "because hard as I tried to stay
cynical, I think Pritchart really means it. She really wants to sit down with
Beth and negotiate peace."
"Then
let's hope she manages to pull it off," Honor said softly.
* * *
"And I
think I don't trust them as far as I could throw a superdreadnought!"
Elizabeth III said angrily.
The power
of her emotions was like a black thundercloud to Honor's perceptions, looming
over the pleasant council chamber in Mount Royal Palace. None of the other
humans could sense it, but all of the treecats were only too obviously aware of
it. She reached up to stroke Nimitz's spine, watching as Prince Justin did the
same for Monroe. Ariel's half-flattened ears were an accurate barometer of the
Queen's emotions, and Honor could sense Samantha buttressing herself against
them from Hamish's chair back.
"Your
Majesty—Elizabeth," William Alexander said, "nobody is asking you to
trust them. Certainly not on no more basis than the fact that they've returned
Michelle and that Pritchart is requesting a meeting with you. That's not really
the point."
"Oh,
yes, it is!" Elizabeth shot back.
"No,
it isn't, Your Majesty," Sir Anthony Langtry disagreed firmly. The Queen
glowered at him, and he shrugged. "Willie's right. The point is whether
it's better for us to talk to them or shoot at them when we don't know what's
happening in the Cluster."
"Which
we'll know in another week or so!"
Honor very
carefully did not sigh. Elizabeth had proven far more intransigent than she'd
hoped over the four days since Michelle Henke's return to Manticore with Honor
from Trevor's Star.
"Elizabeth,"
Honor said now, calmly, "four days from now is the soonest we could really
hope to receive a dispatch boat, assuming Terekhov sent one off within
twenty-four hours of his planned arrival at Monica. But the fact that we
haven't already received one is a bad sign, and you know it."
Elizabeth
looked at her, and Honor shrugged.
"If
he'd been wrong about his initial assumptions, he would have learned that when
the Copenhagen met him at his rendezvous point after scouting Monica. At
that point, he would have turned around and headed back to the Cluster, and a
dispatch boat from him at that time would have been here at least two weeks
ago. So, obviously, Copenhagen either told him his suspicions were
justified, or never made the rendezvous. Which would have told him pretty much
the same thing."
"And?"
Elizabeth said, when she paused.
"And
that means he did continue to Monica, where he almost certainly violated
Monican territorial space. Let's assume he managed to carry out his best-case
plan without firing a shot, and the Monicans agreed to halt whatever
preparations they were making until we could assure ourselves they had no
designs against the Cluster. That's the best message we could be
receiving in the next week."
"In
which case the situation is under control," Elizabeth said.
"In
which case we're effectively in control of Monican space," Honor corrected
gently. "For now. It's also possible his dispatch is going to tell us he's
fought a battle. In that case, he either won, or he lost. In either of those
cases, we have a shooting incident with a sovereign star nation with a
long-standing relationship with the Office of Frontier Security. In that case,
it's going to be weeks, even months, before we know whether or not OFS is
prepared to commit Solly naval units against us. In fact, even if no shots were
exchanged, if Terekhov and Khumalo have occupied the Monica System under threat
of force, we could still be looking at OFS intervention. And whatever
Terekhov's dispatches might tell us a week from now, we're still going to be
facing the same wait until we can be sure which way OFS is going to jump."
"Precisely
what I'm trying to say." Baron Grantville looked gratefully at his
sister-in-law and nodded vigorously. "I'm sure Pritchart didn't make it
because of how much she loves us, but her point about the value of a cease-fire
while we find out whether or not we're at war with the Solarian League is
completely valid."
He turned
back to the Queen.
"That's
the same point Tony and I have been trying to make ever since Mike got home.
Elizabeth," there was raw appeal in his eyes, "we're in serious
trouble. The Peeps alone outnumber us two-to-one in ships of the wall. We all
hope Terekhov and Khumalo have managed to nip whatever was happening in the
Cluster in the bud, and that Admiral O'Malley's task force will be enough to
keep a lid on things if they did. But we don't know that, and we won't know
it until we know absolutely that OFS is going to back down. And don't forget
the Mesan element in all this. We know they've got a cozy deal with a lot of
Frontier Security commissioners, but we don't really know how much pressure
they're going to be able to bring to bear to try to salvage whatever they were
up to if Terekhov and Khumalo have spoked their wheel."
"And
whether you trust them or not, and whether or not Pritchart really intends from
the outset to negotiate in good faith, there's always the possibility a peace
treaty would emerge, anyway," Hamish Alexander-Harrington pointed out in a
neutral tone.
Elizabeth's
eyes flashed at him, and he looked back steadily.
"She's
the one who's told the newsies about the proposed summit," he said.
"That means the onus to make some sort of progress is at least largely on
her if you do agree to meet with her. Unless the two of you are going to sit
down somewhere, all alone, in a smoke-filled room and negotiate some sort of
private deal, the whole thing's going to go forward in a positive glare of
publicity. So if you make a reasonable offer, she may find herself hoist by her
own petard and forced to entertain it seriously."
"You
tell Emily not to try to manage me by remote control, Hamish!" Elizabeth
snapped. "I've got enough official advisers trying to do
that!"
Honor
started to protest, then kept her mouth firmly closed. This being married
business had its own complications, she'd discovered. The last thing she needed
was to sound as if she were weighing in in concert with her spouses.
"Oh,
be reasonable, Elizabeth!" the seventh human seated at the table said in a
voice of considerable exasperation. The Queen turned her glare upon the
speaker, only to be met by glittering eyes exactly the same color as her own.
"Stop
pitching such a snit," Caitrin Winton-Henke told her niece sharply.
"You don't like Peeps. You don't trust Peeps. Fine. Neither do I,
and you know exactly why I don't. But you're the Queen of Manticore, not a
schoolchild! Act like it."
Honor felt
several people wincing in anticipation of a furious explosion from the Queen.
But it didn't come. Instead, Elizabeth looked into her aunt's eyes and the
tight shoulders and rigid spine of the woman the treecats had named Soul of
Steel seemed to droop.
Honor felt
her own eyes soften in sympathy, but she understood what Michelle Henke's
mother had just done. The Dowager Countess of Gold Peak was Elizabeth's
one-time regent. She was also the only person at the conference table who had
lost even more deeply and personally to the Peeps than Elizabeth had . . . as
she had just reminded her niece.
"And
don't forget, Elizabeth," Honor said as she felt the Queen's adamantine
resistance waver, "if you attend this summit, and if I attend it with you,
there'll be at least two treecats present. Don't you think it would be worth
getting Ariel and Nimitz close enough to taste Pritchart's mind-glow, whatever
else happens?"
Elizabeth's
eyes darted to Honor, and she frowned thoughtfully. She was obviously thinking
about the fact that it would also get Honor close enough to do the same
thing, and Honor was cautiously pleased by the evidence that the Queen was
finally stepping back far enough to think.
"Beth,"
Prince Justin said quietly. His wife looked at him, and he reached out to rest
one hand lightly on hers where it lay on the tabletop. "Beth, think about
it. Every single one of your advisers disagrees with you. Even," he
smiled, "your husband. I think you need to factor that into your decision,
don't you?"
She gazed
into his eyes for several seconds, then sighed.
"Yes."
She obviously hated making that admission, but Honor tasted her unwilling
sincerity. The Queen looked around the council chamber, then shrugged her
shoulders. "Very well. I'm sure you've all made valid points. I can even
appreciate most of them, intellectually, at least. That doesn't mean I like it,
because I don't. I hate it. But that doesn't make you wrong, however
much I'd like it to. So I'll meet with Pritchart."
"Thank
you, Your Majesty," Grantville said with quiet, thankful formality.
"Which
raises the question of where you should meet," Langtry said.
"Pritchart did invite you to name the site."
"Yes,
and she suggested a 'neutral' one," Grantville agreed. "Although just
exactly where she thinks we can find one is a bit of a puzzle."
"Nonsense,"
Elizabeth said with a hard little laugh. "That's the easiest part of all!
If she wants a neutral meeting site, where better than Torch?"
"I
don't know," Grantville began. "The security aspects would worry me,
and—"
"Security
would probably be the least of our worries," Honor interrupted. Grantville
looked at her, and she grinned. "A planetful of freed slaves, Willie,
invited to play host to the heads of state of the two star nations with the
best track record for enforcing the Cherwell Convention? You'd need a couple of
divisions of battle armor to get through them!"
"That,"
Langtry said, "is almost certainly true, Willie. They might not have the
same technological capabilities we would, but they'd certainly have the
motivation!"
"Yes,
they would," Grantville agreed. "And I suppose there'd be ample time
for us to make additional security arrangements."
"And,"
Elizabeth pointed out, "it would be an opportunity to draw Erewhon into
the process. I know we've all been pissed off with the Erewhonese for the
technology they transferred to the Peeps, but let's be honest. High Ridge did
everything humanly possible to push them into doing it. If we ask them to
dispatch units of their fleet to provide a neutral security umbrella in Congo
for both sides, without either of us bringing in our own battle squadrons, it
would be a demonstration that this Government—and the House of Winton—both
trusts them and desires to patch up our differences."
Grantville
looked at her with a slightly surprised expression, and she chuckled almost
naturally.
"I may
still have my reservations about this entire idea, Willie. But if we're going
to do it anyway, we might as well accomplish as many objectives at once as we
can."
Aldona
Anisimovna tried to remind herself that she was one of the most successful
organizers and executives Manpower Incorporated had ever produced. That she had
a very nearly unrivaled record of successes. That she was a wealthy and
powerful individual, who represented one of Mesa's star bloodlines.
None of it
helped particularly.
She and
Isabel Bardasano followed the "butler" down the splendidly furnished
hallway, past light sculptures, bronzes, paintings and handloomed textile wall
hangings. The designer had deliberately eschewed smart walls or other modern
visual technology, aside from the light sculptures, but soothing, unheard sonic
vibrations seemed to caress her skin.
It was all
very gracious and welcoming, but she drew a deep breath, trying to settle her
nerves unobtrusively and hoping the invisible surveillance systems weren't
noting her heightened pulse rate, as their guide opened the old-fashioned door
at the end of the corridor.
"Ms.
Anisimovna and Ms. Bardasano, Sir," he said.
"Thank
you, Heinrich," a familiar voice said, and the "butler" who was
actually a rather deadly bodyguard, when he wasn't being an assassin, bowed and
stepped aside.
Anisimovna
walked past him without even acknowledging his presence, but she was grateful
when he closed the door behind her and Bardasano from the other side. Not that
she'd really expected his . . . services to be required, she told herself
firmly.
"Well,
ladies," Albrecht Detweiler said from behind the desk workstation, without
inviting either of them to be seated, "things don't appear to have gone
very well in Talbott, after all."
"No,
they haven't," Anisimovna agreed, her voice as level as possible.
Detweiler regarded her thoughtfully, as if waiting for her to add something
more to that bare agreement, but she knew better than to offer any hint of an
excuse. Especially not when he'd kept the two of them waiting, and stewing in
their own juice, for almost three standard days since their return from the
Republic of Monica.
"Why
not?" he asked after a moment.
"Because
of a chain of circumstances we were unable to predict," Isabel Bardasano
said, her voice as level as Anisimovna's had been.
"I was
under the impression that proper planning allowed for all contingencies,"
Detweiler observed.
"Good
planning allows for all the contingencies the planner can think of,"
Bardasano corrected in an amazingly calm tone. "This particular set of
contingencies was impossible to anticipate, since no one can allow for freak
circumstances which are inherently impossible to predict."
"That
sounds remarkably like an excuse, Isabel."
"I
prefer to think of it as an explanation, Albrecht," Bardasano said, while
Anisimovna tried to focus her attention on one of Detweiler's pre-space oil
paintings. "Under certain circumstances, explanations are also excuses, of
course. You asked us why things didn't work out as planned, however. That's
why."
Detweiler
gazed at her, his lips very slightly pursed, his eyes narrowed, and she looked
back squarely. One thing about her, Anisimovna thought; she didn't lack nerve.
Whether her lack of fear was completely sane or not was another matter.
"Very
well, Isabel," Detweiler said finally. "'Explain' what
happened."
"We
don't know yet, not fully," she admitted. "We won't know for some
time. The only hard fact we have at this time is that somehow a Manty cruiser
captain named Terekhov and Bernardus Van Dort figured out what was happening.
Terekhov put together what I strongly suspect was a completely unauthorized
attack on Monica. And as Aldona and I told you at our last meeting, the program
to refit the battlecruisers we—or, rather, Technodyne—were providing had fallen
behind schedule."
"You
also informed me that there was ample cushion in your timetable,"
Detweiler interrupted in a deceptively pleasant voice.
If he'd
intended to put Bardasano off her pace, he failed. She simply looked at him for
a moment, then nodded.
"Yes,
we did. And it was an accurate statement. In fact, Izrok Levakonic and the
Monicans had managed to get three of the battlecruisers completely refitted and
manned before Terekhov showed up, and the biggest unit he had was a
heavy cruiser. Had he delayed his arrival for another week, four more Indefatigables
would have been ready for action, as well. Under normal circumstances,
however, I believe most people would have felt three Solarian League
battlecruisers, with up-to-date electronics and weapons fits, ought to have
been able to deal with five cruisers and four destroyers."
"Apparently,
they would have been wrong," Detweiler said. "And, I might point out
to you, if I were inclined to pick nits, that one of the objectives of the
operation was to obtain specimens of Manty hardware specifically because we
knew it was better than Solly equipment."
"Granted,"
Bardasano replied. "I would submit, however, that its degree of
superiority was greater than anyone had anticipated, including
Technodyne."
"I'm
much less well versed in technical matters than Isabel, Albrecht," Aldona
said, speaking up in support of her colleague, "but we did discuss this
with Levakonic. He felt confident of maintaining Monica's security with the
combination of missile pods he'd deployed and the battlecruisers already in
commission. That part of the operation was his responsibility, and we relied on
his expert opinion."
Detweiler
switched his gaze to her, and she made herself look back calmly. He appeared to
consider her words for several seconds, then gave a tiny shrug.
"I
suppose that was reasonable enough, under the circumstances," he said.
"However," he continued before Anisimovna's nerves could begin to
unknot themselves, "even granting that, the fact that the Manties and this
Van Dort somehow tumbled to what was going on speaks poorly of your operational
security."
"At
this point," Bardasano said, "we don't know how our security was
penetrated. I see two possibilities. One is that the penetration took place on
the Monican side. President Tyler and his closest advisers had to be brought
fully into the picture, at least as far as their part of the operation was
concerned. Their security arrangements were beyond our control, and we don't
know how or where they might have been breached.
"The
second possibility," she continued unflinchingly, "is that the
penetration was on our side of the operation. In that case, the most likely scenario
is that this Terekhov literally stumbled over the Marianne."
"Marianne?"
Detweiler repeated.
"The
special ops ship we were using to deliver weapons to our proxies,"
Bardasano explained. "We'd used her and her crew dozens of times before.
They're reliable and experienced in this sort of covert operation, and using
our own ship and our own people let us maintain a far lower profile and avoid
an entire additional layer of potential leaks."
"So
why do you think she could be involved?"
"Because
she's the only direct link between our terrorist proxies and Monica."
Bardasano shrugged. "Izrok needed emergency transportation for additional
shipyard technicians. Marianne was already headed for the Cluster. He
asked me if we could transport them for him, and I agreed. Apparently, I
shouldn't have."
She made
the admission without flinching, and a flicker of what might have been approval
showed in Detweiler's eyes.
"If
she is the clue the Manties picked up on," she continued, "they must
have taken at least some of her personnel and sweated them. They don't actually
know anything about the Monican side of the operation, but they do know
they delivered technicians to Monica. That could have been enough.
Unfortunately, we probably won't know whether or not that's what actually
happened for some time. Marianne's movement schedule means we don't
expect contact with her for another couple of weeks."
"This
is all speculation," Detweiler remarked, and Bardasano and Anisimovna both
nodded.
"We
barely managed to get out of Monica, and take the only Frontier Security
personnel directly involved in the operation with us," Anisimovna said.
"We couldn't afford to wait around for any more details. If they'd
captured Isabel or myself—"
She broke
off, and it was Detweiler's turn to nod.
"Point
taken," he acknowledged. He considered them silently for several more
seconds, then seemed to reach a decision.
"Sit,"
he said, pointing at two of the chairs facing his desk, and Anisimovna hoped
her enormous relief didn't show as she obeyed the command.
"None
of us are happy about what's happened in the Cluster," Detweiler said.
"I trust you're both prepared for the fact that you're going to face a lot
of recrimination and accusations of incompetence?"
Anisimovna
bobbed her head, and this time she didn't try to disguise her glum expression.
Whatever else came of the Talbott fiasco, she'd be a long time rebuilding her
prestige and repairing her damaged powerbase.
"Having
said that, and assuming no new revelations suggest it really was your fault,
I'm inclined to agree that the failure almost certainly stemmed from factors
outside your control." He shrugged. "As I said at the beginning, it
was always a crap shoot, and apparently we crapped out. So, starting from that,
what's your feeling as to whether or not OFS is going to let this stand?"
"I
think they are," Anisimovna said. Managing the Solly bureaucracies was her
own area of expertise. "Verrochio is livid, and he's going to be even
angrier if the Manties are able to prove his involvement. But he doesn't have
the forces under his own command to take unilateral action, and the other
Frontier Security commissioners won't support him. Not after something as
spectacular as what the Manties did to Monica, and especially not if Tyler or any
of his cronies roll over on us and cooperate with a Manty investigation."
"We
don't need him to win," Detweiler pointed out. "You say he's
'livid' over this. Is there any probability of playing on that anger to
maneuver him into a direct military confrontation? Whether the other
commissioners approve or not, that would be something our friends in the League
could probably spin into the pretext for intervention we need. Especially if he
gets the crap shot out of him.."
"I
don't see any way to do it," Anisimovna replied. "Angry as he is,
he's not going to risk his own position. Neither is his vice-commissioner,
Hongbo, who—unfortunately, perhaps in this instance—has a great deal of
influence with him and is far less likely to let anger shape his decisions."
"I was
afraid of that."
Detweiler
tipped his chair back, folding his hands, fingers interlaced, across his
midsection, and Anisimovna felt a sudden fresh pang of anxiety. That relaxed
posture normally indicated that Albert Detweiler was quietly, icily, dangerously
furious about something.
"Three
weeks ago," he said, "Eloise Pritchart sent an invitation to
Elizabeth Winton. She suggested the two of them meet in a face-to-face summit,
in a neutral location of Winton's choosing."
Anisimovna
felt her eyes widen and fought a sudden urge to turn and look at Bardasano in
shock. Pritchart was proposing a peace conference?
"We
found out about it from our mole in the Manties' Foreign Office,"
Detweiler continued. "The proposal itself arrived on Manticore nine days
ago, and our mole's control did very well to get it to us this quickly,
although he had to use the Beowulf conduit to do it. I'm not exactly delighted
at that. That conduit is too valuable to lose. In this case, though, I think
our man's decision was justified."
"Excuse
me, Albrecht," Anisimovna said, "but do we have any idea what
prompted Pritchart to do something like this?"
"Not
specifically, no." Detweiler frowned. "At the moment, my best guess
is that she found out about what was happening in Talbott. She's demonstrated
she's a very shrewd politician, and she may well have calculated that the
pressure of a potential conflict with the Solarian League would force Winton to
accept terms."
Anisimovna
nodded, but very carefully said nothing. From Detweiler's tone, it was unlikely
he would have appreciated the observation that it might have been their own
efforts which had offered the Republic the wedge which might bring their
carefully nurtured war to a premature conclusion.
"According
to our mole," Detweiler went on, "it took four days to convince
Winton to accept the offer. In the end, however, she did. And guess what
'neutral site' she proposed for their little get together?"
Anisimovna
frowned, but Bardasano snorted harshly.
"Verdant
Vista," she said flatly, and Detweiler's chuckle was even harsher than her
snort.
"On
the money," he agreed.
"Do we
have a date for this summit?" Bardasano asked.
"Not
yet. I'm sure the Manties will be proposing one in their reply to Pritchart,
but our mole doesn't have that level of access. Even after they propose one,
messages are going to have to go back and forth between Manticore and Haven,
and transit time is almost eleven days each way. So it's not going to happen
next week, but it looks like it is going to happen."
"Elizabeth
Winton hates Haven's guts," Anisimovna said. "Even if the summit
meets, how likely is it to result in an actual peace treaty? Especially after
Haven initiated the attack, and given that everyone's convinced Haven was
behind the Harrington assassination attempt?"
"Under
normal circumstances, I might think along the same lines," Detweiler said.
"But Winton's been adopted by one of those frigging treecats, and you can
bet she won't attend a conference without the little monster."
"Oh."
Anisimovna grimaced.
"Yes,
we can't afford to overlook the little bastards any longer, can we?"
Detweiler growled.
It was
unusual, to say the least, for him to allow his ire to show that clearly, but
Sphinx's treecats had been a sore point with Manpower and Mesa literally for
centuries. The possibility of unlocking the secret of telepathy had been
impossible for the bio-engineers of Mesa to resist, but they'd been remarkably
unsuccessful in obtaining specimens. In fact, they'd managed to obtain only one
living treecat in over three hundred T-years, and they'd discovered quickly
that a treecat in captivity simply died. They still had some of the creature's
genetic material, and some work continued with it in a desultory fashion, but
without much prospect of successfully building the ability into humans.
The fact
that the wretched little animals were even more intelligent than Manpower's own
worst-case assumptions had come as an unpleasant revelation. And the ability of
a fully functional telempathic to communicate its observations about the mental
state of someone on the other side of high-level diplomatic negotiations was
something political analysts were going to take some getting used to.
"We
know, even if Winton doesn't, that Pritchart never wanted to go back to war in
the first place," Detweiler continued. "If some dammed treecat gets a
chance to communicate that to Winton, it's entirely possible the two of them
will agree to a joint examination of the disputed diplomatic
correspondence. In which case peace is likely to start breaking out all
over."
"Not
exactly a desirable outcome," Bardasano murmured, and Detweiler rewarded
her with a tight grin and another hard chuckle.
"Nicely
put. Now, what do we do to prevent it?"
"Killing
Winton or Pritchart would be the most effective solution," Bardasano said
thoughtfully. "On the other hand, if we could get to either of them
easily, we'd have already done it. Hmmm . . . ."
She thought
for several seconds, then nodded to herself.
"I see
one possibility," she said.
"Which
is?"
"I've
already prepared the operation you wanted on Old Earth," she told him.
"I haven't scheduled a date for it yet, however. And I've also set up the
groundwork for Operation Rat Poison. I can activate both of them immediately,
and set them up to happen simultaneously, or at least in close succession.
Given Elizabeth Winton's existing attitude towards Haven, I'd say there's a
pretty good chance it would destabilize any summit arrangements."
"Especially
Rat Poison," Detweiler agreed, his eyes lighting with pleasure at the
prospect. Then they narrowed. "Probability of success?" he demanded.
"On
Old Earth, very high," Bardasano said promptly. "Probably approaching
a hundred percent. Rat Poison's more problematical, I'm afraid. Our choice of
vehicles is much more limited, and all the ones we're currently considering are
outside the inner circle, so access is going to be more of a problem. To make
it work with one of the present vehicles, we'll have to use a two-stage
control, and that's going to up the chances of something going wrong. I'd say
probably sixty percent, plus or minus five percent either way, if we mount the
op immediately."
"I'd
really rather wait, at least until we could get better odds," Detweiler
murmured.
"We
can do that," Bardasano told him. "In fact, given a few more months
of prep work, I could improve the odds significantly. But if we wait, we lose
the opportunity to derail the summit. And I might point out, Albrecht, that
even if the attempt itself fails, the mere fact that it was made ought to
accomplish what we want."
"There
is that," Detweiler agreed. He sat motionless for perhaps fifteen seconds,
obviously thinking hard. Then he nodded his head sharply.
"All
right. Do it."
"What
do you think the Sollies are going to do, Your Grace?" Rafe Cardones asked
quietly.
He and
Honor stood side by side in the lift, along with Mercedes Brigham, Andrea
Jaruwalski, Frances Hirshfield, Andrew LaFollet, Spencer Hawke, and Sergeant
Jefferson McClure, one of the two Harrington Steading armsmen Andrew LaFollet
had finally chosen to reinforce Honor's personal detail. Nimitz rode on Honor's
shoulder, and even the spacious lift car felt more than a little crowded.
"That's
hard to say, Rafe," Honor replied, after a moment. The long-awaited
courier from Aivars Terekhov and Augustus Khumalo had finally arrived the day
before, with news of Terekhov's crushing victory over the Monican Navy. And of
the horrific price his hastily organized squadron had paid for it.
"It's
pretty obvious," she continued after a moment, "that at least some
Sollies had to be in on this up to their necks. The Solarian Navy doesn't just
'lose' more than a dozen modern battlecruisers."
"You
think the League Navy was directly involved?" Cardones was more than a
little worried by the thought, and Honor didn't blame him.
"Not
the Navy as such." She shook her head. "I'm more inclined to think it
was some rogue element within the Navy, or else some private interest, one of
their big builders, like Technodyne or General Industries of Terra. Either of
them could have provided the ships, if they'd been willing to run some risks,
although I'd bet on Technodyne, given their involvement with Mesa at Tiberian.
We won't know who it was for certain for quite a while, though. Admiral O'Malley's
detachment won't even get there for another four days, and until he arrives,
Terekhov and Khumalo are going to have all they can do just to keep the system
nailed down. They certainly aren't going to be able to start conducting any
investigations."
Cardones
nodded thoughtfully, and she gave a small shrug.
"On
the other hand, Frontier Security must have signed off on this operation, at
least unofficially," she pointed out. "Without assurance of OFS
support, this President Tyler would never have run the level of risk he was
prepared to court. Not only that, I can't see Mesa providing this kind of
logistical and financial support unless they were pretty darn certain one of
their pet Frontier Security commissioners was going to back their play.
"Probably
the question comes down mainly to how quickly their OFS stooges can react. If
they can get in before O'Malley gets there, they might have enough locally
deployed firepower to force Khumalo and Terekhov out of Monica. If they can't
get themselves organized quickly enough of that, though, I don't think they're
going to want to tangle with his task force. And if they blink, the longer they
delay a counterattack, the less likely they are to be able to mount one at all.
So I'm actually reasonably confident that if they haven't hit us by the time
O'Malley gets into position, they won't. Not unless somebody on their side
screws up by the numbers."
Cardones
nodded again.
"And
what about this summit?" Honor didn't really need her empathic ability to
feel the hope in his question. "You think it could really lead to
something?"
"I
think there's always that possibility, How likely it is I can't say. But like
you, I spend a lot of time hoping."
The lift
came to a halt, the doors slid open, and Honor stepped out, leading the way
towards her flag briefing room and yet another conference with her senior
officers.
"And
the time I don't spend hoping," she said, just a bit grimly, "I spend
planning for what we're going to do if it doesn't work out."
* * *
"Thank
you for seeing me, Madam President."
Secretary
of State Leslie Montreau shook Eloise Pritchart's hand as the President walked
around her desk to greet her. Pritchart smiled, and waved for the Secretary to
be seated in one of her office's armchairs, then sat herself, facing her guest.
"Given
the general tenor of your message when you requested a meeting, Leslie, I was
delighted to make room for you in this morning's schedule. I take it we've
heard back?"
"Yes,
Madam President."
Montreau
opened her thin briefcase and extracted a sheaf of old-fashioned hard copy.
There were several documents, each with the matching electronic document's chip
attached, and she laid them out on the coffee table.
"Basically,"
she went on, "we've gotten a very favorable response, overall. This,"
she tapped one document, "is a personal letter from Queen Elizabeth to
you. It's mainly polite formulas, but she does specifically thank you for the
care our people have taken of our POWs, and for releasing her cousin, Admiral
Henke, as your messenger.
"This
one," she indicated another, thicker document, "is an official
response to our proposal, drafted by their Foreign Office over Foreign
Secretary Langtry's signature. There's quite a bit of diplomatic boilerplate in
it, but what it boils down to is that they officially welcome our suggestion of
a conference, and they accept our offer of a military standdown until after the
summit, to begin twenty-four standard hours after the expected arrival time of
their response here in Nouveau Paris. I think you'll want to read it for
yourself, especially since there are a couple of passages which are just a bit
testy. Most of them, I'm afraid, refer to our decision to launch Thunderbolt
without formal notice we intended to resort to military action, but I think
it's significant that they don't mention our dispute over who did what to the
official diplomatic correspondence.
"In
addition," she went on, in a slightly different tone, "they've
responded to our request that they nominate a neutral site."
"Which
is?" Pritchart asked as Montreau paused.
"Torch,
Madam President," the Secretary said, and Pritchart sat back in her chair
with a suddenly thoughtful expression.
"You
know," she said, after a few seconds, "that really should have
occurred to us. It's the one neutral port where we both have contacts."
She chuckled suddenly. "Of course, if it had occurred to me, I probably
wouldn't have suggested it anyway. I'd have figured they wouldn't want to risk
their monarch anywhere near our half-tame lunatic, Cachat!"
"Then
you feel the site's acceptable?" Montreau asked, and Pritchart cocked her
head to one side.
"You
don't?"
"I
think it's very inconveniently placed for us, Madam President," the
Secretary of State replied after a brief hesitation. "Their delegation
could make the trip in less than a week, thanks to their Junction and the
Erewhon Junction. It's going to take over a month for our delegation to
make the trip from Haven. And it's going to take over three weeks for our
acceptance and their acknowledgment of our acceptance to travel back and forth
between here and Manticore. So the absolute earliest we could actually sit down
with them is the next best thing to two months from today."
"That
sort of time constraint's going to be part and parcel of any peace conference,
Leslie," Pritchart pointed out. "It always takes time, and finding a
suitable site we can both agree to is worth going a little out of our way. I
suppose," she smiled thinly, "that we could always ask them to guarantee
our safe conduct and take Haven One through their Junction. That would
cut about a week off of our total transit time."
"And
Thomas Theisman would have me shot at dawn if I proposed any such thing, Madam
President."
"Probably
not," Pritchart disagreed.
"If
it's all the same to you, Madam President, I'd prefer not to find out."
"Wise
of you, I suppose." Pritchart sat for another moment, studying the
Secretary of State's expression, then frowned very slightly. "Somehow,
though, Leslie, I don't think the time element is the only issue you
have."
"Well,"
Montreau began, then stopped. She seemed uncomfortable, but finally she inhaled
and started again.
"Madam
President, I have to confess I'm just a little anxious about the notion of the
President of the Republic attending a peace conference on a planet inhabited
almost exclusively by freed genetic slaves. As far as I can tell, at least half
of them have some connection with the Audubon Ballroom, and their Secretary of
War is probably the galaxy's most notorious terrorist. Then there's the fact
that they're a monarchy, with a queen who's the adopted daughter of one of
Manticore's leading politicians and a man who used to be one of the Star
Kingdom's best spies. And that same man is basically running Torch's
intelligence community, with the Queen of Manticore's niece as his
assistant."
She shook
her head.
"Madam
President, I question whether or not this planet can really be considered a
'neutral site,' and I have some fairly severe reservations about your personal
security and safety on Torch."
"I
see."
Pritchart
leaned back in her chair, her own expression thoughtful, and considered what
Montreau had said. Then she shrugged.
"I can
see why you might be concerned," she said. "I think, though, that
you're making a not unreasonable mistake by failing to recognize that Torch is
something new and unique. Yes, Queen Berry is the daughter of Anton Zilwicki
and Catherine Montaigne. She was born on Old Earth, though, not Manticore, and
I'm quite confident her primary loyalty is to her new planet and her new
subjects. I have . . . certain highly covert contacts within the Torch
government which keep me quite well informed in that regard.
"As
for my personal security and safety among a bunch of ex-terrorists, you might
want to recall just exactly what the Aprilists were." Her smile this time
was thin and cold. "I was a senior member of the Aprilists, Leslie. I
personally killed over a dozen men and women, and InSec labeled all of us
'terrorists.' I'm not going to worry all that much about my safety among people
someone like Manpower's labeled terrorists simply because they chose to strike
back violently at the butchers who made their lives living hells. And while
Anton Zilwicki may head their intelligence services, I have complete and total
faith in the young woman who commands their military."
Montreau
looked at her. Pritchart suspected the Secretary wanted to press her
objections, but she had the good sense not to.
"Very
well, Madam President," she said instead. "If the site's acceptable
to you, I'm not going to raise any more objections. Although, with your
permission, I intend to discuss my specific concerns with the Attorney General
and Presidential Security, as well as my own security people."
"Of
course you have my permission, Leslie."
"Thank
you."
The
Secretary smiled, then tapped the last stack of hard copy.
"This
was perhaps the most surprising part of the entire package," she said.
"It includes a copy of two official messages to Erewhon. One is from
Foreign Secretary Langtry, and the other's from Queen Elizabeth. They're
proposing that both sides agree to bring no military units into the Congo
System, aside from a single escort vessel for the ships transporting our
delegations, and that the Erewhonese Navy assume responsibility for the
system's security during the conference. The official messages they've copied
to us are requests to Erewhon to agree to undertake that role."
"Now that,
Leslie, was a clever move on someone's part," Pritchart said almost
admiringly. "High Ridge blotted Manticore's copybook so thoroughly with
Erewhon that he almost drove them into our arms, and he managed it
mainly because he was too stupid to understand how Erewhonese think. Obviously,
whoever came up with this notion doesn't suffer from that particular form of
blindness. Given that the Star Kingdom knows Erewhon provided us with
significant technology transfers before hostilities resumed, this is
Manticore's way of telling Erewhon the current government recognizes its
predecessors' mistakes and that it trusts the Republic of Erewhon to
keep its word. That it trusts Erewhon enough to put the life of its Queen into
Erewhonese hands, even after what happened when Elizabeth visited Grayson. Or,
for that matter, when Princess Ruth visited Erewhon."
She shook
her head, smiling.
"Whatever
comes of the peace conference, asking Erewhon to guarantee our security is
going to move it almost all the way back to a truly neutral position between us
and Manticore."
"Should
we object to the suggestion, then?" Montreau asked, and Pritchart shook
her head again, more violently.
"Certainly
not! Objecting to the suggestion, especially after Elizabeth and Langtry have
already issued their request, would be the same as saying we don't trust
the Erewhonese to play the role of honest neutral. Right off hand, I can't
think of anything that would be more destructive to our own relationship with
them."
"Then
I take it you're prepared to approve the Manticoran proposal?"
"Yes,
I think I am. As you suggested, I'll want to read over the correspondence
myself, and we'll have to have Cabinet approval before I take the entire notion
officially to the Senate. Under the circumstances, though, I don't see anyone
raising any objections if I'm agreeable."
"Frankly,
I don't either, Madam President. So, with your permission," Montreau
stood, "I'll get back to my office. Colonel Nesbitt and I need to begin
considering our own security recommendations."
* * *
"So
the President is really serious about this, Madam Secretary?" Jean-Claude
Nesbitt asked.
"She
certainly is, Colonel," Secretary of State Montreau replied. "And
while I admit I have a few reservations about the site myself, this initiative
of hers also strikes me as our best chance for a negotiated settlement."
"I
see."
Nesbitt
frowned, and Montreau looked at him questioningly. He saw her expression and
gave himself an impatient little shake.
"Sorry,
Madam Secretary. I'm just thinking about all the things that could go wrong.
And, if I'm going to be honest, I suppose I'm also thinking about the relative
military positions. Given our current advantages, and the fact that the Manties
appear to be tangled up with the Sollies in Talbott, I hope President
Pritchart's planning on taking a fairly hard line."
"Our
exact position at the summit is going to be up to the President's
direction," Montreau's said just a bit coolly.
"Of
course, Madam Secretary. I didn't mean to suggest it shouldn't be. It's just
that, especially after Solon and Zanzibar, I'm afraid the man in the street's
in a fairly bloodthirsty mood."
"I
know. On the other hand, formulating long-term diplomatic policy on the basis
of public opinion surveys isn't exactly a good idea."
"Of
course, Madam Secretary," Nesbitt said again, bobbing his head with a
pleasant smile. "In that case, suppose I go and pull everything we have on
Torch? I'll request a full background download from Director Trajan over at
FIS, as well. Let me spend a few days reviewing it with my senior people and
possibly get a few of your senior staffers involved for input from their side
of the aisle. After that, I'll be able to delineate specific areas of concern
and formulate proposals for dealing with them."
"That
sounds like the best way to proceed," Montreau agreed, and Nesbitt smiled
again and climbed out of his chair.
"I'll
go and get started, then. Good afternoon, Madam Secretary."
"Good
afternoon, Colonel."
Nesbitt let
himself out of the Secretary's office and started towards the building's lift
shafts, then paused. He stood there a moment, then turned and crossed the hall
to knock lightly on the frame of an open door.
"Oh.
Good afternoon, Colonel," Alicia Hampton said, looking up from her
workstation.
"Good
afternoon, Ms. Hampton." Nesbitt stepped into the fairly spacious,
comfortably furnished office. "I was just finishing up my meeting with
Secretary Montreau, and I thought I'd poke my head in and see how you're
getting along."
"Thank
you Colonel. That's very thoughtful of you." Hampton smiled a bit
tremulously. "It hasn't been easy. Secretary Montreau's a perfectly nice
person, and she takes her job seriously, but she's just not Secretary
Giancola." Her eyes were suspiciously bright, and she shook her head.
"I still can hardly believe he's gone—him and his brother, both at once,
just gone like that. It was all such . . . such a stupid waste."
"I
know exactly what you mean," Nesbitt said feelingly, although not for
quite the same reasons.
"And
he was such a good man," Hampton continued.
"Well,
Ms. Hampton—Alicia," Nesbitt said, "when we lose a good man, a
leader, we just have to hope someone else can step into the gap. I think
Secretary Montreau's going to try very hard, and I hope all of us can help her
as she does."
"Oh, I
certainly agree, Colonel! And it was so good of her to keep me on as her
administrative assistant!"
"Please,
I think we've known one another long enough now for you to call me
Jean-Claude," he said with a pleasant smile. "And it was good
of her to keep you on. Of course, it was also smart of her. Secretary Giancola
often told me how much he relied on you to keep the Department running
smoothly. Obviously, your background knowledge and experience must have been
very valuable to Secretary Montreau during the transition."
"I
like to think so, anyway . . . Jean-Claude," Hampton said, her eyes
dropping shyly for just a moment. Then she looked back up at him and returned
his smile. "I've tried. And she's beginning to delegate a little more than
she was willing to when the Senate first confirmed her."
"Good!"
Nesbitt nodded vigorously. "That's exactly what I was talking about,
Alicia. And I hope you'll keep me in mind, as well. Secretary Giancola
was more than just a boss to me, too, and I'd really like to see his work
carried on. So if there's anything I can do for you or Secretary Montreau, any
security or intelligence matter, or anything of that sort, please let me know.
After all, part of my job is being able to intelligently anticipate what the
Secretary's likely to need before she actually gets around to asking me."
"Of
course, Jean-Claude. I'll bear that in mind."
"Fine.
Well, I've got to be on my way now. I'll check back with you in a day or so,
once this whole conference idea's had a chance to shake down a little more.
Maybe we could discuss the Secretary's needs over lunch, down in the
cafeteria."
"I
think that would be a good idea . . . Jean-Claude," she said.
Honor
Alexander-Harrington stood between her husband and her wife. Her left hand held
Emily's right, and her right hand held Hamish's left, while the three of them
watched through the outsized window as Dr. Knippschd's technicians carefully
rolled the artificial womb into the room beyond. Dr. Franz Illescue and his
team stood waiting, gowned and prepared outside the sterilizing field.
Honor felt
her hands tightening on her spouses', and forced herself to relax—physically,
at least—before she did any damage. Hamish leaned towards her, pressing the
side of his head briefly and gently to hers, and she smiled. Then she bent
beside Emily's life-support chair and pressed her own cheek against Emily's.
"I
never thought I'd see this," Emily whispered in her ear.
"Just
wait a couple of months," Honor whispered back, and Emily looked up at her
with an enormous smile.
"It'll
be hard. But at least it looks like you'll be able to be here then, too."
"We
can hope," Honor agreed, and straightened back up.
She glanced
over her shoulder, and her lips twitched as she glanced at Nimitz and Samantha.
Dr. Illescue and she weren't exactly friends, and she doubted they ever would
be, but their relationship had become much more cordial since his apology and
her acceptance of it. Still, he and Briarwood had seemed a bit nonplussed by the
notion of having a pair of six-limbed, furry arboreals in attendance during a
birthing. And the passel of armed security personnel standing behind the
parents—all three of them—and the living grandparents, seven-year-old aunt and
uncle, plus the unofficial aunts and uncles and the god parents—had only added
to the staff's consternation. They were accustomed to having the immediate
family present at such times, but this "immediate family" had
challenged them.
Which was
why they were gathered in the observation gallery of a full-scale operating
room, rather than one of the smaller, more intimate delivery rooms normally
used. Briarwood simply hadn't had a regular delivery room large enough to
accommodate the crowd.
Colonel
Andrew LaFollet, Lieutenant Spencer Hawke, Sergeant Jefferson McClure, Sergeant
Tobias Stimson, and Corporal Joshua Atkins stood between the parents' family
and the observation gallery's single entrance in a solid wall of Harrington
green. Alfred and Allison Harrington stood side-by-side, each with an arm
around the other, to Emily's left. Faith and James stood in front of their
parents, watching with huge eyes and most imperfectly suppressed excitement.
Lindsey Phillips, their nanny, stood beside them, keeping a watchful eye
peeled, and Miranda LaFollet and James MacGuiness stood to Hamish's right, with
Farragut cradled in Miranda's arms. Willard Neufsteiler and Austen Clinkscales
had arrived from Grayson for the event, accompanied by Katherine Mayhew and
Howard Clinkscales' widows, and Michelle Henke, Alice Truman, and Alistair
McKeon completed the party.
Almost,
that was. The Queen of Manticore and her Consort were also present, along with
their treecats, and half a dozen of the Queen's Own to bolster the
Harrington security cordon. Not to mention the additional security clamped
around the outside of the building.
No wonder Illescue's people seemed a bit boggled by the
guest list, Honor thought, suppressing a sudden, almost overwhelming
temptation to giggle. Nerves, she told herself sternly. That's nerves
talking, Honor.
As if
Illescue had felt her thinking about him, the doctor looked up at the
observation window, nodded once, and beckoned his team forward.
It's a
routine procedure he performs every day, Honor reminded herself. A routine procedure. Nothing
to worry about. Shut up, pulse!
She
breathed deeply, drawing on decades of martial arts training, but it was hard,
hard. She wanted to stand on tiptoe, press her nose to the glass, to strain for
the first glance, the first sight. She wanted to wrap her arms around Emily and
Hamish, to sing. She felt Nimitz and Samantha with her, sharing her excitement
and her joy, and she suddenly realized no other human being had ever shared the
moment of her child's birth with a mated pair of treecats.
On the
other side of the glass, Illescue and his team opened the unit. The inner
chamber rose smoothly, and Honor found herself holding her breath, knew that
despite her best efforts she was crushing Hamish's hand—she'd engaged the
governor on her left hand to protect Emily—as she saw their unborn son floating
in the amniotic fluid. The child stirred, kicking, drifting, and she felt the
thread of his own sleepy, unformed wonder, as if he sensed the impending
moment, even through the corona of joy rising about her. The emotions of her
family and friends were like some enormous sea, deep, intense, and powerful,
yet focused. Not precisely peaceful, yet equally not tempestuous. They
were vibrant, quivering with anticipation like a strummed guitar string, and so
brightly, warmly supportive—so happy for her—that tears blurred Honor's
vision.
Illescue
tapped buttons on a console, and the top of the inner chamber slid open. A
fibrous-looking mat floated on the fluid, and he used a vibro scalpel to slice
it open. The umbilical cord had been attached to the mat, and it coiled lazily
as his gloved, sterile hands reached down and lifted the tiny, fragile,
infinitely precious body.
Honor's
lungs insisted that she breathe. She ignored them, her entire being focused on
Illescue's gentle, competent hands as he and his team severed the umbilical and
cleaned the air passages, and the baby's emotions shifted abruptly.
She closed
her eyes, reaching out with mental hands, trying to touch the infant mind-glow
as drowsy contentment turned into fear and confusion, shock as he left the
soft, warm safety of the womb for the cold and frightening unknown. She felt
him protesting, squirming, fighting to return, and then, in a fashion she knew
she would never be able to explain to another human being, Nimitz and Samantha
were with her. And so was Farragut, and behind him came Ariel and Monroe.
The
treecats reached out with her as the first, thin squall of protest sounded, and
suddenly, as easily as slipping her hand into a glove, she touched him. Touched
him as she had never touched another human being, even Hamish. It was as if her
hand had reached out into the dark, and a smaller, warmer, utterly trusting
hand had found it with unerring accuracy.
The
squalling complaint stopped. The infant eyes moved, unable to focus and yet
sensing the direction of the warm, comforting welcome, the love and the
eagerness flowing from Honor into him. His was an unformed presence, and yet he
knew her. He recognized her, and she felt the unhappiness and fear
flowing out of him as he nestled close to her.
Her outer
vision wavered, vanishing into the blur of tears, and she felt Hamish's arms
around her. She tasted his love for her, for their son, for Emily, rising to
engulf her. She clung to him, without ever releasing Emily's hand, and in that
moment, she knew her entire life had been worthwhile.
The baby
squirmed, protesting the intrusion of other hands, of instruments, as he was
weighed, examined, evaluated. But even as he squirmed, face wrinkled in newborn
concentration, tiny mouth moving, eyes squeezed indignantly shut, she cuddled
him in immaterial, steel-strong hands of love. And then he was a tiny,
red-faced, neatly wrapped bundle in Illescue's hands as the doctor carried him
out of the delivery room to his waiting parents.
Illescue
stepped into the gallery, his face one huge smile, and for once Honor tasted no
trace of his prickly personality, his innate sense of superiority. There was
only the pleasure, the sense of wonder and renewal, which had drawn an arrogant
aristocrat into the world of medicine's most joyous specialization in the first
place, and she smiled back at him, holding out her hands eagerly, as he crossed
to her.
"Your
Grace," he said softly, "meet your son."
Honor's
lips trembled as she gathered the tiny, tiny weight carefully to her. She could
have held him stretched along one forearm, his head cupped in the palm of her
hand, and she stared down at the ancient, eternally new miracle in her arms.
His eyes slipped open once again, moving, unfocused and yet seeking the loving
presence wrapped about him like another blanket, and she lifted him to her
breast. She held him close, inhaling the indescribable newborn smell of him,
feeling the incredibly smooth, fragile skin against her own cheek. She crooned
softly, and his lips moved, nuzzling her. Perhaps he was only searching for a
nipple with newborn hunger, but fresh tears of joy spilled down her cheeks.
"Welcome
to the world, baby," she whispered into his ear, then lowered him and
brushed a kiss across his forehead. She turned to Hamish and Emily, stooping
beside Emily's life support chair, holding him out to them, and Emily brushed
aside her own tears so that they could see their son together.
Honor
looked up as her father and mother stepped close behind her, and her mother
rested both hands on her shoulders.
"He's
beautiful," Allison Harrington said, and smiled tenderly as she reached
past her daughter to touch her first grandchild's cheek. "You may not
believe that, right this minute," she continued, brushing the tip of her
finger across the screwed-up, still somehow indignant face, "but give him
a little while. He'll knock your socks off."
"He
already has," Emily said, and looked up at Honor and Hamish. "My God,
he already has."
Honor
smiled at her, blinking on her own tears, and then she straightened and turned.
She stepped past Emily and Hamish, past a beaming Elizabeth Winton and Justin
Zyrr-Winton, past a crooning Nimitz and Samantha, and faced Andrew LaFollet.
"This
is my son," she said to them all, her eyes locked with the man who had
been her personal armsman for so many years, "Raoul Alfred Alistair
Alexander-Harrington. Flesh of my flesh, bone of my bone, heir of heart and
life, of power and title. I declare him before you all, as my witnesses and
God's."
"He is
your son," Austen Clinckscales replied, bowing deeply. "So witness we
all."
"This
is my son," she repeated more softly, speaking only to LaFollet, "and
I name you guardian and protector. I give his life into your keeping. Fail not
in this trust."
LaFollet
looked back at her, then dropped to one knee, resting his hand lightly on the
blanket-wrapped baby, and met her eyes unflinchingly.
"I
recognize him," he said, his voice soft yet clear as he spoke the ancient
formula, "and I know him. I take his life into my keeping, flesh of your flesh,
bone of your bone. Before God, Maker and Tester of us all; before His Son, Who
died to intercede for us all; and before the Holy Comforter, I will stand
before him in the Test of life and at his back in battle. I will protect and
guard his life with my own. His honor is my honor, his heritage is mine to
guard, and I will fail not in this trust, though it cost me my life."
His voice
fogged on the final sentence, and his eyes were suspiciously bright as he rose
from his knee. Honor smiled at him, and worked one tiny, preposterously
delicate hand free of the swaddling blanket. LaFollet extended his own hand,
fingers opened, and she placed her son's palm against his.
"I
accept your oath in his name. You are my son's sword and his shield. His steps
are yours to watch and guard, to ward and instruct."
LaFollet
said nothing more, only bent his head in a slight yet profound bow, and then
stepped back. Honor bent her own head to him, tasting and sharing both his joy
and his deep, bittersweet regret, and then she turned back to the others.
"Faith,
James," she said to her brother and sister, going down on one knee,
"come meet your nephew."
* * *
"This
is still going to take some getting used to," Hamish murmured into Honor's
ear as they walked slowly down the central aisle of King Michael's Cathedral on
either side of Emily's life-support chair.
"What?"
Honor murmured back, looking down at the sleeping infant clasped carefully in
his arms. "Fatherhood?"
"That,
too," he said from the corner of his mouth, and then somehow managed to
flick his head without actually moving it to indicate the four green-uniformed
men walking behind them.
Honor
didn't have to look. Andrew LaFollet was there, of course, as Raoul's personal
armsman. Spencer Hawke walked directly behind her, and she tasted the
combination of his pride and apprehensive sense of responsibility at his
promotion to her personal armsman. But she knew it was Tobias Stimson
and Jefferson McClure to whom Hamish actually referred.
"I
warned you and Emily both," she whispered to him as they approached the
baptismal font. "And at least you each got off with only one armsman."
Emily
snorted quietly between them, and Hamish glanced across at both of them eyes
twinkling, then smoothed his expression into solemnity as they reached the font
and Archbishop Telmachi turned to face them. Father O'Donnell stood beside the
archbishop, prepared to assist, and Telmachi smiled and opened his arms in an
inviting gesture.
There was a
stir behind them as Raoul's godparents assembled.
"Beloved,"
Telmachi said, "we have gathered here to baptize this child. As he is the
child of two planets, so also is he the child of God in two traditions. We have
examined the doctrine of the Church of Humanity Unchained, as the Church of
Humanity Unchained has examined that of Mother Church. We find no
irreconcilable conflict between them, and as this child stands heir to high
office and titles in both of his worlds, we baptize him here in God's most Holy
Name for both Mother Church and the Church of Humanity Unchained."
He paused a
moment, then smiled and turned his attention to the parents.
"Has
this Child been already baptized, or not?"
"He
has not," Honor, Hamish, and Emily replied in unison, and Telmachi nodded.
"Dearly
beloved, inasmuch as our Savior has said none can enter into the kingdom of
God, unless he be regenerate and born anew of Water and the Holy Ghost, I
beseech you to call upon God, that through our Lord Jesus Christ, he will of
his bounteous mercy grant to this Child that which by nature he cannot have;
that he may be baptized with Water and the Holy Ghost, and received into
Christ's holy Communion, and be made a living member of the same.
"Let
us pray."
Honor bowed
her head, and Telmachi's beautifully trained voice continued.
"Almighty
and immortal God, the aid of all in need, the helper of all who flee to You for
succor, the life of those who believe, and the resurrection of the dead; we
call upon You for this child, that he, coming to Your holy Baptism, may receive
remission of sin by spiritual regeneration."Receive him, O Lord, as You
have promised by Your well-beloved Son, saying, ask, and you shall have; seek,
and you shall find; knock, and it shall be opened unto you. So give now unto us
who ask; let us who seek find; open the gate unto us who knock; that this Child
may enjoy the everlasting benediction of Your heavenly washing, and may come to
the eternal kingdom, which You have promised by Christ our Lord. Amen."
"Amen,"
the response came back, and he smiled, looking directly into the parents' eyes.
"Hear
the word of the Gospel, written by Saint Mark, in the tenth Chapter, at the
thirteenth Verse.
"They
brought young children to Christ, that he should touch them: and his disciples
rebuked those who brought them. But when Jesus saw it, he was much displeased,
and said to them, Let the children come to me, and do not forbid them, for of
such is the kingdom of God. Truly, I say to you, whosoever shall not receive
the kingdom of God like a little child, he will not enter therein. And He took
them up in His arms, put His hands upon them, and blessed them.
"And
now, being persuaded of the good will of our heavenly Father towards this
child, declared by His Son Jesus Christ; let us all faithfully and devoutly
give thanks to Him, and say,
"Almighty
and everlasting God," Telmachi prayed, joined by the gathered celebrants'
voices, "heavenly Father, we give You humble thanks that You have
vouchsafed to call us to the knowledge of Your Grace, and to faith in You.
Increase this knowledge, and confirm this faith in us forever. Give Your Holy
Spirit to this child, that he may be born again, and be made an heir of
everlasting salvation. Through our Lord Jesus Christ, Who lives and reigns with
You and the same Holy Spirit, now and forever. Amen."
Telmachi
paused, then beckoned once more. In the Grayson tradition, there were four
godparents: two godfathers and two godmothers, and Honor smiled as Elizabeth
Winton, Justin Zyrr-Winton, Katherine Mayhew, and Alistair McKeon stepped up on
either side of the parents.
"Dearly
beloved," Telmachi said to them, "you have brought this child here to
be baptized; you have prayed that our Lord Jesus Christ would receive him,
would release him from sin, would sanctify him with the Holy Ghost, and would give
to him the kingdom of heaven and everlasting life.
"Do
you, therefore, in the name of this Child, renounce the devil and all his
works, the vain pomp and glory of the world and all covetous desires of the
same, and the sinful desires of the flesh, so that you will not follow, nor be
led by them?"
"I
renounce them all," the godparents replied in unison, "and by God's
help, will endeavor not to follow nor be led by them."
"Do
you believe all the articles of the Christian Faith, as contained in the
Apostles' Creed?"
"I
do."
"And
will you be baptized in this Faith?"
"That
is my desire."
"Will
you obediently keep God's holy will and commandments, and walk in the same all
the days of your life?"
"I
will, by God's help."
"Having
now, in the name of this Child, made these promises, will you also on your part
take care that this Child learn the Creed, the Lord's Prayer, and the Ten
Commandments, and all those things which a Christian ought to know and believe
for his soul's health?"
"I
will, by God's help."
"Will
you take care that this Child, so soon as he may be sufficiently instructed and
of an age to reaffirm these vows in his own right, and of his own will, be
brought before the Bishop or Reverend to be confirmed by him?"
"I
will, by God's help."
"Oh
merciful God, grant that as Christ died and rose again, so this Child may die
to sin and rise to newness of life. Amen.
"Amen."
"Grant
that all sinful affections may die in him, and that all things belonging to the
Spirit may live and grow. Amen.
"Amen."
"Grant
that he may have power and strength to have victory, and to triumph against the
devil, the world, and the flesh. Amen."
"Amen."
"Grant
that whoever is here dedicated to You by our office and ministry, may also be
imbued with heavenly virtues, and everlastingly rewarded to Your mercy, oh
blessed Lord God, who lives, and governs all things, worlds without end.
Amen."
"Amen."
"The
Lord be with you."
"And
with you."
"Lift
up your hearts."
"We
lift them up to God."
"Let
us give thanks to our Lord God."
"It is
meet and right to do so."
"It is
very meet, right, and our bounden duty, that we should give thanks to You, Oh
Lord, Holy Father, Almighty and Everlasting God, for Your dearly beloved Son,
Jesus Christ, for the forgiveness of our sins, did shed out of His most
precious side both water and blood, and gave commandment to His disciples, that
they should go teach all nations, and baptize them in the Name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Receive, we beseech You, the
supplications of Your congregation. Sanctify this Water to the mystical washing
away of sin, and grant that this Child, now to be baptized therein, may receive
the fullness of Your Grace, and remain always in the number of Your faithful
children; through the same Jesus Christ our Lord, to whom, with You, in the
unity of the Holy Spirit, be all honor and glory, now and forever. Amen."
"Amen."
Telmachi
reached out, and Raoul stirred, rolling his head as the Archbishop took him
into his arms and looked once again at the godparents.
"Name
this Child."
"Raoul
Alfred Alistair," Elizabeth Winton replied clearly, and Telmachi bent to
the font, cupping up some of the water in his palm. He poured it gently over
Raoul's dark fuzz of hair, and the baby promptly began to wail.
"Raoul
Alfred Alistair," Telmachi said through Raoul's lusty protests, "I
baptize you in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
Amen."
"Amen."
* * *
"I've
been wondering what to get Raoul for a christening gift," Elizabeth III
said quietly to Honor as they walked out of the cathedral onto its well guarded
front steps.
"You
already gave it," Honor said, equally quietly, turning to look at her
Queen.
"I
did?" Elizabeth quirked one eyebrow.
"Yes,
you did." Honor smiled. "It should be arriving in Nouveau Paris in
about three more days."
"Oh.
That." Elizabeth couldn't quite restrain a slight grimace, but Honor only
nodded.
"I can
think of much worse christening gifts than a peace treaty ending an
interstellar war, Elizabeth."
"It's
on, Tom."
Thomas
Theisman looked at the smiling face on his com and felt himself smiling in
response.
"The
official reply is here?" he asked, and Eloise Pritchart nodded.
"The
dispatch boat got in about five hours ago. The Manticoran delegation will meet
us on Torch in two months. We'll have to depart in about three weeks—twenty
days, to be precise—to meet them."
"That's
wonderful, Eloise!"
"Yes,
it is," Pritchart agreed, but then her face sobered. "In a way,
though, it's even worse."
"Worse?"
Theisman repeated, surprised.
"I've
got to sit down across the table from a woman who detests everything she thinks
the Republic of Haven stands for and somehow convince her to make peace with
the people who attacked her star nation on my personal orders." She shook
her head. "I've had easier chores in my life."
"I
know," he replied. "But we've got to try."
"We've
got to do more than try, Tom." Pritchart's expression firmed up,
and she shook her head again, this time with a completely different emphasis.
"I'm coming home with a peace treaty. One way or the other. Even if it
means telling Elizabeth what we suspect about Giancola."
"Are
you certain about that? About telling her, I mean? It could blow up in our
faces, you know. We've all heard about her temper, and if anyone ever had a
right to be pissed to the max, she does. If she finds out we let Giancola
manipulate us, especially after we accused her government of being the
guilty party, Lord only knows how she may react."
"She's
going to find out eventually, anyway," Pritchart pointed out. "And as
you suggested, Harrington's going to be present. Hopefully, she really will
have a moderating influence. But I actually suspect the treecats are going to
be even more important, assuming the Manty reports on their capabilities are
accurate. I think I'm willing to take a chance on telling her the truth, as
long as I can do it face-to-face, with the treecats there to prove to her that
I am telling the truth."
"I
hope you haven't mentioned this particular brainstorm to Leslie?"
Theisman's smile was only half humorous, and Pritchart chuckled.
"She's
unhappy enough about going to Torch for the summit in the first place. I don't
think she needs to know exactly what sort of diplomatic faux pas I'm
prepared to commit if it seems necessary after we get there."
* * *
Admiral Sir
James Bowie Webster, Baron of New Dallas, and the Star Kingdom of Manticore's
ambassador to the Solarian League, regarded his morning's schedule with scant favor.
"This
is goddamned ridiculous," he grumbled to Sir Lyman Carmichael, his
assistant ambassador.
"What's
ridiculous?" Carmichael responded, as if they hadn't had this identical
conversation every Monday morning since Webster's arrival on Old Earth.
"This."
Webster thumped a rather large fist on the hardcopy printout of his agenda,
then opened his hand and waved it around his palatial office. "All
this crap! I'm a naval officer, not a frigging diplomat!"
"Traditional
prejudices aside," Carmichael replied mildly, "a career in diplomacy
isn't quite the same as seeking employment in a brothel. And don't—"
he raised an admonishing index finger as Webster opened his mouth "—don't
tell me that's because whores have more principles!"
"All
right, I won't. Especially," Webster grinned, "since you already
appear to realize that yourself."
"One
of these days," Carmichael promised him. "One of these days."
Webster
laughed and leaned back behind his desk.
"Actually,
my cousin, the Duke, would be better at this than I am, Lyman. You know that as
well as I do."
"I've
had the pleasure of knowing your cousin for many years now," Carmichael
said. "I have immense respect for him, and he really is a skilled
diplomat. Having said all that, I truly don't think he could do the job you've
been doing."
"Now that,"
Webster said, " really is ridiculous!"
"No,
it isn't. Your status as a naval officer, especially one who's held the offices
you've held, is part of the reason, of course." Carmichael smiled.
"One reason the Star Kingdom's traditionally assigned military officers
and ex-military officers as our ambassadors to the League is the fact that they
have a certain fascinating effect on Solly politicos. They don't see very many
real military people at this level, and that rather blunt directness you Navy
types seem to acquire contrasts quite nicely with the mouthfuls of platitudes
and careful political maneuvering they're accustomed to.
"But
mostly, in your case, to be honest, it's the fact that you don't lie worth a
damn, Jim."
"I beg
your pardon?" Webster blinked, and Carmichael chuckled.
"I
said you don't lie worth a damn. In fact, you're so bad at it that the two or
three times I've seen you try, the people you were talking to simply assumed
you were deliberately pretending to lie in order to make a point."
Webster
regarded him narrowly, and Carmichael shrugged.
"You're
simply an honest man. It comes across. And that's rare—very rare—for someone
operating at the level you currently are. Especially here." Carmichael
grimaced. "There's a taint of decadence in the air here on Old Earth,
which may be why honesty's so rare. But whatever it is, they don't really
understand you, in a lot of ways, because you do come out of the military, and
very few of them do. But when you say something, personally or as the Queen's
representative, they're confident you're telling them the truth. At the moment,
especially with the dispute over our correspondence with the Peeps and the
shenanigans in the Talbott Cluster, that's incredibly important, Jim. Don't
undervalue yourself."
Webster
waved one hand, as if he were uncomfortable with Carmichael's explanation.
"Maybe,"
he said, then shook himself. "Speaking of the Peeps, how do you feel about
this summit meeting Pritchart's proposed?"
"I was
surprised," Carmichael admitted, accepting the change of subject.
"It's a very unusual departure, especially for the Havenites. In fact,
it's so unusual, I'm inclined to think she really must be serious."
"God,
that would be an enormous relief," Webster said frankly. "I don't
like this Talbott business. There's more going on than we think. I'm sure of
it. I just can't put my finger on what it is. But it's there, and I can't shake
the feeling that in the long run, it may be even more dangerous to us than the
Peeps are."
Carmichael
sat back in his chair, even his trained diplomat's face showing surprise, and
Webster barked a harsh laugh.
"I
haven't lost my mind, Lyman. And I'm not blind to the current military
situation—trust me on that one. But the Republic of Haven is small beer
compared to the Solarian League, and if Mesa—and you know as well as I do that
Terekhov is right about Mesa's involvement—can maneuver Frontier Security into
doing its dirty work, the situation will be a thousand times worse. And the
Sollies are arrogant enough that a lot of their so-called political leaders
wouldn't even care."
"You're
probably right," Carmichael said, forced to concede the point, however
much he disliked doing so. "But you seriously think there's more to what's
going on in Talbott than Mesa's traditional efforts to keep us as far away from
them as possible?"
"Look
at the scale of their effort," Webster said. "We're talking billions—lots
of billions—of dollars worth of battlecruisers. Somebody ponied up the cash
to pay for them, not to mention obviously orchestrating the efforts of OFS,
local terrorists, and an entire star nation as a proxy. That's a huge effort,
and it's also more direct then Mesa or Manpower have been in the last couple of
centuries. Hell, since Edward Saganami!"
"But
couldn't that simply be because of how threatening they find our proximity and
because they know how distracted by Haven we are? I mean, they know we don't
have a lot of resources to commit against them."
"I'm
convinced that's an element in their thinking," Webster agreed, "but
they're still coming further out of the shadows—not just with us; with the
Sollies, as well. They're running the risk of coming to the surface, and
they've always been bottom feeders before." He shook his head. "No.
There's a whole new flavor to this one, and that makes me nervous."
"Now
you're making me nervous," Carmichael complained. "Can't we
just deal with one crisis at a time?" he added rather plaintively.
"I
wish." Webster drummed on his desk for a moment, then shrugged.
"Actually, I suppose we are, assuming this summit idea produces something.
And in the meantime, I'm afraid it also means we have to make nice with the
Peep ambassador and his people, at least in public."
"Well,
we'll have the opportunity tonight," Carmichael said philosophically.
"I
know," Webster said glumly. "And I hate the opera, too."
* * *
"Are
we ready?"
"Yes."
Roderick Tallman thought of himself as a "facilitator," and he was
good at his job. Despite the fact that he was required to maintain an extremely
low profile because of the nature of the things he "facilitated,"
there was always work waiting for him, and he knew without any sense of false
modesty that he was indispensable.
"The
money's in place?"
"Yes,"
Tallman said, managing not to sound wearily patient. He did know how to
do his job, after all. "The credit transfers have been made and backdated,
and I handled the computer side myself." He smiled and shook his head.
"The Havenites really ought to hire a good Solarian firm to update their
systems security. It shouldn't have been this easy to hack."
"Count
your blessings," his current employer said sourly. "Their accounting
software may be vulnerable, but we've tried about four times to break into
their other secured files without much luck. Actually, I suspect you got into
their banking programs from the Solly end, didn't you?"
"Well,
yes," Tallman admitted. "I invaded their interface with their
banks."
"That's
what I thought." His employer shook her head. "Don't take this
personally, but a lot of Sollies make some rather unjustified assumptions about
their technological superiority. One of these days, that may turn around and
bite all of you on the ass. Hard."
"I
suppose anything's possible." Tallman shrugged. It wasn't as if anyone
could threaten the League, after all. The very idea was preposterous.
"Well,"
his employer said, "if that's all taken care of, I suppose you'd
appreciate your fee."
"You
suppose correctly," Tallman told her.
"The
most important thing of all," she said, not hurrying to hand over the
untraceable hard copy bearer bond certificate, "is that this particular
manipulation be completely untraceable. The only place it can lead is
back to the Havenites."
"I
understood that from the beginning." Tallman leaned back slightly in his
chair. "You know my reputation. That's why you came to me in the first
place, because my work is guaranteed and I've never had a client burned. Trust
me, if they track this one back, they'll even be able to identify the terminal
in the Embassy where the transactions were supposed to have been entered."
"Good!"
She smiled. "That's exactly what I needed to hear. And now, for your
fee."
She reached
into her smartly tailored jacket, and Tallman let his chair come back fully
upright, reaching out his hand—then froze in shock.
"Wh—?"
he began, but he never finished the question, for the pulser in her hand
snarled. The burst of darts hit him at the base of the throat and tracked
upwards across his neck and the left side of his face, with predictably
gruesome results.
His
employer grimaced with distaste, but she'd been careful to sit further back
than usual. She was outside the splatter pattern, and she dropped the pulser on
the desk, straightened her jacket fastidiously, and let herself out of the
office. She walked down the hallway and took the lift to the parking garage,
where she climbed into her air car and flew calmly off. Five minutes later, she
landed several miles away from the late, lamented Tallman's office building.
This parking
garage was in a much less desirable part of town. Most of the vehicles parked
here were old, battered. The sort of things youth gangs looking for a quick
credit would turn up their noses at.
She parked
her own new-model, expensive sports vehicle in a stall beside one such
battered, grimy air car, and climbed out into the shadows. She looked around
carefully, then took a small handset from her pocket and pressed a button. Her
face seemed to ripple and shudder indescribably, and her complexion—not just on
her face, but everywhere—shifted abruptly, darkening and coarsening, as the
nanotech which had coated every millimeter of her body turned itself off. The
invisibly tiny machines released their holds, drifting away on the morning
breeze, and in place of the rather tall, blonde woman who had murdered Roderick
Tallman, there stood a dark-faced man, slightly below the average in height,
with a wiry, muscular build and a bosom.
He grimaced
and reached inside his shirt, removing the padding, and tossed it into the back
seat of his air car. A quick squirt from a small aerosol can, and the padding
dissipated into a wispy fog.
He adjusted
his clothing slightly, then unlocked the grimy vehicle beside the air car in
which he had arrived. He settled himself at the controls, brought up the
counter-grav, and flew calmly away. He inserted the vehicle into one of the
capital city's outbound traffic lanes, switched in the autopilot, and leaned
back in his seat, wondering idly whether or not the vehicle he'd abandoned had
been picked up and stripped yet.
If it
hadn't, it would be very shortly, of that he was confident.
* * *
Sir James
Bowie Webster smiled pleasantly, despite the fact that his teeth badly wanted
to grit themselves, as he stepped out of his official diplomatic limousine in
front of the Greater New Chicago Opera House. He'd never liked opera, even at
the best of times, and the fact that the Sollies prided themselves that they
did this—like everything else—better than anyone else in the known universe
irritated him even more.
If pressed,
Webster was prepared to admit that the citizens of planets like Old Earth and
Beowulf at least meant well. The fact that they had little more clue than a
medieval peasant about things that went on outside their own pleasant little
star systems was unfortunate, but it didn't result from any inherent
malevolence. Or even stupidity, really. They were simply too busy with the
things that mattered to them to think much about problems outside their own
mental event horizon. But the fact that they complacently believed that the
Solarian League, with its huge, corrupt bureaucracies and self-serving,
manipulative elites, was still God's gift to the galaxy made it difficult,
sometimes, to remember that most of their sins were sins of omission, not
commission.
At least he
and Carmichael were making some progress dealing with the bloody events in
Talbott. Accounts of the Battle of Monica were really only just beginning to
trickle in to Old Earth, and from everything he'd seen so far, the revelations
were going to get worse, before they got better. The good news, he supposed,
was that it was remotely possible even the Solarian public might get exercised
over such flagrant—
Webster
never saw the pulser in the hand of the Havenite ambassador's chauffeur.
* * *
"What?
What did you say?" William Alexander, Baron Grantville, demanded
incredulously.
"I
said Jim Webster's been shot," Sir Anthony Langtry said, his face ashen,
his voice that of a man who couldn't—or didn't want to—believe what he heard
himself saying.
"He's dead?"
"Yes.
He and his bodyguard were killed almost instantly, right outside the Opera
House, of all goddamned places!"
"Jesus."
Grantville closed his eyes on a stab of pain. He'd known James Webster most of
his life. They'd been personal friends, but not nearly so close as Webster and
Hamish had been. This was going to hit his brother hard, and the entire Star
Kingdom was going to be stunned—and enraged—by the highly popular admiral's
death.
"What
happened?" he asked after a moment.
"That's
the really bad part," Langtry said grimly. The Foreign Secretary had come
to Grantville's office in person with the news, and something about his tone
sent a chill down Grantville's spine.
"Just
the fact that he's dead is bad enough for me, Tony," the Prime Minister
said a bit more tartly than he'd really intended to, and Langtry raised a hand,
acknowledging the point.
"I
know that, Willie. And I'm sorry if it sounded like I didn't. I didn't know him
as well as you and Hamish, but what I did know about him, I liked a lot.
Unfortunately, in this instance, the way he was killed really is
worse."
The Foreign
Secretary drew a deep breath.
"He
and one of his bodyguards were shot and killed by the Peep ambassador's
personal driver."
"What?!"
Despite all
his years of political training and a basic personality which remained calm in
the face of disaster, Grantville erupted to his feet behind his desk, leaning
forward over it to brace both hands on its top. Eyes of Alexander blue blazed with
consternation—and rage—and for just a moment it looked as if he intended to
vault physically across the desk.
Langtry
didn't reply. He simply sat, waiting for the Prime Minister to work through his
shock the same way he had when the news first hit his office. It took
several seconds, and then, slowly, Grantville settled back into his chair,
still staring at Langtry.
"That's
what happened," Langtry said finally, after the Prime Minister had seated
himself once more. "In fact, it's pretty damned open and shut. The
driver's dead, of course—Webster's second security man nailed him, and three
Solly cops at the Opera as additional security saw the whole thing. In fact,
one of them got his sidearm out in time to put at least one dart of his own
into the driver, and one of the others got the entire thing on his shoulder
cam. It's all on chip, and they sent the visual record out with the
dispatch."
"My
God," Grantville said, almost prayerfully.
"Wait,
it gets better," Langtry said grimly. "The driver wasn't a Havenite
national. He was a Solly, provided by the limo service with the transportation
contract for the Peeps New Chicago embassy."
"A
Solly," Grantville repeated carefully.
"A
Solly," Langtry confirmed, "who's received the equivalent of just
over seventy-five thousand Manticoran dollars in unrecorded, unreported credit
transfers from a Havenite diplomatic account."
Grantville
stared at him, far beyond consternation and into the realm of pure shock.
"What
could they have been thinking?" He shook his head. "Surely
they didn't think they could get away with this?"
"I've
asked myself both those questions. But, to be frank, there's another one that's
far more pressing at the moment."
Grantville
looked at the Foreign Secretary, who shrugged.
"Why?"
he asked simply. "Why should they do this?"
* * *
"God damn
them!" Elizabeth Winton snarled as she stormed back and forth like a
caged tigress, pacing the carpet behind the chair in which she should have been
sitting.
Her fury
was a living, breathing thing in the conference room, and Ariel crouched on the
back of her chair, ears glued flat to his skull, scimitar claws shredding its
upholstery like kneading scalpels. Samantha was in little better condition, her
eyes half-closed as she crouched on the back of Hamish Alexander-Harrington's
chair and fought to resist the other 'cat's blazing rage.
"Don't
these fuckers ever learn a goddamned thing?" Elizabeth
hissed. "What the hell did they—"
"Just
a minute, Elizabeth."
The Queen
whirled back towards the table, her face still suffused with rage, as White
Haven spoke.
"What?"
she snapped.
"Just
. . . calm down for a second," he said, his own expression that of a man
who'd taken a physical wound. "Think. Jim Webster was my friend for over
seventy T-years. You can't possibly be more furious about his murder than I am.
But you just asked a very important question."
"What
question?" she demanded.
"Don't
they ever learn," he said. She glared at him, and he looked back steadily.
"Don't misunderstand me. And don't think for an instant, if it turns out
the Peeps did this, that I won't want them just as dead as you do. For God's
sake, Elizabeth—they already tried to kill my wife!"
"And
your point is?" she asked in a slightly more moderate tone.
"And
my point is that this whole thing is stupid. Assume the Peeps have
access to whatever they used to make Timothy Mears try to kill Honor. In that
case, why in hell would they choose their own ambassador's driver as
their assassin? They could have picked someone with absolutely no connection to
them, so they used his driver. Does that make any sense to you at
all?"
"I—"
Elizabeth began. Then she paused, obviously beginning to think at last.
"All
right," she said, after a moment. "I'll grant that that's a
legitimate question. But what about the credit transfers the Solly police
turned up?"
"Ah,
yes," White Haven said. "The credit transfers. Transfers made
directly out of Havenite diplomatic funds, and made so clumsily the police
turned them up within less than seven hours of beginning their investigation of
the killer. And let's not forget, that killer was on what anyone but an idiot
must have recognized would be a suicide mission. Like the reports say, there
were police eyewitnesses. At the very least, he was looking at certain
arrest and conviction for murder. Would you do that for seventy-five
thousand dollars? How much good would the money do you lying dead on the
sidewalk, or after it was confiscated by the courts when they convicted and sentenced
you for murder?"
"Maybe
it's a double-blind," Colonel Ellen Shemais suggested.
The head of
Elizabeth's personal security detachment's job was at least half that of a
spook. As a consequence, Elizabeth had made the colonel her liaison to the
Special Intelligence Service, as well as her chief bodyguard.
"What
do you mean, Ellen?" the Queen asked now.
"I
mean Earl White Haven's objections are extremely well taken, Your
Majesty," Shemais said. "It's got to be the stupidest way to arrange
an ostensibly deniable assassination I've ever heard of, and the Queen's Own is
something of an authority on the history of assassination. They might as well
have had their ambassador pull the trigger himself. So, either they didn't do
it, and someone's gone to enormous lengths to convince us they did, or else
they deliberately set it up this way so they could scream they were being
framed."
"Why
would they do that, Colonel?" Baron Grantville asked.
"I
don't know. The problem is, they could have a reason we simply don't know
anything about that makes it seem perfectly logical to them. I can't personally
conceive of what it might be, but it's the only explanation I can come up with
for them to have set this up."
"What
about the time element?" Langtry asked. "What if this was something
they'd decided simply had to be done quickly, and they didn't have time to set
it up better?"
"Won't
wash, Mr. Secretary," Shemais said, shaking her head. "The earliest
of those credit transfers was over three months old. So either they had a limousine
driver—someone who was driving their own limousines, not someone
else's—on their payroll for three months and then tapped him for this suicide
mission, as the Earl described it, or else we were supposed to find the
transfers. And if they recruited him specifically to kill Admiral Webster, then
apparently they did it three months ago. Which was plenty of time for
them to have set up another assassin, one with absolutely no connection to
them, instead."
"But
who else could have wanted Jim dead?" Grantville asked.
"I
can't answer that one, either, Prime Minister," Shemais admitted candidly.
"But while you're asking it, you might also want to ask who else could
have wanted him dead, and had the resources and technical capability to
put this together, if it wasn't the Peeps? If it wasn't them, someone went to
an awful lot of trouble to convince us it was."
"I
don't think it was anyone else," Elizabeth growled. She was marginally
less furious, and Ariel allowed her to lift him from the sadly shredded topof her
chair as she seated herself at last. She settled the 'cat in her lap, and
frowned harshly.
"I'm
willing to admit at least the theoretical possibility that it wasn't the
Peeps," she said, "but I don't believe it was someone else. I think
it was them. I think they did it for some reason we can't know, possibly
something Webster had found out on Old Earth that they didn't want us to learn
about. Maybe even something he hadn't realized yet that he knew. Like you say,
Ellen, we can't know what might have seemed like a logical reason to them. And
as for the credit transfers, they could have had him doing something else
before they picked him for this one."
"But—"
Hamish began, only to have her cut him off with a quick, sharp shake of her
head.
"No,"
she said. "I'm not going to play the think and double-think game. For
now—for the moment—I'll operate on the assumption that it may not have
been the Peeps. You've got that much. We'll go ahead with the summit, and we'll
see what they have to say. I'd be lying if I said what's happened wasn't likely
to make me a lot less willing to believe anything they say on Torch, but I'll
go. But I'm getting incredibly tired of having these bastards murder people I
care about, members of my government, and my ambassadors. This is it, as far as
I'm willing to go."
Anthony
Langtry looked as if he wanted to argue, but instead, he only closed his mouth
and nodded, willing to settle for what he could get.
Elizabeth
glared around the conference room one more time, then climbed back out of her
damaged chair, nodded to her three cabinet secretaries, and left, accompanied
by Colonel Shemais.
"Where's
Ruth?" Berry Zilwicki, Queen of Torch, asked plaintively.
"Saburo
says she's running late, girl," Lara said, shrugging with the casual
informality which was such a quintessential part of her.
The
ex-Scrag was still about as civilized as a wolf, and she had a few problems
grasping the finer points of court etiquette. Which, to tell the truth, suited
Berry just fine. Usually, at least.
"If
I've got to do this," the Queen said firmly, "Ruth has to do it with
me."
"Berry,"
Lara said, "Kaja said she'll be here, and Saburo and Ruth are already on
their way. We can go ahead and start."
"No."
Berry flounced—that really was the only verb that fit—over to an armchair and
plunked down in it. "I'm the Queen," she said snippily, "and I
want my intelligence advisor there when I talk to these people."
"But
your father isn't even on Torch," Lara pointed out with a grin. Thandi
Palane's "Amazons" had actually developed senses of humor, and all of
them were deeply fond of their commander's "little sister." Which was
why they took such pleasure in teasing her.
"You know
what I mean!" Berry shot back, rolling her eyes in exasperation. But
there was a twinkle in those eyes, and Lara chuckled as she saw it.
"Yes,"
she admitted. "But tell me, why do you need Ruth? It's only a gaggle of
merchants and businessmen." She wrinkled her nose in the tolerant contempt
of a wolf for the sheep a bountiful nature had created solely to feed it.
"Nothing to worry about in that bunch, girl!"
"Except
for the fact that I might screw up and sell them Torch for a handful of glass
beads!"
Lara looked
at her, obviously puzzled, and Berry sighed. Lara and the other Amazons truly
were trying hard, but it was going to take years to even begin closing the
myriad gaps in their social skills and general background knowledge.
"Never
mind, Lara," the teenaged Queen said after a moment. "It wasn't
really all that funny a joke, anyway. But what I meant is that with Web tied up
with Governor Barregos' representative, I need someone a little more devious to
help hold my hand when I slip into the shark tank with these people. I need
someone to advise me about what they really want, not just what they say they
want."
"Make
it plain anyone who cheats you gets a broken neck." Lara shrugged.
"You may lose one or two, early, but the rest will know better. Want
Saburo and me to handle it for you?"
She sounded
almost eager, and Berry laughed. Saburo X was the ex-Ballroom gunman Lara had
picked out for herself. Berry often suspected Saburo still didn't understand
exactly how it had happened, but after a brief, wary, half-terrified, extremely
. . . direct "courtship," he wasn't complaining. On the face of
it, theirs was one of the most unlikely pairings in history—the
ex-genetic-slave terrorist, madly in love with the ex-Scrag who'd worked
directly for Manpower before she walked away from her own murderous past—and
yet, undeniably, it worked.
"There
is a certain charming simplicity to the idea of broken necks,"
Berry conceded, after a moment. "Unfortunately, that's not how it's done.
I haven't been a queen for long, but I do know that much."
"Pity,"
Lara said, and glanced at her chrono. "They've been waiting over half an
hour," she remarked.
"Oh,
all right," Berry said. "I'll go—I'll go!" She shook her head
and made a face. "You'd think a queen would at least be able to get away
with something when her father is half a dozen star systems away!"
* * *
Harper S.
Ferry stood in the throne room, arms crossed, watching the thirty-odd people
standing about. He knew he didn't cut a particularly military figure, but that
was fine with him. In fact, the ex-slaves of Torch had a certain fetish for not
looking spit and polish. They were the galaxy's outcast mongrels, and they
wanted no one—including themselves—to forget that.
Which
didn't mean they took their responsibilities lightly.
Harper, for
example. Looking at him, a casual observer would have seen a man, probably in
his late thirties, of relatively average build—maybe just a bit more wiry than
most—with dark hair and eyes, a swarthy complexion, and an expression arranged
out of reasonably pleasant features. That same casual observer almost certainly
wouldn't have realized that Harper S. Ferry had been one of the Audubon
Ballroom's most efficient assassins since he was fourteen. In fact, Harper
would have had to think very hard—and consult his diary—to recall all of the
men and women he'd killed in his lifetime.
Nor did he
regret what he'd done. Still, after long enough, a man got tired of killing,
even when the scum he was removing from the universe were genetic slavers. Men
and women who'd made fortunes off of the systematic sale, abuse, and torture of
millions of genetic slaves just like Harper S. Ferry literally for centuries.
If he could find another way to hurt them, he was prepared to embrace it, and
the notion that jabbing a jagged, pointy stick directly into Manpower
Incorporated's eye involved keeping an immensely lovable young girl alive had
appealed to him from the beginning. And however casual he might look, he took
absolutely no chances with Berry Zilwicki's safety.
And not
just because she was so lovable. It wasn't often that a girl barely seventeen
T-years old was critical to the survival of an entire planet of refuge, yet
that was precisely what Berry Zilwicki was.
Judson Van
Hale walked casually across the throne room, angling a bit closer to Harper.
Judson had never been a slave himself, but his father had. Fortunately, the
senior Van Hale had also found himself aboard a slave ship intercepted by a
Royal Manticoran Navy light cruiser. The slaver in question had been equipped
to jettison its crew of human beings into space to avoid embarrassing
questions, and its crew had suffered a series of fatal exposures to vacuum
themselves shortly after its interception. Most of the liberated slaves had
become Manticoran subjects, and Judson had been born on Sphinx.
He was also
one of exactly three of Torch's present citizens who'd been adopted by a
treecat.
That made
him an extremely valuable asset for the relatively small bodyguard force Queen
Berry was prepared to tolerate. In addition, Harper suspected that the fact
that Judson had come from Manticore also helped make him more acceptable to the
Queen. He was like a breath of home, a reminder of the first place—the only
place really—where Berry Zilwicki had ever felt completely safe.
"This
is a lively bunch," Judson murmured disgustedly out of the corner of his
mouth as he stopped beside Harper. "Genghis here is downright bored."
He reached
up and caressed the cream-and-gray treecat riding on his shoulder, and the 'cat
purred and pressed his head against Judson's hand.
"Boring
is good," Harper replied quietly. "Exciting is bad."
"I
know. Still, I'd sort of like to earn my magnificent salary. Nothing too
exciting, you understand. Just enough to make me feel useful. Well, to make
us feel useful," he corrected, scratching Genghis' chest.
"Thandi
thinks you're useful," Harper pointed out. "That's good enough for me.
I'm not going to argue with her, at any rate."
Judson
laughed. Harper, unlike the Sphinx-born Judson, had rather fancied himself as a
deadly hand-to-hand fighter. Having watched him in the training salle,
Judson was inclined to agree with him. Unfortunately for Harper, Thandi Palane
wasn't a deadly hand-to-hand fighter; she was a lethal force of nature who
laughed at the merely deadly. As she'd demonstrated rather conclusively to
Harper the first time he swaggered onto the mat with her.
She'd
hardly hurt him at all, really. With quick heal, the broken bones had healed in
just a few weeks.
"I
think not arguing with Thandi is turning into Torch's planetary sport,"
Judson said now, and Harper chuckled.
"Aren't
they running late?" Judson asked after a moment, and Harper shrugged.
"I
don't have any place else I need to be today," he said. "And if
Berry's running true to form, she's dragging her heels, waiting for Ruth. And
Thandi, if she can get her here."
"Why aren't
they here?"
"They're
going over something to do with security for the summit, and according to the
net," Harper tapped his personal com, "Thandi's sending Ruth on ahead
while she finishes up." He shrugged again. "I'm not sure exactly what
it is she's working on. Probably something about setting up liaison with
Cachat."
"Oh,
yeah. 'Liaison,'" Judson said, rolling his eyes, and Harper slapped
him lightly on the back of the head.
"No
disrespectful thoughts about the Great Kaja, friend! Not unless you want her
Amazons performing a double orchidectomy on you without anesthesia."
Judson
grinned, and Genghis bleeked a laugh.
"Who's
that guy over there?" Harper asked after a moment. "The fellow by the
main entrance."
"The
one in the dark blue jacket?"
"That's
the one."
"Name's
Tyler," Judson said. He punched a brief code into his memo pad and looked
down at the display. "He's with New Age Pharmaceutical. It's one of the
Beowulf consortiums. Why?"
"I
don't know," Harper said thoughtfully. "Is Genghis picking up any
sort of vibes from him?"
Both humans
looked at the treecat, who raised a true hand in the thumb-folded, two-finger
sign for the letter "N" and nodded it up and down. Judson looked back
at Harper and shrugged.
"Guess
not. Want us to stroll a bit closer and check him out again?"
"I
don't know," Harper said again. "It's just—" He paused.
"It's probably nothing," he went on after a moment. "It's just
that he's the only one I see who's brought along a briefcase."
"Hm?"
Judson
frowned, surveying the rest of the crowd.
"You're
right," he acknowledged. "Odd, I suppose. I thought this was supposed
to be primarily a 'social occasion.' Just a chance for them to meet Queen Berry
as a group, before the individual negotiating sessions."
"That's
what I thought, too," Harper agreed. He thought about it for a moment longer,
then keyed a combination into his com.
"Yes,
Harper?" a voice replied.
"The
guy with the briefcase, Zack. You checked it out?"
"Ran
the sniffer over it and had him open it," Zack assured him. "Nothing
in it but a microcomputer and a couple of perfume dispensers."
"Perfume?"
Harper repeated.
"Yeah.
I picked up some organic traces from them, but they were all consistent with
cosmetics. Not even a flicker of red on the sniffer. I asked him about them,
too, and he said they were gifts from New Age for the girls. I mean, Queen
Berry and Princess Ruth."
"Had
they been pre-cleared?" Harper asked.
"Don't
think so. He said they were supposed to be surprises."
"Thanks,
Zack. I'll get back to you."
Harper
switched off the com and looked at Judson. Judson looked back, and the
ex-Ballroom assassin frowned.
"I
don't like surprises," he said flatly.
"Well,
Berry and Ruth might," Judson countered.
"Fine.
Surprise them all you want, but not their security. We're supposed to
know about this kind of crap ahead of time."
"I
know." Judson tugged at the lobe of his left ear, thinking. "It's
almost certainly nothing, you know. Genghis would be picking up something from
him by now if he had anything . . . unpleasant in mind."
"Maybe.
But let's you and I sashay over that way and have a word with Mr. Tyler,"
Harper said.
* * *
William
Henry Tyler stood in the throne room, waiting patiently with the rest of the
crowd, and rubbed idly at his right temple. He felt a bit . . . odd. Not ill,
really. He didn't even have a headache. In fact, if anything, he felt just a
bit euphoric, although he couldn't think why.
He shrugged
and checked his chrono. "Queen Berry"—he smiled slightly at the
thought of the Torch monarch's preposterous youth; she was younger than the
younger of Tyler's own two daughters—was obviously running late. Which, he
supposed, was the prerogative of a head of state, even if she was only
seventeen.
He glanced
down at his brief case and felt a brief, mild stir of surprise. It vanished
instantly, in a stronger surge of that inexplicable euphoria. He'd actually
been a bit startled when the security man asked him what was in the case. For
just an instant, it had been as if he'd never seen it before, but then, of
course, he'd remembered the gifts for Queen Berry and Prince Ruth. That had
been a really smart idea on Marketing's part, he conceded. Every young woman
he'd ever met had liked expensive perfume, whether she was willing to admit it
or not.
He relaxed
again, humming softly, at peace with the universe.
* * *
"All
right, see? I'm here," Berry said, and Lara laughed.
"And
so graceful you are, too," the Amazon said. "You who keep trying to
'civilize' us!"
"Actually,"
Berry said, reaching out to pat the older woman on the forearm, "I've
decided I like you all just the way you are. My very own wolfpack. Well,
Thandi's, but I'm sure she'll lend you to me if I ask. Just do me a favor and
try not to get any blood on the furniture. Oh, and let's keep the orgies out of
sight, too, at least when Daddy's around. Deal?"
"Deal,
Little Kaja. I'll explain to Saburo about the orgies," Lara said, and it
was perhaps an indication of the effect Berry Zilwicki had on the people about
her that an ex-Scrag didn't even question the deep surge of affection she felt
for her teenage monarch.
* * *
A slight
stir went through the throne room as someone noticed the Queen and her lean,
muscular bodyguard entering through the side door. The two of them moved across
the enormous room, which had once been the ballroom of the planetary governor
when Torch had been named Verdant Vista and owned by the planet Mesa. The men
and women who'd come to meet the Queen of Torch were a little surprised by how
very young she looked in person, and heads turned to watch her, although nobody
was crass enough to start sidling in her direction until she'd seated herself
in the undecorated powered chair which served her for a throne.
Harper S.
Ferry and Judson Van Hale were still ten meters from the New Age Pharmaceutical
representative when Tyler looked up and saw Berry. Unlike any of the other
commercial representatives in the room, he took a step towards her the moment
he saw her, and Genghis's head snapped up in the same instant.
The 'cat
reared high, ears flattened and fangs bared in the sudden, tearing-canvas
ripple of a treecat's war cry, and vaulted abruptly from his person's shoulder
towards Tyler.
Tyler's
head whipped around, and Harper felt a sudden stab of outright terror as he saw
the terrible, fixed glare of the other man's eyes. There was something . . .
insane about them, and Harper was suddenly reaching for the panic button on his
gun belt.
The
pharmaceutical representative saw the oncoming 'cat, and his free hand flashed
across to the briefcase he was carrying. The briefcase with the
"perfume" of which no one at New Age Pharmaceuticals had ever heard .
. . and which Tyler didn't even remember taking from the man who'd squirted
that odd mist in his face on Smoking Frog.
Genghis
almost reached him in time. He launched himself from the floor in a snarling,
hissing charge that hit Tyler's moving forearm perhaps a tenth of a second too
late.
Tyler pressed
the concealed button. The two canisters of "perfume" in the briefcase
exploded expelling the binary neurotoxin which they had contained under several
thousand atmospheres of pressure. Separated, its components had been innocuous,
easily mistaken for perfume; combined, they were incredibly lethal, and they
mingled and spread, whipping outward from Tyler under immense pressure even as
the briefcase blew apart with a sharp, percussive crack.
Genghis
stiffened, jerked once, and hit the floor a fraction of a second before Tyler,
left hand mangled by the explosion of the briefcase, collapsed beside him.
Harper's finger completed its movement to the panic button, and then the deadly
cloud swept over him and Judson, as well. Their spines arched, their mouths
opened in silent agony, and then they went down as a cyclone of death spread
outward.
* * *
Laura and
Berry did their best to maintain suitably grave expressions, despite their
mutual amusement, as they walked towards Berry's chair. They were about halfway
there when the sudden, high-pitched snarl of an enraged treecat ripped through
the throne room.
They spun
towards the sound, and saw a cream-and-gray blur streaking through the crowd.
For an instant, Berry had no idea at all what was happening. But if Laura
wasn't especially well socialized, she still had the acute senses, heightened
musculature, and lightning reflexes of the Scrag she had been born.
She didn't
know what had set Genghis off, but every instinct she had screamed "Threat!"
And if she wouldn't have had a clue which fork to use at a formal dinner, she
knew exactly what to do about that.
She
continued her turn, right arm reaching out, snaking around Berry's waist like a
python, and snatched the girl up. By the time Genghis was two leaps from Tyler,
Lara was already sprinting towards the door through which they'd entered the
throne room.
She heard
the sharp crack of the exploding briefcase behind her just as the door opened
again, and she saw Saburo and Ruth Winton through it. From the corner of her
eye, she also saw the outrider of death scything towards her as the bodies
collapsed in spasming agony, like ripples spreading from a stone hurled into a
placid pool. The neurotoxin was racing outward faster than she could run; she
didn't know what it was, but she knew it was invisible death . . . and that she
could not outdistance it.
"Saburo!"
she screamed, and snatched Berry bodily off the floor. She spun on her heel
once, like a discus thrower, and suddenly Berry went arcing headfirst through
the air. She flew straight at Saburo X, like a javelin, and his arms opened
reflexively.
"The
door!" Lara screamed, skittering to her knees as she overbalanced from
throwing Berry. "Close the door! Run!"
Berry hit
Saburo in the chest. His left arm closed about her, holding her tight, and his
eyes met Lara's as her knees hit the floor. Brown eyes stared deep into blue,
meeting with the sudden, stark knowledge neither of them could evade.
"I
love you!" he cried . . . and his right hand hit the button to close the
door.
"Not
one word," Elizabeth Winton said flatly. "Not one word about why they
might have done it, or who else might have wanted to do it."
Her Prime
Minister and his Cabinet sat silently as she surveyed them with eyes of frozen
brown ice. The different distances and travel times from the Sol System, via
Beowulf, and Congo, via the Erewhon Junction, meant the messages had arrived
just over twenty-four hours apart, and Queen Elizabeth was beyond fury now. She
had entered a frozen realm, where hate burned colder then interstellar space.
"They
killed Sir James and tried to kill Berry Zilwicki and my niece on the same
damned day. All the available evidence from Old Terra says it was a Peep
operation, and who else knew we were planning a summit meeting on Torch? The
Peeps and the Erewhonese, and does anyone in this room believe the Erewhon
honor code would have let them do something like this? Even assuming they'd had
any conceivable reason to?"
Hamish
Alexander-Harrington inhaled deeply and looked around the Cabinet Room. It was
unusual for the monarch to come here instead of being attended upon at Mount
Royal Palace by her chief minister and, perhaps, one of two of his colleagues.
In fact, it had only happened seven times in the entire history of the Star
Kingdom. Well, eight now. But Elizabeth hadn't wanted to speak only to her
Prime Minister; she wanted all the members of his Cabinet to hear what she had
to say.
He closed
his eyes briefly, his face wrung with pain, and not just for his murdered
friend. The heroic determination of Berry Zilwicki's bodyguard had saved her
and Ruth Winton from certain death. The ex-slave who'd closed the door in the
nick of time had literally dragged the two girls out of Berry's palace. He'd
had to drag them; Berry had been hysterically trying to pry the door open with
her bare hands.
Every
individual in the throne room had died within fifteen seconds, and another two
hundred and twenty-six other people had died as the neurotoxin spread beyond
the throne room through other doors, windows, and the air conditioning system.
And the death toll would have been at least three times that high if the
security man who'd first noticed the assassin's briefcase hadn't sounded the
alarm with his panic button. The almost immediate shutdown of the air
conditioning had slowed the poison's spread long enough for the rest of the
people in its path to evacuate. And the agent used was apparently as persistent
as it had been fast-spreading. According to early reports, it was going to be
simpler to simply burn the "palace" down and start over than to
decontaminate it.
"I
don't understand," Baroness Mourncreek, Grantville's Chancellor of the
Exchequer, said in a troubled voice. "Why did they do it? I mean, what
have they accomplished?"
"They've
managed to kill our ambassador to the League," Elizabeth said coldly.
"Admiral Webster was highly trusted by his contacts in the League. He'd
become a relatively well known media figure from his appearances on various
talk shows, as well, and he'd been very effective in moderating the more
extremist newsies' versions of what's been going on in the Talbott Cluster ever
since Nordbrandt started killing people. They probably figured he'd be equally
effective in controlling the League's reaction to Terekhov's actions at Monica.
By killing him, they intended to remove that possibility and increase the odds
the League will take military action against us in Talbott."
"And
what happened on Torch, Your Majesty?" Mourncreek said.
"They
invited us—me—to a summit meeting. I don't think they actually expected me to
accept. I think it was essentially planned as yet another of their damned
diplomatic lies. They probably intended to publish the correspondence of their
invitation and my refusal as proof that they're the 'reasonable party' in this
war. It would have bolstered their claim that they've been telling the truth
about our diplomatic correspondence from the beginning.
"But
then I accepted their invitation, and we nominated Torch for the site
and invited Erewhon to provide security, with the possibility of repairing the
damage to our relations with the Erewhonese. They hadn't counted on that. And
even though they'd probably never expected to sit down and negotiate seriously,
they found themselves in a position where they might actually have to do that.
Where it was even possible we'd sound like the voice of reason. So they
decided to avoid the entire problem by killing Berry and Ruth—after all, what's
the death of two more teenaged girls to bastards like Peeps? For that matter,
if the girls' schedule hadn't slipped, they probably would have killed Thandi
Palane and decapitated the Torch military, as well. Obviously, the confusion
and chaos which would have resulted would have made Torch completely impossible
as a conference site. And even if it hadn't, they could always point to their
concern about security issues and the safety of their precious President
Pritchart as reasons they couldn't possibly meet with me there. After,
of course, sending me their lying condolences for my niece's death—just like
Saint-Just did after he murdered Uncle Anson and Cal!"
Hamish felt
a protest hovering on the tip of his tongue. Not because he wasn't almost as
certain of Haven's complicity as Elizabeth herself, but because it still didn't
make sense to him. Theway Haven had attempted to kill Honor certainly seemed to
indicate they saw assassination as a perfectly legitimate tool, and that
accorded with the traditional policies of the Legislaturalists and the
Committee of Public Safety, as well. Not to mention the fact that Pritchart
herself had been credited with more than one assassination during her
revolutionary days.
Not only
that, he could follow Elizabeth's reasoning where James Webster's death was
concerned. Webster had been effective, and his death certainly wasn't
going to help manage the crisis in the Talbott Cluster. Given how the threat of
that crisis hung over the Star Kingdom, inhibiting Manticore's freedom of
action, preventing its resolution had to be attractive to Haven.
But her
theory about Haven's motives for what had happened on Torch . . . . That he
found much harder to accept. Or, at least, to understand.
There was
no need for the Republic to resort to Machiavellian diplomatic maneuvering. If
anyone knew that, it was Hamish Alexander-Harrington. The sheer scale of the
Peeps' numerical advantage was terrifying, and it was going to get only worse.
It was possible new innovations like Mistletoe and Apollo would go a long way
towards equalizing those odds, but Pat Givens swore there was no way Haven
could have penetrated the security screen around those projects. So as far as
Thomas Theisman and Eloise Pritchart knew, the weapons mix wasn't about to
change radically, which meant they should have been supremely confident their
advantage in numbers would prove decisive.
So why
worry about diplomacy? Why not simply issue an ultimatum: surrender now, or
face an overwhelming offensive from our side at the same time you're
confronting Frontier Security in Talbott.
And yet . .
. .
And yet,
Elizabeth had put her finger on the single most damning point. Who else had
a motive? And even assuming someone else did have some motive to derail a
possible peace initiative, how had they known one was in the offing? Or where
the conference was to be held?
Elizabeth's
theory might not seem completely logical, but no other theory offered itself at
all.
"I
suppose," William Alexander said heavily, "that the real question
before us isn't whether or not we hold the Peeps responsible for their actions,
but what we do about it.
"Hamish,"
he turned to his brother, "what are our military options?"
"Essentially
what they were before Pritchart's invitation," Hamish replied. "One
thing that's changed is that Eighth Fleet's had longer to receive munitions and
train with them. We've got a few new wrinkles we think are going to make our
ships considerably more effective, and the additional training time will stand
Eighth Fleet in good stead. However, at this time, Eighth Fleet is the only
formation we've got which is fully trained with the new weapons. It's also the
only formation that's equipped with the new weapons, because only the Invictuses
and the Graysons' late-flight Harringtons—" he smiled wryly at the
class name, despite his somber mood "—can operate them without refitting."
"Why
is that?" Grantville asked. "I thought the pods were the same
dimensions?"
"They
are, but only the ships built with Keyhole capability from the outset can
handle the Mark Two platforms, and they're essential to making the new missiles
work. We can refit with Keyhole II—in fact, the decision to build that in is
part of what's delayed the Andermani refits—but it requires placing the ship in
yard hands for at least six weeks. And, frankly, we can't stand down our
existing ships that long when we're this tightly strapped. All our new
construction is being altered on the ways to be Keyhole II-capable, and when it
starts coming into commission, we can probably start pulling the older ships
back for refit.
"But
at the moment, only Eighth Fleet is really equipped to handle them, and even
they have only partial loadouts on the new pods. We're attempting to get into
full production on them as quickly as possible, but we've hit some bottlenecks,
and security issues have restricted the number of production facilities we
could commit to them."
"But
Eighth Fleet could resume active operations immediately?"
"Yes,"
Hamish said firmly, trying to ignore the icy shiver which went through him at
the thought of Honor going back into combat when he'd allowed himself to hope
so hard for a diplomatic solution. And trying not to think about her bitter
disappointment—and Emily's—if she found herself unable to be there for their
daughter's birth after all.
"And
what does our defensive posture look like?"
"That,
too, is essentially what it was. We're in a little better shape in Talbott,
because O'Malley's on station at Monica now. Given ONI's current estimates of
Solarian capabilities, and bearing in mind Terekhov's after-action report on
the performance of the Solly battlecruisers the Monicans used, O'Malley can
almost certainly destroy anything Verrochio could assemble to throw at him for
at least the next two to four months. In fact, Verrochio would have to be
heavily reinforced before he'd have any chance at all of evicting us from
Monica, much less the Cluster as a whole.
"As
far as direct action against the home system by the League is concerned, sheer
distance would work in our favor. They aren't going to invade us successfully
through the Junction, not with the number of missile pods we've got covering
the central nexus. That means they've got to do it the hard way, which leaves
them with something on the order of a six-month voyage just to get here. Which
doesn't even take into consideration the fact that they're going to have to
mobilize, bring together, and logistically support a fleet with overwhelming
numerical superiority if they expect to offset our tactical and technological
advantages.
"To be
honest, I'm reminded of something a wet-navy admiral from Old Earth once said.
For eighteen months to two years, possibly even twice that long, we'd run wild.
It's unlikely the Sollies recognize just how much things have changed in the
last five to ten T-years, which probably means they'd commit grossly inadequate
force levels, at least initially. Eventually, they'd realize what was
happening, though. And if they had the stomach for it, they could use their
sheer size to soak up whatever we did to them while they got their own R&D
to work on matching weapons and cranked up their own building capacity.
"The
bottom line is that my current estimate is that we could do enormous damage to
them—far more, I'm certain, then any of their strategists or politicians would
imagine was possible. But quantity has a quality all its own, and we simply
aren't big enough to militarily defeat the Solarian League if it's prepared to
buckle down and pay the cost to beat us. We don't have the ships or the
manpower to occupy the number of star systems we'd have to occupy if we wanted
to achieve military victory. They, on the other hand, have effectively
unlimited manpower and productive capacity. In the end, that would tell. And
even if that weren't true, it overlooks the fact that the Peeps already have—or
soon will have—enough wallers with broadly equivalent capabilities to pound us
under. Especially if we're distracted by dealing with the League."
"But
what I seem to hear you saying," Grantville said intently, "is that
whatever the League ultimately does, nothing it can do in the next, say,
six months is going to have a significant impact on us?"
"That
time estimate's probably a bit optimistic, assuming we take any heavy losses
against Haven," Hamish replied. "Overall, though, that's fairly
accurate."
"Then
it seems to me we've got to take the position that that six months—or whatever
shorter period we actually have—represents our window for dealing with the
Peeps," the Prime Minister said.
"Except
for the fact that by the end of that window, their numerical advantage in
SD(P)s will be on the order of three-to-one or even higher," Hamish said.
"Nothing
we can do will change that," Elizabeth said flatly. "We're building
as quickly as we can; they're doing the same thing. The threat zone until the
ships we've laid down can equalize the numbers is beyond our control . . .
unless we can do something to whittle the Peeps down."
"You're
thinking about Sanskrit," Hamish said, equally flatly.
Most of the
people in the Cabinet Room had no idea what Sanskrit was. Grantville, Hamish,
the Queen, and Sir Anthony Langtry did, and Elizabeth nodded.
"You
just said Eighth Fleet has the new weapons. If we use them, if we can convince
the Peeps we've got more of them—that we've reequipped with them across the
board—that's got to affect their strategic thinking. It may force them to do
what we wanted all along and fritter away their wall of battle defending rear
area systems. Or it may even convince them they've gotten their sums wrong and
they don't have sufficient numbers to offset our individual superiority.
In which case, the bastards may actually have to sit down and talk to us after
all."
"It's
possible," Hamish agreed. "I can't predict how probable it
might be. A lot would depend on how their analysts evaluate the situation after
they run into Mistletoe and Apollo. They might not draw the same conclusions we
would, since they won't have the same information we have about the systems'
capabilities."
"That's
a given," Elizabeth said, nodding. "But do you see any approach—any military
approach—which would give us a better chance of attaining our
objectives?"
"No."
Hamish shook his head. "Whatever the actual chance of success may be,
Sanskrit almost certainly offers us the best military odds we're going to be
able to generate."
"Very
well." Elizabeth surveyed her ministers one more time, then nodded
sharply, decisively.
"Willie,
I'm going to draft a note to Pritchart. It's not going to be pretty. I'm going
to officially and publicly denounce her actions and notify her that I have no
intention of meeting anywhere with someone who uses assassination as a routine
tool. And I'm also going to notify her that we intend to resume active military
operations immediately."
Grantville
nodded.
Technically,
he might have rejected Elizabeth's policy decisions. In fact, it was clear from
her attitude that the only way he could have opposed them would have been by
resigning rather than accepting them. And he had absolutely no doubt that if
the Queen explained to her subjects what had happened, and why shed made the
decisions she had, those decisions would enjoy overwhelming support and
approval. She could readily have found another Prime Minister to put them into
effect.
All that
was true enough, but ultimately beside the point. Because the critical point
was that he agreed with her.
"Tony,"
Elizabeth continued, turning to the Foreign Secretary, "I want our notice
that we're going back to active operations very clearly stated. Unlike them,
we're not going to be launching attacks without declaring hostilities first,
and I want that point made to the galaxy at large by publishing our note in the
'faxes at the same time we send it. There's not going to be any room for anyone
to accuse us of altering correspondence after the fact this time. Clear?"
"Clear,
Your Majesty," Langtry said, and the Queen turned back to Hamish.
"Hamish,
I want orders cut to Eighth Fleet immediately. Operation Sanskrit is
reactivated, as of now. I want active planning to begin immediately, and I want
Sanskrit to hit the Peeps as soon as physically possible."
The smile
she produced was one a hexapuma might have worn.
"We'll
give them their formal notice," she said grimly, "and I hope the
bastards choke on it!"
The senior
members of Eloise Pritchart's cabinet sat around the conference table in
stunned silence. Leslie Montreau had just finished reading the formal text of
Elizabeth Winton's savage note aloud, and everyone in the room felt as if he or
she had just been punched in the belly.
Except
Pritchart. She'd experienced that sensation ninety minutes earlier, when
Montreau delivered the note to her office. Now she inhaled deeply, tipped her
chair slightly forward, and rested her forearms on the conference table in a
posture which she hoped bespoke confidence.
"There
you have it," she said simply.
"Is
she insane?" Tony Nesbitt's question could have sounded furious;
instead, it sounded plaintive. "Why in God's name does she think we did
it? What possible motive could we have had?"
"They
already blamed us for the attempt to kill Harrington," Pritchart replied.
"And to be fair, if the situation were reversed, I'd be convinced of our
guilt in that case, too. After all, Harrington would be such a logical target
for us to remove, if we could.
"The
fact that we know we didn't do it gives us a rather different perspective, of
course. It's obvious to us that it had to have been someone else. That's
not readily apparent to them in Harrington's case, though, and I can think of
several logical reasons for us to have attempted to assassinate Webster, as
well, if we were willing to use assassination in the first place. The evidence
that we were directly involved in the Webster assassination is pretty damning,
too, even if we do know it was all fabricated.
"So
now they have this assassination attempt on Queen Berry and, apparently,
Princess Ruth. Who else are they going to blame for it?"
"But
we'd offered to discuss peace with them," Walter Sanderson said. "Why
would we have done that and then deliberately sabotaged our own proposed peace
conference? It just doesn't make sense!"
"Actually,
Secretary Sanderson," Kevin Usher said, "I'm afraid that however
angry Elizabeth may be being at this moment, her suspicions of us aren't as
illogical—or unreasonable, at least—as I'd like them to be."
"Meaning
what?" Sanderson demanded.
"Madam
President?" Usher looked at Pritchart with a questioning expression, and
she nodded.
"Go
ahead, Kevin. Tell them."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
Usher
turned back to the rest of the Cabinet.
"Some
months ago, I was going through some of the older State Security files. As you
know, we seized so many secure files it's going to take literally years to sort
our way through them all. These, though, carried maximum-security flags—from
both InSec and StateSec. That was unusual enough to pique my curiosity,
so I took a look. And it turns out we have an even longer history with the
House of Winton than I thought we did."
Sanderson
scowled, as if impatient for the Federal Investigative Agency's director to get
on with it, and Usher smiled thinly.
"I'm
sure we're all aware that Saint-Just organized the attempt to kill Elizabeth
and Benjamin Mayhew in Yeltsin. I'm sure we're all also aware that while the
Masadans missed Elizabeth and Benjamin, they did get the Manticoran prime
minister and foreign secretary. And, of course, the foreign secretary in
question, Anson Henke, was Elizabeth's uncle. Her first cousin was also killed,
and she'd been very close, emotionally as well as politically, to the Duke of
Cromarty literally from the day she first took the throne.
"That
would be bad enough, but we might convince her to associate that only with
StateSec. Except, of course, for the minor difficulty that we also had her father
assassinated."
"What?"
Thomas Theisman jerked upright in his chair, his expression thunderstruck, and
Usher nodded grimly.
"King
Roger was the primary moving force behind the original Manticoran buildup
against the Legislaturalists' Duquesne Plan. They'd assumed all along that
Manticore would be the toughest of their intended victims, but Roger's
activities were making their projections look much worse, so they decided to
decapitate the opposition. InSec already had its hooks into several Manty politicians,
and it used them to kill the king. Elizabeth was still a minor at the time, and
according to the InSec files, they hoped to influence the regency and
'redirect' Manticoran foreign-policy. At the very least, they figured putting
someone as young and inexperienced as she was on the throne would hamstring
opposition to them.
"Unfortunately
for them, the operation was blown somehow. InSec didn't have any idea how the
Manties tumbled to it, but they were convinced they had. The plan to influence
the regency went out the window when Elizabeth's Aunt Caitrin was named Regent.
Caitrin's as tough-minded as they come, and she pretty thoroughly fumigated
their Foreign Office of anyone remotely sympathetic to the Legislaturalists.
And Elizabeth—despite the fact that she musto have known about InSec's
involvement—settled for politically castrating the Manticoran politicos who
actually did the dirty work. Which, if you think about it, proves she
knew who was really behind it . . . and that, even then, she had the brains and
self-discipline to not accuse the Legislaturalists before the Star Kingdom was
ready for war."
"My
God," Theisman said. "They killed King Roger because they expected
Elizabeth to be weaker?" He barked a harsh laugh. "Well, that
little brainstorm certainly fucked up!"
"I
believe you could safely say that," Pritchart agreed. "But you see
what Kevin's driving at, don't you? The Legislaturalists and Internal Security
murdered her father. The Committee of Public Safety and State Security
tried to murder her, and did murder her uncle, her cousin, and her prime
minister. So if two totally different Havenite régimes were willing to murder
members of her family, why shouldn't a third régime attempt to murder
her niece? Is it any wonder she has to be thinking it's impossible for this
particular leopard to ever change its spots?"
"I had
no idea about King Roger's death." Sanderson shook his head, his
expression reminiscent of that of a poleaxed steer. "I still can't think
of any logical reason for us to have been behind what happened on Torch, but I
suppose, under the circumstances, it really isn't—or shouldn't be—that
surprising she's reacted this way."
"The
thing I have to wonder, Mr. Secretary," Usher said, "is
whether or not whoever did kill Webster and attempt to kill Berry Zilwicki and
Ruth Winton also knew the truth about King Roger's death?"
He glanced
at Wilhelm Trajan, and the Foreign Intelligence Service's chief shrugged
unhappily.
"We're
looking into that, Kevin," he said, then turned his attention to the
Cabinet as a whole. "As Kevin knows, we have a very good man in Erewhon,
with extraordinarily good contacts on Torch. Unfortunately, we haven't heard
from him yet, and we won't for some time. Even if he was actually on Torch when
it happened—which is unlikely, frankly, given how broad his area of
responsibility is—it's still going to be at least a couple of weeks before a
message from Torch or Erewhon reaches here.
"Having
said that, it's glaringly obvious to us that someone else did know about the summit
conference and didn't want it to happen. Kevin, have your people turned up
anything more on Grosclaude's 'suicide'?"
"No,"
Usher admitted.
"I was
afraid of that." Trajan sighed. "We've been collating reports and
rumors over at FIS for some time now. We really started looking after the
attempt to kill Harrington, since we knew we hadn't done it. It became apparent
to us rather quickly that there were a lot of parallels between the attempt on
her life and the Hofschulte affair in the Empire. In fact, it looks like
whatever technique was used was identical in both cases. We haven't heard
anything yet direct from Old Earth about the Webster assassination, but looking
at the indictment Elizabeth attached to her note, it looks very much to me as
if Ambassador DeClercq's driver may have been another application of the same
technique. And the attack on Berry Zilwicki may have been yet another—notice
that in all four cases, for example, the apparent assassin had no personal
motive to kill his victims and no chance at all of surviving the mission.
"From
the outside, and bearing in mind how little forensic evidence we have, it
sounds as if the same technique was used on Grosclaude. Not to make him kill
anyone else, but to make him kill himself."
"Where
are you headed with this, Wilhelm?" Pritchart asked, regarding him
intently.
"Grosclaude
was almost certainly Giancola's tool," Trajan said. "Giancola was
killed in what was clearly a genuine traffic accident, but Grosclaude was
intentionally eliminated. And on the face of it, by the same unknown party who
seems to have been wandering around the galaxy murdering people virtually at
will. As Kevin's demonstrated, it's extremely likely Grosclaude's death and the
forged files implicating Giancola were actually intended to convince us of
Giancola's innocence. So our unknown party was looking out for the late,
lamented Arnold's interests when he—or they—killed Grosclaude."
"Jesus!"
Rachel Hanriot pursed her lips in a low, soft whistle. "You're suggesting
Arnold was working for this 'unknown party' of yours from the beginning. That
this entire war with the Manties was deliberately provoked by someone
else?"
"I
think it's a distinct possibility." Trajan nodded. "And if it is what
happened, then obviously the people who wanted us shooting at the Manties in
the first place are going to do anything they can to prevent us from stopping
the shooting."
"But
who?" Nesbitt demanded, his face screwed up in frustration. "Who does
it help for us to be killing one another?"
"I
don't know that," Trajan admitted. "Given the operation on Torch, I'd
be tempted to point the finger at Mesa. After all, Mesa and Manpower don't much
like us or the Manties, for a lot of reasons. But I'm not sure why they
would have used Hofschulte to try and kill the Andy Emperor's younger brother.
For that matter, the real culprits may have figured we'd automatically assume
it was Mesa if they attacked the ruler of Torch. It could have been a bit of
misdirection on their part, and aside from getting us both out of Manpower's
hair—keeping us from inhibiting their slaving operations, at least in our
respective sectors—I just don't see what sort of reason Mesa could have for
committing the obvious time and resources necessary to set all of this
up."
"Are
you saying there isn't a reason?"
"No,
Secretary Nesbitt. I'm saying that neither I nor any of my senior analysts can
think of what that reason might be. And that we need to be careful not to allow
the Torch component of what's happened to stampede us into running off after
what may very well be a false scent. We can't afford to concentrate our
attention solely on the Mesa/Manpower possibility without something more to go
on than the physical location of the attack on Berry Zilwicki."
"All
of this is fascinating," Thomas Theisman said. "I mean that
sincerely, and I dearly want the answers to the questions that're being asked.
Unfortunately, we have a more pressing problem before us. Specifically,
Manticore's decision to resume hostilities."
"That's
certainly true, Admiral," Leslie Montreau said. "From the phrasing,
it's clear they intend to resume operations at the earliest possible moment.
It's even possible they're attacking us somewhere even as we sit here. Under
the strict letter of international law, they'd be thoroughly justified in
asserting that they'd given us notice of their intentions before they violated
the cease-fire, since our original agreement to the cease-fire didn't
define what 'timely notice' would be."
"Do
you think they are already hitting us, Tom?" Pritchart asked.
"From
a diplomatic perspective, I couldn't begin to answer that one," Theisman
replied. "From a military perspective, I'd be surprised if they could get
an operation off the ground this quickly. I'm assuming they probably had
operational plans in the works before the cease-fire, and that they've
continued to do precautionary updates on their planning, but it's still going
to take them some time to dust those plans off, bring their operational units
up to speed, and then actually reach their targets. We've got possibly another
week or so, from that perspective. I could be wrong, but I think that's the
most probable scenario."
"There's
got to be some way to dodge this pulser dart," Nesbitt argued urgently.
"If Wilhelm's suspicions are remotely accurate, then both of us are
playing into someone else's hands if we go back to war!"
"But
if Tom's time estimate is accurate," Henrietta Barloi said harshly,
"there's nothing we can do. If the Manties hit us as hard and as fast as
the tone of that note suggests, we're going to get pounded somewhere before
we could possibly get a note from Haven to Manticore. Even assuming Elizabeth
were prepared to believe any of this—and I'm not at all sure she would
be—there's no way to tell her about it before she pulls the trigger."
"And
if she does 'pull the trigger,'" Pritchart said grimly, "then it's
going to be harder than hell to convince anyone in Congress to try for a second
summit agreement."
"In
addition," Montreau pointed out unhappily, "we couldn't expect the
Manties to take any such second proposal seriously unless we badly defeat
whatever operation they mount."
Everyone
looked at the Secretary of State, and she shrugged.
"Right
now, Elizabeth's assuming we set this entire thing up for some unknown,
underhanded, devious reason of our own. If they attack us successfully, inflict
more damage, and get off unscathed, or with only minor damage of their own,
then as far as she'll be concerned, we'll have even more reason to stall, or
whatever the hell it is we were trying to accomplish. If we beat them severely,
though, then send her another message, along with at least a partial
explanation of Director Trajan's suspicions, we'll be speaking from a position
of strength, tactically and psychologically. If we say to them 'Look, we just
knocked the crap out of your last attack, and we're telling you we think
someone else is manipulating both of us. So if you'll at least sit down and
talk to us, we won't press our immediate advantage while you do it' they're a
lot more likely to actually take this seriously."
"I see
what you mean." Pritchart nodded, and cocked her head at Theisman.
"Tom, how likely an outcome is that?"
"That
depends on far too many imponderables for me to even guesstimate,"
Theisman said frankly. "It depends on what they decide to do, where they
decide to do it, and what's waiting for them when they do. We've managed to
cover almost all of the star systems we've been able to identify as possible
candidates for their targeting list with the new pods and control systems.
During the period of the cease-fire, I also redeployed a fair percentage of our
capital ship strength to cover the more valuable of those systems. The subunits
I used were able to continue their training and working up on their new
stations while giving us more defensive depth.
"All
intelligence indications are that they've been working hard to reinforce their
Eighth Fleet. On the basis of that, they ought to be able to attack in greater
strength. They may choose to attack a greater number of targets, but
personally, I think it's more likely they'll concentrate on one, especially
after what happened at Solon. So I'm betting on a heavy attack on one, or at
most two, of the more valuable target systems.
"Assuming
I'm right, and assuming we've guessed correctly about their likely targets, and
assuming they pick one of the ones I've assigned fleet units to and that
they haven't come up with some new doctrine or hardware, we ought to hammer
them. But please notice how many assumptions went into that statement."
He shook
his head and met his colleagues' gazes levelly.
"I'd
be lying if I told you flatly that they can't punch out whatever system they
pick. I expect they'll get hurt, wherever they hit us, but I can't guarantee
they'll be repulsed, with or without significant losses on their part."
"Understood."
Pritchart nodded again, unhappily this time, and sat in obvious thought for
several seconds. Then her nostrils flared, and she straightened slightly in her
chair.
"All
right. Personally, I think you're onto something, Wilhelm. I want all your
resources committed to trying to figure out what the hell is going on and who's
behind it."
"Yes,
Madam President."
"Leslie,
I think you're onto something about the circumstances we need before we
can share our suspicions with the Manties. All the same, I want you to begin
working now on a message we might send them if we can find or create the right
conditions. We can't afford to sound weak, or as if their present intransigence
is driving our policy—not if we expect to convince them we're telling the
truth. At the same time, we need to be as persuasive as we can, so I want you
and Kevin to sit down together. I want you as intimately familiar with his
investigation as you can possibly be, since you're the one who's going to be
drafting an explanation of it for the Manties. Do the same thing with Wilhelm.
I want a preliminary draft of the note on my desk within the next five
days."
"Yes,
Madam President."
"Tom,"
Pritchart turned to Theisman, "I'm sorry to say that at this point it
looks like it all comes down to you and your people. Leslie's right. We need a
victory before we hand this bucket of snakes to the Manties. I need you to give
me one."
"Madam
President—"
"I
know you just said you can't guarantee to defeat their next attack,"
Pritchart interrupted. "I understand why that is, and I accept your
analysis. On the other hand, we may kick their ass, after all, in which case we
can immediately send them Leslie's note. But if they kick our ass, then
we need to stage an immediate and powerful comeback. So I need you to go back
to the Octagon and sit down with Admiral Marquette and Admiral Trenis. Get back
to me with an analysis of possible offensive actions on our part. I want a
spectrum of options, ranging from the heaviest blow we can launch to a more
graduated response we might use if they attack us and we drive them off without
either side getting badly hurt."
"Yes,
Madam President." Theisman was manifestly unhappily, but his voice and expression
were both unflinching.
"I
don't like our situation," Pritchart said grimly. "I don't like it
one little bit, and I like it even less every time I realize that whoever's
doing the manipulating Wilhelm's suggested got me personally to do exactly what
they wanted. Unfortunately, at this moment, they've done exactly the same thing
with Elizabeth Winton, as well, and given her obvious attitude, there's no
prospect of explaining that to her. So the only option we have is to hit her
hard enough to convince her she has to listen to us, however ridiculous
our claims sound."
"We've
got those plans for you, Eloise."
"Good
. . . I think."
Eloise
Pritchart smiled at Thomas Theisman and Arnaud Marquette without much humor as
the Secretary of War and the Chief of the Naval Staff seated themselves at the
table in the small conference room just off her office. Of late, she thought,
she seemed to be spending a great many hours in rooms like this.
"As
you requested, we've put together a range of possible options," Theisman
continued. "In my opinion, two of them are most likely to meet your
requirements. Arnaud and I have brought you summaries on all of them, but with
your permission, I'd prefer to concentrate on the two I think are most likely:
Beatrice and Camille."
"Well,
the names sound nice, anyway," the President said wanly, and Theisman and
Admiral Marquette showed their teeth in dutiful smiles. "All right, Tom.
Go ahead."
"In
that case, let's look at Camille first," Theisman said.
"Basically,
Camille is intended for a situation in which the Manties attack one of our star
systems, and we fight them off with relatively light losses on either side. The
consequence of a sparring match, you might say, and not a death grapple.
"In
that situation, as we understood your directive, what we want is an operation
which will punish them, but without radically raising the stakes on either
side. A declaration that we've absorbed and parried their blow, and that we're
prepared to deliver similar blows of our own.
"The
basic problem is that, despite the way they've been forced to divert battle
squadrons to cover places like Zanzibar and Alizon, they have proportionately
heavier system defense forces on most of their important targets then we do.
They simply have fewer systems to defend, which lets them cover up in greater
depth, despite their numerical inferiority. So even something we intend as a
relatively minor attack is going to require a significant commitment of force
on our side. We have the resources to do that; my only real concern is that
using a task force or fleet of the size we need is likely to be perceived by
the Manties as an escalation on our part, whether we want that or not.
"Bearing
that in mind, what we propose under Camille is an attack on Alizon, similar to
the one we launched against Zanzibar. We'd probably put Lester in command
again, and we'd commit six battle squadrons—forty-eight podnaughts—with carrier
support and screening elements. That's a significantly heavier force than the
one we used against Zanzibar, but the Manties have shored up the Alizon
defenses since then, and we'll need the additional firepower to break in.
"Assuming
our force estimates are accurate, our six squadrons should be sufficient to get
the job done, but their Office of Naval Intelligence has to have at least a
fair notion of our current strength. They'll recognize that six battle
squadrons represents only a small portion of our total deployable ships of the
wall. Hopefully, they'll conclude from that that we're deliberately operating
on a reduced scale, although they may not conclude that it's for the reasons we
want them to think it is. In that case, we may require some diplomatic contact
to underscore the point that we could have hit them harder. That's one reason
we picked Alizon as our target. It's significant politically, diplomatically,
and in terms of their public's morale; it's not especially significant
any longer in terms of their actual war fighting ability, though. What we hope
is that taking out Alizon's military infrastructure will underscore our
capabilities without being perceived as a mortal threat.
"Is
that about what you wanted at this end of the spectrum?"
"It
sounds like it," Pritchart replied. "I'll want to read your summary
on it, and digest it further, of course, but it sounds like the sort of smack
in the face that will get their attention without punching their lights
out."
"That's
about what we tried to design it to do. On the other hand," Theisman
continued, "I hope you and Leslie are both remembering that using military
operations as a way to shape a diplomatic climate is always problematical. It's
much simpler—and more reliable, frankly—to think in terms of accomplishing
specific military goals than it is to come up with ways to elicit
specific desired political responses from your opponent. He's always going to
find some way to screw up what it was you thought you were going to get,
and any secretary of war or admiral who tells you differently is either a
lunatic or a liar. In either of which cases, you should get rid of his sorry
ass as quickly as possible."
"I'll
. . . bear that in mind," Pritchart said, lips twitching as she womanfully
resisted the temptation to smile.
"Good.
In that case, let's look at Beatrice."
Theisman
sat forward slightly in his chair, his palms on the tops of his thighs as he
leaned towards the President, and his expression became very serious.
"Beatrice
is no slap in the face, Madam President," he said quietly. "Beatrice
is an all-out bid for outright military victory. You said you wanted one end of
your spectrum of options to be the most powerful one we could put together.
Beatrice is it."
Pritchart
felt her own expression congealing into focused attention.
"Basically,
Beatrice is a direct attack on the Manticoran home system," Theisman told
her. "There's not much finesse to it. We'll take forty-two battle
squadrons—three hundred and thirty-six SD(P)s; equal to eighty-plus percent of
their entire modern wall of battle, including the Andies, according to NavInt's
current estimates—and we'll throw it straight at their toughest defenses and
their most critical defensive objective. They'll have to fight to defend
Manticore, and the system astrography is going to leave Sphinx especially
exposed. Essentially, we'll be able to get at Sphinx quickly enough their Home
Fleet will have no choice but to meet us head-on, however bad the odds are from
their perspective. And the odds will be bad. Because they've had to
deploy so much of their strength to cover other, secondary objectives, they'll
be significantly outnumbered at the point of contact.
"We'll
take along several thousand LACs. The attack force, which will be under Javier's
command, with Lester as his second, will also be accompanied by a full press
fleet train—repair ships, ammunition ships, hospital ships, everything. We'll
be prepared to repeat Lester's Zanzibar tactics, complete to reloading our
SD(P)s several times, if necessary.
"Even
in the best-case scenario," he said soberly, "our losses will be
heavy—very heavy. Don't think they won't. We'll be hitting very hard,
well-prepared defenses, manned by highly motivated people, and they'll still
have the technological advantage, even though we've narrowed it. Not only that,
but we don't estimate we'll be able to hold the system against counterattack,
even after we win. Certainly not indefinitely.
"At
the moment, their Home Fleet consists of about fifty SD(P)s and the same number
of older superdreadnoughts, according to NavInt. They have another fifty of the
wall in Third Fleet, and Eighth Fleet has another twenty-four to thirty.
Against Home Fleet alone, we'll have a better than three-to-one advantage in
total hulls, and seven-to-one in SD(P)s. Their fixed defenses and the LACs
they've deployed for home system defense will offset some of that advantage,
but not as much as you might think. According to NavInt's latest reports, some
of the dispositions they've been forced to make to protect Manticore-B and the
Junction have forced compromises in Manticore-A we think we can make work for
us.
"If
both Third Fleet and Eighth Fleet are called in from Trevor's Star, the
numerical odds will shift from seven-to-one in pod-layers to approximately
four-to-one, but we don't really know how likely it is that both of them will
be committed. They've got to worry about the fact that the force we're throwing
at Manticore, big as it is, represents only a portion of our total wall of
battle. That means they'll have to be worried about the possibility that we've
got an additional fleet sitting in hyper waiting to pounce on Trevor's Star if
they uncover it. They may dither at least a little and commit one of the
Trevor's Star forces first, hoping it will be enough. Insome ways, that would
be good—it would bring them in in smaller packets, easier to defeat in detail.
But one variant of Beatrice we're considering—Beatrice Bravo—would try to
entice them to come through together.
"If
they stay concentrated and commit both of them, our margin of superiority will
be far tighter. It should still be enough, because most of Javier's force will
go in concentrated, whereas their Home Fleet and Trevor's Star forces would
have to rendezvous with one another before they can combine tactically. If
Javier heads directly towards Sphinx, Home Fleet will have to honor the threat
and move immediately to intercept him, which ought to let him engage that
detachment on his own terms.
"After
that, and if the Trevor's Star detachments come in together, he may have to
break off the attack, if his own losses against Home Fleet and the fixed
defenses have been significant. Otherwise, especially if we adopt the Bravo
variant's deployment, he ought to be in a position to engage the remaining
fleet elements in succession, utilizing his numerical advantage, or
ignore the forces coming up behind him while he heads directly through the
system, taking out industrial infrastructure—and especially their dispersed
shipyards—as he goes. A lot will depend on how heavy his own losses were and
whether or not he still has the firepower to deal with the inner defenses.
Ammunition consumption is going to be an especially ticklish problem, I
suspect.
"If
he's able to inflict heavy damage on their infrastructure, Beatrice might not
prove immediately fatal to the Manties, but the long term effects on the
strategic balance would be clearly decisive. Without the Manticoran yards,
their Alliance can't possibly match our construction ability, and they'll know
it. Which means they'll have no choice but to surrender.
"It
he's able to engage Third Fleet and Eighth Fleet in detail, after already
trashing Home Fleet, he'll probably be able to completely destroy or cripple just
under half the total modern Manty wall of battle and then take out the
infrastructure. In that case, Beatrice would definitely be immediately
decisive."
Theisman
stopped speaking and sat back in his chair, and Pritchart gazed at him without
speaking for what seemed an eternity. It was very quiet in the conference room.
Beatrice, she thought. Such a pretty name for something so
hideous. Is this what it's really come to, Eloise?
She wanted
to say no, to reject the notion. Yet she couldn't. She'd done her dead level
best to avoid this, and she prayed she would still be able to avoid Beatrice.
But deep in the secret places of her soul, she was afraid. So afraid. Not of
defeat, but of the price of the alternative.
"You
say we'd commit almost three hundred and fifty ships of the wall," she
said, finally. "What does that leave us if things go wrong?"
"We'll
have a total of just over six hundred and twenty SD(P)s in commission at that
point," Theisman told her. "There'll be another three hundred or so
older superdreadnoughts to support them, although by that point we'll be
decommissioning the older ships steadily to provide crews for the new
construction."
"Why
not take more of them to Manticore, then?"
"For
four main reasons. First, out of that total number of pod-layers, something
like a hundred will still be working up. They won't be up to full efficiency,
their ships companies won't be fully integrated. In short, they won't really be
fully combat-effective units.
"Second,
the force we're committing ought to be enough to do the job, and it's going to
be the biggest fleet of superdreadnoughts ever committed to action in a single
battle by anyone, including the Solarian League. Even under a worst-case
scenario, it should be more than powerful enough to beat an organized retreat
with minimum losses. I realize Murphy's still likely to put in an appearance,
but there would have to be some truly radical shift in the basic operational
parameters for the Manties to seriously threaten its ability to look after
itself.
"Third,
we simply can't be certain where their Eighth Fleet is going to be at the
moment we launch Beatrice. Suppose, for example, that they've sortied from
Trevor's Star on another raiding expedition. In that case, our margin of
superiority at Manticore would be even greater, but we've got to cover our own
absolutely essential rear areas—like Bolthole, although there's no indication
they've figured out where Bolthole is yet—against whatever Eighth Fleet might
be doing while we're trashing Manticore.
"Fourth,
there's the Andermani. The Manties and Graysons have lost about twenty
superdreadnoughts—twelve of them pod-layers—since Thunderbolt wrapped up.
That's about seven percent of their total podnoughts. But the Andies are still
out there somewhere, and so far, we've seen very few of their capital ships.
There are at least a couple of squadrons of them assigned to the Manties' Home
Fleet, but that's about it. By our estimates, they should have somewhere around
a hundred and twenty pod-layers by now—just about a third of the Manticoran
Alliance's total—and we haven't seen them yet. We know they aren't at Trevor's
Star, and intelligence suggests there's still some technical problem with them.
We know they were conducting a major refit program on the Andy wallers, and
we're assuming that explains their continued absence. But it's possible more of
them will come forward before we launch Beatrice. And whatever happens in
Manticore, the Andy ships that aren't there can't be destroyed. So we've got to
retain enough of our own forces uncommitted to provide a strategic reserve
against the sudden appearance of the Andermani Navy."
Pritchart
considered what he'd said for a moment, then nodded.
"How
soon could you mount these operations?"
"Camille
could go on very short notice," Theisman said. "Lester's already
essentially positioned to mount and execute the operation. Beatrice is going to
take longer. Frankly, we'll need at least seven to eight weeks to bring
ourselves up to our stipulated force levels. It will take another three weeks
or so for the designated units to combine and reach Manticore. So say we could
hit Alizon within two weeks of the time you say go, and we could execute
Beatrice anywhere from ten weeks to three months from today. If we begin making
preliminary deployments for Beatrice now, we'd probably come out closer to the
ten-week deadline."
"'From
today,'" Pritchart repeated, with a forlorn smile. "You realize this
is the day I was supposed to depart for Torch, don't you?"
"Yes,
I do," Theisman said sadly.
"This
wasn't a conversation I wanted to be having. Not today. Not ever."
"I
know that, Madam President. But," he met her eyes unflinchingly, "if
the diplomatic option isn't available, this is the logical consequence of going
to war in the first place."
"You're
right, of course," she sighed, massaging her temples with the fingertips
of both hands. "And you tried to warn me before we did it. Before I did
it."
"Madam
President," he said quietly, "I could have stopped you. We both know
that."
"No,
you couldn't have," she disagreed. "I'd like to think you could,
because then I could spread around some of the guilt I'm feeling right now. But
you couldn't have stopped me without killing the Constitution, Tom, and you
could no more do that than you could fly without counter-grav . . . or strangle
your own child with your bare hands. We both know that."
He started
to open his mouth, as if to continue arguing the point. Then he closed it,
instead, and she smiled again.
"But
however we got here, we're here now," she said, and inhaled sharply.
"All
right, Tom, Arnaud. I'll review your summaries. On the basis of what you've
said so far, I'm inclined to think you're probably right about the two we're
most likely to be choosing between, unfortunately. I hope it will be Camille,
but go ahead and assume the worst. Start deploying your units on the basis that
Beatrice will be necessary."
The warship
which emerged from the Trevor's Star terminus of the Manticore Wormhole
Junction did not show a Manticoran transponder code. Nor did it show a Grayson
or an Andermani code. Nonetheless, it was allowed transit, for the code it did
display was that of the Kingdom of Torch.
To call the
vessel a "warship," was, perhaps, to be overly generous. It was, in
fact, a frigate—a tiny class which no major naval power had built in over fifty
T-years. But this was a very modern ship, less than three T-years old, and it
was Manticoran built, by the Hauptman Cartel, for the Anti-Slavery League.
Which, as
everyone understood perfectly well, actually meant it had been built for the
Audubon Ballroom, before its lapse into respectability. And this particular
frigate—TNS Pottawatomie Creek—was rather famous, one might almost have
said notorious, as the personal transport of one Anton Zilwicki, late of Her
Manticoran Majesty's Navy.
Everyone in
the Star Kingdom knew about the attempt to murder Zilwicki's daughter, and given
Manticore's current bloody-minded mood, no one was inclined to present any
problems when Pottawatomie Creek requested permission to approach HMS
Imperator and send across a couple of visitors.
* * *
"Your
Grace, Captain Zilwicki and . . . guest," Commander George Reynolds
announced.
Honor
turned from her contemplation of the nearest drifting units of her command, one
eyebrow rising, as she tasted the peculiar edge in Reynolds' emotions. She'd
decided to meet with Zilwicki as informally as possible, which was why she'd
had Reynolds greet him and escort him to the relatively small observation dome
just aft of Imperator's forward hammerhead. The panoramic view was
spectacular, but it was symbolically outside her own quarters or the official
precincts of Flag Bridge.
Now,
however, that odd ripple in Reynolds' mind-glow made her wonder if perhaps
Zilwicki wouldn't be just as glad as she was to keep this an
"unofficial" visit. Reynolds, the son of a liberated genetic slave,
was an enthusiastic supporter of the great experiment in Congo, not to mention
a personal admirer of Anton Zilwicki and Catherine Montaigne. He'd worked
remarkably well with Zilwicki immediately prior to Honor's deployment to the
Marsh System, and he'd been delighted when she asked him to meet Zilwicki's
cutter. Now, however, he seemed almost . . . apprehensive. That wasn't exactly
the right word, but it came close, and she caught Nimitz's matching flicker of
interest as the 'cat sat up to his full height on the back of the chair where
she'd parked him.
"Captain,"
she said, holding out her hand.
"Your
Grace." Zilwicki's voice was as deep as ever, but it was also a bit more
abrupt. Clipped. And as she turned her attention fully to him, she tasted the
seething anger his apparently calm exterior disguised.
"I was
very sorry to hear about what happened on Torch," Honor said quietly.
"But I'm delighted Berry and Ruth got out unscathed."
"'Unscathed'
is an interesting word, Your Grace," Zilwicki rumbled in a voice like
crumbling Gryphon granite. "Berry wasn't hurt, not physically, but I don't
think 'unscathed' really describes what happened. She blames herself. She knows
she shouldn't, and she's one of the sanest people I know, but she blames
herself. Not so much for Lara's death, or for all the other people who died,
but for having gotten out herself. And, I think, perhaps, for the way
Lara died."
"I'm
sorry to hear that," Honor repeated. She grimaced. "Survivor's guilt
is something I've had to deal with a time or two myself."
"She'll
work through it, Your Grace," the angry father said. "As I said,
she's one of the sanest people in existence. But this one's going to leave
scars, and I hope she'll draw the right lessons from it, not the wrong
ones."
"So do
I, Captain," Honor said sincerely.
"And
speaking of drawing the right lessons—or, perhaps I ought to say conclusions,"
he said, "I need to talk to you about what happened."
"I'd
be grateful for any insight you can give me. But shouldn't you be talking to
Admiral Givens, or perhaps to the SIS?"
"I'm
not certain any of the official intelligence organs are ready to hear what I've
got to say. And I know they're not ready to listen to . . . my fellow
investigator, here."
Honor
turned her attention openly and fully to Zilwicki's companion as the captain
gestured at him. He was a very young man, she realized. Not particularly
distinguished in any way, physically. Of average height—possibly even a little
shorter than that—with a build which was no more than wiry, almost
callow-looking beside Zilwicki's massively impressive musculature. The hair was
dark, the complexion also on the swarthy side, and the eyes were merely brown.
But as she
gazed at him and reached out to sample his emotions, she realized this young
man was anything but "undistinguished."
In her time,
Honor Alexander-Harrington had known quite a few dangerous people. Zilwicki was
a case in point, as, in his own lethal way, was young Spencer Hawke, standing
alertly to watch her back even here. But this young man had the clear, clean
uncluttered taste of a sword. In fact, his mind-glow was as close to that of a
treecat as Honor had ever tasted in a human being. Certainly not evil, but . .
. direct. Very direct. For treecats, enemies came in two categories:
those who'd been suitably dealt with, and those who were still alive. This
unremarkable-looking young man's mind-glow was exactly the same, in that
regard. There was not a single trace of malice in it. In many ways, it was
clear and cool, like a pool of deep, still water. But somewhere in the depths of
that pool, Leviathan lurked.
Over the
decades, Honor had come to know herself. Not perfectly, but better than most
people ever did. She'd faced the wolf inside herself, the aptness to violence,
the temper chained by discipline and channeled into protecting the weak, rather
than preying upon them. She saw that aspect of herself reflected in the
mirrored surface of this young man's still water, and realized with an inner
shiver, that he was even more apt to violence than she was. Not because he
craved it one bit more than she did, but because of his focus. His purpose.
He wasn't
simply Leviathan; this man was also Juggernaut. Dedicated every bit as much as
she to protecting the people and the things about which he cared, and far more
ruthless. She could readily sacrifice herself for the things in which she
believed; this man could sacrifice anything in their name. Not for
personal power. Not for profit. But because his beliefs, and the integrity with
which he held them, were too strong for anything else.
But although
he was as clean of purpose as a meat-ax, he was no crippled psychopath or
fanatic. He would bleed for what he sacrificed. He would simply do it anyway,
because he'd looked himself and his soul in the eye and accepted what he found
there.
"May I
assume, Captain," she said calmly, "that this young man's political
associations, shall we say, might make him ever so slightly persona non
gratis with those official intelligence organs?"
"Oh, I
think you might say that, Your Grace." Zilwicki smiled with very little
humor. "Duchess Harrington, allow me to introduce you to Special Officer
Victor Cachat of the Havenite Federal Intelligence Service."
Cachat
watched her calmly, but she felt the tension ratcheting up behind his
expressionless façade. Those "merely brown" eyes were much deeper and
darker than she'd first thought, she observed, and they made an admirable mask
for whatever was going on behind them.
"Officer
Cachat," she repeated in an almost lilting voice. "I've heard some
rather remarkable things about you. Including the part you played in Erewhon's
recent . . . change of allegiance."
"I
hope you don't expect me to say I'm sorry about that, Duchess Harrington."
Cachat's voice was as outwardly calm as his eyes, despite a somewhat heightened
prickle of apprehension.
"No,
of course I don't."
She smiled
and stepped back a half-pace, feeling the way Hawke had tightened internally
behind her at the announcement of Cachat's identity, before she waved at the
dome's comfortable chairs.
"Sit down,
Gentlemen. And then, Captain Zilwicki, perhaps you can explain to me exactly
what you're doing here in company with one of the most notorious secret
agents—if that's not an oxymoron—in the employee of the sinister Republic of
Haven. I'm sure it will be fascinating."
Zilwicki
and Cachat glanced at one another. It was a brief thing, more sensed than seen,
and then they seated themselves in unison. Honor took a facing chair, and
Nimitz flowed down into her lap as Hawke moved slightly to the side. She felt
Cachat's awareness of the way in which Hawke's move cleared his sidearm and put
Honor herself out of his line of fire. The Havenite gave no outward sign he'd
noticed, but he was actually rather amused by it, she noted.
"Which
of you gentlemen would care to begin?" she asked calmly.
"I
suppose I should," Zilwicki said. He gazed at her for a moment, then
shrugged.
"First,
Your Grace, I apologize for not clearing Victor's visit with your security
people ahead of time. I rather suspected that they'd raise a few objections.
Not to mention the fact that he is a Havenite operative."
"Yes,
he is," Honor agreed. "And, Captain, I'm afraid I have to point out
that you've brought the aforesaid Havenite agent into a secure area. This
entire star system is a fleet anchorage, under martial law and closed to all
unauthorized shipping. There's a great deal of highly confidential information
floating around, including what could be picked up by simple visual
observation. I trust neither of you will take this wrongly, but I really can't
permit a 'Havenite operative' to go home and tell the Octagon what he's seen
here."
"We
considered that point Your Grace," Zilwicki said, much more calmly than he
actually felt, Honor observed. "I give you my personal word that Victor
hasn't been allowed access to any of our sensor data, or even to
Pottawatomie Creek's bridge, since leaving Congo. Nor was he given any
opportunity to make visual observations during the crossing from
Pottawatomie to your vessel. This—" he raised one hand, waving it at
the panoramic view from the observation dome "—is the first time he's
actually had a look at anything which could be remotely construed as sensitive
information."
"For
what it's worth, Duchess," Cachat said, meeting her eyes steadily, his
right hand resting lightly in his lap, "Captain Zilwicki is telling you
the truth. And while I'll confess that I was very tempted to attempt to hack
into Pottawatomie Creek's information systems and steal the information
I'd promised him I wouldn't, I was able to suppress the temptation quite
easily. He and Princess Ruth are both accomplished hackers; I'm not. I have to
rely on other people to do that for me, and none of those other people happen
to be along this time. If I'd tried, I would have bungled it and gotten myself
caught. In which case I would have gotten no information and destroyed a
valuable professional relationship. For that matter, my knowledge of naval
matters in general is . . . limited. I know a lot more than the average layman,
but not enough to make any worthwhile observations. Certainly not relying on
what I can see from the outside."
Honor
leaned back slightly, gazing at him thoughtfully. It was obvious from his
emotions that he had no idea she could actually taste him. And it was equally
obvious he was telling the truth. Just as it was obvious he actually expected
to be detained, probably jailed. And—
"Officer
Cachat," she said, "I really wish you would deactivate whatever
suicide device you have in your right hip pocket."
Cachat
stiffened, eyes widening in the first sign of genuine shock he'd given, and
Honor raised her right hand quickly as she heard the snapping whisper of
Spencer Hawke's pulser coming out of its holster.
"Calmly,
Spencer," she told the young man who had replaced Andrew LaFollet, never
looking away from Cachat herself. "Calmly! Officer Cachat doesn't want to
hurt anyone else. But I'd feel much more comfortable if you weren't quite so
ready to kill yourself, Officer Cachat. It's rather hard to concentrate
on what someone's telling you when you're wondering whether or not he's going
to poison himself or blow both of you up at the end of the next sentence."
Cachat sat
very, very still. Then he snorted—a harsh, abrupt sound, nonetheless edged with
genuine humor—and looked at Zilwicki.
"I owe
you a case of beer, Anton."
"Told
you so." Zilwicki shrugged. "And now, Mr. Super Secret Agent, would
you please turn that damned thing off? Ruth and Berry would both murder
me if I let you kill yourself. And I don't even want to think about what Thandi
would do to me!"
"Coward."
Cachat
looked back at Honor, head cocked slightly to one side, then smiled a bit
crookedly.
"I've
heard a great deal about you, Duchess Harrington. We have extensive dossiers on
you, and I know Admiral Theisman and Admiral Foraker both think highly of you.
If you're prepared to give me your word—your word, not the word of a
Manticoran aristocrat or an officer in the Manticoran Navy, but Honor
Harrington's word—that you won't detain me or attempt to force information
out of me, I'll disarm my device."
"I
suppose I really ought to point out to you that even if I give you my
word, that doesn't guarantee someone else won't grab you if they figure out who
you are."
"You're
right." He thought for a moment longer, then shrugged. "Very well,
give me Steadholder Harrington's word."
"Oh,
very good, Officer Cachat!" Honor chuckled as Hawke stiffened in outrage.
"You have studied my file, haven't you?"
"And
the nature of Grayson's political structure," Cachat agreed. "It's
got to be the most antiquated, unfair, elitist, theocratic, aristocratic
leftover from the dustbin of history on this side of the explored galaxy. But a
Grayson's word is inviolable, and a Grayson steadholder has the authority to
grant protection to anyone, anywhere, under any circumstances."
"And
if I do, I'm bound—both by tradition and honor and by law—to see to it you get
it."
"Precisely
. . . Steadholder Harrington."
"Very
well, Officer Cachat. You have Steadholder Harrington's guarantee of your
personal safety and return to Pottawatomie Creek. And, while I'm being
so free with my guarantees, I'll also guarantee Eighth Fleet won't blow
Pottawatomie Creek out of space as soon as you're 'safely' back
aboard."
"Thank
you," Cachat said, and reached into his pocket. He carefully extracted a
small device and activated a virtual keyboard. His fingers twiddled for a
moment, entering a complex code, and then he tossed the device to Zilwicki.
"I'm
sure everyone will feel happier if you hang onto that, Anton."
"Thandi
certainly will," Zilwicki replied, and slid the disarmed device into his
own pocket.
"And
now, Captain Zilwicki," Honor said, "I believe you were about to
explain just what brings you and Officer Cachat to visit me?"
"Your
Grace," Zilwicki's body seemed to incline towards Honor without actually
moving, "we' know Queen Elizabeth and her government hold the Republic of
Haven responsible for the attempt on my daughter's life. And I trust you'll
remember how my wife was killed, and that I have no more reason to love Haven
than the next man. Rather less, in fact.
"Having
said that, however, I have to tell you that I, personally, am completely
satisfied Haven had nothing at all to do with the assassination attempt on
Torch."
Honor gazed
at Zilwicki for several seconds without speaking. Her expression was merely
thoughtful, and then she leaned back and crossed her long legs.
"That's
a very interesting assertion, Captain. And, I can tell, one you believe to be
accurate. For that matter, interestingly enough, Officer Cachat believes
it to be accurate. That, of course, doesn't necessarily make it true."
"No,
Your Grace, it doesn't," Zilwicki said slowly, and Honor tasted both of
her visitors' burning curiosity as to how she could be so confident—and
accurately so—about what they believed.
"All
right," she said. "Suppose you begin, Captain, by telling me why you
believe it wasn't a Havenite operation?"
"First,
because it would be a particularly stupid thing for the Republic to have
done," Zilwicki said promptly. "Leaving aside the minor point that
being caught would be disastrous for Haven's interstellar reputation, it was
the one thing guaranteed to derail the summit conference they'd proposed.
And coupled with the Webster assassination, it would have been the equivalent
of taking out pop-up ads in every 'fax in the galaxy that said 'Look, we did
it! Aren't we nasty people?'"
The massive
Gryphon highlander snorted like a particularly irate boar and shook his head.
"I've
had some experience with the Havenite intelligence establishment, especially in
the last couple of years. Its current management is a lot smarter than that.
For that matter, not even Oscar Saint-Just would have been arrogant enough—and
stupid enough—to try something like that!"
"Perhaps
not. But, if you'll forgive me, all of that is based purely on your
reconstruction of what people ought to have been smart enough to recognize.
It's logical, I'll admit. But logic, especially when human beings are involved,
is often no more than a way to go wrong with confidence. I'm sure you're
familiar with the advice 'Never ascribe to malice what you can put down to
incompetence.' Or, in this case perhaps, stupidity."
"Agreed,"
Zilwicki said. "However, there's also the fact that I'm rather deeply
tapped into Havenite intelligence operations in and around Congo." He
bobbed his head at Cachat. "The intelligence types operating there and in
Erewhon are fully aware that they don't want to tangle with the Audubon
Ballroom. Or, for that matter, with all due modesty, with me. And the
Republic of Haven is fully aware of how Torch and the Ballroom would react if
it turned out Haven was actually responsible for the murder of Berry, Ruth, and
Thandi Palane. Believe me. If they'd wanted to avoid meeting with Elizabeth,
they would simply have called the summit off. They wouldn't have tried to
sabotage it this way. And if they had tried to sabotage it this way,
Ruth, Jeremy, Thandi, and I would have known about it ahead of time."
"So
you're telling me that in addition to your analysis of all the logical reasons
for them not to have done it, your own security arrangements would have alerted
you to any attempt on Haven's part?"
"I
can't absolutely guarantee that, obviously. I believe it to have been true,
however."
"I
see."
Honor
rubbed the tip of her nose thoughtfully, then shrugged.
"I'll
accept the probability that you're correct. At the same time, don't forget that
someone—presumably Haven—managed to get to my own flag lieutenant. ONI still
hasn't been able to suggest how that might have been accomplished, and while I
have the highest respect for you and your capabilities, Admiral Givens isn't
exactly a slouch herself."
"Point
taken, Your Grace. However, I have another reason to believe Haven wasn't
involved. And given the . . . unusual acuity with which you appear to have
assessed Victor and myself, you may be more prepared to accept that reason than
I was afraid you would be."
"I
see," Honor repeated, and turned her eyes to Cachat. "Very well,
Officer Cachat. Since you're obviously Captain Zilwicki's additional reason,
suppose you convince me, as well."
"Admiral,"
Cachat said, abandoning the aristocratic titles which, she knew, had been their
own subtle statement of plebeian distrust, "I find you have a much more
disturbing presence than I'd anticipated. Have you ever considered a career in
intelligence?"
"No.
And about that convincing?"
Cachat
chuckled harshly, then shrugged.
"All
right, Admiral. The most convincing piece of evidence Anton has is that if the
Republic had ordered any such operation on Torch, it would have been my job
to carry it out. I'm the FIS chief of station for Erewhon, Congo, and the Maya
Sector."
He made the
admission calmly, although Honor knew he was very unhappy to do so. With
excellent reason, she thought. Knowing with certainty who the opposition's
chief spy was would have to make your own spies' jobs a lot easier.
"There
are reasons—reasons of a personal nature—why my superiors might have tried to
cut me out of the loop for this particular operation," Cachat continued,
and she tasted his painstaking determination to be honest. Not because he
wouldn't have been quite prepared to lie if he'd believed it was his duty, but
because he'd come to the conclusion that he simply couldn't lie successfully to
her.
"Although
it's true those reasons exist," he went on, "it's also true that I
have personal contacts at a very high level who would have alerted me anyway.
And with all due modesty, my own network would have warned me if anyone from
Haven had invaded my turf.
"Because
all of that's true, I can tell you that the chance of any Republican
involvement in the attempt to assassinate Queen Berry is effectively
nonexistent. The bottom line, Admiral, is that we didn't do it."
"Then
who did?" Honor challenged.
"Obviously,
if it wasn't Haven, our suspicions are naturally going to light on Mesa,"
Zilwicki said. "Mesa, and Manpower, have plenty of reasons of their own to
want Torch destabilized and Berry dead. The fact that the neurotoxin used in
the attempt is of Solly origin also points towards the probability of Mesan
involvement. At the same time, I'm painfully well aware that everyone in the
official intelligence establishment is going to line up to point out to me that
we're naturally prejudiced in favor of believing Mesa is behind any attack upon
us. And, to be totally honest, they'd be right."
"Which
doesn't change the fact that you really do believe it was Mesa," Honor
observed.
"No,
it doesn't."
"And
do you have any evidence beyond the fact that the neurotoxin probably came from
the League?"
"No,"
Zilwicki admitted. "Not at this time. We're pursuing a couple of avenues
of investigation which we hope will provide us with that evidence, but we don't
have it yet."
"Which,
of course, is the reason for this rather dramatic visit to me."
"Admiral,"
Cachat said with the first smile she'd seen from him, "I really think
you should consider a second career in intelligence."
"Thank
you, Officer Cachat, but I believe I can exercise intelligence without having
to become a spy."
She smiled
back at him, then shrugged.
"All
right, Gentlemen. I'm inclined to believe you. And to agree with you, for that
matter. It's never made sense to me that Haven would do something like attack
Berry and Ruth. But, while I may believe you, I don't know how much good
it's going to do. I'm certainly willing to present what you've told me to
Admiral Givens, ONI, and Admiralty House. I don't think they're going to buy
it, though. Not without some sort of corroborating evidence besides the
promise—however sincere—of the senior Havenite spy in the area that he really, really
didn't have anything to do with it. Call me silly, but somehow I don't think
they're going to accept that you're an impartial, disinterested witness,
Officer Cachat."
"I
know that," Cachat replied. "And I'm not impartial, or disinterested.
In fact, I have two very strong motives for telling you this. First, because
I'm convinced that what happened in Congo doesn't represent my star nation's
policy or desires, and that it's clearly not in the Republic's best interests.
Because it isn't, I have a responsibility to do anything I can do mitigate the
consequences of what's happened. That includes injecting any voice of sanity
and reason I can into the Star Kingdom's decision-making process at the highest
level I can reach. Which, at this moment, happens to be you, Admiral
Harrington.
"Second,
Anton and I are, as he said, pursuing our own investigation into this. His
motives, I think, ought to be totally understandable and clear. My own reflect
the fact that the Republic is being blamed for a crime it didn't commit. It's
my duty to find out who did commit it, and to determine why he—or they—wanted
to make it appear we did it. In addition, I have some personal motives,
tied up with who might have been killed in the process, which also give me a
very strong reason to want the people behind this. However, if our
investigation prospers, we're going to need someone—at the highest level of the
Star Kingdom's decision-making process we can reach—who's prepared to listen to
whatever we find. We need, for want of a better term, a friend at court."
"So it
really comes down to self-interest," Honor observed.
"Yes,
it does," Cachat said frankly. "In intelligence matters, doesn't it
always?"
"I
suppose so."
Honor
considered them both again, then nodded.
"Very
well, Officer Cachat. For whatever it's worth, you have your friend at court.
And just between the three of us, I hope to heaven you can turn up the evidence
we need before several million people get killed."
"You
can't be serious!" Baron Grantville blurted, looking incredulously
at his sister-in-law.
"Yes,
I certainly can be, Willie," Honor replied, with just a hint of a chill in
her tone. "I'm not exactly in the habit of making jokes about things like
this, you know."
The Prime
Minister colored, and shook his head apologetically.
"Sorry.
It's just that to be bringing this up at this late date, and with no evidence
to support the theory . . . ."
He let his
voice trail off, and Honor reached up and stroked Nimitz's ears while she
looked at Grantville levelly. She could hardly pretend his attitude was a
surprise, but she'd given her word. Besides, she'd cherished profound doubts of
her own about this war from the outset. Not that she'd really expected to
magically change his mind about it.
Perhaps
that was the real reason she'd asked to meet with him privately, she thought.
Even a profoundly unhappy Spencer Hawke had been excluded from the meeting. He
and Sergeant Clifford McGraw stood flanking the other side of the conference
room door, and she'd sensed Grantville's surprise—and apprehension—when she
left them there.
On the
other hand, he hadn't been as surprised as he might have been. Despite the
example of the High Ridge Government, a total idiot didn't normally become
Prime Minister of Manticore, and Honor was officially back on Manticore
for a final meeting at Admiralty House before launching Operation Sanskrit. A
request by a fleet commander for a direct, unscheduled personal meeting with
the Prime Minister under those circumstances was, to say the very least,
unusual.
"Willie,"
she said after a moment, "you and I have disagreed about the fundamental
nature of the current Havenite régime from the beginning. That means we've both
got mental baggage at this point, and I don't want to lock horns with you on
this issue. First, because you're the Prime Minister, not me. Secondly, because
I'm a serving officer, and Queen's officers take the orders of their civilian
superiors. And third, frankly, because the fact that Hamish and I are married
now puts me in an uncomfortable position when I'm arguing not simply with the
Prime Minister, but with my brother-in-law.
"Despite
that, I truly believe you need to reconsider the position of Her Majesty's
Government on this particular issue. Anton Zilwicki's in a far better position
than anyone here in the Star Kingdom to know whether or not there was direct
Havenite involvement in the attempt to kill his daughter. He still has contacts
in the area which we've lost, he's intimately familiar with the situation on
Torch itself, and he has a direct relationship with a fairly senior Havenite
spy. You know this man's reputation, what he's already accomplished. And you
know he's going to be highly suspicious of anyone who explains to him that they
didn't have anything to do with the attempt to murder his daughter, so would he
kindly not shoot them on sight. Or do I have to remind you what happened
on Old Earth when his older daughter was kidnapped?"
Grantville
made a face. Not of disagreement, so much as of painful memory. The Manpower
Scandal had splattered on the previous Prime Minister, for whom Grantville had
never had anything but contempt, but the fallout had still been extreme . . .
and Anton Zilwicki could not have cared less. The entire government could have
fallen, and he still wouldn't have cared—just as he hadn't cared if he
himself ended up in prison for his actions. The father who'd orchestrated that
particular exercise in mayhem was unlikely to take the events on Torch lightly.
"No,
you don't have to remind me," he said. "For that matter, you don't have
to remind me what happened to the mercenaries who tried to kill Catherine
Montaigne when they tangled with Zilwicki. I'll happily concede the
man's competence and the fact that he's dangerous. I'll even concede that he
has the ear of the Queen—or, at least, of her niece—where certain questions are
concerned.
"But
what you're asking me to believe now is that some hypothetical third party is
responsible for what happened on Torch. And, probably, for murdering Jim
Webster. For that matter, probably for trying to kill you, since the
technique was so similar in all three cases. And whenever you ask me to believe
that, I come back again and again to the question of who had the most motive?
And, for that matter, who has an established national track record of employing
assassination as a routine technique?"
"I
realize that," Honor said patiently. "But anyone with the
proper resources can stage an assassination, and everyone has to know the Star
Kingdom's had painful experience with previous Havenite régimes' use of
assassination. So just what would you have done differently if you were
a 'hypothetical third party' and wanted us to automatically assume the
Havenites were attempting to sabotage their own peace conference?"
"Nothing,"
Grantville conceded after a moment. He leaned back in his chair, regarding
Honor intently. "On the other hand, Honor, I've known you a long time.
There's more to this than just Zilwicki's unsupported word, isn't there?"
Honor
returned his gaze, and he chuckled harshly.
"You've
gotten much better at high-stakes politics, but you still have to work on
maintaining your expression of total candor while you conceal your hole
cards."
"There
is more to it," she admitted. "I didn't bring it up because I was
pretty sure it wouldn't do your blood pressure any good if I did. Are you sure
you want to hear about what I've been up to?"
"As my
sister-in-law, or as a Queen's officer?" he asked bit warily.
"Either—both,"
she said with a crooked smile.
"If
it's that bad, you'd better go ahead and tell me," he said, bracing
himself visibly.
"Anton
Zilwicki didn't come to visit me by himself," she said. "He brought a
Mr. Cachat with him."
"Cachat,"
Grantville repeated. It was apparent the name was ringing bells, but that he
hadn't quite put his mental hand on the memory.
"Victor
Cachat," Honor said helpfully. "As in the same Victor Cachat who
engineered the entire Torch gambit in the first place."
"A
Peep spy?" If Grantville's expression had been incredulous before, it was
dumbfounded now. "You had a Peep spy aboard your flagship?"
"Not
just any old spy." Honor couldn't help it. Despite the anger beginning to
bubble under the shock in Grantville's mind-glow, she felt a certain manic glee
in the admission. "As a matter of fact, he's now the Havenite chief of station
for their entire Erewhon-based intelligence net."
The Prime
Minister stared at her. Then he shook himself.
"This
isn't funny," he said coldly. "It's entirely possible someone could
make a case for treason out of what you've just admitted to me."
"How?"
she challenged.
"You
had a known senior secret agent of a star nation with whom we're at war aboard
your flagship in a restricted military area, and from what you're saying, I
feel quite confident he's not still there in a cell. Is he?"
"No,
he isn't," she said, meeting his cold anger with a hard eye.
"And
just what information did you allow him to take away from this completely
unauthorized meeting, Admiral?"
"None
he didn't bring with him."
"And
you're prepared to prove that before a court-martial, if necessary?"
"No,
Prime Minister, I'm not," she said in a voice of matching ice. "If my
word isn't sufficient for you, then file charges and be damned to you."
Grantville's
nostrils flared, but then he closed his eyes. His right hand clenched into a
fist where it lay on the table before him, and Honor tasted the enormous effort
he made to pull his icy fury back under control.
Interesting, she thought. So Willie has the Alexander temper,
too.
"Your
word is good enough for me," he said finally, opening his eyes once more,
"but it may not be good enough for everyone if word of this . . . meeting
ever gets out. My God, Honor! What were you thinking of?"
"I was
thinking of the fact that a man who'd never met me was willing to come aboard
my ship, knowing exactly what could happen to him. That he came with a suicide
device in his pocket, which he was fully prepared to use. That, in fact, he expected
to use it, and he came anyway. And that he told me the truth,
Willie. You know I know that everything I just told you is true."
His eyes
narrowed, because he did know.
"You
say he expected to use his suicide device," the Prime Minister said after
a moment, and she nodded. "Then I presume you also know—or think you
do—why he was willing to come anyway?"
"Because
he's a patriot," Honor said simply. "He's probably one of the most
dangerous men I've ever met, and not just because of how competent he is,
either. But the bottom line is that he takes his beliefs and responsibilities
seriously. He knows the attempt to kill Berry and Ruth didn't go through his
operatives, nor did he pick up on any effort by someone in Nouveau Paris to do
an end run around him. And now that I've met the man, I don't doubt for a
moment that he has his entire area of responsibility so tightly wired he would
have known if something like that had happened. So since he knows he didn't
do it, and he's virtually certain no one else in the Havenite government did
it, he has to assume whoever did do it did it for reasons inimical to
the Republic of Haven's foreign-policy and security. So he put his life on the
line, in the full expectation that he was going to lose it, to tell us. Not
because he loves us, but because he's trying to protect his own star
nation. Because he believes his President is trying to stop a war and someone
else is trying to sabotage her effort."
"And
you . . . know," Grantville waved one hand, "all of this is
true?"
"I
know he wasn't lying to me, and that everything he told me was the complete
truth in so far as he knows the truth. Of course it's possible he's
wrong. Even the best intelligence people screw up. But what he told me was the
best information he had."
"I
see."
Grantville
rocked his chair slightly back and forth, his brain working hard while he gazed
at her.
"Have
you discussed this with Hamish?" he asked after a moment.
"No."
Honor looked away. "I wanted to. But, as I said, the fact that I'm married
to him puts me in a peculiar position. I . . . chose not to involve him."
"You
chose not to involve him because you didn't want anything to splash on him if
this little meeting blew up in your face as spectacularly as it could have.
That's what you mean, isn't it?"
"Maybe.
To some extent. But also because it's almost impossible for our personal
relationship not to have an impact on any conversation or debate we have. To be
perfectly honest," she looked back at Grantville, "I didn't want to
take the chance he might agree with me simply because it was me saying it."
"But
you were willing to take the chance with me?" Grantville asked,
with a flicker of returning humor.
"I had
no choice where you were concerned," she said with another crooked smile.
"It was talk to you, or go direct to Elizabeth. And, frankly, I'm not at
all sure how she would have reacted."
"Poorly."
Grantville's voice was bleak. "I don't believe I've ever seen her this
furious. Whether it was the Peeps or someone who simply wanted us to believe it
was, she's out for blood. And the hell of it, Honor, is that even if every
single thing Cachat told you was the truth—so far as he knows, as you yourself
said—I agree with her."
"Even
if Haven had nothing to do with any of the assassinations and assassination
attempts?" she asked quietly.
"If I
could be certain they hadn't, I might feel differently. But I can't be.
All I can know for certain is that one man who ought to know is
convinced they didn't. But he's got to have a huge vested interest, whether he
realizes it or not, in believing the best about his own government. I'll accept
that he has no evidence this was a Peep operation. But if I recall my briefings
on what happened in Erewhon and Congo accurately, his superiors might have had
a very good reason to keep him out of the loop on something like this,
considering who would probably have been among the victims. Am I wrong?"
"No,"
she admitted.
"So
what am I supposed to do, Honor? We're in the middle of a war, we've already
announced we're resuming operations, the Peeps have probably already resumed
operations on the basis of our note, and the fact that Cachat didn't have
anything to do with the attempt to kill Berry and Ruth doesn't prove someone
else from Haven didn't."
He shook
his head slowly, his expression sad.
"I'd
like to believe you're right. I want to believe you are. But I can't
make my decisions, formulate the Star Kingdom's policy, based on what I'd like
to believe. I believe you military people are familiar with the need to
formulate plans based on the worst-case scenario. I'm in the same position. I can't
dislocate our entire strategy on the basis of what Zilwicki and Cachat believe
to be true. If they had one single scrap of hard evidence, that might not
be so. But they don't, and it is."
Honor
tasted his honesty . . . and also the impossibility of changing his mind.
"I'm
sorry to hear that," she said. "I think they're right, at least about
whether or not what's happened represents the official policy of the Pritchart
Administration."
"I
realize that," Grantville said, and looked into her eyes. "And because
I know you genuinely feel that way, I have to ask you. Are you still prepared
to carry out your orders, Admiral Alexander-Harrington?"
She looked
back, hovering on the brink of the unthinkable. If she said no, if she refused
to carry out the operation and resigned her commission in protest, it would
almost certainly blow the entire question wide open. The consequences for her
personally, and for her husband and wife, would be . . . severe, at least in
the short term. Her relationship with Elizabeth might well be permanently and
irreparably damaged. Her career, in Manticoran service, at least, would
probably be over. Yet all of that would be acceptable—a small price,
actually—if it ended the war.
But it
wouldn't. Grantville had put his finger squarely on the one insurmountable
weakness: the lack of proof. All she had was the testimony of two men, in
private conversation. At best, anything she said about what they'd told her
would be hearsay, and there was simply no way she could expect anyone outside her
immediate circle to understand—or believe—why she knew they'd told her
the truth.
So the war
would continue, whatever she did, and her own actions would have removed her
from any opportunity of influencing its conduct or its outcome. That would be a
violation of her responsibility to the men and women of Eighth Fleet, to her
Star Kingdom. Wars weren't always fought for the right reasons, but they were
fought anyway, and the consequences to the people fighting them and to their
star nations were the same, whatever the reasons. And she was a Queen's
officer. She'd taken an oath to stand between the Star Kingdom and its enemies,
why ever they were enemies. If the Star Kingdom she loved was going back into a
battle in which so many others who'd taken that oath would die, she couldn't
simply abandon them and stand aside. No, she had no choice but to stand beside
them and face the same tempest.
"Yes,"
she said quietly, her voice sad but without hesitation or reservation.
"I'm prepared to execute my orders, Willie."
"What's
the latest on our visitors?" Admiral Alessandra Giovanni asked.
"Pretty
much unchanged, Ma'am," Commander Ewan MacNaughton replied. "Their
starships are still stooging around outside the hyper limit, but their
platforms are dancing all over the damned place . . . and making sure we know
it."
He grimaced
and waved one hand at the huge display showing the Lovat System's inner planets
and the space about them.
The
system's G-6 primary floated at the display's center, orbited by the innermost
cinder—which had never attained the dignity of an actual name, aside from Lovat
I—and then the planets Furnace, Forge, and Anvil. At seven light-minutes from
the primary, Forge, the system's only habitable world, would have enjoyed a
pleasant climate, if not for its pronounced axial tilt. Although, to be fair,
if you liked severe seasonal weather changes (which MacNaughton didn't), Forge
was still a lovely world.
It was also
heavily industrialized.
The Lovat
System had originally been settled by the Aamodt Corporation, one of the huge
industrial concerns which had helped build the original Republic of Haven's
enormous wealth and power only to go the way of the dinosaur under the People's
Republic. The current system governor, however, Havard Ellefsen, was a direct
descendent of the Aamodt Coporation's founder, and Lovat had somehow avoided
the worst consequences of the PRH's efforts to kill every golden goose it could
lay hands on. Despite the fact that it was less than fifty light-years from the
Haven System, Lovat had remained one of the unquestioned bright spots of the
People's Republic's generally blighted economy, and the system's industrial
concerns had played a major role in the Republic's industrial renaissance since
the economic reforms Rob Pierre had forced through and the restoration of the
Constitution.
Among other
things, Forge's current population of almost three billion was deeply involved
in the enormous naval construction programs Thomas Theisman had initiated after
going public about the existence of the Republican Navy's new ship types. To be
sure, the Lovat System wasn't one of the primary yard sites. Its local industry
was much more heavily committed to the construction of light units—light attack
craft and the new light cruiser classes—and fleet support vessels—ammunition
ships, personnel transports, general cargo haulers, and repair ships. Despite
that, it was among the Republic's twenty or so most important star systems, and
its system defenses reflected that importance.
Just over
eight thousand LACs were based on Forge and the system's orbital platforms. A
permanent covering force of three battle squadrons—admittedly, of pre-pod
types, but still a total of twenty-four superdreadnoughts—was assigned, and the
system was liberally blanketed with system defense missile pods. In the last
six months, Lovat had also received not just one Moriarty platform, but three,
the second pair to serve solely as backups for the first.
And, MacNaughton thought, there's also the defenses I can't
see.
All of
which explained why Commander MacNaughton was as confident as his admiral that
no Manty raiding force was going to stick its nose into Lovat.
"We've
got their arrays in several quadrants of the inner system," he continued,
indicating the wavering icons representing the ghost-like sensor traces which
were the best his platforms could do against current-generation Manticoran
stealth technology. "They've been buzzing around for over sixty hours now,
and we've still got hyper footprints jumping in and out all around the
periphery. It's starting to get on my nerves, Ma'am."
"Which
is exactly what it's supposed to do," Giovanni pointed out.
"I
know that, Ma'am. And so do our LAC crews. But that doesn't keep it from being
irritating, and Commander Lucas reports that Moriarty's gold crew is beginning
to suffer from fatigue."
"I
told the Octagon we needed more personnel," Giovanni growled.
"Unfortunately, we don't really have them yet—not for Moriarty. Or,
rather, we could have complete backup crews . . . if we were willing to do
without backup platforms."
MacNaughton
nodded. Admiral Foraker and her Bolthole command continued to work miracles in
their training programs, but the Navy's enormous expansion was taking its toll.
Despite the steadily climbing educational levels of the Republic, the Navy
still had to spend far more time than the Manties did providing its recruits
with the basic education needed to perform their jobs. Fortunately, Foraker had
gotten very, very good at doing just that. Unfortunately, it still put a
bottleneck into the availability of fully trained manpower.
"Shall
I instruct Lucas to stand the gold platform down and bring up silver or
bronze?"
"Um."
Giovanni ran a hand over her dark hair, eyes thoughtful, then shrugged.
"Go ahead and shift to silver. I doubt we're really going to need them,
but it won't hurt for silver to get a little more hands-on experience,
anyway."
"Yes,
Ma'am. I'll get on it right away, and—"
The rest of
MacNaughton's sentence was slashed off by the sudden jangle of alarms as a
massive hyper footprint exploded onto the plot.
* * *
"Well
done, Theo," Honor Alexander-Harrington said.
Lieutenant
Commander Kgari had dropped TF 81, Eighth Fleet's leading task force, into
normal-space barely forty thousand kilometers outside the Lovat System's hyper
limit. That was extraordinarily precise astrogation, and Kgari smiled in
appreciation of her well deserved praise.
Honor
smiled back, but her true attention was focused on the huge flag bridge
tactical display. She watched alertly, waiting for CIC to post any major
changes, but the only differences from Skirmisher's last upload were
insignificant.
Not that
it's going to stay that way if we've got
things figured right, she reminded herself.
"All
right," she said. "Harper, pass the execute command."
"Aye,
aye, Your Grace," Lieutenant Brantley acknowledged, and the eight CLACs of
Alice Truman's reinforced carrier squadron launched almost nine hundred LACs as
Alistair McKeon's BatRon 61 headed in-system, screened by fifteen Manticoran
and Grayson BC(P)s and HMS Nike under the overall command of Rear
Admiral Erasmus Miller. Michelle Henke would have had the command, except that
the terms of her parole precluded her from serving against the Republic. So
she'd been sent to Talbott, where Honor knew she would prove enormously useful,
and Michael Oversteegan, promoted to Rear Admiral, had been given her squadron.
But much as Honor approved of Oversteegan's demonstrated capability, he was
junior to Miller. And the Grayson rear admiral was more than merely competent
in his own right, she reminded herself.
Winston
Bradhsaw's and Charise Fanaafi"s twelve heavy cruisers, eight of them
Saganami-C-class ships, backed Miller up, and six light cruisers under the
command of Commodore George Ullman, who'd replaced Commodore Moreau when she
died aboard HMS Buckler at Solon, thickened the screen.
It was a
powerful force, by any measure, although Honor was fully aware that it was
grossly outnumbered and outgunned by the system's defenders.
Just as it
was supposed to be.
"Admiral
Truman reports all LAC wings away, Your Grace," Andrea Jaruwalski
announced.
"Very
good. Instruct her to hyper out to the Alpha rendezvous."
"Aye,
aye, Your Grace."
Honor
watched the carriers' icons disappear, then settled herself into her command
chair, a skinsuited Nimitz in her lap, and watched her thirty starships
accelerate steadily in-system.
* * *
"Do
you think this is another Suarez, Ma'am?" MacNaughton asked tensely as he
watched the oncoming icons move steadily across the plot.
"I
don't know."
Giovanni's
own eyes were slitted in concentration, and he noticed she was wrapping a
single lock of hair around her right index finger. It was a mannerism he'd
grown accustomed to over the last three T-years, and he waited respectfully.
"No,"
she said after several moments of consideration. "I don't know why, but I
don't think so. These people are really here."
"It
seems awfully gutsy of them," MacNaughton said, and she shrugged.
"I'm
inclined to agree. On the other hand, maybe they think they can get deep enough
in to do significant damage and still avoid interception. This is the strongest
raiding force they've sent in yet, assuming the outer platforms' analysis is
correct. It's possible they figure they've got the firepower to fight their way
out past the sort of interception Admiral Giscard managed at Solon."
"If
they do, they're wrong, Ma'am," MacNaughton said.
"We think
they are, Ewan," Giovanni corrected. "Although, if they've got
the sense God gave a Legislaturalist, at least they'll stay out of our
inner-system missile envelope!"
* * *
Honor glanced
at the date/time display and smiled sadly. If Illescue was on schedule, her
daughter would be born in almost exactly eight minutes.
Katherine
Allison Miranda Alexander-Hamilton.
She sampled the name silently, wishing with all her heart that she were there,
watching the miracle of life, tasting her daughter's newborn mind-glow, and not
here, orchestrating the deaths of thousands. She inhaled deeply, and sent a
thought winging across the light-years.
Happy
birthday, baby. I hope God lets me watch you grow up. . . and that you never have to do something like this.
* * *
"Coming
up on Point Samar in five minutes, Your Grace," Jaruwalski said.
"Thank
you, Andrea."
Honor
looked up and checked the time display. Her units had been accelerating towards
rendezvous with Forge for thirty-five minutes at a steady 4.81 KPS2 from
their relatively low initial velocity. They were up to 11,750 KPS, and they'd
traveled just over fourteen million kilometers. They were still seventy-four
minutes from turnover for a zero/zero intercept, but the one thing she felt
absolutely confident of was that none of the defenders expected her to be
making any zero/zero rendezvous with Forge.
Of course,
they might be wrong, she
thought coldly.
She
returned her attention to the tactical plot. The old-style superdreadnoughts,
which Jaruwalski had designated Bogey One, were holding their positions
in-system, close to Forge, but the forward sensor drones showed that their
impeller wedges were up, and their sidewalls were active. The massive LAC force
their scouts had reported was also clearly in evidence. Whoever the system
commander here in Lovat was, she didn't appear to have opted for the sort of deceptiveness
Admiral Bellefeuille had displayed at Chantilly.
But
appearances can be . . . deceiving,
Honor reminded herself, with a slight smile. I hope they are, anyway. I'd
hate to have wasted all this preparation if this is really all they've got.
She pursed
her lips slightly, looking down at the smaller repeater plot deployed from the
side of her command chair. Unlike the main plot, it was configured to show the
entire system, and her gaze rested on the green sphere which represented the
Lovat hyper limit.
"Any
time now, Your Grace. If we've got it figured right, at least."She looked
up. Mercedes Brigham stood beside her command chair, looking down at the same
repeater, and Honor nodded.
"If it
were me, I'd figure I had the patsies right about where I wanted them,"
she agreed. "And by now, their recon platforms have to have gotten a good
enough look at us to be sure we're not just drones."
Brigham
nodded back, and the two of them watched the plot, waiting.
* * *
"Admiral,
they're seventy minutes from turnover."
"Very
good, Ewan. Send the execute to Tarantula."
* * *
"Hyper
footprint! We have major hyper footprints directly astern and at system north
and system south," Andrea Jaruwalski reported. "Designate these
forces Bogey Two, Bogey Three, and Bogey Four! They're accelerating in-system
at five-point-zero-eight KPS-squared."
"Very
well," Honor said calmly.
She leaned
back in her command chair and crossed her legs, stroking the plushy fur between
Nimitz's ears.
* * *
"Admiral,
Admiral Giovanni's platforms confirm that one of the superdreadnoughts matches
the emissions signature of the ship that got away at Solon," Marius Gozzi
said.
"So,"
Javier Giscard said softly, "'the Salamander' is back."
He shook
his head with more than a trace of sadness. Eloise had tried to hide her
despair in her last letter to him, but he knew her too well. When Elizabeth
Winton had accepted her offer of the summit, it had been like watching the sun
come out. And when whatever the hell had happened on Old Earth and Torch
crushed any prospect of a negotiated settlement, it had been like watching a
late blizzard bury the frozen blossoms of a murdered spring.
He supposed
he couldn't really blame the Manties for leaping to the conclusion that the
Republic was behind what had happened. It didn't make sense, in a lot of ways,
yet people—and star nations—all too often did things that didn't make
sense. But however well he might understand their reasoning, he still had to
cope with the consequences of their actions.
And so do
they, he thought grimly, watching that
outnumbered force go to military power. Not that it was going to do it a great
deal of good. Its six superdreadnoughts were thoroughly outgunned by the
sixteen SD(P)s and four CLACs in each of his three intercepting forces; the inner-system's
missile pods were far more numerous than they'd been at Solon; and he'd been
able to plot his own translations much more closely. Unlike Solon, these Manties
would be unable to avoid entering the effective missile envelope of at least
one of his intercepting forces.
"Open
fire, Sir?" Selma Thackeray asked, but Giscard shook his head.
"Harrington
showed us at Solon what she could do to long-range missile fire," he told
the ops officer, "and she's got a lot more defensive platforms than she
had then. No. We'll just follow along. We're the beaters; Moriarty is the
hunter. Once Giovanni chews them up, we'll worry about cleaning up the
remnants."
"Yes,
Sir," Thackeray acknowledged, and Giscard returned his attention to the
plot.
They
shouldn't have sent you out with so few ships, Your Grace, he told the light code of HMS Imperator.
* * *
"All
right, Andrea," Honor said, glancing at the time display once more. Twelve
minutes had passed since the Havenite ambush force had translated in behind
her. "Execute Ozawa."
"Aye,
aye, Your Grace!" Jaruwalski said, her voice sparkling with excitement, and
tapped a single command into her console.
* * *
"There's
the execute signal, Ma'am!" Lieutenant Harcourt announced.
"Understood,"
Commander Estwicke replied, and looked at her astrogator. "Take us out,
Jerome."
"Aye,
aye, Skipper," Lieutenant Weismeuller acknowledged, and HMS Ambuscade
popped back up into hyper-space.
Weissmuller
had plotted his translation with care, and he'd had plenty of time to position
his ship perfectly in normal-space before executing it. Ambuscade
arrived precisely where she was supposed to be, and her plot suddenly blossomed
with the light codes of capital ships.
"Communications,
pass the word to Admiral Yanakov," Estwicke said.
* * *
"Hyper
footprint!"
Javier
Giscard's head snapped up at the unanticipated announcement. Commander
Thackeray was bent over her console, fingers flying as she massaged the
contact, and then she looked up, her face taut.
"Admiral,
we've got eighteen superdreadnoughts or CLACs, well outside the hyper limit,
directly astern of us. Range five-three-point-nine million kilometers. Velocity
relative to Lovat two-point-five-zero-one thousand KPS. They—"
She broke
off for just a moment, looking back down at her plot, then cleared her throat.
"Update,
Sir. It's twelve SD(P)s and six carriers. The carriers just launched full LAC
complements."
Giscard
nodded, and hoped he looked calmer than he felt.
Mousetrapped,
by God, he thought. And the same way we
did it to her at Solon.
He shook
his head in brief admiration, but well executed as Harrington's maneuver had
been, it still wasn't perfect. The wallers coming up behind him were at almost
three light-minutes' range. They had him deep enough inside the hyper limit
that he couldn't avoid action, but their astrogation had been poor, and they'd
made their own alpha translation 2.8 light-minutes outside the hyper limit. At
that range, even Manty MDM accuracy was going to be significantly degraded, and
he had sixteen pod-layers to their twelve. The LACs they were deploying
outnumbered his, and they'd be more effective in the missile-defense role, but
he was too far ahead of them, with too great an advantage in base velocity for
them to overtake him.
And
Harrington was still in front of him, driving steadily deeper into the
waiting defensive missiles.
"Start
rolling pods, Selma," he told his ops officer. "Fire Plan
Gamma."
* * *
The
outer-system FTL platforms reported the arrival of Admiral Yanakov's Task Force
82 to Alessandra Giovanni almost as quickly as Selma Thackeray reported it to
Javier Giscard.
Despite a
brief, instinctive panic reaction, Giovanni quickly reached the same
conclusions Giscard had, and her smile was much more unpleasant than his
expression had been.
So the
great 'Salamander' can fuck up just like the rest of us mere mortals, she thought. Pity about that.
"Range
from Forge?" she asked.
"Still
one-one-point-two light-minutes, Ma'am," MacNaughton replied.
"Roughly another thirty-six minutes to missile range for Moriarty."
"Thank
you," she said, and turned back to the outer-system plot as the
multi-drive missiles began to launch.
* * *
The range
was almost fifty-four million kilometers, and Bogey Two was running away from
TF 82 at a relative velocity of more than four thousand KPS. Missile flight
time was over eight minutes, and as Giscard had demonstrated at Solon, even
Manticoran accuracy at that range was going to be poor.
Except . .
. .
* * *
"Sir,
there's something . . . odd about the Manties' launch," Thackeray said.
"What
do you mean, 'odd'?" Giscard asked sharply.
"Their
attack birds are coming in . . . well, 'clumped' is the only word I can think
of for it, Sir. They aren't spreading out in a proper dispersion pattern."
"What?"
Giscard
punched a command into his own repeater plot and frowned. Thackeray was right.
His own outgoing missiles were spreading out, distancing themselves from one
another to reduce wedge interference with their telemetry links to the ships
which had launched them. Everyone's missiles did that.
But the
Manties' missiles weren't.
"Query
CIC," he told Thackeray. "I want an analysis of this pattern. There's
got to be some reason for it."
"CIC's
already on it, Sir,. So far, they don't have any explanation."
Giscard
grunted in acknowledgment. Actually, he realized, the attack missiles were spreading
out, just not the way they should have. They were coming in in discrete
clusters, spread across an attack front which would bring them all in
simultaneously in the end, but making the trip in relatively tight groups of
about eight or ten missiles each.
No, he thought as a preliminary analysis from the Combat
Information Center came up as a sidebar to his plot. They're coming in in
clusters of exactly eight missiles each. Which is stupid, since
they have twelve missiles in each pod!
* * *
It was
called "Apollo," after the archer of the gods.
It hadn't
been easy for the R&D types to perfect. Even for Manticoran technology,
designing the components had required previously impossible levels of
miniaturization, and BuWeaps had encountered more difficulties than anticipated
in putting the system into production. This was its first test in actual
combat, and the crews which had launched the MDMs watched with baited breath to
see how well it performed.
Javier
Giscard was wrong. There weren't twelve missiles in an Apollo pod; there were
nine. Eight relatively standard attack missiles or EW platforms, and the Apollo
missile—much larger than the others, and equipped with a down-sized,
short-ranged two-way FTL communications link developed from the one deployed in
the still larger Ghost Rider reconnaissance drones. It was a remote control
node, following along behind the other eight missiles from the same pod,
without any warhead or electronic warfare capability of its own.
The
impeller wedges of the other missiles hid it and its pulsed transmissions from
the sensors of Giscard's ships, and from his counter-missiles. But its position
allowed it to monitor the standard telemetry links from the other missiles of
its pod. And it also carried a far more capable AI than any standard attack
missile—one capable of processing the data from all of the other missiles'
tracking and homing systems and sending the result back to its mothership via
grav-pulse.
The ships
which had launched them had deployed the equally new Keyhole II platforms,
equipped not with standard light-speed links for their offensive missiles, but
with grav-pulse links. Virtually every Manticoran or Grayson ship which could
currently deploy Keyhole II was in Eighth Fleet's order of battle, and Honor
Alexander-Harrington had taken ruthless advantage of the capability when she
formulated her attack plans.
The updated
sensor information from the on-rushing missiles crossed the distance to the
tactical sections and massively capable computers of the superdreadnoughts
which had launched them virtually instantaneously. As did the corrections those
tactical sections sent back.
In effect,
Apollo gave the Royal Manticoran Navy real-time correction ability at any
attainable missile range.
* * *
Javier
Giscard's tactical officers didn't realize at first what they faced. In fact,
most of them never did realize.
The Manty
missiles ignored their decoys almost contemptuously, and those peculiar clumps
of MDMs maneuvered with a precision no missile-defense officer had ever seen before.
It was almost as if each clump were a single missile, one which bored in
through the defensive shield of the task group's electronic warfare as if it
didn't exist.
Counter-missiles
began to fire, and something else very peculiar happened. The EW platforms
seeded throughout the Manticoran salvo didn't come up simultaneously, or in
groups, the way they ought to have. Instead, they came up individually, singly,
almost as if they could actually see the counter-missiles and adjust
their own sequences.
Dragons
Teeth activated at precisely the right moment to draw the maximum number
of counter-missiles into attacking the false targets. Dazzlers blasted the
onboard sensors of other counter-missiles . . . just as the attack missiles
behind them arced upward, or dove downward, to drive straight through the gap
the Dazzlers had burned in the defensive envelope.
Not all the
defensive missiles could be blinded or evaded, of course. There were simply too
many of them. But their effectiveness was slashed.
The twelve
superdreadnoughts of Task Force 82 had rolled quadruple patterns before they
launched. Two hundred and eighty-eight Apollo pods had launched nineteen
hundred attack missiles and and four hundred EW platforms, along with two
hundred and eighty-eight control missiles.
Javier
Giscard's counter-missiles stopped only three hundred of the attack birds. His
desperate point defense clusters, in the single volley each of them got, killed
another four hundred.
Twelve
hundred got through.
* * *
Damage
alarms screamed on Sovereign of Space's command deck and flag bridge.
The huge ship shuddered and bucked as not one, or two, but scores of
Manticoran missiles ripped straight through the heart of the task group's
missile defenses. Armor splintered, atmosphere spewed into space, weapons
mounts and point defense clusters were blasted into shattered wreckage, and the
drum roll of destruction went on and on and on.
All of
Judah Yanakov's fire had been concentrated on only two ships. Partly, that was
because no one had really known how effective Apollo would prove against live
opposition, and partly it had been because superdreadnoughts were simply so
inconceivably tough. Killing targets that rugged was hard, and Honor and
Yanakov had been determined to do as much damage with the first salvo, before
the enemy had any chance to adjust to the new threat, as they could.
They did.
Javier
Giscard clung to the arms of his command chair, surrounded by the frantic
combat chatter of his task group, listening to the shrilling alarms, the
desperate reports of damage control parties fighting the tidal wave of damage.
His link to Damage Control Central lacked the detail of Captain Reuman's
displays, but huge swathes of crimson damage blasted their way across the
ship's schematic as he watched.
And then
there was one brief, terrible flash as something ripped into the far end of the
flag bridge. His head whipped up, and he just had time to see Selma Thackery
and her tactical party torn apart by the blast front screaming towards him.
Just long enough for his brain to begin to realize what was happening.
"Eloi—"
he began, his voice soft in the hurricane of alarms and devastation.
He never
finished her name.
* * *
"Jesus
Christ," Ewan MacNaughton whispered, his face white.
The first
Manticoran missile salvo had killed two of Admiral Giscard's superdreadnoughts
outright . . . including Sovereign of Space.. The second salvo, rumbling
in on the first launch's heels forty-eight seconds later, killed two more, and
the one after that, two more.
It took a
total of eleven salvos—less than eight minutes' fire—to kill every
superdreadnought in Bogey Two.
"How
the hell did they do that?"
MacNaughton
didn't even realize he'd asked the question aloud, but Admiral Giovanni
answered it anyway.
"I
don't know," she said, her voice ugly. "But it's not going to help
their lead ships in another twenty-five minutes."
* * *
"CIC
estimates another twenty minutes until we hit the envelope for their
inner-system pods, Your Grace," Mercedes Brigham said quietly, and Honor
nodded.
Imperator's flag bridge was oddly silent. Far astern of them,
Judah Yanakov's missile batteries had just finished off the helpless CLACs of
Bogey Two. He wasn't wasting any of his fire on the orphaned LACs. Instead,
he'd recovered his own LACs and translated back out, and Honor watched her
display, waiting.
Then Task
Force 82 translated back into normal-space yet again. This time, much closer to
the limit, and directly behind Bogey Three.
"Admiral
Yanakov is launching against Bogey Three, Your Grace," Jaruwalski
reported, and Honor nodded.
"Too
bad he won't have time to catch Bogey Four before it gets too far in-system for
him to range on, as well, Your Grace," Brigham said. "I'd love to
make a clean sweep."
Honor
glanced at her, remembering what had happened to her own command at Solon. Part
of her agreed entirely with Brigham, and not just because of the professional
naval officer in her. But the taste of revenge had a bitter tang, and she
looked back at the plot.
"We'll
just have to settle for what we can get," she said calmly. "And it's
about time to see how vulnerable Balder really is. Andrea," she looked
back up at Jaruwalski.
"Yes,
Your Grace?"
"Activate
the Mistletoe platforms."
* * *
"What
the—?"
Commander
MacNaughton stiffened in consternation.
"Admiral
Giovanni! We've got—"
Giovanni
was still turning towards her display when the explosions began.
* * *
The
Havenite tracking crews had become accustomed to the fact that they simply
couldn't localize and destroy the highly stealthy Manticoran reconnaissance
platforms used to scout their star systems. It was galling, but true. And so,
aside from a certain deep-seated irritation, they'd actually paid relatively
little attention to the long-endurance Ghost Rider reconnaissance drones the
Manticorans had distributed throughout the inner system of Lovat.
Which was
unfortunate.
Sonja
Hemphill had personally chosen the name "Mistletoe" in honor of the
dart which had killed the god Balder in Norse mythology, and the name proved
apt.
* * *
"Where
the hell are they coming from?" Giovanni demanded.
"I
don't know, Ma'am!" MacNaughton replied, his voice as anguished as
his expression as the Manticoran laser heads ripped into the Moriarty
platforms. Not just one of the platforms; all three of them. The stealth
and dispersion which were supposed to have protected them obviously hadn't, he
thought, and closed his eyes for a moment as the relentless avalanche of fire
blew them apart.
Alessandra
Giovanni's face was white with shock. With the Moriarty platforms gone, she had
nothing that could control missile salvos of the size needed to batter down
Manticoran missile defenses. And given what the Manties had already done to
Admiral Giscard's forces, it was painfully obvious her own anti-missile
defenses were going to be at best marginally effective.
"The
recon platforms!" MacNaughton said suddenly. "The bastards put laser
heads on their goddamned recon platforms!"
Giovanni
blinked, then shook her head and looked sharply at MacNaughton. He was right,
she realized. It was the only explanation.
"But
how did they find Moriarty?" she demanded. "Unless—"
"Unless
what, Ma'am?" MacNaughton asked when she broke off suddenly.
"Suarez,"
she said sharply. "That's what Suarez was all about! They figured out what
happened to them at Solon, and they used their EW drones to trick us into
activating the Moriarty net at Suarez after they'd already planted their recon
platforms deep enough in-system to see them. They had complete, detailed fingerprints
on what they were looking for!"
"And
then they mixed in armed recon drones to kill them after they found them,"
MacNaughton said through clenched teeth.
"That's
exactly what they did," Giovanni agreed harshly. "Damn! They can't
have the acceleration to be very effective against moving targets at any sort
of range, but against fixed targets, especially when the attack birds know exactly
what to look for . . . ."
"Commander
MacNaughton!" a rating called, and MacNaughton whipped back to his own
displays. His shoulders went absolutely rigid for a moment, then slumped, and
he looked back at Giovanni.
"Not
just Moriarty, Ma'am," he grated. "It looks like we're going to have
to start deploying the system defense pods further apart. They just took out
three-quarters of the Beta echelon and almost that many of the Delta
birds."
"How?"
Giovanni asked flatly.
"More
of their damned recon platforms. It had to be. They got old-fashioned nukes—the
yields are somewhere in the five hundred megaton range—close enough to the pods
to take them out with proximity explosions."
Giovanni
nodded silently. Of course. If you could put laser heads on the things, then
why not regular nukes? Not that they'd really had to. Given the accuracy they'd
just shown against Giscard, they could take the pods out with proximity-armed
MDM launches from beyond any range at which she could possibly expect to score
hits in return.
"Admiral
Giovanni," a shaken communications officer said, "Admiral Trask is
asking for you."
Alessandra
Giovanni glanced once more at the plot where the heart and mind of her defenses
had just been annihilated, then drew a deep breath. Of course Trask wanted to
speak to her. His obsolescent superdreadnoughts were going to be little more
than targets for Harrington's SD(P)s, and Giovanni wasn't optimistic about her
LACs' chance to get through Harrington's defensive fire and damned Katanas
without the support of massed attacks from the system defense missile pods.
Which meant
that if she committed Admiral Wentworth Trask's ships, he and all of his people
were going to die..
* * *
"According
to the standard recon platforms, we just took out all three of their control
stations, Your Grace!" Jaruwalski announced jubilantly.
"Very
good, Andrea. In that case, we'll proceed with the Alpha plan. Let's whittle
their deployed pods down as far as we can before we enter their envelope."
"Aye,
aye, Your Grace."
Honor
nodded and turned back to her plot, hoping that whoever was in command over
there would realize how helpless her defensive starships were and surrender
before she had to kill them all.
"How
bad is it?" Eloise Pritchart asked flatly.
Thomas
Theisman looked at her for a moment before he replied.
She looked
. . . broken, he thought. Not in spirit, not in her determination to meet her
responsibilities. But if those remained intact, something else, deep inside was
a bleeding wound, and his own heart ached in sympathy. She wasn't just his
President. She was his friend, just as Javier had, been and Javier's death,
after all he and she been through, all they'd faced and survived under the
Committee of Public Safety, was a bitter, bitter blow.
She
returned his gaze across her desk, her eyes as flat and lifeless as her voice,
and he knew she knew what he was thinking. But she said nothing more. She
simply waited, motionless.
"It's very
bad," he said finally. "Lovat, and all the LACs, support ships,
and munitions we were building there, are simply gone. Harrington took them all
out. Not to mention destroying thirty-two podnaughts, four CLACs, all
twenty-four of Admiral Trask's older superdreadnoughts, and something like ten
thousand LACs. I can't even begin to compute the straight economic cost.
Rachel's people are still in a state of shock just looking at the preliminary
numbers, but I think you can safely assume that they just at least doubled the
total economic and industrial cost of all their previous raids combined."
He shook his head." Compared to this, what we did to Zanzibar was a love
tap."
Pritchart's
face had tightened with fresh pain as the litany of destruction rolled out.
"Fortunately,
the loss of life was much lower than it might have been," Theisman
continued. "Admiral Giovanni had the sense to order Trask to stand down
his superdreadnoughts when Harrington started punching out her system defense
missile pods with proximity warheads. He scuttled them himself, to prevent
their capture, but all of his people got off alive first. We lost more of the LAC
crews. They had to at least try, and no one can fault Giovanni for thinking
there ought to have been enough of them to let them swarm Harrington's lead
task force. Except that every single one of the LACs covering that task force
was a Katana. Combined with their new counter-missiles and whatever they
used on our wallers, they massacred our Cimeterres. Even the new Alpha
birds."
"How
did they do it?" she asked in that same flat, terrible voice.
"We're
still evaluating the preliminary reports. From what we've seen so far, it looks
like they used two new weapons on us. What makes it hurt worse is that both
their new systems appear to be absolutely logical progressions from their
damned Ghost Rider technology, and we never even saw them coming.
"We
should have realized that sooner or later they were going to strap weapons onto
their recon drones. They've demonstrated they can operate them deep inside our
defended areas with virtual impunity, and they probably took a certain pleasure
from applying a variant of the same technique Saint-Just used to destroy
Elizabeth's yacht in Yeltsin. The bad news is how close they can get them; the
good news—such as it is—is that, even so, they can't get them all the way into
attack range in stealth. They still have to get into range to execute their
attacks, and not even Manty stealth systems can hide them during the last
hundred thousand kilometers or so of their runs. They don't have the sort of
acceleration rates missiles do, either, and to be used properly, they have to
attack virtually from rest, or else they can't loiter until the proper moment.
So they have relatively low closing velocities when they come in, and they can
be engaged by counter-missiles and standard point defense, now that we know
they're out there. Our intercept probabilities won't be good, especially given
how little warning we'll have between the moment their drives peak and the
moment they reach attack range, but we can probably cope with the threat."
He paused
for a moment, then shrugged.
"Actually,
this part of it's largely my own personal fault," he said unflinchingly.
"Shannon warned me from the beginning that the Moriarty platforms' stealth
wouldn't be good enough to hide them if the Manties figured out what they
should be looking for. She wanted to build them into purpose-built
superdreadnoughts, or at least add them as strap-on components to larger, more
heavily defended platforms. I overruled her because of the need to get Moriarty
into service as quickly as possible. I shouldn't have. She was right."
"So
were you. We did—do—need them. You didn't see some sort of invisible
attack coming, but neither did anyone else. Don't second-guess yourself on this
one."
Theisman
bobbed his head, but he knew that was one presidential directive he wasn't
going to be able to obey.
"The
other new weapon they deployed is actually much more frightening," he
continued. "The accuracy it demonstrated is bad enough, but what it did to
our EW capabilities and counter-missiles may even have been worse. I'm trying
very hard to remember we're looking at preliminary reports, but I'll be
frank, Eloise. It's hard not to panic over this one.
"I've
talked it over with Linda Trenis and Victor Lewis. Obviously, we haven't been
able to get Shannon's input yet, but I'll be surprised if she reaches any
different conclusions on the basis of the data we have so far.
"They've
obviously incorporated an FTL link into their missile telemetry. I'm guessing
it has to be an entirely separate, dedicated platform—a roughly missile-sized
bird they've managed to squeeze the grav-pulse com into—that serves as an
advanced data processing node. Nobody ever considered doing anything like that
before, because there really wasn't any point. Light-speed limitations were
light-speed limitations, and using this sort of approach must tie all the
missiles the command platform is controlling into a fairly tightly bunched
cluster. That should make them more vulnerable to interception, and
before the FTL com came along, any control platform would have been just as far
from home and just as sluggish responding to telemetry commands as any other
missile.
"But
what they've done gives their missiles real-time command control input
from their shipboard tac sections, Eloise. You aren't a professional naval
officer, so you may not realize just what a huge advantage that is. Even with
conventional single-drive missiles, there's always been a light-speed
telemetry lag which makes it impossible to exert effective shipboard control at
extended missile ranges.
"But
apparently that isn't true for the Manties anymore. They don't have to
preprogram evasion maneuvers into their missiles. Don't have to launch with a
locked-in attack profile, or even prepackaged EW profiles. They can make
changes on the fly, adjust everything as they get steadily closer, get
steadily better data on the defenses they have to penetrate. They can command
their electronic warfare missiles to activate at precisely the most effective
moment—decided by the capabilities of a superdreadnought's tactical
computers, not just what can be squeezed into a missile body—and they can
direct the flight of their attack missiles to take the greatest possible
advantage of the holes their EW opens up.
"In
short, their accuracy's going to be enormously greater than ours in any maximum-range
engagement, and their missiles' ability to penetrate our defenses is going to
be much higher, as well. So they're going to get through with more laser heads,
and those laser heads are going to be much more accurate when they
arrive."
"So
our numerical superiority just evaporated," Pritchart said grimly.
"Not .
. . necessarily," Theisman said, and for the first time since he'd entered
her office, emotion flickered in her topaz eyes.
It was
incredulity.
"You
just said they can kill our ships—like they did Javier's—at ranges where we
can't even hurt them," she said curtly.
"Yes,
they can. With at least some of their ships."
"What
do you mean?"
She cocked
her head, eyes suddenly intent, and Theisman shrugged.
"Eloise,
this is a new weapon, just deployed. Obviously, it's possible they've refitted
with it across the board. I don't think they have, though."
"Why
not?"
"Eighth
Fleet's been their first team ever since they activated it. It's got their most
modern ships, and what I believe is their best fleet commander. It's also been
their primary offensive weapon. But Eighth Fleet obviously didn't have this
capability at Solon, five and a half months ago. If they'd had it, they sure as
hell would've used it when Javier blindsided them.
"For
that matter, if they'd had it in general deployment two and a half months
ago, when Elizabeth accepted your invitation to a summit, she probably wouldn't
have accepted in the first place. You know how she feels about us, and why. Do
you really think she would have agreed to sit down to negotiate if she'd had
this broadly deployed and ready to go?" He snorted in harsh, bitter
derision. "No, if this had been available to Elizabeth Winton on that sort
of scale, she would have told us to pound sand. And then she would have gone
onto the offensive, taken back every single thing we took away from them in
Thunderbolt, and carried straight on through to punch out Haven and occupy
Noveau Paris the way they should have at the end of the last war."
"Maybe
she only accepted in the first place to buy time while they got it
deployed," Pritchart countered.
"Possibly,"
Theisman conceded. "In fact, that's probably effectively what happened, at
least on a small scale. But look at what they did with their new weapon. They
swooped down on Lovat, which, admittedly, was a far more important target than
anything they'd hit before. They came in, they mousetrapped and massacred the
real defensive force when it came out of hyper," a part of his mind cursed
himself for his choice of verb as fresh pain flashed through her eyes, but he
continued steadily, "then headed in-system, wiped out the LACs and a batch
of obsolete wallers, and wrecked the star system's industrial base.
Right?"
"Yes,"
she said, her voice once again curt.
"Then
why do it to Lovat?" he asked simply. "If they had enough ships
capable of deploying and using this weapon, why not go directly for Haven? Hit
us with their own version of Beatrice? Trust me, Eloise—Caparelli, White Haven,
and Harrington are at least as good as strategists as anyone on our side. And
if we had a weapon like this available in decisive quantities, or if we had any
prospect of having it available in those quantities in the immediate future, we
would never tell the other side we had it by taking out a secondary target,
however attractive it might be. We'd save it, keep it completely under wraps,
until we could use it in a single offensive which would end the war. Think
about it. That's exactly what they did last time around, in Operation
Buttercup—sat on their new ships and weapons until they were ready, then
hammered us into scrap."
"So
you're saying what they did at Lovat indicates they don't have it
broadly deployed?"
"I
think that's exactly what it indicates. I think they showed it to us early
because they know as well as we do what the tonnage numbers look like right
now. They're still trying to force us to redeploy, to fritter away our
strength. To waste time while they carry out their refits, or iron out the
production bottlenecks, or whatever it is they need to do to get this
thing deployed throughout their wall of battle. And when they do get it
deployed, we will be screwed, make no mistake about that."
"So
what are you suggesting, Tom?"
"I'm
saying we have three options. First, get them to agree to talk to us again and
settle this thing without anyone else getting hurt on either side. Second,
surrender before they get their new weapon fully into service and slaughter
thousands of our personnel the way they did in Buttercup. The way they did to
Javier at Lovat. Third, go ahead and hit them with the Bravo variant of
Beatrice before they can get it into full deployment."
"My
God, Tom. You can't be serious!"
"Eloise,
we're out of other options, and we're out of time." He shook his head.
"You know how I've felt about this war from the beginning. I want the first
option. I want to talk to them, to tell them about Arnold, to settle this
thing across a conference table, not with broadsides and gutted star systems.
But they've rejected that option. I know why we think they did it. I know
somebody's manipulating what's going on. But if they won't even talk to us, we
can't tell them that.
"So,
it's either surrender, or go for outright victory."
"And
which of those two options would you prefer?" she asked softly.
"In a
lot of ways," he admitted, "I'd almost prefer surrender. I've been
fighting the Manticorans for a long time now, Eloise. Hell, I started fighting
them in Yeltsin, before the first war ever began! My emotions where
they're concerned are probably as tangled up and knotted as those of anyone
else in the Republic, but I'm tired of seeing men and women under my command,
men and women who follow my orders because they trust me, killed.
Especially when they're being killed because of a stupid fucking misunderstanding.
"But
I'm an admiral; you're the politician. Is a surrender to them possible?"
"I
don't know." She inhaled deeply, her eyes glistening with unshed tears.
"I just don't know. I could carry the Cabinet with me, but I don't see how
I could possibly carry the Senate, even if I told them everything we suspect
about Arnold at this point. And I don't have the power, as President, to
declare war or conclude peace—or surrender—without the advice and consent of
the Senate. God only knows what would happen if I tried. Our legal system and
chains of authority are still so new, they might shatter outright if I ordered
a surrender and Congress repudiated my orders. Everything we've worked for
could collapse. Even your navy could come apart. A lot of it would probably
obey the order if you endorsed it, but other parts might ignore it and try to
keep prosecuting the war. We might even wind up with another round of civil
war!"
"Can
we send a private message to Elizabeth, then?" Theisman was almost
pleading. "Can we tell her we want another cease-fire. A stand down in
place of all units while we send a diplomatic mission direct to
Manticore?"
"Do
you really think they'd listen after all that's happened?"
Pritchart said sadly. "That's exactly what I proposed before, Tom!
And they're convinced it was only a ploy. That I set it up for some
Machiavellian reason of my own, and then tried to murder two teenaged girls to
sabotage my own summit. If I try it again now, they're going to see it
as an exact replay of the way Saint-Just derailed their Buttercup offensive. It
would only 'prove' to them that their new weapons have us panicked."
A single
tear tracked down her cheek, and she shook her head.
"I
want this war ended even more than you do, Tom. I'm the one Arnold got
to with his goddamned forged correspondence. I'm the one who started
this entire fucking mess. And now look at it. Hundreds of thousands of men and
women dead, star systems wrecked from one end to another, and even
Javier."
"Eloise,
it wasn't just you." Theisman leaned forward, reaching across the desk,
and captured her hand and gripped it fiercely. "Yes, he fooled you. Well,
he fooled me, the rest of the Cabinet, and the entire goddamned Congress,
as well! You just said it yourself—you didn't have the power to declare war
without advice and consent, and you got both of them."
"But I
asked for them. It was my policy," she said softly. "My
administration."
"Maybe
it was. But the way we got here doesn't change where we are, or the options we've
got. So, if we can't negotiate, and we can't surrender, what can we do
except launch Beatrice? It's an 'all-costs' situation, Eloise, and Bravo was
specifically designed to take out Eighth Fleet, as well. If we manage that, we
knock out the only force we know is equipped with the new missiles, but
even that's pretty much beside the point if the main op succeeds. That's really
what it comes down to, now. If we wait, we lose; if we attack and I'm wrong
about their deployment status, we lose; but if we attack and I'm right,
we'll almost certainly win. It's that simple."
He looked
into her eyes once again, still holding her hand.
"So
which way do we go, Madam President?"
"Duchess
Harrington!"
"Over
here, Duchess Harrington!"
"Duchess
Harrington, would you care to comment on—?"
"Duchess
Harrington, did you know—?"
"Alvin
Chorek, Duchess Harrington, Landing Herald United Faxes! Are you
going—?"
"Duchess
Harrington! Duchess Harrington!"
Honor
ignored the newsies' shouts as she moved quickly across the shuttle pad's
concourse. It wasn't easy. A last-minute conference aboard Imperator
that ran well over its originally allotted time had her running over six hours
behind her original schedule, but that had only given the mob more time to
gather. Worse, someone had obviously leaked her adjusted arrival time, and the
concourse was a madhouse. Capital Field security personnel, joined by hastily
mobilized drafts of Landing City Police, formed a cordon, holding the
reporters—and what looked, to her jaundiced eye, like at least ten million
private citizens—at bay.
Mostly.
A trio of
particularly enterprising newsies bolted suddenly out of a service doorway
which had somehow been left unguarded. They charged towards her,
shoulder-mounted cameras running, shouting questions, then skidded to a sudden
halt as they found themselves face to face with a suddenly congealing, solid
line of green-clad armsmen.
Armed
armsmen.
Unsmiling armed armsmen.
Andrew
LaFollet had guessed what might happen, and he'd sent an additional twelve-man
team from the Bay House to the concourse. They'd reinforced Spencer Hawke,
Clifford McGraw, and Joshua Atkins at the arrivals gate, and LaFollet himself
could not have bettered the stony brown stare Captain Hawke turned upon the
lead newsy.
"Ah,
um, I mean—"
The
reporter's brashness appeared to have deserted him. Hawke made absolutely no
threatening gesture, but none was needed, and as Honor watched gravely, her own
unsmiling expression hid an inner chuckle as she wondered if "Newsy
Intimidation 101" was a course listing on an armsman's training syllabus
somewhere.
"Excuse
me, Sir," Hawke said with exquisite courtesy, "but you're blocking
the Steadholder's way."
"We
just wanted—" The newsy began, then stopped. He looked over his shoulder
at his two fellows, as if for support. If that was what he'd been searching
for, he didn't find it. They were busy looking in different directions.
Then, as if
by the result of some telepathic communication, the three of them drifted aside
as one.
"Thank
you," Hawke said courteously, and looked at Honor. "My Lady?"
"Thank
you, Spencer," she said with admirable gravity, and the entire cavalcade
resumed its interrupted passage to the waiting air limos and escorting sting
ships.
* * *
Spencer
Hawke looked studiously out the limo window as Hamish Alexander-Harrington
wrapped one arm about his wife in a crushing hug.
"God,
I'm glad to see you!" he said quietly as Honor sat beside him in the
limousine seat, her head on his shoulder. She pressed the top of her head
against his cheek, and the treecats on their shoulders reached out to rub their
cheeks together, as well.
"And
you," she murmured into his ear. She let herself relax totally for a
moment, then straightened and sat more upright, still in the circle of his arm,
but far enough back to see his face.
"Emily?"
she asked. "Katherine?"
"Fine,
both of them fine," he reassured her quickly. "Emily wanted to come,
but Sandra wouldn't hear of it. For that matter, Jefferson was ready to put his
foot down if she'd tried." He shook his head and glanced at Hawke with a
wry grin. "How the hell have you managed to retain any tattered
illusion that you run your own life after having had Grayson armsmen looking
after you for so long?"
"Jefferson's
only doing his job, love," Honor told him primly, also watching Hawke from
the corner of her eye. Her personal armsman seemed to have become remarkably
hard of hearing, however.
"And
Sandra was probably just exercising simple sanity, given the madhouse out there!"
Honor continued.
She jabbed
her head at the spaceport buildings, dwindling rapidly behind them, and he
snorted.
"Better
get used to it," he advised her. "The news broke yesterday. Coupled
with what Terekhov did at Monica, Lovat has public morale and enthusiasm
soaring to new heights. It's actually rebounded harder because of the contrast
to what happened at Zanzibar before the cease-fire. Not to mention the fact
that Her Majesty's subjects are in the most murderous mood I've seen since your
'execution' over what happened to Jim and almost happened to Berry and Ruth.
And since Terekhov won't be back from Talbott for another month or so, all of
it's going to be focusing on you, Madam Salamander."
"God,
I hate this kind of stuff," she muttered.
"I
know you do. Sometimes I wish you were the sort who ate it up with a spoon,
instead. But then you wouldn't be you, I suppose."
"Then
Nimitz would cut my throat in my sleep, you mean!" Honor laughed.
"You have no idea how a ravening mob of newsies affects a treecat's
empathic sense!"
"No,
but I've been basking in the reflected glow of your glory enough lately for
Samantha to give me a shrewd notion the effect isn't good."
"To
put it mildly."
The limo
banked, and she frowned, looking out the window.
"Where
are we going?"
"I'm
afraid we're going to Admiralty House," Hamish told her.
"No!"
Honor said sharply. "I want to see Emily and Katherine!"
"I
know you do. But Elizabeth wants—"
"I
don't give a damn what Elizabeth wants!" Honor snapped. Hamish
blinked, sitting back and looking at her in astonishment. "Not this time,
Hamish!" she continued angrily. "I want to see my wife and daughter.
The Queen of Manticore, the Protector of Grayson, and the Emperor of the Known
Universe can all get in line and wait behind the two of them!"
"Honor,"
he began carefully, "she wants to congratulate you, and she
arranged to do it at Admiralty House, not Mount Royal Palace, because she wants
all the rest of the Navy to be part of it. And she scheduled it originally to
give you at least five hours at Jason Bay before the ceremony."
"I
don't care." Honor sat back and crossed her arms. "Not this time. I'm
going to hug our daughter before I do one more thing. Elizabeth's hung all
these honors and rewards and presents on me, but I've never asked her for a
thing. Well, today I'm asking. And if she doesn't want to give it to me, then
I'm telling, instead of asking."
"I
see."
Hamish
gazed at her for a moment, remembering the diffident, focused, professionally
fearless yet personally unassertive young captain he'd first met in Yeltsin so
many years before. That Honor Harrington would never have dreamed of
telling the Queen of Manticore to get in line behind her infant daughter. This
one, however . . . .
He pulled
out his personal communicator and activated it.
"Willie?"
he said. "Hamish. I told you not rescheduling was a bad idea. She's
really, really pissed, and I don't blame her."
He listened
for a moment, then shrugged.
"You're
the Prime Minister of Manticore. I think dealing with situations like this is
part of the job. So you trot into your office, screen Elizabeth, and suggest,
ever so respectfully, that we reschedule. Personally, I think she'll see the
wisdom of the suggestion. I hope she does, anyway."
He paused,
listening again, and Honor could taste his amusement. She could also actually
hear Baron Grantville's raised voice rattling the receiver pressed to Hamish's
ear.
"Well,
that's your problem, brother dear," he said with a grin. "Personally,
I'm not stupid enough to argue with my wife—either of my wives—over something
like this. So, we're going home. Have a nice day."
He
deactivated the com and dropped its back into his pocket, then rapped on the
partition between them and the pilot's compartment. It opened, and Tobias
Stimson looked back at him.
"Yes,
My Lord?"
"Jefferson
Bay, Tobias."
"Very
good, My Lord," Stimson said with obvious approval, and Hamish smiled at
Honor as the air limo banked again.
"Better?"
"Yes,"
she said, just a bit darkly. "And the fact that you came around so quickly
means you'll live to see another day despite the fact that you were going to
drag me off to Admiralty House in the first place."
"Um."
He rubbed the side of his head for a moment, then nodded. "Fair enough. In
my defense, I'll only plead that the schedule was set yesterday, before you ran
late. I'd gotten the timing into my head then."
"Hmph."
She looked at him, then gave her head a little toss. "Fair enough, I
suppose," she agreed grudgingly. "Just . . . don't let it happen
again."
* * *
Katherine
Allison Miranda Alexander-Harrington was a red-faced, scowling, beautiful
baby, Honor thought. And her opinion was, of course, completely unbiased. After
all, Raoul Alfred Andrew was at least equally beautiful, even if he was an
older man.
She sat
with Katherine in her arms, parked in her favorite lounger on the terrace,
overlooking Jason Bay. Umbrellas kept the direct sunlight off the babies, and
Emily's life-support chair was parked beside her.
They
weren't exactly alone. Sandra Thurston and Lindsey Phillips had been waiting
with Emily when Honor arrived. Sandra had been cuddling Katherine until Honor
and Hamish got there, and Lindsey still had Raoul in her arms, with his
sleeping face pillowed on her shoulder. Nimitz and Samantha had draped
themselves across the umbrella-shielded table, basking in the children's
mind-glows, and Andrew LaFollet and Jefferson McClure had been keeping an eye
on Emily and the babies. Tobias Stimson and Honor's three-man personal detail
had joined them, and now the six of them stood along the outer edge of the
terrace, not exactly unobtrusively but giving them a protected bubble of
privacy.
"We do
good work," Honor said, smiling as she sampled the still uninformed
mind-glow of the blanket-wrapped infant in her arms. She reached out, stroking
the impossibly soft cheek with the tip of her right index finger, then looked
up at Emily.
"Well,
Dr. Illescue and his people had a little something to do with the mechanics,"
Emily replied with a huge smile of her own. "And your mother's willingness
to kick me in the posterior played a part, too. Still," she continued
judiciously, "I'd have to say, on balance—and only after due and careful
consideration, you understand—that you have a point."
"I
only wish I'd been there when she was born," Honor said softly.
"I
know." Emily reached out and patted her on the thigh. "I guess not
all aspects of technology are really progress. I mean, once upon a time the
only people who had to worry about not being there when babies were born were
the fathers. The mothers were always there."
"I
hadn't really thought about it quite that way," Honor said.
"I had,"
Hamish said, coming out of the house behind them. James MacGuiness, Miranda
LaFollet, and Farragut followed him, and Hamish raised his right hand,
flourishing the beer steins in it proudly.
"Had
what?" his senior wife asked as he reached them and bent to give each of
them a quick kiss.
"Thought
about whether or not it was really progress," he said, plunking the steins
down and watching as MacGuiness carefully poured them full of Old Tilman.
"I got
to be there for both of them," he continued, "and that was good. But
I was really pissed at the Admiralty for sending Honor off at that particular
time. In fact, I was so pissed I decided to take it up personally with the
First Lord. The conversation was a little confusing."
"You're
always a little confused, dear," Emily told him, watching as he and Honor
sampled their beers.
"Nonsense!"
he said briskly. "I'm always a lot confused."
"Well,
don't confuse the babies," Honor advised.
"Lindsey
won't let me," Hamish pouted, and Honor looked across at the nanny in
surprise.
"Lindsey
won't let you? That sounds suspiciously like she's become a permanent
fixture!"
"I
have, Your Grace," Lindsey said with a smile. "Unless you'd rather
not, of course. Your mother told me you were going to need help, especially
with your schedule, and since—as she rather charmingly put it—she had me
'nicely broken in,' she'd feel better if I was available to you and Lady
Emily."
"Well,
of course I'd rather! But can Mother really spare you from the twins?"
"I'll
admit I'll miss them," Lindsey acknowledged, "but it's not like I
won't see a lot of them, is it? And your mother has Jenny, not to mention their
tutors and their armsmen, to help keep an eye on them. Even a pair of
seven-year-olds is going to find it difficult to wear all of them down."
"If
Mother is sure about this, I'm certainly not going to argue!"
"And
if you'd been foolish enough to do so, Hamish and I would have hit you smartly
over the head and confined you somewhere until you came to your senses,"
Emily said tranquilly.
"Spencer
wouldn't have let you," Honor retorted.
"Spencer,"
Miranda said, settling into an unoccupied chair, "would have helped them.
And if he hadn't, I would have."
Farragut
leapt up into her lap with a bleek of satisfied agreement, and Honor laughed.
"All
right. All right! I surrender."
"Good,"
Emily said. Then she looked at Hamish. "Was the carnage at Admiralty House
very extreme when Honor failed to arrive on schedule?"
"Not
really." Hamish swallowed more beer and laughed. "I just got off the
com with Tom Caparelli. From what he had to say, Elizabeth was completely in
agreement with Honor. She hadn't realized how late Honor was running, and she
said something about star chambers, oubliettes, bread and water, and headsmen
for anyone who dragged Honor away from Katherine before tomorrow morning."
"Not
just from Katherine, I hope," Emily said with a lurking smile, and
Hamish chuckled.
"Probably
not," he agreed. "Probably not."
* * *
"Welcome
back aboard, Admiral," Captain Houellebecq said quietly as RHNS
Guerriere's side party dismissed behind Lester Tourville.
"Thank
you, Celestine."
Tourville
met Houellebecq's blue eyes levelly as he shook her hand. He was well aware of
the questions behind his flag captain's attentive expression, but he was less
certain he had the answers to them all.
Uncertainty
and shock were two emotions he was unaccustomed to feeling, but they summed up
his own initial reaction to the Octagon briefing handily. He'd known Lovat had
been an unmitigated disaster, and the personal loss of so many
friends—including Javier Giscard and the entire company of Sovereign of
Space—had hit home with excruciating force. But his worst nightmares had
fallen short of the new weapons capabilities the Manties had revealed. The
reports on those had brought back other nightmares, of the days when he and
Javier had watched Operation Buttercup rumbling down upon them as they waited
to defend the same star system where Javier had just died.
And then,
hard on the heels of that shattering news, had come Tom Theisman's proposed
operation. If nothing else, it showed an impressive audacity, even if it was
based on the logic of desperation. Still, if Theisman's assumptions about the
availability of the new weapons was valid—and Op Research's conclusions matched
those of the Secretary of War on that head—then this all or nothing throw of
the dice might just work.
Of course,
it might not, too. And although he'd regained his mental balance, questions
about the proposed operation's mechanics and basic assumptions were still
rattling around inside his own brain.
"Molly,"
Houellebecq said, reaching out to shake Captain DeLaney's hand in turn. "I
see you managed to get the Admiral back home again, after all."
"It
wasn't easy to drag him away from Nouveau Paris' nightlife," DeLaney
replied, with a smile which looked almost natural, and Houellebecq returned it
before switching her attention back to Tourville.
"Everyone's
waiting in the briefing room, as you requested, Admiral."
"In
that case," Tourville said heartily, "let's get down to it."
"Of
course, Sir. After you." Houellebecq stepped back half a pace and waved
one hand at the lifts.
* * *
"Be
seated," Tourville said briskly before the assembled staffers and flag
officers could climb more than halfway to their feet. They settled back
obediently, and he strode to his own place at the head of the table. He seated
himself, followed by Houellebecq and DeLaney, and gazed out over their
assembled faces.
"Our
next meeting is going to be just a bit larger than this one," he said
after a moment. "We're going to be rather substantially reinforced over
the next week or so."
"Reinforced,
Sir?" Rear Admiral Janice Scarlotti asked.
Scarlotti
was a short, sturdy, no-nonsense brunette, and Tourville felt the corners of
his eyes crinkle in a smile. She'd obviously heard the same rumors as everyone
else. Unlike his other officers, however, she'd never heard of tact, and she'd
plainly been waiting to pounce.
"Yes,
Janice," he said patiently. "Reinforced. As in additional ships
assigned to our order of battle."
"I
gathered that, Sir," Scarlotti replied, apparently completely oblivious to
his irony. Personally, Tourville suspected she was fullyy aware of it. She was
much too smart and competent to be as totally socially clueless as she chose to
appear. Of course, there had been the old Shannon Foraker . . . .
"What
I was wondering," Scarlotti continued, "is exactly what sort of
reinforcements we're going to receive?"
"According
to the Octagon's latest numbers, we're going to be reinforced to a total
strength of something over three hundred of the wall," Tourville said
calmly.
More than
one of the officers around the table sat back in his or her chair as the number
hit them squarely between the eyes. Even Scarlotti blinked, and Tourville
smiled thinly.
"I'm
well aware of the sorts of rumors which have been circulating around the
fleet," he said. "Some of them have been so wild as to be outright
ridiculous. For example, the one that says we're going to launch a direct
attack on the Manticoran home system in response to Lovat. The very idea is
preposterous."
Several
people nodded, and he smiled toothily under his brushy mustache as saw relief
in a few of the expressions.
"I was
completely confident of that when Admiral Theisman invited Captain DeLaney and
me down to the Octagon to brief us on something called Operation Beatrice, of
course," he continued. "It was a very interesting conversation. He
and Admiral Marquette and Admiral Trenis laid Beatrice out with remarkable
clarity.
"Now
Captain DeLaney and I are going to brief you on it."
"Well,
that wasn't too bad, I hope?" Elizabeth Winton asked with a smile
as she and Honor stepped into the Admiralty House conference room.
"Not
too bad," Honor agreed.
"I did
think about hanging some more medals on you," Elizabeth continued lightly
as William Alexander and his older brother, Sir Thomas Caparelli, and Patricia
Givens followed the two of them into the room. "I decided to settle for
another Monarch's Thanks, instead. How many is that for you? A couple of
dozen now?"
"Not
quite," Honor said dryly.
Spencer
Hawke, Tobias Stimson, and Colonel Shemais followed Givens. Hawke and Stimson
positioned themselves behind their principals; Shemais took the place waiting
for her at the conference table as Elizabeth's intelligence liaison.
It wasn't,
Honor thought as the various treecats settled down in their people's laps or
chair backs and the door closed, leaving Joshua Atkins, Clifford McGraw, and
three troopers from the Queen's Own on guard in the hallway outside, as if
there wasn't enough security in place without requiring the colonel's personal
involvement.
The other
participants in the meeting waited until Elizabeth and Honor were seated, then
found their own seats.
"First,"
Caparelli said as they all turned their attention to him, "I'd like to add
my own thanks—and that of everyone at Admiralty House—for a job very well done,
Your Grace."
"We
tried," Honor said.
"Quite
successfully," Caparelli observed. "We're still analyzing your
after-action report, but it's already obvious you hurt them much worse than
they've hurt us anywhere since their opening offensive. The amount of damage
you did, coupled with the demonstrated efficacy of Apollo and Mistletoe, has to
have knocked them back on their heels."
"I'd
like to think so," Honor said when he paused, inviting comment. "In
fact, I'm inclined to think it has. I'd feel more comfortable about that if I
didn't know how tough-minded Thomas Theisman is, though." She shook her
head. "He was bad enough as a destroyer skipper at Blackbird; nothing I've
seen indicates that he's turned into any more of a pushover since."
"Agreed."
Caparelli nodded vigorously. "On the other hand, Pat and I have discussed
this at some length with her analysts. Pat?"
"No
one in my shop, with the possible exception of one or two very junior officers
who haven't yet learned the limits of their own mortality, is prepared to make
any unqualified predictions at this point, Your Grace," Givens said.
"The consensus, however, is that Apollo's effectiveness, in particular,
has to have come as a significant shock to their systems. In fact, it was more
effective in action than we expected, even after your exercises, and it
came at them completely cold. Given the way Sanskrit has to resonate
with what happened to them in Buttercup," she nodded at Hamish,
"they've got to be wondering if we're prepared to do the same thing to
them all over again."
"I
don't doubt that," Honor replied. "And don't misunderstand me, I'm
not trying to say the analysts are wrong. I'd just like everyone to remember
that Thomas Theisman wasn't prepared to roll over and play dead when we
introduced the missile pod, and they didn't have it. And when we introduced the
SD(P) and MDM, he and Shannon Foraker simply sat down and came up with
effective responses to both of them."
"We're
remembering that," Caparelli assured her. "I assure you, no one in
this building is ever likely to take Admiral Theisman lightly again."
"I'm
glad to hear it," she said. "I wish, though, that we could at least
find this 'Bolthole' of theirs. I know it's not likely to be as critical to
their building capacity as it was, and it's got to be becoming steadily less so
as the units under the construction in their other yards progress. But that
seems to be where Admiral Foraker and her little brain trust are working on
their various new weapons and doctrines, and that makes it a target well
worth hitting any time."
"We
all agree, Your Grace," Givens told her feelingly. "Unfortunately, we
still haven't found it. Which leads me to suspect that our fundamental
assumptions were in error."
"How?"
Honor asked curiously.
"We
assumed it was located in a Peep star system," Givens said simply, and
Honor blinked.
"We
assumed that for two reasons," Givens continued. "First, because it
has to have a certain level of industrial capacity, which suggests a certain
level of population to support it, which, in turn, suggests that it has to be
an established star system. Second, we assumed that because we were too
intellectually lazy to consider anything else."
"You're
still being too hard on yourself, Pat," Caparelli put in, and Givens
shrugged.
"I'm
not staying up nights kicking myself, but it's ONI's job to think outside the
box, as well as in it."
"I
think I probably agree with Sir Thomas," Honor said. "What they've
accomplished there obviously requires the capacity you were talking
about."
"Yes,
it does. But I've been going over some of our older intelligence summaries
looking for clues. Some of those summaries date clear back to before the Pierre
Coup, and a couple of very interesting ones came out of debriefs of some of the
people you brought back from Cerberus, as well. On the basis of that, I'm
beginning to suspect they didn't move into any star system's existing
infrastructure, at all. I think they built it from the ground up in one where
no one already lived."
"What?"
"I
also think I'd like to sit down and discuss it with Admiral Parnell,"
Givens told her with a crooked smile. "Unless I miss my guess, he's
the one who actually started the project even before President Harris was
assassinated. Some of the people you brought back from Cerberus have mentioned
large labor drafts from the political prisoners there. There was always some of
that going on, of course, but assuming their memory of the timing is accurate,
we can't account for where quite a few of them might have gone. That's not
conclusive; the People's Republic was a big place, and they always had 'black
projects' of one sort or another going on somewhere. We couldn't possibly have
identified or tracked all of them. But I'm beginning to think 'Bolthole' is
actually a complete secret colony of theirs somewhere. One the Legislaturalists
started. I wouldn't be a bit surprised to find out that Pierre and the
Committee took it and ran with it—probably on a scale Harris had never
initially contemplated. But if I'm right, the reason we haven't found it
despite all of our scouting efforts is because we don't have any idea where to
look for it in the first place. It may even be outside the Republic's official
borders!"
"That's
not a very reassuring thought," Honor remarked after a moment.
"Even
if it's true, it doesn't actually make things that much worse, Your
Grace," Caparelli said. "As you said, Bolthole as a physical
production facility is becoming progressively less important to them. Mostly,
it's just frustrating to think that the Peeps were thinking far enough ahead to
do something like this that long ago."
"And,"
Givens added sourly, "from a professional viewpoint, it's a lot more than
'frustrating' to think about an intelligence failure on this scale. We ought to
at least have known they were doing it, even if we didn't have a clue
where!"
"Stop
beating yourself up over it," Caparelli said, his tone just a bit sharper,
and Givens nodded.
"Whether
or not Pat's new theory about Bolthole is accurate, Your Grace," the First
Space Lord continued, turning back to Honor, "your point about the Peeps'
tough-mindedness in general, and Theisman's in particular, is well taken. In
fact, we believe it's time to give Admiral Theisman another whack as quickly as
possible. We need to drive home the fact of his tactical inferiority and, hopefully,
confirm the Peeps' belief that we've deployed the new systems broadly across
the fleet."
Honor
regarded him thoughtfully. Emily's "no business talk when Honor's
home" decree—and Hamish efforts to avoid intruding into Caparelli's
authority in the operational sphere—had foreclosed the sort of discussion she
and Hamish might otherwise have had. But from the little he'd said, and the
wisps of anxiety she'd tasted from him, she had a shrewd notion of where
Caparelli was headed.
"Lovat,"
the First Space Lord continued, "was an important target, but secondary.
It hurt them, no question of that, and it was a major escalation from the sorts
of targets we'd been hitting. But as far as their economy and central war
effort is concerned, it was still a peripheral target, in a lot of ways. The
Strategy Board thinks it's time we went for a first-rank target, instead, and
we think we've found one which may not be Bolthole but still ought to get their
attention. Jouett."
He paused
again, and despite her earlier suspicions, Honor's nostrils flared. The planet
of Shadrach, in the Jouett System, was one of Haven's oldest daughter colonies.
The system had been colonized from Haven less than fifty T-years after the
colony ship Jason reached an uninhabited planet called Manticore, and
the system's population was well up into the billions. It was also the site of
the oldest of the Republican Navy's satellite shipyards, and its defenses were
almost as heavy as those of the Haven System itself.
"Sir
Thomas," she said, very carefully, into the waiting silence, "that's
. . . a very audacious proposal. And I imagine it would certainly come under
the category of 'whacking' them smartly. But Jouett's going to be a very, very
tough target. We succeeded at Lovat in large part because they didn't have a
clue what was coming. That won't be the case the next time we go in. Two things
I think we're all agreed the new management in Nouveau Paris is demonstrating
are resiliency and flexibility. My staff and I haven't looked at Jouett
closely, since it never occurred to us to include it in our targeting list,
given the parameters laid down for Cutworm and Sanskrit. Nonetheless, I'd be
very surprised if its defenses haven't been upgraded much more comprehensively
even than Solon's and Lovat's."
"We
agree entirely," Caparelli said gravely. "And before you raise the
point, yes, it's possible we're suffering from a degree of operational hubris
here. We're trying to protect ourselves against that by being as skeptical as
we can, and we're also determined to avoid pushing you and Eighth Fleet into a
tactical situation you can't control."
"I'm
certainly in favor of that," Honor said with a wry smile. Then her smile
faded, and she shrugged. "Assuming it's possible, of course."
"Of
course," Caparelli agreed. "First, we have no intention of sending
you in without thoroughly scouting the system ahead of time.
"Second,
we're getting a handle on the production bottlenecks we've been experiencing.
We're going to have a lot more of the Mistletoe-modified drones available,
starting in about three weeks, and production of the Apollo pods and control
platforms is beginning to accelerate, as well. We've got enough now to
completely re-ammunition your command and began establishing a modest stockpile
to support your operations. The system-defense version is still lagging; we
won't be able to begin deploying those pods for another couple of months, at
least. But things are definitely looking up on the offensive front.
"Third,
we intend to support any attack on Jouett by shotgunning them with feints all
over their inner perimeter. We're going to be scouting every system we can, and
after what happened in Lovat, they aren't going to be able to disregard any
scouting operation. Hopefully, that will induce them to spread their defenses
thinner.
"Fourth,
your battle plan will be designed from the beginning from the perspective of
breaking off the attack and withdrawing if the opposition seems tougher than
our threat analyses have projected. In other words, this won't be any sort of
all-costs target, Your Grace. It's an operation we want to succeed; not one we need
to succeed, and your instructions would reflect that."
He paused
again, and Honor considered what he'd said carefully. All of it seemed to make
sense, but she still couldn't shake the fear that they were overreaching
themselves.
"All
of that sounds good, Sir Thomas," she said after moment. "But
whatever we do to prepare for and support the operation, there's still the
question of force levels. I'm as impressed as anyone by what Apollo
accomplished at Lovat, but at the moment, my entire order of battle is less
than a hundred ships, and only fifteen of them can operate the new pods. And
while it's true the effectiveness of each shot in their magazines has just gone
up, it's also true that we've just taken a twenty-five percent hit on our total
magazine capacity. In other words, my fifteen SD(P)s only have as many rounds
onboard as eleven ships with standard pods."
"Understood."
Caparelli nodded vigorously. "In fact, we've taken that into consideration
in our preliminary brainstorming. And before we continue, I should have
mentioned from the outset that all we've done so far is to consider this
from a conceptual standpoint. Any actual operation against Jouett would be
mounted only after the Strategy Board—and your own staff—have had an
opportunity to look at the nuts and bolts very carefully. As I said, this is a
desirable operation, not an essential one. We're not going to commit to it
unless we're confident—unless we're all confident—that it's practical
and that the risks are manageable, or, at least, acceptable."
Honor felt
an undeniable sense of relief. If the operation was practical, it would
obviously be worthwhile. She had no qualms on that point—except, perhaps, for
concern over the continuing level of escalation it represented. Beyond that
single qualification, though, it was only a question of whether or not it was
practical, and what she tasted in Caparelli's and Givens' mind-glows was
vastly reassuring. The First Space Lord meant it. As much as he wanted this
operation, he had no intention of charging ahead in an excess of blind
enthusiasm.
"And
speaking of nuts and bolts, and although we haven't put together hard numbers
yet," Caparelli continued, "we already know we'll be able to
reinforce Eighth Fleet more strongly than we'd anticipated."
Honor felt
her right eyebrow rise, and Caparelli chuckled.
"Your
old friend Herzog von Rabenstrange contacted me a couple of weeks ago, just
after you'd sortied for Sanskrit. Apparently the Emperor decided a month or two
before that to express his displeasure at how long their refit programs seem to
be dragging out. Apparently, he expressed it rather vigorously, and his navy
decided they ought to take him seriously and reallocated their efforts.
Basically, they pulled their yard dogs off of about a third of the total number
of ships they'd been working on—the ones farthest from completion at this
point—and concentrated the additional effort on the units which were already
most advanced."
The First
Space Lord shrugged.
"That
decision has its downsides, of course. Among other things, it means the ships
they were pulled off of are going to be even later in completing, and their
concentration only covered about a quarter of their total SD(P) strength.
Still, it means that somewhere between twenty-five and forty additional
pod-layers, all refitted to handle the Keyhole II platforms and the flat-pack
pods, are going to be coming forward over the next month and a half or so. Our
intention at the moment is to assign all of them to Eighth Fleet. Which will
just happen to finally make your command the biggest and most powerful we have.
That's what we're planning to commit to Sanskrit II."
Honor sat
back in her chair. The tardiness of the Andermani wallers' refits had led her
to forget almost completely about them. But if they really were going to come
forward in such numbers, double or triple the number of Apollo-capable ships
under her command, then suddenly Jouett became a much more attractive target.
"How
firm are the Andermani numbers?" she asked after a moment.
"At
present, they look very good. Obviously, there's room for slippage—we've
already seen that. Again, however, if the proposed reinforcements aren't
forthcoming, then the operation doesn't go in. It's predicated on providing you
with the strength you need."
"We'd
have to pretty much stand down until they do arrive," she said
thoughtfully. "I don't really like that. We'll be taking the pressure off
of them. But if we're going to hit a target as hard as Jouett, I can't afford
any avoidable losses in the interim. It won't do us much good to reinforce if
I've lost offsetting numbers. And we'll need to train hard with the Andies if
we're going to integrate them properly."
"The
Strategy Board came to the same conclusion," Caparelli replied. "We
don't believe you could plan on launching the operation for at least another
seven to eight weeks. In the meantime, we'd try to keep the pressure on them by
continuing your previous strategy of scouting their systems. As I said, that's
been part of our preliminary strategy concept from the beginning."
"In
that case, I think it's doable," she said. "I'd be less than honest
if I said I wasn't a little nervous at the prospect of attacking a target that
heavily defended. But given a monopoly on Apollo and the force levels you're
suggesting, I think we can do it."
"Good!"
Caparelli beamed.
In fact,
everyone around the conference table smiled . . . except for Hamish
Alexander-Harrington. Honor tasted his concern—his fear for her—and wanted to
reach out and take his hand. Which would scarcely have comported with proper
naval professionalism.
"Again,"
Caparelli stressed, "we're not going to commit to Sanskrit II until we've
got a detailed plan, based on hard numbers and the most recent intelligence and
scouting reports on Jouett. With that proviso, however, Your Grace, you're
officially directed to begin preliminary planning immediately for the
operation. Your tentative execution date will be sixty days from today."
Honor swam
strongly down the exact center of the swimming lane, listening to the music
playing over the underwater sound system. The pool, below the outer edge of the
Bay House terrace, was what was still called "Olympic sized," and she
was on the thirtieth of her forty laps. Much as she enjoyed swimming, lap work
could be excruciatingly boring, and she'd insisted on a first-class sound
system when she had the pool put in. She'd gotten what she paid for, and now
she chuckled inside as the music segued abruptly from classical Grayson to
Manticoran shatter-rock. That transition was guaranteed to send anyone's
boredom packing.
Her armsmen
were accustomed to her mania for swimming, although most of them still thought
it was a bit bizarre. All of them had grimly passed the various life-saving
courses, just in case, but most of them were perfectly happy that their duties
required them to stand alertly about the pool rather than splashing around in
all that wet stuff themselves. Nimitz, of course, had always considered her
taste for immersing herself in water peculiar, and he was stretched out
comfortably, sunning on a poolside table while she indulged her water fetish.
She reached
the end of the lap, tucked lithely through a flip-turn, pushed off strongly
from the end of the pool, and headed back the way she'd come on lap thirty-one.
She was beginning to feel the strain, especially in her legs. Not surprisingly,
she supposed, given how much of her time she'd been spending aboard ship
lately. But she'd be back aboard ship the day after tomorrow, and she
was determined to enjoy her pool to the full before she had to leave it behind
once more.
She'd
gotten to within ten meters of the end of the lap when James MacGuiness' voice
suddenly interrupted the music.
"I'm
sorry to disturb you, Your Grace," he said over the sound system,
"but you have a com call. It's from Ms. Montaigne."
Honor inhaled
when she shouldn't have, surprised by the interruption. She coughed the water
back out before she rotated back up to breathe again and swam the last few
strokes to the end of the pool. She caught the lip, lifted, twisted, and landed
sitting on the pool surround.
"Spencer!"
"Yes,
My Lady?" Captain Hawke turned quickly towards her and didn't even flinch.
He'd had time to get used to Manticoran swimsuits, and compared to the ones Allison
Harrington delighted in wearing, Honor's were positively demure.
"Mac
says I've got a com call."
"Of
course, My Lady." Hawke reached into the bag sitting on the poolside table
beside Nimitz and extracted Honor's personal communicator. He handed it to her,
and she smiled in thanks and configured it for video, but without bringing up
the holo display, then keyed the acceptance button. An instant later,
MacGuiness' face appeared on the small flatscreen.
"I'm
here, Mac," she said, reaching up with her free hand and stripping off the
swimming cap she'd been wearing over her braided hair. "Go ahead and put
Ms. Montaigne through."
"Of
course, Your Grace."
Honor
swirled her feet slowly in the pool to keep muscles from stiffening and gazed
out across the sparkling blue vitality of Jason Bay at the towers of Landing.
Her house's terrace ran to the very edge of the upper tier of the cliffs above
the bay; if she looked up, she could see the outer balustrade clinging to its
lip. The upper cliff fell away from the terrace in a sheer precipice for ten or
fifteen meters to a flattened saddle, almost like a giant stair step halfway
between the beach below and the house above. That was where she'd chosen to put
the pool, with a vanishing "infinite edge" on the outer side. From
where she sat, the illusion that the pool's water was spilling over in a
cascade to the ocean below was almost perfect. Of all the many features of her
Manticoran mansion, she often thought the pool was her favorite.
The com
beeped softly, recalling her from her thoughts, as the golden-haired, blue-eyed
Honorable Member of Parliament for High Threadmore appeared upon it.
"Good
morning, Your Grace," Catherine Montaigne said.
"And
good morning to you, Cathy," Honor replied. "To what do I owe the
honor?"
"I
hope I didn't screen at an inconvenient moment," Montaigne said as Honor's
water-beaded face registered.
"Actually,
you just rescued me from the last nine laps," Honor reassured her with a
smile.
"That's
right. You actually swim for exercise." Montaigne shuddered dramatically.
"You
don't like swimming?"
"I
don't like exercise," Montaigne said cheerfully. "I burn off
sufficient energy just charging around in six or seven directions at once. I'm
sure you've heard that about me."
"I
believe your ability to . . . multitask enthusiastically has come up a time or
two," Honor acknowledged, her smile becoming a grin.
"I
thought it probably had." Montaigne looked pleased, and Honor chuckled.
She knew how much pleasure Catherine Montaigne took from her public persona's
reputation for shatter-brained confusion.
"Actually,
though," the ex-Countess of the Tor said, her own smile fading, "I
had a serious reason for screening you this morning. I have a message for you
from Anton."
"Do
you?" Honor arched her eyebrows, and Montaigne nodded.
"He
asked me to tell you that he and his associate believe they may be on the trail
of evidence which will confirm the hypothesis they discussed with you last
month."
"Really?"
Honor sat up a bit straighter. "You say he's 'on the trail' of the
evidence. I take it that that means he doesn't actually have it in hand?"
"I'm
afraid not. It's going to take them some time to confirm what they suspect, but
they feel confident at this time that they will be able to."
"Do we
have any idea how long we're talking about?"
"I'm
afraid not. Not exactly, at any rate. There's quite a bit of travel
involved."
"I
see." Honor's eyes narrowed intently. "May I ask where they're
traveling to?"
"Since
I can't be certain our connection is completely secure, I'd prefer not to
answer that one, Your Grace," Montaigne said. "However, I will say
that they'll have to travel incognito this time."
"I
see," Honor repeated, and she did. The planet of Mesa, which she was
almost certain had to be Zilwicki's and Cachat's destination, would not be a
very healthy place for either of them. Manpower had a long and nasty memory at
the best of times, and the slavers weren't likely to forget what the team of
Zilwicki & Cachat had produced for them on Old Earth.
She tried
not to feel disappointed although, in some ways, it was even worse to know
Zilwicki and Cachat believed they would be able to confirm their suspicions.
Whatever they might be able to do in the future, she still didn't have any
proof of it now, and without that proof, there was no way to derail the events
proceeding inexorably towards Sanskrit II.
And after
we trash Jouett, the Havenites are going to be a lot less inclined to be
reasonable, whatever Zilwicki turns up, she thought grimly.
"If
you should happen to be sending any messages to Captain Zilwicki," she
said aloud, "please tell him I very much hope his search prospers. I spoke
to the individuals I assured him I'd contact. Unfortunately, they feel that
without conclusive—or at least very persuasive—evidence actually in their
hands, there isn't a great deal they can do about the problem."
"I was
afraid of that," Montaigne said, blue eyes sad. "We'll just have to
do our best to turn up the evidence they need. I hope we can find it in time."
"So do
I," Honor said soberly. "I'm afraid, though, that events are taking
on a momentum all their own. One we may not be able to deflect, regardless of
what they discover, if their discovery's delayed too long."
"We'd
already deduced that." Montaigne inhaled deeply. "Well, at least we
still have one friend at court. We'll try hard not to disappoint you."
* * *
"Welcome
back, Your Grace," Rafe Cardones said as the twitter of bosun's pipes died
in Imperator's boat bay gallery.
"I'd
like to say I'm glad to be back," Honor replied with a small smile.
"Unfortunately, that would be a lie. Not that I'm not glad to see you,
of course. It's just that I had to leave a very charming young gentleman and
lady behind."
"But
you brought lots of pictures, I hope," he replied, and she chuckled.
"Only
a couple of dozen megs worth. And I've changed out my personal wallpaper, of
course."
"Oh,
of course!" Cardones laughed, and she clapped him on the upper arm and
looked at Mercedes Brigham.
"We've
got a lot to discuss, Mercedes," she said, and Brigham nodded.
"I'm
sure we do, Your Grace. Just as soon as you're done showing those pictures to
all of us. We do have a certain sense of proper priorities around here, you
know."
"So I
see," Honor said, and Nimitz bleeked an echoing laugh from her shoulder.
"All right. The two of you have twisted my arm nearly to the point of
dislocation. Solely because of your harshly insistent demands, I'll sacrifice
my own desire to plunge immediately back into the official business of this
command and force myself to sit through all those awful pictures all
over again."
* * *
"That's
an . . . impressive itinerary, Your Grace," Dame Alice Truman said.
Honor's
staff and senior flag officers sat around the outsized table in her dining
cabin. The familiar cups of coffee, tea, and cocoa had made their appearance on
schedule, following the dessert dishes, and Judah Yanakov extracted a worn
briar pipe from his tunic pocket. He held it up and raised an eyebrow at his
hostess.
"That's
a truly disgusting habit, Judah," she told him with a smile of affection,
and he nodded.
"I
know it is, My Lady. And we'd almost stamped it out on Grayson, until you
Manties came along with all your modern medicine. Now I can indulge myself and
know your decadent, worldly medical science will preserve me from the
consequences of my own excesses."
"Does
Reverend Sullivan know about this hedonistic streak of yours?" she asked
severely.
"Alas,"
he replied sadly. "I'm afraid my family's always been known for its
lapses. My first Grayson ancestor, for example. There he was, the captain of
the colony ship, supposed to be in charge of completely decommissioning and
scrapping her as an example of the evil technology we'd fled Old Earth to
escape. And what did he do? Kept her intact for almost sixty years. Transferred
her computers and her auxiliary power plant down to Grayson, too. With that
sort of a beginning, surely you know the Reverend is going to expect the worst
out of me."
"Stop
boasting," Brigham told him with a smile of her own. "I read that
biography of your great-great-great-whatever' your grand-aunt wrote. We all
know the Yanakov family was instrumental in preserving human life on Grayson.
Did I get that quotation right?"
"Almost,"
he corrected solemnly. "The actual passage you're thinking of says that
our family was 'instrumental, by the Tester's grace, in preserving human life
on Grayson against overwhelming odds.'" He smiled admiringly.
"Aunt Letitia always had a fine, well-rounded way with a phrase, didn't
she?"
"Oh,
forgive me! How could I have forgotten that bit?"
"Stop
it, you two!" Honor said with a laugh. "And, yes, Judah. You can
light the reeking thing as soon as Mac readjusts the air circulation to protect
the rest of us."
"I'm
reconfiguring now, Your Grace," MacGuiness' voice said from the open
pantry hatch.
"Thank
God," Alistair McKeon murmured, careful to be sure the comment was loud
enough for Yanakov to hear.
"Infidel."
Yanakov raised his nose with a sniff, and McKeon threw a balled up linen napkin
at him across the table.
"Children.
Children!" Honor scolded. "I should never have left the nanny back on
Manticore!"
The
laughter was general this time, and Honor was glad to hear it. She was
especially glad since Yanakov's seniority in the Grayson Navy had made him her
official second in command. Fortunately, he, Truman, and McKeon had known one
another for years and worked smoothly together in the past. No one had gotten
his or her nose out of joint following Yanakov's arrival.
Nor had
Honor felt any qualms. Yanakov had matured considerably from the days when he'd
been one of her brilliant but occasionally overenthusiastic divisional
commanders in the Grayson Space Navy's second battle squadron. He'd lost none
of the audacity, the ability to think quickly and see possibilities others
might miss, but the enthusiasm had been tempered by experience and honed to an
even keener, more dangerous edge. He still had a gambler's instincts, but now
they were those of a coldly capable, calculating, and highly professional gambler.
"All
right," she said as Yanakov got his pipe properly stoked, "I think we
can all agree that what the Strategy Board has in mind is, as Alice says, an
'impressive itinerary.' It's also going to be the most powerful single attack
the Alliance or any of its members has ever launched. I had a personal message
from Herzog von Rabenstrange just before I returned to the fleet. His current estimate
is that we should have at least thirty-five Andermani Apollo-capable SD(P)s and
sixteen of their BC(P)s joining us here. The first ten or twelve wallers will
actually be here within the next two weeks; the others will arrive as they
complete their working up exercises with the new systems.
"Assuming
he meets his minimum estimate of thirty-five, we'll have a total of fifty-three
pod-superdreadnoughts, fifty of them Apollo-capable. That's fifteen percent of
the Alliance's total SD(P)s. And until the rest of the Andermani
superdreadnoughts complete their refits, it's over twenty-seven percent of the
total actually available. It's also more pod-layers, not even counting the
battlecruisers, than Earl White Haven had for Buttercup, and none of his ships
had Apollo."
She paused
to let that sink in, looking around the table at her staffers and flag
officers, radiating her own confidence even as she tasted theirs. And they were
confident, despite a certain completely understandable anxiety. Confident
of their weapons, confident of their doctrine, and confident of their
leadership.
She savored
that confidence, even as she carefully concealed her own reservations. Not
about the practicality of Sanskrit II. Not about the quality of the fleet which
was her weapon, or the admirals who would wield it. But about why they
were launching this operation in the first place, and what its consequences
might be.
There's
nothing they could do about it anyway, she reminded herself once again. So there's no point
worrying them with it. The last thing they need right now is to be
looking over their shoulders, wondering whether or not we ought to be doing
this.
"Judah,"
she continued, breaking the small silence she had imposed, "you've
actually had the most experience using Apollo ship-to-ship. I've spent quite a
while reviewing your after-action report, and also your ops officer's report,
and it seems to me that we overestimated the number of birds necessary to get
through to a single target. Would you concur?"
"Yes,
and no, My Lady. Yes, we overestimated the numbers we needed at Lovat, but that
was a freebie. They didn't have any idea what was coming, and they never had
time to adjust. That won't be the case next time."
"No,
it won't," McKeon said. "On the other hand, how much good will it to
do them to know what's coming? How the hell do you establish a viable defensive
doctrine against something like this?"
"Admiral
Hemphill and the ATC simulators are developing one right now, Alistair,"
Samuel Miklós pointed out.
"They're
trying to develop one," McKeon corrected. "I'm willing to bet
they aren't having a lot of luck so far, and unlike the Peeps, they know
exactly what Apollo can do. I'm not saying no one will ever come up with a
doctrine which won't at least knock back Apollo's effectiveness. I just don't
see any way the Peeps can have done it yet. I certainly can't think of
anything they could do about it, and I've spent the odd couple of dozen hours
thinking about it."
"I
think you've got a point, Alistair," Honor said. "But so does Judah.
I'm inclined to think we could probably pull back our original estimates by
thirty or forty percent. The Lovat effectiveness numbers would support a pull
back of at least fifty percent, but I think we have to factor in Judah's
concerns."
"All
right." McKeon nodded cheerfully. "I'd rather err on the side of
pessimism than be overly optimistic and get my . . . tail caught in a
wringer."
"I've
got a few concerns of my own," Truman said. "They don't have anything
to do with Apollo, but the observed performance of the Peep LACs at Lovat has
me a little concerned. I wish we'd had more time to examine the wreckage, maybe
pick up a couple of intact examples for BuWeaps and ONI to play around
with."
"What
specifically worries you?" Honor asked.
"Well,
we really didn't turn it up until we started our intensive post-battle analysis
back here at Trevor's Star," Truman admitted. "But when we took a
good hard look, it became fairly obvious that they've got at least one, and
probably two, new LAC classes. And unless I miss my guess, they're using
fission power plants."
"I
don't like the sound of that," Vice Admiral Morris Baez, commander of
Battle Squadron 23 said.
"From
the acceleration numbers, they don't have the new beta nodes yet," Truman
said. "But their energy budget is obviously higher than it used to be,
and, defensively, I suspect they've added at least bow walls. One of the two
possible new classes we've tentatively identified seems to be the closest they
could come to a clone of the Shrike. It packs a laser, instead of a
graser, but it's an awful lot more powerful than any energy weapons we've ever
seen out of a Peep LAC before. We're not absolutely certain about the other
possible new design. We think they've done their best to duplicate the
Ferret, as well. If they have, they still can't get as much out of the
design as we can, though, because of the inferiority of their missiles."
"The
Katanas seem to have handled them fairly easily, though," Matsuzawa
Hirotaka said.
"At
Lovat, yes, Hiro." Truman nodded. "On the other hand, they were
present in strictly limited numbers. The vast majority of what they threw at us
in Lovat were old-style Cimeterres. That suggests to me that these new
birds are still available in only limited numbers. But it doesn't take very
long to build a LAC, and we're talking about not launching Sanskrit II for
another two months. They could have a lot more of them available, by then. And
since we hit Lovat, they're going to be reinforcing their central systems with
everything they can, as quickly as they can."
"How
seriously would you assess their threat to our wall of battle, Alice?"
Honor asked.
"That's
impossible to say without a better fix on their capabilities and the numbers we
may be looking at. I'm not trying to waffle, Honor. We simply genuinely don't
know. I've got some highly problematical performance parameters on them, but
under the circumstances, I think we have to consider them minimal. They were
operating with the older designs, and that would have restricted them to the
Cimeterres' performance envelope. Scotty's been kicking at our tentative
numbers around with the rest of my COLACs, and what I'd really like to do is to
have him set up some simulations built around our best estimates and game out
what happens. I think the combination of the Katanas and our own wall's
defensive fire ought to be able to manage the threat, but I'll feel better if
we're able to confirm that, at least in the sims."
"I
see." Honor regarded Truman thoughtfully, then nodded. "It makes
sense to me. And let's be sure to draw BuWeaps' attention to the data you've
managed to record on them."
"I'll
see to it, Your Grace," Brigham said, punching a note to herself into her
memo pad.
"Good.
In that case, let's look at possible approach courses. Obviously, were going to
want to scout the system thoroughly, so it seems to me that—"
Her
officers leaned forward, listening intently, as she began to sketch out her own
preliminary thoughts on the operation.
Fleet
Admiral Sebastian D'Orville walked slowly onto his flag bridge, hands clasped
behind him, expression suitably grave, and contemplated the perversity of the
universe.
He'd spent
his entire career in the service of the Crown, honing his professional skills,
amassing seniority, proving his abilities. And what had all those decades of
perseverance and professional excellence bought him? The most prestigious
command in the Royal Manticoran Navy, of course.
Which meant
he'd spent the dreary months since the Peeps' sneak attack doing absolutely
nothing.
That's not
true, Sebastian, and you know it, he
scolded himself as he nodded pleasantly to the flag bridge personnel and
crossed to the visual display. You've turned Home Fleet back into a
proper weapon, after that asshole Janacek let training levels go straight into
the crapper. And commanding the fleet charged with protecting the home star
system hasn't exactly been the least stressful duty slot you've ever held down.
Which
hasn't kept it from being boring as hell, of course.
He chuckled
inside at the thought, but that didn't make it untrue, and he suppressed an
unworthy stab of envy as he thought of Honor Alexander-Harrington.
She always
has had a way of putting your nose out of joint, hasn't she? he asked himself wryly. Starting with the way she
blew your flagship out of space in that Fleet maneuver back when she was—what?
Just a commander, wasn't it? He shook his head in memory. On the other
hand, I don't suppose it's really fair to blame her for being so good. And she
is awfully junior to you. Junior enough she gets the fun command—the one
Admiralty House figures it can take chances with—while you get to be the
Queen's one and only Admiral of the Fleet and stay stuck at home with the one
command that can't be risked.
He chuckled
mentally again, and then his thoughts saddened as he remembered James Webster.
The two of them had been friends since Saganami Island, and it had been
Webster's unenviable lot to command Home Fleet last time around. D'Orville
remembered how he'd teased Webster at the time, and he snorted. What went
round, came around, he supposed, and he'd clearly laid up enough bad karma to
deserve what had happened to him.
Of course,
there were compensations.
He turned
from the visual display to regard the huge master plot, and allowed himself a
feeling of satisfaction as he studied the icons of the new fortresses. A year
ago, the Manticoran Wormhole Junction's permanent fortifications had been
virtually nonexistent. In fact, they'd been so sparse he'd been forced to hang
Home Fleet all the way out at the Junction to cover the critical central nexus
of the Star Kingdom's economy against attack.
He hadn't
liked that, but the Janacek Admiralty's failure to update the fortresses had
left him no choice. And at least the Manticore System's astrography had let him
get away with it for a while.
Classic
system-defense doctrine, developed over centuries of experience, taught that a
covering fleet should be deployed in an interior position. Habitable planets
inevitably lay inside any star's hyper limit, and habitable planets were
generally what made star systems valuable. That being the case, the smart move
was to position your own combat power where it could reach those habitable
planets before any attacker coming in from outside the limit could do the same
thing.
Unfortunately,
one could argue that the Wormhole Junction was what truly made the
Manticore System valuable. D'Orville didn't happen to like that argument, but
he couldn't deny that it had a certain applicability. Without the Junction, the
Star Kingdom would never have had the economic and industrial muscle to take on
something the Republic of Haven's size. And it was certainly the Junction which
made the Manticore System so attractive to potential aggressors like Haven in
the first place.
And therein
lay the problem. Or, at least, one of the problems.
The
Junction was almost seven light-hours from Manticore-A. Which meant any fleet
stationed to cover the Junction was light-hours away from the planets on which
the vast majority of Queen Elizabeth III's subjects happened to live. As the
man charged with protecting those subjects, that was . . . inconvenient for one
Sebastian D'Orville.
The
Junction's position also put it over eleven light-hours from Manticore-B, which
created Home Fleet's commander's second problem. But, fortunately, Manticore-B
also lay far outside the resonance zone—volume of space between the Junction
and Manticore-A in which it was virtually impossible to translate between
normal-space and hyper-space. Any wormhole terminus associated with a
star formed a conical volume in hyper, with the wormhole at its apex and a base
centered on the star and twice as wide as its hyper limit, in which astrogation
was extraordinarily difficult and dangerous. The bigger the terminus, the
stronger the resonance effect . . . and the Manticoran Wormhole Junction was
the largest ever discovered. The resonance wave it produced was more of
a tsunami, and it didn't just make astrogation "difficult." It made
it the next best thing to flatly impossible, and any transition within the
resonance (assuming someone could have plotted one in the first place) would
have been no more than a complicated way to commit suicide. But since the
Manticore Binary System's secondary component lay outside the resonance (and
would for the next few hundred years or so), Home Fleet had actually been
closer from its position covering the Junction—in terms of travel time—to
Manticore-B than to Manticore-A.
As for
Manticore-A, the planets of Manticore and Sphinx—Home Fleet's major
inner-system defensive obligations—had been well inside the same resonance zone
when he took up command of Home Fleet, with Manticore, with its smaller orbital
radius, steadily "overtaking" Sphinx as it moving towards opposition.
Each planet spent half its year inside the zone, and Sphinx's year was more
than five T-years long. That meant it took thirty-one T-months to cross through
the RZ, and it had been almost in the middle of the zone when he took up his
command.
Actually,
Sphinx's position was the third, and in many ways worst, problem confronting
any Home Fleet CO, because the planet's orbital radius was only 15.3 million
kilometers—less than nine-tenths of a light-minute—shorter than the GO
primary's twenty-two-light-minute hyper limit. In an era of MDMs, that meant an
attacker could translate out of hyper with the planet, and its entire orbital
infrastructure, already fifty million kilometers inside his missile
range. Even a conventionally armed fleet, with old-style compensators, and a
relative velocity on translation of zero, could have achieved a zero/zero
intercept with the planet in under an hour. A fleet of superdreadnoughts with
modern Alliance compensators could have done it in barely fifty minutes.
Which, all
things considered, didn't leave the system defenses' commander a lot of time in
which to react.
But with
Sphinx so deep inside the zone, he'd actually had much more defensive depth.
He'd still been able, at least in theory, to cover both habitable planets from
his position at the Junction, since he could have micro-jumped away from the
Junction (and the primary) and then jumped back in close enough to come in
behind any fleet moving in on either planet. He would have found it difficult
to actually overtake the attackers, perhaps, but the range of his MDMs would
have compensated for that. And because it would have taken the attacker longer
to reach engagement range of his target, Home Fleet had had time to make those
jumps. In theory, at least.
But theory,
as Sebastian D'Orville had learned over the years, had a nasty habit of biting
one on the backside at the most inopportune moment. That was why he'd never
really been happy with his enforced deployment. And now that Sphinx would clear
the RZ in less than four T-months, he was even less comfortable with hanging
his fleet on the Junction. The planet had lost too much of the additional
"depth" the zone had created for him, and even in a best-case
scenario, his need to make two separate hyper translations from the Junction
would have placed him well astern of his hypothetical attacker, since he
couldn't make even the first of them until after the aggressor force arrived
and started accelerating towards its targets.
In effect,
Home Fleet had been isolated from the rest of the inner-system's defenses,
because any attacking fleet would be between D'Orville's ships and the fixed
defenses which were supposed to support it. And that attacking fleet would have
been able to begin building an acceleration advantage towards its objectives
while Home Fleet was still getting itself organized.
Under those
circumstances, an attacker without the strength to defeat both Home Fleet and
the inner defenses together might well still have the strength to turn on Home
Fleet—which would have no option but to pursue him—and crush it in a separate,
isolated engagement.
Which was
why D'Orville was so relieved the new forts were finally operational. Much
smaller than the old prewar fortifications which had been decommissioned to provide
the manpower to crew new construction, they were actually more powerfully
armed, thanks to the same increased automation and weapons developments which
had gone into the Navy's new warships. And each of those forts was surrounded
by literally hundreds of missile pods, with the fire control to handle
stupendous salvos. It would take an attack in overwhelming force to break those
defenses, which had freed D'Orville to move Home Fleet closer to a more
traditional covering position, locating his command in Sphinx orbit.
His new
station provided Sphinx with badly needed, close-in protection. And with the
planet of Manticore still trailing its orbital position, and so still deeper
into the zone and (as always) further inside the hyper-limit, he was
actually better placed to cover Manticore than he would have been anywhere
else. Any least-time course to Manticore would require the attacker to get past
his position at Sphinx, first, and he could easily intercept the opposing fleet
short of its objective.
The solution
wasn't perfect, of course. For one thing, the move left Manticore-B and its
inhabited planet of Gryphon more exposed then it had been when Home Fleet was
stationed at the Junction, since D'Orville would now have to get clear of the
zone before he could hyper out to the system's secondary component. But the
extra danger wasn't very great, now that Sphinx was within eight light-minutes
of the zone's boundary. And more vulnerable or not, Gryphon had the smallest
population and industrial base of any of the Star Kingdom's original inhabited
worlds. If something had to be exposed, cold logic said Gryphon was a better
choice than the other two planets, and the Admiralty had compensated as best it
could by assigning the buildup of Manticore-B's fixed defenses a higher
priority than Manticore-A's. In fact, Manticore-B's forts and space station
were already refitting with Keyhole II and would begin deploying the first of
the system-defense Apollo pods within the nest three weeks, on the theory that
it would need them worse since it couldn't call as readily on Home Fleet's
protection.
And once
Manticore-B's defenses were fully up to speed, Sphinx would receive the next
highest priority, despite the fact that the planet of Manticore had the largest
population and the greatest economic and industrial value of any of the binary
system's worls. Like Manticore-B, Sphinx was simply more exposed than
Manticore.
D'Orville
agreed with both those decisions, although that didn't mean he was happy about
the policy they implied. It was simply, in his opinion, the best of several
options, none of which could have been completely acceptable. And at least the
Strategy Board's decision that Gryphon would have to look after itself instead
of relying upon immediate intervention by Home Fleet had enormously simplified
D'Orville's responsibilities and problems.
But today,
Sebastian D'Orville and half of Home Fleet were back out at the Junction,
waiting. Waiting not for an enemy attack, but to welcome back two of the
Manticoran Navy's own.
He had to
admit that he felt a twinge or two of anxiety over taking his command so far
from its new inner-system station, but his qualms were tiny things. And given
the way the Solarian League was pulling in its horns over events in the Talbott
Cluster, the entire Star Kingdom owed a stupendous debt of gratitude to the two
ships who were coming home today. Queen Elizabeth and her government had chosen
to acknowledge that debt, and Sebastian D'Orville was out here to do just that.
He glanced
at the date/time display, and nodded in satisfaction. Another thirty-two
minutes to go.
* * *
Honor
Alexander-Harrington glanced at the date/time display, and nodded.
If she'd
had the choice, she would have loved to have been back in the Manticore System
in about half an hour. Unfortunately, she didn't really have that choice. Vizeadmiral
Lyou-yung Hasselberg, Graf von Kreuzberg, and the leading elements of his
Task Force 16, IAN, had arrived at Trevor's Star less than a week earlier. Two
of his three battle squadrons were at full strength, and the Imperial Andermani
Navy, like the Republic of Haven's, still used eight-ship squadron
organizations. His third battle squadron was still short one of its four
divisions, but what had already arrived had added twenty-two SD(P)s—every one
of them Keyhole II-capable—to Eighth Fleet's order of battle.
Unfortunately,
none of those ships had ever functioned as part of Eighth Fleet before, and
eleven of them had finished their post-refit working up exercises less than two
weeks before they deployed forward to Trevor's Star. And, just to add a little
more interest to the situation, Vizeadmiral Bin-hwei Morser, Graffin
von Grau, Hasselberg's second-in-command, was not one of the Royal Manticoran
Navy's greater admirers. In fact, she was a holdover from the same
anti-Manticoran faction within the IAN which had produced Graf von Sternhafen,
who'd done so much to help make Honor's last duty assignment . . . interesting.
The rest of
Hasselberg's senior flag officers seemed much more comfortable with the notion
of their Emperor's decision to ally himself with the Star Kingdom, and she suspected
that Chien-lu Anderman had had more than a little to do with their selection
for their present assignments. Morser obviously had patrons of her own,
however, since she'd received command of the very first squadron of refitted
Andermani SD(P)s. And, Honor admitted just a bit grudgingly, she also appeared
to be very good at her job. It was just unfortunate that she found it difficult
to conceal the fact that she would have preferred to be shooting at the rest of
Honor's fleet, rather than accepting her orders.
Still, the graffin's
attitude only lent added point to the need to get TF 16 fully integrated into
Eighth Fleet as quickly as possible. And the best way to do that was to drill
the Andermani ships in conjunction with the rest of her units.
At least Vizeadmiral
Morser's professionalism was responding to the challenge. She couldn't have
enjoyed admitting that the Andermani simply weren't quite up to Manticoran or
Grayson standards of proficiency, but neither could she deny it. Of course, the
IAN hadn't spent most of the last twenty T-years fighting for its survival
against the People's Republic of Haven, either. A navy either got very, very
good under those circumstances, or else the star nation it was charged to
defend got very, very dead and both Grayson and the Star Kingdom were still
here. The complacency the Janacek Admiralty had allowed to blunt the RMN's
finely honed edge during the cease-fire had been a major factor in what
happened during the Republic's Operation Thunderbolt, but most of it had been
scoured away by the grim sandblaster of combat. The less than brilliant but
politically acceptable flag officers and captains Janacek had appointed to
sensitive positions had been shuffled aside or eliminated in the opening
battles, and the officers who remained had been given a rather brutally pointed
refresher course.
The bottom
line, though, was that the Manticoran and Grayson navies were the explored
galaxy's most experienced, battle-hardened fleets. Their margin of superiority
over the revitalized navy of Thomas Theisman was far narrower than it once had
been, but it remained the Alliance's most significant advantage. And the
Andermani, although they were very, very good by any less Darwinian standard,
simply weren't up to their allies' weight.
Yet, at
least.
Hasselberg
appeared to have understood that even before his arrival, which was another bit
of evidence that Herzog von Rabenstrange had handpicked him for his assignment.
Hasselberg clearly intended to bring his command up to Manticoran standards as
quickly as possible, and if any of his subordinates—including Vizeadmiral Morser—had
entertained any reservations about that, they were smart enough to keep those
reservations to themselves. And, in all fairness, they'd buckled down hard.
They still
had a way to go, though, which was the real reason Honor had turned down
Admiral D'Orville's invitation to join him aboard HMS Invictus for
today's ceremony. She'd scheduled yet another in her series of increasingly
rigorous training problems for Eighth Fleet, and she couldn't justify giving
herself the day off while she made everyone else work.
She
chuckled quietly at the thought, and Mercedes Brigham—standing beside her and
watching the master plot with her—looked at her with a raised eyebrow.
"Nothing,
Mercedes." Honor shook her head. "Just a passing thought."
"Of
course, Your Grace."
Brigham's
slightly mystified tone almost set Honor off on another chuckle, but she
suppressed the temptation sternly.
"Anything
yet from Vizeadmiral Hasselberg, Andrea?" she asked instead,
turning her head to look at Jaruwalski.
"No,
Your Grace. I think it's still a little early. His recon drones can't be fully
into position yet."
"I
realize that," Honor said quietly, pitching her voice low enough so that
only Jaruwalski and Brigham could hear her, "but his first wave platforms
have to be close enough by now to be picking up at least the outer edge of
Alistair's screen."
"You
think he's waiting until he has a more fully developed picture?" Brigham
asked.
"I
think so, yes." Honor nodded. "The question is why he's waiting. Is
it strictly because he wants to watch the situation develop a little more, get
a better feel for it himself, before he reports it to the flagship? And if
that's why he's waiting, is it because he's exercising intelligent initiative
or because he resents being tied so tightly to our apron strings?"
"And
which do you think it is, Your Grace, if I can ask?"
"Honestly,
if it were Morser, I'd call it a tossup," Honor admitted. "In this case,
though, I think it's probably the former. And that's good. But we need to find
a way to tactfully suggest to him that it's more important to inform us
immediately, even if he has only partial information."
"Kapitan
der Sterne Teischer is a tactful sort," Brigham said. "I could
probably have a little discussion with him—one chief of staff to another. He's
pretty good at post-exercise analysis, too."
"That's
an excellent idea, Mercedes," Honor approved. "I'd much rather have
any suggestions come to him in-house, as it were, rather than sound as if I'm
stepping on his toes. Especially when he's pulling out all the stops to make
this work the way he is."
"I'll
see to it, Your Grace."
* * *
"Astro
Control reports that Hexapuma and Warlock are making transit,
Admiral," Lieutenant Commander Ekaterina Lazarevna, Sebastian D'Orville's
communications officer announced.
"Very
good." D'Orville turned from the main plot to the screen which showed his
flagship's captain. "Let's get it right, Sybil," he said.
"We'll
get it done, Sir," Captain Gilraven assured him.
"Good."
"Junction
transit completed, Admiral," Lazarevna said.
"Very
good. Send the first message, Katenka."
"Aye,
aye, Sir. Transmitting . . . now."
D'Orville
watched his chrono carefully as his message congratulating Aivars Terekhov and
his surviving personnel for their accomplishments in the Battle of Monica
flashed across to HMS Hexapuma. The two damaged heavy cruisers' icons
blinked on his plot, accelerating slowly out of the Junction, and D'Orville
felt something he hadn't felt since the day he'd watched the broken and
crippled light cruiser HMS Fearless limp painfully home from Basilisk
station.
Odd, he thought. The second time, and Warlock was
involved in both of them. But a bit differently this time. I'm glad. She needed
her name cleared.
"Now,
Sybil," he said quietly, and the hundred and thirty-eight starships and
seventeen hundred LACs of the Home Fleet detachment brought up their impeller
wedges in perfect sequence. The impeller signatures radiated outward from Invictus,
but Invictus wasn't in the traditional flagship's slot at the center of
that stupendous globe.
That space was occupied by HMS Hexapuma and HMS
Warlock.
"Second
message for Hexapuma," Fleet Admiral Sebastian D'Orville said
quietly. "'Yours is the honor.'"
"Aye,
aye, Sir," Lazarevna said, equally quietly, and Home Fleet moved steadily
in-system around the two battered, half-crippled heavy cruisers which had saved
their Star Kingdom from a two-front war it could not possibly have won.
* * *
"Admiral
Fisher's task force just came in, Sir," Captain DeLaney said.
"I
see. Thank you, Molly. I'll meet you on Flag Bridge in fifteen minutes."
"Yes,
Sir. DeLaney, clear," she said, and broke the com connection.
Lester
Tourville sat at his desk for several seconds, looking around his day cabin,
feeling the massive megaton bulk of RHNS Guerriere around him. At that
particular moment, his flagship felt oddly small, almost fragile.
He stood
and walked across to the view screen configured to show him the diamond-studded
depths of space. He gazed deep into it, seeing the dim sparks of reflected
light from the nameless star system's red dwarf primary.
Each of
those specks of light was a starship, most of them as massive and powerfully
armed as Guerriere herself. Now that Fisher had arrived on schedule, the
reinforced Second Fleet was complete, as was Admiral Chin's Fifth Fleet, and
both were under Tourville's command. Three hundred and thirty-six SD(P)s, the
flower of the reborn Republican Navy, and by any standards, the most powerful
battle force ever assembled for a single operation by any known star nation.
They lay all about him, floating in distant orbit around the star system's
second gas giant, waiting for his orders, and he felt a shiver of
apprehensive anticipation flow through him.
I never
really thought it would all come together, even after Tom told me. But it has. And now it's all mine.
It should
have been Javier Giscard's command, he thought. Javier should have had Second
Fleet and overall command, while he had Fifth, but Javier was gone, and so the
task had fallen to him.
He thought
about his orders, the different sets of contingency instructions, the planning
and coordination and incredible industrial effort his huge fleet represented.
The Republic's defenses had been unflinchingly reduced everywhere, despite the
Manties' widespread scouting activities. Hopefully, however, the enemy wasn't
aware of that. Not yet. All of his units had been left where they were, each
drilling relentlessly in the simulators, until the operation actually began
expressly to keep the Manties blissfully unaware of what was coming.
He hadn't
liked that. In fact, it was the one part of the operational plan which he'd
actually protested. Simulations were all well and good, but no one had ever put
a fleet this size together before. He'd needed to practice coordinating with
Chin, needed to drill the actual units, put the subunit commanders physically
through their paces where he could watch them, evaluate their strengths and
weaknesses. He'd asked—almost pleaded—for the chance to do that, but his
request had been turned down. And even though he was the one who'd asked for it,
he'd understood why Thomas Theisman had refused it.
It wasn't
because Theisman didn't understand exactly why Tourville had made the request
in the first place. It wasn't because Theisman disagreed with him, either. But
for Operation Beatrice to succeed, complete strategic surprise was an absolute
prerequisite. Indeed, surprise was so important it had trumped even the need to
conduct extensive hands-on training exercises. Given the activity of the Manty
scouting forces, they'd dared not withdraw their picket forces early. Even
more, they hadn't dared to combine Tourville's units somewhere where a Manty
reconnaissance drone might have picked them up and started their Office of
Naval Intelligence wondering just why the Republic might have concentrated such
a huge percentage of its total battle fleet in one place.
But we
still have over a week before we sortie, plus the transit time, he thought. It won't be as good as I would have
preferred, but we can do a lot in that much time. And we'd better, because at
the end of it . . . .
He let the
thought trail off, because he didn't really know what would be waiting "at
the end of it."
Except for
the biggest naval battle in human history, of course.
"How
does it look now, Andrea?"
"Better,
Your Grace."
Captain
Jaruwalski flipped a sighting circle into the main plot, dropping it neatly
around the icons of Battle Squadrons 36 and 38, Imperial Andermani Navy. The
light codes of the sixteen superdreadnoughts burned steadily in the display,
giving no indication of how hard they were to find, even for Imperator's
sensors. The numbers in the CIC sidebar giving detected signal strength were
another story, however, indicating exactly how hard they would have been to
detect had Imperator not known exactly where to look for them. Not quite
as hard as Manticoran ships might have been, but harder than anyone else's,
Honor noted, and nodded in approval. Not so much of the EW capabilities, as of Vizeadmiral
Morser's tactics.
"She's
slipped around behind Admiral Yanakov," Jaruwalski continued. "I
don't think he knows she's there, but he's a sneaky one. He may just be playing
dumb until she's got him right where he wants her."
"Why
do you think that might be?"
"Partly
because of where he's got his carriers, Your Grace. He's got them pulled
around, further ahead of his trailing battle squadron than his usual cruising
dispositions. That puts the SD(P)s' onboard point defense between them and
Morser's batteries. But they're still far enough astern that he could get their
Katanas launched to thicken his task force missile defenses in a hurry.
It may not mean anything, but it looks to me as if he's at least thinking about
the possibility of being jumped from astern."
"I
see."
Honor
folded her hands behind her, standing beside her command chair while Nimitz
draped bonelessly over its back, and contemplated the plot. Andrea had a point,
she decided. Both about Judah's sneakiness, and about his formation.
Personally, Honor gave it a sixty-forty chance Yanakov didn't know
Morser was back there. Or, at least, how close she was. For the purposes of
this exercise, he'd been denied the use of Ghost Rider's extended platform
endurance, his sensor capability had been stepped down to no more than twenty
percent better than ONI's current best estimate of the Republic's capabilities,
and his acceleration rate had been reduced to match that of Republican
superdreadnoughts. That meant he was more myopic than he was accustomed to
being, and he must feel heavy-footed, slow to maneuver. So it made sense for
him to be particularly wary about the possibility of being overhauled from
behind.
Still, he was
sneaky . . . .
Then again,
so was Bin-hwei Morser. Honor still didn't like her much, and she was
aware—painfully, one might say, given her ability to taste mind-glows—that
Morser's feelings for her went far beyond "didn't like much." But the
vizeadmiral was a superior tactician, and her very dislike for Manticore
had inspired her to drive her personnel even harder over the five days since
Aivars Terekhov's return from Monica. She hadn't come off very well in that
series of exercises, and she hadn't liked that much, either. The last thing
she wanted was to look inferior to the RMN.
When you're
number two, you try harder, Honor
thought wryly. Especially when you resent the heck out of your number two
status. Well, whatever works. I don't really care why she does it, as
long she does do it.
She began
to pace slowly back and forth, watching the gradually developing tactical
situation. At the moment, Imperator was tagging along behind Konteradmiral
Syou-tung Waldberg's Battle Squadron Thirty-Eight at the rear of Morser's
formation. Yanakov had his own Fifteenth Battle Squadron and Vice Admiral
Baez's Twenty-Third, plus Samuel Miklós' Fifth Carrier Squadron and all four of
Eighth Fleet's Manticoran and Grayson battlecruiser squadrons. Alistair
McKeon's Sixty-First Battle Squadron, most of Alice Truman's carriers, and the
rest of Honor's cruisers and destroyers had stayed home, near the Trevor's Star
terminus of the Junction with Admiral Kuzak's Third Fleet, for this one. The
object was to give her Andermani units a significant force advantage, since
they were tasked as the aggressors in this particular system defense exercise.
"Any
word on Vizeadmiral Hasselberg's units?" she asked, after a moment.
"Welllllll
. . ." Jaruwalski said, and Honor looked at her sharply, one eyebrow
rising as she tasted the ops officer's emotions.
"Spit
it out, Andrea."
"Well,
I know Admiral Yanakov can't use the all-up Ghost Rider capabilities, and I
know we're supposed to be letting Vizeadmiral Morser call all the shots
on this one. But I couldn't quite resist the temptation to deploy a few drones
of my own, Your Grace. None of the take from them is going to Morser, but it
sort of lets me keep an eye on things."
"I
see. And no doubt you simply forgot to display the positions of Vizeadmiral Hasselberg
and his ships. The fact that you were attempting to conceal your transgression
from my eagle eye had nothing to do with the omission, right?"
"Well,
maybe a little, Your Grace," Jaruwalski admitted with a grin. "You
want to see him?"
"Go
ahead and show me."
"Coming
up now," Jaruwalski said, and the understrength Forty-First Battle
Squadron of Vizeadmiral Hwa-zhyou Reinke, screened by the sixteen
battlecruisers of Konteradmiral Hen-zhi Seifert and Konteradmiral Tswei-yun
Wollenhaupt and accompanied by Rear Admiral Harding Stuart's Mermaid and
Harpy, appeared suddenly on the master plot.
Mermaid and Harpy formed Carrier Division Thirty-Four,
detached from Truman's CLAC squadron to give the Andermani a carrier element.
At the moment, they and the superdreadnoughts they were accompanying were well
ahead of Yanakov's force, closing in on an almost directly converging heading,
and Honor frowned.
Reinke's
squadron had only six SD(P)s, which meant Yanakov's wallers outnumbered him by
better than two-to-one. Stuart's carriers were outnumbered by three-to-one, and
even in battlecruisers, Hasselberg was outnumbered four-to-three. That was bad
enough, but coming in as he was, he'd be in MDM engagement range at least a
half-hour before Morser closed up from behind Yanakov, and a half-hour was a
long time in an engagement between pod-layers.
She started
to say something, then changed her mind. She didn't really care for tactics which
split an attacking fleet up into penny packets. It was too good a way to
fritter away a numerical advantage and invite defeat in detail, especially if
your timing screwed up, and that seemed to be what was about to happen to
Hasselberg and Morser. It looked as if Hasselberg had planned on a simultaneous
attack, enveloping Yanakov from ahead and astern at the same time. If he had,
however, his timing was decidedly off.
But that
was a point for her to make to him privately, where he could be positive she
wasn't criticizing him in front of his juniors. She wasn't afraid Jaruwalski
would have let anything slip to anyone else even if she'd commented on
Hasselberg's error, but it was a bad habit to get into, even with her own
staff. And so she possessed her soul in silence, watching the situation unfold.
And then—
"Your
Grace, look at this!" Jaruwalski said suddenly, and Honor frowned. It took
her an instant to recognize what she was seeing, but when she did, she decided
she was glad she hadn't criticized Hasselberg's timing after all.
"Is he
doing what I think he's doing, Your Grace?" Jaruwalski asked, and
Honor chuckled.
"He
is, indeed, Andrea. And I'll be interested to see how Judah reacts. This is
very like something he once pulled in a training exercise in
Yeltsin."
She stepped
over closer to Jaruwalski, resting her right hand lightly on the ops officer's
shoulder as they both watched the plot. Hasselberg had obviously just deployed
Ghost Rider drones of his own. These weren't sensor platforms, though; they
were EW platforms configured to counterfeit the emissions signatures of
Morser's superdreadnoughts. And he was being subtle about it. The signal
strength off the drones was very weak—barely more than ten percent higher than
what could have been expected to leak through a standard Andermani stealth
field. Given the way Yanakov's sensor capabilities had been dialed back for the
exercise, his tac officers were going to have a hard time recognizing what
Hasselberg was doing.
In fact, as
became apparent a few moments later, they hadn't recognized it. Yanakov
was changing course, turning away from the threat he'd just detected, and
launching his LACs. With only Republican levels of capability allowed to his
reconnaissance drones, his LACs were his best long-range sensor platforms,
despite their far lower acceleration rates, and he was sending them out to
check out the suspect contacts. At the same time, as a precaution, he was
deploying the bulk of his Katanas between his battle squadrons and
Hasselberg. His battlecruisers were redeploying, as well, shifting to cover the
threat axis with their anti-missile defenses.
It was
clear Yanakov didn't intend to allow himself to be drawn into automatically
assuming he was seeing what his tactical sections thought they were seeing. At
the same time, he'd equally clearly decided he had to honor the threat and
shift his formation to meet it.
Which was
exactly what Hasselberg had wanted him to do.
The next
thirty minutes passed slowly as Honor and Jaruwalski watched the shifting
patterns in the plot. Yanakov's turn away from Hasselberg had the effect of
closing the range to Morser even more rapidly, but at such ranges
"rapid" was a purely relative term.
Hasselberg
was playing the game well, Honor decided. Once he'd given Yanakov a sniff of
his position and drawn an obvious response, he cycled down the power of his
decoys' signatures. It looked exactly as if he wasn't positive he'd been
detected and he was reducing acceleration to cut back the strength of his
impeller signatures and make his stealth systems more effective. The maneuver
both lent verisimilitude to his deception and made it even harder to penetrate
by requiring the reconnaissance LACs to close to much shorter range for
positive identification.
Honor
pursed her lips thoughtfully as the range from Morser's squadrons to Yanakov's
dropped steadily. Yanakov was already in MDM range, and in another few minutes
his LACs were going to get close enough to see through Hasselberg's masquerade.
So if she were Morser, she'd be firing just about—
"Vizeadmiral
Morser's opened fire, Your Grace," Jaruwalski said, and Honor nodded.
"So I
see," she said mildly, folded her hands behind her once again, and walked
calmly back to her command chair.
Judah was
going to be . . . irritated with himself, she thought with a mental grin. He'd
obviously taken Hasselberg's bait, after all. He might not have allowed himself
to go charging after it, but Hasselberg and his skillfully deployed drones had
riveted Yanakov's attention on the smaller of the Andermani task groups. His
tac crews hadn't been paying as much attention to other possible axes of
threat, and when Morser launched, Yanakov's screen—and Katanas—were
badly out of position, with very poor shots at the incoming tide of missiles.
Moreover, Morser had stacked her pods deeply. Her sixteen superdreadnoughts had
deployed almost six hundred pods; now they launched a total of 4,608 attack and
EW missiles . . . and five hundred and seventy-six Apollo control missiles.
Flight time
was still almost six minutes, which gave Yanakov some time to adjust, but it
wasn't long enough to significantly reposition his units. And as the missiles
came streaking in, for the first time, Eighth Fleet units found themselves on
the receiving end of an Apollo attack.
It was not,
Honor thought, watching the first few damage codes appear on her display, like
the first drifting flakes of a Sphinx mountain blizzard, going to be a pleasant
experience.
* * *
"Admiral,
it's time," Captain DeLaney said quietly over the com, and Lester
Tourville nodded.
"Yes,
I suppose it is," he agreed. "Send the Fleet to battle stations,
Molly. I'll be up directly."
"Yes,
Sir."
Tourville
terminated the connection and stood. He patted his skinsuit's cargo pocket
automatically, checking to be certain his trademark cigars were where they were
supposed to be. They'd become so much a part of his image that he probably
could have demoralized his entire flag bridge crew by the simple expedient of
giving up smoking.
The thought
made him chuckle, and he was glad he was alone as he detected the edge of
nervousness in the sound.
Let's just
get that out of our system right here, Lester. No butterflies in front of the
troops. They deserve a hell of a lot
better than that out of you.
He glanced
at himself in a bulkhead mirror. It was probably just as well none of his
personnel knew he'd been sitting here, already skinsuited, for the last fifteen
minutes. Not that it had been because of any opening-night jitters. Or, at
least, not very much so. It was more calculating than that. By suiting up
early, he could take the time to do it right and arrive on flag bridge calm and
collected, looking as if he'd just stepped out of a training holo. Just another
of those little tricks to inspire his subordinates to pretend, even to
themselves, that he was an unflappable, calm, confident leader. So sure of
himself he would turn up perfectly turned out, without a single hair out of
place.
He ran one
hand over the hair in question, and chuckled again, much more naturally . . .
just as the music began to play.
One of
Thomas Theisman's reforms had been to allow the captains of capital units the
right to substitute more personalized selections for the stridency of the
standard fleet alarms. Captain Houellebecq had a fondness for really old opera,
much of it actually dating from pre-space Old Earth. Tourville had cherished
private doubts when she decided to use some of it aboard Guerriere, but
he had to admit she'd come up with a suitable selection for this particular
signal. In fact, he'd thought it was an appropriate one even before she told
him what it was called.
"Now
here this! Now here this! All hands, man Battle Stations! Repeat, all hands man
Battle Stations!" Captain Celestine Houellebecq's calm, crisp voice said
through the ancient, surging strains of Wagner's Ride of the Valkyries.
* * *
"Ma'am,
the Alpha Arrays are reporting—sweet Jesus!"
Lieutenant
Commander Angelina Turner turned quickly, eyes flashing angrily.
"Just
what the hell kind of report do you call that, Hellerstein?" she demanded
harshly, even angrier because Chief Petty Officer Bryant Hellerstein was one of
her best, steadiest people.
"Commander—Ma'am—this
can't be right!" Hellerstein blurted, and Turner strode quickly
towards his station. She'd opened her mouth in another, still sharper
reprimand, but Hellerstein's shocked expression when he turned to look at her
stopped it unspoken. She'd never seen the tough, competent noncom look . . .
terrified before.
"What
can't be right, Bryant?" she asked, much more gently than she'd intended
to speak.
"Ma'am,"
Hellerstein said hoarsely, "according to the Alpha Arrays, three
hundred-plus unidentified ships just made their alpha translations right on
the limit."
"All
right, Robert. Let's get those drones deployed."
"Aye,
Sir!" Commander Zucker began punching in commands at his console, and Rear
Admiral Oliver Diamato turned to his chief of staff.
"It's
not going to take them long to figure out we're out here, Serena," he
said, one hand gesturing at the master plot which showed the Manticoran
Wormhole Junction. Just getting this close to the Junction made Diamato's skin
crawl, because if there was one point—besides their home system's inhabited
worlds—guaranteed to make the Manties respond like a wounded swamp tiger, it
was the Junction.
"As a
matter of fact, Sir," Commander Taverner replied with a mirthless smile,
"I sort of suspect they already know, don't you?"
"I'm
an admiral. That means I can put the best face on things if I want to."
Diamato countered with a taut, answering smile.
In fact, as
both he and Tucker knew perfectly well, the Mantie's system platforms had
detected and pinpointed their hyper footprints the instant they arrived. There
was no point trying to fool those stupendous arrays. With dimensions measured
in thousands of kilometers on a side, they could pick up even the most gradual
translation into normal-space at a range of literally light-weeks, much less
the signatures of two battlecruiser squadrons only six light-hours from the
primary.
"I
suppose so, Sir," Taverner agreed. "Maybe that's why I'm just a
commander."
"And
don't you forget it." Diamato could almost feel his flag bridge crew
relaxing at the banter between him and the chief of staff, and that was good.
But there were more serious things to consider, as well.
"What
I meant," he continued, "is that I'd like to put as much
distance—very stealthily—as we can between us and our arrival points. I doubt
we'll be able to drop off their systems, but it's worth a try."
"Yes,
Sir," Taverner said more seriously. She gazed at the plot along with him.
Their recon drones were out, racing for the Junction to keep a close eye on
things, and already the faint sensor ghosts which were all they ever seemed to
see of the Manties' all-too-aptly named "Ghost Rider" drones were
appearing, headed (as nearly as they could tell) in their direction.
"What
about going to Shell Game, Sir?" she asked after a moment.
"That's
what I was thinking," Diamato agreed.
His ships'
job was to keep as close an eye as possible on the Junction. At least the Manty
defenses hade made it easy for the planners to decide against sending in recon
LACs, since none of them could have hoped to survive long enough to see a
damned thing. That meant he wouldn't have LAC crews' deaths on his conscience,
but it didn't exactly solve his other problems. Specifically, his drones ,
while more capable than they'd ever been before as recon platforms,
still were nowhere near as stealthy as the Manties' drones. That meant he had
to stay close enough to keep sending in fresh waves as the defenders picked off
the earlier ones.
At the same
time, there was no point pretending his command could fight off what the
Manties could send its direction if they so chose. So instead of any deluded
notions of martial glory and stand-up battle, it was time—as Tavrerner had just
suggested—to rely on speed and dispersal. This far out from the system primary
(and well to the side of the resonance zone), Diamato's sixteen battlecruisers
were free to bob and weave. And if things looked like getting too hot anyway,
they could always disappear into hyper. The trick was to avoid letting anything
with MDMs get within four or five light-minutes of them.
"Should
I pass the orders, then, Sir?" Taverner asked, and he nodded.
"Do
it," he said.
* * *
"Oh,
shit," Admiral Stephania Grimm, Royal Astrogation Control Service, said to
herself very, very quietly as a soft but urgent audio alarm sounded. The napkin
she'd been using to brush cake crumbs from her tunic was suddenly a crushed
ball in her hand, and the people who'd just been wishing her happy birthday
turned as one to look at the plot.
Figures, a corner of her brain thought. They would decide
to come calling on my birthday!
She looked
around at the suddenly taut faces of her co-workers. ACS was a civil service
organization, despite its military ranks, and most of her subordinates and
staff had never imagined in their darkest nightmares that they might ever
actually see combat. But Grimm's position as the commanding officer of the
Manticoran Junction's traffic control service required her to cooperate closely
with its military hierarchy. Not all ACS commanders had been comfortable fits
for that side of their duties, but it helped that Grimm was herself ex-Navy. In
fact, she'd reached the rank of captain of the list before transferring to ACS,
and she'd quickly acquired a reputation among her military colleagues for
efficiency and brains. That was especially welcome in the wake of her immediate
predecessor, Admiral Allen Stokes, whose sole claim to his position had been
his brother-in-law's close ties to Baron High Ridge and First Lord Janacek.
But right
at this moment, knowing she was well thought of was remarkably little comfort
to Admiral Grimm. The huge hyper footprint just outside the system hyper-limit
was bad enough, but for her, personally, the scattered footprints and spreading
impeller signatures eight light-minutes out from the Junction were just as bad.
There were going to be incoming drones very shortly, and there might be more
superdreadnoughts hovering out there on the other side of the hyper wall,
waiting to pounce, depending on what those drones told their masters.
She wasn't
the only one thinking dark thoughts, she noticed, watching the huge astro
plot's sidebars as the Junction forts rushed to battle stations. It would take
a lot of SDs to deal with them, she told herself, but that didn't
make her feel a great deal better. There were several hundred freighters,
passenger liners, mail boats, and exploration vessels either already in transit
through the Junction's various termini or else lined up in the transit queues
awaiting their turns, and the thought of MDMs tearing around amidst all that
defenseless civilian shipping made her physically sick to her stomach.
She flipped
up a plastic shield and punched a large, red button on her console. A harsh,
strident buzzer sounded, and every other sound on the command deck of HMSS DaGama,
the Junction's central ACS platform ceased abruptly. Every eye turned towards
her as the saw-edged audio alarm jerked her personnel's attention to her.
"It
hasn't been declared yet, but we have damned sure got ourselves a Case Zulu,
people," she announced in a flat, tense voice. "I'm declaring
Condition Delta on my own authority. Clear the Junction—all traffic, wherever
it is in the queue, not just the outbounds already on final. I want anything
that might draw an MDM's attention way the hell away from here ASAP.
"After
that, Jordan," she continued, turning to her exec, who still held half a
slice of cake, "get ready for the ride of your life. Unless I miss my
guess, what Admiral Yestremensky had to deal with when Earl White Haven took
Eighth Fleet to Basilisk was a walk in the park compared to what's coming our
way. Get a dispatch boat away to Trevor's Star with a sitrep immediately. Then
go ahead and start setting up for a minimum-interval transit of everything
Admiral Kuzak and Duchess Harrington have. I'm not sure what their deployments
are, but we could have close to a hundred wallers coming through that terminus
nose-to-arse. And if a couple of SDs misjudge their intervals and collide—or
bring their wedges up too close together—we are going to have one hell
of a mess."
"No
joke," Captain Jordan Lamar said feelingly.
"So I
want our best controllers on that lane," Grimm said. "Forget about
the standard watch schedule. Pull in the best from wherever the hell they are
and get them at those consoles—" she jabbed a finger at the Trevor's Star
traffic controllers' section "—ten minutes ago. Then see what we've got
available for tugs."
"Yes,
Ma'am. I'm on it," Lamar said. He looked down, saw the cake as if for the
first time, and stared at it for just a moment. Then he chuckled harshly,
shoved it into his mouth, and turned to his own com to begin giving orders.
"Bradley,"
Grimm went on, turning to her official liaison to Admiral Thurston Havlicek,
the Junction Defense Command's commanding officer, "bring Admiral Havlicek
up to speed on what we've already done. I'm sure we're going to have drones
incoming from these people in the next thirty or forty minutes, and I'm sure
he's got his own plans for dealing with them, but ask him if there's anything we
can do to help. I'm thinking we may need to be looking at ways to stack the
incoming wallers to block the drones' LOS to the terminus, keep them from
getting a close enough look to tell the Peeps what's coming or when. Whatever
JDC needs and we can do, he's got, but I need to know what he wants now."
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am!" Commander Bradley Hampton said with a grateful smile.
"I'll get right on it."
"Good,"
Grimm said quietly, and looked back at the plot. The first Ghost Rider
platforms were already twenty-five thousand kilometers out, accelerating at
just over five thousand gravities. She couldn't see them, though she knew they
were there. But she could see the blossoming impeller signatures of
Junction Defense Command's LACs. Over thirty-five hundred were already in
space, and more were appearing with metronome precision as the LAC platforms
launched.
You
bastards just go right ahead and come in on us, she thought venomously at the impeller signatures of
the battlecruisers trying to spy on her command area. Come right ahead.
We've got something for you.
* * *
Sebastian
D'Orville's thoughts about the boredom of his assignment ran through the back
of his brain like a bitter, distant echo as he strode onto HMS Invictus'
flag bridge. Despite all his training, all his preparation, all the simulations
and wargames and contingency planning, he suddenly discovered that he'd never
really believed it would happen. That the Peeps would have the sheer,
unadulterated nerve to actually attack the Star Kingdom of Manticore's
home star system.
And why the
hell didn't you believe it? his
brain demanded contemptuously. You were ready enough to think about invading
their home system during Buttercup, weren't you? Pissed off because
Saint-Just's "cease-fire" ploy stopped the operation, weren't you?
Well it seems they can think big too, can't they?
"Talk
to me, Maurice," he said harshly.
"They're
coming straight down our throats, Sir," Captain Maurice Ayrault, his chief
of staff, replied flatly. "The only finesse I can see is their approach
vector. It looks like they think they're going to take out Home Fleet and
Sphinx first, then roll on over Manticore, but they're trying to leave
themselves an out just in case, and their astrogation was first rate. They came
in right on the intersection of the resonance zone and the hyper limit and
split the angle almost exactly. It's not a least-time approach, but it means
they can break back across the zone boundary if it gets too deep instead of
being committed to the inner-system. At the moment, they're eight light-minutes
out, closing at fifteen hundred KPS, and they're pouring on the accel. They
must be running their compensators at at least ninety percent of full military
power, because current acceleration is right on four-point-eight
KPS-squared."
"Well,"
D'Orville said, "that's why we deployed this way. What does it look like
for a zero/zero intercept on the planet?"
"Just
under three hours," Ayrault said. "Turnover in roughly eighty-six
minutes. They'll be up to twenty-six thousand KPS at that point." The
chief of staff grimaced. "I suppose we should be grateful for small
favors, Sir. They could have cut their time by over thirty minutes if they'd
come straight in across the zone boundary."
"Time
to range on the planet if they decide to go for maximum-range shots?"
D'Orville asked levelly, hoping his tone and expression hid the icy chill
running down his spine at the thought of weapons as notoriously inaccurate as
long-range MDMs screaming through the inner system.
"On a
zero/zero profile, ninety-four minutes. If they go for a least-time approach,
without turnover, they can shave roughly a minute off of that. Either way, it's
about an hour and a half."
"I
see."
D'Orville
considered what Ayrault had said. Home Fleet was still rushing to Battle
Stations, but at least it was standing policy to hold his ships' nodes
permanently at standby readiness, despite the additional wear that put on the
components. He'd be able to get underway in the next twelve to fifteen minutes.
The question was what he did when he could.
No, he told himself. There really isn't any question at
all, is there? You can't let those missile pods get any closer to Sphinx than
you can help. But, Jesus—over three hundred ships?
"Does
Tracking have a breakdown yet, Madelyn?" he asked, turning to his
operations officer.
"It's
just coming in now, Sir," Captain Madelyn Gwynett told him. She watched
the information come up on her display, and he saw her shoulders tighten.
"Tracking
makes it two hundred and forty superdreadnoughts, Sir. At this time, it looks
like they're all pod-layers, but we're trying to get drones in closer to
confirm that. They've also got what looks like sixteen CLACs and a screen of
roughly ninety cruisers and lighter units, as well."
"Thank
you, Madelyn."
D'Orville
was pleased, in a distant sort of way, by how calm he sounded, but he
understood why Gwynett's shoulders had stiffened. Home Fleet contained
forty-two SD(P)s and forty-eight older superdreadnoughts. He was outnumbered by
better than two and a half-to-one in capital ships, but the ratio was almost six-to-one
in SD(P)s. He had twelve pod-laying battlecruisers, as well, but they'd be spit
on a griddle against superdreadnoughts.
Still, he
told himself as firmly as possible, the situation wasn't quite as bad as the
sheer numbers suggested. The new tractor-equipped "flat-pack" missile
pods would allow each of his older superdreadnoughts to "tow" almost
six hundred pods inside their wedges, glued to their hulls like high-tech
limpets. That was a hundred and twenty percent of a Medusa-class's
internal pod loadout, and the ships were already loading up with them.
Unfortunately, they didn't have the fire control to manage salvos as dense as a
Medusa could throw. Worse, they'd have to flush the majority of their pods
early in order to clear the sensor and firing arcs of their point defense and
its fire control arrays. So he was going to have to use them at the longest
range, where their accuracy was going to be lowest.
"Katenka,"
he said to Lieutenant Commander Lazarevna "get me Admiral Caparelli."
"Aye,
aye, Sir."
Caparelli
appeared on D'Orville's com display almost instantly.
"Sebastian,"
he said, his voice level but his expression taut.
"Tom."
D'Orville nodded back, thinking about how many times they'd greeted one another
exactly the same way before . . . and wondering if they'd ever do it again.
"I
think I've got to go out to meet them," D'Orville continued.
"If
you do, you lose the inner-system pods," Caparelli countered. "You'd
have to take them on without any support, and they've got a huge edge in
numbers. You'll lose everything you've got if you meet them head on."
"And
if I don't take them head-to-head, I let them into range of the planet,"
D'Orville countered harshly.
"So
far, they've stayed away from anything which might look like a violation of the
Eridani Edict," Caparelli pointed out.
"And
so far they haven't invaded our home system, either," D'Orville shot back.
The Manticoran tradition was that the Admiralty did not second guess a fleet CO
when battle threatened—not even Home Fleet's commander. What D'Orville did with
his fleet was his decision. Admiralty House might advise, might provide
additional intelligence or suggest tactics, but the decision was his, and it
wasn't like Thomas Caparelli to try to change that.
But
D'Orville wasn't really surprised by Caparelli's reluctance to admit what he
knew as well as D'Orville did had to happen. The First Space Lord knew too many
of the men and women aboard D'Orville's ships . . . and he couldn't join them.
He would be safely back on Manticore when the hammer came down on Home Fleet,
and Sebastian D'Orville knew Caparelli too well, knew exactly what the other
admiral was feeling, the miracle he wanted to find. But there were no miracles,
not today, and so D'Orville shook his head.
"No,
Tom," he said almost gently. "I'd like to hang back—believe me, I
would. But we can't count on continued restraint where their targeting's
concerned. This one is for all the marbles. They've got thirty squadrons of
SD(P)s—the equivalent of forty of our squadrons, with over a million people
aboard them—coming at us, right into the heart of our defenses. That means
they're ready for massive losses. I don't think we can expect them to take that
kind of punishment without handing out whatever they can in return, and even if
they never intentionally fire a single shot at the planet, think about how
damned inaccurate end-of-run MDMs are. I can't let hundreds of those things go
flying around this close to Sphinx."
"I
know." Caparelli closed his eyes for a moment, then inhaled deeply and
opened them once more.
"I've
ordered the Case Zulu message transmitted to all commands," he said, his
voice more clipped, his dread of what was to come cloaked in reflex
professionalism. "Theodosia can start responding from Trevor's Star in
about fifteen minutes, but most of Eighth Fleet is off the terminus, on
maneuvers. I don't know how quickly it can get back there, but I'm guessing
it'll take at least a couple of hours just for Duchess Harrington to get to the
terminus. I'm recalling Jessup Blaine's squadrons from the Lynx Terminus, as
well, but our best estimate on his current response time is even longer than
Eighth Fleet's."
"And
even Theodosia can't do it in a mass transit," D'Orville said grimly.
"She's going to have to do it one ship at a time, the same way Hamish did
it when the bastards hit Basilisk, because we're going to need everything she's
got."
Kuzak could
have put almost thirty superdreadnoughts through the Junction in a single mass
transit, but the destabilizing effect would have locked down the Trevor's
Star-Manticore route for almost seventeen hours. Even in a sequenced transit,
each ship of the wall would close the route for almost two minutes before the
next in the queue could use it.
"You're
right," Caparelli agreed. "Allowing for her screening units, she's
going to need almost two hours just to make transit."
"By
which time these people will be about an hour out from Sphinx, and she can't
possibly catch them," D'Orville said.
"We're
scrambling every LAC we've got," Caparelli said. "We should be able
to get five or six thousand of them to you by the time you engage."
"That
will help—a lot," D'Orville said. "But they've got sixteen carriers
with them. That gives them over three thousand of their own."
"I
know." Caparelli looked out of the display, his eyes and face grim.
"All you can do is the best you can do, Sebastian. We'll do whatever we
can to support you, but it isn't going to be much."
"Who
would have thought they'd throw something this size at us?" D'Orville
asked almost whimsically.
"Nobody
on the Strategy Board, that's for sure." Caparelli's voice was briefly
saw-edged with bitter self-reproach, as if there were some way he could have
kept this nightmare from coming. Then he got control of it again.
"Actually, I suspect Harrington's the only one who would have believed
they might throw the dice this way. And I honestly don't think even she would
have expected them to."
"Well,
they're here now, and my nodes are coming up. It looks like we're going to be
pretty busy in a little while, Tom. Clear."
* * *
"Your
Grace!"
Honor
stepped back from her sparring match with Clifford McGraw and looked up in
astonishment as one of Major Lorenzetti's Marines came skidding through the
gymnasium hatch. Spencer Hawke and Joshua Atkins wheeled towards the sudden,
unexpected arrival, hands flashing to their pulsers, and she spat out her mouth
protector and threw up her own hand.
"No
threat!" she snapped.
Hawke
continued his draw, but his pulser stayed pointed at the deck. He didn't even
look at her; his attention was locked on the Marine, who, Honor knew, didn't
begin to realize how close he'd just come to being shot. In fact, probably the
only thing that had saved him was her armsmen's faith in her and Nimitz's
ability to sense what was going on inside someone else.
But not
even that faith was going to get Hawke's sidearm back into its holster until he
knew positively what was happening.
At the
moment, however, that was a completely secondary concern for Honor beside the
consternation and turmoil boiling inside the Marine.
"Yes,
Corporal . . . Thackston?" she said, reading the Marine's name off of his
nameplate and deliberately pitching her voice into the most soothing register
she could. "What is it?"
"Your
Grace—" Thackston stopped and shook himself. "Beg pardon, Your
Grace," he said after a moment, his voice under tight control.
"Captain Cardones' compliments," he touched the communicator at his
belt as if to physically indicate where Cardones' message had come from,
"and we've just received a Case Zulu from the Admiralty."
Honor
jerked fully upright. She couldn't have heard him correctly! But even as she
told herself that, her memory flashed back to another day, aboard another ship.
The last time someone had transmitted the code phrase "Case Zulu." In
the Royal Manticoran Navy, those two words had only one meaning: "invasion
imminent."
"Thank
you, Corporal," she said, her voice crisp yet calm enough the Marine
looked at her in something very like disbelief. She nodded to him, then wheeled
to Hawke and Atkins while Nimitz came bounding across the gym towards her.
"Spencer,
get on the com. Find Commodore Brigham. Tell her we're in the gymnasium, and
that I'll see the staff on Flag Bridge in five minutes."
"Yes,
My Lady!" Hawke reholstered his pulser with one hand and reached for his
communicator with the other, and Honor opened her arms as Nimitz leapt into
them, then turned to Atkins.
"Joshua,
com Mac. Tell him I'll need my skinsuit and Nimitz's on Flag Bridge as soon as
possible."
"Yes,
My Lady!"
"Clifford,"
she said over her shoulder to her third armsman as she started for the hatch,
"just grab your gunbelt. You can worry about the rest of your uniform
later."
"Yes,
My Lady!"
Sergeant
McGraw snatched up his weapons belt and buckled it over his own gi.
Fifteen
seconds after Corporal Barnaby Thackston, RMMC, had delivered Rafe Cardones'
message, Admiral Lady Dame Honor Alexander-Harrington was headed purposefully
for the lifts with her armsmen jog trotting to match her long-legged strides.
* * *
"It
seems they've made up their minds, Sir," Commander Frazier Adamson
observed, watching the icons of the Manticoran Home Fleet.
"It's
not as if we've left them a lot of options," Lester Tourville said without
looking at his operations officer.
Adamson was
a competent tactician, an efficient organizer, and a loyal subordinate. He was
also a pretty fair pinochle player, and Tourville liked him quite a lot, under
normal circumstances. But outside his area of professional interest, the
commander had about as much imagination as a wooden post. It wasn't that he was
a shallow person, or insensitive in his personal relationships. It was simply
that it would never have occurred to him to put himself inside the minds and
emotions of the people aboard the ships accelerating away from Sphinx to meet
Second Fleet.
At the
moment, Lester Tourville, who was cursed with entirely too much imagination,
bitterly envied that inner blind spot.
"They
can't feel confident we won't bombard the planetary orbitals—or even the planet
itself—from long range," he continued. "So they're going to come to
meet us, at least try to thin us down to something the fixed defenses can
handle before we hit them."
"Yes,
Sir," Adamson said. "That's what I meant."
He seemed
surprised by his admiral's restatement of the obvious, and Tourville made
himself smile.
"I
know it was, Frazier. I know it was."
He patted
the ops officer on the shoulder and walked a couple of paces closer to the main
tactical display. He stood gazing into it until he sensed a human presence at
his side and looked down to see Captain DeLaney standing there.
"Frazier
means well, Boss," his shorter chief of staff said quietly.
"I
know he does." Tourville smiled again, more naturally, but it was a sad
smile, all the same. One only those he knew and trusted were ever allowed to
see, since it accorded so poorly with his "cowboy" persona.
"It's
just that he only sees them as targets," Tourville continued, equally
quietly. "Right now, I wish I did, too. But I don't. I know exactly what
they're thinking over there, but they're going to come out to meet us,
anyway."
"Like
you said, Boss," DeLaney's smile was a mirror of his own, "we didn't
leave them much choice, did we?"
* * *
"Forget
the screen!" Admiral Theodosia Kuzak snapped. "We can cut fifteen
minutes off our total transit time if we leave them behind, and it's not like
cruisers and destroyers are going to make any difference, is it?"
"No,
Ma'am," Captain Gerald Smithson, her chief of staff replied. He was a
tall, spare-looking man, his dark hair and complexion a stark contrast to
Kuzak's red-hair and fair skin, and he seemed to be coming back on balance
after the shock of the Admiralty's Case Zulu.
"Has
Astro Control responded?" Kuzak demanded, wheeling around to Lieutenant
Franklin Bradshaw, her communications officer.
"Yes,
Ma'am," Bradshaw said. "As a matter of fact, Admiral Grimm's courier
boat just came back though from the Manticore end. She'd already started
clearing the Junction even before she sent it through the first time. Now she's
working out the best dispositions for our units to help screen the arrival
terminus from Peep drones. And she's also moving tugs to the inbound nexus in
case any of our units require assistance."
"A
nice thought," Kuzak said with a mirthless smile, "but if any of our
wallers bump, tugs aren't going to be much help."
"Take
what we can get, Ma'am," Smithson said with graveyard humor, and Kuzak
snorted a harsh chuckle.
"Actually,
Ma'am," Smithson continued in a low-pitched voice, "I've just had a
rather nasty thought. What if this isn't their only fleet? What if they've got
another one waiting to hit Trevor's Star as soon as we pull out for
Manticore?"
"The
same thought occurred to me," Kuzak replied, equally quietly.
"Unfortunately, there's not a lot we can do about it, if they do. We've got
to hold the home system. If they punch out Hephaestus and Vulcan,
take out the dispersed yards, it'll be a thousand times worse than what
happened at Grendelsbane. I hate to say it, but if it's a choice between San
Martin and Sphinx or Manticore, San Martin loses."
"At
least the system defenses are better than they were when the shooting
started," Smithson said.
"They
are. But that's another reason we can't afford to lock down the Junction with a
mass transit. If they do have something like that in mind, we've got to be able
to get back as quickly as we left."
"What
about Duchess Harrington?" Smithson asked. "She's too far out to
rendezvous with us before we make transit. Should we ask her to stay behind and
mind the store while were gone?"
"I
wish we could, but I we'll have to see what happens with Home Fleet. And of course,
I can't give her direct orders, since—"
"Excuse
me, Ma'am. You have a com request from Duchess Harrington," Bradshaw
interrupted suddenly.
"Throw
it to Jerry's display," Kuzak said, bending over the chief of staff's
console rather than waste time walking back to her own. An instant later,
Smithson's flatscreen lit with the image of Eighth Fleet's commander.
Harrington
had obviously been as surprised as everyone else, Kuzak thought, noting the gi
she hadn't burned up time changing out of.
"Admiral
Harrington," she said with a choppy nod, and Honor nodded back.
"Admiral
Kuzak," she replied, then continued, getting straight to business. "I
assume you're already planning an immediate transit to Manticore with Third
Fleet. I'm sending my battlecruisers ahead, but it's going to take most of my
units another two hours-plus to reach the terminus. With your permission, I'll
temporarily assign Admiral McKeon's battle squadron and Admiral Truman's
carriers to you."
"Thank
you, Admiral," Kuzak said very, very sincerely.
"The
sooner they get there, the better," Honor replied. "And please
remember that three of Alistair's superdreadnoughts are Apollo-capable. I don't
know how much difference it's going to make, but—"
She
shrugged, and Kuzak nodded grimly.
"I'll
remember, Your Grace. I only wish I had more of them."
"I'll
bring the rest through as quickly as I can," Honor promised.
"And
I'll try to make sure there's still a Star Kingdom when you do," Kuzak
replied.
* * *
"Well,
Sir," Commander Zucker said, "the good news is that they don't seem
to be deploying anything but LACs to cover the Junction. The bad news is
that they've got a hell of a lot of them."
"So I
see," Oliver Diamato murmured. Like Zucker, he was delighted he wasn't
already having to play tag with hordes of Manty battlecruisers or—worse!—those
damned MDM-armed heavy cruisers he'd heard so much about from NavInt since that
business at Monica. But the shoals of LAC impeller signatures sweeping outward
from the Junction were building a solid wall of interference which made it
almost impossible for his shipboard sensors to see a damned thing, even at this
piddling little range. The density of that LAC shell also augured poorly for
the survival of his recon drones when they finally got close enough for a look
of their own.
One the
other hand. . . .
"All
right, Serena," he said quietly. "Think with me here. They're
covering up big time with LACs, and they aren't sending a single hyper-capable
unit after us. What does that suggest to you?"
"That
we don't want to get much closer to them, Sir?" the chief of staff
suggested with a tight grin, and he snorted a chuckle.
"Besides
that," he said.
"Well,"
she frowned thoughtfully, running one hand over her hair, "I'd say they're
probably trying to use the LACs as much to blind us, keep us guessing about
what's going on on the Junction, as to actually defend it. Which suggests
they're doing something they think we wouldn't like. Like bringing bunches of
big, nasty ships through from Trevor's Star."
"Yes,
it does. But what do you get when you add the fact that no one is heading our
way? No battlecruisers or heavy cruisers swanning around trying to nail us, or
at least push us further away from the Junction?"
"That
they're bringing through wallers, not screen elements," Taverner said
after a second or two.
"Exactly."
It was Diamato's turn to frown. "Much as we may hate to admit it, a
one-on-one engagement with one of us would be a Manty BC skipper's wet dream.
So if they're not sending them after us, then they must've had wallers in place
and ready to start coming through almost immediately, instead. And they're
going right on doing it. Which suggests they have quite a few of them on
call."
He frowned
some more, then looked over his shoulder at his com officer.
"Record
for transmission to Guerriere, attention Captain DeLaney."
* * *
"So
Kuzak or Harrington—or both—are officially on their way, Boss," Molly
DeLaney said quietly, and Tourville nodded.
"So
far, so good," he agreed, and looked at Adamson.
"Start
deploying the donkeys, Frazier," he said.
"Sir,
their acceleration's dropping," Captain Gwynett said.
D'Orville
stepped across to her console, accompanied by Captain Ayrault, and she looked
up at him.
"How
much is it coming down?" he asked.
"Only
about a half a KPS2, so far, Sir."
"What
the hell are they up to now?" Ayrault wondered aloud.
"Putting
pods on tow, maybe," D'Orville replied.
"I
suppose that could be it, Sir," Gwynett raid. "Their pods are almost
as stealthy as ours are, and the recon platforms wouldn't be able to see them
at this range. But those are superdreadnoughts. They'd have to have an awful
lot of tractors to be able to tow so many pods they'd have to tow them outside
their wedges."
D'Orville
nodded. Pods towed inside a ship's wedge didn't degrade its acceleration. That,
after all, was exactly what his own pre-pod designs were doing with the
tractor-equipped pods glued to their hulls. But superdreadnought wedges were
huge; for the Peeps to be towing so many pods they couldn't fit them all inside
their wedges, they'd have to have hundreds of tractors per ship. So they had to
be up to something else.
But what?
"Maybe
they've got tech problems," Ayrault suggested. "Could be one of their
SDs has lost a couple of beta nodes and had to reduce accel. The others might
be reducing so she can stay in company."
"Possible,"
D'Orville conceded. "Or it could be even simpler than that. Maybe they've
just decided to ease off on their compensator margins now that they know we're
coming out to meet them."
Ayrault
nodded, but D'Orville wasn't really satisfied with his own hypothesis. It made
sense, but it just didn't feel right, somehow.
"How
far do you want to close before opening fire, Sir?" Gwynett asked, after a
moment, and he looked back down at her. Despite the fact that he and Ayrault
were standing right beside her, she had to pitch her voice very low to keep it
from being overheard, because it was very quiet on HMS Invictus' flag
bridge. Everyone had had time to realize what was going to happen, and fear
hung in the background. There was no panic, no hesitation, but they knew what
they faced, and the people on that bridge wanted to live just as much as anyone
else. The knowledge that they very probably wouldn't was a cold, invisible
weight, pressing down upon them.
D'Orville
knew it, and he wished there was something he could say or do. Not to make the
fear go away, because no one could have done that. But to tell them how much
they meant to him, how bitterly he regretted taking them on this death ride.
"We
have to make them count," he told Gwynett, equally quietly. "We know
our accuracy and penaids are better, but we've still got to get in close.
They're going to bury us whenever we open fire, and according to the recon
drones, every single one of their wallers is a pod design. They aren't going to
face the same 'use them or lose them' constraints we are.
"So
we're either going to wait until they open fire, or else until the range drops
to sixty-five million klicks."
Gwynett
looked at him for a moment, then nodded slowly.
"I
know. I know," he said softly. "But we've got to get our hits through
at all costs. We've got to, Madelyn. If we don't, all of this," a
slight motion of his head, almost as much imagined as seen, indicated his flag
bridge and the fleet beyond it, "is for nothing."
"Yes,
Sir. I understand."
"Which
fire plan do you want to use, Sir?" Ayrault asked.
"We'll
go with Avalanche," D'Orville said grimly. "Madelyn, I want you to
start shifting formation to Sierra Three. How many LACs have managed to
overtake us?"
"Just
over thirty-five hundred so far, Sir. Another five hundred will be here by the
time we reach the range you've specified."
"How
many are Katanas?"
"I'm
not positive, Sir. Under half—I know that much."
"I
wish we had more," D'Orville said, "but what we have is all we've
got. Pull them forward and spread them vertically. I want their Vipers
positioned for the best firing arcs we can build."
"Yes,
Sir."
"And
set up your firing sequences to have the older ships deploy their pods first.
We'll try to hold the internal pods as long as we can. I want the Keyhole ships
to manage as many of the other units' pods as possible in the opening
salvos."
"Yes,
Sir. I understand."
"Good,
Madelyn. Good." D'Orville patted her gently on the shoulder. "I'll
let you get on with it, then."
"Yes,
Sir," Captain Gwynett said.
* * *
"We're
in range, Admiral," Commander Adamson pointed out, and Lester Tourville
nodded.
"I'm
aware of that, Frazier, thank you."
"Yes,
Sir."
Tourville
tipped back in his command chair and glanced at Molly DeLaney.
"So
Tom was right," he said quietly.
"It
looks that way," DeLaney agreed, and Tourville wondered if the relief
hidden behind her calm expression could possibly be as great as the one roaring
through him.
He looked
at the master plot, with its sprawl of light codes. Second Fleet had been accelerating
towards Sphinx for the last hour. Given the system's geometry, Tourville's
present vector cut a chord at an angle of almost exactly forty-five degrees to
the outer wall of the hugely elongated, "skinny" resonance zone. His
phalanx of superdreadnoughts, was up to 18,560 KPS, relative to the system
primary, and they'd traveled over 35,600,000 kilometers. The Manties' Home
Fleet had been under acceleration for only forty-seven minutes, on an almost
exactly reciprocal course, but with its higher base acceleration, its velocity
relative to the primary was already up to better than 17,000 KPS, and it had
traveled just over 24,000,000 kilometers from its initial station.
Although
Tourville's command was still almost half an hour from its turnover point for a
zero/zero intercept of Sphinx, the range between the opposing forces had fallen
to just a shade over 84,000,000 kilometers, and their closing speed was up to
45,569 KPS. That geometry gave Tourville's MDMs an effective range of better
than 85,369,000 kilometers, which, as Frazier Adamson had just observed, meant
they were in extreme missile range of Home Fleet.
But
Manticoran MDMs' acceleration rate was just over thirty-four KPS2
higher than his birds could pull. That gave them a current effective
range of better than 90,370,000 kilometers, which meant he'd been in their effective
range for over two minutes.
"It
doesn't just look like he was right," he told DeLaney after a
moment. "He was. If they had those God awful missiles, they'd already be
launching. They'd have spent the last ten minutes doing nothing but rolling
pods, and they'd be punching them down our throats right this instant, not
letting us close into our own effective range."
"You
don't think they might just be letting the range fall a little more for their
own fire control, Boss?"
"That's
exactly what they're doing, which is why I know they don't have the new
missiles. They've got less than a hundred wallers over there. Even assuming
they've got heavy external pod loads—which they very well could, despite their
accel, if NavInt's right about their new pod designs—they're outnumbered better
than two-to-one. They wouldn't be closing straight into salvos the size they
know we can throw if they had any choice at all. But they don't. They've got to
get closer to improve their accuracy, just like we do."
"It's
going to be ugly when we do open fire," Delaney said quietly, and
Tourville nodded again.
"That
it certainly is," he agreed grimly. "On the other hand, we planned
for it, didn't we?"
"Yes,
Sir."
Tourville
studied the icons of the oncoming Home Fleet superdreadnoughts for another few
moments, then looked at a secondary display and shook his head in admiration.
He'd always known Shannon Foraker had a talent for thinking outside the box.
Way back when she'd been his operations officer, he'd recognized her knack for
coming up with solutions which simply didn't occur to other people—concepts so
elegantly simple everyone wondered why they hadn't thought of them.
When NavInt
reported that the new Manty pods incorporated onboard tractors as a way to
allow their pre-pod ships to tow greater numbers of them, it had seemed
impossible for the Republic to respond. Their pods were already too big, and
they had too limited a power budget, to permit the designers to cram a tractor
into them (and power the damned thing), as well. But Shannon had decided to
turn the problem on its head. Instead of fitting additional tractors into the
pods, she'd come up with the "donkey." That was what everyone was
calling it, although it had a suitably esoteric alphabet-soup designation, and
it was another of those elegantly simple Foraker specialties.
Instead of
the typically Manty bells-and-whistles approach of putting the tractor inside
the pod, Shannon had simply built a very stealthy pod-sized platform which
consisted of nothing except a solid mass of tractor beams and a receiver for
beamed power from the ships which deployed it. Each "donkey" had the
capacity to tow ten pods, and a Sovereign of Space-class SD(P) had
enough tractors to tow twenty of them. Better yet, they could actually be
ganged together, as long as all the pods in the gang could be lined up for
power transmission from the mother ship. In theory, they could have been
stacked three tiers deep, with each donkey towing ten more donkeys, each towing
ten more donkeys, each . . . .
If Lester
Tourville had so chosen, his two hundred and forty superdreadnoughts could—in
theory—have towed 4.8 million pods. Except for the minor fact that the
drag would have reduced them to negative acceleration numbers. Not to mention
the fact that he didn't begin to have the power transmission capability to feed
that many donkeys. Still, he could tow quite a lot of them, and the readiness
numbers on the display gave him a sense of profound satisfaction. He studied
them a moment longer, then looked at Lieutenant Anita Eisenberg, his absurdly
youthful communications officer.
"What's
the latest from Admiral Diamato, Ace?"
"No
change, Sir. He still can't get a clear look. Their fortresses and the LACs
deployed to cover the Junction are picking off his recon platforms before they
get close enough for that. But he still hasn't seen any hyper-capable units
headed his way, and he's positive they're still coming through from Trevor's
Star. No one's started in-system yet, though."
"Thank
you," Tourville said, and cocked an eyebrow at DeLaney.
The chief
of staff clearly had been running through the same mental math he had, and she
grimaced.
"They've
been coming through for over forty-five minutes now, Boss. By my calculations,
that means at least twenty-four wallers so far."
"And
it means they're planning on bringing through a lot more than that,"
Tourville agreed. "They could have put twenty-seven through in a
mass transit and been headed after us over half an hour ago. The only reason to
delay this long is because they figure they can't afford to lock the Junction
down . . . because they've got one hell of a lot more than twenty-seven wallers
waiting to come up our backside."
"Still,
Boss, if I were them, I might be thinking about sending some of the ships I've
already got through the Junction after us."
"No
way." Tourville shook his head. "I wish to hell they would, but the
Manties picked their best people to command Home Fleet, Third Fleet, and Eighth
Fleet. I've studied NavInt's files on all three of them, and they aren't going
to cooperate with our plans worth a damn.
"D'Orville's
probably the most conventional thinker of the three, but he's also got the
simplest equation . . . and plenty of guts. He can't let us get any closer to
Sphinx than he can possibly help, so he's going to hit us head on, as far out
as he can. He's going to get clobbered. In fact, I'll be surprised if any of
his superdreadnoughts survive. But like you just said, it's going to be ugly
for both sides, and our own losses are going to be heavy. He knows that, and he
probably figures he can score at least a one-for-one exchange rate, despite the
tonnage ratios. I think he may be being a little optimistic, but not very much.
So given the combat strength he thinks he's up against, he probably figures
he'll hurt us so badly we won't be able to close through the fixed inner-system
defenses and missile pods. And if his analysis of the balance of forces was
correct, he'd be right."
Tourville
and his chief of staff looked at one another, and this time their smiles were
hard. It was entirely possible RHNS Guerriere would be among the
"heavy losses" the admiral had just predicted his fleet was going to
suffer. But at this moment, an even exchange rate was actually heavily in the
Republic's favor in the merciless mathematics of war . . . and those losses
were also part of the bait in the trap Thomas Theisman and his Octagon planning
staff had crafted.
"Kuzak's
more of a free-thinker than D'Orville," Tourville continued. "I'm
sure what she's doing right now has their Admiralty's approval, but even if it
didn't, she'd do it anyway, on her own initiative. She knows exactly what's
going to happen to D'Orville, and to us, and she knows she can't possibly get
here in time to affect that outcome. So she's not going to split up her forces
and send them in where we could chop them up in detail. Yes, she could've sent
a couple of battle squadrons ahead, micro-jumped out to the side and then come
back in directly behind us, assuming their astrogation was good enough. But
unless she's got those new missiles, any small force she sent after us
would get torn apart by the weight of fire we could send back at it.
"So, she's
going to wait until she gets everything she's got through the Junction. Then
she's going to do her micro-jumping and come in behind us—or more likely on
our flank, especially, if we're driven back from Sphinx by our losses—as
quickly as she can. She'll be too far behind to overhaul us, even with her
acceleration advantage, if she has to come in astern, but she'll figure to put
enough time pressure on us to limit the amount of damage we can do. At least,
she'll figure, she can keep us from moving on from Sphinx to Manticore, and
that would save about seventy percent of the system's total industry.
"The
fact that she's waiting is the conclusive proof that she doesn't have any—or
not very many, at least—of the new missiles, either. If she had a couple of battle
squadrons equipped with them, then it would have made enormous sense to send
them in, even in isolation. Their accuracy advantage would have been crushing
enough to let them do heavy damage to us before we ever met D'Orville. Probably
not enough to stop us, but maybe enough to even the odds between us and Home
Fleet."
"And
what about Harrington, Boss?" DeLaney asked quietly, when he paused.
"Harrington's
probably the most dangerous of the lot," Tourville said, "and not
just because we know Eighth Fleet's reequipped with at least some of the
new missiles. She's got more actual combat experience than D'Orville or Kuzak,
and she's sneaky as hell.
"But
what's happening out at the Junction is tempting me to hope we filled an inside
straight on the draw. If Eighth Fleet had been in position to intervene, Kuzak
wouldn't be coming through the Junction; Harrington would, and we'd have
had two or three of her battle squadrons ripping our ass off already. Assuming
of course that Admiral Chin didn't have a little to say about it. So it's
beginning to look as if Eighth Fleet really may be off on an operation of its
own. I'm not planning on counting on that just yet—there could be any number of
other explanations—but that's not going to keep me from hoping."
"I
think I agree with you, Boss," DeLaney said, then chuckled. "I know
Beatrice Bravo was specifically planned to mousetrap Eighth Fleet, and I guess
I ought to be disappointed if we're not going to get it, too. But having seen
what the lady can do, I'll be just delighted if 'the Salamander' is
somewhere else while we're taking on the Manty home system's defenses!"
"I'm
tempted to concur," Tourville agreed. "Taking out Eighth Fleet on top
of everything else would certainly be a deathblow, but even with Eighth Fleet intact
and Harrington to run it, the Manties are done if we take out this system's
shipyards and both of the fleets they have defending them."
* * *
"We're
coming down on sixty-five and a half million kilometers, Sir," Commander
Adamson said.
"Thank
you, Frazier."
Lester
Tourville drew a deep breath. Eight minutes had passed since Adamson first
informed him that they were into MDM range of the Manties. Second Fleet was
still nineteen minutes short of its projected turnover point, but the range
couldn't keep dropping forever without the Manties firing. The range between
the two fleets had already fallen to 65,767,000 kilometers. Second Fleet's
velocity was up to 20,866 kilometers per second; Home Fleet's was 19,923 KPS,
and they'd closed the range between them by almost seventy-seven million
kilometers. Tourville was still better than 98,835,000 kilometers from Sphinx,
but from his current base velocity, his MDMs' range against the planet was
almost 72,030,000 kilometers. The Manties weren't going to let him get much
closer unchallenged.
"Open
fire, Frazier," he said.
* * *
The first
missile impeller signatures began to speckle the plot, and Sebastian D'Orville
drew a deep breath as the first, massive salvo streaked towards his command.
Obviously, they had had a lot of pods on tow, he thought as he
contemplated its numbers. More than he'd thought they had tractors for,
actually. But their first salvo would be the least accurate against his EW, he
reminded himself. And in the meantime, he had a few missile pods of his own.
"Engage
as specified, Captain Gwynett," he said formally and watched his own
missile's icons streaking outward across the plot.
That was
when the enemy launched his second impossibly dense salvo.
* * *
Sebastian
D'Orville's forty-eight pre-pod superdreadnoughts carried 27,840 pods
externally, and theoretically, they could have deployed all of them in a single
massive wave. In fact, Home Fleet carried a total of almost forty-nine thousand
pods, with well over half a million missiles. Lester Tourville's slightly
larger superdreadnoughts carried fewer pods, and each of those pods carried
fewer missiles, because of the size penalty their bulkier MDMs imposed. So
although he had two and a half times as many ships, he had barely twice as many
pods, and each of those pods carried seventeen percent fewer missiles. He
actually had "only" sixty-four percent more total missiles than Home
Fleet.
But Lester
Tourville also had Shannon Foraker's "donkey," and that meant every
one of Sebastian D'Orville assumptions about the number and size of the salvos
he could throw was fatally flawed. And what else he had was far more
control channels for the missiles he carried. Not all of the forty-two
Manticoran, Grayson, and Andermani SD(P)s confronting him were Keyhole-capable.
Still, the majority of them were, and the pod-layers as a group could
simultaneously control an average of four hundred missiles each. But the older,
pre-pod ships could control only a hundred apiece, whereas each of Tourville's
ships had control links for three hundred and fifty missiles, and by using
Shannon Foraker's rotating control technique, they could increase that number
by approximately sixty percent. So whereas Home Fleet could effectively control
a total of just under twenty-two thousand missiles per salvo, Second Fleet
could control eighty-four thousand without rotating control links.
Worse, it could have increased that total to almost a hundred and thirty-five
thousand, if it was prepared to accept somewhat lower hit probabilities, and the
"donkey" meant Tourville could actually have deployed the pods to
fire that many.
Manticoran
fire control was better, Manticoran electronic warfare capabilities and
penetration aids were better, and Manticoran MDM's were both faster and more
agile. Sebastian D'Orville could confidently expect to score a significantly
higher percentage of hits, but that couldn't offset the fact that Second
Fleet could control over six times as many missiles. Even if Tourville's hit
probabilities had been only half as good as his, the Republic would have scored
three times as many hits.
It wasn't
quite as bad for the Alliance as the raw numbers suggested. For one thing,
deploying that many missiles and launching them without allowing their impeller
wedges to cut one another's telemetry links, was a far from trivial challenge.
In fact, Tourville had decided to limit himself to no more than eighty percent
of his theoretical maximum weight of fire. And to clear the firing and control
arcs for even that many missiles, he'd been forced to spread his squadrons and
their lumpy trails of donkeys and pods more broadly than he'd really wanted to.
The separation between his units, necessary for effective offensive fire
control, made it more difficult for them to coordinate their defensive fire.
On the other hand, Havenite counter-missile doctrine relied so much more
heavily than Manticoran doctrine did on mass, as opposed to accuracy, that the
sacrifice was less significant than it might have been.
Even now,
no one on either side knew exactly what would happen when fleets of pod-layers
this size engaged one another. There was simply no experiential meterstick,
because no one had ever done it before. For that matter, no battle in
history had yet seen almost three hundred and fifty superdreadnoughts of
any kind engage in what could only be a fight to the death. Over the
centuries, tactical formalism had become the rule, with indecisive battles and
limited losses. That might have changed, at least in this corner of the galaxy,
but even here, most of the combatants were still feeling their way into the
changing realities of interstellar carnage.
The Battle
of Manticore would be something new and unique in the annals of deep-space
combat. Everyone in both fleets knew that.
But that
was all they knew as the missiles began to launch.
* * *
The range
at launch was 65,770,000 kilometers. Flight time for Home Fleet's faster MDMs
was 7.6 minutes, and their closing speed as they streaked into Second Fleet's
teeth was 246,972 kilometers per second. Second Fleet's slower missiles took
fifteen more seconds to reach their targets, and had a closing speed of
"only" 237,655 KPS.
At those
speeds, both sides' defenses were stretched to and beyond the theoretical
limits of their capabilities. Manticore's longer-ranged counter-missiles, and
the greater capability of the Katanas' in the fleet defense role, gave
D'Orville's ships a significant advantage, but nota big enough one. Not the one
he'd anticipated against the weight of fire he'd expected.
Home
Fleet's Fire Plan Avalanche called for the pre-pod superdreadnoughts to deploy
their pods as quickly as possible. They had to jettison them anyway, in order
to clear their own defensive systems, and D'Orville had known from the
beginning that he was going to lose a huge percentage of their total pod loads
without ever actually firing their missiles. There was nothing he could do
about that, however, and the older ships passed control of as many of their
additional missiles as they could to their more capable consorts.
The
Medusa, Harrington, Adler, and Invictus-class ships
didn't deploy a single pod of their own in the initial broadsides. They used
solely the pods deployed by D'Orville's older ships, reserving their better
protected, internally stowed pods for the follow-up salvos it was at least
possible they might live to launch. And since they were firing pods which had
been effectively deployed in a single massive pattern, Avalanche also fired its
salvos in closer, more tightly spaced intervals than the Republican Navy had
yet seen out of any Allied fleet. In fact, Avalanche was almost—not quite, but almost—conceptually
identical to Shannon Foraker's rotating control doctrine.
Each
fleet's salvo density took the other fleet by surprise. Neither had anticipated
such heavy fire . . . but Tourville's projections had been closer than
D'Orville's to what he actually got. D'Orville had expected the battle to be
short and violent, lasting no more than fifteen or twenty minutes.
The first
half of his expectations was more than fulfilled.
In the
seven and a half minutes it took the lead salvo to cross between Home Fleet and
Second Fleet, Sebastian D'Orville's ships fired seven salvos at
sixty-five-second intervals, each of 1,800 pods, containing a total of 21,600
missiles. Over a hundred and fifty thousand missiles, the maximum Home Fleet's
fire control could manage, went screaming through space . . . and 524,000
Havenite missiles rampaged out to meet them. Fire control sensors and
reconnaissance platforms all over the star system found themselves half-blinded
by the interference and massive impeller source of almost seven hundred
thousand attack missiles and many times that many counter-missiles. And
then the EW platforms began to add their own blinding efforts to the chaos.
No human
could have hoped to sort it out, keep track of it. There was simply no way
protoplasmic brains could do it. Tactical officers concentrated on their own
tiny pieces of the howling maelstrom, guiding their attack missiles, allocating
their defensive missiles. Counter-missiles and MDMs blotted one another from
existence as their impeller wedges slammed together. Decoys, jammers, Dazzlers,
and Dragons Teeth matched electronic wiles against tactical officers' telemetry
links and onboard control systems. Standard counter-missiles, Mark 31s, and
Vipers hurled themselves into the teeth of the mighty salvos. Great gaps and
gulfs appeared in the onrushing wavefronts of destruction, but the gaps closed.
The gulfs filled in. Laser clusters blazed in desperate last-ditch efforts to
intercept missiles with closing speeds eighty percent that of light. MDMs lost
their targets, reacquired, lost them again in the howling confusion. Onboard
AIs took whatever targets they could find, and the sudden, abrupt changes in
their targeting solutions made their final approach runs even more erratic and
unpredictable.
And then
wave after wave of laser heads began to detonate. Not in scores, or hundreds,
or even in thousands. In tens of thousands in each roaring comber of
fury.
The battle
no one had been able to adequately envision was over in 11.9 minutes from the
moment the first missile launched.
* * *
"My
God," someone whispered on HMS King Roger III's flag bridge.
Theodosia
Kuzak didn't know who it was. It didn't matter. The imagery coming in from the
FTL surveillance platforms was brutally clear.
Home Fleet
was . . . gone. Simply gone.
Ninety
superdreadnoughts, thirty-one battlecruisers and heavy cruisers, and twenty-six
light cruisers had been effectively destroyed in less than twelve minutes. At
least twenty shattered, broken hulks continued to coast towards the hyper
limit, but they were only wrecks, gutted hulls streaming atmosphere, debris,
and life pods while deep within them frantic rescue parties raced against time,
fighting with grim determination and courage about which all too often no one
would ever know, to rescue trapped and wounded crewmates.
But Home
Fleet had not died alone. Sebastian D'Orville mght have been taken by surprise
by the weight of Second Fleet's fire, and his computation of the exchange rate
might have been overly optimistic as a result, but his ships and people had
struck back hard. Ninety-seven Republican ships of the wall had been destroyed
outright or beaten into dead, shattered hulks. Nineteen more had lost at least
one impeller ring completely. And of the remaining hundred and twenty-four
SD(P)s Lester Tourville had taken into the battle, exactly eleven were
undamaged.
Second
Fleet's brutally winnowed ranks continued onward, but its acceleration had been
reduced to less than 2.5 KPS2 by its cripples. At that rate, it
would be unable to decelerate for its zero/zero intercept with Sphinx, and the
Manticoran System's defenders weren't done with it yet.
Home
Fleet's LAC screen had suffered massive losses of its own, mostly from MDMs
which had lost their original targets and taken whatever they could find in
exchange. Despite that, over two thousand of them survived, and they were
driving hard to get into their own range of Second Fleet. They could expect to
take fewer losses, now that they were free to maneuver defensively and to
protect themselves, not Home Fleet's superdreadnoughts, and their crews had
only one thought in mind.
More LACs
were still streaming towards Second Fleet from the inner system, as well, and
it was obvious the Havenites had no desire to tangle with Sphinx's fixed
defenses, at least until they could get their own damages sorted out. Second
Fleet was changing course, crabbing away from Sphinx as it shepherded its cripples
protectively out of harm's way.
But that,
Theodosia Kuzak thought grimly, was going to prove just a bit more difficult
than the bastards thought.
"How
much longer?" she asked harshly.
"Our
last units should clear the Junction in the next eleven minutes, Ma'am,"
Captain Smithson said.
"Good."
Kuzak nodded once, then turned to Commander Astrid Steen, her staff astrogator.
"Plot
me a couple of micro jumps, Astrid," she said coldly. "Those
people have just had the crap kicked out of them. Now we're going to finish
the job Home Fleet began."
* * *
"Admiral
Kuzak's preparing to head in-system, Your Grace," Harper Brantley said
quietly.
"Thank
you, Harper."
Honor
looked up from the holographic com display hovering above the briefing room's
table at which she, Nimitz, Mercedes Brigham, Rafael Cardones, and Andrea
Jaruwalski sat under her armsmen's watchful eye. The display was separated into
individual quadrants, showing the faces of Vizeadmiral Hasselberg, Judah
Yanakov, Samuel Miklós, and the commanders of every squadron in company with
Imperator. Alice Truman and Alistair McKeon weren't there, and she tried to
hide the cold, bleak anxiety she felt at their absence.
"Please
inform the Admiral that we're still on schedule for our own ETA," Honor
continued.
"Of
course, Your Grace," her communications officer said quietly, and
withdrew. The briefing room hatch closed behind him, and Honor returned her
attention to the discussion at hand.
Most of the
faces on her display showed a greater or lesser degree of shock at the total
destruction of Home Fleet, and no wonder. Not only had the sheer weight of the
Havenites' fire come as a complete surprise, but all of the Alliance's
partners had taken losses when it hit. Of the ninety superdreadnoughts which
had just been destroyed, twelve had been units of the Grayson Space Navy, and
another twenty-six had been Andermani.
Of all her
subordinates, Yanakov seemed least shocked. Or, at least, the least affected by
whatever shock he felt. But, then, Judah had been present when Giscard leveled
the Basilisk System's infrastructure in the last war, and his command had been
part of Hamish's fleet for Operation Buttercup. And before that, he'd been at
the First and Fourth Battles of Yeltsin. Three quarters of the pre-Alliance
Grayson Space Navy had been wiped out in First Yeltsin, and half its
superdreadnought strength had been destroyed at Fourth Yeltsin. And he was the
man whose task force had crushed the defensive forces deployed to cover Lovat.
Despite his youth—and he was almost as young as his prolong made him look—he'd
seen more carnage than any other flag officer on Honor's display.
Almost as
much as she had.
Hasselberg
had looked almost stunned when the initial reports came in. It hadn't been just
the scale of the destruction. It had also been its speed, for the Andermani
Navy had never experienced anything like it. Well, to be fair, neither had the Manticoran
Navy, until this afternoon, but at least Manticore and Grayson had been
granted some prior experience. They'd had firsthand practice adjusting to
abrupt, wrenching changes in the paradigm of combat. The Empire had not, and
the reality had come to the vizeadmiral like some hideous nightmare,
despite all the effort he'd spent conscientiously trying to prepare himself for
the realities of modern warfare.
But of them
all, Honor thought, Bin-hwei Morser's reaction was the most interesting. She
wasn't simply an admiral; she was also Graffin von Grau. Like Hasselberg
himself, she was a member of the Empire's warrior aristocracy, and she was
clearly one of those who took the Andermani martial tradition seriously. She
might cherish doubts about her Emperor's decision to ally himself with the Star
Kingdom which had been the Empire's traditional rival in areas like Silesia for
so long, but that didn't matter. Not anymore, not now. Her dark eyes—remarkably
like Allison Harrington's, or Honor's own, now that Honor thought about it—were
narrow and intense, focused and fiery with purpose.
"I
wish Admiral Kuzak had waited for us," Miklós said after a moment.
"I'd feel a lot better if we were going in with her, especially after
seeing how many birds these people can launch. She's still outnumbered better
than two-to-one in wallers, and Alice is going to be outnumbered almost that
badly in LACs."
"She
can't wait, Samuel," Yanakov disagreed. "I don't have any idea how
long it took the Peeps to deploy that many pods, however the hell they did it,
but they had to use up most of their ammo to do it. She needs to hit them
before they can pull out and restock their magazines. And even if that weren't
a consideration, right now, the Peeps are edging away from Sphinx. She can't be
sure they'll continue to do that if she doesn't move in now. If they get
themselves sorted out, decide their damages aren't that bad after all, they've
still got the strength—or close to it—to stand up to Sphinx's close-in
defenses. And even if the defenses destroyed everything they've got left,
they'd last long enough to take out virtually all of the planet's orbital
infrastructure."
He smiled
thinly.
"We
Graysons have had a lot of experience worrying about what might happen to our
orbital habitats. Trust me, I know exactly what's going through Admiral Kuzak's
mind. She's got to keep the pressure on if she's going to keep them
running."
"Judah's
right," Honor said. "Our lead superdreadnought won't even transit the
Junction for another eight minutes. We'll need another seventy-five minutes
just to get the superdreadnoughts and your carriers through, Samuel. That's
almost an hour and a half. She can't give them that long to think about things,
not when they're already so close to the planet."
She spoke
calmly, almost dispassionately, but she tasted the emotions of her staffers
and, especially, her flag captain. They knew what was hidden behind that
façade, she thought. Knew she couldn't forget that the planet they were talking
about was the world of her birth. That all too many of the people on it were people
she'd known all her life—family, friends. That it was the homeworld of the
entire treecat species.
But what
not even they knew was that at this very moment, both of her parents, and her
sister and brother, were on Sphinx visiting Honor's Aunt Clarissa.
"The
question before us," she continued, "is what we do after we
make transit."
"We'll
probably have instructions from the Admiralty, Your Grace," Mercedes
Brigham pointed out. She smiled without any humor at all. "Thanks to the
grav com, the central command can actually give real-time orders at
interplanetary distances now."
"You
may be right," Honor acknowledged. "So far, though, Admiral
Caparelli's been refraining from backseat driving. And even if he doesn't, I
want all of us to be thinking on the same page."
"One
thing I don't believe we can do, Your Grace," Cardones said, "is
commit ourselves before all our units have passed through the Junction."
Despite his
relatively junior rank, the flag officers listened carefully. As Honor's flag
captain, he was her tactical deputy.
"I
strongly agree, Your Grace," Brigham said. "And at least we should
have time to see how the situation's developing before we commit."
"I
agree, too," Honor said. "But let's get some lighter units through as
quickly as we can. Admiral Oversteegen, I want your squadron to take lead and
transit as soon as you reach the terminus. Commodore Bradshaw and Commodore
Fanaafi, you and your Saganami-Cs are attached to Admiral
Oversteegan." She smiled grimly. "If the Havenites are still trying
to keep an eye on the Junction, let's give whoever's minding their drones
something else to worry about."
"Sir,
we've got impeller signatures moving clear of the Junction!" Commander
Zucker said sharply.
"How
many?" Diamato asked tautly.
"Hard
to say with all this wedge interference, Sir." Zucker grimaced. "I
make it at least fifty, though."
"Right."
Diamato nodded and looked at his com officer. "Immediate priority for the
Flag. Tell them we have fifty-plus wallers deploying for a hyper translation!
Tell them—"
He broke
off, as the deploying impeller signatures abruptly vanished.
"Correction!"
he said sharply. "Inform the Flag that fifty-plus wallers have just
translated out!"
* * *
"Captain
Houellebecq says damage control has that fire in CIC under control, Sir."
"Thank
you, Ace." Lester Tourville nodded to Lieutenant Eisenberg, and then
returned his attention to Captain DeLaney.
"The
numbers are still coming in, Boss," the chief of staff told him, her
expression grim. "So far, they don't sound good. At the moment, it sounds
like we can write off over half our wall of battle. Probably more than that, if
we don't control the star system when the dust settles."
"We
always knew we were going to get hammered," Tourville said, his own voice
and expression calmer than DeLaney's. And it was true. His losses were twelve
percent higher than his pre-battle estimate—almost twenty-five percent higher
than the Octogan staff weenies had estimated—because he hadn't anticipated how
tightly the Manties would bunch their salvos. But from the beginning, everyone
had understood that Second Fleet was going to take severe losses.
"But
we cost them almost as many ships of the wall as we lost," he continued,
"and if NavInt's estimates are accurate, we've got damned near three times
as many of them as they do. Did. Not to mention the fact that we're about to
take at least temporary control of their home star system away from them."
"I
know," DeLaney said. "But I'm a little concerned about their LACs.
We've got twenty-three hundred of them still coming in on us, and we're a lot
lower on ammo than I'd like. We've fired off sixty percent of our MDMs, and
we've lost effectively half our wall. I don't have exact numbers, but the
current availability has to be no more than about two hundred thousand rounds.
If we burn them trying to keep their Shrikes out of knife range, we're
going to be sucking vacuum against Third Fleet."
"Then
we'll have to let the Cimeterres and the screen fend off their
LACs," Tourville said unflinchingly. "They'll get hammered at least
as badly as we did, but they'll do the job."
"Yes,
Sir." DeLaney gave herself a little shake, then bobbed her head in
agreement. "I know we're still on profile for the operation, Boss. I guess
I just never really thought about the sheer scale of things. Not
emotionally."
"I
made myself sit down and do that the day Thomas Theisman and Arnaud Marquette
explained Beatrice to us," Tourville said grimly. "I didn't like it
then, and I don't like it now. For that matter, they didn't like it. But
it's a price we can afford to pay if it ends this goddamned war."
"Yes,
Sir."
"Frazier."
"Yes,
Sir?"
"What's
our—"
"Excuse
me, Sir!" Lieutenant Eisenberg said suddenly, pressing her hand to her
earbug as she listened intently. "Admiral Diamato says the Manties have
just translated into hyper!"
"And
so it begins," Tourville murmured softly, then gave his head an irritated
shake as he realized how pretentious that sounded.
But that
didn't make it untrue, and he watched the master plot intently, waiting for
Kuzak's ships to reappear upon it.
He didn't
have to wait long. Less than fifteen minutes after they'd vanished from the
Junction, they reappeared dangerously close to the RZ's boundary. It was an
impressive display of pinpoint astrogation—one that showed a steel-nerved
willingness to cur their margin razor thin. And one which also put the Manties
well out on Second Fleet's flank and headed for Sphinx on a least-time course.
"Exactly
where I would have placed them myself," he said quietly to DeLaney, who
nodded vigorously.
Second
Fleet had started edging away from its original Sphinx-bound vector from the
moment the shooting stopped. Five minutes later, it had altered course much
more sharply, and at the moment, it was very obviously retreating from its
original objective. In fact, Tourville had made the decision to sacrifice his
worst lamed cripples within ten minutes. Any ship which couldn't produce an
acceleration of at least 370 g had been abandoned, scuttling charges
set. He hadn't liked doing that, but he couldn't afford to be hampered by them
even if the rest of Beatrice worked perfectly. Even without them, Second
Fleet's current maximum acceleration was barely 3.6 KPS2, and that
was too low for it to completely avoid the Sphinx defenses' missile envelope,
whatever he did. Which didn't even consider the vengeful presence of Third
Fleet coming in from the side to pin him between Sphinx and its own batteries.
Under the
circumstances, Tourville had had no choice—for several reasons—but to settle on
a course which formed a sharp angle from his original vector. Since he couldn't
avoid going at least as far as Sphinx, he had pitched up vertically, to climb
above the plane of the ecliptic, while simultaneously changing heading by 135°.
That let him pile on side vector to generate as much separation from the planet
as he could get as he slid past it . . . which also happened to be the fastest
way out of the system. The Manticoran resonance zone was so much
"taller" than it was "broad" that the faces of the cone
were almost parallel to one another, even this close to its base. Sphinx lay
102,002,500 kilometers inside the zone, and his original heading had been
directly towards the planet, which defined just how much side vector he
actually needed.
Even on his
current profile, his restricted acceleration meant he'd pass within less than
forty million kilometers of Sphinx, but he'd be further out—and longer getting
there—than almost any other heading would have produced. If he hadn't changed
course at all, he would have overflown Sphinx (and its defenses) seventy
minutes after the brief, titanic engagement with Home Fleet, at an effective
range of zero. If he'd changed heading by ninety degrees, he would have made
his closest approach to Sphinx eight minutes later than that, at a range of
only thirty-five million kilometers. On his current heading, his units' closest
approach would come eighty-three minutes after changing course, and the range
would be 39,172,200 kilometers.
He didn't
much care for any of those options, given the pounding Home Fleet had given
him, but the one he'd chosen was the best of the lot. It was still going to
give the planet's defenders a shot, which he'd hoped wouldn't happen—yet, at
least—but it would be long-ranged enough to degrade the Manties' accuracy, and
the fire wouldn't be coming straight into his teeth the way Home Fleet's had.
His missile defenses would be far more effective against whatever Sphinx had,
and he frankly doubted that it had anything as heavy as ninety SDs had been
able to hand out, anyway. And he'd needed to break back out across the RZ
boundary for several reasons. Partly to get his cripples safely out of harm's
way, but mostly because—as Taverner had just pointed out—he was critically low
on ammunition. He needed to rendezvous with his ammunition ships and restock
his magazines before driving back into the system defenses.
But Sphinx
wasn't all he had to worry about, and Kuzak had dropped her own units in
further "up" the zone's outer surface than he had. That put her in a
position to move quickly to Sphinx's relief, accelerating directly towards the
planet on a least-time course along the shortest passage through the RZ . . .
which would also catch him between her fire and Sphinx's. In fact, Third Fleet
would be less than 33,000,000 kilometers from him at the moment of his closest
approach to Sphinx. Yet if he turned away from her, he would have no
choice but to flee deeper and deeper into the resonance zone (without
reammunitioning), and her higher base acceleration would readily permit her to
overhaul him there. So he had no choice but to hold his present course.
It was a
masterful move on Kuzak's part . . . and exactly the one Lester Tourville had
hoped for.
* * *
The
orphaned LAC survivors of Sebastian D'Orville's fleet came slashing in towards
Second Fleet's screening units.
The screen
had taken losses of its own—heavy ones—during the massive missile exchange,
but, like the Manticoran LACs, the damage had been purely collateral. No one
had been wasting missiles deliberately trying to hit battlecruisers when there
were SD(P)s shooting back. But the inaccuracy for which long-range MDM fire had
become justly famed had come into play, and "lost" missiles intended
for superdreadnoughts had latched onto whatever targets they could find.
There were
still thirty-three battlecruisers and forty-one heavy cruisers waiting for the
incoming strike, ready to begin punching missiles at it as soon as they had the
range. But the Manticoran LACs' closing velocity was over fifty thousand
kilometers per second. Current-generation Havenite single-drive missiles had a
powered range from rest of just over seven million kilometers. Given the
geometry, they had a theoretical maximum range of almost 16.5 million, as did
the LACs' attack missiles. That sounded like a lot . . . except that, at the
Manticorans' closing velocity, they would streak straight across the entire
engagement envelope in 317 seconds.
That
wouldn't give much time for a lot of launches, and Republican accuracy against
Alliance LAC electronic warfare capabilities was poor.
* * *
"Get
on them! Get on them!" Captain Alice Smirnoff barked.
She was
Second Fleet's senior surviving COLAC, and the crews of her twenty-seven
hundred LACs, positioned between the cruisers screening Lester Tourville's
battered ships of the wall and the incoming Manties, fought manfully to obey
her orders.
Over two
thirds of Smirnoff's ships were Cimeterre Alpha and Cimeterre Beta
birds, built around the new fission power plants and improved capacitors
Shannon Foraker and her technical crews had been able to produce after the
windfall of technical data from Erewhon.
The
Alphas were equipped with lasers powerful enough to punch through the
sidewalls and armor of destroyers and cruisers at normal engagement ranges.
They couldn't match the performance of the massive grasers of the Alliance's
Shrikes, but they were far more dangerous in energy range than any
Republican LAC had ever been before. The Betas weren't a lot more combat
capable than the original Cimeterres had been, since they were still
armed solely with missiles and those missiles hadn't been significantly
improved. But—like the Alphas—they had bow walls and vastly enhanced
power budgets and endurance.
Now, for
the first time, they went up against the Alliance in truly significant numbers.
The
engagement was brief. It had to be, with the Manticorans barreling in at such a
high closing velocity. Smirnoff had arranged her LACs "above" and
"below" the sensor and firing arcs she'd left open for the screen,
and her own shorter-legged missiles streaked towards the incoming strike. She
had more units then the Manties did, but the Alliance's superior EW more than
offset her sheer numerical advantage.
Her Alphas
never really got the chance to use their lasers. Their targets were too hard to
lock up, streaking across their engagement window too quickly, and her firing
angle meant all too many of the laser shots which were fired wasted themselves
on the roofs or bellies of their targets' wedges. But her Betas'
missiles, although less accurate and capable than the Katanas' Vipers,
were fired in enormous numbers.
Six hundred
of the Alliance LACs were killed in the fleeting moments Smirnoff had to engage
them, but at a price. It was the first time, the Allied LAC crews had gone up
against someone else's LAC bow walls, but Alice Truman's reports from Lovat had
been taken to heart. They might never have encountered it before, but
they'd allowed for the possibility, and although the new technology made the
new Republican LACs far harder to kill, they still lost at a two-to-one rate as
the Allied strike roared past them, into the teeth of the screen's fire.
The screen
killed another three hundred, but the price it paid for its success was far
higher than the one Smirnoff had paid. The Alliance lost six thousand men and
women aboard the LACs Smirnoff's units had killed, and she'd lost roughly
eighteen thousand, in return. Now the Alliance lost another three thousand
people with the LACs the screen had killed. But as the surviving graser-armed
Shrikes crashed over the screening cruisers which could not avoid them,
they wreaked havoc.
There were
"only" sixteen hundred Allied LACs left, but nine hundred of them
were Shrikes, and they ignored the heavy cruisers. Those they
left to the missile-armed Ferrets, whose light shipkillers were unlikely
to do more than scratch the paint of a capital ship. Since they couldn't hurt
wallers anyway, there was no point saving them, and three hundred Ferrets
flung every missile they had into the teeth of Second Fleet's heavy cruisers.
They fired at the last moment, at the shortest possible range, when their
victims' defenses would have effectively no time at all to engage with anything
except laser clusters. They paid heavily to get to that range, but when they
reached it, they spewed out well over sixteen thousand shipkillers.
Those
missiles carried only destroyer-weight laser heads, but a heavy cruiser's
sidewalls were weaker than a battlecruiser's, and it mounted very little armor
compared to any capital ship. Certainly not enough to survive against a fire
plan which hit each ship with four hundred missiles from a range at which each
laser cluster had time for—at most—a single shot.
The
Ferrets fired at a range of 182,000 kilometers, and it took their missiles
barely two seconds to cross the range. In those two seconds the heavy cruisers'
desperate offensive fire killed another hundred and twelve LACs, but when the
surviving Ferrets crossed the screen's position one and a half seconds
behind their missiles, they did it in the glaring light of the failing fusion
plants of the cruisers they had just slaughtered.
None of the
screen's heavy cruisers, and very few of the fifty thousand men and women
aboard them, survived.
The
battlecruisers fared no better. There were fewer of them, and three times as
many attackers. True, each of those attackers got only a single shot, but they
were using grasers as powerful as most battlecruisers' chase weapons. They
drove straight into the teeth of the battlecruisers' broadsides, closing with
grim determination, and they fired at a white-knuckle range of less than
seventy-five thousand kilometers.
Four
hundred and eighty-one Shrikes and roughly another five thousand Allied
personnel died, blown apart by the battlecruisers' energy weapons in the brief
engagement window they had. In return, twenty-eight Republican battlecruisers
were completely destroyed, five more were reduced to shattered, broken wrecks,
and seventy-seven thousand more of Lester Tourville's personnel were killed.
But in its
destruction, Second Fleet's screen had done its job. The LACs which survived
the exchange were a broken force, streaming through and past Tourville's
surviving superdreadnoughts so rapidly not even the Shrikes had time to
inflict significant damage on such massively armored targets. Not without
numbers they no longer had.
* * *
"I've
got the preliminary figures, Boss," Molly DeLaney said. Her expression and
hoarse voice showed the strain they were all under, Tourville thought, and
nodded for her to continue without ever taking his own attention from the plot.
"It
looks like only about two hundred of their LACs got away," his chief of
staff said. "The wall's energy weapons managed to nail most of the others
as they crossed our vector."
"Thank
you," Tourville said, and closed his eyes briefly.
My God, he thought. I came into this thinking I knew what
the casualties were going to be like, but I didn't. Neither did Tom Theisman,
really. No one could have projected this kind of carnage, because no one's had
any experience, even now, with this kind of fight. Both sides are so far
outside our standard operational doctrines that we're in virtually unknown
territory. Podnaughts aren't supposed to close head on until they get into
mutual suicide range. And we're not supposed to let LACs get that close to our
starships. Our wall is supposed to be able to kill them before they ever get to
us. But I didn't have the missiles left to do it, and they whipped through our
engagement window so quickly our energy weapons couldn't stop them in time,
either.
He opened
his eyes again, looking back into the plot. In a galaxy where indecisive
maneuvers had been the norm for so many centuries, two decades—even two decades
like the ones which had begun at Hancock Station—simply hadn't been enough to prepare
anyone for this.
But the
galaxy had better get used to it, he thought grimly. Because one thing he knew;
the lethal genies were out of the bottle, and no one was going to get them back
inside it.
"Any
new orders, Sir?" DeLaney asked, and he shook his head.
"No."
* * *
"Hyper
footprint at two-point-three-six million kilometers!" Commander Zucker
barked. "Many footprints!"
Oliver
Diamato's head whipped around as the erupting footprints speckled the plot.
There were eighteen of them, and he swore with silent, vicious venom as they
sparkled like curses in the display.
Whoever had
taken the Sherman as his intended target had come in far closer than
most of the others, but all of them showed remarkably good astrogation for such
a short jump. Then the vector readouts came up, and he swore again. From their
headings, and especially from their velocity numbers, they'd obviously managed
to hyper out of the Junction without his ever noticing, then come back in after
building their velocity in hyper, so the jump wasn't quite a short as he'd
thought it was.
Not that he
had much time to think about it.
"Missile
launch!" Zucker said. "Many missiles, incom—!"
Diamato's
mouth had opened before the ops officer spoke, and his order chopped off the
end of Zucker's announcement.
"All
units, Code Zebra!" he barked.
RHNS
William T. Sherman blinked into hyper less than three seconds before HMS
Nike's missiles would have detonated. Two of Diamato's other battlecruisers
were less fortunate, a bit slower off the mark. They took hits—RHNS Count
Maresuke Nogi lost most of her after impeller ring—but they, too, managed
to escape into hyper.
Diamato
breathed a sigh of relief when he realized all his units had gotten out. But
however relieved he was by their survival, the fact remained that he'd been
driven off his station. Frustratingly incomplete as his observations had been,
his had been the only eyes located to watch the Junction at all for Second
Fleet.
* * *
"Admiral
Diamato's been forced to fall back to the Alpha Rendezvous, Sir,"
Lieutenant Eisenberg reported.
"Damn,"
Molly DeLaney murmured, but Tourville only shrugged.
"It
was bound to happen sooner or later, Molly. On the other hand, it may actually
be good news."
"Good
news, Sir?"
"Well,
they didn't bother to send through screening units to chase him off before,
because they were too busy bringing in their wallers. If they've sent in
battlecruisers and cruisers now, it probably confirms that they've already got
all their capital ships through the Junction. In which case, this—" he
nodded at the oncoming rash of scarlet icons, already well inside their
theoretical MDM range of his own battered survivors "—probably is all
we've got to deal with."
"With
all due respect, Sir, 'this' is quite enough for me."
"For
all of us, Molly. For all of us."
Tourville
considered the plot for several more seconds, then looked back at Eisenberg.
"Ace,
message to MacArthur. 'Stand by to execute Paul Revere.'"
"Aye,
Sir."
* * *
"Any
change in his heading, Judson?" Admiral Kuzak asked.
"No,
Ma'am. He's maintaining exactly the same heading and acceleration,"
Commander Latrell replied.
"What
the hell does he think he's doing, Ma'am?" Captain Smithson asked
quietly, and Kuzak shrugged in irritation.
"Damned
if I know," she acknowledged frankly. "Maybe he just figures he's
still got the firepower to take us. After all, he's still got a hundred and
eighteen wallers, and we've only got fifty-five, even with Duchess Harrington's
orphans."
"But
he's had the crap hammered out of him, Ma'am," Smithson objected.
"The recon platforms indicate he's got heavy battle damage to at least
half his survivors, and his acceleration rate would be proof enough of that,
even without the platforms' reports. So say he's got the equivalent of eighty
wallers' combat power—which is generous, I'd say—and they're still Peep SD(P)s.
We don't have as many units as Home Fleet had, but all of ours are Medusas
or Harringtons. Not only that, but he's got to have used up a lot of
ammo. Hell, he didn't fire a single MDM at the LACs, and you saw what they did
to his screen. His magazines have to be close to empty."
"So if
his situation is so desperate," Judson Latrell asked, "why didn't he
abandon the rest of his ships with impeller damage and run for it at a higher
acceleration rate in the first place?"
"I
suppose the answer to that depends at least in part on exactly what their
actual objective is," Kuzak said.
She glanced
at the master plot. Twenty-six minutes had passed since Third Fleet had
translated back into normal-space. It was hard to believe that barely two hours
ago, Home Fleet and all of its units had been safely in orbit around Sphinx.
Now they were gone, reduced to spreading patterns of wreckage, and her own
command was accelerating steadily towards battle with their killers at 6.01 KPS2.
Her base velocity was up to almost ten thousand kilometers per second, she'd
traveled the next best thing to eight million kilometers into the RZ, and the
range to Second Fleet was coming down to right on sixty million kilometers.
Which meant, of course, that they were already in her range, just as she was in
theirs.
"Whatever
they're up to," she said grimly, "I think you've got a point about
their ammunition supply, Jerry. In which case, they aren't going to be hitting
us with any more of those monster salvos. And it also means they haven't got
enough birds left to waste them firing at long range, with their hit probabilities.
We, on the other hand, have full magazines."
"You
want to open fire now, Ma'am?" Commander Latrell asked, but she shook her
head.
"Not
just yet. In fact, not until they do." Her thin smile was cold.
"Every kilometer the range drops increases our accuracy by a few
thousandths of a percent. As long as they're willing not to shoot, so am
I."
"They'll
be coming into range of Sphinx in another ten minutes or so, Ma'am,"
Smithson said quietly.
"A
good point." She nodded. "But that means the defense pods deployed
around Sphinx are going to be coming into range of them, too, and the
system reconnaissance platforms are going to give the defense pods very good
accuracy."
"But
there aren't many of them," Smithson said.
"No.
In fact, they've got a lot less than we do," Kuzak agreed. She considered
numbers and ranges, then turned to Communications.
"Franklin,
contact Admiral Caparelli. Tell him I recommend that the Sphinx defenses not
fire on these people unless and until they launch against
Sphinx."
"Yes,
Ma'am," Lieutenant Bradshaw replied.
"Are
you sure about that, Ma'am?" Smithson asked. Kuzak looked at him, and he
looked back levelly. After all, one of a chief of staff's jobs was to play
devil's advocate. "If they're going to bombard the planet, letting them
get the first launch off unopposed is likely to cost us," he pointed out.
"But
if they aren't prepared to bombard the planet and the orbital defenses
open fire, they may go ahead and return it," Kuzak responded. "As
you've just pointed out, they've been hammered hard. If Sphinx starts punching
missiles at them, they're likely to shoot back in self-defense. On the other
hand, if the planet doesn't fire on them, they're probably going to reserve
their fire for us, since we're obviously a much greater threat. Under
the circumstances, I think it's worth risking letting them have one launch
against the defenses, now that they're all on-line."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
* * *
"No
change in their dispositions, Your Grace," Andrea Jaruwalski reported, and
Honor frowned.
"What
is it, Your Grace?" a voice asked, and she looked up at her com display.
Rafe Cardones looked back at her from it.
"What's
what, Rafe?"
"That
frown," her flag captain said. "I've seen it before. What's bothering
you?"
"Besides
the fact that somewhere around a million people have already been killed this
fine afternoon, you mean?"
Cardones
winced slightly, but he also shook his head.
"That's
not what I meant, Ma'am, and you know it."
"Yes,
I suppose I do," she agreed.
She reached
up to stroke Nimitz's ears, and the 'cat pressed back against her hand, purr
buzzing as his mind-glow caressed hers in reply. She treasured that small
moment of unqualified support and love, clinging to its warmth against her
cold, bleak awareness of so much death and devastation. Then she looked back at
Cardones.
"I
just can't escape the feeling that there's a shoe somewhere we haven't seen
yet," she said slowly. "I know there's not a vector available to them
which would let them avoid both Sphinx's envelope and Admiral Kuzak's. Under
those circumstances, I guess it's not too surprising they're simply holding
their course. What else can they do?"
"Not
much, Your Grace," Mercedes Brigham said, when Honor paused. "From
where I sit, it looks like they're screwed. The bastards hurt us badly enough,
first, but they're in too deep to get out now."
"That's
what's bothering me," Honor said slowly. "They didn't have to come in
this way. They could have come in more slowly, left themselves a broader menu
of maneuver options. Why did they simply come charging straight in towards
Sphinx?"
"They
didn't," Brigham pointed out. "They cut the angle on the limit and
the zone so they could angle back out if they had to."
"No,
Mercedes." Cardones shook his head on Honor's display. "I see what
she means. It's the acceleration rate, isn't it, Your Grace?"
"That's
exactly what it is," Honor agreed. "They can't have known exactly
what was going to happen when they ran into Home Fleet, but they had to have
known they'd almost certainly be intercepted well short of the planet and
hammered. But by charging in at such a high acceleration when they didn't have
to, they built up a vector they couldn't possibly overcome before whatever we
brought through from Trevor's Star hit them, as well. That's not like Theisman.
He should have left his commander on the spot more freedom of maneuver, should
have tried to protect his units from getting caught in this sort of trap."
"Then
why didn't he?" Brigham frowned as she followed Honor's logic.
"I
thought at first it probably did indicate they were going to try some sort of a
two-pronged operation," Honor said. "Go ahead and hit us in
Manticore, figuring we'd have to pull off of Trevor's Star to defend the home
system, and then hit San Martin when we uncovered it. In that case, they might
have hoped to catch us with Third Fleet and Eighth Fleet between two separate
offensives, unable to respond adequately to either."
"Now
that's an ugly thought, Your Grace," Brigham murmured.
"But
that's not like Theisman, either," Honor pointed out. "He understands
the KISS principle, and in their initial attacks, 'Operation Thunderbolt,' he
planned each of his operations independently of one another. They all
tied together into one overall design, but he was careful to avoid any attempt
to coordinate widely dispersed fleets or require them to go after objectives in
mutual support. The entire offensive was very carefully coordinated,
except for the decision to send Tourville all the way to Marsh, but the success
of any one operation didn't depend on the success of any other simultaneous
operation."
"And
hitting both Trevor's Star and Manticore would" Brigham nodded.
"It
certainly would," Honor agreed. "And they wouldn't have any way to
communicate with one another, so if either attack force screwed up its timing,
it might blow the entire operation by alerting us early. It's still possible
that that's what they're going to do, which is the main reason I still don't want
to lock down the Trevor's Star terminus with a mass transit, but I don't think
it's what's coming.
"But
if they don't have something like that in mind, I'm at a loss to understand
exactly what they're doing. According to ONI's estimate of their current fleet
strength, this is a huge percentage of their total wall of battle, and they've
rammed it straight into the teeth of our defenses on a vector which makes it
impossible for them to avoid action with Third Fleet. That's what I don't like
about it. It's stupid . . . and one thing Thomas Theisman isn't, is
stupid."
* * *
"Boss,
with all due respect," Molly Delaney said, "I think it's time."
"No,
do you really?" Lester Tourville replied, his tone so dry that DeLaney
looked up in surprise. Then, almost against her will, she chuckled.
It wasn't a
very loud chuckle, but it sounded that way on Guerriere's tense, silent
flag deck. Heads came up all around the deck, eyes turned towards the chief of
staff, and Tourville smiled. He could almost literally feel their astonishment
that he could make even the smallest joke at a moment like this. And then he
felt that same astonishment breaking at least a little of the taut fear and
anxiety which had enveloped all of them as he continued to hold off on Paul
Revere, continued to wait. They knew the Beatrice Bravo ops plan as well as he
did, and they had to be wondering what the hell he was waiting for.
Which was
fair enough. A part of him wondered what he was waiting for, as well.
He looked
at the plot. The Manticoran response from Trevor's Star had been accelerating
in-system for almost fifty minutes. It's velocity was up to just over eighteen
thousand kilometers and it had traveled roughly 27,045,000 kilometers. The
range to Second Fleet was falling rapidly towards thirty-three million
kilometers, and he was frankly astonished that they hadn't already opened fire.
Yet still that nagging little doubt, that voice of instinct, told him to wait.
He looked
at a secondary plot, frozen with the last tactical data Oliver Diamato had been
able to download before being forced off the Junction. He considered it for two
or three seconds, careful to conceal his own mental frown lest it undo the
beneficial consequences of DeLaney's chuckle.
You've got
to get off the credit piece, Lester, he
told himself. You've already waited as long as you can; Molly's right about
that. If Eighth Fleet were coming, it should already be here. And
you can't justify holding off forever 'just in case' it turns up. Because
whether it's coming or not, you can't let the people you know about get
any closer.
"All
right, Ace," he said in a calm, confident voice. "Send MacArthur
the execute signal."
* * *
"Captain
Higgins! We have the execute signal from Guerriere!"
"Maneuvering,"
Captain Edward Higgins said almost instantly, his voice sharp, "execute
Paul Revere."
"Aye,
Sir!" his astrogator replied, and the battlecruiser RHNS Douglas
MacArthur, which had never accelerated in-system with the rest of Second
Fleet's doomed screen, translated smoothly into hyper.
* * *
"I
think we're just about ready to open the ball, whether they want to or
not," Theodosia Kuzak told Commander Latrell. "How do our firing
solutions look?"
"I
think the old saying about fish in a barrel comes to mind, Ma'am," Latrell
replied.
"Good.
In that case—"
"Hyper
footprint!" one of Latrell's ratings barked suddenly. "Hyper
footprint at four-one-point-seven million kilometers, bearing one-eight-zero by
one-seven-six!" He paused a second, then looked up, his face white.
"Many point sources, Sir! It looks like at least ninety ships of
the wall."
* * *
"Oh my
God," Mercedes Brigham said softly as the plot abruptly altered. The FTL
feed from the recon platforms made what had just happened all too hideously
clear.
"You
were right, Your Grace," Rafael Cardones said flatly. "They aren't
stupid."
Honor
didn't reply. She was already turning to the sidebars of her own tactical
display. Sixteen of her thirty-two superdreadnoughts were still in Trevor's
Star, as were all of Samuel Miklós' carriers and thirty of her battlecruisers.
She looked at the numbers for perhaps one heartbeat, then turned back to her
staff.
"Mercedes,
send a dispatch boat back to Trevor's Star. Inform Admiral Miller that he's in
command and that he's to hold all of our battlecruisers there. Tell him he's
responsible for covering Trevor's Star until we get back to him. Then instruct
Judah to bring Admiral Miklós' carriers and all the rest of the wallers through
in a single transit."
Her voice
was crisp, calm, despite her own shock, and Brigham looked at her for a moment,
then nodded sharply.
"Aye,
aye, Your Grace!"
"Theo,"
she continued, pointing one index finger at Commander Kgari, "start
plotting a new micro-jump. We'll go straight from here; no dogleg. I want us at
least fifty million kilometers outside these newcomers. Seventy-five to a
hundred would be better, but don't shave it any closer than fifty."
Kgari
looked at her for a moment, and she tasted his shock. She was allowing him a
much larger margin of error than Admiral Kuzak had allowed Third Fleet's units,
but she was also requiring him to jump straight from a point inside the
RZ to one on its periphery. Safety margin or no, that was extraordinarily
risky, given the fact that his start point's coordinates were going to be
subject to significant uncertainty, whatever he did.
But despite
hus shock, his voice was clear.
"Aye,
aye, Ma'am!"
"Harper,"
she continued, turning to the communications section. "Immediate priority
message to Admiral Kuzak, copied to Admiralty House. Message begins: 'Admiral
Kuzak, I will be moving to your support within—" she looked at the
chronometer, but nothing she could do could make time move more slowly
"—fifteen minutes. If I can reduce that, I will.' Message ends."
"Aye,
aye, Your Grace!"
Honor
nodded, then sat back in her command chair and rotated it slowly to face the
rest of her flag bridge personnel. She could see the echo of her own horror on
their faces, taste it in their mind-glows, as they realized what was about to
happen to Third Fleet, whatever they might manage to do.
They stared
back at her, but they saw no horror in her calm expression. They saw only
determination and purpose.
"All
right, people," she said. "We know what we have to do. Now let's be
about it."
Admiral
Genevieve Chin, CO Fifth Fleet, stood on the flag bridge of RHNS Canonnade and
let the background murmur of readiness reports wash over her.
"We've
got them, Ma'am!" Commander Andrianna Spiropoulo announced exuberantly.
"Astro put us less than fifty million klicks behind them—right on the
money!"
"So I
see." Chin might have quibbled with her operations officer's assessment of
their astrogation, since they were several million kilometers further from the
limit than they should have been. She suspected that Lieutenant Commander
Julian had deliberately dropped them in a bit further out than she'd specified.
But Spiropoulo's assessment of the tactical situation matched hers perfectly,
and she fought hard to keep the exuberance out of her own voice.
She also
knew she hadn't succeeded completely.
Well, maybe
I didn't, she thought. But if I
didn't, I've earned it. We all have, after the way they pounded us in the last
war. But it's more than that for me.
"All
right, Andrianna," she said, turning her back to the plot and the icons of
the Manty wallers whose crews were beginning to realize they'd walked straight
into a trap, "we don't have a lot of time before they run out of our
envelope. Let's start rolling pods."
"Aye,
Ma'am!"
Andrianna's
dark eyes gleamed, and Chin glanced at Captain Nicodème Sabourin. Her chief of
staff looked back, and then, unnoticed by the rest of Flag Bridge's personnel,
he nodded, ever so slightly.
Chin nodded
back. Sabourin was probably the only member of her staff who could fully savor
her own sense of . . . completion. She'd come a long way to reach this point.
She'd survived being scapegoated by the Legislaturalists for the disaster of
Hancock Station at the very start of the last war. She'd survived long, dreary
years in the service of the Committee of Public Safety—never quite trusted, too
valuable to simply discard, always watched by her people's commissioner. She'd
even survived Saint-Just's ascension to complete power . . . and the chaos
following his overthrow.
She'd been
"rehabilitated" twice now. Once by Rob Pierre's lunatics, solely because
she'd been scapegoated by the previous régime. And once by the new
Republic, because she'd damned well done a good job protecting her assigned
sector despite the psychotic sadist they'd assigned as her people's
commissioner.
This time,
she actually believed it was going to stick. She'd still lost a lot of ground
in the seniority game. Men and women who'd been junior officers, or even
enlisted personnel, when she'd already been a flag officer, were senior to her
now. Thomas Theisman, for one, who'd been a commander when she'd been a rear
admiral. But she was one of only a handful of people who'd made admiral under
the Legislaturalists who were still alive at all, so she supposed that was
something of a wash.
And whether
the universe was always a fair place or not, she couldn't complain about where
she was today. The woman who'd been saddled with the blame for the
Legislaturalists' disastrous opening campaign against the Star Kingdom of
Manticore, was also the woman who'd been chosen to command the decisive jaw of
the trap which would crush the Star Kingdom once and for all. She'd waited
fifteen T-years for this moment, and it tasted sweet.
Nicodème
Sabourin understood that. She hadn't known it for quite some time, but he'd
been a second-class petty officer aboard one of her dreadnoughts at Hancock Station.
Like her, he was looking forward to getting some of his own back this
afternoon.
"How
are your target solutions, Andrianna?" she asked calmly.
"They
look good, Ma'am, considering their EW."
"In
that case, Commander," Genevieve Chin said formally, "you may open
fire."
* * *
"We
walked right into it," Theodosia Kuzak said bitterly. "I
walked right into it."
"It's
not like we had much choice, Ma'am," Captain Smithson said.
The two of
them stood staring into the plot, watching the overwhelmingly superior force
which had suddenly cut in astern of them as it rolled pods. Waiting. The orders
were already given. Their own missiles were already launching. There was, quite
literally, nothing at all Kuzak could do at this point except watch other
people execute her orders.
She turned
her head, looking at her chief of staff, and Smithson shrugged.
"We
couldn't let them punch out Sphinx, and that meant coming in after them,"
he said. "You did."
"I
should have seen this coming," she shot back, but quietly, quietly, keeping
her voice down. "After what Harrington did to them at Lovat, it was the
logical response."
"Oh?"
Smithson cocked his head, smiling ironically despite the hurricane of missiles
rushing towards them. "And I suppose you were supposed to somehow use clairvoyance
to realize they had another hundred wallers in reserve? That they were
going to throw three hundred and fifty superdreadnoughts at us? Just
you—not Admiral Caparelli, not ONI, not Admiral D'Orville, or Admiral
Harrington. Just you. Because, obviously, this is all your fault."
"I
didn't mean—" she began angrily, then stopped. She looked at him for a
moment, then reached out and squeezed his shoulder.
"I
guess I did deserve that. Thanks."
"Don't
mention it." Smithson smiled sadly. "It's one of a chief of staff's
jobs."
* * *
"All
right, Alekan," Alistair McKeon told his ops officer harshly. "We're
the only squadron with Apollo. Admiral Kuzak has authorized us for independent
targeting to make best use of the system. That means it's going to be up to
you."
"Understood,
Sir." Commander Slowacki nodded hard.
"I
want to concentrate on this new bunch," McKeon continued. "They
haven't been hit yet, their fire control and their tactical departments are
going to be in better shape. We'll take them one ship at a time."
"Understood,
Admiral," Slowacki said again, and McKeon pointed at the icons of
Genevieve Chin's task force.
"Good.
Now go kill as many of those bastards as you can."
"Aye,
aye, Sir!"
"I
wish Her Grace were here, Sir," Commander Roslee Orndorff said quietly
beside McKeon as Slowacki and his assistants began updating their targeting
solutions.
"I
don't," McKeon told Orndorff, his voice equally quiet, and shook his head.
"This is one not even she could get us out of, Roslee."
"I
guess not," Orndorff agreed. "And you're right. I shouldn't wish she
was stuck in here with the rest of us. But—no offense, Sir—I . . . miss
her."
"So do
I." McKeon reached out and stroked the head of the treecat perched on
Orndorff's shoulder. Banshee pressed back against his hand, but only for a
moment. Then the 'cat pressed his cheek against the side of his person's head
and crooned softly to her.
Orndorff
reached up, caressing him tenderly, without ever taking her eyes from the plot.
* * *
Unlike
Oliver Diamato's battlecruisers, Third Fleet couldn't dodge the pulser dart.
Admiral Kuzak's command was too deep, pinned inside the RZ. Kuzak had intended
to catch Second Fleet between her command and the Sphinx planetary defenses;
now she was caught between the oncoming hammer of Genevieve Chin's MDMs
and the battered anvil of Lester Tourville's surviving SD(P)s.
At least
Third Fleet's base velocity was almost fourteen thousand kilometers per second
higher than Fifth Fleet's, and almost directly away from it. Given that
geometry, Chin's powered missile envelope was only fifty-one million
kilometers. But the range was only 41,700,000 kilometers, and that meant
Chin could keep Kuzak's ships under fire for eleven minutes before Third Fleet
could run out of range.
Eleven
minutes. It didn't sound like such a long time, but it was longer than Home
Fleet had survived against Lester Tourville. And Home Fleet hadn't been running
directly into the fire of one foe while the fire of a second came ripping into
it from behind.
* * *
"Open
fire!" Lester Tourville snapped.
"Aye,
Sir!" Frazier Adamson acknowledged, and Tourville watched the icons of his
missiles reaching out towards the Manties.
He'd almost
left it too late, he thought. Chin's astrogation had been off by a good ten
million kilometers, although it was hard to fault her for that. She'd had only
a handful of minutes to adjust her position after MacArthur's arrival,
thanks in no small part to how long Tourville had waited, and making that kind
of delicate, short-ranged micro-translation was always infernally difficult.
Given that
any error placing her alpha translation on the wrong side of the zone boundary
would have resulted in the destruction of every ship under her command, it was
inevitable—and proper—that she should err on the side of caution. Besides, it
had never been part of the ops plan for her ships to move inside the resonance
zone or hyper limit until she and Tourville were certain they'd dealt with the
defenses. All the defenses.
Still,
eleven minutes of concentrated fire from ninety-six SD(P)s should smash the
hell out of the Manties' combat capability, even if it failed to destroy them
outright. And in the meantime, he could do a little something to help Chin
along.
The range
for his missiles was only 32,955,000 kilometers, and unlike the range
from Chin's ships, it was dropping by over a million kilometers per minute. Not
to mention the fact that unlike Chin, his tactical officers had been tracking
the Manties steadily, updating their firing solutions for the last thirty or
forty minutes.
He checked
the time display. Flight time for his missiles was just under six minutes, two
minutes less than for Chin. Although she'd fired first, his missiles would
reach their targets before hers.
* * *
"We
are truly and royally screwed, Skipper," Chief Warrant Officer Sir Horace
Harkness said quietly from HMLAC Dacoit's engineering station.
Scotty
Tremain glanced at him, then looked back at the plot, and wished there were
some way he could disagree.
"You
have a message from Admiral Truman, Captain," Dacoit's com section
AI said. "Personal to you."
"Accept,
Cental," Tremain said. A moment later, Alice Truman appeared on his com
display.
"Admiral,"
he said, watching the missile icons spreading like the tracks of pre-space
wet-navy torpedoes.
"It
looks like we're going to get hammered, Scotty," Truman told him bluntly.
"I want you to detach your Katanas. Leave them behind to help
thicken Admiral Kuzak's defenses. Then take all the rest of your birds and head
for the in-system force now."
Tremain
looked at her for just a moment. He knew what she had in mind. His Ferrets
and Shrikes, especially the former, were preparing to help bolster Third
Fleet's missile defenses, yet compared to his Katanas, their
contribution would have been relatively minor. But by sending them against the
survivors of the first Havenite attack force, she might compel it to divert its
fire. It no longer had a screen, its attached LACS had taken severe losses, and
it couldn't simply run away from him into hyper. It would have no choice but to
stand and fight, and if it let him get into attack range without severe losses
of his own . . . .
"Understood,
Dame Alice," he said. "We'll do our best to keep their heads
down."
"Good,
Scotty. Good hunting. Truman, clear."
* * *
"Crap,"
Molly DeLaney muttered, and Lester Tourville chuckled harshly.
"They're
a little quicker off the mark with it than I expected," he said, watching
the Manty LACs' arc away from Third Fleet. Missile flight times were long
enough—and the Manty reaction fast enough—that their course change was already
evident, even though Second Fleet's first salvo had yet to reach attack range.
"Still,"
he continued, "it was the logical move, once we lost the screen.
Frazier."
"Yes,
Admiral?" Commander Adamson replied.
"Send
Smirnoff out to meet these people."
"Captain
Smirnoff is dead, Sir," Adamson said. "Commander West is COLAC
now."
Tourville
winced internally. He hadn't known Alice Smirnoff well. Only met the woman
twice, actually, and then only in passing. But somehow her death, unnoticed in
the general carnage, suddenly seemed to symbolize the hundreds of thousands of
his personnel who had perished in the last three hours.
"Very
well," he said, an edge of harshness burring his otherwise level response,
"send West out to meet them."
"Aye,
Sir."
"Is
that going to be enough, Boss?" DeLaney asked quietly, and Tourville shook
his head.
"No.
They aren't sending in as many, but these people are fresh, and Smirnoff—West—and
his people burned too many missiles stopping the last attack. We're going to
have to take them with MDMs."
"Do
you want to shift targeting?"
"Not
yet." Tourville shook his head. "That's what they want us to do, and
I'm not taking any pressure off Kuzak until we have to. But it's going to limit
the number of salvos we can give her."
He punched
in a command, calling up the fleet status display. He studied it for several
seconds, then looked at Adamson.
"Frazier,
tell Admiral Moore and Admiral Jourdain to abort their engagement of Third
Fleet. I want their squadrons to reserve their total remaining pods for use
against the Manty LACs."
"Yes,
Sir."
Tourville
nodded and sat back in his command chair. Moore and Jourdain had taken the
lightest losses of any of his battle squadrons. Between them, they still had
fourteen SD(P)s, and much as he hated taking them out of the firing queue at
this particular moment, he had a feeling he was going to need their missiles
badly in another half-hour or so.
* * *
"Here
it comes," Wraith Goodrick murmured, and Alice Truman nodded.
Counter-missiles
tore into the oncoming MDMs, and at least this time they hadn't been able to
deploy whatever had let them throw such monster salvos at Home Fleet. These
were merely "normal" double-pattern broadsides from over a hundred
SD(P)s.
Nothing to
worry about, she told herself; only
twelve thousand missiles or so. No more than a couple of hundred per ship. Just
a walk in the park.
Except, of
course, that they weren't spreading them over all of Third Fleet's ships.
Scotty
Tremain's detached Katanas were tucked in close, hovering
"above" Third Fleet, rather than going out to meet the incoming
missiles as normal doctrine would have dictated. Normal doctrine, after all,
hadn't anticipated a situation in which a fleet would screw up so badly it
found itself squarely between two widely separated enemy fleets, each
numerically superior to itself, and in range of both. The LACs couldn't place
themselves between one threat and the rest of Third Fleet without leaving it
uncovered against the other, and so they held their position, spitting Vipers
against the wall of destruction crashing towards Theodosia Kuzak's command.
Thousands
of Mark 31 counter-missiles went out with the Vipers, and Truman felt
Chimera quiver as her own counter-missile tubes went to rapid fire, but
nothing was going to stop all of that torrent of MDMs. Decoys and Dazzlers
strove to bewilder or blind the incoming missiles, but still they came on.
"They're
concentrating on the Nineteenth," Commander Janine Stanfield, Truman's
operations officer, reported.
"They'll
have a lot of strays at this range," Goodrick said, and Truman nodded
agreement with her chief of staff. Not that having a few hundred MDMs wander
off was going to do Vice Admiral Irene Montague and her command a lot of good.
Not with two thousand missiles targeted on each of her six superdreadnoughts.
Even with
its attention divided between the salvos rumbling down on it from opposite
directions, Third Fleet's missile defense was far more effective than Home
Fleet's had been. Partly that was simply the difference in the numbers of
missiles in each incoming salvo. Another part was the difference in closing
velocities, which improved engagement times. And, especially against Second
Fleet, it was because so many of the ships launching those missiles had
themselves been damaged, in many cases severely, before they launched. They'd
lost control links, sensors, computational ability, and critical personnel out
of their tactical departments, with inevitable consequences for the accuracy of
their fire.
But twelve
thousand missiles, were still twelve thousand missiles.
Twenty
percent were electronic warfare platforms. Another twelve percent simply lost
lock, as Goodrick had predicted. The massed counter-missiles of Third Fleet and
Alice Truman's Katanas killed almost four thousand, and the last-ditch
fire of the 91st Battle Squadron and its escorts killed another fifteen
hundred. It was a remarkable performance, but it still meant twenty-seven
hundred got through.
The heavy
laser heads detonated in rapid succession, bubbles of brimstone birthing x-ray
lasers that ripped and tore at their targets. The superdreadnoughts' wedges
intercepted many of those lasers. Their sidewalls bent and attenuated others.
But nothing built by man could have stopped all of them.
The
massively armored superdreadnoughts shuddered and bucked as transfer energy
blasted into them. Armor and hull plating splintered, atmosphere gushed from
gaping holes, and weapons, communications arrays, and sensors were torn apart.
HMS Victorious staggered as her forward impeller ring went into
emergency shutdown. Her wedge faltered, and then she staggered again, like a
seasick galleon, as a half-dozen more laser heads detonated almost directly
ahead of her. Her bow wall stopped most of the lasers, but at least twelve
stabbed straight through it, hammering the massively armored face of her
forward hammerhead. Her forward point defense clusters went down, her chase
energy weapons were pounded into broken rubble, and one of her forward impeller
rooms blew up as the massive capacitors shorted across.
For a
moment, it looked like that was the extent of her damage. But deep inside her,
invisible from the outside, the energy spike of that demolished impeller room
drove deeper and deeper. Circuit breakers failed to stop it, control runs
exploded, power conduits blew up in deadly sequence, and then, suddenly, the
ship herself simply exploded.
There were
no small craft, no life pods. No survivors. One moment she was there; the next
she was an expanding sphere of fire.
Her
squadron mates were more fortunate. None of them escaped unscathed, however,
and HMS Warrior lost over half her port sidewall. HMS Ellen D'Orville
lost half the beta nodes in her after impeller ring, and HMS Bellona's
port broadside point defense clusters and gravitic arrays were beaten into scrap.
HMS Regulus escaped with only minor damage, but HMS Marduk lost a
quarter of her broadside energy weapons. All of them survived, and their
ability to deploy pods remained intact, but the follow-up salvo from Second
Fleet was close on the heels of the first, and the first salvo from Fifth Fleet
came crunching in almost simultaneously.
Third
Fleet's defenses were simply spread too thin. Twelve thousand missiles came
pounding down on it from Lester Tourville. Another 11,500 came crashing in from
Genevieve Chin, and there simply weren't enough counter-missiles and Katanas
to stop them all.
Second
Fleet's second salvo concentrated on the same targets as the first, and those
targets' were already damaged, their defenses thinned. Warrior blew up,
and Marduk took a catastrophic series of hits which virtually destroyed
her starboard sidewall. Bellona staggered, impeller wedge dying, life
pods beginning to fan out from her hulk. Ellen D'Orville took at least
twenty more hits, but continued to run, and Regulus moved up on
Marduk's naked starboard flank, trying to shield her consort from the third
salvo already streaking towards them.
The gallant
effort to protect her sister cost Regulus her life twenty-three seconds
later as over eight hundred laser heads took the only target they could see.
* * *
"We
just lost Bayard, Sir," Molly DeLaney said, and Lester Tourville
nodded, hoping his expression disguised his pain.
Second
Fleet had sprung the trap exactly as planned, except for the fact that it had
been supposed to close on Eighth Fleet, as well, and he tried to feel grateful.
But it was hard. There came a time when phrases like "favorable rates of
exchange," however accurate, were cold comfort in the face of so much
death, so much destruction. And however hopeless Third Fleet's position, there
was nothing at all wrong with the Manties' determination and sheer guts.
They
recognized Second Fleet as the greater prize—and the greater threat—despite its
previous damages. It was still the larger of Tourville's two task forces, and
the one in the best position to strike Sphinx, and they were pouring fire into
his bleeding ranks. He'd already lost three more superdreadnoughts, counting Bayard,
and it was only a matter of time until he lost more.
* * *
Theodosia
Kuzak stared into the master plot as the Havenites task forces sledgehammered
her fleet again and again. Battle Squadron Ninety-One was effectively destroyed
in the first sixty seconds, and Second Fleet's follow-up salvos switched to BS
11. Her own missiles were striking back, and the system reconnaissance
platforms showed fireballs glaring amid Second Fleet's formation, but she knew
the exchange rate was completely in the Republic's favor, and there was nothing
she could do about it.
"Incoming!
Many incoming!" Commander Latrell barked suddenly, and HMS King Roger
III heaved like a maddened animal as a storm of laser heads blasted into
her.
* * *
"Jesus
Christ! What the fuck is that?" Commander Spiropoulo demanded
harshly as RHNS Victorieux blew up.
"It's
got to be that new targeting system they used at Lovat," Captain Sabourin
replied harshly. "Somebody over there has it, after all. But it can't be
coming from more than a few of their ships, thank God!"
"Any
is too goddamned many, Nicodème," Genevieve Chin grated. "And
I don't like whoever the hell it is's targeting!" she added, and Sabourin
nodded.
Most of
Fifth Fleet's wallers were more than holding their own against the Manties'
fire. That was largely because at least three-quarters of that fire was still
raining down on Lester Tourville's superdreadnoughts. Probably, Chin thought,
because Tourville was still headed in-system. It looked as if Kuzak had decided
stopping him was more important than shooting at ships which could
vanish into hyper any time they chose.
But if most
of Third Fleet's missiles were headed in-system, three or four of Kuzak's ships
were firing on Chin's wall with deadly accuracy. Their missiles seemed threaded
through the cauldron of counter-missiles, EW, and blazing laser clusters like
awls. It was as if they could literally see where they were going, think
for themselves, and they were coming in behind a deadly shield of closely
coordinated electronic warfare platforms. Her missile defenses were hopelessly
outclassed against them, and whoever was coordinating their targeting had
chosen one of her battle squadrons and begun working her way through it.
Each
individual salvo wasn't particularly large. Indeed, by the standards of
pod-based combat, they were ludicrously tiny. But all of them seemed to
be getting through. None of them wandered off. None wasted themselves by
detonating high, or low, where t their target's impeller wedge might stop them.
And as they sent their avalanches of lasers through that target's wavering
sidewall in deadly succession, they killed.
"Goddamn
it!" she heard Sabourin say with soft, passionate venom as RHNS Lancelot
slewed suddenly out of formation, impeller wedge dying.
"Is
there any way to identify where this is coming from, Andrianna?"
she demanded.
"No
way, Ma'am," Spiropoulo said through gritted teeth. "They could be
coming from anywhere in the middle of that mess." She jabbed an angry
index finger at the crimson icons of Manticoran capital ships. "There's no
way to localize who's actually firing the damned things!"
"Just
thank God there aren't more of them, Ma'am," Sabourin said tightly.
"It looks like Admiral Theisman was right. If we'd waited until they had
that thing in general deployment, we'd have been toast."
* * *
Dame Alice
Truman watched her plot sickly as missile after missile slammed its lasers into
Third Fleet's superdreadnoughts. Her carriers were taking hits, too, but
nothing compared to the agony of Kuzak's wall. It looked to Truman as if most
of the hits on her carriers were overs or unders—MDMs which had lost the
wallers on which they'd been targeted and found one of her carriers instead.
The
bastards figure they can always get around to killing carriers later, she thought coldly, and felt an incredible stab of
guilt as she realized how grateful she was. Yet she couldn't help it, for the
people aboard her ships were her people, the people for whom she was
responsible, and she wanted them to live.
"They're
targeting Admiral McKeon, Ma'am!" Commander Stanfield said suddenly, and
Truman's eyes snapped to the icon of HMS Intransigent.
* * *
"We
nailed the son-of-a-bitch, Sir!" Commander Slowacki said, and despite his
own fear, his voice was jubilant.
"Well
done, Alekan!" Alistair McKeon replied, teeth bared in a wolfish grin of
his own. His battle squadron had landed four salvos of Apollo-guided MDMs, and
they'd killed a Havenite superdreadnought with each of them. In fact, they'd
done better than that; the kill Slowacki had just announced was their fifth.
"Now
go find another one," he said, and Slowacki nodded.
"Yes,
Sir!"
The ops
officer bent back over his displays, eyes bright, and McKeon felt a stab of
envy. Slowacki was actually doing something, accomplishing something. In
fact, the four Apollo-capable ships of McKeon's squadron were killing Havenite
wallers in rapid succession, and Slowacki was too caught up in his task to
realize that while he'd been killing five superdreadnoughts, the Havenites had
already killed nine of Admiral Kuzak's. And it wouldn't be long before—
"Incoming!"
someone shouted, and Intransigent lurched indescribably as the first
deadly hits slammed home.
* * *
Alice
Truman watched in horror as the Havenite flail came down on Alistair McKeon's
squadron.
Was it
deliberate? she wondered. Were they
able somehow to figure out where Apollo was coming from? Or was it just
the luck of the draw?
Not that it
mattered.
* * *
Intransigent heaved madly as the lasers blasted into her. Astern of
her, HMS Elizabeth I staggered as at least eighty direct hits slammed
into her. She seemed to hesitate for a moment, and then, like her older sister
Victorious, she vanished in a brief, terrible new star. Second Yeltsin
and Revenge shuddered in agony of their own as the focused hurricane of
destruction swept over McKeon's squadron. HMS Incomparable, Imperator's
division mate in place of the dead Intolerant, lurched out of formation,
impellers dead, wreckage trailing, life pods launching. Then the last few
hundred missiles of the concentrated salvo came punching in, and Second
Yeltsin blew up while Revenge's wedge went down. She started to fall
behind, but before she could at least twelve lasers slammed directly into the
unarmored top of her hull, which was supposed to be protected by her wedge.
With no armor to stop them, the powerful lasers ripped deep into the
superdreadnought's core, probing until they found her heart.
Thirty-one
seconds after Second Yeltsin, HMS Revenge joined her in fiery
death.
Intransigent survived. The only survivor of her entire squadron,
Alistair McKeon's flagship staggered onward, little more than a wreck, but
still alive.
* * *
Yet another
hit slammed into HMS King Roger III. It stabbed deep, ripping through
the wounds two of its predecessors had already torn. It breached the flagship's
core hull, tearing its way into central engineering, and the superdreadnought's
inertial compensator suddenly failed.
The
emergency circuits shut down her impellers almost instantly, but "almost instantly"
wasn't good enough for a ship under six hundred and twelve gravities of
acceleration.
The ship
sustained only moderate structural damage; none of her crew survived.
"Ma'am,
you're in command now," Captain Goodrick said.
"What?"
Alice Truman looked at him in disbelief.
"The
flagship's gone," Goodrick said harshly. "That puts you in
command."
"What
about Vice Admiral Emiliani?" Truman demanded.
"Valkyrie
took a hit on flag bridge. Emiliani is dead. You're next most senior."
Truman
stood for perhaps two heartbeats, then she shook herself.
"Very
well," she said. "Franklin," she looked at Lieutenant Bradshaw.
"General signal, all units. Inform them that command has passed to
Chimera."
"Yes,
Ma'am." Bradshaw seemed almost calm, anesthetized, perhaps, by the
intensity of the carnage. "Any orders?" he asked.
"No."
Truman shook her head. "Not at this time."
"Yes,
Ma'am."
Bradshaw
bent over his communications console, and Truman looked at the time/date
display. Nine minutes. Only nine minutes since the Peeps had opened
fire, and almost half of Third Fleet had already been destroyed.
She thought
about Bradshaw's question. Orders. There were no orders for a situation
like this one. Admiral Kuzak had already given the only ones anyone could. Now
it was a matter of duty, not orders. A matter of Third Fleet's duty to
fight to the death in defense of its home, and it would.
It's not my
fleet, she thought, watching Third Fleet's
bleeding ships, punching out missiles even as they died, and her eye unerringly
finding the icon of Intransigent, tagged with the jagged crimson code of
critical damage. Not my fleet . . . but by God if I've got to die, I
couldn't have found a better one to die with.
* * *
"That's
two more of them, Ma'am," Commander Spiropoulo said, and Chin nodded.
Third Fleet
was finished, she thought, her grim satisfaction tinged with more than a little
horror as she contemplated the losses both navies had suffered this
blood-soaked day. Thirty of the Manty SDs had been destroyed or hulked. Over
half the survivors had critical damage, and whoever had been equipped with that
new weapons system was among the dead or disabled.
Fifth Fleet
would lose the range on Kuzak's battered remnants in another twenty-five
seconds. The last salvo she could bring down on the fleeing Manties would land
in another fifteen, but she found it hard to regret it. There'd already been
enough blood, enough destruction, to satisfy anyone, she thought grimly.
She looked
at the tally on one of her secondary displays. Second Fleet was down to only
seventy-five ships—only fifty-six effectives, really—out of the two hundred and
forty wallers and ninety escorts Lester Tourville had taken into the resonance
zone. She herself had lost "only" eleven superdreadnoughts, and most
of the crew had gotten out of three of them. But the back of the Star Kingdom's
home system's defenses had been broken. She still had plenty of missile pods
left aboard her remaining eighty-five wallers, and Second Fleet, despite its
own brutal losses, had enough combat power to finish off Third Fleet's
remnants. And then—
"Hyper
footprint!" Spiropoulo said suddenly. "Multiple hyper footprints at
seven-two-point-niner-three million kilometers!"
* * *
Honor
Alexander-Harrington's eyes were brown ice as Theophile Kgari, in a virtuoso
display of astrogation, dropped the massed superdreadnoughts of Eighth Fleet exactly
where she'd told him to in a single jump right out of the center of the
resonance zone.
She didn't
look at the pathetic remnants of Third Fleet's icons. Didn't even glance at the
other icons, representing Lester Tourville's task force. She had attention only
for Genevieve Chin's superdreadnoughts, and her voice was a frozen soprano
sword.
"Engage
the enemy, Andrea," Lady Dame Honor Alexander-Harrington said.
* * *
Genevieve
Chin's heart began beating once again, and her instant instinct to break off
eased a bit as the range registered. At almost seventy-three million
kilometers, the new arrivals were well outside even MDMs' powered range.
Besides, there were only thirty-eight of them—less than half her own strength,
even if all of them were wallers and not carriers.
"Turn
us around, Andrianna," she said. "It looks like we've got some fresh
customers."
* * *
Eighth
Fleet spent three minutes rolling pods. In that time, it deployed 7,776.
Then it
fired.
* * *
"What
the—?" Andrianna Spiropoulo looked at the tracking report in disbelief.
That didn't make any sense at all!
"Ma'am,"
she said, turning to Admiral Chin, "the Manties have just fired."
"They've
what?" Genevieve Chin looked up from a discussion with Nicodème Sabourin.
"They've
fired, Ma'am," Spiropoulo repeated. "It doesn't make any sense.
They're still at least seven million kilometers out of range!"
"That doesn't
make any sense," Chin agreed, walking across to stare at the
preposterous missile icons in the master display.
"Maybe
they're trying to panic us, Admiral," Sabourin suggested. She looked at
him, eyebrows rising in disbelief, and he shrugged. "I know it sounds
silly, Ma'am, but I don't have any better suggestion. I mean, we've just
hammered two entire Manty fleets into so much scrap metal, and these people are
outnumbered by at least three-to-one. Maybe they figure this is the only way to
distract us from finishing off the system."
"I
suppose it's possible," Chin said slowly, watching the icons come.
"But it doesn't seem like a Manty sort of thing to do. On the other hand,
I don't see what else they could expect to accomplish."
* * *
Honor
watched her own plot, sitting very still in her command chair. Nimitz sat
upright in her lap, leaning back against her chest. She wrapped her right arm
about him, holding him, and felt his cold, focused determination—an echo of her
own—as his grass green eyes followed the same icons, watched the missiles
speeding outward.
Apollo had
done several things. It provided real-time control of her missiles at any
range. By using the Apollo birds to control the other missiles from their pods,
it effectively multiplied the number of MDMs each ship could control by a
factor of eight. And it provided her tactical officers with unprecedented
control over their missiles' fight profiles.
Eighth
Fleet was the only formation in space fully equipped with the new system, and
Honor and her captains had spent long, thoughtful hours exploring Apollo's
ramifications. Now she was prepared to use them.
* * *
"They
can't be serious," Spiropoulo said in exasperation as every single
impeller signature disappeared from her plot simultaneously. She glared at the
plot with an affronted sense of professionalism, then punched a radical course
change into the fleet tactical net.
Fifth Fleet
obeyed the order immediately, rolling through a skew turn which would take it
over thirty thousand kilometers from its predicted position by the time the
Manticoran missiles reached it.
"What
is it, Andrianna?" Chin asked, looking up from her com display and a hasty
conference with her squadron commanders.
"Ma'am,
you aren't going to believe this," Spiropoulo said, "but they're
sending their birds in ballistic."
"What?"
Chin looked back down at her com. "Excuse me for a moment, please,"
she told the flag officers on its compartmentalized display. "I think I
need to see this for myself."
She climbed
out of her command chair and walked over to stand beside Spiropoulo, her eyes
seeking out the missile icons. She found them, but they were rapidly strobing
flickers, not the steady light of the hard position fixes active impeller
drives would have provided.
"They
boosted for six minutes at forty-six thousand gravities, Ma'am,"
Spiropoulo said. "Then they just shut the hell down. I altered course as soon
as their impellers went down, which they have to know is going to play hell
with whatever accuracy they might have achieved. And that's not the only screwy
thing they're up to. Look at this."
The ops
officer punched a macro, and Chin frowned as an additional cluster of impeller
signatures blinked into existence. For some reason known only to itself and
God, the Manty task force ahead of them had just fired another pattern of pods—one
pattern of pods, with less than sixty missiles in it. And it hadn't fired
them at Chin's ships; the missile vectors made it obvious the Manties
had fired at Second Fleet, almost 150,000,000 kilometers away them, inside the
resonance zone.
"Well,
at least now we know how they think they can get them to make attack runs once
they get them into range," Sabourin said.
"I
suppose," Chin said, but her expression was troubled.
Actually,
it was their only real option, assuming they were going to fire from such a
long range in the first place. At 46,000 g, their missiles had accelerated
to almost 162,400 kilometers per second and traveled 29,230,000 kilometers
before they'd shut down. That left the MDMs' third stage available for a
powered attack run when they reached their targets. In sixty seconds of maximum
acceleration, the remaining drive would add another 54,000 kilometers per
second to the missiles' velocity. Or they could go for half that much power,
and add another 81,000 over the space of three minutes. More importantly, it
would permit the oncoming missiles to maneuver to engage their targets. She
understood that. What she didn't understand was how they could believe it was
anything but an utter waste of their missiles. They'd had to establish the
targeting parameters when they launched. That meant they were gong to be looking
for targets where Fifth Fleet would have been on its original heading and
acceleration, and Spiropoulo's course chance during the long ballistic portion
in their flight profile's center would hopelessly compromise the weapons'
already poor accuracy at long range.
She glanced
at the time display while she did some mental math. Assume they waited until
the birds were, say, eighty seconds out and then kicked in the last stage at
46,000 gravities. That would give them eighty seconds of maneuver time, for
however much good that would do them at this extended range.
If they let
the missiles come all the way in ballistic, flight time from shutdown would be
about four and a half minutes. But they won't. So say they do bring the drives
back up eighty seconds out—that would put them about three minutes before
attack range on a straight ballistic profile—they'd still have about 13,000,000
kilometers to go. So if they kick the remaining drive at 46,000 gees at that
point, they'll shave maybe seven seconds off their arrival time, and they'll be
coming in somewhere around 200,000 KPS. But their accuracy will still suck. And
what the hell do they think
they're doing with this other little cluster?
Andrianna
was right. It didn't make sense, unless Nicodème was right and they were
trying to panic her. But if Third Fleet was what they'd just finished
destroying, then these people had to be Eighth Fleet, which meant Honor
Harrington. And Harrington didn't do things that didn't make sense. So what—?
Her eyes
opened wide in horror.
"General
signal all units!" she shouted, spinning towards her com section.
"Hyper out immediately! Repeat, hyper out—"
But it had
taken Genevieve Chin two minutes too long to realize what was happening.
* * *
"Drives
going active . . . now, Your Grace," Andrea Jaruwalski said, and
the missiles thirteen million kilometers short of Fifth Fleet suddenly brought
their final drive stages on-line. Their icons burned abruptly bright and strong
once again as they lit off their impellers . . . and hurled themselves at their
targets under full shipboard control.
They blazed
in across the remaining distance, tracking with clean, lethal precision, and
their ballistic flight had dropped them off of the Republic's sensors. Chin's
ships knew approximately where they were, but not exactly, and their
supporting EW platforms and penetration aids came up with their impellers. They
hurtled in across the Republican SD(P)s' defensive envelope at over half the
speed of light, and the sudden eruption of jamming, of Dragons Teeth spilling
false targets, hammered those defenses mercilessly.
The fact
that the missile defense crews aboard those ships had known, without
question, that the attacking missiles would be clumsy, half-blind, only made a
disastrous situation even worse.
Eighth
Fleet had deployed almost eight thousand pods. Those pods launched 69,984
missiles. Of that total, 7,776 were Apollo birds. Another 8,000 were electronic
warfare platforms. Which meant that 54,208 carried laser heads—laser heads
which homed on Genevieve Chin's ships with murderously accurate targeting.
Second
Fleet's missile defenses did their best.
Their best
was not good enough.
* * *
Honor sat
hugging Nimitz and watched the real-time tactical download from one of the
Apollos. It felt unnatural, as if she were right there, on top of the Havenite
fleet, not over seventy million kilometers away. She watched the enemy
counter-missiles fire late and wide. She watched the attack missiles'
accompanying EW platforms beating down the defenses. She watched the missiles
themselves sliding through those defenses like assassins' daggers.
Fifth Fleet
stopped almost thirty percent of them, which was a truly miraculous total,
under the circumstances. But over thirty-seven thousand got through.
It was, she
decided coldly, a case of overkill.
* * *
Lester
Tourville stared at his plot in horror as the impeller signatures of
sixty-eight Republican ships of the wall abruptly vanished. Seventeen continued
to burn on the display for another handful of seconds. Then they, too, vanished
in what he devoutly hoped was a frantic hyper translation.
There was
total silence on Guerriere's flag bridge.
He never
knew exactly how long he simply sat there, his mind a great, singing emptiness
around a core of ice. It couldn't have been the eternity that it seemed to be,
but eventually he forced his shoulders to straighten.
"Well,"
he said in a voice he couldn't quite recognize, "it would appear our time
estimate on the deployment of their new system was slightly in error."
He turned
his command chair to face Frazier Adamson.
"Cease
fire, Commander."
Adamson
blinked twice, then shook himself.
"Yes,
Sir," he said hoarsely, and Second Fleet ceased firing at Third Fleet's
tattered remnants as Adamson transmitted the order.
* * *
"Dear
Lord," Dame Alice Truman murmured feelingly. "Talk about last-second
reprieves."
"Did
what I think happened really just happen, Ma'am?"
Wraith
Goodrick's voice sounded shaky, and Truman didn't blame him a bit. Only seven
of Theodosia Kuzak's superdreadnoughts were still in action, and all of them
were brutally damaged. Another three had technically survived, but Truman
doubted any of the ten would be worth repairing. All four of Kuzak's CLACs had
been killed, and of Truman's own eight, three had been destroyed, one was a
drifting cripple without impellers, and the other four—including Chimera—were
severely damaged. For all intents and purposes, Third Fleet had been as totally
destroyed Home Fleet.
But the
merciless hail of missiles had at least stopped pounding its remnants.
And, Truman thought with grim survivor's humor, I don't
blame whoever gave that order a bit, either.
* * *
"Missile
trace!" Frazier Adamson barked suddenly, and Lester Tourville's belly
muscles clenched.
What was
left of Third Fleet had stopped firing when he did. Were they insane enough to resume
the action? If they did, he'd have no choice but to—
"Sir,
they're coming in from outside the zone!" Adamson said.
"What?"
Molly DeLaney demanded incredulously. "That's ridiculous! They're a
hundred fifty million klicks away!"
"Well,
they're coming in on us now anyway," Tourville said sharply as
Guerriere's missile defense batteries began to fire once more.
They didn't
do much good. He watched sickly as the missiles which had suddenly brought up
their impellers, appearing literally out of nowhere, hurtled down on his
battered and broken command. They drove straight in, swerving, dancing, and his
sick feeling of helplessness frayed around the edges as he realized there were
less than sixty of them. Whatever they were, they weren't a serious attack on
his surviving ships, so what—?
His jaw
tightened as the missiles made their final approach. But they didn't detonate.
Instead, they hurtled directly through his formation, straight through
the teeth of his blazing laser clusters.
His point
defense crews managed to nail two-thirds of them. The other twenty pirouetted,
swerved to one side, then detonated in a perfectly synchronized, deadly
accurate attack . . . on absolutely nothing.
Lester
Tourville exhaled the breath he hadn't realized he was holding. He sensed the
confusion of his flag bridge crew, and this time, he had no answer at all for
them. Then—
"Sir,"
Lieutenant Eisenberg said in a very small voice, "I have a com request for
you."
He turned
his command chair to look at her, and she swallowed.
"It's
. . . from Duchess Harrington, Sir."
The silence
on Guerriere's flag bridge was complete. Then Tourville cleared his
throat.
"Throw
it on my display, Ace," he said.
"Yes,
Sir. Coming up now."
An instant
later, a face appeared on Tourville's display. He'd seen that face before, when
its owner surrendered to him. And again, when she had been clubbed down by the
pulse rifle butts of State Security goons. Now she looked at him, her eyes like
two more missile tubes.
"We
meet again, Admiral Tourville," she said, and her soprano voice was cold.
"Admiral
Harrington," he replied. "This is a surprise. I thought you were
about eight light-minutes away."
"I am.
I'm speaking to you over what we call a 'Hermes buoy.' It's an FTL relay with
standard sub-light communication capability. We can load it into a cell in one
of our new missile pods." The expression she produced was technically a
smile, but it was one that belonged on something out of deep, dark oceanic
depths.
"It
accompanied my missile launch so I could speak directly to you," she
continued in that same, icy-cold voice. "I'm sure you observed my birds'
terminal performance. I'm also sure you understand I have the capability to
blow every single one of your remaining ships out of space from my present
position. I hope you aren't going to make it necessary for me to do so."
Tourville
looked at her, and knew that last statement wasn't really accurate. Knew a part
of her—the part behind those frozen eyes, that icy voice—hoped he would make
it necessary. But too many people had already died for him to kill still more
out of sheer stupidity.
"No,
Your Grace," he said quietly. "I won't make it necessary."
"My
acceptance of your surrender," she told him, "is contingent upon the
surrender of your ships—and their databases—in their present condition. Is that
clearly understood, Admiral Tourville?"
He hovered
on the brink of refusing, of declaring that he would scrub his databases, as
was customary, before surrendering a ship. But then he looked into those icy
eyes again, and the temptation vanished.
"It's
. . . understood, Your Grace," he made himself say.
"Good.
Decelerate to zero relative to the system primary. You'll be boarded by prize
officers once you do. In the meantime," she smiled again, that same
terrifying smile, "my ships will remain here, where we can . . . keep an
eye on things."
* * *
"Your
Grace," Andrea Jaruwalski said, as Honor turned away from her conversation
with Lester Tourville.
"Yes,
Andrea?"
Honor felt
drained and empty. She supposed she should feel triumph. After all, she'd just
destroyed almost seventy superdreadnoughts, and captured another seventy-five.
That had to be an interstellar record, and for a bonus, her people had saved
the Star Kingdom's capital system from invasion. But after so much carnage, so
much destruction, how was a woman supposed to feel triumphant?
"Your
Grace, we're getting IDs off Admiral Kuzak's surviving ships from the inner
system recon platforms."
"Yes?"
Honor felt herself tightening inside. The pitiful handful of icons where Third
Fleet had been mocked her. If she'd been able to get her ships into position
even a few minutes earlier, perhaps—
She forced
that thought aside, and looked Andrea in the eye.
"Your
Grace, most of our ships are gone," Jaruwalski said softly, "but I've
got transponder codes on both Chimera and Intransigent."
Honor's
heart spasmed, and the ice about her soul seemed to crack, ever so slightly.
Nimitz stirred in her lap, sitting up once again, leaning back against her and
reaching up to touch the side of her face with a long-fingered true-hand.
"I've
been trying to contact them," Harper Brantley put in, drawing Honor's attention
to him, and her eyes burned as she tasted his emotions. Like Jaruwalski, he
wanted desperately to give her some sort of good news, to tell her someone she
loved had survived. Something to balance at least some of the pain and
the blood.
"I
can't raise Chimera," Brantley continued. "It looks like she's
actually in better general shape than Intransigent, but her grav com
seems to be down. I've got Captain Thomas on the FTL, though."
"Put
it on my screen," Honor said quickly, and turned to her com as it lit with
the strained, exhausted face of Alistair McKeon's flag captain.
"Captain
Thomas!" Honor said with a huge smile. "It's good to see
you."
"And
to see you, Your Grace," Thomas replied, and there was something just a
bit odd about her voice.
"I've
accepted the surrender of the remaining Havenite vessels," Honor
continued. "Since you're so much closer to them than I am, it would make
more sense to let Admiral McKeon or Admiral Truman handle the final details.
Could I speak to Admiral McKeon, please?"
"I—"
Thomas paused, then closed her eyes for just a moment, her weary face wrung
with pain.
"Your
Grace," she said softly, "I'm sorry. We took a direct hit on Flag
Bridge. There were . . . no survivors."
It was very
quiet in the nursery.
Her parents
were downstairs, undoubtedly playing hearts with Hamish and Emily while they
waited for her, and she didn't have much time. They were all due at Mount Royal
Palace for a formal state dinner which was going to keep them out to all hours,
and she'd come up to the nursery in uniform to save time changing later. In a
lot of ways, she supposed, she really didn't have the time for this at all, but
that was just too bad. The rest of the Star Kingdom—and the galaxy at large,
for that matter—could just wait.
Lindsey
Phillips had helped her get Raoul and Katherine changed and ready for bed while
Emily supervised. Now she sat in her favorite chair—Raoul in her lap, Katherine
asleep in the bassinet beside her—and adjusted the reading lamp, then looked at
her sister and brother, curled like treecats on floor cushions in front of her.
"Are
you ready?" she asked, and they nodded. "Where were we?"
"The
pyre," Faith said, with a seven-year-old's assured, intimate familiarity
with the story.
"Of
course we were." She shook her head as she opened the book and began
turning pages. "It's been so long, I'd forgotten where we'd gotten
to."
Raoul began
to fuss, with the quiet, stubborn, eyes-squeezed- shut intensity of a
four-month-old. She reached out to his mind-glow, touching it gently, and
smiled. He wasn't really unhappy, just . . . bored with a world which wasn't
focused exclusively on him. "Bored" wasn't really exactly the right
word, she thought, but a baby's emotions, though clear and strong, were still
in a formative stage, and it was difficult—even for her—to parse them exactly.
She felt
Nimitz, stretched out across the chair back, reaching for the baby with her.
There was something just a little odd about Raoul's mind-glow. Most of the
time, Honor was convinced it was her imagination, just a difference in the way
babies' emotions worked. Other times, she was far less certain of that, and
this was one of those times.
Nimitz
touched the baby's mind-glow, and Raoul stopped fussing instantly. His eyes
opened, and that sense of boredom vanished. Honor turned her head, looking at
Nimitz, and the treecat's grass-green eyes gleamed at her from the
semi-darkness beyond the reading lamp's cone. She felt him radiating gentle
reassurance, and Raoul gurgled happily.
Honor smiled
at her younger siblings, then laid the book down long enough to maneuver Raoul
into a seated position, supported against her shoulder, and looked at Nimitz.
"Did
you do that with me, too, Stinker?" she asked him quietly. "I know we
started later, but did you?"
Nimitz
gazed back at her, and she felt the thoughtfulness behind those green eyes.
Then, unmistakably, he nodded.
"Oh,
my," Honor murmured, then looked down into Raoul's wide-open eyes. The
baby was intent, focused . . . listening, and she shook her head. "Sweet
pea," she told him tenderly, "fasten your seat belt. It's going to be
an interesting ride."
Nimitz
bleeked in cheerful agreement, and she felt long, agile fingers tug at
something on the back of her neck. Then Nimitz lifted the Star of Grayson over
her head on its crimson ribbon and dangled it above Raoul.
The baby's
attention sharpened. He couldn't tell exactly what the star was at this point,
but the bright sparkles of light dancing on its golden-starburst beauty drew
his eyes like a magnet, and he reached up with one tiny, delicate hand while
Nimitz crooned to him.
Honor
watched for a moment, trying to imagine how the more stodgy of Grayson's
steadholders would have reacted to the thought of an "animal" using
their planet's highest, most solemn award for valor as a toy to distract a
baby. No doubt the heart attacks would have come fast and thick, and she smiled
slightly at the thought.
Then she
looked back at Faith and James, and her smile turned a bit apologetic.
"Sorry.
But now that Nimitz is keeping Raoul occupied, we can be about it.
She opened
the book again, found her place, and began to read.
"'Behold,
my boy.' The Phoenix opened the boxes and spread the cinnamon sticks on the
nest. Then it took the cans and sprinkled the cinnamon powder over the top and
sides of the heap, until the whole nest was a brick-dust red.
"'There
we are, my boy,' said the Phoenix sadly. 'The traditional cinnamon pyre of the
Phoenix, celebrated in song and story.'
"And
with the third mention of the word 'pyre,' David's legs went weak and something
seemed to catch in his throat. He remembered now where he had heard that word
before. It was in his book of explorers, and it meant—it meant—
"'Phoenix,'
he choked, "wh-wh-who is the pyre for?'
"'For
myself,' said the Phoenix.
"'Phoenix!'"
Raoul
gurgled happily, reaching for the shiny star, and Honor tasted Faith and James'
rapt attention as they concentrated on the story. She'd always found it hard to
read this final chapter without letting her voice fog up and waver just a bit
around the edges.
That was
harder than usual tonight.
She kept on
reading the well-worn, beloved words, but under them were other thoughts, far
removed from the peaceful quiet of this comforting, enfolding nursery.
Three
weeks. Just three weeks since the carnage and destruction, the death. The Star
Kingdom was still coming to grips with what had happened. No doubt, the
Republic of Haven was doing the same, although Nouveau Paris would only have
gotten the word ten days ago.
One hundred
and thirty-nine Manticoran, Grayson, and Andermani superdreadnoughts and seven
CLACs destroyed outright, and another seven superdreadnoughts and two CLACs so
badly damaged they would never fight again. Twenty-seven battlecruisers, gone.
Thirty-six heavy cruisers and two thousand eight hundred and six LACs,
destroyed. The official death toll for the Alliance was 596,245, with another
3,512 wounded survivors. But for the Republic, it was even worse: two hundred
and fifty-one superdreadnoughts destroyed, along with six CLACs, sixty-four
battlecruisers, fifty-four heavy cruisers, and 4,612 LACs, and sixty-eight
superdreadnoughts and over three thousand LACs captured. The Star Kingdom was
still trying to compute the true, shattering depth of Lester Tourville's
casualties, but the numbers they'd already come up with stood at almost 1.7 million
dead, 6,602 wounded, and 379,732 prisoners. The number of dead was almost
certain to climb, according to Patricia Givens. It might even top two million
before it was all done.
No one in
history had ever seen a battle like it, and it ought to have been decisive. The
walls of battle of both the Alliance and the Republic had been gutted. Yet
despite Haven's horrific losses, the loss ratio was actually in the Republic's
favor in hulls, and hugely so in terms of loss of life. Had it not been for the
existence of Apollo—deployed so far only aboard Honor's ships—at this moment,
no power in the universe could have prevented the Republic of Haven's remaining
SD(P)s from rolling right over the Manticoran home system. Yet Apollo did exist,
and what Honor had done to Genevieve Chin's fleet served as lethal notice to
Thomas Theisman that he could not possibly take Manticore while Eighth Fleet
survived.
Yet that
also meant Eighth Fleet couldn't possibly uncover Manticore. Fleet Admiral
Honor Alexander-Harrington was now the commander of the Star Kingdom's Home
Fleet, her ships as anchored to the capital system as if each of them had been
welded to Hephaestus or Vulcan.
And Honor
had emerged from the holocaust as the only surviving Allied fleet commander
engaged. She was being given credit for the victory, lauded as "the
greatest naval commander of her age" by the newsfaxes. A Manticoran public
shocked to its very marrow by the audacity of the Havenite attack, terrified by
how close Lester Tourville had come to success, had fastened on her as
its heroine and savior.
Not
Sebastian D'Orville, who'd given his life knowing he and all his people
were going to die. If D'Orville hadn't decisively blunted the initial attack,
it would have devastated everything in the Manticore System, no matter what
Theodosia Kuzak or Honor had done, and he and his fleet had died where they
stood to do it.
Not
Theodosia Kuzak, whose Third Fleet had sailed straight into the jaws of death.
Who'd done everything right, yet tripped the guillotine which would have
destroyed Eighth Fleet, just as surely as it had destroyed the Third, if Honor
had been in her place.
And not
Alistair McKeon, who had died like so many thousands of others, doing what he
always did—his duty. Protecting the star nation he loved, serving the Queen he
honored. Obeying the orders of the admiral who'd sent him unknowingly to his
death . . . and who'd never even had the chance to say goodbye.
The praise,
the adulation, were as bitter on her tongue as the ashes of the Phoenix's pyre,
and she felt the darkness outside this quiet nursery. The darkness of the
future, with all its uncertainties, all its risks in the wake of such a savage
display of combat power and such cruel losses to both combatants. The darkness
of the new and terrible blood debt the Star Kingdom and the Republic had laid
up between them. The hatred and the fear which had to come from such a
cataclysmic encounter, with all its dark implications for where the war between
them might go.
And the
darkness of the past. The darkness of memory, of grief. Of remembering those
who were gone, who she would never see again.
Her voice
had continued, her eyes moving down the printed page out of reflex, guided by
memory, but now she heard her own words once again.
"David
noticed then that he was holding something in his hand, something soft and
heavy. As he lifted it to look more closely, it flashed in the sunlight. It was
the feather the Phoenix had given him, the tail feather. Tail feather? . . .
But the Phoenix's tail had been a sapphire blue. The feather in his hand was of
the purest, palest gold.
"There
was a slight stir behind him. In spite of himself, he glanced at the remains of
the pyre. His mouth dropped open. In the middle of the white ashes and glowing
coals there was movement. Something within was struggling up toward the top.
The noises grew stronger and more definite. Charred sticks were being snapped,
ashes kicked aside, embers pushed out of the way. Now, like a plant thrusting
its way out of the soil, there appeared something pale and glittering, which
nodded in the breeze. Little tongues of flame, it seemed, licking out into the
air . . . No, not flames! A crest of golden feathers! . . . A heave from below
lifted the ashes in the center of the pile, a fine cloud of flakes swirled up
into the breeze, there was a flash of sunlight glinting on brilliant plumage.
And from the ruins of the pyre stepped forth a magnificent bird."
The ancient
story's imagery touched her. It always had, but this time, it was different.
"It
was the Phoenix," she heard herself read, "it must be the Phoenix!
But it was a new and different Phoenix. It was young and wild, with a fierce
amber eye; its crest was tall and proud, its body the slim, muscular body of a
hunter, its wings narrow and long and pointed like a falcon's, the great beak
and talons razor-sharp and curving. And all of it, from crest to talons, was a
burnished gold that reflected the sun in a thousand dazzling lights.
"The
bird stretched its wings, shook the ash from its tail, and began to preen
itself. Every movement was like the flash of a silent explosion.
"'Phoenix,'
David whispered. 'Phoenix.'"
Honor saw
Alistair in the Phoenix, heard herself in the ancient David. Heard the
yearning, the hunger, the need for the rebirth of all she'd lost, all that had
been taken from the universe.
"The
bird started, turned toward him, looked at him for an instant with wild,
fearless eyes, then continued its preening. Suddenly it stopped and cocked its
head as if listening to something. Then David heard it to: a shout down the
mountainside, louder and clearer now, excited and jubilant. He shivered and
looked down. The Scientist was tearing up the goat trail as fast as his long
legs would carry him—and he was waving a rifle.
"'Phoenix!'
David cried. 'Fly! Fly, Phoenix!'
"The
bird looked at the Scientist, then at David, its glance curious but without
understanding. Paralyzed with fear, David remained on his knees as the
Scientist reached an open place and threw the gun up to his shoulder. The bullet
went whining by with an ugly hornet-noise, and the report of the gun echoed
along the scarp.
"'Fly,
Phoenix!' David sobbed. A second bullet snarled at the bird, and spattered out
little chips of rock from the inner wall of the ledge.
"'Oh,
fly, fly!' David jumped up and flung himself between the bird and the
Scientist. 'It's me!' he cried. 'It's David!' The bird gazed at him closely,
and the light flickered in its eye as though the name had reached out and
almost, but not quite, touched an ancient memory. Hesitantly it stretched forth
one wing, and with the tip of it lightly brushed David's forehead, leaving
there a mark which burned coolly.
"'Get
away from that bird, you little idiot!' the Scientist shrieked. "GET
AWAY!'
"David
ignored him. 'Fly, Phoenix!' he cried, and he pushed the bird toward the
edge."
No, she
thought. She wasn't David, and Alistair wasn't simply the Phoenix. Alistair was
David and the Phoenix, just as the Phoenix was all he had thrown himself
in front of, like a shield, protecting it with his life, guarding it with his
death.
And, like
the Phoenix, he was forever gone beyond her touch again. She read the final
paragraph through a blur of tears.
"Understanding
dawned in the amber eyes at last. The bird, with one clear, defiant cry, leaped
to an out-jutting boulder. The golden wings spread, the golden neck curved
back, the golden talons pushed against the rock. The bird launched itself into
the air and soared out over the valley, sparkling, flashing, shimmering; a
flame, large as a sunburst, a meteor, a diamond, a star, diminishing at last to
a speck of gold dust, which glimmered twice in the distance before it was gone
altogether."
Fly,
Alistair, Honor Alexander-Harrington
thought. Wherever you are, wherever God takes you, fly high. I'll guard the
Phoenix for you, I promise. Goodbye. I love you.
In 1957,
Follett Publishing Company of Chicago published a book by a fellow by the name
of Edward Ormondroyd. That book was called David and the Phoenix, and in
1958, the Weekly Reader Children's Book Club brought out its own edition.
I was six
years old that year, and David and the Phoenix is the very first book I
can remember reading entirely to myself.
It made an
impression.
Aside from
the fact that the book's human protagonist had the best imaginable first name,
it had several other things going for it. It was written for young people, but
it wasn't written down to them. It was written in the sort of prose any
writer could do well to learn from. And, most importantly of all, it told a
marvelous story which taught that the world is full of wonder.
I can think
back to most of the important, formative writers who first turned me into a
reader, and, ultimately, into a writer myself. C. S. Lewis is on the list, and
so are Walter Farley, Arthur Ransom, and Edward Ormondroyd. Indeed, for me, he
came first; the others simply followed the trail he'd blazed and took me to
other destinations.
Over the
years, I hung on to my Weekly Reader copy of the book. I still have it, as a
matter of fact, and I intend to go right on hanging onto it. But, in the last
couple of years, I've revisited David and the Phoenix and seen it from a
rather different perspective.
I've been
reading it aloud to my own children. Sharon and I are both readers ourselves,
of course, and we deliberately set out, with careful premeditation, to turn our
kids into readers, as well. As part of our nefarious plan, Daddy reads to them
every night. (After all, the first taste is always free.) Mommy gets the day
shift's reading, and we double-team them fairly well, I think.
There have
been a few evenings of slippage, especially since Michael Paul, our
youngest, discovered Finding Nemo. Michael can be a bit . . . insistent,
and he has a two-year-old's stubbornness. (Well, there's also that additional
little streak of willfulness he gets from his mom, of course, but we won't talk
about that.) Still, all three of the children have been through David and
the Phoenix at least twice now. And when I went on a signing tour, I
recorded the entire book on CD, so that Morgan Emily and Megan Elizabeth (and
Mikey, although he was only five months old at the time) wouldn't miss their
fix of Daddy-reading while I was gone.
In case you
haven't already figured it out, I think this is quite possibly one of the very
best young-adult books ever written. And it's pretty amazing how many people I
run into at science-fiction conventions who read the same book when they were
younger.
Unhappily,
it went out of print eventually. And it stayed out of print for a long time.
But then, in 2000, Purple House Press in Keller, Texas, reissued it in
paperback. When I got my hands on a copy of the Purple House edition, I
contacted them, and through them, got Mr. Ormondroyd's very kind permission to
quote from the book in At All Costs. Not just because it was one of my
most beloved childhood stories, but because the central imagery and theme of
the book fitted so perfectly into the story I had to tell about Honor
Harrington.
I take the
reissue of this book after forty-three years as a good sign for the future.
It's always possible, of course, that the Society of Creative Anachronisms of
two thousand years from now, won't have the good taste and good sense to
keep it in print then. However, I understand that Purple House is planning a
hardcover release, as well, and that they intend to keep it in print for
quite a while.
This is
what is known as A Good Thing. It gives any of you haven't read it the opportunity
to repair your oversight.
Take it.
Whether you
have children to read it to or not, this is truly a work of wonder which will
repay your time with gryphons, leprechauns, banshees who feed their wails on
heads of cabbage, witches with racing broomsticks, fauns, sea monsters, the
pipes of Pan himself, and most wondrous of all, the Phoenix. With that sense of
both loss and perpetual renewal. Of friendship, love, the willingness to
sacrifice for both, and the ability to let go at the end because of love.
It's a
wonderful book, and, like the Phoenix, its wonder will never really die.
Alpha nodes—
The
impeller nodes of a starship which both generate its normal-space impeller
wedge and reconfigure to generate Warshawski sails in hyper-space.
Alpha translation—
The
translation into or out of the alpha (lowest) bands of hyper-space.
Andermani Empire—
Empire
founded by mercenary Gustav Anderman. The Empire lies to the "west"
of the Star Kingdom, has an excellent navy, and is the Star Kingdom's primary
competitor for trade and influence in the Silesian Confederacy.
Andies—
Slang term
for citizens and (especially) the military personnel and forces of the
Andermani Empire.
Apollo—
A
Manticoran development utilizing forward-deployed FTL communications links to
provide real-time fire control for long-range missile fire.
BB—
Battleship.
At one time, the heaviest capital ship but now considered too small to
"lie in the wall." Average tonnage is from 2,000,000 to 4,000,000
tons. Employed by some navies for rear area system security but no longer
considered an effective warship type.
BC—
Battlecruiser.
The lightest unit considered a "capital ship." Designed to destroy
anything it can catch and to outrun anything that can destroy it. Average
tonnage is from 500,000–1,200,000 tons.
Beta node—
Secondary
generating nodes of a spacecraft's impeller wedge. They contribute only to the
impeller wedge used for normal-space movement. Less powerful and less expensive
than alpha nodes.
BLS—
Basic
Living Stipend. The welfare payment from the PRH government to its permanent
underclass. Essentially, the BLS was a straight exchange of government services
for a permanent block vote supporting the Legislaturalists who controlled the
government.
DD—
Destroyer.
The smallest hyper-capable warship currently being built by most navies.
Average tonnage is from 65,000–80,000 tons.
"Down the throat
shot"—
An attack
launched from directly ahead of an impeller-drive spacecraft in order to fire
lengthwise down its impeller wedge. Due to the geometry of the impeller wedge,
this is a warship's most vulnerable single aspect.
DN—
Dreadnought.
A class of warship lying midway between battleships and superdreadnoughts. No
major navy is currently building this type. Average tonnage is from 4,000,000
to 6,000,000 tons.
CA—
Heavy
cruiser (from Cruiser, Armored). Designed for commerce protection and
long-endurance system pickets. Designed to stand in for capital ships against
moderate level threats. Average tonnage is from 160,000–350,000 tons, although
that has begun to creep upward towards traditional battlecruiser tonnage ranges
in some navies.
Centrists—
A
Manticoran political party typified by pragmatism and moderation on most issues
but very tightly focused on the Havenite threat and how to defeat it. The party
supported by Honor Harrington.
CIC—
Combat
Information Center. The "nerve center" of a warship, responsible for
gathering and organizing sensor data and the tactical situation.
CL—
Light
cruiser. The primary scouting unit of most navies. Also used for both commerce
protection and raiding. Average tonnage is from 90,000–150,000 tons.
CLAC—
LAC
carrier. A starship of dreadnought or superdreadnought size configured to
transport LACs through hyper-space and to service and arm them for combat.
COLAC—
Commanding
Officer, Light Attack Craft. The commander of the entire group of LACs carried
by a CLAC.
Committee of Public Safety—
The
committee established by Rob S. Pierre after his overthrow of the
Legislaturalists to control the PRH. It instituted a reign of terror and
systematic purges of surviving Legislaturalists and prosecuted the war against
the Star Kingdom.
Confederation Navy—
Organized
naval forces of the Silesian Confederacy.
Confeds—
Slang term
for citizens of the Silesian Confederacy and (especially) for members of the
Confederation Navy.
Conservative Association—
A generally
reactionary Manticoran political party whose primary consti-tuency is the
extremely conservative aristocracy.
Coup de Vitesse—
A primarily
offensive, "hard style" martial art preferred by the RMN and RMMC.
Main emphasis is on weaponless combat.
Crown Loyalists—
A
Manticoran political party united around the concept that the Star Kingdom
requires a strong monarchy, largely as a counter balance to the power of the
conservative element in the aristocracy. Despite this, the Star Kingdom's more
progressive aristocracy is heavily represented in the Crown Loyalists.
Dolist—
One of a
class of Havenite citizens totally dependent on the government-provided Basic
Living Stipend. As a group, undereducated and underskilled.
"Donkey," The—
The popular
name given by Havenite crews to the tractor-equipped platforms developed by
Shannon Foraker to increase the number of missile pods the Republic's warships
can tow.
Keyhole—
A
Manticoran-developed deployable platform mounting control links and telemetry
channels for offensive and defensive missiles.
ECM—
Electronic
counter measures.
EW—
Electronic
warfare.
FIA—
Federal
Investigative Agency. The national police force of the restored Republic of
Haven.
FIS—
Federal
Intelligence Service. The primary espionage agency of the restored Republic of
Haven.
Ghostrider, Project—
A Manticoran
research project dedicated to the development of the multi-drive missile and
associated technology. The original Ghostrider blossomed into a large number of
sub-projects which emphasized electronic warfare and decoys as well as
offensive missiles.
Gravity waves—
A naturally
occurring phenomenon in hyper-space consisting of permanent, very powerful
regions of focused gravitic stress which remain motionless but for a
(relatively) slow side-slipping or drifting. Vessels with Warshawski sails are
capable of using such waves to attain very high levels of acceleration; vessels
under impeller drive are destroyed upon entering them.
Grav pulse com—
A
communication device using gravitic pulses to achieve FTL communications over
intrasystem ranges.
Grayson—
Habitable
planet of Yeltsin's Star. Star Kingdom of Manticore's most important single
ally.
Hyper limit—
The
critical distance from a given star at which starships may enter or leave
hyper-space. The limit varies with the mass of the star. Very large planets
have hyper limits of their own.
Hyper-space—
Multiple
layers of associated but discrete dimensions which bring points in normal-space
into closer congruence, thus permitting effectively faster than light travel
between them. Layers are divided into "bands" of closely associated
dimensions. The barriers between such bands are the sites of turbulence and
instability which become increasingly powerful and dangerous as a vessel moves
"higher" in hyper-space.
IAN—
Imperial
Andermani Navy.
Impeller drive—
The
standard reactionless normal-space drive of the Honor Harrington universe,
employing artificially generated bands (or "wedges") of gravitic
energy to provide very high rates of acceleration. It is also used in
hyper-space outside gravity waves.
Impeller wedge—
The
inclined planes of gravitic stress formed above and below a spacecraft by its
impeller drive. A military impeller wedge's "floor" and
"roof" are impenetrable by any known weapon.
Inertial compensator—
A device
which creates an "inertial sump," diverting the inertial forces
associated with acceleration into a starship's impeller wedge or a naturally
occurring gravity wave, thus negating the g-force the ship's crew would
otherwise experience. Smaller vessels enjoy a higher compensator efficiency for
a given strength of wedge or gravity wave and thus can achieve higher
accelerations than larger vessels.
InSec—
Internal
Security. The secret police and espionage service of the PRH under the
Legislaturalists. Charged with security functions and suppression of dissent.
Keyhole II—
A successor
to the original Keyhole platform which is configured with FTL communications
links instead of light-speed telemetry.
LAC—
Light
Attack Craft. A sublight warship type, incapable of entering hyper, which masses
between 40,000 and 60,000 tons. Until recently, considered an obsolete and
ineffective warship good for little but customs duty and light patrol work.
Advances in technology have changed that view of it.
Laser clusters—
Last-ditch,
close-range anti-missile point defense systems.
Liberal Party—
A
Manticoran political party typified by a belief in isolationism and the need
for social intervention and the use of the power of the state to
"level" economic and political inequities within the Star Kingdom.
Legislaturalists—
The
hereditary ruling class of the PRH. The descendants of the politicians who
created the Dolist System more than two hundred years before the beginning of
the current war.
Manties—
Slang term
for citizens of and (especially) military personnel/forces of the Star Kingdom
of Manticore.
Mark 31 Counter-missile—
A new,
longer-range counter-missile developed by Manticore and deployed by the
Alliance to give greater stand off engagement range against MDMs. The Mark 31
also provides the platform and missile drive for the Viper (see below).
MDM—
Multi-drive
missile. A new Manticoran weapon development which enormously enhances the
range of missile combat by providing additional drive endurance.
Mistletoe—
Codename
assigned by Sonja Hemphill to weapon-equipped "reconnaissance drones"
used to creep into attack range of critical system defense infrastructure.
Moriarty—
Codename
assigned by Shannon Foraker to a specially developed centralized fire control
node deployed to coordinate MDMs used in the system defense role.
NavInt—
Shortened
version of Naval Intelligence. The naval intelligence agency of the Republic of
Haven.
New Men—
A
Manticoran political party headed by Sheridan Wallace. Small and opportunistic.
Office of Naval Intelligence
(ONI)—
The RMN's
naval intelligence service, directed by the Second Space Lord.
Peeps—
Slang term
for citizens and (especially) military personnel of the Peoples' Republic of
Haven.
Penaids—
Electronic
systems carried by missiles to assist them in penetrating their targets' active
and passive defenses.
Pinnace—
A general
purpose military small craft capable of lifting approximately 100 personnel.
Equipped with its own impeller wedge, capable of high acceleration, and
normally armed. May be configured for ground support.
Powered Armor—
Battle
armor combining a vac suit with protection proof against most man-portable
projectile weapons, very powerful exoskeletal "muscles,"
sophisticated on-board sensors, and maneuvering thrusters for use in vacuum.
Progressive Party—
A
Manticoran political party typified by what it considers a pragmatic acceptance
of realpolitik. It is somewhat more socially liberal than the Centrists but has
traditionally considered a war against Haven as unwinnable and believed that
the Star Kingdom's interests would be best served by cutting some sort of
"deal" with the PRH.
Protector—
Title of
ruler of Grayson. Equivalent to "emperor." The current protector is
Benjamin Mayhew.
PubIn—
Office of
Public Information. Propaganda arm of the PRH under both the Legislaturalists
and the Committee of Public Safety.
PRH—
Peoples'
Republic of Haven. The name applied to the Republic of Haven during the period
when it was controlled by the Legislaturalists and/or the Committee of Public
Safety. It was the PRH which began the current war by attacking the Star
Kingdom of Manticore and the Manticoran Alliance.
Republic of Erewhon—
Government
of the Erewhon System. A single-system unit which controls the Erewhon Wormhole
Junction connecting the Solarian League and the Phoenix Wormhole Junction. A
member of the Manticoran Alliance since before the start of the current war.
Republic of Haven—
The largest
human interstellar political unit after the Solarian League itself. Until
recently it was known as the Peoples' Republic of Haven, ruled by an hereditary
governing class known as the Legislaturalists until they were overthrown by Rob
S. Pierre. Thereafter controlled by Pierre through the Committee of Public
Safety until it, too, was overthrown in turn and the original constitution of
the Republic was reinstated.
RHN—
Republic of
Haven Navy. Navy of the Republic of Haven as reorganized by Thomas Theisman.
RMAIA—
Royal
Manticoran Astrography Investigation Agency. Agency created by High Ridge
Government to explore the Manticoran Wormhole Junction searching for additional
termini.
RMN—
Royal
Manticoran Navy.
RMMC—
Royal
Manticoran Marine Corps
SD—
Superdreadnought.
The largest and most powerful hyper-capable warship. Average tonnage is from
6,000,000–8,500,000 tons.
Shuttles—
Small craft
employed by starships for personnel and cargo movement from ship to ship or
ship to surface. Cargo shuttles are configured primarily as freight haulers,
with limited personnel capacity. Assault shuttles are heavily armed and armored
and typically are capable of lifting at least a full company of ground troops.
Sidewalls—
Protective
barriers of gravitic stress projected to either side of a warship to protect
its flanks from hostile fire. Not as difficult to penetrate as an impeller
wedge, but still a very powerful defense.
Silesian Confederacy—
A large,
chaotic political entity lying between the Star Kingdom of Manticore and the
Andermani Empire. Its central government is both weak and extremely corrupt and
the region is plagued by pirates. Despite this, the Confederacy is a large and
very important foreign market for the Star Kingdom.
Sillies—
Slang term
for Silesian citizens and/or military personnel.
Solarian League—
Largest,
wealthiest star nation of the explored galaxy, with decentralized government
managed by extremely powerful bureaucracies.
Sollies—
Slang term
for citizens or military personnel of the Solarian League.
StateSec—
Also "SS."
Office of State Security. The successor to Internal Security under the
Committee of Public Safety. Even more powerful than InSec. Headed by Oscar
Saint-Just, originally second-in-command of InSec, who betrayed the
Legislaturalists to aid Rob Pierre in overthrowing them.
Star Kingdom of Manticore—
A small,
wealthy star nation consisting of two star systems: the Manticore System and
the Basilisk System.
Treecats—
The native
sentient species of the planet Sphinx. Six-limbed, telempathic arboreal predators
which average between 1.5 and 2 meters in length (including prehensile tail). A
small percentage of them bond with "adopted" humans in a near
symbiotic relationship. Although incapable of speech, treecats have recently
learned to communicate with humans using sign language.
Triple Ripple—
A Havenite
defensive technique utilizing heavy concentrations of nuclear warheads to blind
and disable enemy missile seekers and electronic warfare platforms.
"Up the kilt shot"—
An attack
launched from directly astern of a starship in order to fire down the length of
its impeller wedge. Due to the geometry of the impeller drive, this is a
warship's second most vulnerable aspect.
Viper—
A
Grayson-Manticoran-developed missile with shorter range but higher acceleration
rates and better seeker systems and onboard AI to create a "launch and
forget" weapon for use in the anti-LAC role. Vipers can also be used as
standard counter-missiles.
Warshawski—
Name
applied to all gravitic detectors in honor of the inventor of the first such
device.
Warshawski, Adrienne—
The
greatest hyper-physicist in human history.
Warshawski sail—
The
circular gravity "grab fields" devised by Adrienne Warshawski to
permit starships to "sail" along gravity waves in hyper-space.
Wormhole junction—
A gravitic
anomaly. Effectively, a frozen flaw in normal space providing access via
hyper-space as an instantaneous link between widely separated points. The
largest known junction is the Manticoran Wormhole Junction with six known
termini as of the beginning of War of Honor.
Abercrombie, Captain Boniface, RHN—senior COLAC, Gaston System Defense Command.
Abrioux, Senior Inspector Danielle ("Danny")—a senior investigator for the Havenite FIA on personal
assignment from Kevin Usher.
Anders, Captain William ("Five"), RHN—chief of staff, Bolthole.
Anisimovna, Aldona—Manpower Inc. board member; member of Mesan Strategy
Council.
al-Bakr, Admiral Gammal, Zanzibar System Navy—CNO Zanzibar System Navy, CO Zanzibar System Defense
Command.
Alexander, Emily—Countess White Haven, wife of Hamish Alexander, Earl
White Haven.
Alexander, Admiral Hamish RMN (ret)—Earl White Haven, First Lord of Admiralty.
Alexander, William—Baron Grantville, Hamish Alexander's brother, Prime
Minister of the Star Kingdom of Manticore.
Arbuckle, Senior Steward Clarissa—Michael Henke's personal steward.
Atkins, Corporal Joshua—Harrington Steadholder's Guard, one of Honor
Harrington's new personal armsmen.
Ariel—treecat
companion of Queen Elizabeth III.
Ayrault—Captain
Maurice, RMN, chief of staff, Home Fleet.
Banacek, Lieutenant Sally—RHN—Captain Boniface Abercrombie's tactical officer.
Banshee—treecat
companion of Roslee Orndorff.
Bardasano, Isabel—Jessyk Combine Cadet board member; senior Mesan
"wet work" specialist.
Barloi, Henrietta—Republic of Haven Secretary of Technology.
Bascou, Lieutenant Edouard, RHN—staff communications officer, Gaston System Defense
Command.
Beach, Rear Admiral Everette, RHN—CO, Gaston System Defense Command.
Beauchamp, Captain Heinrich, RHN—CO, Hera System Defense Command's sensor net.
Begin, Camille—a
Havenite security dispatcher.
Bellefeuille, Diana—Rear Admiral Bellefeuille's daughter.
Bellefeuille, Rear Admiral Jennifer, RHN—CO, Chantilly System Defense Command.
Bellefeuille, Matthew—Rear Admiral Bellefeuille's son.
Bellefeuille, Russell—Rear Admiral Bellefeuille's husband.
Bibeau, Lieutenant Charles, RHN—plotting officer of the watch, Alpha Station, Solon
System.
Blackett, Corporal Luke, Harrington Steadholder's Guard—James Harrington's personal armsman.
Blaine, Admiral Jessup, RMN—CO, Task Force 14, Lynx Station.
Blumenthal, Commander Joel, RMN—executive officer, HMS Nike.
Bradshaw, Lieutenant Franklin, RMN—staff communications officer, Third Fleet.
Bradshaw, Rear Admiral Winston, RMN—CO, Cruiser Squadron 7.
Braga, Lieutenant Commander Antonio, RMN—astrogator, Battlecruiser Squadron 81.
Brankovski, Captain Amanda, RMN—senior COLAC, CLAC Squadron 6.
Brantley, Lieutenant Harper, RMN—staff communications officer, Eighth Fleet.
Bressand, Rear Admiral Baptiste, RHN—CO, Augusta System Defense Command.
Brigham, Commodore Mercedes, RMN—Chief of Staff Eighth Fleet.
Broughton, Captain Everard, RMN—CO, outer system LAC platforms, Zanzibar System Defense
Command.
Bruckheimer, Admiral Arnold, RHN (ret)—Fordyce System governor, Republic of Haven.
Caparelli, Admiral Sir Thomas—First Space Lord, RMN.
Cardones, Captain Rafe, RMN—CO HMS Imperator; Honor Harrington's flag captain.
Carmouche, Commodore Desiree, RHN—CO, Fordyce System Defense Command.
Carter, Lieutenant Jeff, RMN—an officer on Andrea Jaruwalski's operations staff.
Chernitskaya, Lieutenant Veronika Dominikovna
("Vicki"), RMN—tactical
officer, HMLAC Dacoit.
Clapp, Commander Mitchell, RHN—LAC development specialist assigned to Bolthole.
Chin, Admiral Genevieve, RHN—CO, Fifth Fleet.
Clinkscales, Austen MacGregor—Howard Clinkscales' nephew and successor as Regent of
Harrington Steading.
Clinkscales, Bethany Judith—Howard Clinkscales' senior wife.
Clinkscales, Constance Marianne—Howard Clinkscales' third wife.
Clinkscales, Lieutenant Commander Carson Edward, Grayson
Space Navy. Howard Clinkscales' nephew.
Clinkscales, Howard Samson Jonathan—Lord Clinkscales, Regent of Harrington Steading.
Clinkscales, Rebecca Tiffany—Howard Clinkscales' third wife.
Cortes, Admiral Sir Lucian—Fifth Space Lord, RMN.
Daniels, Lieutenant Commander Gunther, RMN—CO, HMS Skirmisher.
Dante, Lieutenant Commander Esmeralda, RMN—staff astrogator, CLAC Squadron 3.
Davidson, Monsignor Stuart—Archbishop Telmachi's personal representative on
Grayson.
deCastro, Commander Ivan, RHN—chief of staff, Chantilly System Defense Command.
DeClercq, Travis—Republic of Haven's ambassador to the Solarian League.
DeLaney, Captain Molly, RHN—chief of staff, Second Fleet.
DePaul, Brother Matthew—Reverend Sullivan's personal secretary and aide.
Detweiler, Albrecht—Manpower, Inc., chairman of the Board; head of the Mesan
governing council.
Detweiler, Evelina—Albrecht Detweiler's wife.
Deutscher, Rear Admiral Emile, RHN—CO, Task Group 36 ("Bogey One"), Third Fleet.
Diamato, Rear Admiral Oliver, RHN—CO, Battlecruiser Squadron 12.
D'Orville, Admiral Sebastian, RMN—CO, Home Fleet.
Dryslar, Captain Adam, RMN—Admiral Caparelli's chief of staff.
DuBois, Web—ex-genetic
slave, Prime Minister of Torch.
DuPuy, Tabitha—White
Haven's chief cook.
Durand, Captain Alexis, RHN—CO, Alpha Station, Solon System.
Duval, Rear Admiral Harold, RHN—CO, CLAC Division 19.
Eisenberg, Lieutenant Anita ("Ace"), RHN—communications officer, Second Fleet.
Ellefsen, Havard—Lovat System governor, Republic of Haven.
Ericsson, Commander Leonardo, RHN—operations officer, Chantilly System Defense Command.
Estwicke, Lieutenant Commander Bridget, RMN—CO, HMS Ambuscade.
Fanaafi, Commodore Charise, RMN—CO, Cruiser Squadron 12.
Farragut—treecat
companion of Miranda LaFollet.
Ferry, Harper S.—ex-slave; ex-Audubon Ballroom terrorist; one of Queen
Berry's bodyguards.
Foraker, Vice Admiral Shannon, RHN—CO, Bolthole.
Frazier, Doctor Janet—Honor Harrington's personal physician.
Fredericks, Captain Hal, RHN—CO, RHNS Conquete.
Genghis—treecat
companion of Judson Van Hale.
Giancola, Arnold—Republic of Haven Secretary of State.
Giancola, Jason—Republic
of Haven senator; Arnold Giancola's younger brother.
Gilraven, Captain Sybil, RMN—commanding officer, HMS Invictus, Admiral D'Orville's
flag captain.
Giovanni, Commodore Alessandra, RHN—CO, Lovat System Defense Command inner defenses.
Giscard, Admiral Javier, RHN—CO, Third Fleet; President Eloise Pritchart's lover.
Givens, Admiral Patricia—Second Space Lord, RMN; CO, Office of Naval
Intelligence.
Gohr, Lieutenant Commander Betty, RMN—tactical officer, HMS Nike.
Goldbach, Angelo—Axel Lacroix's best friend and fellow shipyard worker.
Goodrick, Captain Craig ("Wraith"), RMN—chief of staff, CLAC Squadron Three.
Gozzi, Captain Marius, RHN—chief of staff, Third Fleet.
Gregory, Stan—Republic
of Haven Secretary of Urban affairs.
Grimm, Admiral Stephania, Royal Manticoran Astro Control
Service—CO, Manticore Wormhole
Junction ACS.
Grosclaude, Yves—ex-Havenite Special Ambassador to Manticore.
Guernicke, Liam—Second
Lord of Admiralty (budgetary and fiscal management), RMN.
Guyard, Commander Claudette, RHN—chief of staff, Augusta System Defense Command.
Gwynett, Captain Madelyn, RMN—operations officer, Home Fleet.
Hampton, Alicia—Arnold
Giancola's senior administrative assistant.
Hampton, Commander Bradley, RMN—navy liaison officer assigned to Manticore Wormhole
Junction ACS.
Hanover, Captain Franklin, RMN—CO HMS Hector.
Hanriot, Rachel—Republic
of Haven Secretary of the Treasury.
Harcourt, Lieutenant Emily, RMN—tactical officer, HMS Ambuscade.
Harkness, Chief Warrant Officer Sir Horace, RMN—engineer, HMLAC Dacoit.
Harrington, Doctor Alfred—Honor Harrington's father, ex-navy officer, one of the
leading neurosurgeons of the Star Kingdom of Manticore.
Harrington, Doctor Allison—Honor Harrington's mother, born on the planet Beowulf,
one of the leading geneticists of the Star Kingdom of Manticore.
Harrington, Clarissa—Alfred Harrington's younger sister; Honor Harrington's
aunt.
Harrington, Faith Katherine Honor Stephanie Miranda—"Miss Harrington," Honor Harrington's younger
sister and a designated heir.
Harrington, Lady Dame Honor Stephanie—Duchess Harrington; Steadholder Harrington; Admiral,
RMN; Fleet Admiral, Grayson Space Navy; CO Protector's Own; CO Eighth Fleet; CO
HMS Unconquered.
Harrington, James Andrew Benjamin—Honor Harrington's younger brother, younger twin of
Faith Harrington.
Hartnett, Commander Thomasina, RMN—Rear Admiral Evelyn Padgorny's chief of staff.
Hasselberg, Vizeadmiral Lyou-yung, IAN—Graf Von Kreuzberg, CO, Task Force 16.
Hastings, Captain Josephus, RMN—Captain (Destroyers), Eighth Fleet.
Havenhurst, Nico—White Haven's majordomo.
Havlicek, Rear Admiral Thurston, RMN—CO, Manticore Wormhole Junction defenses.
Hawke, Captain Spencer—Harrington Steadholder' Guard. Honor Harrington's third
personal armsman.
Hayes, Solomon—gossip
columnist, Landing Tattler.
Hellerstein, Chief Heavy Officer Bryant, RMN—chief of the watch, Manticore System Perimeter Sensor
Watch.
Hemphill, Admiral Sonja, RMN—Baroness of Low Delhi, Fourth Space Lord, RMN.
Henke, Rear Admiral Michelle, RMN—Countess Gold Peak; CO, Battlecruiser Squadron 81.
Hennessy, Commander Coleman, RMN—Admiral Hemphill's chief of staff.
Hertz, Commander Eric, RMN—Captain Everard Broughton's COLAC, Zanzibar System
Defense Command; CO, HMLAC Ice Pick.
Hipper—treecat
companion of Rachel Mayhew.
Hirshfield, Commander Frances, RMN—executive officer, HMS Imperator.
Houellebecq, Captain Celestine, RHN—CO, RHNS Guerriere; Lester Tourville's flag captain.
Hovanian, Captain Arakel, RHN—CO, Destroyer Squadron 93.
Illescue, Doctor Franz—head of staff and senior partner, Briarwood Reproductive
Center.
Inchman, Commander Sandra, RHN—operations officer, Gaston System Defense Command.
Isher, Julia—business
manager, Briarwood Reproductive Center.
Jaruwalski, Captain (JG) Andrea, RMN—operations officer, Eighth Fleet.
Joubert, Captain Armand, RHN—CO, RHNS Peregrine.
Jourdain, Rear Admiral Franz, RHN—CO, Battle Squadron 27.
Julian, Lieutenant Commander James, RHN—staff astrogator, Fifth Fleet.
Kaminski, Lieutenant Albert, RMN—communications officer, Battlecruiser Squadron 81.
Kent, Lieutenant Janice, RMN—tactical officer, HMLAC Ice Pick.
Kgari, Lieutenant Commander Theophile, RMN—staff astrogator, Eighth Fleet.
Kleinman, Doctor Henry—Emily Alexander's personal physician.
Knippschd, Doctor Martijn ("Marty")—laboratory supervisor, Briarwood Reproductive Center.
Kochkarian, Captain Cyrus, RHN—CO, RHNS Canonnade; Genevieve Chin's flag captain.
Krenckel, Lieutenant Commander Ludwig, RHN—operations officer, Augusta System Defense Command.
Kuzak, Admiral Theodosia, RMN—CO, Third Fleet.
Kyprianou, Renzo—head of bio weapons research for Mesa and Manpower.
Lacroix, Axel—a
young Havenite shipyard worker.
LaFollet, Colonel Andrew—Harrington Steadholder's Guard. Honor Harrington's chief
personal armsman.
LaFollet, Jennifer—Allison Harrington's personal maid.
LaFollet, Miranda Gloria—Honor Harrington's personal maid; Andrew LaFollet's
younger sister; adopted by treecat Farragut.
Lamar, Captain Jordan, Royal Manticoran Astro Control
Service—executive officer, Manticore
Wormhole Junction ACS.
Lapierre, Lieutenant Commander Hector, RHN—communications officer, Fifth Fleet.
Lara—one of
Thandi Palane's ex-Scragg "Amazons"; assigned as a bodyguard to Queen
Berry; Saburo X's lover.
Latrell, Commander Judson, RMN—operations officer, Third Fleet.
Lauder, Giuseppe—one of Arnold Giancola's senior bodyguards.
Lazarevna, Lieutenant Commander Ekaterina Gennadovna
(" Katenka"), RMN—communications
officer, Home Fleet,
LePic, Denis—Republic
of Haven Attorney General.
le Vern, Mathilde—System Governor, Gaston System, Republic of Haven.
Lewis, Rear Admiral Victor, RHN—CO, Office of Operational Research.
Lorenzetti, Major Allen, RMMC—CO, Marine detachment, HMS Imperator.
Lowell, Petty Officer 1/c Peter, RHN—a noncommissioned officer assigned to the Hera System
Defense Command sensor net.
Loyola, Lieutenant Justin, RHN—tactical officer, RHNS Racer.
MacGuiness, James—Honor Harrington's personal steward and friend.
MacNaughton, Commander Ewan, RHN—senior Sensor officer, Lovat System Defense Command.
Mandel, Captain Irving, RMN—Criminal Investigation Division.
Manfredi, Commander Oliver, RMN—chief of staff, Battlecruiser Squadron 81.
Mannock, Vice Admiral Sir Allen, RMN—Seventh space Lord, RMN; Surgeon General of the Star
Kingdom of Manticore.
Marquette, Admiral Arnaud, RHN—chief of the naval staff.
Martinsen, Lieutenant Commander Astrid, RMN—staff communications officer, CLAC Squadron 3.
Mathieson, Georgina—Solon System governor, Republic of Haven.
Mattingly, Captain Simon—Harrington Steadholder's Guard. One of Honor
Harrington's personal armsmen.
Matsuzawa, Rear Admiral Hirotaka, RMN—commanding officer, Battlecruiser Squadron 32.
Mayhew, Alexandra—Benjamin Mayhew's fifth child, by Elaine Mayhew.
Goddaughter of Allison and Alfred Harrington.
Mayhew, Arabella Allison Wainwright—Benjamin Mayhew's eighth child, by Katherine Mayhew.
Mayhew, Benjamin Bernard Jason—Benjamin IX, Protector of Grayson.
Mayhew, Bernard Raoul—Lord Mayhew, Benjamin Mayhew's sixth child (and first
son), by Katherine Mayhew. Heir Apparent to the Protectorship of Grayson.
Mayhew, Elaine Margaret—Benjamin Mayhew's junior wife.
Mayhew, Honor—Benjamin
Mayhew's fourth child, by Elaine Mayhew. Honor Harrington's goddaughter
Mayhew, Jeanette—Benjamin Mayhew's second oldest child, by Elaine Mayhew.
Mayhew, Katherine Elizabeth—Benjamin Mayhew's senior wife; First Lady of Grayson.
Mayhew, Lawrence Hamish William—Benjamin Mayhew's seventh child, by Elaine Mayhew.
Mayhew, Rachel—Benjamin
Mayhew's oldest child, by Katherine Mayhew, adopted by treecat Hipper,
midshipwoman Saganami Island Naval Academy.
Mayhew, Teresa—Benjamin
Mayhew's third oldest child, by Katherine Mayhew.
McClure, Sergeant Jefferson—Harrington Steadholder's Guard, Emily Alexander's
personal armsman.
McGraw, Sergeant Clifford—Harrington Steadholder's Guard, one of Honor
Harrington's new personal armsman.
McGwire, Commander Alan, RHN—chief of staff, Fordyce System Defense Command.
McGwire, Jackson—White Haven's butler.
McKeon, Rear Admiral Alistair, RMN—CO, Battle Squadron 61.
Mears, Lieutenant Timothy, RMN—Honor Harrington's flag lieutenant.
Meyers, Tajman—chief
of security, Briarwood Reproductive Center.
Mikhailov, Captain Diego, RMN—CO, HMS Ajax, Michelle Henke's flag captain.
Miklos, Vice Admiral Samuel, RMN—CO, CLAC Squadron 6.
Milligan, Commodore Tom, RHN—CO, Hera System Defense Command.
Monroe—Prince
Justin Zyrr-Winton's treecat companion.
Montague, Vice Admiral Irene, RMN—CO, Battle Squadron 19.
Montaigne, Catherine—leader of the Manticoran Liberal Party; Manticoran
leader of the Anti-slavery League; ex-Baroness of the Tor; Anton Zilwicki's
lover.
Montreau, Leslie—Arnold Giancola's successor as the Havenite Secretary of
State.
Moore, Rear Admiral Kenneth, RHN—CO, Battle Squadron 11.
Moreau, Commodore Mary Lou, RMN—CO, Light Cruiser Flotilla 18.
Morowitz, Rear Admiral Allen, RMN—CO, first division, Battle Squadron 61.
Morrison, Surgeon Commander Richenda, RMN—senior physician, HMS Imperator.
Morser, Vizeadmiral Bin-hewi, IAN—Graffin von Grau, CO, Battle Squadron 36, IAN.
Mueller, Travis—Steadholder
Mueller.
Nesbitt, Tony—Republic
of Haven Secretary of Commerce; Jean-Claude Nesbitt's cousin.
Nesbitt, Colonel Jean-Claude—chief of security, Republic of Haven Department of
State; Tony Nesbitt's cousin.
Neukirch, Lieutenant Commander Harriet, RMN—astrogator, HMS Imperator.
Nielsen, Commander Petra, RHN—operations officer, Fordyce System Defense Command.
Nimitz—Honor
Harrington's treecat companion; mate of Samantha.
O'Dell, Captain Harold, RMN—CO, HMS King Roger III; Theodosia Kuzak's flag captain.
O'Donnell, Father Jerome—parish priest, White Haven.
Orbach, Doctor Dame Jessica—Third Lord of Admiralty (health and Manpower), RMN
Orndorff, Commander Roslee, RMN—chief of staff, Battle Squadron 61; adopted by treecat
Banshee.
Ormskirk, Admiral Sir Frederick—Earl Tanith Hill, Sixth Space Lord, RMN.
Oversteegen, Captain Michael, RMN—CO HMS Nike.
Padgorny, Rear Admiral Evelyn, RMN—CO Battle Squadron 31, Zanzibar System picket.
Palane, Thandi—"Great
Kaja," uniformed commander-in-chief of the Torch military; Queen Berry's
unofficial "big sister."
Pattison, Lieutenant Jayne, RMN—communications officer, HMS Nike.
Phillips, Lindsey—Manticoran nanny assigned to Faith and James Harrington.
Poykkonen, himJoona—Augusta System governor, Republic of Haven.
Pritchart, Eloise—President of the Republic Of Haven; Javier Giscard's
lover.
Randall, Commander Myron, RHN—chief of staff, Gaston System Defense Command.
Reinke, Vizeadmiral Hen-zhi, IAN—Baron von Basaltberg, CO, Battlecruiser Squadron 31,
IAN.
Reumann, Captain Patrick, RHN—CO, RHNS Sovereign of Space; Javier Giscard's flag
captain.
Reynolds, Commander George, RMN—Honor Harrington's staff intelligence officer.
Rothschild, Lieutenant Jack, RHN—Captain Morton Schneider's tactical officer.
Sabourin, Captain Nicodeme, RHN—chief of staff, Fifth Fleet.
Samantha—Hamish
Alexander's treecat companion; mate of Nimitz.
Sanderson, Walter—Republic of Haven Secretary of the Interior.
Sandusky, Jerome—Mesan covert operations specialist with primary
day-to-day responsibility for operations in Congo and the Republic of Haven.
Schneider, Captain Morton, RHN—COLAC for the first Havenite attack on Zanzibar.
Sebastian, Margaret—Chantilly System governor, Republic of Haven.
Sewall, Rear Admiral Hildegard, RHN—CO, Task Group 32 ("Bogey Two"), Third Fleet.
Sharif, Captain James, RMN—CO HMS Intolerant, Allen Morowitz' flag captain.
Shelburne, Captain Lavarenti, RMN—CO, HMS Hecate.
Shelton, Chester—system governor, Hera System, Republic of Haven.
Simon, Admiral Janos, Alizon Space Navy—CO, Alizon System Defense Command.
Simon, Commander Jean, RMN—ONI counter-espionage specialist.
Slowacki, Commander Alekan, RMN—operations officer, Battle Squadron 61.
Smirnoff, Captain Alice, RHN—Second Fleet's senior COLAC.
Smith, Gena—head
of Protector's Palace childcare staff.
Smithson, Captain Gerald ("Jerry"), RMN—chief of staff, Third Fleet.
Snyder, Lieutenant Commander Henry, RMN—astrogator, Home Fleet.
Spiropoulo, Commander Andrianna, RHN—operations officer, Fifth Fleet.
Stackpole, Lieutenant Commander John, RMN—operations officer, Battlecruiser Squadron 81.
Stanfield, Commander Janine, RMN—operations officer, CLAC Squadron 3.
Stanton, Lieutenant Jethro, RMN—executive officer, HMS Ambuscade.
Staunton, Sandra—Republic of Haven Secretary of Biosciences.
Steen, Commander Astrid, RMN—staff astrogator, Third Fleet.
Stimson, Sergeant Tobias—Harrington Steadholder's Guard. Hamish Alexander's
personal armsman.
Stokely, Commander Ellen, RHN—CO, RHNS Racer; Captain Arakel Hovanian's "flag
captain."
Sullivan, The Reverend Jeremiah Winslow—First Elder, Church of Humanity Unchained.
Taverner, Commander Serena, RHN—chief of staff, Battlecruiser Squadron 12.
Taylor, Jasper—Steadholder
Canseco.
Telmachi, Archbishop Robert—Archbishop of Manticore.
Tennard, Corporal Jeremiah—Harrington Steadholder's Guard; Faith Harrington's
personal armsman.
Thackeray, Commander Alvin, RMN—Rear Admiral Padgorny's operations officer.
Thackery, Commander Selma, RHN—operations officer, Third Fleet.
Thackston, Corporal Barnaby, RMMC—Marine detachment, HMS Imperator.
Theisman, Admiral Thomas, RHN—Havenite CNO and Secretary of War.
Thiessen, Sheila—Presidential Security Force, President Pritchart's
senior bodyguard.
Thomas, Captain Melinda, RMN—CO HMS Intransigent; Alistair McKeon's flag captain.
Thompson, Commander Glenn, RMN—chief engineer, HMS Imperator.
Thurston, Sandra—Emily Alexander's personal maid/nurse.
Timmons, Captain Jane, RMN—CO, HMS Andromeda.
Torricelli, Chief Petty Officer Andreas, RHN—chief of the watch, Hera System Defense Command sensor
net.
Toscarelli, Vice Admiral Anton, RMN—Third Space Lord, RMN.
Tourville, Admiral Lester, RHN—CO, Second Fleet.
Trajan, Wilhelm—Director,
Foreign Intelligence Service, Republic of Haven.
Tremain, Captain Prescott ("Scotty"), RMN—CO HMLAC Dacoit; senior COLAC, CLAC Squadron 3.
Trenis, Vice Admiral Linda, RHN—CO, Bureau of Planning.
Truman, Vice Admiral Dame Alice, RMN—commanding officer, Third CLAC Squadron.
Tucker, Commander George, RHN—chief of staff, Hera System Defense Command.
Turner, Lieutenant Commander Angelina, RMN—watch officer, Manticore System Perimeter Sensor Watch.
Tyler, William Henry—New Age Pharmaceuticals commercial representative on
Torch.
Usher, Kevin—Director,
Federal Investigation Agency, Republic of Haven.
VanGuyles, Elfrieda—Countess Fairburn, Conservative Association insider.
Van Hale, Judson, Sphinx-born son of a genetic slave; one
of Queen Berry's bodyguards; adopted by treecat Genghis.
Waldberg, Konteradmiral Syou-tung, IAN—CO, Battle Squadron 38, IAN.
Watson, Captain Diego, RHN—senior COLAC, Fordyce System Defense Command.
Webster, Admiral James Bowie, RMN (ret)—Manticoran ambassador to the Solarian League.
Weissmuller, Lieutenant Jerome, RMN—astrogator, HMS Ambuscade.
West, Commander Fred, RHN—Captain Alice Smirnoff's successor as Second Fleet's
senior COLAC.
Willoughby, Lieutenant Sherwin, RMN—Rear Admiral Evelyn Padgorny's communications officer.
Winton, Elizabeth Adrienne Samantha Annette—Queen Elizabeth III, Queen of Manticore. Adopted by
treecat Ariel.
Winthe when I did youton, Princess Ruth—adopted daughter of Michael Winton; Elizabeth III's
niece; Queen Berry's friend and junior intelligence advisor.
Witcinski, Commander Sigismund, RMN—CO, LAC tender HMS Marigold, Zanzibar System Defense
Command.
Wollenhaupt, Konteradmiral Tswei-yun, IAN—CO, Battle Squadron 56.
X., Jeremy—ex-genetic
slave, ex-Audubon Ballroom terrorist; Queen Berry's Secretary of War.
X., Saburo—ex-genetic
slave, ex-Audubon Ballroom terrorist, one of Queen Berry's bodyguards; Lara's
lover.
Zilwicki, Captain Anton, RMN (ret)—ex-ONI agent; Queen Berry's adoptive father and senior
intelligence advisor; Catherine Montaigne's lover.
Zilwicki, Berry—Queen
Berry, first monarch of Torch.
Zucker, Commander Robert, RHN—operations officer, Battlecruiser Squadron 12.
Zyrr-Winton, Justin—Prince Consort of Manticore. Adopted by treecat Monroe.